summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/62469-0.txt13573
-rw-r--r--old/62469-0.zipbin301790 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62469-h.zipbin335619 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/62469-h/62469-h.htm17279
-rw-r--r--old/62469-h/images/cover.jpgbin26321 -> 0 bytes
8 files changed, 17 insertions, 30852 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..09666f9
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #62469 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/62469)
diff --git a/old/62469-0.txt b/old/62469-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index cd893f1..0000000
--- a/old/62469-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,13573 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Sundered Streams, by Reginald Farrer
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: The Sundered Streams
- The History of a Memory That Had No Full Stops
-
-Author: Reginald Farrer
-
-Release Date: June 24, 2020 [EBook #62469]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE SUNDERED STREAMS ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Demian Katz, Craig Kirkwood, and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net
-(Images courtesy of the Digital Library@Villanova University
-(http://digital.library.villanova.edu/))
-
-
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber’s Notes:
-
-Text enclosed by underscores is in italics (_italics_), and text
-enclosed by equal signs is in bold (=bold=).
-
-Additional Transcriber’s Notes are at the end.
-
- * * * * *
-
-
-
-
-THE SUNDERED STREAMS
-
-
- THE HISTORY OF A MEMORY THAT HAD NO FULL STOPS
-
- BY REGINALD FARRER
-
- AUTHOR OF ‘THE GARDEN OF ASIA,’ ‘THE HOUSE OF SHADOWS,’ ETC.
-
- ‘Shōshi no kukai hétori nashi: Sodé no furi-awasé mo tashō no en.’
-
- [There is no shore to the bitter Sea of Birth-and-Death: even the
- touching of sleeves in passing is the result of some connection in a
- former life.]
-
- LONDON
- EDWARD ARNOLD
- 41 & 43 MADDOX STREET, BOND STREET, W.
- 1907
-
- [_All rights reserved_]
-
- * * * * *
-
-TO ‘MILADI’
-
-ALICE, COUNTESS OF BECTIVE
-
- * * * * *
-
-THE SUNDERED STREAMS
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-
-The English language, flexible and rich though it be, lacks words
-in which to convey the subtler social distinctions. We have had
-to go abroad for ‘nouveau-riche’ and ‘parvenu,’ to say nothing
-of ‘Philistia,’ ‘Bohemia,’ the ‘demi-monde,’ and all the other
-geographical names that we have taken from the atlas of the human
-world to describe some small corner in our own little parish. But, as
-our civilization grows more and more complex, so does our borrowed
-vocabulary grow less and less adequate, until nowadays we find not a
-few fine differences in our microcosm which no word of our own or of
-any other nation avails to identify. The ‘Arrived’ and the ‘New-rich’
-are familiar figures, but what of those many families who suddenly
-become wealthy and prominent after many generations of well-bred
-obscurity? They cannot fairly be described as ‘nouveau-riche’ or
-‘parvenu’; they have been there all the time, though not in evidence;
-to brand them with the stigma of novelty would be manifestly unfair.
-They have antiquity without importance--a vast difference, in the
-eyes of social astronomers, between them and the blazing stars of
-wealth that so suddenly emerge from the black night of genealogical
-non-existence. As well compare a dazzling meteor, here and gone in a
-flash, with a genuine star which, after æons of inconspicuousness,
-abruptly swells into a luminary of the first magnitude. To describe
-such fixed lights in our English hemisphere a new word must first be
-coined in another language, and then borrowed. Such people are not
-‘nouveau-riche’; they are ‘renrichis.’ And to this class belonged the
-Dadds of Darnley-on-Downe--that obscure dynasty from which it is now
-necessary to show the gradual genesis, through many quiet generations,
-of Kingston Darnley, its apostate offspring.
-
-Among soft Kentish meadows sleeps the little metropolis of
-Darnley-on-Downe. It lies on the grassy plain like a neat poached egg
-on a vast green plate, and, over all, the blue vault of heaven makes
-a domed lid. The Downe meanders placidly at the foot of its gardens,
-and comfortable little Georgian houses speak of agelong ease and
-decent leisure. Darnley-on-Downe has no local peer, no local palace;
-rank and fashion, therefore, are represented only by these dignified
-dwellings of red brick, each enclosed in shrubberies of rose and laurel
-and lilac, each tenanted by some family well known for generations in
-Darnley-on-Downe.
-
-As Cranford was, as Highbury was, so also was Darnley-on-Downe--placid,
-happy and exclusive, intolerant of all new-comers and of all change.
-Mrs. John succeeded Mrs. Joshua, and Mr. Reuben Mr. James; and no
-outsider was ever permitted to disturb the orderly dynasties that so
-long had ruled in the little town. Crowns fell, but the serenity of
-Darnley-on-Downe remained unruffled, and the collapse of the Corsican
-ogre took no higher rank in general conversation than the misdoings
-of Mrs. Blessing’s Matilda, or the strange theft of Miss Minna Dadd’s
-Leghorns. So, talking only to themselves, and only of themselves, the
-aristocracy of Darnley-on-Downe passed inconspicuously from the nursery
-to the grave, through the leisurely old days when the peace of the
-country contrasted so strongly with the restless misery of the great
-cities, and, in the absence of halfpenny morning papers, only rare
-rumours filtered down into the provinces of a young Queen gradually
-making her seat secure on a dishonoured and endangered throne.
-
-Nowadays Cranford, probably, plays pit, and motors hoot beneath the
-walls of Donwell Abbey. Nowadays clash and clangour fill the one main
-street of Darnley-on-Downe, and the Georgian houses are being swept
-away to make room for glassy palaces of art-nouveau design. But, in
-the days when Fortune swooped so suddenly on the Dadds, only peace and
-slumber haunted the Market Place and St. Eldred’s.
-
-Clean, humble, small, and quiet, the cottages and shops of the
-working-classes lined the broad pavement, with here a neat bank fronted
-by Corinthian pilasters, and there a rambling, wide-mouthed inn,
-haunted by loafing dogs and ostlers full of leisure. Then came the
-church, solid and unassuming, very essence made visible of that orderly
-if unimpassioned spirit that then possessed the Church of England.
-Under its shadow, flanked by tall clipped obelisks of yew, squatted the
-solid square of the vicarage, with green lawn and beds of roses leading
-down to the wicket that opened on the roadway. And beyond this again
-began a wide, ancient avenue of limes, fragrant and tranquil, on whose
-either side stretched that series of red-brick houses in which the
-Upper Ten of Darnley-on-Downe discreetly led its days, and formed an
-aristocracy no less rigid, no less zealous for birth and tradition than
-that higher world called ‘county,’ with which it had nothing to do, and
-yet so much in common. St. Eldred’s was the name of this provincial
-faubourg, and the wayfarer, passing down its green length, might divine
-its exclusive character from the lack of any invidious distinction
-made between the houses. The identity of each was kept sacred for the
-elect, and the outsider was to know nothing. In our own assertive time
-each gate would bear a curly Gothic title--‘Chatsworth,’ ‘Arundel,’
-‘Sandringham’ would gratify our loyal eyes. In those days Mrs. Blessing
-knew Miss Dadd’s house, and Miss Dadd knew Mrs. Blessing’s. This
-knowledge was held to be amply sufficient, and it was even felt that
-to share it with the unprivileged world at large would be profane and
-vulgar. Thus the unguided stranger would have travelled uninstructed
-past gateway after gateway, past trim red wall after trim red wall,
-without being able to attribute any definite personality to the dweller
-in each cloistered precinct. And therefore he must necessarily have
-passed on his way without gathering any idea of the extent to which the
-Dadds dominated St. Eldred’s.
-
-All the dwellers in these houses lived in a small way, and all of them
-drew their incomes from some retail trade. ‘County’ people, from their
-own high circle, contemplating these lesser worlds, would never have
-guessed the intense and silent arrogance with which, in turn, these
-lesser worlds looked down on the struggling aspirants from beneath, on
-the new and unknown persons who painfully fought to win a footing in
-St. Eldred’s. But, in the close ring of this aristocracy, the Dadds
-were certainly the ruling dynasty. Had the wayfarer been privileged
-with a guide, he would have learned that every fourth house in St.
-Eldred’s enshrined a Dadd or the relation of a Dadd. Here dwelt Mrs.
-Reuben Dadd; yonder Mr. and Mrs. Joshua Dadd; and, not a stone’s-throw
-farther, was the house of the Misses Adelaide and Minna Dadd. As
-for the head of the family, Mr. Dadd, with his consort, dwelt in a
-stout-pillared edifice which even an uninstructed stranger must have
-seen to be the residence of a presiding Power.
-
-The Dadds permeated social life in Darnley-on-Downe. They were
-everywhere, had married into every family, had accorded brides to every
-neighbouring house of repute, had come at last to be, as it were, the
-very incarnation of decency and proper pride in Darnley-on-Downe. They
-were no richer than their neighbours, but in those days wealth gave no
-precedence, and the Dadds had a prestige which their fellow-nobles in
-St. Eldred’s lacked. For the Dadds owned land, and, though St. Eldred’s
-made no attempt to connect itself with the world of landowners and
-county families, yet a vague aroma of grandeur still clung to the one
-family in its midst that might be said to verge on the territorial
-class. The glory of the Dadds was a big freehold farm beyond the town,
-where they had been established from time immemorial, honourably
-obscure from the days of Henry the Eighth. St. Eldred’s, accordingly,
-cherishing its own pedigrees and antiquities, as it did, with as
-fervent a passion as any Austrian noble, yet by tacit consent accorded
-supremacy to this landowning family in its midst.
-
-The Dadds by now had gone down, alas, in the world; however, St.
-Eldred’s never dreamed of making worldly prosperity a criterion for
-approval. St. Eldred’s lived, itself, in a penurious prosperity or
-a prosperous poverty; wealth, being unattainable, was held to be
-undesirable as well as rather vulgar, and the fading income of the
-Dadds only set the seal on their title to general admiration. The
-farm was still theirs indeed, but its yield was less and lessening.
-All through the good old Protection days their corn had brought high
-prices; but, unfortunately, the cost of living had grown even higher
-in proportion, until the Dadds found themselves forced to renounce
-agricultural hopes, leave the farm fallow, and plunge into small trade.
-From this they made a fair livelihood, and were able to support their
-regal position in the world of St. Eldred’s. So they lived, married,
-ruled, and died, till never a house in St. Eldred’s but was kin to the
-royal family of Dadd.
-
-James Dadd after James Dadd contentedly took up his sceptre, swayed it
-during his time, and laid it by. Their clan, like all others in St.
-Eldred’s, was magnificently complacent in contemplation of its own
-position. No Dadd was ever heard to aspire to more giddy worlds, no
-Dadd was ever known to show any hankerings after wilder flights, after
-new courses, after original thought or action of any kind. In a young
-member of the family, in a collateral, the weight of his elders would
-immediately have crushed out such sparks of discontent; as for the head
-of the dynasty, so surrounded was the ruling Dadd by now with uncles,
-cousins, and aunts, not to mention dowagers of bygone sovereigns, that
-it would have been as easy for him to revolt as for a Pope to make
-headway against the College of Cardinals. Such, then, was the decorous
-state of affairs, when suddenly a most astonishing thing happened.
-
-The railway mania was sweeping over England. Counties were being opened
-up, and landowners being driven crazy with hysterical apprehensions
-of ruin, and opposition to every threatened change. At first all
-these commotions left the quiet waters of St. Eldred’s unruffled. But
-eventually a railway company came sniffing round the ancestral but
-profitless farm of the Dadds, and, somehow, during the negotiations,
-it was discovered that those barren acres covered a coal-field of
-exuberant richness.
-
-It was not to be expected that this new fact should bring about any
-sudden alteration in the feeling of St. Eldred’s towards the Dadds.
-Only a mild flutter agitated for a while the red-brick houses. Then it
-was felt that the acquisition of wealth by the Dadds was very right
-and proper. Wealth was only vulgar when in new and plebeian hands. A
-Dadd could be trusted to avoid giving offence, a Dadd would never be
-ostentatious, nor presume to change his mode of life. So, undeterred by
-any disapproval from their peers, the ruling Dadds proceeded quietly
-to develop their new possibilities. What those possibilities were no
-one had the audacity or the grandeur of mind to compute. Unsuspected,
-unrealized, volumes of money rolled ceaselessly in to the account of
-the mine-owners, while they, in their innocence, continued unperturbed
-in the old simple ways, never caring to dream that their new wealth
-could do more for them than add, at most, a parlourmaid.
-
-It was some years before even this grand addition was made to their
-scale of living, and then it was only when the sudden death of
-James Dadd the Eighth had left the family sceptre in the hands of a
-queen-regent. The widow ruled for her son (now, at a tender age, raised
-to the rank of James Dadd the Ninth), and hardly had she grasped the
-reins of power than she began to show signs of wishing to use the
-abundant resources which had now been accumulating for fifteen years
-or more. Her ambitions were not approved, and the extra parlourmaid
-was only condoned as an indulgence for the sorrows of widowhood. But
-from that moment a little rift began to widen between the reigning
-Dadds and Darnley-on-Downe. The money began insensibly to come between
-the rulers and the ruled. It was inevitable that it should. An
-income--even an unspent income--of fifteen thousand a year cannot long
-live on terms of perfect friendly equality with incomes of several
-hundred or so. The richer, sooner or later, condescends; the poorer,
-sooner or later, grudges. Thus it was in Darnley-on-Downe. Even the
-suspicion that Mrs. Dadd had ‘notions’--that she would have liked a
-landau, and had conceived thoughts of sending her sons to Eton--caused
-a certain vigilant enmity to exasperate the keenness with which her
-every action was watched and weighed by her council of relatives. The
-slightest sign of ambition was soon marked as a treason to the clan.
-All the Dadd connections, all the Dadd collaterals, all the dowagers
-and younger branches of the Dadds made common cause with St. Eldred’s,
-and joined in the general suspicion with which the conduct of Mrs. Dadd
-was viewed. The widow found herself unable to carry out the smallest
-extravagance. Very innocent and trifling were the few indulgences that
-she had hoped for, but even these were put beyond her reach by the
-decree of her relatives, by that incorruptible synod over which even
-a Dadd queen-regent had no more power than a doge of Venice over his
-Council of Ten. Nor was her submission able to redeem her popularity.
-The very fact of having once had ‘notions’ was enough to mark her out
-for ever as a traitor to the Constitution of St. Eldred’s. She was no
-longer quite ‘one of themselves.’ The excommunication was pronounced
-by those terrible princesses, the Misses Adelaide and Minna Dadd, and
-no one was found to question its justice as it thundered across the
-tea-table.
-
-Inquiries were made into her remote ancestry, and it was soon found
-that, though by birth an unblemished Blessing, yet she had inherited
-the sinister tendencies of a Messiter great-great-great-grandmother,
-whom history convicted of eccentricities that went the length of
-reading her Bible in French. From such a tainted spring what purity
-could be expected? The situation was summed up by the Misses Adelaide
-and Minna Dadd. The stream cannot rise higher than its source, was
-their stern pronouncement. A regretful loyalty, a disapproving
-adherence now marked the family’s attitude towards her--a loyalty, an
-adherence as faithful but as disapproving as ever a virtuous believer
-in Divine right can have felt for a drunken and profligate Pretender,
-or a patriotic Catholic for Queen Elizabeth.
-
-So far, it is true, her eldest son, James Dadd the Ninth, seemed a
-model of Dadd virtues. He had made no open move towards ostentation and
-prodigality. His younger brother Robert, however, was the incarnate
-tragedy of St. Eldred’s, the incarnate accusation of Mrs. Dadd’s
-regency. Briefly, this ulcer of St. Eldred’s must be skimmed; Robert
-Dadd had run away from home, and when next heard of, many years later,
-was understood to be in Japan, and to have become a Mormon or a
-Buddhist, or a disciple of whatever religion rules in those benighted
-parts. Never again was his name heard in St. Eldred’s, but the Messiter
-great-great-great-grandmother was held accountable for such a strange,
-terrible aberration--the first break in the impeccable succession
-of the Dadds. There was yet another child--a daughter--but she was
-ten years younger than her brothers, and could not as yet prove, in
-her own person, the corrupt heredity of her mother. However, she was
-already watched with care, and every tearing of her pinafore was held
-symptomatic of inherited depravity.
-
-James Dadd the Ninth came at last to his own, and his unhappy mother,
-crushed by years of disapproval, sank, unregretted, to the grave. And
-hardly had St. Eldred’s consigned her decently to the tomb, than James
-Dadd gave abundant proof of the evil spirit that all his relatives
-had long suspected. He left Darnley-on-Downe. He shut up the family
-house; he travelled; he began timidly to live on a scale that drove
-St. Eldred’s dizzy with horrified astonishment. Thanks to his mother’s
-economy, he was now extremely rich, and bit by bit began to realize the
-extent of his opportunities. But, though St. Eldred’s shook its head
-over him, though the Misses Adelaide and Minna Dadd refused to read
-the papers any longer, for fear of finding his iniquities chronicled,
-James Dadd remained the true son of his fathers. Wealth could not
-make him wealthy; it takes a generation at least to make the genuine
-spendthrift, to ingraft the joy and the splendour of purchasing. James
-Dadd remained nervous, awkward, bourgeois in his uneasy enjoyment of
-his money. Assertive one moment, he was uneasy and parsimonious the
-next, always self-conscious, always troubled by the disapproval of the
-only world he really knew--the world that had made him and written its
-signature large across the face of his personality. Wherever he went,
-he carried St. Eldred’s, and heard the mild but tremendous tones of the
-Misses Adelaide and Minna Dadd among the arches of the Colosseum as in
-the silences of the Desert. Sometimes he defied the voices, sometimes
-he quailed before them, but escape them he never could. He was out of
-his sphere; they told him so. He had cast off his own world, and could
-enter no other.
-
-Often in his travels he met other men on similar errands of pleasure,
-young men and old, sons of country squires or illustrious families. In
-most cases they had not a quarter of his income, but they seemed to
-have the careless knack of getting more pleasure out of half a crown
-than he could ever buy with a five-pound note. Poor as they might be,
-generations of spending ancestors had left them the secret of spending
-easily, gaily, serenely, of letting money flow unperceived between
-their fingers, of securing a double return for their outlay through
-their very indifference as to whether they ever got any return at
-all. This was the whole distinction between himself and them. Actual
-superiority of birth and breeding they had none, though their forbears
-might be more prominent than his. But centuries of inconspicuousness
-disqualify a man for the conspicuous position conferred by sudden
-wealth, and James Dadd, for all his long pedigree, was far less fitted
-for his new place in life than many a grandson of some successful
-politician or lawyer, who might number, perhaps, two generations to
-James Dadd’s twenty, but made up for this lack of quantity by the
-eminence of the father and grandfather whose high and hard-won position
-he had painlessly inherited.
-
-So James Dadd, misplaced and ill at ease, passed thus through life
-with occasional spasmodic attempts at the assumption of a defiant
-self-complacency. He knew that he was an outcast from St. Eldred’s.
-Even if he would, he could never now return to the red-brick house
-of his early years. In the flesh, perhaps, he might, but his spirit
-could never again be admitted within its doors, could never again be
-admitted to intimacy by the spirit of St. Eldred’s. Rashly he had cut
-himself off from his own people, and must henceforth face the fact.
-Nor, though either diffident or vehement in the spending of his money,
-could he really contemplate returning to the life of Darnley-on-Downe.
-He had tasted of headier joys--tasted awkwardly, perhaps, and
-incompletely, but even so the small-beer on which St. Eldred’s had
-reared him must for evermore be insipid to his palate. Though now he
-never heard from his brother Robert, he sympathized with his revolt,
-and resolved that he, too, could never again have any part in the
-life of Darnley-on-Downe. And at this point, just after the one brief
-tragic flash of romance that broke into his life, he came across Lady
-Kirk-Hammerton.
-
-Lady Kirk-Hammerton was the sonless widow of a second-rate Lord
-Chancellor. Devoid of wealth or breeding, she and her husband had had
-recourse to blatancy to emphasize their value. Now that he was dead
-she redoubled the intensity of her methods, and soon acquired that
-notoriety which she considered synonymous with fame. Bereft of her
-husband, there was no reason why people should ever take notice of her
-again, unless her demeanour forced them to do so. Therefore she set
-herself heroically to the task of making her existence conspicuous in
-the eye of the world, with such success that, with the best resolve,
-nobody could succeed in ignoring her. Physically and metaphorically,
-she shouted her way from place to place, and her conversation blazed
-no less obtrusively than her gowns. As for a foil, she felt that her
-brilliancy needed none, and therefore had no reason for tolerating her
-daughter’s incorrigible respectability. With the more joy, therefore,
-did she fall upon James Dadd at Naples, and hurl him, not unwilling,
-into the company of her undesirable offspring.
-
-But if the daughter emphasized the mother’s mature and vehement charms,
-so did the mother’s overwhelming presence show up the pale grace of
-the daughter. Lady Adela Vayne-Kingston was pretty, shrinking, mild,
-domestic--the very type that, in happier circumstances, would have
-been most dear to St. Eldred’s. She hated her mother’s loud voice
-and louder manners; her one hope was to marry someone obscure and
-gentle, who would remove her from the burning atmosphere of Lady
-Kirk-Hammerton, in whose train, since her girlhood, she had been
-dragged hither and thither, never protesting, but always reluctant.
-James Dadd, for his part, found in Lady Adela a reminiscence of his
-old home-life. She seemed to him the ghost of peaceful St. Eldred’s,
-with an added touch of worldly experience and travelled charm. Her
-character, far from repeating her mother’s, harked back to some
-obscure ancestress, probably in domestic service, and was so meek
-and placid as to be the very incarnation of all that James Dadd had
-been brought up to love and respect. On the other hand, this same
-gentleness of temperament, which St. Eldred’s considered the hall-mark
-of good breeding, was believed by Lady Kirk-Hammerton to be especially
-distasteful to those high circles after which she hankered; and she
-had long, therefore, been eagerly seeking a chance to be rid of
-the daughter whom her best efforts had failed to render brazen and
-clamorous. Her delight, accordingly, surpassed all bounds, when at the
-end of a week’s acquaintance, James Dadd proposed to Lady Adela, and
-was thankfully accepted.
-
-Though the Misses Adelaide and Minna Dadd had ceased to subscribe to
-‘the Paper,’ they yet had their recognised channels for the reception
-of news. For the butcher conveyed the events of the world to their
-cook, and she, in turn, laid edited selections before her mistresses.
-In this way was brought to their notice the approaching marriage
-between ‘James Dadd, Esq., of Darnley-on-Downe, and the Lady Adela
-Vayne-Kingston, daughter of the late Earl of Kirk-Hammerton.’
-
-That afternoon was hurriedly convened a great meeting of the Dadd
-family to consider this announcement. Unmixed disapproval filled
-every bosom in the tribe. The engagement was held equivalent to the
-abdication of James Dadd from the headship of his race. In two ways
-the proposed marriage was disliked. It was thoroughly unsuitable to a
-Dadd; it was thoroughly unworthy of a Dadd. Lady Adela was at once too
-high and too low to be a fair match of James Dadd. Accident had given
-her a titular position superior to her lover’s, while her birth was in
-every way disastrously inferior to his own. Even St. Eldred’s had heard
-something of Lady Kirk-Hammerton, and it was impossible to imagine that
-her daughter could, by any stretch of courtesy, be called a lady in the
-true sense of the word. All the Dadd pride of birth rose up against
-the thought of connection with a girl without a grandfather--a girl,
-too, whom uninstructed sections of the world might dare to consider her
-husband’s social superior. It was felt that James Dadd had inflicted
-a crowning insult on his family in thus threatening to misally it.
-Mrs. John, Mrs. Reuben, Mrs. Joshua, coincided in the opinion firmly
-announced by the Misses Adelaide and Minna Dadd; the young Johns,
-Reubens, and Joshuas, dissented in nothing; only the peccant James’s
-sister, now a girl of promising beauty, held her own counsel, and
-decided to write congratulations to her brother and his destined
-bride. For in her, too, the blood of great-great-great-grandmother
-Messiter was at its fell work; her soul longed for change and variety
-and gaiety; and all these things she saw attainable through James’s
-marriage with the daughter of that notorious Lady Kirk-Hammerton.
-
-But she was too wise to make her heresy public; and the condemnation
-of James’s choice was passed without protest by the assembled council.
-An ultimatum was drafted by the Misses Adelaide and Minna Dadd, and
-would have been dispatched on the morrow, with the approval of all, had
-not the morrow brought news that destroyed every hope of reconciliation
-with the traitor. It was announced that, with royal permission, James
-Dadd, of Darnley-on-Downe, would in future be known as James Darnley.
-St. Eldred’s gasped at the wickedness of this public repudiation.
-
-In point of fact it was Lady Adela, gentle and winning, whose vitality
-had stirred to a great effort, under great pressure, and had risen
-to urge upon her lover this change of name. She pointed out that to
-ask a girl to become Lady Adela Dadd was to exact a sacrifice as far
-beyond mortal power to grant as beyond mortal justice to demand. James
-Dadd, recognising that he could never hope to be reincluded in the
-clan whose nominal sovereign he still was, found himself inclined
-to consider Lady Adela’s plea in a favourable spirit. Together they
-decided to adopt the more euphonious name of Darnley, and James Dadd
-hastened to make his decision public, that thus he might at once be
-finally cut off from any remonstrances or embassies of his family. He
-judged the temper of St. Eldred’s rightly. His announcement was taken
-as an irremediable declaration of war. His name was never mentioned
-again in Darnley-on-Downe, except as that of one deservedly dead and
-unregretted. The sceptre passed into the capable hands of Mr. and
-Mrs. Reuben Dadd, and by silent consent it was agreed that no infant
-henceforth should bear the dishonoured names of James or Robert. Only
-James Dadd’s young sister remained hopefully loyal to his memory, and
-when, a year later, the redoubled severity of the Misses Adelaide
-and Minna Dadd alone betrayed their secret knowledge that a son had
-been born to Mr. and Lady Adela Darnley, the one acknowledgment
-of the event that reached the outlaw from Darnley-on-Downe was a
-surreptitiously-posted letter of his sister’s. If anything could have
-aggravated the wrath of the Misses Adelaide and Minna Dadd it would
-have been the knowledge that the infant, that their own great nephew,
-had been christened, not James, but Kingston.
-
-Kingston Darnley, indeed! There was a name for a child! You cannot make
-a silk purse out of a sow’s ear, said the Misses Adelaide and Minna
-Dadd; and they were universally felt to have expressed the situation in
-all its bearings. And thus, from years of corrupting wealth and secret
-disloyalty, was generated the culminating disgrace of the Dadds, in
-Kingston Darnley. Kingston Darnley!
-
-Why, why had great-great-great-grandfather Blessing married a Messiter
-of eccentric tendencies? And what a curse is money! Better decorum and
-a competence than stalled peacocks and a marriage with the daughters of
-Heth! It became the fashion in St. Eldred’s to affect, by contrast, a
-greater poverty than the circumstances of anyone necessitated. To give
-two cakes at tea became vulgar, and the Misses Adelaide and Minna Dadd
-took to going to church with only one Prayer Book between them. Nothing
-could have induced St. Eldred’s to confess that it knew anything of the
-Darnleys, and the various steps in Lady Adela’s progress were sternly
-ignored by a watchful world. Even when Mr. and Lady Adela Darnley
-entertained a Princess for some charitable function, the only comment
-made in St. Eldred’s was the tacit one involved in the simultaneous
-retirement to bed of the Misses Adelaide and Minna Dadd. Another
-outcast, however, was soon added to James and Robert--another topic for
-the silence of St. Eldred’s. For, after some secret correspondence,
-James Darnley’s sister eloped from the care of her aunts, and was next
-heard of under the wing of her brother’s wife in London. Within a
-year she had married a stockbroker of abundant wealth. The lips of St.
-Eldred’s snapped on this fulfilment of the disasters brought about by
-great-great-great-grandmother Messiter. The old dynasty of Dadd was
-ended in Darnley-on-Downe. The main royal line was wiped out, and the
-Reuben Dadds reigned in its stead.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-
-The new-made Darnleys, James and his sister, were triumphantly ushered
-into the upper world by Lady Adela, whose father’s rise, whose mother’s
-persistence, had won at last a reluctant toleration from her betters.
-Accustomed from her birth to live on terms of acquaintance with more
-or less interesting or conspicuous people, Lady Adela had developed
-something of that native air and ease which James Dadd had never been
-able to acquire in all his long exile from his own social hemisphere.
-Nor did James Dadd, transformed into James Darnley, ever succeed in
-fitting himself perfectly to his altered conditions. His wife, besides
-loving him devotedly, if placidly, did all she could to acclimatize
-him; she made him buy a vast new house on the Yorkshire moors; she
-filled it with people, she made her husband play the squire; but to the
-last this man of many descents remained less adaptable, less congenial
-to his new environment than many a versatile Hebrew whom twenty years
-of unlimited wealth transform into what is nowadays considered a very
-tolerable imitation of an English gentleman--especially as seen on the
-stage. Among people who talked of money and diseases with a freedom
-that struck him as indecent, James Darnley, brought up to think both
-topics unmentionable, remained timid and uncomfortable to the end of
-his days, and when at last a combination of dyspepsia and a Primrose
-League banquet caused him to retire from a world in which he had always
-been a stranger, even Lady Adela felt that he was somehow set free
-from a long bondage. Gentle in her grief as in all her other emotions,
-she resigned herself to becoming crapes, and found new pleasure in the
-guardianship of her son Kingston, now turned eleven.
-
-But if James Darnley, first of his line, died a failure,
-far otherwise was it with his sister. In her the blood of
-great-great-great-grandmother Messiter must have seethed and boiled
-with concentrated virulence, for she took to her new life with a zeal
-that left nothing to be desired, and soon dropped behind her all trace
-and all memory of Darnley-on-Downe. Her manners, from the first, were
-forward and easy; her ambition was to be considered a woman of fashion,
-and she carried to its accomplishment a temperament entirely devoid
-of bashfulness or indecision. Mr. Mimburn, her wealthy stockbroker
-husband, soon shrank into mere cheque-signing obscurity beside the
-flaming figure of his wife. Her remarks were quoted, her gowns
-described; she became at last, in those far-off days, a precursor of
-that modern type of woman who is perfectly virtuous, except in dress,
-manners, and mind. Nothing would have horrified her more than illicit
-proposals, except the accusation of being shocked by them; nothing have
-more appalled her than an attack on her virtue, except the suspicion
-that she had any.
-
-Her gossip always made a point of flirting round impropriety, and she
-was at pains to damn her own flawless character by arch implications.
-She had cultivated French, and now was a walking chronicle of the
-demi-monde, as well as a living picture of its most prominent
-inhabitants. A passport to her friendship was the possession of a past,
-and she hastened to attribute amorous adventures to all her dearest
-friends on any foundation or none. The foundation did not matter; the
-point was that the suggestion glorified them in her eyes; part of her
-admiration for Lady Adela arose from the fact that she suspected that
-saintly woman of having ‘consoled herself’ during the lifetime of the
-late James Darnley. Mrs. Mimburn’s knowledge of her sister-in-law’s
-untried and incorruptible virtue was never allowed to interfere with
-this romantic possibility; in the face of all probability, in the face
-of all evidence, she must imagine some such episode in any career that
-touched her own, or else immediately cease to take any interest in
-it. So far had she travelled from the mental chastity that ruled in
-Darnley-on-Downe.
-
-So, between mother and aunt, the young Kingston Darnley journeyed
-through boyhood to maturity. Lady Adela was an ideal parent, and
-discharged her maternal duties with a gentle ease that made her
-son’s progress altogether pleasant. She was one of the cushion-women
-whose numbers nowadays are yearly diminishing. Without initiative,
-without any clearness of mind, she had the placid receptivity that
-often accompanies such a temperament. The lack of colour in her own
-character made it harmonious and restful as a background to more
-vivid personalities. Therefore, without effort or desire on her part,
-she attracted confidence. She was good to lean on; she listened
-well--though often without hearing, and always without understanding.
-But her sweet acquiescence gave everyone the idea of being fully
-comprehended, and her incapacity for independent action added to her
-value as a recipient of confidences. She could be trusted to say little
-and do less; and the large majority who, in making confession, only
-desire a sympathetic listener, felt that Lady Adela was an altogether
-soft and comfortable personality to repose against. What more could be
-required? The faithful adviser frequently gives much less, and is, as
-a rule, much less valued than the imperturbable Lady Adelas of life.
-Kingston Darnley was universally held to be highly fortunate in his
-mother, and, by the time he came of age, as he had neither married an
-actress nor gone to ruin on the turf, her skill in managing him was
-considered marvellous, and even beyond what might reasonably have been
-expected.
-
-‘I assure you, La-la, considering what young men are nowadays, I do
-think you have done wonders,’ said Mrs. Mimburn, who had called to
-congratulate her sister-in-law on the latest triumph achieved by her
-diplomacy.
-
-‘Kingston is the dearest child,’ acknowledged Lady Adela, deprecating
-undue flattery of her own genius. ‘One only needs to guide him. He is
-all obedience. I have never attempted to drive him, Minnie.’
-
-Mrs. Mimburn tossed her head. Her name was always a sore point. She
-had suffered heavily in the matter at the hands of her parents, who
-had christened her Minna Adelaide, after her great-aunts of formidable
-memory, the Misses Adelaide and Minna Dadd. Understanding that such
-names were a grievous handicap to any runner in the race of fashion,
-and desirous, too, of obliterating all traces of Darnley-on-Downe, Mrs.
-Mimburn did the best she could to remedy the disaster by resolutely
-calling herself ‘Minne-Adélaïde.’ This Gallicism Lady Adela could never
-bring herself to remember, and embittered the life of her sister-in-law
-by calling her Min or Minnie when in a good temper, or plain Minna on
-the very rare occasions when she happened to be in not so good a one.
-
-‘Well,’ tartly replied Mrs. Mimburn, with another toss of her plumed
-head, ‘I think you have been wise, La-la. But you need not be too
-sure of Kingston. There isn’t any reason to believe, La-la, that even
-_your_ son is not made of flesh and blood. Such stories one hears! And
-a mother is the last person a boy could think of confiding in. Depend
-upon it, you don’t know everything. Boys don’t let their mothers marry
-them off at Kingston’s age unless there is a reason for it. Dear me!
-of course not; everyone loves a little bit of freedom,’ concluded Mrs.
-Mimburn, filling her voice with the suggestion of a wicked past.
-
-Lady Adela had the happy knack of never hearing anything that
-displeased her. The process of years had brought her a sweet serenity
-that nothing could ruffle. Whatever happened Lady Adela smiled.
-
-‘Dear boy,’ she answered reflectively, without any symptom of having
-noticed her sister-in-law’s remarks, ‘dear, dear boy! he has always
-been as free as air. And he has been so good about the engagement. Min,
-you know, five-and-twenty is such a charming age for a man to settle.
-If one waits longer the nice girls of one’s own age have all got
-married off, and one has to put up with an elderly one, or a widow, or
-something dreadful like that.’
-
-‘Or something even worse,’ supplemented Mrs. Mimburn, with a smile of
-worldly knowledge. She was looking most typical that afternoon. She was
-a little round dark woman, with deep, luscious eyes, and more black
-hair than Nature had provided. Her gown was of brown velvet, adorned
-with an incalculable number of ruckings, tuckings, ruchings, quillings,
-flutings, flouncings, rosettes, and insertions. Her parasol lost its
-outline in a foam of scarlet, and her brown tricorne hat, with its one
-enormous geranium-coloured plume, was worn at an audacious tilt, in
-exact imitation of that assumed by Marie de Lorraine in the second
-act of ‘Mélanges du Divorce.’ That gorgeous lady, whose notoriety
-almost passed into fame, was Mrs. Mimburn’s favourite model. She had
-constituted herself the especial chronicler of Marie de Lorraine,
-copied her clothes devotedly, bought every scent and powder that bore
-her name, and collected her anecdotes, apocryphal or unpublishable,
-with as much enthusiasm as a pious Pope accumulates relics. While
-the hat recalled ‘Mélanges du Divorce,’ the parasol to-day was based
-on that in ‘Infidèle,’ the gown was collated from two that appeared
-in ‘Messalineries,’ the tippet’s prototype had figured in ‘Autour de
-Mitylène,’ and the Parisian pearls that twined round Mrs. Mimburn’s
-throat had been specially copied from the historic necklace which her
-heroine had extracted from Prince Henri de Valois, to the general
-scandal of Europe. Even in the matter of cosmetics Mrs. Mimburn was
-faithful to her model, and her rich complexion glowed like a plum
-behind its bloom through a skin-tight mask of Blanc de Perle ‘Marie,’
-while her ruby lips owed their flamboyancy of tint to the Vermeil de
-Lorraine.
-
-Lady Adela looked at her across the tea-table with a kind smile. She
-felt that her sister-in-law added colour to the room. Lady Adela was
-one of those women whose habitations have a certain cool tonelessness
-that matches their own character, and, like their disposition, suits
-with any tint that may be introduced. Her boudoir was nondescript and
-mild in scheme; pale, sweet flowers stood here and there in transparent
-glasses, and the summer light flowed in, pale and ghostly, through
-the lowered white silk blinds. Entrenched behind china and silver,
-Lady Adela seemed the incarnation of the room’s spirit; she also had
-the same indefinable pale sweetness. Her gown was grey, her abundant
-beautiful hair snow-white, her features were filled with a gentle
-complacency. Altogether she irresistibly called to mind an old white
-rabbit--a very soft, very fluffy, very reverend and lovable old white
-rabbit.
-
-‘Dear Min,’ she said at last, ‘you have no notion what a comfort this
-engagement is to me.’
-
-Again Mrs. Mimburn bridled. Why could La-la never realize the
-difference between Min and Minne?
-
-‘Ah, _ma chère_,’ she replied, ‘indeed, it must be. And you certainly
-have done wonders. It is not every mother who can say that her son has
-never given her an hour’s anxiety in his life, and ended up by marrying
-the very first girl that she picked out for him.’
-
-‘Never an hour’s anxiety,’ repeated her sister-in-law, always
-behindhand in a conversation. ‘No, dear Min; I can truly say that ever
-since Kingston had diphtheria at school he has never given me another
-hour’s anxiety. And they said afterwards that that was only some other
-kind of sore throat. But it was quite as alarming at the time, I
-remember. Anyhow, since then the dear boy has been everything I could
-wish.’
-
-‘It makes him sound terribly dull,’ commented Mrs. Mimburn. ‘Now, I
-like a boy to be a little bit naughty myself--a--well, a _bêtise_ now
-and then, you know.’
-
-‘There is nothing of _that_ kind about my son, Minna,’ protested Lady
-Adela in a momentary spasm of dignity. Mrs. Mimburn, as in duty bound,
-had, of course, suspicions that her nephew was not all he had the
-tact to seem. But she was anxious to hear details of his engagement,
-and therefore waived the question of young men’s iniquity, which she
-was usually inclined to treat with a wealth of illustrations and many
-anecdotes from the career of Marie de Lorraine.
-
-‘But tell me about Gundred Mortimer, La-la,’ she said. ‘I have never
-met her. What is she like?’
-
-Lady Adela warmed into the expression of a more positive enthusiasm
-than she usually showed.
-
-‘Min,’ she answered, ‘Gundred is absolutely the dearest of creatures.
-Everything that is nice. I really feel that I have quite found a
-daughter--thoroughly well brought up, and charming manners, and truly
-religious, which is such a great thing nowadays. Not at all forward or
-fashionable, but just a steady, old-fashioned, good girl. I am sure you
-will love her, Min.’
-
-Mrs. Mimburn began, on the contrary, to conceive a strong dislike for
-the future Mrs. Darnley--a dislike tempered only by the hope that she
-might be found to have had a mystery in her life.
-
-‘Quite a bread-and-butter miss,’ she tittered.
-
-‘Do have some more, Min,’ pleaded Lady Adela, with apparent
-irrelevance, exercising her usual happy power of ignoring unfavourable
-comment. ‘Yes, nothing could be luckier in every way. She is the
-very wife I should have chosen for dear Kingston. She will make him
-perfectly happy. And now, Min, I do really feel that my work is
-finished. It has been a great responsibility, you know, having sole
-charge of a son all these years. There are so many dangers. Mercifully,
-he has always had confidence in me, and I have been able to keep him
-away from everything undesirable. But, of course, as time goes on, one
-gets to feel more and more anxious. You can say what you like, but it
-isn’t always easy to understand young men. Even a mother’s sympathy
-finds it difficult sometimes.’
-
-Mrs. Mimburn had a very terse answer to the riddle of young-manhood.
-Human nature presented no mysteries to her mind; woman was the solution
-of them all. She sniffed knowingly.
-
-‘I think _I_ could manage it, La-la,’ she replied. ‘However, you are
-marrying off Kingston, and that is the great thing. I suppose he is
-very much in love?’
-
-‘Oh, very, very, even before I suggested it. And she adores him, of
-course. I saw that long ago. But dear Kingston is so simple and good,
-he had no idea until I told him.’
-
-‘And he proposed--when? Yesterday?’
-
-‘After lunch, dear Min. I asked Gundred on purpose, and we had some
-really delightful Caviare biscuits. And then I managed to leave them in
-the drawing-room--and--and--it came off, dear Min. I am so pleased.’
-
-‘What does Mr. Mortimer say, La-la?’
-
-‘Naturally he is charmed, Minna. What should he be? Besides, nobody
-cares much what Mr. Mortimer says. But his dear aunt, Lady Agnes, is
-quite on our side. In fact, you may imagine that she and I talked it
-all out between us.’
-
-Mrs. Mimburn laughed.
-
-‘What an obedient boy Kingston must be,’ she said. ‘Had he nothing to
-say in the matter?’
-
-‘Kingston trusts to his mother to know best,’ answered Lady Adela with
-gentle dignity. ‘Gundred is altogether pretty and good and sweet, so
-what more could he want? Besides, as I pointed out to him--and he quite
-understood--such a marriage will be a great help to him in his career,
-when he finds one.’
-
-‘But Mr. Mortimer is very silly, surely,’ protested Mrs. Mimburn. ‘How
-can he be a help to anyone?’
-
-‘One shouldn’t be harsh,’ replied Lady Adela, ‘and I am sure when he
-succeeds to the dukedom nobody will think him as foolish as they do
-now.’
-
-Mrs. Mimburn was still in a carping mood.
-
-‘The Duke himself is actually an imbecile, isn’t he?’ she asked. ‘How
-dreadful to marry into a family where there is madness, La-la! A mad,
-ga-ga--great-uncle, isn’t it? Yes. Poor Gundred!’
-
-However, Lady Adela refused, as always, to take any but a hopeful view.
-
-‘Well,’ she said, ‘we must trust that it will all be for the best.
-And there is a little insanity in my own family, too, Min, so that
-will make us quite quits, won’t it? No; the only thing I do regret is
-that dear Gundred has not got more relations. You see, Lady Agnes has
-never married, and Gundred is an only child herself, so that really
-poor Kingston will hardly have got so many nice new connections as I
-could have wished. There was an Isabel Mortimer, I am told, an aunt of
-Gundred’s, but they don’t talk about her. She married a New Zealander,
-or something dreadful, and went out there and died. I forget if she
-left any children, but of course it can’t matter whether she did or
-not.’
-
-Mrs. Mimburn scented romance, and immediately became more friendly
-towards the match.
-
-‘Ah, well, poor thing!’ she said. ‘We all have our temptations. I
-should be the last to blame anybody. Life teaches one to understand,
-La-la. It’s not Miss Gundred’s fault. Probably it runs in the
-blood. These things do. You know Marie de Lorraine’s mother used to
-drink methylated spirits, and they say she herself can never act
-unless--well, dear me, these things are very odd, aren’t they?’
-
-Lady Adela was not listening; she rarely did listen to anyone, and
-never to Mrs. Mimburn. ‘Yes,’ she said, returning on her tracks.
-‘I spoke to dear Kingston quite plainly. I told him that such an
-opportunity would never come in his way again. And after all, it is
-something to make a good marriage nowadays. And I said to him how
-delighted I should be if he would take it. He was so nice about it.
-I am sure he had been in love with Gundred all the while. I know he
-used to say how pretty and sweet she was. Anyhow, he made no sort of
-difficulty, and they will be married at the end of the season.’
-
-‘What an anxiety off your mind!’ cried Mrs. Mimburn, giggling archly.
-
-‘Yes,’ replied Lady Adela gravely. ‘One wants one’s son to settle down;
-and, of course, one likes cleverness well enough in other people, but
-in one’s own children one can really have too much of it. When it came
-to Kingston’s telling me he thought it wrong to shoot grouse, I knew
-it was time to see him safely married. Grouse are so truly excellent.
-It always happens, I am sure. If a young man does not marry early in
-life he becomes clever, and gets into every kind of uncomfortable fad.
-But Gundred will prevent and cure all that, I am quite sure. She is so
-religious and good, dear Min, as I told you; she will have no patience
-with humanitarianism and all those dreadful fashionable crazes. Humble
-and simple and devout, Min--just the wife that dear Kingston wants.
-I have never been really anxious about him, I need not say, but I
-certainly was beginning to think it time he fell into the hands of some
-nice sensible girl or other.’
-
-Mental aberrations never interested Mrs. Mimburn. Her curiosity was
-confined to the vagaries of the flesh.
-
-‘Oh, well,’ she said, ‘that will wear off, you know, all that nonsense.
-You may be thankful it was nothing worse. Most young men--ah, well! One
-must be grateful that Kingston never got into the clutches of Marie de
-Lorraine, for instance. She is such a terror. Even her garters, you
-know, diamonds and pearls. Oh, dear me, how delightful life would be,
-wouldn’t it, if one didn’t have to be good?’
-
-‘Men,’ continued Lady Adela in a ruminant manner, ‘are always a little
-puzzling at the best of times. Even if they seem perfectly satisfactory
-in every way they are quite liable to break out sometimes into most
-extraordinary freaks. One can never tell. Though dear Kingston is as
-quiet as anyone could possibly be, I do feel that it is satisfactory to
-get him settled so nicely.’
-
-‘As you say,’ admitted Mrs. Mimburn knowingly, ‘one can never tell.
-The strangest things one hears! Quite old men, too--so very funny!
-There was Lord Bennington; they say he wanted to run away with Marie de
-Lorraine--seventy, if he is a day, La-la, and eight grandchildren. Dear
-me, yes; one can never prophesy what a man will do. Only be ever so
-little polite to one, and the next minute--well, I suppose it is human
-nature, after all.’ She sighed coyly, as one whose virtue is for ever
-being besieged.
-
-‘Even my own dear husband,’ continued Lady Adela, ‘the best and most
-devoted of men, had had his moments of madness--really, one can call
-it nothing else, can one, Min? You remember how good and orderly James
-always was? Nothing seemed able to excite him, and though I am sure he
-loved me most warmly, still--well, it wasn’t at all _public_, Minnie.
-And yet, you know, there was a Frenchwoman, or something dreadful like
-that, whom James quite lost his head over, so I am told, before he
-met me. Perfectly crazy, they say he was, and when she was drowned he
-wanted to commit suicide. Now, could anything sound more unbelievable,
-Min?’
-
-‘I have heard about it,’ replied Mrs. Mimburn; ‘one of those ridiculous
-affairs I was talking of. Poor, sober, straightforward, stodgy,
-bourgeois James, and some terrible creature with padded hips and a
-French walk. That is just what happens. Your nonconformist, your decent
-provincial, always gets caught by the most brazen _horizontale_. James
-was absolutely idiotic about it, so people told me--met her--now, where
-did he meet her?--anyway, he suddenly made himself more absurd than
-a schoolboy--and I could tell you stories of _them_, La-la--fell in
-love with her at first sight, and talked the most amazing nonsense you
-can imagine. She was his affinity, if you please, the other half of
-his soul, the lost love of a century ago. And all this from sober old
-James. She must have been a shameless creature, too--but they always
-are, _ces dames_; for she seems to have met him--well, quite half-way,
-and encouraged his monstrous craze. And then she was most mercifully
-drowned, and after a week of sheer madness, James calmed down into his
-right mind again, and was only too glad to marry a nice quiet girl like
-you, La-la. Now, that just shows. If there ever was a person whom one
-would have thought perfectly safe from a passion like that, the person
-was our decent, beef-eating James. But no, one can never count on a
-man. Nine out of ten of the men we marry, however placid and devoted
-they may be, have had some dreadful insane romance in their lives,
-La-la. One knows what it is to be a man’s romance one’s self, and, dear
-me, it’s not by any means the same thing as being a man’s wife!’
-
-‘Such a sad, dreadful story,’ commented Lady Adela comfortably, taking
-no notice of Mrs. Mimburn’s artful, question-courting sighs. ‘And to
-think of its happening to James, too. Do you know, Min, he always wore
-black for that woman on the twentieth of July. So stuffy of him, in the
-hot weather!’
-
-‘Oh, my dear La-la, trust a man always to _afficher_ himself in the
-most ridiculous way he can.’
-
-‘Minna, do you think Kingston is at all like his father?’
-
-‘My dear La-la, all men are alike. Let us trust that Kingston’s
-marriage will prevent him from playing the fool like that, though.’
-
-‘Minnie, do you know Kingston sometimes seems to me so like his
-father that I am almost frightened. And yet he is quite different,
-which makes it all the odder. Somehow, his father seems to look over
-Kingston’s shoulder at me from time to time, and every now and then I
-hear poor James’s voice distinctly in something Kingston says. And yet
-they are two quite different people. Isn’t it uncanny? I take quinine
-for it, Minnie. And I know dear James is safe in heaven, of course, but
-yet I can never quite help feeling that the father and son are the same
-in some mysterious way. And that is so uncomfortable, Min. One does
-like to think that people are really dead when they have been buried.
-It seems so much more proper, somehow.’
-
-Exhausted by her effort of subtlety, Lady Adela sighed and poured more
-water into the teapot. Meanwhile Mrs. Mimburn was growing impatient.
-
-‘Well, dear La-la,’ she said, ‘Kingston is just a man. That’s all the
-likeness there is between him and his father. It is the male element
-you feel in both. No woman can help feeling it--_voilà ce qui donne
-les frissons_. And now, La-la, I seem to have been a perfect age, and,
-really, I ought to be going on. Do you think Kingston and Gundred are
-likely to be in soon? Because I did want to see her, and it is getting
-so late that I can hardly spare more than another minute or two.’
-
-Lady Adela looked helplessly at the clock.
-
-‘The play surely must be over by now,’ she answered. ‘Do wait, Minnie.
-They will be here any time now.’
-
-‘What has he taken her to this afternoon?’
-
-‘“La Tosca.” It sounds a very dreadful sort of play, and not at all one
-to take a nice girl to. But dear Kingston has always been interested
-in literature and things like that, so I suppose he wants to interest
-dear Gundred in them, too. There are such pretty books nowadays; I
-never can see what people want with clever ones. However, I do think
-Gundred will cure dear Kingston. She has the sweetest, simplest tastes.
-We agree in everything.... Ah, there they are,’ broke off Lady Adela
-in tones of triumph, as if the return of the lovers were a personal
-achievement of her own. Mrs. Mimburn rose, diffusing an eddy of Peau de
-Marie as she did so.
-
-‘Just a moment,’ she announced, ‘and then I must fly. I must, indeed.’
-She gathered herself into a welcoming posture, picturesquely assumed
-the parasol, and stood with protruded hips to watch the opening of the
-door and the entrance of her nephew’s future wife.
-
-Miss Mortimer had clearly no false bashfulness about confronting and
-challenging the approval of her future husband’s family. Sedately
-and collectedly she came into the room, greeted Lady Adela, and then
-underwent the introduction to Mrs. Mimburn. Her lover followed close
-upon her track--tall, fair, handsome, radiant, his manner filled with
-proprietary joy.
-
-Miss Mortimer might be recognised at first glance as the very fine
-flower of that type which, after all, even Lady Adela only copied. From
-head to foot her appearance and bearing proclaimed that she belonged to
-a class that had ruled unquestioned for many generations. She was very
-neat, placid, clear-cut in dress, build, and demeanour, an elegant,
-tiny figure, unalterably, coldly perfect in every detail. Everything
-about her was exactly as it should be, from the elaborate neatness of
-her pale golden hair to the nice grace with which she accepted Mrs.
-Mimburn. Her manners, her smile, were consciously faultless, and she
-radiated the impression of imperturbable good breeding. She was, in
-fact, a crisp and charming specimen of that type which develops later
-into neat-featured peeresses with royalty fringes, violet toques,
-and short cloaks of sable or mink. It was easy to see how she had
-attracted Lady Adela. The two women had ease, gentleness, placidity
-in common. But there the resemblance stopped. Miss Mortimer’s mind
-was as definite, as clear, as simple as her appearance; she had none
-of that soft vagueness which characterized Lady Adela; her decisions
-were as swift and firm as their expression was gentle and well bred;
-one could divine in her the immovable obstinacy of one who is never
-violent or angry, but always unchangeably certain that he is right. As
-she smiled upon Mrs. Mimburn’s congratulatory fondlings, she conceived
-an instantaneous dislike for that over-decorated woman, and had no
-difficulty in feeling sure that her disapproval was righteous.
-
-‘Call me Minne,’ Mrs. Mimburn was saying effusively, gladly conscious
-that she was making a highly favour-impression on the bride-elect.
-‘Always remember to call me Minne.’
-
-Mrs. Mimburn had never allowed her nephew to emphasize her age by
-calling her aunt, and saw no reason for delaying to make the situation
-clear to her prospective niece.
-
-‘So kind,’ murmured Gundred, smiling into Mrs. Mimburn’s eyes, and
-noticing the heavy rings of bistre that enhanced their charms. Then she
-turned to Lady Adela.
-
-‘Just one cup of tea, dear Lady Adela, if I may? And then, really,
-I must be getting home. Kingston and I have been having the most
-delightful afternoon, but papa will be thinking I have been run over,
-or something terrible. And I sent the carriage home, too.’
-
-Lady Adela poured her out a cup of tea, and Kingston Darnley offered it
-to her with due devotion.
-
-‘No, dear, no sugar,’ said Gundred gently, repulsing his offer. ‘You
-forget, I never take sugar.’ His ardour was such that he persisted in
-plying her with all good things; hers was such that she expected him
-to remember minutely all her preferences and dislikes. Accordingly, her
-clear, sweet voice conveyed a hint of reproach.
-
-‘And have you enjoyed the play, dear?’ asked Lady Adela.
-
-‘Very wonderful,’ replied Gundred. ‘But so painful, Lady Adela. I
-cannot see why they should want to perform such painful things. There
-is so much beauty in life--yes? So why should we look at the ugly
-things?’
-
-‘It’s all in the day’s work,’ suggested Kingston Darnley. ‘Beauty as
-well as ugliness. One has to face both in life.’
-
-‘But beauty can never be ugly,’ answered Gundred, ‘and art only deals
-with beauty----’ Her calm tones carried the conviction of perfect
-certitude, and flattened out the conversation like a steam-roller.
-
-She was too pretty, however, for such syllogisms to be as daunting
-as they might have been from the lips of a plainer woman. Kingston
-contemplated the speaker with a pleasure that obliterated all close
-consideration of the thing spoken.
-
-‘I like a play with plenty of passion in it,’ announced Mrs. Mimburn.
-‘English plays are so absurdly mealy-mouthed. These things exist, and,
-really, the whole of life is wonderfully interesting. And yet English
-writers leave out the most exciting half of everything. Why, for my own
-part, as soon as I have read the _haut goût_ parts in a book, I take no
-further interest in the story.’
-
-‘It is all a matter of taste, I suppose--yes?’ answered Gundred, her
-cold tone implying that it was a matter of good taste and bad, and that
-on the point her own was as good as Mrs. Mimburn’s was bad.
-
-‘Some women like to pretend that they are not flesh and blood,’ began
-Mrs. Mimburn.
-
-Clearly, sweetly, decisively, Gundred interposed.
-
-‘Dear Lady Adela,’ she said, ‘really, you make the very best tea that
-anyone could imagine. And it is such a rare art nowadays. But, do you
-know, I must not stay another minute. Poor papa will be getting quite
-anxious. Kingston dear, you may get me a hansom if you like, but I
-cannot let you come with me. Your mother will almost forget she ever
-had a son. You must stay with her and tell her about that dreadful
-play.’
-
-‘Look here, do let me come with you,’ pleaded Kingston. ‘I hardly feel
-to have seen you at all to-day. I want to talk to you.’
-
-‘Dear boy,’ smiled Gundred, ‘you have just had three and a half hours
-of my company.’
-
-‘In a stuffy theatre, with four hundred people looking on the whole
-time. Besides, one can’t talk--_really_ talk, in a theatre. It isn’t
-really being together, sitting side by side in the stalls. One might as
-well be with one’s grandmother, for all one is able to say. There are
-ever so many things I haven’t had a chance of saying to you. Take me
-home with you, Gundred, and let me dine with you.’
-
-Gundred shook her head. ‘Impossible, dear,’ she answered decidedly. ‘We
-have got people coming, and it would put the table out. You may run in
-to lunch to-morrow, though. And now, may he ring for a hansom, Lady
-Adela?’
-
-But at this point Mrs. Mimburn intervened with an urgent plea that
-Gundred should let herself be driven home in Mrs. Mimburn’s carriage.
-
-‘Now, do, dearest Gundred,’ pleaded Mrs. Mimburn, nerving herself to
-the inevitable audacity of calling the new niece by her Christian name.
-Then she fetched her breath in a gasp of relief, and went on. ‘Our
-horses go like the wind, and you will be home in a flash--an _éclair_,
-a positive _éclair_.’
-
-To Gundred’s British mind the word merely suggested confectionery,
-and the proposal, as emanating from Mrs. Mimburn, was altogether
-distasteful. She smiled a cordial refusal. But Mrs. Mimburn pressed her
-point.
-
-‘We must really see something of each other, dear,’ she went on, ‘now
-we are to be relations. A cosy little drive together, now, don’t say
-no. I shall be quite offended if you do.’ Mrs. Mimburn persisted until
-Gundred saw that there was no hope of being able decently to decline
-the offer.
-
-‘You are so kind,’ she said. ‘Well, if you are really sure it will not
-be taking you out of your way? Kingston, dear, may I have my parasol?’
-
-He told her he had left it outside the door.
-
-‘Where?’ asked Gundred. ‘Come and show me.’ Together they slipped out
-of the room, leaving Mrs. Mimburn making her farewells to Lady Adela,
-and exchanging comments.
-
-‘But look here,’ protested Kingston, as they stood on the landing, ‘why
-am I not to see you again till to-morrow? Why shouldn’t I dine with
-you? Confound the table, you know.’
-
-‘Hush,’ said Gundred, but not sternly. ‘It really would put the
-table out. And papa is so particular. Besides’--she faltered for a
-moment--‘besides, Kingston dear, I--I don’t want you to see too much
-of me before we are married. You might--you might get tired of me, you
-see.’ She raised her eyes and looked full into his. In the smiling
-depths of her gaze might have been seen the whole truth. Sedate,
-restrained, correct, she loved her choice with a passion that no one
-was allowed to guess from the cool suavity of her usual demeanour.
-Only in stolen flashes of privacy such as this was even Kingston
-permitted to realize his triumph. Gundred lived, as a rule, in public;
-every gesture, every inflection, was calculated to satisfy that
-pervasive invisible arbiter whose approval confirms its object’s title
-to ‘good form.’ Few and brief were the moments in which she consented
-to be, in body and spirit, alone with her lover. And rarely had he
-time to grasp the concession, before the blessed instant passed and
-Gundred slipped back into her cool, normal self, hastily evasive, as
-if frightened of her own self-revelation. So it was now. He heard her
-murmured words on the cool, dim landing, saw the look in her eyes, and
-realized her meaning. But as he caught at her hands, and broke into
-a hot protest, the mask flew back on to the girl’s face again. She
-reclaimed her hands and busied herself in putting on her gloves. It
-was the polite, public Gundred that stood before him. To his contrast
-with her public self, so self-contained and orderly, was due half the
-sweetness and the charm of that shy wood-nymph soul that only allowed
-itself to peep out at him so timidly and rarely. He saw that the moment
-was over.
-
-‘You are so demonstrative,’ said Gundred calmly. ‘And putting on one’s
-gloves is a serious matter. One cannot do two things at once. And, oh,
-dear me! I have never said good-bye to your mother.’
-
-She slipped quickly back into the drawing-room before he could stop
-her, and, as he remained outside, playing disconcertedly with the
-tassel of her parasol, he heard the well-known clear level tones
-taking a daughterly farewell of Lady Adela. Then Mrs. Mimburn emerged
-in such a roaring surf of silk petticoats that other sounds became
-indistinguishable. She squeezed her nephew’s hand.
-
-‘A thousand congratulations,’ she whispered. ‘Charming, charming! Just
-the sort of girl that pays for marrying. You will wake her up. She
-will be quite a different creature when you have been married a little
-while. I know that sleeping-beauty type of girl.’
-
-Mrs. Mimburn smiled darkly upon him, and put a world of knowledge into
-her glance. But she had not time to say more, for Gundred now appeared,
-and the two women descended the stairs, exchanging civilities. Kingston
-followed, to see them safely tucked into Mrs. Mimburn’s elaborate
-victoria.
-
-‘Lunch to-morrow; don’t forget,’ said Gundred, as a last reminder. Then
-the carriage drove off, and Kingston went upstairs again to his mother.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-
-To love is by no means necessarily to understand, and Kingston Darnley,
-as Nature and life had moulded him, was a very different character from
-Kingston Darnley as his mother’s vague mind imagined him. In point of
-fact she, good woman, knew little of her son but his face, though,
-with the splendid intrepidity of the benevolent stupid, she claimed
-an intimate acquaintance with every detail of his being. Her complete
-ignorance was due to no conscious process on either side; he as little
-dreamt of concealing anything from her as she of ignoring any quality
-in him. But time had taught Kingston that whether he confided in his
-mother or not, she was just as wise after the revelation as before,
-being totally devoid of any power to understand what she was shown, or,
-indeed, to realize that she was being shown anything at all.
-
-Kingston Darnley soon learned to lead his own life without reference
-to his mother; to help by listening was her province; to help by
-comprehending was beyond the capacities of her nature. So Lady Adela
-was left to dwell serene in the world of her own happy little kindly
-fancies, while the facts of life went by her in a roar, without ever
-being able to capture her notice. She felt that never had mother
-been more loving or more beloved; that never had son been more loyal
-and devoted; her parental eye was fixed unerringly on her child,
-and she knew his nature down to the uttermost convolutions of its
-smallest eccentricity. Did she ever forget that he disliked the smell
-of onions? Had she ever failed to notice and deplore his coldness
-towards her favourite clergy? And had she not succeeded in the last,
-noblest, highest ambition of a mother’s life--that of imposing upon
-him a thoroughly nice and suitable bride? And he, for his part, had
-never rebelled, never repined, never objected, not even to the bride.
-Accordingly, Lady Adela felt proudly secure that she understood her
-son in every fibre of his being. So she smiled upon him with perfect
-unintelligence, and gave nightly thanks to the Powers that had so
-gifted her with the perfect tact of motherhood.
-
-Kingston Darnley at one-and-twenty had found himself a great deal
-older than his years. His contemporaries were mere children. He had
-lived the sheltered life at his mother’s side, until at last came the
-belated time when she reluctantly permitted him to go to Oxford without
-her shielding company. General opinion--even that of her son--seemed
-opposed to Lady Adela’s plan of taking lodgings in Holywell Street, and
-thence keeping a mother’s eye upon her child. And to popular opinion
-Lady Adela accordingly yielded. She never made more than a mild and
-flabby resistance, and could always be induced by opposition to give up
-her most cherished plots with a smile. But until Kingston, alone and
-undefended, set off one sad October evening from Paddington, he had
-never been allowed outside the sphere of his mother’s presence--one can
-hardly say of his mother’s influence--for any influence that Lady Adela
-may ever have had must always have been merely that of kindly, null
-proximity.
-
-However, reared by carefully-selected tutors in the gentle but stifling
-atmosphere of a widow’s house, the mind of Kingston Darnley had shot
-into premature and unsuspected growth. Intelligence he would always
-have had, but his training forced it into early development. And,
-as the growing pains of the mind are always painful as those of the
-body--especially if experienced too soon or too keenly--so Kingston
-suffered from the unseasonable expansion of his thoughts, and his
-discomfort was increased, no less than its cause, by the fact of his
-essential loneliness. He had no one to speak to. On the first mention
-of an idea, Lady Adela confidently diagnosed the need of pills; and any
-perception of inequalities in this best of all possible worlds must be
-treated by the purer air of Brighton or Bournemouth.
-
-So Kingston was driven in upon himself, and, by the time he came of
-age, had ardently discovered all the paradoxes that more fortunate
-people come to in due time at twenty-five or so, and then are able to
-take as platitudes. The injustice of wealth, the iniquities of sport,
-of religion, of land-tenure--all these crimes Kingston Darnley felt to
-be his own particular revelation, and they fermented in his mind until
-he had few thoughts in common with his fellows. They, meanwhile, went
-placidly on their way, and when Kingston arrived at Oxford, he found
-himself a stranger and misplaced among the men of his own years. He
-was filled at first with a gnawing, cavilling discontent that arose
-as much from idleness and opulence as from too rapid and unhealthy
-growth. They, for their part, were honest, jolly fellows, who looked on
-discontent as an uncomfortable and ‘bad-form’ thing, to be strenuously
-frowned and jeered out of their circle. To enjoy what came, without
-analysis, was their scheme, and they resented being asked to inquire
-into the reasonableness and the morality of their enjoyment. At
-one-and-twenty no really sane creature wants to think. The time for
-thought comes later, when the first ardours of action are passing.
-
-Kingston Darnley, though he had far too much sense and geniality to
-preach or impose his ideas on anyone, was felt to be always suggesting
-questions, never to be accepting the joy of the moment, in a properly
-acquiescent, youthful manner. And nothing is more annoying to the
-hedonist, of whatever age, than the companionship of someone who seems
-to be examining the sources of his joy. It may be that no joys can
-stand the test of reason, and the hedonist’s dislike of the sceptic may
-gain its intensity from the hedonist’s own unacknowledged realization
-of the fact. Even when Kingston got drunk his tone of mind seemed
-analytical, far removed from the frank, bellowing joyousness of the
-more healthy enthusiasts round him. They sat about in the Quad and
-howled, or beat baths beneath the windows of the junior Dean; Kingston,
-anxious to please, howled and beat baths with the best. But, whereas
-the ebullition was pure nature and joy of living with them, with him
-it was always an assumption, a pose, no matter how carefully assumed
-and disguised. And the consciousness of this was no less galling to
-him than to them. All felt ill at ease, disconcerted, disillusioned
-by his presence. His well-intentioned hilarity seemed somehow to turn
-the gold of their pleasure to brass, to strike a jarring note in
-the chorale of enjoyment they were playing so whole-heartedly. So,
-though never unpopular, Kingston Darnley was isolated. His own set in
-the college did not want to be bothered with the iniquitous why and
-wherefore of the game-laws, or the manifest impossibility of miracles;
-and the other sets to whom he would have brought these discoveries in
-glad pride had grown accustomed to them long ago, and for many years
-had looked on them as the buried foundation-stones of all reasoning. So
-that Kingston fell between two stools, and must needs keep company with
-his ideas until the passing of time should bring him level with the
-contemporaries over whom his training had given him such an unhealthy
-and fictitious advantage.
-
-In any case it is hardly likely that he could ever have taken any
-really intimate part in Oxford life. Training or no training, his
-mind had that inquiring tone so fatal to unreflecting hilarity. He
-was too much interested--in the wrong things, too, and in the wrong
-way--in people, in causes, in problems. The men who should have been
-his friends were concerned almost entirely with the joy of living and
-the avoidance of all unnecessary work. And how is the son of a widow,
-reared at home decorously, without other boys to riot and tumble
-with--how is he to have any personal enthusiasm for the joy of living,
-as understood by healthier, normal men of his own age? Nor is the
-precocious cleverness of the unquiet mind any real test of ability. Few
-of Kingston Darnley’s contemporaries but had as good an intelligence
-as his. Their brains, however, developed naturally along the natural
-path. In twenty years he had lived hurriedly through five-and-twenty
-of feverish mental development; their five-and-twentieth year--of mind
-no less than of body--still lay well ahead of them. By the time he
-and they would be thirty they might all, perhaps, be contemporaries
-together. The unhealthy, straggling shoots of his forced growth would
-have been blighted down to a level with theirs, sturdy and natural;
-and by the time they came to consider the game-laws and the gospels,
-they would bring a ripe and genial intelligence to bear on such
-points, neither thinking nor talking in excess, but letting profitless
-points of doctrine slide, for the sake of hitting on a sane and decent
-scheme of living, such as can best be attained by the average sensible
-gentleman’s compromise between abstract justice and sound, everyday
-behaviour.
-
-And Kingston himself would find, in the course of years, that the rubs
-and jars of life would bring his point of view to the same pitch as
-theirs, and would perceive that thought is a frivolous and profitless
-indulgence of the idle mind, as compared with the more fruitful
-achievement of an honest man’s daily duty, along the lines of obvious,
-rough-cast morality. Meanwhile, however, though without conscious
-arrogance, he realized his isolation, and viewed it alternately with
-pride and regret. On the whole, as self-satisfaction is the postulate
-of all human life, the pride predominated, and he carried unconsciously
-through Oxford the idea of being a chosen candlestick for spiritual
-light.
-
-Other feelings, too, contributed to his sense of loneliness. Birth and
-wealth had given him caste; but custom had not yet trained him to it.
-From the middle-class, staid traditions of Darnley-on-Downe he had
-inherited several hereditary tendencies that not the most determined
-efforts could eradicate. He was conscious of them; they annoyed him,
-they disconcerted him by making him feel more than ever that he did
-not match his surroundings, and this mortifying consciousness was
-unsupported by any such heroic glamour as that which attended the
-independence of his sceptical spirit. He knew that he was not careless
-enough in the spending of money. Spend it he did, freely and eagerly;
-but he always knew what it had bought, and his mind kept accounts
-long after he had fiercely broken himself away from the spell of
-pass-books and schedules. This was not as it should be. Money, to be
-spent correctly, should be scattered loosely, and the spender should
-have as little idea as possible of the way in which it has gone. Only
-thus can a well-bred indifference to finance be attained. The ideal of
-his contemporaries was to be perpetually in debt, and never to have
-anything whatever to show for all that had been spent. On four hundred
-or four hundred and fifty a year right-minded people might attain to
-complete destitution, bare rooms, shabby clothes, and a perpetual
-assumption of bankruptcy. One very popular man even achieved the result
-on six hundred. This was a rare triumph of extravagance, however, and
-a reasonable ambition would confine itself to a complete ignorance as
-to all outgoings. And this Kingston Darnley could never acquire. The
-ghost of his father stirred in him, demanding a solid recollection
-of every purchase. He bought the best, bought it and lavished it
-freely. But he never could rid himself of the knowledge that it was
-the best, and thus a faint suspicion of ostentatiousness hovered over
-all his entertainments, and the happy, slovenly wastefulness with
-which his contemporaries ran into debt for atrocious port or uneatable
-dinners could never be reached by a man with his finical instinct for
-perfection. This lack of carelessness, either as to quantity of pounds
-spent or quality of things purchased, stigmatized its owner for ever as
-an outsider--not to mention the fact that he invariably paid money down
-for all he bought. His wealth might as fairly have been blamed for this
-vice, perhaps; nevertheless, a hatred for debt was one of Kingston’s
-most inalienable legacies from Darnley-on-Downe, and, had he not been
-able to pay cash for the best, he would certainly have remained content
-to buy the worst. And this, again, was a suspicious trait in the eyes
-of his contemporaries, who, though quite happy to buy the worst,
-always made it their pride to run up bills for it that would have been
-exorbitant had they been ordering the best.
-
-These small hereditary feelings set James Darnley’s son apart from
-his contemporaries, and it only required the remains of middle-class
-prudishness to achieve his isolation. Kingston found it impossible, in
-spite of habit and effort, to acquire the easy personal _sans-gêne_,
-the tripping, untrammelled tongue of his contemporaries. He did his
-best; listened genially, accumulated anecdotes and retailed them among
-his friends; but always heavily, never as to the manner born. His
-friends held the free, frank language only possible to the perfectly
-cleanly mind, naked and unashamed; he, for his part, was always uneasy
-in his nudity, and took his share in the talk with that consciousness
-of impropriety that doubles impropriety. The Dadd respectability
-still hampered its rebellious descendant, and prevented him from
-ever entering into perfect harmony with that world where decency is
-a matter of conduct, not by any means of language. On this point his
-aunt Minne-Adélaïde had certainly the advantage. But the woman is
-proverbially more adaptable than the man.
-
-Still isolated, then, at home and abroad, Kingston came down at last
-from Oxford at twenty-four, a character untried, unformed, unground by
-any real contact with the mills of life. An inordinate sensitiveness to
-impressions, an excessive personal daintiness, were the marks of his
-nature at that time, so far as a friend could discern it. For the rest,
-very pleasant of look and temper, friendly, honest, and no more selfish
-than a good-looking young fellow of four-and-twenty has every right to
-be. Lady Adela was delighted to receive him under her wing once more,
-and noticed with joy the subsidence of some of his more tumultuous
-ideas into tranquillity. She had a fearful notion that everyone left
-Oxford ‘a roaring atheist,’ and it was a great joy to her that Kingston
-completely disproved this fallacy, not only by accompanying her to
-church, but also by carrying her hymn-book. She devoted herself to
-exploiting her son, and he, not finding rebellion necessary for his
-pleasure, allowed himself to be guided wherever his mother wished.
-
-Rich and handsome in high degree, he began to find London a
-very pleasant and companionable place, without the ostentatious
-thoughtlessness of Oxford, or the frank intellectual apathy of his
-home. In point of fact, London began to do for him what neither home
-nor Oxford had succeeded in doing. Gradually he grew down to his own
-level, his edges were rubbed off, his generous, exaggerated ideas
-dwindled to their proper place in the perspective of life. He realized
-that to live well and beautifully it is not necessary to be for ever
-examining the foundations of action; that life is simple and enjoyable
-for those who prefer living it to discussing it; that justice,
-while august and unattainable in the abstract, and astonishingly
-contradictory in its precepts, is yet, in the concrete, very easily
-discerned and followed in this workaday sphere by plain-minded people
-whose eyes are fixed, not on the stars in high heaven, but on their
-reflection in the muddy ways of the world. He ceased to nourish
-fantastic theories against the hanging of murderesses, conceived the
-possibility of good in vivisection, and began at last to contemplate
-a Piccadilly midnight with the not unkindly stoicism of a man of the
-world. Inwardly, as he often told himself, his ideas remained the same,
-but their outward manifestation grew calmer and more ordinary. When he
-met his Oxford friends he found that he was much more in sympathy with
-their way of taking life as a matter of course.
-
-Meanwhile Lady Adela was bent on seeing him safely married. This, she
-considered, was the easiest and most desirable way of protecting him
-against all the wicked possibilities that lie in wait for a young man.
-To save him from the contamination of many women by tying him tight
-to one, before he had had time to look about and make his choice,
-seemed to her a very prudent, not to say holy, course. So she paraded
-desirable damsels before him, and held amicable counsel with mothers
-not at all averse from an alliance with Kingston Darnley’s wealth.
-The mothers and Lady Adela worked and manœuvred with Machiavellian
-cunning; needless to say, their designs would have been plain to a
-sucking child; and, equally needless to say, Kingston, pleased and
-flattered, lent himself more or less amiably to their strategy, with a
-guilelessness that quite reassured them as to his ignorance of their
-purposes.
-
-But that very blamelessness of her son’s which Lady Adela wished
-to safeguard was the ruin of her plan. For, as a matter of fact,
-Lady Adela, by an accident of fate, rather than by any perspicacity
-of intellect, was right in holding the mother’s usual superstition
-of her son’s purity. Kingston Darnley, emotional and fastidious of
-temperament, impressionable rather than passionate, curious and
-idealistic, had hitherto not gone the way of all flesh. He had avoided
-‘experiences’; and experiences had never sought him out. The sense
-of personal decency remained strong upon him, and its strength was
-reinforced by his old theories of morality, and by his strong tendency
-towards mental, rather than physical passion. So he remained a
-spectator in the great sexual battle of life.
-
-And this onlooker attitude is not endearing even to the most holy and
-maidenly of women. Women require to feel that a man is a man--that is,
-they require to feel the thrill of his virility in the deep fibres of
-their consciousness--to have their interest caught and held by the
-proximity of the dominating male. It is only to the depraved woman
-that the saint is of personal interest; and, even then, her interest
-is depraved as her nature. The normal girl--though she has not the
-faintest understanding what her wishes mean--needs to feel the possible
-conqueror in the man she is talking to--at least, if he is to rouse her
-curiosity and grow in her acquaintance. And this mysterious thrill,
-of the man triumphant, Kingston was utterly unable to communicate.
-Therefore his friendships with women were almost wholly impersonal. He
-had none of that love-making power which experiences confer; had no
-idea of how the blood is stirred and defiance stimulated; no gift for
-that bold expression of physical approval which is so dear to even the
-best of women. Women had to ask him if their frocks were pretty, and
-if he liked their hats; even then his answers never went the fervent
-lengths that their questions had been meant to open up.
-
-His flirtations were abstract, platonic, unearthly--all that a mother
-considers most unprofitable, though perilous. The artist, indeed,
-can be a sensualist; but the artistic spirit and the sensual have no
-real relationship. What attracts the one repels the other, and it is
-only within the fierce energetic soul of genius that the two can be
-reconciled. Kingston Darnley, without genius, had the artist spirit.
-And the artist spirit was for ever showing him fresh superficial
-blemishes in the offered maidens--blemishes whose deterrent force his
-animalism was not powerful enough to overcome. This one had hands that
-didn’t match; that one perpetually wore lace mittens; a third had a
-nose that perspired at dances; or an irritating cackle that revealed
-a golden tooth. One and all, he liked them--even loved them--in so
-far as their minds were clear, pleasant, friendly, lovable. But to be
-loved for her mind is the last thing that a well-looking young woman
-requires. And when he thought of marrying them, when he considered the
-prospect of living for ever with a perspiring nose or a mittened hand,
-Kingston revolted at the idea, no matter how precious the soul that
-owned the nose or the mitten.
-
-It may be imagined, then, that, whatever his relations with older,
-plainer women, settled in life, he was neither popular nor at ease
-with the marriageable maidens provided by his mother. In vague
-dissatisfaction with his home, he was even anxious to marry and settle
-down with some sympathetic, adorable woman--but always that accursed
-prosaic aspect of the case came uppermost, and repelled him in horror
-from the plan.
-
-Only once had he ever felt what he hoped might be the premonitory
-thrill of a really great passion--a passion such as might tide him over
-the more difficult questions involved. In this hope he had nurtured
-young love; and as love in so many lucky people is a matter of habit
-and determination, he had seemed soon to be in a fair way to success.
-The girl, too, showed signs of approval, and everything appeared so
-prosperous that Lady Adela gave hearty thanks and put half a crown
-into the plate, feeling that Heaven had earned more than its customary
-shilling. And then one day he had sat with the girl and her aunt in
-Kensington Gardens. And the cruel glare of daylight had shown him a
-fine colony of down on her nose, and the places whence and where her
-maid had transferred a rosette to hide a stain on her gown. All was
-over. The girl was everything delightful; but the idea of being bound
-eternally to a potentially bearded nose was impossible. Kingston could
-no longer bear the thought of marrying, and told his mother that his
-hope had proved fallacious. Heaven only got sixpence the next Sunday;
-and, even so, it was in coppers.
-
-It was shortly after this episode that Heaven, bearing no malice, had
-thrown Lady Adela into the track of Lady Agnes Mortimer. Lady Agnes
-was a single woman of small means, and an eccentricity that passed all
-bounds. However, she was something of a personage, by virtue of her
-name as well as of her character, and the great-niece whom she was
-trying to marry might do very well for Kingston Darnley. So thought
-Lady Adela, pondering the many eligible qualities of the girl who
-would one day be daughter to a Duke of March and Brakelond, and who,
-besides, had so many qualities that endearingly resembled her own--at
-least, so far as kindness, devotion, sweetness, and piety went. She
-brought her son, accordingly, into contact with Miss Mortimer, and was
-surreptitiously overjoyed to find him obediently disposed. As for Lady
-Agnes, she contemplated with equanimity the introduction of the Darnley
-wealth into the impoverished House of Mortimer, and tried to soften
-down her asperities lest the match should be impeded.
-
-The House of March and Brakelond no longer loomed so large in the
-public eye as once it had, and as Gundred still felt it should. The
-reigning Duke was an imbecile, uncomfortably poor and very aged. There
-was no Duchess, no near relations, nothing to give prominence or
-interest even to the daughter of the heir-apparent. Gundred Mortimer
-attracted little notice in London, keeping house parsimoniously for her
-father in Russell Square, and going out on the rather shabby arm of
-Lady Agnes. Lady Agnes was accepted because her eccentricities made
-her so incalculable as to be amusing; but Gundred was soon found to
-be almost depressingly normal and correct. There were scores of more
-naturally noticeable girls in London; Miss Mortimer, as Miss Mortimer,
-had no sort of personal importance, whatever power and dignity
-Fate might see fit to bestow at some later date on ‘Lady Gundred.’
-Nicely mannered, nicely minded, nicely dressed, Miss Mortimer was an
-inconspicuous, if pleasant, figure in the crowd, and the elevation of
-her father to the dukedom seemed so remote that there was no according
-her any advance on her face-value. Had the prospect of finding her
-mistress and deputy Duchess at Brakelond only been more actual or
-imminent, then the world might have lent Miss Mortimer credit and
-respect on the reversion; but Mr. Mortimer and his daughter had been
-Mr. and Miss Mortimer for so many years now that no one found it easy
-to think of them as prospective ‘Duke of March and Brakelond’ and ‘Lady
-Gundred.’ Whenever anyone thought now of the Mortimers, it was always
-of the old--incredibly old--imbecile, dying eternally at Brakelond
-among his parrots.
-
-Nor was Mr. Mortimer himself of a commanding character, fit to capture
-that popular interest which his daughter’s quiet neatness had been
-unable to attach. Mr. Mortimer, son of the late Lord Roger, and
-heir-apparent to his uncle, must always, whatever his position, have
-been a nonentity, not only from his poverty, but from his silliness.
-Mr. Mortimer was strangely, unbelievably silly. He was merely silly.
-He was silly in the wrong way. He neither shocked people nor amused
-them. Even his daughter realized that he was silly, and felt no
-grievance with the world for ignoring him. The world had, at one time,
-done its best to encourage a coming Duke. But the long delay in the
-succession, coupled with Mr. Mortimer’s overwhelming foolishness, had
-gradually worn off the patience of even the most far-sighted; and now
-his daughter went about inconspicuously with her great-aunt, while her
-father stayed unregretted at home, and presumed on his prospects in a
-placid, most-comfortable-chair-assuming way.
-
-Gentle, neat, polite, Miss Mortimer, in her heart of hearts, resented
-the indifference with which the world seemed to treat the future
-mistress of Brakelond. And this resentment, demure and calm as it
-was, did not make her more attractive or approachable to the men
-from whom she would have liked to claim attention as her right. She
-stiffened herself into a rigid piety, and by contrast with the gay,
-attractive girls around her, made herself defiantly dull and godly in
-demeanour, pluming herself the while on her unfaltering maintenance
-of old-fashioned piety in degenerate days. And as soon as the men
-discovered that, in her way, she was mildly sulking at them for not
-making more of her, they ceased their efforts to make anything at all,
-and took refuge with the hundreds of other bright, pleasant girls
-who had twice Miss Mortimer’s charm and none of her prospects or
-pretensions.
-
-It was strange that Gundred, delightfully pretty in her cool way,
-serene, beautifully mannered, could exert no compelling force on her
-surroundings. That she wished to claim attention was the sign of her
-weakness; for those who can command attention never take the trouble of
-asking for it. But Gundred’s mind was always secluded, self-centred,
-reserved. She never gave out any light or warmth. She accepted,
-absorbed, received with gracious dignity; she never had the power of
-radiating any return of friendly feeling, any comforting geniality of
-human sympathy. As a talker she was gently frigid, sweetly insipid
-in her way of avoiding all topics of general interest, and, while
-restricting the conversation to her own concerns, of restricting it
-entirely to such of those as were most obvious and least interesting
-to the world at large. The weather, as it affected her plans; the
-visits that she paid, the churches she attended, and the cooks that
-she engaged; such were the subjects on which she pellucidly discoursed
-in the prettiest of voices, with the most pleasant of smiles; to the
-unutterable weariness of some partner who wanted a little more vitality
-in the conversation.
-
-Nor was she more successful as a listener. Even during the most
-thrilling recitals her eye might be seen wandering towards the next
-comer, or her mind guessed to be wondering whether she had not
-accorded the speaker enough of her attention. Men soon ceased to
-tell her anything of value, and followed her own example of talking
-amiably but saying nothing. Lady Agnes was beginning to despair of her
-great-niece’s prospects when Kingston Darnley was ushered into the
-lists by his mother.
-
-He came, he saw, he conquered. Idle-looking, tall and fair, beautiful
-in build and feature, he could not but command personal admiration;
-while in mind, keenly active, riotously fanciful, he was the last man
-in the world to conciliate Miss Mortimer’s approval, and, therefore,
-the first to captivate her attention. To her prim and maidenly habits
-of thought he was seductive in his lazy twinkling moods, seductive in
-his moments of emotion, seductive in those ebullitions of ridiculous
-gaiety that Gundred knew to be so disorderly and unconventional, yet
-reluctantly felt to be so delightful. Hitherto men had either bored her
-or been bored by her, had always failed to penetrate the closed garden
-of her attention; Kingston Darnley now came swinging carelessly into
-the sacred enclosure, and paid her the compelling compliment of making
-her believe herself brilliant and amusing.
-
-Often it happens that the staid and decorous, hard as iron in their
-disapproval of all frivolity, are suddenly and completely melted by
-someone frivolous beyond their uttermost possibilities of disapproval.
-One is liable to love one’s opposites, if those opposites be
-sufficiently opposed. Only a little less different herself, and Gundred
-might have disliked Kingston Darnley; but he was so madly divergent
-from all her ideals that the very sharpness of the contrast drove her
-to capitulate rapidly and completely. She even ceased to claim his
-attention; she began to beg for it.
-
-Her training had collaborated with her nature in guarding her from
-self-betrayal. Her manners continued gentle, guarded, suavely frigid
-as before. But Lady Adela, with the eye of a hopeful mother, pierced
-the disguise of Gundred’s feelings, and lost no time in proclaiming
-the discovery to her son. Kingston Darnley, for his part, was strongly
-attracted by Gundred. To his fastidious temperament she never offered
-a jarring note. She was always crisp and cool; always deliberate and
-graceful; her hair was never disordered, nor her hat crooked, nor her
-stockings ill-gartered. At all points she was unalterably serene,
-impeccable and satisfying. Emotionally, too, she gave him what he
-wanted. He needed no ardent, unbalanced temper in his wife. He needed
-just that gracious acquiescence which Miss Mortimer supplied. She was
-restful in all her ways, her mind was thoroughly well-mannered, and her
-smiling calm assured him of a sympathetic nature. As he laid his ideas
-before her he was enraptured to see how sweetly, how reasonably she
-listened, and found full agreement in her cool grey-blue eyes, behind
-which, in reality, her inattentive brain was admiring the tact of his
-tie. But, whatever her secret thoughts, she never revealed them,
-and those cool, grey-blue eyes had been trained to express decorous
-attention; therefore Kingston Darnley soon realized that in Miss
-Mortimer he had found that perfect conjunction of ideal soul with ideal
-body in the quest for which his five-and-twenty years had hitherto been
-vainly spent.
-
-That his feeling was not a great passion he sometimes felt--that it
-was not even commensurate with the passion which he had sometimes
-found himself forced half-incredulously to divine behind the chill
-fires of Gundred’s eyes. But his experience with the lady of the downy
-nose had daunted him and disillusioned him; with the knowledge of wide
-experience he now knew that a great passion falls to the lot of very
-few, and that it is well to take the good the gods provide. Failing
-the Supramundane Mate to whom all idealists look with longing, he
-would compromise with a woman in every respect charming, alluring,
-delightful--a woman of temperate mood, a woman of neat and faultless
-style in body and mind, a woman, in short, who could be trusted never
-to clash with any of life’s harmonies or discords.
-
-Her name, too, tragic and glorious, fired that curiosity of man to
-possess something rare and old and precious. Of Brakelond he only
-thought as a fit setting for Gundred’s mystic charm. For Gundred’s
-serene correctness, so prosaically pleasing in a London drawing-room,
-became ‘mystic charm’ when associated in the mind of her idealizing
-lover with the long oaken galleries of Brakelond. And Gundred, for
-her part, considered the possible glories of position and power
-only as gifts to confer on her radiant, ridiculous captor. She did
-what she decently could to please and captivate Kingston, deployed
-cunning little unsuspected wiles of dress and manner; brightened her
-garments and her ways; achieved at last that miracle only possible to
-a first-rate woman, of being gay without becoming skittish. Little
-need had she of wiles. Her gentle flawlessness satisfied Kingston
-Darnley completely; and at his time of life, after his experience, he
-knew enough to be humbly content with satisfaction, asking no more of
-life, and expecting much less. What folly to let a plump chicken escape
-from the hand on the chance of a Phœnix flying out of the bush at some
-far-distant date! Better give thanks that the chicken is at least
-plump. Kingston Darnley gave thanks accordingly, and dawdled along the
-happy path that leads to proposal.
-
-He could only see perfection everywhere. If Gundred was sometimes
-unresponsive, that was surely her cold and lovely maidenliness. If
-her acquiescent sweetness lacked salt at times, and seemed to promise
-biliousness, the criticism showed, in itself, a bilious bachelor
-for whose ailment that sweetness had been especially prescribed by
-Fate. If Gundred’s answers sometimes seemed remote, inadequate,
-half-hearted, that was but the effort of a loyal soul struggling to
-get into perfect stride with his, and neglecting the interests of the
-present for the sake of the future. As he looked and listened, her
-unruffled pleasantness destroyed for his emotions the grosser terrors
-of marriage, and yet gifted them with a strange, appealing fascination.
-Carried away by his approval, he proposed at last, and was placidly
-accepted by a heart resolutely dissembling its delight. Lady Adela
-heard the news with joy, and a pound was not too much for Heaven next
-Sunday.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-
-‘My dear,’ said Kingston Darnley to his mother one afternoon, ‘being in
-love is the strangest thing.’
-
-Long habit had taught him to indulge in soliloquy under the mask
-of a dialogue with his mother. She allowed him to talk, and never
-interrupted the flow of his self-communings by any sudden sign of
-understanding them. Few people are more comfortable to confide in than
-those who can always be safely reckoned on to understand nothing of
-what is said to them. Lady Adela laid down her knitting and beamed
-lovingly at her son over her spectacles.
-
-‘A strange and blessed thing,’ she answered in her soft tones.
-
-‘I wonder,’ continued her son, ‘whether everybody feels alike. More or
-less, I suppose--although everyone thinks that he has the secret all to
-himself.’
-
-‘Love is sent, sooner or later, to everyone,’ replied Lady Adela.
-
-‘But how do people know that it is the right love?’ questioned
-Kingston. Then he went on, without waiting for the irrelevant answer
-which his mother would surely provide. ‘Uncertainty is a deadly thing.
-And the worst of it is that everyone who really wants to find happiness
-must always be uncertain as to the way. Only those who don’t care can
-ever be perfectly, securely certain.’
-
-‘True love is always unmistakable,’ replied his mother, who, in her
-time, had married the late James Dadd from a feeling that anything
-would be preferable to prolonged existence with Lady Kirk-Hammerton.
-
-‘Yes; but it must have different manifestations. I remember when Tom
-Clifford was engaged to that Menzies girl he couldn’t bear her out of
-his sight, never let any other man have half a dozen words with her.
-Now, I don’t mind who Gundred talks to, or what she says--not a scrap.
-And--well, it’s always a joy to see her, of course--everyone must feel
-that--but I haven’t any wish to go about all day at the end of her
-hat-ribbon. Is that because I am cold-blooded, or is it the proper
-normal thing to feel?’
-
-‘My dear boy is so full of chivalry,’ answered Lady Adela with
-affectionate vagueness. ‘No nice girl would like to be too much
-monopolized. It is hardly delicate.’
-
-‘One had a sort of notion,’ continued Kingston, unregarding, ‘that
-love-making was more of a desperate flesh-and-blood affair. I suppose
-the real thing is more ethereal than the everlasting philanderings that
-one reads about. Heaven knows, they are earthly enough.’
-
-‘Marriages are made in heaven,’ replied his mother reverentially.
-
-‘And love is made on earth, I gather--at least, love of the novelist’s
-sort. Certainly marriage is happier in every way--calmer, less
-discomposing, more orderly and decent and--and--abstract, as it were.
-I cannot imagine anyone not loving Gundred. She appeals to everything
-that is best in one. And the crowning mercy of it all is that she
-never gives one thrills of any kind, never rouses any primitive,
-prosaic emotions. She is always just what one expects--gentle and
-charming and satisfactory--and nothing else. There is no intoxication
-about her. And, really, you know, that is a relief. One had imagined
-that love--love in the completest sense--was a kind of celestial
-drunkenness. It is a tremendous relief to find that it is only a quiet
-temperance drink after all--the Water of Life, as it were. I don’t
-think either my head or my stomach care very much for intoxicants.’
-
-‘Your dear father was just the same,’ replied Lady Adela calmly; ‘two
-glasses of port never failed to upset him. Some people’s interiors
-are so sensitive. If one is in the least troubled that way, it is
-far better never to touch stimulants. Or peppermint, they say, does
-wonders.’
-
-‘One has wrestled through loves of different kinds,’ said Kingston,
-securely continuing his soliloquy, ‘and it is certainly a blessed
-surprise to find that the real thing is placid and satisfying. The
-hunger and thirst of passion are fierce and dreadful--it never seemed
-likely that perfect happiness could be found in the mere appeasing of
-them. I am sure I much prefer the lasting, tranquil completeness of an
-emotion to the feverish clamour of an appetite. And that, after all,
-is what most people seem to mean by love. I have always rather hated
-violence and brutal manifestations. They seem a little vulgar, very
-crude and indecent, very unworthy of our higher emotional powers.’
-
-‘My boy is so full of nice feeling,’ said Lady Adela; ‘violence is a
-terrible thing. I remember I once saw a dog run over by a tram. I have
-never forgotten it.’
-
-‘One feels a certain something solid and eternal about real love,’ went
-on her son, contentedly talking to himself aloud under pretence of
-addressing his mother. ‘It is a huge level tract of feeling, stretching
-out into the immensities, without anything to break the enormous
-flat surface of it. It goes on for ever and ever, without valleys or
-pinnacles, or rough places of any kind. And surely that is better
-than perpetually scrambling up peaks and falling off them again, into
-abysses. Real love is not a mountain track; it is a solid turnpike road
-with a smooth, sound surface. One’s life jogs along it imperceptibly,
-and one’s attention need not be kept fixed on the driving to see where
-one is going. With Gundred I feel that I am with someone whom I have
-known for ages in the past, and whom I shall continue to know for ages
-in the future, without jars or disconnections. There is something
-monumental, something filling about the sensation. People who find the
-hot rough-and-tumble pandemian love enough for them would think the
-real heavenly feeling stodgy and perhaps--well, perhaps even a little
-dull. It does lack diversity somehow. It offers repletion without
-any sauces to appetise. But, then, I suppose the immensities must of
-necessity seem monotonous to our small, jigging intelligences.’
-
-‘I am sure, Kingston,’ said Lady Adela with conviction, ‘that no one
-could have a better intelligence than you. It is quite something to be
-thankful for.’
-
-‘Now, Gundred, for instance--very often with her I have a shut-out
-feeling of getting no further, of finding locked doors and stone walls.
-Sometimes I have nothing that I want to say to her, and sometimes
-she has nothing that she wants to say to me. Sometimes she does not
-understand what I mean, sometimes we seem to be talking different
-languages, without any real wish to make ourselves intelligible. When
-we have said that we love each other there is nothing much left for us
-to say. And isn’t that exactly as it should be? The love is the only
-thing that matters, after all. One does not marry for the conversation,
-but for the love. Other people can give one the conversation. No; one
-has to look forward over the whole field of life--it is not only the
-present amusement that matters. What is very amusing and delightful
-for half an hour would be quite intolerable to put up with for fifty
-years of marriage life. _Marrons glacés_ and caviare sandwiches are
-excellent in their way, but, when everything is said and done, bread is
-the real staple of existence. The primitive passionate lover is trying
-to make half an hour’s surfeit of sweets and savouries supply the
-place of all healthy meals through all the years to come; it is only
-the idealist who sets himself calmly down to a long indefinite course
-of bread-and-butter. There can be no doubt that the bread-and-butter
-regime is the saner and the more blessed and the more refined of the
-two. But, of course, if one simply lives from hand to mouth and from
-hour to hour, the bread-and-butter scheme _is_ apt to look a little
-dull by comparison with frequent snacks of indigestible, exciting
-dainties. However, thank Heaven, I have got what is best for me--and
-sense enough to recognise the fact. If Gundred sometimes fails to feed
-me up with pretty fancies from hour to hour, she is laying up for me a
-supply of satisfying bread-and-butter for the rest of our lives. And
-one’s whole life is obviously more important than any given half-hour
-of it.’
-
-‘Yes,’ replied Lady Adela after a pause, ‘but one must be careful about
-bread-and-butter. Too much is apt to make one stout. I quite agree with
-dear Gundred, though, as to plain food being the most satisfactory
-in the long run. I read the other day a very nice book, in which the
-characters sat down to “a plain but perfectly-cooked meal.” Now, that
-struck me as expressing so exactly what one wants.’
-
-‘My dear,’ said her son abruptly, ‘what did my father and you talk
-about when you were engaged?’
-
-Lady Adela, who had expected from her son the soothing accompaniment of
-another monologue to the music of her knitting, started at his abrupt
-question, lost count of her stitches, then looked vaguely up at last,
-her lips moving in a vain effort to recover her place in the row.
-
-‘What did we talk about?’ she repeated. Then she blushed faintly. The
-distant past was transfigured with romance.
-
-‘Dear boy,’ she resumed in hushed, reverent tones. ‘The engagement is
-the sweetest time in a woman’s life. The loveliest things your poor
-dear father gave me. We were at Naples, you know, and one gets the most
-charming corals there, and mosaics, and brooches carved out of lava. I
-have got them all. And then your poor dear father and I used to go out
-on to the terrace in the evening and look at the sunset and Vesuvius,
-and the steamers coming into the bay. He used to take my hand, and we
-stood there, saying nothing. There was nothing to say, dear. We both
-felt too much. One does not want to talk. And sometimes he--he would
-give me a kiss. And all the time--well, there was nothing else in the
-world, somehow, but just ourselves. We were quite alone. We should have
-been quite alone, even in a crowd.’
-
-‘Ah, that is just exactly different with Gundred and me. We are never
-alone. We should not be alone in the wilderness. Gundred seems to
-live her life before an invisible audience of hundreds of people.
-That is why one can never get near her real self; there is always the
-consciousness of the audience restraining her.’
-
-Lady Adela, however, was lost in roseate reminiscence.
-
-‘So well I remember,’ she went on, ‘how the evening used to get darker
-and darker as we stood on the terrace, and the smell of dinner used to
-float up to us so deliciously from the ground-floor. Your poor dear
-father adored the Neapolitan cookery, and we used to talk of how we
-would have someone who could do _risotto_ when we were married and
-settled down. But none of our cooks ever could. Dear me, and the lights
-in the bay, and the warm, quiet darkness of it all, and just us two,
-alone in the world.’
-
-The sweet and innocent sentimentality of Lady Adela had succeeded in
-draping the usual beautiful gauze of romance across an episode which,
-in its time, had been marked by plain and practical precision. As ivy,
-in the course of years, grows over the bare stone of a ruin, so does
-romance cover over the hard bare facts of a woman’s past. No matter how
-stark and cold it may have been, yet, if her nature be loving and soft,
-its softness will subdue and transfigure the roughnesses of many crude
-bygone days. By this time Lady Adela believed in her romantic marriage
-as firmly as she believed in her vicar and her Sovereign.
-
-‘So delightful it was to be with your poor dear father,’ she went on;
-‘he was the kindest and most thoughtful of men. He always saw that I
-had a footstool and a corner seat, and the sun nicely shaded off my
-eyes. He used to come and sit by me, too, while I was sketching, and
-read aloud to me until we both fell asleep. I have never liked any one
-else to read aloud to me since. Mamma was very bustling and worldly,
-and I was not at all happy with her. But when your poor dear father
-came and found me, the whole of my life was changed. He was the fairy
-prince that came to rescue me.’
-
-‘But you told me once, my dear, that my father had once cared very much
-for someone else.’
-
-‘The world, dear boy, abounds in the most dreadful women. And, indeed,
-why God made so many women at all--and most of them so plain--nobody
-has ever yet been able to tell me. There was a horrid creature who
-made your poor dear father think he was in love with her, as they call
-it. But, of course, he was nothing of the kind. For as soon as she
-was safely drowned and out of the way, he forgot all about her, and
-came and married me, and no two people were ever happier together in
-the world than he and I. Ours was a case of true love, dear boy, if
-ever there was one. And I am certain yours will be the same. It is my
-earnest prayer, dear, and my sure hope. Gundred is the most thoroughly
-nice, good girl.’
-
-‘And it would not matter if a shade of dullness sometimes seemed to
-fall between us?’
-
-By this time Lady Adela was, for a wonder, awake to the purport of her
-son’s questionings. Her excursion into the past had brought her back
-refreshed into the present.
-
-‘Kingston, dear,’ she answered, ‘what else would you expect from a
-really nice-minded girl? She is not a married woman yet. The time has
-not yet come for her to enter fully into your life, or you into hers.
-Remember how your poor dear father and I used to sit silent together
-for hours, never saying a word.’
-
-‘Yes; but you did not feel the want of words. I think we sometimes
-almost do. That makes all the difference.’
-
-‘Words will come, dear--words and all other blessings in their time.
-Gundred will be the greatest help and comfort to you in your life, and
-I am sure you love each other tenderly.’
-
-Kingston suddenly began to feel the difficulties of the dialogue. To
-confide is all very well and comfortable, so long as the confidant is
-not listening or understanding. The moment he shows signs of noticing
-what is said, the mortifying indelicacy of the proceeding becomes
-plain. Finding his mother unwontedly awake to his remarks, Kingston’s
-sensitiveness drew in its horns.
-
-‘Oh, thanks, my dear,’ he said lightly. ‘I am sure everything will turn
-out for the best. I am the luckiest fellow alive, and don’t suppose I
-forget it.’
-
-‘Some people always touch wood,’ said Lady Adela meditatively, ‘when
-they say a thing like that. Such a silly superstition. But, still,
-there may be something in it.’ She rapped the tea-table firmly.
-
-Mother and son had been so absorbed in their dialogue that they had
-not heard the hall door bell ring. Suddenly the door opened, and Miss
-Mortimer was announced. Fresh, crisp, pleasant as ever, Gundred entered
-the room and kissed her future mother-in-law.
-
-‘Dear Lady Adela,’ she said, ‘I felt I must come round and see how you
-were. This heat--so ridiculously trying for a climate like ours.’ Then
-she turned to Kingston. ‘And Kingston,’ she added; ‘how is he?’
-
-‘Poor gentleman,’ replied her lover tragically. ‘Mr. Darnley has been
-quite on his last legs lately. But he recovered miraculously all of a
-sudden, as soon as he saw Mapleton showing somebody into the room.’
-
-‘You really do talk the most shocking rubbish,’ said Gundred sensibly,
-but without disapproving sternness. ‘Lady Adela, why do you let
-Kingston talk such rubbish?’
-
-‘My mother,’ replied Kingston, intercepting the mild remonstrance of
-Lady Adela’s reply, ‘brought me up to speak the truth, the whole truth,
-and nothing but the truth. You asked me about the state of my feelings,
-and I gave you a truthful reply. Behold! Your coming has taught me,
-for the ninety-ninth time, that life is worth living. Sit down and I
-will ring for tea. My dear, surely it is tea-time? Gundred has clearly
-come here simply and solely to get a cup of tea. With me she will have
-nothing to say. It is tea she wants. She pants for it, like the hart
-for cooling brooks.’
-
-‘Hush!’ said Gundred; ‘don’t talk like that. It’s irreverent. But,
-indeed, Lady Adela, I certainly should be delighted if you would let me
-stay and have some tea with you. I lunched with Aunt Agnes, and she
-gave me a lunch of unimaginable nastiness, so that now I feel as if I
-had not eaten for days.’
-
-‘You poor darling!’ cried Lady Adela with pitying indignation; ‘that is
-always the way. Wait, and I will order you something really nice. Look
-after Gundred, Kingston dear, while I go and interview Tessington about
-to-night. I have been wanting to see her all the afternoon, and I can
-just as well have her up to the dining-room.’
-
-Having thus tactfully explained her departure, Lady Adela left the
-lovers alone. A silence fell.
-
-‘What are you thinking of?’ asked Gundred at last.
-
-‘I am wondering,’ replied Kingston, ‘what, precisely, is going on
-behind those inscrutable eyes of yours--what thoughts are playing about
-behind that cool white forehead of yours. And the worst of it is that I
-can never find out. You will never let me in of your own accord; and if
-I took an axe and forced my way in I should only find a mess of blood
-and bone.’
-
-‘Don’t be horrid,’ said Gundred, shuddering. ‘I am sure I tell you
-everything I think. I hide nothing from you.’
-
-‘Perhaps not, you well-mannered Sphinx. But you reveal nothing. Nothing
-about you gives any index to your thoughts. You are too fearfully and
-wonderfully trained. I have seen you suffering agonies of boredom with
-a smile; I have seen you suffering torments of cold and discomfort
-with the sweetest blandness. No one can ever guess what a person like
-that is really thinking. For all I know, you may, at this very moment,
-be remarking a smut on my nose or a blemish on my character. Your
-behaviour gives no clue.’
-
-‘But, Kingston dear,’ protested Gundred, moved by this denunciation,
-‘you would not have a rude and boorish wife, I am sure. And you know I
-have no fault to find with you. I think I have shown that--yes?’
-
-‘With really rude people one knows where one is. Their amiability means
-true friendship and true approval. With your suave, elegant, charming
-sort smiles may mean anything or nothing. One never knows where one
-is. “Mind you come again soon,” you tell me, ever so pleasantly. And
-the very instant before you have said exactly the same thing, in the
-same cordial inflection, with the same inviting smile, to some woman
-whom I know you intensely dislike, and only allow inside the house on
-sufferance. Now, what am I to think?’
-
-Gundred began to feel quite distressed.
-
-‘But, Kingston,’ she cried, ‘one must be civil. One simply must. Why do
-you attack me like this? What have I done?’
-
-‘You are such a beautiful little icicle,’ answered her lover. ‘Will you
-never thaw? You are an icicle inside an iron safe. How can one get at
-you to thaw you?’
-
-‘How utterly absurd you are, Kingston! Haven’t I given you the key?
-Besides--oh, I’m not an icicle; I’m not a bit of an icicle. Only--well,
-what is it you want?’
-
-‘Be quite, quite honest for a minute, Gundred. Strip your soul stark,
-and tell me whether you love me.’
-
-‘Oh, don’t hold my hands like that. It’s so hot....’
-
-‘You are always cool, my dear--a capital refrigerator you are.’
-
-‘Kingston, you are unkind this afternoon.’
-
-‘Well, what about my answer? Do you really love me, Gundred?’
-
-Gundred still shirked the inquisition, though secretly she enjoyed it.
-
-‘I am engaged to you,’ she answered.
-
-‘That is the muffled up, overdressed sort of thing you always say,’
-replied Kingston. ‘Give me the bare, naked truth. Do you truly love me,
-Gundred?’
-
-She turned upon him with a flash of inspiration.
-
-‘You would never ask me such a question if you weren’t sure of your
-answer already,’ she cried.
-
-‘Perhaps not, but give it me all the same. It’s not enough to know a
-thing; one wants to be told it sometimes.’
-
-‘Oh, that is just like a silly woman--never believing a man cares for
-her unless he goes on telling her so twice a minute. Oh, Kingston,
-don’t let us be so childish. These things don’t need to be talked
-about. I hate talking about them. It isn’t decent. The more one feels
-the less one should say. Only kitchen-maids chatter about their love
-affairs, and wear their hearts on their sleeves.’
-
-‘Anyhow, that’s better than wearing it in someone else’s pocket, as so
-many others do.... Gundred, does your soul never take off its stays?
-Does it always live in public, on view, in full Court dress and train
-and feathers?’
-
-‘Kingston--dear Kingston, I think you must be a little bilious. I am
-not always in public. Here I am alone with you--yes?’
-
-‘Alone? Oh dear, no! You are always acting, always posing to half a
-hundred people in the room whom I can’t see. They prevent you from ever
-speaking honestly to me, as I speak to you. They dictate the way you
-walk, the chair you sit in, every word and action of your day.’
-
-‘I don’t understand you, Kingston. A woman has so much more to think
-of than a man in some ways. Surely ... you know by now that I--well,
-that I do care for you. You mustn’t ask me to be always saying so.
-You wouldn’t like it if I did. Do be reasonable. One has to behave
-decently--yes? Our points of view are so different. It seems to me
-that I tell you far too much--sometimes I think I am shameless and
-horrid--and yet you--you think me cold and unsatisfactory.’
-
-‘Can’t you realize how a man starves for a little warmth, Gundred?’
-
-‘I hate to think of men like that; I am sure you are not one of them.
-Anyhow, I hope we shall never condescend to their horrid level. You are
-engaged to me, Kingston, and that ought to be quite enough.... It is
-for me.’
-
-She glanced at him with gleaming eyes. He heard the cool, level tone,
-and missed the gleam. He sighed.
-
-‘And some people have thought _me_ cold and fish-blooded,’ he thought,
-in a spasm of irritation. But clearly it was useless to dash himself
-against the firm rock of Gundred’s placidity.
-
-‘You are almost as impersonal as one of those Buddhist saints that my
-Uncle Robert has lived with,’ he replied. ‘You make one feel cold.’
-
-Gundred, resolved in her attitude, would take no notice of his renewed
-attack. ‘Your Uncle Robert,’ she said, ‘have I heard of him? Oh yes; he
-is that brother of your father’s who ran away to Japan so many years
-ago and became a Buddhist himself, poor man, didn’t he? Will he ever
-come back to England?’
-
-‘Not if he’s as wise as he sounds. His life out there seems to be
-almost perfect contentment.’
-
-‘How strange that is--yes? Well, I have got odd relations, too, in
-out-of-the-way corners of the world, you know. There’s poor papa’s
-sister, Isabel Darrell, away in Australia, with a daughter. I really
-rather hope they will never come home. Colonial relations are apt
-to be so truly dreadful. And now, Kingston dear, what I came to see
-you about to-day is this. Have you any very strong ideas as to the
-honeymoon? Because papa and Uncle Henry and Aunt Agnes are all very
-anxious that we should go to Brakelond. And I do think there is
-something rather nice in the idea. After all, I suppose it will be
-our place some day, and our children’s after us. In a way it is my
-wedding-present to you. Don’t you think we might begin our married
-life there? Uncle Henry won’t be in our way at all. He is kept in a
-wing right apart from the rest of the Castle, and the building is so
-enormous that you might put up twenty people there, and no one need
-have any notion that there was anyone in the place besides himself.’
-
-‘Yes,’ replied Kingston, warming to the prospect; ‘it sounds a
-delightful plan. I was wondering when we could go to Brakelond. Hugh
-Frazer did say something about lending us his place, but I can easily
-explain. Luckily, all my Dadd relations are out of the reckoning, so
-there is no one to claim any tiresome rights. By all means let us go to
-Brakelond. It must be the most gorgeous old place. Haven’t they still
-got the room where Queen Isabel sat and worked?’
-
-‘Yes, horrid woman!’ said Gundred tersely. ‘I don’t like to talk about
-her. I can scarcely believe she was my ancestress.’
-
-‘But splendid, Gundred--splendid and tragic and romantic.’
-
-Gundred’s firm, pale lips tightened into a line of disapproval.
-
-‘I never can see why wicked people are especially splendid or tragic or
-romantic,’ she said. ‘Goodness is so much nicer--yes?’
-
-‘Perhaps it is,’ replied Kingston, after a pause, ‘but not always so
-interesting.’
-
-‘One has no wish to be interested in anything that is not pure and
-beautiful and good,’ announced Gundred, with an air of virtuous
-finality.
-
-‘Oh, well, we’ll go there, anyhow,’ answered Kingston, shying away from
-the imminent argument, ‘and have no end of a mystic splendid time.
-We’ll sit about all day, and forget the world, and read novels to each
-other.’
-
-‘Not novels, dear,’ said Gundred gently; ‘sensible books--yes?’
-
-Kingston shrugged his shoulders. Clearly the conversation had run
-into one of its frequent culs-de-sac, and there was no continuing it.
-Gundred was impregnable to all assaults of the picturesque, and adamant
-to all new opinions or suggestions. Over Kingston was coming that
-bruised and daunted feeling to which, sooner or later, his meetings
-with her seemed invariably to lead. She held him at arm’s length,
-baffled him, rebuffed him, deliberately kept herself a stranger from
-his ardours, his intimacy. Each dialogue of theirs seemed to resolve
-itself inevitably into a futile if friendly discussion of topics
-indifferent. Of course this offered all the richer promise for the long
-years of coming matrimony, but meanwhile Gundred’s maidenly reserve
-turned the preliminary canter of courtship into a jog over rather arid
-and sterile ground. When Lady Adela tardily returned to the room,
-in the wake of tea, she found the lovers canvassing the _Academy_.
-Gundred, however, was so perfectly certain that her choice was sound
-and holy that the conversation was unfruitful if amiable. Lady Adela
-joined it, and it easily admitted a third voice.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-
-Brakelond had the impassive mouldering grandeur of a great house that
-has outlived the troubled hours of its glory, and settled into a
-lethargic contemplation of its past. From very far away its castellated
-mass could be seen dominating the country from the steep wooded hill
-on which it perched. On three sides the forest flowed down in ample
-splendid folds, a cloak of emerald in spring, and, in autumn, cloth of
-gold. And along the fourth side the crag dropped away sheer into the
-western sea. Seen from afar, the Castle on its pinnacle had a remote
-and fairy-like effect, as if, indeed, the scene had been of Camelot or
-Broceliaunde. Into the clear blue of the sky pricked the soft sapphire
-masses of the Castle, the looming great Drum Tower, and the smaller,
-indistinguishable turrets; while, below, fell smooth and swift the
-dim violet of the woodland, like a misty drapery of colour. Over the
-country ran other lesser ranges, clothed in younger, neater woodlands;
-but the great building on its eminence ruled supreme, and the forest
-round the skirts of its hill was the very fairy-haunted forest of old
-romance. Among those gnarled trunks, in those green eternal twilights
-of the thicket, might Merlin still lie sleeping, or King Mark,
-a-hunting, yet hap on Tristram of Lyonesse. And far overhead, the crown
-of the country, rose the mystic walls of a Castle that might have held
-the fair Iseult or Morgan the Sorceress, a great drowsy splendour of
-stone, willingly cut off from the rush and turmoil of to-day, dreaming
-for ever, in complacent calm, of that hot and glorious life that it had
-long ceased to live.
-
-As an old illustrious man or woman carries always the consciousness
-and the glamour of his achievement, no matter into what feebleness or
-decrepitude old age may have brought him, so buildings that are not of
-yesterday carry always the haunting sense of their past, and achieve a
-tranquil pride in desolation and the world’s oblivion, for ever beyond
-the reach of any smug, inglorious new country-house, all red-brick and
-sham Elizabethan gables.
-
-The country-house has telephones and electric light and all the latest
-devices of luxury; the old castle has matted corridors and inadequate
-lamps, and a general air of shabbiness. But that shabbiness is more
-beautiful and well-bred than all the clamorous elegancies of the
-other; the comparison is between some old and splendid lady, poor,
-dowdy, and forgotten in the clacking crowd of tongues, but serene in
-her impregnable charm, the incarnation of all that is finest in the
-traditions of a thousand years--and some scented, powdered woman of
-to-day, frilled, curled, decorated with all the lavish and assertive
-ornaments by which novelty seeks uneasily to impose its fancied
-supremacy over antiquity--a woman of loud tones, loud colours, loud
-movements, in her own person a great braying band of jingles from the
-latest edition of that comic opera which is such a creature’s London
-life.
-
-Only the self-sufficient--in fact, only those who are perfectly calm
-and indifferent to the general suffrage, secure in their unalterable,
-unselfconscious certainty of breeding--can afford to ignore the tricks
-and trappings on which the less fortunate have to rely for notice.
-Only the well-bred can afford to be dowdy; only the well-bred can
-afford to ignore the Peau d’Espagne or the Violette des Bois which
-may happen to be in fashion, and trust for their triumph only to the
-faint, unanalyzed fragrance of beauty and nobility that accompanies
-them inseparably from birth to death, without effort or expense of
-theirs. And as a modern building, decked out in modern old oak, and
-fussy with stolen ornaments from bygone times, must always base its
-claim to admiration on the self-advertisement of its luxuries, so
-some old collapsing turret, the haunt of dead Queens, the chosen home
-of sad beautiful memories, needs no adornment, no advertisement to
-reinforce its calm and unconscious right to our worship. Brakelond,
-old, gorgeous, forgotten Brakelond, was too proud to trick itself out
-for popular applause, too quiet in its self-centred pride to allure the
-vulgar; it challenged reverence by right divine, and held the attention
-without desire to do so.
-
-All this of Brakelond far away, throned on the undulating horizon of
-misty woodland. It was a sapphire crown on a pinnacle of the world’s
-rim. It did not flop and flounder along its hill, like Windsor;
-rather, it held itself bravely, concisely, on its seat, with something
-of Belvoir’s distant majesty. But Belvoir is as generous as it is
-beautiful, offering itself to the world’s admiration; Brakelond, on the
-contrary, was governed by a grimly selfish passion of seclusion, severe
-and rigid. It kept aloof as if it had indeed been some magic Castle
-of Lyonesse, and none was permitted to approach beyond the outermost
-borders of the forest precincts. Lonely, menacing, fearful, Brakelond
-frowned away the approach of all new-comers. The spirit of its owner
-haunted it, insisted on inviolable privacy.
-
-For, from the great dominating Drum Tower flew perpetually the flag
-that told of an old man, brainless, dribbling, dreadful, dying for ever
-by slow inches in his high, drug-scented rooms. Around him ceaselessly
-screeched the parrots whose bright colours were the one consciousness
-of his life, whose poignant yellings made the one music capable of
-penetrating to his ears. Their clamour drove his attendants frantic,
-but the old Duke, immobile, log-like, gave no sign of discomfort, gave
-no sign at all of life or its energies. He seemed dead, had seemed
-dead for many years; his existence tottered on a breathless poise that
-a hair’s touch might send swinging over the border-line of death; but
-that poise was firm and even; nothing shook it; nothing, in the cool
-unbroken lethargy of his days, could agitate the balance that rested
-so unwaveringly on such a razor’s edge of insecurity. So the parrots
-daily rent heaven with their screams, and amid the infernal din the
-aged wizard of the fairy castle, shut away from all the world by a
-barrier of stout walls and locked gates and impassable centuries, lay
-and awaited his end, a creature long since wiped out of life, having
-no part in to-day or to-morrow, but already one with the innumerable
-yesterdays of the dead.
-
-Into this haunt of sad mystery did Gundred bring her husband for their
-honeymoon. So stern and tragic a setting for the bright, modern drama
-of their lives had something stimulating about the abruptness of its
-contrast. Happiness, after all, could build beneath the eaves of
-that immemorial tragedy, and the flower of joy spring gaily from the
-crevices of that citadel whose mortar was tears and blood and the bones
-of innumerable generations, crushed and mangled. Kingston and Gundred
-took their pleasure lightly amid the surrounding atmosphere, and, in
-the labyrinthine vastness of the building soon lost all consciousness
-of that secluded presence, high up in the remote wing where the parrots
-made their song in the undiscerning ears of the dead that could not die.
-
-The main bulk of the Castle was old--some of it very old. On one
-projecting spur of rock that overhung the sea a hundred feet and
-more below, stood the most ancient relic of all--a suite of little
-wooden-panelled rooms, low, many-cornered, slippery-floored, with
-strange turns and steps between them. This wing was cut off from the
-rest of the Castle, which towered over it from behind like a crouched
-monster. It was connected only by one small corridor, and held a
-rough primeval chapel which dated from days before any other stone of
-Brakelond, and was given by tradition as a place of assignation between
-Tristram and Iseult. This fragment of myth made visible seemed to be no
-part of the building, but a precious jewel of the past extruded from
-its enormous fabric.
-
-The body of the building, too, contained ancient, history-haunted
-corners. A series of rooms was credited to the design and the
-occupation of Queen Isabel. Here the She-Wolf of France, old Queen
-Jezebel, had dwelt with the lover whom she nearly seated on the throne
-of England. A traditional portrait of her still gazed out across the
-rooms she had owned, a stiff daub on a wooden panel, giving the fierce,
-tight-lipped stare of the adventuress, high-boned, pink-cheeked,
-archaic in drawing, angular, convincing in its very primitiveness of
-workmanship--jewelled and furred there and here in dimmed patches
-of colour that had once been crudely brilliant. Brakelond had been
-the scene of Queen Isabel’s highest fortunes. Her ghost still seemed
-to hold the high halls of her prosperity, her pitiless spirit
-dominated that wing which owed its life to her. This was her true
-burial-place--rather than Castle Rising, where at last, after all the
-changes of her eventful life, she died, old, fat, monstrous, honoured
-in dishonour, incredibly wealthy, the first millionaire of Europe.
-
-Dark and dusty were the windings of the Castle corridors--dark and
-dusty as the winding paths of Mortimer and Isabel. The building had
-been put together from time to time, added to, built on to, with no
-thought of conformity, of harmony, of convenience. It was rather a
-congeries of Castles than one unanimous edifice. From far off it was
-seen as a single fabric; within its walls the daunted visitor could
-gain comfort from noticing its many discordancies, the innumerable
-violent breaks in the continuity of its development. There was no
-complete rhythm in the building’s design; part clashed with part, and
-in the jarring conflict of tastes and periods the enchantment which
-distance had lent was shattered by the sudden onslaughts of criticism.
-Here jutted out a Georgian wing, solid and stiff, but ill-attuned
-to the austere majesty of the great Drum Tower. There, a Duke of
-the eighteenth century, a friend of Pope and Lady Mary, had erected
-a Chinese pagoda, that perked impertinently up with its fantastic,
-saucy eaves among the stalwart turrets that had frowned on Edward of
-York, and given vain shelter to Marguerite of Anjou. Then, again,
-another Duke, contemporary of George the Glorious, had appended to
-the Elizabethan front of the Castle a small but accurate copy of the
-Brighton Pavilion. Its wriggling cupolas, its fluted minarets, shone
-white with plaster, and its main plantation of bulbs, like gigantic
-onions, bulged and swelled beneath an oriel whence the Virgin Queen had
-watched a masque.
-
-Each inhabited portion of the Castle, too, was of a style violently
-and even deliberately discordant with the severe and uninhabitable
-splendours of the Drum Tower and the old Keep. These contained huge,
-gloomy rooms, with infinitesimal windows, that looked out, for the
-most part, on sunless little courtyards, mere wells of darkness, made
-by the addition of new buildings to the old. Here, in these big, stark
-halls, were mouldering arrangements of armour, or acres of dingy
-pictures, bloated Flemish boors, dubious angular Madonnas, riotous
-female nudities, all hidden from the world by a merciful veil of dirt.
-The stone floors were inadequately disguised with worn matting, and at
-night one feeble, smoky lamp was allotted for the illumination of each
-apartment. A proud neglect, an almost arrogant ostentation of poverty
-and discomfort, reigned supreme.
-
-The inhabited wings of the Castle were different in effect, though
-similar in scheme. Rows of bare barrack-like rooms lined the
-corridors--hung with glaring chintzes, and furnished with chairs of rep
-and horsehair. Their ornaments were meagre as their blankets, and their
-large windows threw a merciless glare of daylight on their serviceable
-sterling ugliness. Each had a square of carpet from which the pattern
-had long been trodden out and through in patches; each had cupboards
-and washstand of light grained wood; each was coldly spacious, airy,
-cheerless, and inhospitable. Most loud of all the discords that many
-generations of bad architects had contributed to the original of Queen
-Isabel’s castle was the high white wing where the old Duke lay dying.
-An Early Victorian Duchess had made this addition; it was big and
-bald and bare, faced with white stucco and adorned with modern-Gothic
-pinnacles. It grew out like a monstrous polyp from the side of a
-gracious little Jacobean pavilion, and dominated the main entrance with
-its stalwart blatancy. To crown all, the same Duchess had built on to
-the great Drum Tower a _porte-cochère_ on the model of the Erechtheion,
-and had holystoned the Drum Tower itself of a pale and repellent
-buttermilk blue.
-
-Of all this accumulated history Gundred was, as it were, the sum and
-incarnation. The Castle, village of unconnected houses though it was in
-reality, yet had a collective personality of its own, even as a crowd
-of unrelated human beings has a collective personality beyond and
-above that of a mere aggregation of units. And she, its daughter and
-heiress, was also its result. It is written that neither man nor woman
-can ever escape from his or her traditions. The traditions are the
-character, and we are the reincarnated spirits of very many dead ages.
-As sunlight brings out all manner of unguessed possibilities from the
-innocent blank photographic plate, so the influence of Brakelond on the
-last child of its history must bring out in her nature new moods and
-unguessed colours of mind that had lain dormant in the undistinguishing
-atmosphere of London. And thus Brakelond could not but set a
-distinction between Kingston and Gundred. Between the flaming memories
-of Brakelond and the long, quiet, eventless story of Darnley-on-Downe
-there must always be a great and significant difference. Gundred,
-gentle, unimpassioned, mild and calm, was yet the daughter of fighting
-centuries, of men and women who had lived, suffered, loved and died
-magnificently, flamboyantly, full in the eye of the world. She was the
-daughter of a ruling race.
-
-And he, emotional, energetic, ambitious, was sprung from an
-interminable line of sterling, honest mediocrities. Great glories,
-great sorrows had avoided Darnley-on-Downe; the crashing crises in the
-House of Mortimer had no parallel in the long unchronicled history of
-the Dadds. No more than his wife could he escape from his traditions.
-And those traditions, well-bred, decent, honest though they were, yet
-were not the traditions of a ruling race. Inconspicuousness was their
-keynote. And Kingston found himself an alien in the citadel of the
-dead Mortimers. Their ghosts, insolent, gorgeous, tyrannous, looked
-down with contempt on the colourless shadows of all the sober Dadds.
-Those ghosts had ruled, in their great day, over counties of Dadds,
-over legions of good honest gentlemen of coat-armour who had been
-glad and proud to take service under the banner of the Mortimers. The
-House of March, perpetually struggling for sovereignty, had drawn to
-its service squires and knights innumerable from all the counties that
-it ruled. And the sense of feudal over-lordship was strong in the
-inherited blood of the Mortimers, even to the uttermost generation.
-Those others, those lesser people, noble and gentle, were but small and
-insignificant in the eyes of men and women who had violently swayed the
-destinies of England. They were loyal subjects, those others, perhaps,
-but equals and allies never. And now a man of the obscure order was
-lawful possessor of the last Mortimer. Queens and the sons of Kings
-had been, in old days, the mates of Brakelond; and the Castle seemed
-as if it could never accustom itself to the formal ownership, even to
-the presence, of one who might in former years have been squire or
-feudatory, indeed, to some Lord or Lady of March, but who could never,
-in the wildest upheaval of King Henry’s time, have hoped to become the
-master of a Mortimer.
-
-Gundred had given her whole heart to her husband. But now, in the
-shadow of all her ancient selves, something began to thrill in her
-veins that was more than the mere pride of part-proprietorship in
-a splendid and historic house. An old house, soaked in all the
-personalities of a thousand bygone years, must needs retain the flavour
-and fragrance of them; and on one who in his own person resumes the
-lives of twenty generations, the compelling influence of his home, the
-scene and material of all those lives that throb again in his, must
-necessarily be so dominant that insensibly he takes the colour of the
-past by which he is surrounded. If this was so in the case of Kingston,
-hampered and controlled by all the decent ancestors that had lived
-and died unnoticeably in Darnley-on-Downe, it was likely that the
-effect would be far more obvious in the case of one whose own character
-was so neutral as Gundred’s, and whose ancestors were so terrific
-and blazing as the Mortimers. From every flagstone, from every wall,
-pressed out upon Gundred the influence of some masterful forefather;
-and in her quiet nature here and there a secret nerve or fibre, latent
-hitherto, and unsuspected, recognised the call of the soul in which
-it once had formed a part, and thrilled to life again. At Brakelond
-Gundred insensibly took the lead. It was she that decided to settle
-in the little ancient wooden wing that jutted away from the main mass
-of the Castle out upon the spur of cliff by the Chapel of King Mark.
-Her gentle manner grew more and more imbued with sovereignty, and her
-husband found himself now amused and now rebuffed by Gundred’s obvious
-sense of being at home. Away in London she might be anyone in general,
-or no one in particular, concealed her family pride in the Mortimers,
-was able to give her zeal for morality full sway in the condemnation
-of Queen Isabel. But at Brakelond her own individuality was swamped.
-Half reluctantly at first, but soon openly and even proudly, she began
-to contemplate the career of the wicked Queen, and exalted her with
-faint damnation that soon passed into positive sympathy. She spent her
-days unfolding to her husband all the nooks and secrets of the Castle.
-And, whereas normally she was a person of the most sensitive and
-neat-minded righteousness, hating fierce crimes, frigidly abominating
-love-intrigues, here in Brakelond her sense of right and wrong was
-in abeyance, and at times she canvassed old bloodstained stories
-with an unmoral calm, and a manner that admitted a not uncomplacent
-participation in their horrors.
-
-To Kingston it became a relief to hear her retailing the legends of
-her house. The honeymoon, in its undiluted intimacy, may well become
-a strain. However much two people may have to say to each other, the
-knowledge that there is absolutely no one else at hand to speak to may
-well impart that itch of rebellion which most people experience when
-bowed under the yoke of necessity. Not to be able to do a thing often
-brings the wish to do it; a wish which, without the prohibition, might
-never have occurred. So an enforced duet may occasion faint hankerings
-after an occasional trio.
-
-In a honeymoon, too, after the first emotional stress and glory are
-over, a revulsion well may threaten--a revulsion to which ardent
-lovers are more liable than those couples who have married on lower
-calmer levels, and who, having never risen to great ecstatic heights,
-can never, therefore, fall to the emotionalist’s profound abysses
-of languor and depression. And, if two people shut up together in
-a lighthouse, with the hope of some day parting, develop insane,
-irrelevant furies against each other’s ways, how much greater danger
-of disillusionment must there be for a man and woman forced into
-minute prolonged contemplation of one another, with no reasonable
-hope of any release on this side of the grave. The most passionate
-love leaps over crimes and vices in the loved object; but stumbles at
-times over a personal habit, a veil ill-tied, a faulty taste in hats.
-The Ideal is a high and holy empyrean where love can range unfettered
-and unimperilled; the kingdom of daily life is a lumpy and uneven
-territory where the winged feet of emotion are apt to trip over some
-mean, unlooked-for obstacle. And the honeymoon is a time for complete
-revelation of personal as well of spiritual peculiarities, in which
-the veil of mystery is finally torn away from the nude reality of two
-people’s lives.
-
-Kingston and Gundred began insensibly to enter on that period of
-prosaic exploration which lies between the mystic raptures of the
-first hours and the later harmonies of settled married life. The
-day of blind passion seemed over. Gundred found herself commenting
-inwardly on Kingston’s habits; the smell of tobacco was no longer so
-precious to her as in the days when it stood for part of an enthralling
-enigma; his ways were untidy, he dropped the newspapers on the floor
-and never picked them up, he wrote his letters at odd times instead
-of setting aside a definite hour for correspondence; he was never in
-really good time for meals. And then he had mannerisms which, in the
-dual solitude, began to prey upon his wife. He sometimes walked up
-and down the room like a bear in a cage, until she wanted to scream;
-when he sat quiet, he occasionally kept up a maddening succession of
-little rhythmical taps with his feet; and, above all, he was given
-to whistling. Then in mind, though altogether precious, of course,
-and adorable, he had certain flaws. His religious views were clearly
-lax, his moral attitude was not strenuous, he was too eager, too
-inquisitive, for Gundred’s intelligence, which preferred to hold on
-firmly, with the unswerving trust of the dutiful pupil, to everything
-it had received at second-hand. She took life for granted, considered
-the scheme of things very admirable, and her own position in it more
-admirable still. Nothing was to be questioned. Therefore Kingston’s
-habit, divined or expressed, of accepting nothing without examination,
-made his wife feel worried and restless, as if her mind had mated with
-an earthquake. Finally, as the days went by, Kingston dissatisfied her
-inmost desires by gradually relaxing the amorous enthusiasm of their
-first married days. It is usually the man who first wearies of conjugal
-outbursts--men having other business in life, and women, under the
-old primeval dispensation, none. And Gundred’s discontent was the more
-exasperating that she was secretly ashamed of it, and had far too much
-personal pride, far too strong a sense of decorum, to express it. As
-Kingston grew less and less demonstrative in his affection, Gundred
-revenged herself at once on him and on her own feelings by stiffening
-herself into an added primness of factitious maidenhood, by which she
-had the power of holding herself aloof from her nearest and dearest,
-as well as of repelling that very sense of intimacy that her own most
-secret soul desired. Her soul was of those that render themselves to no
-subduing warmth of love, but, whatever the fate of the body, must be
-violated, if possible, and taken by assault.
-
-Kingston, for his part, found that marriage had not dissipated or
-broken the spiritual barrier between himself and Gundred. Her citadel
-was still locked against him, inexpugnable, not to be captured by
-any guile or violence. There were still great heavy gaps in their
-conversation, great tracts of desert country across which their souls
-were incapable of taking hands. The calm beatitude that Kingston
-had foreseen began to reveal itself a state of something not unlike
-sterility, diversified with moments of irritation when he skirmished
-round the stone walls of Gundred’s guarded mind, and only succeeded in
-bruising himself, no matter how furiously he attacked. She could not be
-led, forced, cajoled, kissed, harried, or bullied into understanding. A
-sense of hopelessness sometimes seized him before the sweet indomitable
-obstinacy of her mind. It was at once so hard that no blow could make
-an impression, and so soft that no blow could strike home. Unlike Anne
-Elliot in all else, her manners--of mind and body alike--‘were as
-consciously right as they were invariably gentle.’ That invariable,
-gentle consciousness of rectitude was cruelly trying to the restless,
-questioning, agile temper of her husband. He longed to stir up its
-provoking serenity, to stick pins into its lethargic mass. But nothing,
-no effort of his, could move it, shake it, upset that tranquil
-self-complacence. It was like grappling with a phantom in a nightmare.
-Neither men nor angels could ever turn Gundred Darnley from an opinion
-or a habit. She knew that her outer and her inner woman alike were both
-thoroughly, faultlessly dressed, in the best-fitting, most suitable
-garments, and no jot or tittle would she alter of her physical or
-mental trimmings. Neat, not gaudy, was her equipment, and, secure of
-perfection, she could not conceive the possibility of any improvement.
-
-That was another thing--her neatness was something inhuman, something
-almost appalling. She always put everything back in its place, always
-folded up the papers and laid them down tidily on the table when she
-had finished them, always devoted the hour after breakfast and after
-tea to the writing of letters, was always dressed and ready exactly a
-minute before the gong sounded. Neat, neat, heartlessly neat, were all
-her proceedings, from the way she docketed her ideas to the way she
-buttoned her boots and did her hair. True it was, indeed, that the maid
-was responsible for these details, but she, too, had evidently been
-mastered by Gundred’s devastating tidiness. Never a thought mislaid,
-never a curl misplaced, never too much or too little of anything, no
-excess, no enthusiasm, no hot outbursts, nothing but a serenely equable
-development, as cruel and crushing in its steady, remorseless movements
-as the advance of a steam-roller. If she sat, she sat with perfect
-correctness: feet in the proper position, hands folded in her lap,
-or prettily occupied with some pretty piece of work. If she walked,
-it was crisply, concisely, without softness or undulations, erect,
-well-modulated, and poised in the certainty of faultlessness. And the
-very qualities that had so appealed to Kingston’s fastidiousness a
-month before, now became a terror when he contemplated a lifetime’s
-endurance of them. To see Gundred ruffled, muddy, untidy, would have
-been as great a joy to him as water in the wilderness; but no wind ever
-tumbled the orderly daintiness of her hair, no gale ever pushed her hat
-out of place, no mud ever dared adhere to her brilliant little boots.
-Never tired, never angry, never out of looks, Gundred was also never
-buoyant, never ecstatic, never radiant, and the bland sweet monotony of
-her threatened to become as maddening to her husband as the incessant
-repetition of one level, unvarying note.
-
-One or two small habits she had, too, which exasperated him at times.
-She was fond, for one thing among others, of talking about God in a
-frequent, casual way that he found intolerable in its assumption of
-intimacy, and in its cheapening of the soul’s most private thoughts.
-God’s, to Gundred, was the biggest name on her visiting-list, and she
-displayed it with a pride that people quite devoid of terrestrial
-vulgarity sometimes think it allowable to display when talking of their
-acquaintance in celestial circles. Her soul had a tinge of supramundane
-snobbishness, and though, on earth, she would not have thanked a
-Queen for a kiss, she took a gentle satisfaction in emphasizing her
-possession of the Almighty’s approving friendship. She conceived heaven
-as an enormously magnified and everlasting Court-concert, where only
-the “nicest” people were admitted, and where she herself was not only
-to have the entrée, but to be in the very heart of the royal set.
-
-She had, besides, a way of appending an interrogative ‘yes’ to every
-other sentence, which, by degrees, drove her husband to distraction. He
-found himself looking ahead for it along the conversation as one looks
-ahead for the next telegraph-pole on a slow journey. And as surely
-as the telegraph-pole that ‘yes’ would come, maddening him with the
-certainty of its reiteration.
-
-Brakelond, accordingly, was a relief to both husband and wife--how
-great a relief they neither of them knew. They could take refuge from
-themselves among the ghosts of the dead Mortimers. Gundred almost grew
-excited as she repeated the stories of her people, and the spirits of
-the dead seemed to fill her veins with some of the blood she apparently
-lacked. A stark thorny tree it was, to have borne, at the last, so
-mild and white a bud as she. Always in opposition, always ambitious,
-always unscrupulous, maniacs in persecution, in martyrdom, in love, the
-Mortimers had risen and fallen, tempestuously fighting, up and down
-the steps of the throne. Ruined with Queen Isabel, they had survived
-only to fall again before the House of York. With the Tudors their
-glory towered once more, until a characteristically ambitious attempt
-to marry the Queen of Scots had destroyed the March of the time. Then,
-after a few years of comparative quiet, they had risen conspicuous
-as the only great house that had sided with the country against King
-Charles. This unpopular piece of patriotism forced the Mortimers into
-discreet seclusion through Restoration days, until a new opportunity of
-manifesting it arrived with the Great Revolution. The House of March,
-always especially patriotic when patriotism involved enmity to the
-Crown, had had a narrow escape of ruin at the time of King Monmouth’s
-disaster, and, for its safety, the Prince of Orange did not land a
-day too soon. His coming, however, with the comparative loyalty
-that followed, and its resultant dukedom, had established March and
-Brakelond in that period of slow prosperity which had led on through
-two centuries of gradual inanition to its present effete or atrophied
-state. It seemed as if the furious old Castle and the furious old race
-that owned it could not live fully nor thrive without that atmosphere
-of violence in which they had so often gloried and agonized together.
-Peace--slackening, corroding, monotonous--was fatal to the vitality of
-the Mortimers.
-
-But, despite the obvious influence exerted by the Castle on the
-individuality of Gundred, Kingston could not but be struck again and
-again by the contrast between his pin-neat, impeccable wife, orderly
-in mind, body, desires, and the many riotous scarlet lives that she
-summed up in her own neutral-tinted nature. Always turbulent, always
-passionate, impatient of rule, loving and hating without limit or
-bond of reason, breathing the air of battle from birth to death, and
-flagging in the close air of peace, the Mortimers were a strange race
-to end thus, in a woman to whom peace, order, reason, limit were the
-very conditions of her being. As she talked to him of her people,
-Kingston noticed the small, flickering flames of vitality that leapt
-up in her nature out of the dead past. Here and there in her utterance
-from time to time some bygone tyrant dictated an inflection, some dead
-Queen contributed a thought. Kingston heard these voices so distinctly,
-noticed so clearly the occurrence of each foreign thought that twanged
-abruptly in the music of Gundred’s voice, like the sudden throb of a
-harp across a piano’s level ripplings, that it seemed to him at last as
-if, at moments, she were the mere mouthpiece of ghosts. For a vanishing
-instant, now and then, her lips spoke what her mind had not conceived,
-what her heart had not sanctioned. She was possessed by a fragment of
-the life that had gone before. But was this all? Robbers and wantons
-that they were in their lawless splendour, had the Mortimers given
-their descendant nothing beyond these fragmentary reminiscences? Was
-there in her, far down under the orderly, decorous placidity of her
-surface, no stirring possibility of those old primitive passions, of
-those fierce blood-lusts or those religious frenzies, that should have
-come with the very fabric of her life out of the buried long-ago? The
-question was strangely interesting, in the bizarre contrast between the
-neat, methodical thing she was, and the wild daughter of the past that,
-by some freak of fortune, she might perhaps again become. Kingston
-watched her keenly, hoping that some day, sooner or later, might raise
-again the hidden depths of her nature, and reveal, in a tempest of
-passion, the frantic possibilities of the Mortimers. The idea was
-inconceivable, monstrous, grotesque; but attractive as a romantic
-paradox. As with most paradoxes, deep down in his heart he utterly
-disbelieved it.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-
-Kingston Darnley, as usual, was late for breakfast. He had loitered
-pleasantly over his toilet, relieving the repellent prose of the
-process by frequent intervals of poetic rest at the open window. The
-little old diamond-paned casement of his dressing-room was open, and
-the crooked oak-panelled apartment was flooded with morning sunlight.
-Very far below, against the feet of the cliff beneath, the blue and
-gold of the clear water came lapping in friendship, and its lazy
-utterance rose faint and thin to the listener through the virginal
-clarity of the air. The day was not yet old enough for the haze and
-stress of heat: all was still clean and fresh from the cool sweetness
-of the night and the unclouded dawn. To the uttermost horizon spread
-the level floor of the sea, a glory of scent and colour, gleaming,
-vital, incredibly buoyant and young for all its uncounted æons of life.
-Again and again Kingston stayed to dally with the enormous loveliness
-of life, leaning from the window whence he might have dropped a pebble
-straight into the purple ripples a hundred feet and more below, where
-they played leisurely at hide-and-seek among the rocks under the cliff.
-
-It was indeed a morning to be up and alive--a morning to be naked in
-the naked embrace of the world. As the hours go by, the world, no
-less than man, puts on its clothes. Clouds and shadows and haze come
-up to cover the strong free limbs of the earth. It is only in the
-short space after sunrise in some still morning that the world stands
-out pure and glorious in its nudity--vivid, stainless, triumphant as
-the white flawlessness of the young Apollo newly risen out of the
-dark, formless void. The upspringing day is our emblem of youth fresh
-from slumber--beautiful, ardent, splendid in the clear glory of his
-build--before he makes haste to hide himself in the sombre, ugly
-trappings of convention. Kingston was in no haste to take that leap of
-many centuries that separates man, as Nature set him forth, from the
-clothed, shapeless dummy that man has made himself.
-
-From the adjoining room his wife recalled him again and again to the
-flight of time. She was never to be distracted from her duties by any
-beauty or ugliness of the outer world. Had the Last Day dawned in
-fire, Gundred would have duly finished having her hair done before
-confronting it. There is a time for everything, she says, and all
-reasonable people know that the time for looking at landscapes is
-after lunch, while taking one’s afternoon drive, before going home
-to tea and the second post. Then, at the proper moment, ecstasies are
-allowable, and even suitable. But every minute of the day has its
-task, and nothing can be plainer than that dressing-time is the time
-to dress. Kingston, however, whistled idly at his desultory work, and
-dawdled as if the whole forthcoming week were vacant. He loved the
-young tenderness of the sunlight, and drew great breaths of life at
-the open window. Overhead, and far away to the right, stretched along
-the cliff a mighty, menacing shaft of darkness, the shadow of the huge
-Castle behind. But this little old wing, on its spur of rock, jutted
-so boldly out from the main mass of the building that all here was
-radiance. Gundred, too, enjoyed the sun, but did not allow his ardours
-to distract her from her duties. She had the white blinds pulled down,
-and her toilet was cheered merely by a subdued consciousness of the
-warmth outside. Then, when all was carefully and properly accomplished,
-she made her way down twisting steps, and along a strip of corridor, to
-the end of the wing, where the last two rooms on this ground-floor were
-portioned off as dining-room and sitting-room. The whole arrangement
-was quaint enough to please her, but neither so inconvenient nor so
-unusual as to offend her sense of what was becoming. It was better than
-living, sitting and dining, in the grim, mouldering halls of the Drum
-Tower, or in the bald, chintz-hung rooms of the modern wings.
-
-The unexpected booming of the gong roused Kingston to a sense of
-time. With an effort he tore himself from his ecstatic contemplation,
-and compressed the remainder of his toilet into half a dozen crowded
-moments. Then, flurried, and filled with the feeling that he ought to
-be apologetic, he hurried towards the dining-room.
-
-He found his wife seated at the breakfast-table, decapitating a boiled
-egg with her usual crisp neatness, which always suggested that she was
-doing the egg a favour in making it an example of exactly how an egg
-should be eaten. She was a lesson to the world. And he felt that she
-knew it.
-
-She, for her part, noticed immediately that his tie was under one ear,
-that it was exceedingly ill-knotted, and that it was the wrong sort of
-tie for that particular collar.
-
-‘I thought I would begin, darling,’ said Gundred. ‘I did not know when
-you would appear. Such a lovely morning--yes?’
-
-Here, also, she had shown her appreciation of its loveliness by having
-all the blinds drawn down. A muffled white radiance was all that she
-allowed to reach her from outside.
-
-Kingston, meanwhile, had been collecting letters and papers from the
-sideboard.
-
-‘Letters for you, my dear,’ he said; ‘three.’
-
-‘Leave them there, darling, will you? I never look at my letters till
-after breakfast. It is so nice to make a habit of everything--yes?’
-
-Her husband, returning to the table, helped himself and sat down. For
-a time the meal went forward in silence. Then he looked across at
-his wife with intense approval. In the softened light Gundred looked
-wonderfully pretty. The table was bare--a piece of oak too beautiful
-to hide--and beyond its dark surface, where silver, glass, and white
-china gleamed and glittered, Gundred’s head and shoulders rose in soft
-relief against a very old painted panel on the further wall, a dim,
-dingy portrait of King Henry the Seventh. Before her on the table stood
-a bowl of pink and salmon-coloured sweet-peas. In the dim, primeval
-room, in the quiet mellowed glow, she struck a note of exquisite
-modernity. The curled gold of her hair, the small clear features, the
-inconspicuously perfect gown harmonized, in the very audacity of their
-contrast, with the ripened antiquity that surrounded her. She touched
-another octave. From head to foot there was nothing about her to find
-fault with. And, against such a background, her charm was seen more
-whole and successful than in a garish setting of modern furniture and
-other, showier women.
-
-‘By Jove!’ said Kingston, ‘you do look extraordinary cool and
-beautiful, Gundred. How do you manage it? I don’t believe you could
-ever grow old!’
-
-Gundred was pleased. Such comments had been growing too rare. But she
-was one of those women who repel what they most desire, whether from
-motives of mortification or allurement, it would at first sight be hard
-to decide.
-
-‘Nonsense, Kingston dear!’ she said; ‘one gets older every day. You
-must really not try to make me vain.’
-
-‘Never,’ replied her husband, ‘have I seen anyone who gave me the same
-perfect feeling of satisfaction that you do. You always look as if you
-had just come out of the smartest bandbox that was ever made. One can’t
-realize that it’s all taken to pieces again every night.’
-
-‘Don’t, dear,’ said Gundred. ‘You are always so exaggerated. I am so
-glad I look nice, but it is only a matter of taking pains. Anybody can
-be neat--yes?’
-
-‘I couldn’t. If it weren’t for Andrews, I should always have odd socks
-and boots, I am sure I should. I believe I am capable of wearing an
-up-and-down collar in the evening if it was put out for me. What would
-you do if I did, Gundred--divorce me on the spot?’
-
-‘Darling, don’t talk so lightly about such a dreadful subject. God has
-joined us together, and of course I should not think of divorcing you
-if you came down to dinner in an up-and-down collar. It would be very
-wrong of me. But, oh, Kingston dear, I do hope you never will. It is so
-easy to be tidy. Your tie is all crooked this morning, dear.’
-
-Her husband whistled instead of answering, as he helped himself to cold
-ham. A man may let a woman mend his morals or his mind, but he would
-rather suffer any reasonable torture than have it suspected that she
-meddles with his clothes.
-
-When Kingston returned to the table Gundred was ready with a renewed
-supply of tea. ‘Nice and fresh and hot,’ she advertised. ‘Let me
-give you another cup.’ She poured out for each, adding cream in fair
-quantity to her own, and lavishly to her husband’s. This was a habitual
-little silent proof of her love for him, and had no reference to the
-fact that he particularly disliked cream in his tea. As for herself,
-she expected Kingston always to remember and respect her avoidance of
-sugar. But then his tastes were wrong, while hers were right. For he
-was Kingston, a man: and she was Gundred, a good wife.
-
-‘You’ve put cream in,’ protested Kingston, wrying his mouth at the
-taste.
-
-‘Have I, dear? I’m so sorry. Take my cup instead. I have not touched
-it.’
-
-She gave her cup a rapid final stir to make the cream disappear amid
-the tea, then handed it to him, and watched complacently while he drank
-it without any further complaint. She imagined that he was deceived,
-and felt herself happily embarked on that career of small benevolent
-falsehoods which make so necessary a part of the good wife’s success.
-She foresaw innumerable ways of cheating him for his own good, of
-making him eat veal in disguise, of teaching him to like rabbit by
-serving it up as chicken cream. As a matter of fact he fully realized
-what she had done, but knew that it was useless to make a protest.
-He had learnt by now in a fortnight that all opposition to Gundred’s
-ideas was unprofitable. She had a firm notion that cream was good for
-him. Therefore cream he was evidently doomed to have, for the sake of
-domestic peace--and in quantities, too, as generous as the love that
-poured them out. Gundred had the bland pertinacity of the martyr,
-combined with the imperturbable self-complacence of the Pharisee.
-Before her gentle, inexorable determinations all hostile resolves were
-as the stone which an incessant drip of water permeates and dissolves.
-
-Kingston swallowed his polluted tea as quickly as possible; then,
-breakfast being over, began to think of the day’s news. He offered his
-wife a paper.
-
-‘Letters first, thank you, dear,’ said Gundred, seating herself
-concisely on a small, stiff-backed settle. She always preferred hard
-and rigid furniture to the cushions and softnesses that nowadays
-prevail. She felt them more virtuous, more decent, more suitable. She
-turned towards her husband. ‘Take the arm-chair, dear,’ she said.
-
-There was but one in the room that had any pretensions to comfort.
-Kingston, finding that Gundred was determined to remain where she was,
-settled himself in it with his papers.
-
-‘Kingston, dear,’ pleaded his wife suddenly, ‘you won’t leave the
-papers all anyhow on the floor, will you? It’s so untidy--yes?’
-
-For answer he softly whistled a snatch, then, growing absorbed in the
-news, began abstractedly to drum a small rhythm on the oaken floor.
-Gundred bore it for a moment. Then a combined instinct of martyrdom and
-love rebellious stirred her to action. She rose and picked up a small
-cushion that happened to be on the settle, a bony little unyielding
-square, prickly and stiff with embroideries that tradition attributed
-to Queen Elizabeth.
-
-‘A cushion, darling,’ said Gundred in level tones, standing behind his
-chair. ‘Move your back--sit up a little, and let me arrange it for you.’
-
-Her utterance, her action, were characteristic of her nature. The
-utterance decorous, cold, impassive, the action springing from an
-unresting love. Neither from her words nor from their inflection could
-Kingston have guessed the warmth of the affection that beamed out of
-her eyes as she stood looking down at the back of his neck with an
-ardour which she would have been utterly ashamed to show to his face.
-Only by such attentions as these, valuable as symptoms of her concealed
-devotion, could Kingston ever make a guess at her feelings.
-
-‘Thank you, dearest,’ he replied gratefully, shifting himself so as
-to admit the insertion of Queen Elizabeth’s uncomfortable comfort. It
-harassed him, its adamantine corners cut into his ribs and the small
-of his back, but as an emblem of his wife’s tenderness he endured and
-welcomed it. What she zealously concealed from him in word she was
-perpetually anxious to reveal vicariously by such actions as these.
-‘Thanks awfully,’ he repeated, then twisted round, so as to get a
-glimpse of Gundred’s face. Instantly the light faded out of her eyes,
-and all she allowed him to see was a decent wifely expression of
-solicitude. He never divined that any other had been there.
-
-But suddenly she permitted herself a word of self-betrayal.
-
-‘I always want you to be comfortable, dear,’ she said. The words were
-cool and coolly spoken, but under them lay the warmth of Gundred’s
-secret nature.
-
-Kingston, fired by such an advance, rose and swung round. He caught his
-wife’s two hands--those charming hands that were never hot or cold.
-
-‘I owe you something for that,’ he said, and kissed her twice.
-
-Very gently Gundred drew herself away. Her heart was afire with
-gratification, but she felt that every consideration of decency,
-economy, and pride compelled her to conceal it. To be made cheap was
-the last horror that her mind could imagine; and all outward displays
-seemed to level her with kitchen-maids and factory-girls.
-
-‘Don’t be so boisterous, darling,’ she remonstrated, while her heart
-longed to thank him for what he had done, and beg him to do it again.
-In the daytime, however, the invisible audience before whom she lived
-forbade these manifestations; only under the cover of darkness could
-she feel them permissible. ‘It is too early in the day,’ said Gundred,
-patting into place a curl that had never been out of it.
-
-Not for the first time Kingston sighed and found himself baffled by
-his wife’s perpetual assumption of virginity. Beyond the reach of
-all allowed caresses, her soul remained untouched, immaculate. The
-bloodless chastity of temperament that invested this last of Queen
-Isabel’s offspring was for ever a barrier between man and wife. And
-neither Kingston nor Gundred had any doubt as to whether the barrier
-were natural or artificial. Both believed it an essential part of
-Gundred’s nature. If Gundred herself ever doubted, she stifled the
-doubt as ill-bred, repulsive, almost irreligious.
-
-‘Ice-house!’ cried Kingston. ‘One may kiss your lips, but the real you
-is far away beyond the reach of kisses.’
-
-Gundred knew that this was not true, longed to deny it, yet was glad
-that her husband thought it. She was taking a shamefaced, almost
-fierce delight in the dialogue. For once her correct coldness had
-proved a challenge. Too often she had grieved that the low temperature
-of her behaviour was passing unregretted, unnoticed, and was even
-beginning to lower the temperature of her lover. Cold she still wished
-to be, for pride and decorum, yet without paying any of the penalties.
-The personal intimacy that one aspect of marriage enforces only the
-more impelled her soul, for the sake of its stiff self-respect, to take
-refuge in all possible mental reservations and seclusions, by way of
-indemnifying itself and justifying itself for the other candours into
-which Nature had driven her, not unwilling, indeed, but always feeling
-that she ought to be unwilling. Gundred’s temperament was civilized
-very far below the surface, and the rough facts of life never ceased
-to strike her as monstrous and barbaric. And most barbarous of all was
-her own surprised acquiescence. She could only recapture her vanishing
-dignity by emphasizing at every possible moment the immaculate
-maidenhood of her mind. This was at once her revenge on Nature, and
-on herself for loving what Nature sent. But her husband could not
-understand these subtleties; no clue was given him to the labyrinth of
-Gundred’s hidden emotions; he took her at her face-value, and imagined
-her as deeply, incurably frigid as was the manner that she thought
-proper to assume.
-
-He stood before her, still holding her hands, gazing hotly into the
-depths of her cool eyes. But now they gave him no answering light.
-Shallow, clear, and cold, they met his own without a tremor. No soul
-looked out of them.
-
-‘The real you,’ he repeated at last, after a long pause--‘the real you.
-Where is it, I wonder? Or is there any such thing? I thought once I
-could thaw you, but one can’t thaw an icicle unless one can get near
-it.’
-
-The passion of his speech pleased her no less than the success
-of her own decorous hypocrisy. Now evidently she was winning the
-demonstrations for which she secretly hungered, and without any
-sacrifice of her pudicity.
-
-She drew her hands away.
-
-‘Let me go, dear,’ she said, with mild decision. ‘You make me feel
-hot and rumpled. If you want to kiss me--well, I suppose I am your
-wife--yes?’
-
-The tacit invitation, the unexpressed desire, were too successfully
-concealed by the decorous dullness of her tone. He read into it
-annoyance and disgust. Abruptly the flame of his mood was extinguished.
-He dropped her hands, so suddenly that they, not expecting any such
-desertion, hung limp and disappointed for a moment in the air.
-
-‘Sorry to have bothered you,’ he said. ‘I suppose I am too rough.’
-
-Without another word he subsided again into his chair, and fell to
-reading the paper. Gundred retired to her settle, feeling how glad
-she ought to feel thus triumphantly to have vindicated her sense of
-decency. But her satisfaction was hollow; her soul had received a
-shock when her hands had been so suddenly dropped--a nasty jarring
-shock such as one receives in a dream, stepping into vacancy where
-one had expected solid ground. Her hands fell slowly to her sides,
-cheated, frustrated; then set languidly about opening her letters, as
-if diverted from their proper use. It was a minute or two before she
-could concentrate her attention. In her turn she experienced something
-of that snubbed, humiliated sensation which she had so often inflicted
-on her husband. Then good training conquered personal disappointment,
-and she began to read. In an instant her attention was chained.
-
-‘Kingston,’ she cried, looking up, ‘here is a letter from Isabel
-Darrell, of all people in the world. She wants to pay us a visit. Why,
-I declare,’ she added, ‘Isabel writes from London. I must say she loses
-no time.’
-
-‘Isabel Darrell?’ questioned Kingston. ‘Who is she, and what does
-she want with us--especially now, when we are supposed to be on our
-honeymoon?’
-
-‘My cousin,’ Gundred reminded him. ‘Her mother was my father’s sister,
-Isabel Mortimer. Don’t you remember, I told you about her? Poor Aunt
-Isabel! She married a dreadful man who came over from Australia or New
-Zealand, and took her back there, and led her a most terrible life, I
-am afraid. Aunt Isabel died three years ago, and now her husband seems
-to have died, too, and the daughter has come to England to see her own
-people. We shall have to have her here, Kingston. I must write at once.
-I’ll let her have a line by this morning’s post. But I do wish Aunt
-Agnes ever wrote letters: we ought to have heard of Isabel’s arrival at
-least a week ago. We must certainly send for her at once.’
-
-Gundred wanted her husband to protest against this sacrifice of their
-privacy, perhaps to forbid it. If he had done so, she would have
-resisted his objections, and eventually have made a wifely virtue of
-yielding to them. But the best of people are not without their small
-ungenerosities, and Kingston Darnley was in a mood to punish his wife
-for her obstinate chilliness. If their privacy were to give no real
-intimacy, it might just as well cease.
-
-‘Capital!’ said Kingston. ‘We want someone to liven us up a bit. Write
-to your cousin and tell her to come here at once. She’ll be someone for
-you to talk to.’
-
-‘Won’t she--yes?’ assented Gundred, wounded indeed, but quite
-successful in concealing the fact. ‘Poor thing! I will send her a
-wire. She can be here by dinner-time. How odd of her, though, to think
-one likes being interrupted on one’s honeymoon! Do you suppose they do
-that kind of thing in the colonies?’
-
-‘Oh, I don’t know. I dare say she heard we had been here for more than
-a fortnight, and thought we must have had about enough of it.’
-
-‘Well, it will be very nice. Would you like to see her letter?’
-
-‘I don’t mind,’ answered Kingston indifferently. In the circumstances
-wild horses would not have forced him to confess how much he resented
-the invasion. Not even to himself would he confess it. But already he
-had conceived a keen dislike for his cousin, Isabel Darrell.
-
-‘Quite an odd letter,’ commented Gundred; ‘not at all like anyone
-else’s. My poor aunt was always strange and eccentric--evidently Isabel
-takes after her mother.’
-
-‘Let me see,’ said Kingston, in the hope of finding something to feed
-his feeling for Isabel Darrell.
-
-Gundred handed him the letter. It was written in a large, flamboyant
-hand, on large flamboyant paper; twirls and flourishes abounded, and
-the signature was written with a sprawling arrogance that might have
-done credit to a second-rate actress.
-
- ‘DEAR MY COUSIN,’ it began,
-
- ‘I have come to England at last, to enter the bosom of my family.
- My father, to the relief of everybody, has entered Abraham’s. Don’t
- think me flippant, but one cannot always mourn, not even for the
- worst of parents. Meanwhile, here am I in London, buying frocks so
- as not to disgrace my family. When can I come to you? As soon as
- you like. A wire will fetch me. I understand that your honeymoon is
- nearly over, so I don’t suppose a casual third will be much of a
- nuisance by now. And, anyhow, I have nowhere else to go. I am dying
- to see Brakelond, too, and the ducal great-uncle. Aunt Agnes and I
- have had quite enough of each other in a week, but she has been doing
- her duty nobly by the returned prodigal. Really, she is too weird for
- words. I believe she thinks New Zealand is the capital of Australia,
- or else the other way round.
-
- ‘Your affectionate and only cousin,
- ‘ISABEL DARRELL, OF THE MORTIMERS.’
-
-Kingston found himself amply justified in his dislike. Underbred, loud,
-vulgar, evidently Isabel Darrell was a very undesirable specimen of the
-colonial. Her clashing presence would teach him anew to appreciate the
-quiet perfection of Gundred. He returned the letter with a laugh.
-
-‘So very odd--yes?’ said Gundred; ‘just like her poor dear mother.
-Aunt Isabel was just the same--so flaunting, and independent, and
-unconventional. Isabel must be the oddest girl.’
-
-‘She sounds a shocking bounder,’ said Kingston.
-
-‘She is my cousin, dear,’ said Gundred, very gently, after a slight
-pause. The emphasis was slight but unmistakable. Another pause followed.
-
-‘And when are we to expect that sacrosanct person, your cousin?’
-inquired Kingston, who knew nothing of that calm loyalty which people
-of Gundred’s sort display towards even the most despised and detested
-of their relations when they come up for discussion in the presence of
-anyone unconnected with ‘the family.’
-
-‘Isabel? Ring, dear, for Murchison, and I will send a wire. She will
-have time to catch the midday train, and we shall have her here in good
-time to dress for dinner. But of course she won’t be able to see poor
-Uncle Henry.’
-
-Kingston rang, feeling himself powerless to avert the coming of this
-discordant, pestilent alien, and Murchison was duly entrusted with
-the telegram. As soon as it had gone both Kingston and Gundred began
-to feel injured, and by common consent forbore to say another word
-about Isabel Darrell. Gundred felt herself aggrieved that her husband
-should so readily and with such apparent gladness have consented to the
-invasion of a stranger; Kingston felt himself aggrieved that Gundred
-should so gladly and with such apparent readiness have suggested the
-importation of a third person. Each thought the other bored with the
-honeymoon; neither was, but the one from offended pride, and the other
-from conscientious delicacy considered it a duty to make the pretence;
-and, each concealing his feeling strictly from the other, husband and
-wife drew deliberately apart to make room for the figure of Isabel
-Darrell between them.
-
-The day drifted by in colourless talk, and the fine splendour of the
-morning grew clouded with a leaden haze. Kingston and Gundred sat out
-the hours in the small close garden that was shut in by the Castle.
-Their own little oaken wing jutted away ahead of them, but the line
-of the cliff, before it ran out in that unexpected spur, was enclosed
-by three old towers of the building, and here, in the square levelled
-space, looking straight over the boundless sea, with a battlemented
-wall of windows behind, and the Drum Tower glooming high over it in
-the background, had been made the only patch of garden that existed
-to give light and life to the grey mountain of masonry. The little
-flowery patch, gay with sweet-peas and roses, seemed as discordant
-with the Castle as a bow of ribbon on the brow of a precipice. It was
-frivolous, impertinent, saucy in its defiance of the stern greyness
-that it adorned. The only fit colours to relieve the sombre majesty
-of Brakelond were those of blood and fire, not those of grass and
-flowers. But the contradiction was so flagrant as to be fascinating,
-and the lovers took daily joy in this little impudent oasis.
-
-However, their unuttered thoughts of the new-comer dominated every
-remark they made, and it was a relief when evening drew near, and
-each minute brought nearer and nearer the abrupt termination of their
-solitude. Isabel had telegraphed her joy at being permitted to come,
-and her intention to do so immediately. Orders were given to prepare
-for her, and she was expected to arrive in time to dress for dinner.
-When, therefore, the carriage returned empty from the station, six
-miles away, after having kept dinner waiting for half an hour, both
-Kingston and Gundred felt their grievances redoubled. Kingston saw
-how right he had been to detest the very notion of this disorderly
-stranger, and Gundred realized more than ever how slack and neglectful
-of her husband it had been not to forbid the importation of such a
-disconcerting element into their ordered tranquillity. Meanwhile a
-telegram arrived, explaining that Isabel had lost her train, had
-taken a ‘special,’ and hoped to arrive in an hour or so. Again the
-carriage was sent, and, after another tedious interval of expectation
-the lovers were told that its lights could be seen returning up the
-hill. To ease the arrival of a shy, desolate colonial Gundred decided
-to receive her in the great hall itself. Accordingly, at the news,
-Kingston and Gundred passed on through the dim, gaunt passages of
-outwork and bastion until they found themselves at last in the heart
-of the big Drum Tower. The hall was a vast flagged expanse, walled
-in by high, dusty glooms, into whose recesses no light of any feeble
-lamp or lantern could penetrate. Grime and weary antiquity seemed to
-permeate it, and the air was close and heavy with a scent of mouldered
-greatness. Kingston, as he went, began insensibly to play a game with
-himself. He picked out the names of four moods, to be repeated to
-himself, one for each flag on which he trod; and his fate, his whole
-attitude to Isabel was to be foretold by the paving-stone on which his
-foot should rest at the instant of the new-comer’s alighting. His fancy
-was taken from the game which children play with their cherry-stones,
-and the moods he chose were ‘Love, Hate, Fear, Contempt.’ In turn he
-repeated them as he stepped from flag to flag, careful always never to
-set his foot on any boundary line. ‘Love, Hate, Fear, Contempt,’ he
-murmured inwardly from stone to stone, while Gundred walked briskly
-at his side, her clear mind a hundred years removed from any such
-silly infantile fantasies. Now they were drawing near the huge, gaping
-doorway. There were not so many of the great squares left to tread, and
-the jingling approach of the carriage could be more and more clearly
-heard. Kingston’s heart began to beat with the artificial excitement
-of his game. ‘Love, Hate, Fear, Contempt....’ The carriage had driven
-up.... ‘Love, Hate, Fear, Contempt....’ He lingered, hoping that the
-stranger would alight appropriately on the word ‘Contempt.’ In vain.
-There was some delay. Perforce he must advance to the three or four
-remaining flag-stones. Quickly, to get it over without danger, he
-hurried with a long stride on to the stone that meant ‘Love,’ eager to
-leap to the next. But the unconscious Isabel was quicker. As his foot
-was set on ‘Love,’ Isabel jumped untidily from the carriage. Kingston
-laughed internally. ‘So much for fate,’ he thought; then, calmed again,
-he advanced with Gundred to meet the stranger. In the flickering light,
-among the draughts that swirled in the high cavern of darkness, his
-first impression was of a limp, floppy hat, bulged, overtrodden boots,
-and a deplorable draggled tippet. Greetings were hurriedly exchanged,
-and Kingston felt justified of all his hostile forebodings. Awkward,
-shapeless, inopportune, tawdry,--‘Contempt’ or ‘Hate’ should certainly
-have been his footing with regard to Isabel Darrell.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-
-It was not till the three had arrived in the oaken parlour of the old
-chapel wing that Kingston could pause to take stock of the new-comer,
-and revise his first impression. Revise it? It needed only to be
-amplified, many new details to be added to the first rough sketch
-of his dislike, fresh lines and shades to be stippled in on the
-displeasing portrait.
-
-Gundred was one of the comparatively few Englishwomen whose hat always
-looks as if it had grown with her hair, and forms an integral part of
-her head as Nature made it. Isabel, on the other hand, was one of the
-vast majority whose hat sits on their hair awkwardly, like a stranger,
-with no suggestion of anything more than an accidental and reluctant
-relationship painfully achieved with pins. And it was a bad hat,
-too--formless, flabby, large and slatternly in its lines. It made no
-pretence at being straight, but flapped and floundered distressingly
-as she walked. Clearly Isabel was one of those women who can never
-keep a hat straight. Regiments of daggers and skewers cannot prevent
-them from giving the impression of living perpetually in a gale. Their
-headgear is aimless, uncongenial, offering a perpetual suggestion
-of irrelevance. And, as the hat is symptomatic of the woman, the
-rest of Isabel fulfilled the dire promise of her headgear--immense,
-shapeless, foolishly waved and undulated, of limp, coarse black straw,
-with the big bow of cheap satin that did not seem to belong to it,
-but to be stuck on casually with one of the protrusive, jetty pins
-that ironically pretended to keep it fixed, and, with it, sagged from
-side to side in a futile and disconsolately impudent manner. Isabel,
-throughout, was flimsy, loose, and flaccid in design. Nothing about
-her seemed to be in any relationship to herself or to any other detail
-of her dress: her attire was a mere careless aggregation of unsuitable
-elements, as depressing in its feeble slovenliness as a party of
-ill-assorted people. Her gown dragged and trailed around her here
-and there, suggesting that she daily tied it on anew with tapes, and
-secured the more salient points with safety-pins. It was not a gown--no
-homogeneous creation of any sane mind. It had none of a real gown’s
-individuality; it was a mere haphazard covering. Then her boots: again,
-as she sat in the settle, the lamplight caught their toes: they were
-both wrinkled and bulgy, an ingenious prodigy of the incorrect. As
-Kingston watched them in the little oaken room, the lamplight seemed to
-concentrate its efforts on their shapeless points: they held his gaze
-as if by mesmerism, and seemed to swell monstrously and waver gigantic
-in the gloom, till the world was swallowed up in those amorphous lumps.
-
-It was some time before Kingston could turn his attention from the
-clothes to the woman that they so disastrously symbolized. Here, too,
-he met at every point with a violation of all his favourite canons.
-Isabel Darrell was evidently as untidy as her garments. Her figure
-was long and elastic. Only a certain arrogant untidiness of carriage
-could save her from the reproach of lankiness. She walked with a free
-unconventional swing from the hips, with a sort of bounding spring
-that might have been more pleasantly noteworthy had it not set her hat
-mopping and mowing afresh at every step. At every step it jauntily
-jumped, up and down, and from right to left, until the attention was
-concentrated on its antics rather than on any beauties that might have
-been found in the gait which compelled them. Very different indeed was
-the barbaric looseness of Isabel’s movement from the neat and civilized
-precision of Gundred’s every motion. That she wore no stays was very
-evident, and the flapping freedom of her legs suggested that her nature
-had been built for breeches rather than for petticoats.
-
-Her face, when you came to look at it, was not, perhaps, quite so
-terrible as might have been expected. In fact, Kingston found it rather
-disappointing in its possibilities. He consoled himself by noticing
-that the mouth was ridiculously wide, revealing, too, a glimpse of
-gold; but, still, it was an eager, mobile mouth, full of energetic
-vitality. Gundred’s pretty, definite lips invariably preserved their
-proper lines; but Isabel’s had smiles and flashes of feeling that
-kept no limits and obeyed no conventions. Agile, too, and expressive
-beyond due bounds, they had a gleaming redness that was put to shame
-by the decent pallor of her cousin’s. Her face was irregular, uneven,
-unconventional, yet not without a certain heady and unlawful charm.
-Like her mouth, it was so very much alive. It did not seem, as did
-Gundred’s, to be a moulded mask, but to be the woman’s very own naked
-soul. The claim of her birth was clear in the strangely delicate beauty
-of her ears--the only part of her that could ever, by any possibility,
-be called neat or dainty--and in the firm, fine curves of her nose and
-upper lip. The nose especially, swift and decided in its line, carried
-high and defiant, had the long thin nostrils, sensitive, fierce, cruel
-in their lifted curve, that one sees in the conspicuous women of old
-ferocious days. Kingston and Gundred had seen them in the face of
-Isabel the Queen.
-
-As for the rest of her character, a student might have found traces
-of uncontrolled personality in her broad forehead, heavy along
-the supraciliary ridge, and in the deep set of her eyes. The eyes
-themselves were big and ardent, of that grey-green whose precise
-tone can never be actually discerned. Golden at one time, emerald
-at another, they are always vivid, blazing, inscrutable. And over
-all hung in a dense cloud the heavy obscurity of her hair. Black as
-darkness it was, long, straight, and utterly impatient of restraint.
-Its arrangement was of a piece with Miss Darrell’s whole accoutrement.
-Evidently she was content with twirling it into a rough lump, poking
-it here, pinning it inadequately there. At every point it burst its
-bonds: loose coils and ropes were dropping and trailing unreproved;
-each movement, each jump of the hat, set free a fresh strand. Miss
-Darrell clearly counted on the hat’s pressure to preserve at least some
-semblance of order; but that unhappy adornment was powerless to exert
-any influence; it jigged and jolted as the hair dictated, and the mass
-on the top of her head hopped happily in a unanimous heap as she went,
-carrying the hat unresisting to its sway.
-
-Meanwhile Gundred was pouring forth a stream of pleasantness. Her
-gentle voice ran on in an orderly melody, expounding the joy that she
-and Kingston felt in welcoming a kinswoman to Brakelond. And, as she
-spoke, not a detail of her cousin’s untidiness escaped her eye. But
-the pitying disapproval that she felt found no hint of expression in
-her voice. Tone and manner remained calm, dispassionate, colourless
-as ever. Isabel, for her part, had no such nice polish, and made no
-attempt to conceal her excitement. Her eye roved, her head went eagerly
-from side to side, scanning her surroundings. When Gundred paused, she
-interposed some quick question, some keen remark on what she saw. But
-to her cousin’s formal little speeches she was evidently not attending.
-Her manners were careless as her dress.
-
-Kingston, taking no part in the dialogue, devoted himself to watchful
-criticism of the enemy. He noticed how the smile flickered and
-flashed across her eager face, and how the fine nostrils thrilled
-and contracted now and again with enthusiasm. Those nostrils, he
-felt, were well known. Where had he seen them? He did not remember
-the face of the She-Wolf Queen, but, as he looked at that of Isabel,
-stronger and stronger grew his impression that it was no stranger. His
-hostile feelings grew and deepened. The face, the manner, the charm
-of Isabel made some vehement, inexplicable claim upon him; and in his
-resistance to so unreasonable a call, his attitude stiffened itself
-into a determined enmity. There could be nothing appealing or desirable
-about this sloppy, disorderly creature, yet he felt the beginning--was
-it the beginning or the renewal?--of a paradoxical fascination that
-contradicted his own most cherished sense of what was admirable. He
-looked again at Gundred, and strenuously admired her neat, cool beauty,
-the perfection of her appointments, her gestures, her inflections, her
-expressions. Nothing was wrong there; no criticism could be made: it
-was all just right; there was the admirable, incarnate.
-
-Thence, his judgment reinforced, his gaze swept back to Isabel. There
-it was all just wrong: criticism could run riot; there, incarnate,
-was the second-rate. Second-rate? Blind instinct protested, and
-pointed the way to a discovery. Isabel was not second-rate. By every
-rule she should have been, but second-rate she was not. Strangely,
-unaccountably not. The rules in this case seemed to have collapsed.
-There, at all events, was everything that normally makes up the
-second-rate--cheapness, tawdriness, untidiness. But these items could
-not be added up to make the expected total. He hated his consciousness
-that in her was something--something that he recognised almost as an
-old friend--character, enthusiasm, whatever it was, that exempted her
-from ordinary rules. And, as he chafed against himself for not being
-able to pass the whole-hearted condemnation that his fastidiousness
-clamoured for, so he doubly chafed against the mystery in her that
-imposed so illogical, so unreasonable a limitation on his judgment,
-and forced him to feel, in what all the laws of taste denounced, a
-monstrous, fantastic fascination that defied analysis and resistance.
-
-‘So nice,’ he heard Gundred saying; ‘and then you will go with us to
-Ivescar, I hope--our place in Yorkshire. I have never been there yet,
-of course, so you and I will have great fun exploring it--yes?’
-
-‘Too glorious for words!’ cried Isabel irrelevantly, her eyes roaming
-eagerly from wall to wall of the little low room. ‘I have never dreamt
-of a fairy-palace like this. That panelling! Oh, it’s too precious.
-And the beautiful dim dustiness of it all! One feels as if one
-were trespassing on the domain of ghosts. These tiny, crazy, oaken
-parlours--they must be simply soaked with memories.’
-
-‘Nice little rooms--yes?’ said Gundred complacently, contriving to
-reprove such undisciplined enthusiasm by the very gentleness with
-which she accepted it. ‘Dusty’ did not seem to her at all a fitting
-compliment to pay the oldest wing of Brakelond. She was certain that
-the housemaids discharged their duty perfectly.
-
-‘Nice!’ cried Isabel ardently; ‘what a ridiculous word! They are the
-haunt of dead centuries. Don’t you feel either primeval or irreverent
-every time you drink a cup of tea here?’
-
-‘Oh no,’ replied Gundred mildly. ‘I hope I should never have such
-dreadful feelings anywhere, and the rooms are really quite convenient.
-The only thing is that they are so cut off from the rest of the Castle.
-You’ll see to-morrow. This wing stands right away from the rest of the
-building, on a spur of rock that drops straight into the sea. They are
-all wood, these rooms--the oldest part of Brakelond.’
-
-‘I know I thought I had walked miles before we got here,’ replied
-Isabel--‘miles, through the most fascinating dreadful dark halls and
-passages, just like the dim labyrinths in a Maeterlinck Castle.’
-
-‘Yes,’ answered Gundred; ‘it takes the servants quite a time to answer
-the bell; and if one didn’t use hot irons in the urn it would be cold
-before it got to us. And what one would do if anybody fainted or
-anything I simply can’t imagine. There is just one long passage leading
-to these rooms, and all the servants are ever so far away in the
-Georgian part.’
-
-‘Well,’ said Isabel, ‘you can make this your last resort. When the
-Castle is carried by invaders or catches fire, you can run out here,
-and shut yourselves up on your little promontory, and nobody will ever
-be able to get at you again.’
-
-‘This wouldn’t be at all a good place if the Castle took fire,’ said
-Gundred--‘built of wood, and no other way out. But everything is very
-safe, I am truly thankful to say. Our great-uncle Henry saw to all that
-before he was taken poorly.’
-
-For a moment she was the Mortimer, talking to a Mortimer, and leaving
-her husband outside the conversation. He, for his part, did not notice
-the recurrence of that little, proudly conscious yet unconscious
-inflection in her voice. He was too much absorbed in watching Isabel.
-The returned colonial was even more obviously the daughter of Brakelond
-than was Gundred. The vividness of her personality was in full
-harmony with the stern old building to which Gundred’s nature only
-occasionally chimed in tune. Isabel was the contemporary of Brakelond.
-The contrast between the two women was that between a jungle and a
-Dutch garden--between a passionate, loose-petalled rose and a decorous,
-shapely lily. And, though the lily had its place in the pleasance
-of Brakelond, though the Dutch garden might be thrust into its vast
-scheme, yet the true frame of the Castle was the untamable wildness
-of the forest, its most inevitable ornament the glowing ardour of the
-rose. In the long list of all who had been March and Brakelond here and
-there a lily-life occurred, it is true; but the rose, flaming, riotous,
-red, must always stand for the fittest emblem of the Mortimers.
-
-Suddenly Isabel turned upon Kingston, growing conscious of his
-attention.
-
-‘Why do you stare at me?’ she asked. ‘Have we met each other before?’
-
-Kingston doubted; a sense of renewed acquaintance was very strong upon
-him. ‘No,’ he replied; ‘we have never met before. I don’t see how we
-can ever have met before.’
-
-‘Surely not, dear--no?’ added Gundred.
-
-‘I believe,’ said Isabel abruptly, ‘that one has met everyone in the
-world before, and that every now and then one remembers something here
-and there. Your husband and I have probably met in a dream, or--perhaps
-we loved or hated each other thousands of years ago, or our ancestors
-did, which is the same thing.’
-
-‘Oh, I don’t believe that,’ answered Gundred, gentle, but shocked.
-‘That’s evolution, isn’t it? A horrid idea--yes?’
-
-Kingston, meanwhile, with stern loyalty, forced himself to compare the
-neat and ladylike blankness of Gundred’s mind with the uncontrolled
-wanderings of her cousin’s. He himself might have much the same ideas
-as Isabel, but how much more restful and proper for a woman to abide by
-conventional views. So he denied his own feelings, and disliked more
-than ever the untidy apostle who seemed to have a mind as restless as
-his own.
-
-Isabel began developing her theme excitedly--talked of the innumerable
-ghosts of Brakelond, of inherited memories, previous existences, and
-the impossibility of supposing that life begins abruptly at birth
-and ends at death. No friend, at the best of times, to abstract
-discussions, Gundred had the orderly-minded wife’s intense dislike of
-such a display in the mouth of another, and an unmarried, woman. In a
-man it was permissible, if regrettable; in a wife it was reprehensible
-and unwomanly, though not utterly unpardonable; but in a mere maiden it
-was a dishonour to her sex, a brazen revolution, a discarding of that
-spiritual chastity which makes the really nice girl’s mind a closed and
-cloistered garden, impossible of access. Accordingly she made haste to
-nip the conversation.
-
-‘You must be so tired,’ said Gundred, rising suddenly from her chair.
-‘I am sure you will be glad to go to bed--yes?’
-
-Isabel was one of the people whom a long journey animates and inspires.
-Quite careless as to smuts, dishevelled locks, and crooked hats, she
-was at her best in that weary hour of arrival which makes other women
-rush to looking-glasses. However, Gundred’s tones clearly conveyed
-the impression that etiquette, if not common politeness, demanded
-agreement with her statement. Isabel admitted that she was tired
-accordingly, and allowed herself to be guided to her room.
-
-Kingston and Gundred grew closer thenceforth. The warmth of their
-first married days seemed to have returned. Kingston, in the ardour
-with which he regarded his wife, was secretly indemnifying her for
-that obstinate folly in his own heart which refused to condemn the
-new-comer absolutely. He took countervailing pains to emphasize his
-love and admiration for Gundred. And she, realizing that he loved her
-more keenly, thanks to the comparison with Isabel, yielded to her own
-heart’s desire, passed from acquiescence to reciprocation, and was
-delighted to find how successfully she emerged from the comparison, and
-shone by the side of ragged, reckless Isabel. If Kingston could not
-divine, or dared not divine, the deep current of emotion that underlay
-his actions, how much less could such a subtlety be expected of his
-wife? She noticed with joy that Isabel was in every way the foil best
-calculated to show off her own perfections. She rejoiced to find that
-her husband was as keen-eyed as herself for the edifying contrast,
-and, though already conceiving a disapproving distrust of Isabel,
-believed so strongly that her presence would assure the continuation
-of Kingston’s renewed warmth that she decided to prolong her cousin’s
-visit to the uttermost.
-
-Her motives in making the suggestion were also her husband’s in
-accepting them. He was glad to find himself so appreciating that nice
-precision of Gundred’s which he had been beginning to find monotonous;
-and, when she suggested that Isabel should more or less make a home
-with them till she married, he let himself believe that her presence
-would perpetually fire his admiration for Gundred, and fell gladly in
-with his wife’s benevolent design.
-
-‘Poor darling,’ said Gundred; ‘she wants forming so. It will be
-quite like training a child. I never saw anyone who was so--so--just
-_any_how--yes?’
-
-‘A bit all over the place, certainly. Well, she couldn’t do better than
-copy you. And you might give her a hat or two. But not that one you
-wore in the garden this afternoon.’
-
-‘Did you like it, dear?’
-
-‘Most awfully. It made one feel so cool and summery.’
-
-‘How nice of you to notice my hats, dear! No other woman’s husband does
-that.’
-
-‘I always notice everything you wear. Every line of you, every bow and
-ribbon. But I can’t always tell you what I think of you. You won’t
-often let me. You hold one at arm’s length, and make one think one’s
-self silly and childish. If you knew how much one loved every detail of
-you, you wouldn’t make one feel such a violent ass every time one tries
-to express what one feels.’
-
-‘But I don’t want to make you feel an idiot, Kingston darling. It is
-sweet to hear you say how much you--care about me. It seems to make
-my whole life seem warm and comfortable. Never leave off feeling as
-you do. I think I am always glad to know you feel like that, and
-I--well, I do enjoy hearing you tell me so from time to time. But in
-the daylight, somehow, it seems undignified and--a little common, to
-exchange rhapsodies. And yet I love to think the rhapsodies are there.
-And--don’t you find it makes them more precious to keep them rare--yes?’
-
-To Kingston a feeling unexpressed was apt, sooner or later, to
-degenerate into atrophy. But in the warmth of the moment he entered
-into Gundred’s point of view. Her reserves seemed beautiful and well
-bred by the side of his deliberate recollection of Isabel and her
-leaping, uncontrolled enthusiasms.
-
-‘Perhaps you are right, you exquisite thing,’ he answered. ‘But now and
-then you ought to let me speak. I must tell you now and then, in word
-as well as in deed, that you are the most exquisite thing in the world,
-the most dainty, the most well-finished, the most adorable thing in
-the whole world. Altogether without a fault or a blemish you are, like
-a clear polished jewel; one is for ever seeing a fresh facet of your
-perfection.’
-
-‘Oh, Kingston, you really mustn’t say such things. It can’t be right. I
-am sure you are flattering me.’
-
-‘Ah, that is your usual answer. You always cut me short whenever I try
-to tell you what I feel for you. You make love seem silly and indecent.
-You are always trying to nip it in the bud.’
-
-Gundred hesitated. Then she smiled. ‘Well, Kingston dear,’ she said,
-‘I have not had to nip it in the bud so often lately--no? You have not
-given me the chance so very often.’
-
-‘One gets tired of being rebuffed and chilled and made to feel a
-demonstrative, tiresome fool.’
-
-‘Not tiresome, darling. And, Kingston, whatever I say, you--you--well,
-you need not always pay _quite_ so much attention to it, need you? One
-sometimes says a thing because one ought to, not because one means
-it--yes? I don’t think I am always quite such a chilly fish as you seem
-to imagine. You must not always judge by what one says. I--well, I love
-everything you say and do, dear. Don’t ever leave off because you think
-I don’t approve. I do, Kingston, whatever I may say--I approve, because
-it is you. Only you must not expect me to say so in the daytime, with
-the sun showing up everything, and servants all over the place. I
-hardly like to say it, even here in the dark, with nobody to see. It
-seems to put me into your power too much.’
-
-‘Into my power! Well, I am in yours. That is what marriage is. I am
-between your hands--between those wonderful little cool hands of yours,
-Gundred. What will you do with me? Crumple me up and throw me away, or
-drop me on the rocks, as if I were a toad? That is what your civilized
-daytime manner seems to threaten every now and then. Or will you keep
-me safe, and stroke my fur the right way, and keep me warm?’
-
-‘I like to hear that my stupid hands can do such wonderful things. Do
-you really admire my hands, Kingston dear?’
-
-‘They are just carved ivory fresh from the hands of God. There is
-nothing human or hot or earthly about them. They are fresh and calm,
-and without spot or frailty. They are the most lovely hands that ever
-woman had.’
-
-‘Prettier than poor Isabel’s--no?’
-
-‘Poor Isabel? With her hands like a pair of boxing-gloves? Don’t let
-us talk about great floppy Isabel now. It is only you I want to talk
-about. You are the only person in the world.’
-
-‘Oh, you mustn’t be so unkind about poor Cousin Isabel,’ protested
-Gundred, purring with unconscious pleasure. ‘You must remember she did
-not make herself. And think how tiresome it would be if there were
-nobody different from me in the whole world. It takes all sorts to make
-a world, dear, yes?’
-
-‘No, it doesn’t, wonder-lady. The whole world is nothing but a huge
-infinite room of mirrors, reflecting you, always and everywhere.
-Hundreds, thousands, millions of you, that is what I see in the world.
-How can I make you believe me?’
-
-To make one’s self believe one’s own statements is, unfortunately,
-a far easier task than to make other people believe them. However,
-Gundred’s mind asked nothing better than to be convinced, and the
-roseate state of her rapture was far above analysis and metaphysics.
-
-‘I am sure you would not say such a thing if you did not mean it,
-dear,’ she said. ‘It is a beautiful thought of yours. But you must
-not grudge poor Isabel a home with us until she marries. After all,
-whatever her shortcomings, poor darling, she _is_ my cousin. And so it
-won’t be long before she marries. It’s not as if she were just nobody
-in particular.’
-
-Kingston, convinced that the presence of Isabel reinforced his
-admiration for Gundred, made no opposition.
-
-‘Well,’ he said, ‘I don’t suppose it will make much difference to us.
-She is not the kind of woman who is likely to come between husband and
-wife.’ He laughed.
-
-‘I am certain she is not, poor darling!’ assented Gundred. ‘We must
-try to pull her into shape and teach her better,’ she added, with
-meditative earnestness, as if coming between husband and wife were the
-especial object of a woman’s life and training. ‘And yet, I believe
-there are men who admire that sort of girl, Kingston. I never can
-understand a man liking a woman who cannot put on a hat properly, but
-everybody says they do. I remember Mary Capplethwaite; she was neater
-than a new pin, with her hair most beautifully done, and the sweetest
-little face. But that did not prevent her husband from running away
-with Mildred Gunston, who always looked as if she had been left out
-all night in the wind and the rain. Of course, dear Mary may have got
-a little monotonous, but, still, I do think it is a great thing to be
-tidy and nice--yes?’
-
-‘That is all a man asks of a woman,’ answered Kingston. ‘And one might
-ask it for ever of your cousin Isabel, and never get it, I imagine. One
-knows that type of woman so well. The idea is that inferior clothes
-show a superior soul. The poor things believe that they reveal the
-beauty, and the freedom, and the preciousness of their individuality
-by neglecting everything that makes the ordinary woman desirable. They
-think they are above using the means that no really clever woman ever
-disdains. They are the half-baked, the half-clever, the weak, feeble
-copies of the strong-minded, strong-souled creatures they imitate and
-think they are. One meets them at Oxford; the place swarms with them.
-They sham genius by means of untidiness. Half of them are tailor-made
-and half of them are æsthetic--in blue plush sleeves and moulting
-terra-cotta-coloured plumes, or in short skirts and boat-shaped hats
-with a cock’s feather on one side. How well I know it; and that is your
-Cousin Isabel.’
-
-‘You really mustn’t dislike the poor darling so dreadfully, dear. We
-must make her happy with us. But I am so glad that you agree with me
-about that kind of woman. I never can see why one’s hair should not be
-properly done, however clever one is--yes? _I_ have never wanted to be
-dishevelled or slovenly. We must gradually get poor Isabel into the way
-of thinking about her appearance a little more. After all, she ought
-to look at least well-bred, dear, and even now she has one or two good
-features.’
-
-But Kingston would not agree. He grew forcible on the new-comer’s
-imperfections, and would allow her no saving grace of line or carriage.
-She was all wrong. He insisted on the fact, proved it again and again,
-revelled in it, and turned it to the glorification of his wife.
-Gundred, for her part, made a weak defence; without quite knowing
-it, she drew joy and sustenance from her husband’s condemnation of
-her cousin. It seemed an earnest of his love’s ardour. So she merely
-palliated Isabel’s faults, and was more glad to challenge admiration
-for herself by their discovery than sorry that such blemishes should be
-brought to light. Sweetly and lovingly did she encourage her husband’s
-criticisms with her mild protests. Her line was to admit her cousin’s
-shortcomings, but to declare that she loved her notwithstanding. Thus
-she preserved the full delight of the comparison, while at the same
-time preserving also the proper loyalty of a Mortimer for a Mortimer.
-But her daylight dignity had melted; the loyalty of a Mortimer was felt
-to be now subordinate to that of a wife. Gundred had the happy power of
-making a virtue of everything she did, no matter what inconsistencies
-her actions might seem to involve. Husband and wife continued to make
-love over the faults of their cousin, and it was decided with joy
-that the woman whose weaknesses could be turned to such delectable
-account must on no account be allowed to deprive them of her company.
-Isabel was to live with them, to go with them to Ivescar, to serve as
-a perpetual whetstone for Kingston’s admiration of Gundred. Some day
-she would undoubtedly marry, but meanwhile Gundred’s kindness should
-achieve the double end of giving her cousin a home and turning her
-cousin’s existence to a profitable purpose.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-
-The next morning Isabel was as late as Kingston. Gundred condoned the
-offence on the score of fatigue, but Kingston regarded it with that
-severity we always show to our own pet faults when we meet them in
-people we dislike. Daylight added nothing and softened nothing in
-his first impressions as to his wife’s cousin. Still untidy, still
-disorderly, still ebullient, Isabel was as reprehensible as ever in
-all she did and said, and Kingston’s irritation grew as he noticed
-how often she said what he would have said himself, how she caught
-his own flying thoughts while Gundred’s mind was still loitering in
-their track, or busy with the teapot; how unable his instinct still
-was to endorse the opinion of his reason that Isabel was altogether
-unworthy of notice. Without seeming to, without caring to, she claimed
-his notice, insisted on it, held it; and as the day went by, he found
-himself looking at her again and again with reluctant interest. Each
-time he forced himself to notice a loose strand of hair, a brooch
-unfastened, a hook and eye gone wrong; but not the most strenuous
-disapproval of details could kill his angry curiosity as to the
-personality of which they made part. As she talked, her wide mouth,
-with its scarlet lips, flickered and flashed at every feeling, and her
-great eyes blazed at him, now green, now grey, now gold, till the white
-was visible all round, and he felt himself bound in the magnetism of
-their stare. Isabel had accepted Gundred’s proposal with equanimity.
-Yes, she would make a part of their household gladly, until such
-time, she said, as she married or eloped. What Gundred had meant--at
-least, in part--as a favour done to the poor colonial cousin, the
-poor colonial cousin accepted with the high calm of perfect equality,
-easily, gracefully, and without a second thought or any emphasis of
-gratitude. Gundred felt that her cousin’s manner of receiving favours
-lacked something; she made them seem mere services; and her words,
-too, sounded flippant and offhand to Gundred, who clung to small
-politenesses and the proper observances of courtesy.
-
-They were sitting out, all three, in the small square garden. The day
-was sultry and mysterious, with curling heavy masses of white and
-fawn-coloured cloud towering high over the rim of a pallid sea. Behind,
-the mass of the Castle was of a bronzy-rose in the strange light,
-dreamlike and splendid. In bed and border no flower stirred, and the
-scent of roses rose straight into the leaden air like so many spires
-of faint invisible smoke. They sat looking out towards the edge of the
-world, the unwavering dim line of water that stretched beyond the old
-wing of King Mark’s Chapel. Above all the rest of the Castle Isabel
-loved to look at that old haphazard rickle of rooms, that crazy hive of
-long-dead activities, which stood out from the rest of the building on
-its defiant promontory over the sea. It was a little barnacle, growing
-off the hulk of Brakelond, and attached only by the slender stalk of
-one narrow passage, at whose outer end was its cluster of buildings,
-the low squat chapel, then the rooms where Kingston, Gundred, and
-Isabel had their dwelling, and, above, a second story, a series of low
-rooms at present uninhabited.
-
-‘Ivescar?’ said Isabel. ‘Ivescar--oh yes, thank you very much, Gundred.
-I shall be ever so pleased to go to Ivescar. Oh, those little rooms of
-ours are too delicious for words. And there’s no ivy too; that would
-make them conventional. I love them. I don’t think the Castle does,
-though. They seem too proud to belong to it. They keep themselves to
-themselves. The ghosts are happier there than in the big tower. My room
-was simply crammed with them, Gundred. All last night they hovered
-about.’
-
-‘You don’t say so!’ exclaimed Gundred. ‘How dreadfully inconvenient!
-I do hope they did not keep you awake, dear. Do you really believe in
-them? Surely not--no? One believes that God would never allow such
-things. Anyhow, we must be very careful not to let the servants hear
-about them, or all the housemaids will be giving notice. But I was
-talking about Ivescar. We thought of going there in quite a few days
-now. The summer is getting on, and Kingston wants to show me to all
-our people there--tenants and so forth. One feels it rather one’s
-duty--yes?’
-
-‘Ivescar?’ repeated Isabel; ‘I don’t think I am very much interested in
-Ivescar, am I? Of course, I am looking forward to going there. But it
-cannot be anything like this. And I belong here. I am sure I do. It is
-not anything like this, Gundred?’
-
-‘Oh, dear me, no, of course not. There isn’t anything like this
-anywhere. Ivescar is just a nice modern place, large and comfortable,
-but quite modern. I haven’t been there yet, but Kingston has told
-me all about it. His father bought it, estate and all, when he
-married--didn’t he, Kingston?’
-
-‘Yes,’ replied her husband; ‘he chose a county as far away as possible
-from all his own people in Kent. They quarrelled with him when he
-married, and now none of them will have anything to do with us. So he
-thought when it came to settling down as a landed proprietor and all
-the rest of it--my mother’s pet fancy, that was--that he would go right
-away to the other corner of England. So now our own family, the Dadds,
-are still sitting in Darnley-on-Downe, watching the coal-pits that
-support the head of the clan at the other end of the country. It is a
-quaint irony.’
-
-‘Haven’t you any exciting possibilities among your relations?’ asked
-Isabel, turning to him. ‘They sound a little stodgy, to say nothing of
-the fact that they have all cut you.’
-
-‘Well, there is a mystery, I believe. An uncle, a brother of my
-father’s, who ran away to Japan, and is now a Buddhist Abbot or Bishop,
-or something of the kind. But for all the excitement one is ever likely
-to get out of him, he might as well never have been born. He is twelve
-thousand miles away, and we shall probably never set eyes on him again.’
-
-Gundred looked a little pained, and made haste to divert the
-conversation from this irreligious topic, just as Isabel was about to
-burst out into enthusiastic curiosity.
-
-‘So Mr. Darnley bought this delightful estate in Yorkshire, and there
-is no use thinking of unpleasant things in the past. Nothing could
-sound nicer than Ivescar. Describe it, Kingston.’
-
-‘Oh, well, it sits right up among the fells and moors, just under one
-of the big mountains, in a tiny little bare glen all of its own. It
-is a stern, splendid country, very large and stiff and barren, up at
-Ivescar, and then, down below, there is a great fat valley, all smooth
-and smiling, that rolls away westward to the sea. There are jolly
-rivers and waterfalls all about in the hills, too, and wonderful caves
-and crevasses and pitfalls. It’s quite unlike anything else in England,
-and it grows on one in the most extraordinary way. There is something
-very primeval and mysterious about it.’
-
-‘And capital shooting,’ added Gundred. ‘Such nice moors, they tell
-me, Isabel. We will go up and have lunch with the guns as often as we
-can--yes?’
-
-‘Yes, the moors are gorgeous,’ said Kingston. ‘I don’t shoot myself; I
-have given it up. But the moors are certainly gorgeous. One can lose
-one’s self on them for hours, and probably fall into potholes and
-things.’
-
-‘Oh, you must take up your shooting again, dear,’ protested Gundred,
-who had the usual tender-hearted woman’s ambition that her husband
-should destroy innocent lives as lavishly and enthusiastically and
-successfully as fashion demands. ‘You must certainly take it up again.
-I do think it such a good thing for a man to have some interest in
-life, don’t you, Isabel--something for him to do in the country--yes?’
-
-Isabel abruptly let this uninteresting development of the conversation
-lapse unanswered.
-
-‘The country does sound attractive,’ she conceded, turning eager eyes
-on Kingston. ‘And you talk of it as if you belonged there. But you
-don’t, of course.’
-
-‘No, but my dear mother has spent so many years pretending to that
-the pretence is second nature by now. Dear mother! it used to be the
-funniest thing in the world to see her playing at the Old Established
-Family. It was her great ambition, and she drilled my poor father day
-and night into acting the squire. By now I verily believe she has
-persuaded herself that we have been settled at Ivescar for half a dozen
-centuries at least. She goes about among the tenants with the most
-splendid air of having known them all, and all their families, since
-the days of Edward the Confessor. There’s nothing so genuine as a good
-imitation--except that the good imitation is generally too good, and
-overdoes itself.’
-
-‘Well,’ said Isabel, ‘you have fired me with a longing for the
-mountains and the caves and waterfalls. But what is the house itself
-like?’
-
-At this point Gundred caught them up again. She had dropped out of the
-dialogue in a twinge of decorous annoyance at the cavalier way in which
-Isabel had ignored her opening on sport and shelved the conversation.
-
-‘A very nice house, Kingston tells me,’ she put in. ‘Built about a
-hundred years ago. Very comfortable and convenient.’
-
-‘Ah, I know,’ interrupted Isabel. ‘That tells me everything. All
-of the best Early-Victorian Tudor. Everything solid and handsome
-and expensive, with a picture of your husband’s father in the
-hall, life-size, carrying a gun and a dead rabbit. I can imagine
-Ivescar--just a house--just a thing with doors and roofs and
-windows--simply a place to live in. Now, this, this’--she waved her
-hands comprehensively--‘this isn’t a place to live in. It’s a place
-that lives on people. Here it’s the people that are subordinate to
-the building. At Ivescar nobody cares about the house except for the
-people. The house only exists to keep their feet warm, and send them up
-their dinner all cosy and hot from the kitchen. Yes, Ivescar is a place
-to live in, and this is a place to die in. One can’t imagine one’s self
-dying in an ordinary house. Death is too big a thing to come under its
-nice squatty ceilings. One feels the whole thing would fly in flinders;
-Death would lift the roof off, and burst the walls, if he came in. He
-is so large. But one could die here, and the setting would not be a bit
-mean or unsuited to the drama. Any nice, carpety, cushiony building
-does to live in; one wants a really-truly house to die in--a place
-where one can receive the Great Visitor without feeling cramped or
-undignified or cheap. Imagine dying in a chintz bedroom, with enamelled
-tin baths and foot-pans and hot-water cans.’
-
-‘Lots of people do,’ protested Kingston. ‘I suppose they have the
-Elizabethan feeling that the play is more important than its setting.’
-
-‘Oh, but they don’t die at all,’ cried Isabel. ‘Very few people are
-great and holy enough to die. Nine people out of ten just change
-shapes and go on again. You can tell that by the fuss they make. One
-always fusses more when one harries about at a junction than when one
-arrives at a terminus. Most people, when they come to die, are simply
-getting out of one train and into another on their journey. Arriving
-at the end is a much more simple solemn business. That is what I mean
-by dying. And for that one needs a splendid stage. It is a far leap
-into Nirvana, and if one is to make it, one wants a good take-off,
-a running jump from a strong springy board, with nothing to trammel
-one and lessen one’s movements. To hop along into another mean little
-manifestation, as most people do, requires very little outside help.
-It is hardly more than a shuffle from one bed to another. One does not
-want any spring-board for that.’
-
-‘I expect,’ said Kingston, ‘that a vast number of quiet good people
-reach Nirvana without big jumps or spring-boards, or anything of the
-sort. They go on living obscure, kindly lives, and then, at the end of
-everything, they just gently slip away and cease, and enter Nirvana
-without any splash at all.’
-
-‘Ah, those are the people who go on the great journey without luggage.
-But the average person takes any amount of packages and parcels with
-him, all kinds of fears and fusses and hopes and terrors. And the
-reason why he makes such a to-do whenever he has to change trains or
-carriages is because he is so afraid he may leave one of the precious
-bundles behind. He thinks they are his individuality, just as a decent
-woman thinks that her clothes are hers. In fact, scarcely anyone
-can conceive an idea of himself without his trappings. And so, all
-along the Great Railway, you have people wailing and shrinking at the
-thought of death. They know, in their heart of hearts, that at each
-change they leave one or two of the bundles behind--a fear or a hate
-or a habit--and they cannot understand that they can continue to be
-themselves without the bundles. They think, as I said, that the bundles
-are an essential part of themselves; whereas it is not till one has
-gradually shed all one’s bundles that one can hope to arrive, one’s
-own real unhampered self, at the Terminus. It is only the Self that is
-meant to arrive, not the bundles. They are the common property of all,
-like clothes and rugs and umbrellas, but each man’s self is a lone,
-isolated thing.’
-
-She spoke with her usual fire, urgently, with hands lavishly waved, and
-blazing eyes. Gundred, quite out of the talk, left behind in the lower
-world, looked on with bewildered disapproval.
-
-‘Travelling is a great trouble--yes?’ she hazarded. ‘I always have as
-little luggage as possible.’
-
-Kingston dropped back into Gundred’s world with a crash. He had been
-interested and uplifted on the wings of his cousin’s fantasies. He
-could meet her flying in that empyrean of ideas. He loved the vague,
-dim regions of her thought. Gundred, without clipping his wings, kept
-him tethered to her own perch. Happily she clucked and hopped with him
-in the glittering cage--a hen-soul yoked with a restless hawk’s. Now,
-out of the free air beyond, had appeared a second hawk, and insensibly
-Kingston’s wings began to flutter uneasily for a flight.
-
-‘Yes,’ he said rather savagely, answering an unspoken question. ‘No
-wonder poor Gundred can’t understand such mists and inanities. Have you
-any idea what you mean, Isabel?’
-
-His irritation was all against Gundred’s inadequacy. It showed her
-almost in an inferior light. Characteristically, though, he diverted
-his annoyance to the score of his cousin’s mysticism, and unburdened on
-her the feelings that his wife had engendered.
-
-‘Idea?’ replied Isabel scornfully. ‘No; why should I? If anyone ever
-stopped to think what their words really meant, and refused to speak
-until they had found out, why, no one would ever open their lips
-again. Man sends the words, and Heaven, we trust, sends the meaning.
-I have vague notions of a meaning very far away above and beyond all
-the harassing futilities of language, beyond the domain of grammar and
-derivations and split infinitives and metaphors and things. But of
-course one can’t hit it; one can only aim at it. One shoots off into
-the clouds in the hope of sometimes winging a truth. There’s no use
-sitting and aiming, aiming, aiming; one has to up with the gun of one’s
-mind and blaze away. Nine times out of ten one misses dead, but bit by
-bit one gets practice, just as in earthly shooting, until at last one
-has attained a good average level of success, though I am afraid till
-the end of the chapter one only wings Truth, never gets it fair and
-square in the heart.’
-
-‘Shall we go in and have tea--yes?’ said Gundred, with gentle dignity,
-into which was mixed a fine proportion of reproof. She rose and moved
-towards the door. Isabel looked after her.
-
-‘I have shocked Gundred,’ she said candidly and callously. ‘I suppose
-I was bound to. She is too fascinating and pretty for words, but I
-don’t feel, somehow, as if her soul and mine were really cousins. I’m
-sorry if I have hurt her. It is all my fault. One is such a fool. One
-gets interested in an idea, and off one goes at score, and nothing else
-matters in the world but the hunting of it down. You are like that,
-too, though you are pretending hard not to be. Why do you? Are you
-trying to match Gundred? You’ll never be able to, you know.’
-
-She looked up at him, laughing. Her face had a radiant, exasperating
-vitality. In that moment he disliked her more even for what she had
-than for what she lacked.
-
-‘Don’t see how you can possibly tell that,’ he said, standing over her,
-with his hand on the back of his wife’s chair; ‘and I don’t see that it
-matters--to you, at all events.’
-
-‘A perfect match,’ continued Isabel, pursuing her thought with no
-attention to Kingston--‘a perfect match--I suppose it is when neither
-husband nor wife is a match for the other. No, it doesn’t matter a bit.
-Only I am interested. I always am. I have only just arrived from the
-back of beyond, and yet I feel as if I had known you both--known you,
-at least, for half a dozen centuries. I can see all sorts of odd things
-in your mind--things that you have no idea of. You are quite naked to
-me as I look at you.’
-
-Kingston conceived an instant red desire to shake and maltreat this
-insolent barbarian.
-
-‘Are you coming in to tea?’ he asked, turning away as if to leave her.
-
-Isabel sat up in the long garden chair in which she had been lounging.
-
-‘Stop,’ she said.
-
-Angrily, against his will, he stopped and turned towards her. Her voice
-compelled him. Unknown voices were answering her in his heart.
-
-‘Well?’ he asked, trying to mitigate the animosity that surged within
-him, no less at her demeanour than at the power she exerted.
-
-‘Don’t be so angry with me,’ she replied; ‘or don’t be angrier than you
-can help. I am a moral hooligan; I am quite irresponsible. So you need
-not think me more odious than I am. Honestly I mean no harm. But one
-must amuse one’s self.’
-
-‘Necessarily by annoying everyone else?’ asked Kingston as amiably as
-he could.
-
-‘I don’t mean to,’ said Isabel; ‘nobody ever cared less about annoying
-people than I do.’ She rose swiftly, with a certain lithe splendour of
-movement. ‘Listen,’ she said in a new voice of seriousness, her eyes
-on a level with his: ‘I have an impulse. I will tell you the truth, as
-far as I can. Perhaps you think that what I say and do is simply bad
-manners and sheer native offensiveness. It isn’t that. It is that I
-don’t care--neither what happens, nor what I say, nor what anyone else
-in all the world may say or think or do. I don’t care a damn. Not a
-single solitary. I never have. And, of course, that simplifies conduct
-immensely, though I admit it may make one a little trying to live with
-at times. Do you understand?’
-
-She spoke calmly, indifferently. But in every word she spoke he
-could hear the note of a perfect pride, of a pride so intense as
-to be quite careless, quite impersonal, quite unself-conscious. It
-was true that she did not care. But her indifference was based on
-no obtrusive conceit, on no selfish ill-breeding, no instinct for
-flamboyance and advertisement. It was the deep base of her nature,
-a serene impermeability to other people’s opinion, and Gundred had
-something of the same quality; but Gundred was indifferent because her
-pride made her feel superior to all the world. The pride of Isabel was
-that higher, more terrific pride which leaps beyond a mere comparison
-of one’s self with others, and is simply an all-absorbing sense of
-individuality. Whether Isabel was superior to others she never cared
-to stop and consider; all she cared for was the thought that she was
-she and they were they. The comparison was still there, but implicit,
-subconscious, tacit. Her personality defied criticism by ignoring it.
-Kingston suddenly found the serene audacity of her attitude a challenge
-to his interest.
-
-To wake feeling in such a Stylites of egoism, to win her praise or her
-condemnation, would be a task more piquant to a professed emotionalist
-than any seduction to a sensualist. To seduce the mind of Isabel, to
-draw it down from its heights, and force it to feel, fear, or hate--at
-least, to abandon its indifferentism, there was a test of skill. Had
-the indifference been a pose, the task would have been cheap, lacking
-in adventure. That it was mere undecorated nature was at once the
-defender’s great strength and the besieger’s strong attraction. It
-challenged arrogantly, irresistibly. Then Kingston remembered how much
-he disliked his cousin, and refused to hear the call. Strenuously he
-shut his ears to it, and gave her appeal a colourless answer.
-
-‘In some ways,’ he said, ‘I suppose it is as well not to care what
-people think or say. But the position is always an ungraceful one, and
-is certain ruin to one’s hopes of popularity. However, if you don’t
-care, of course, popularity does not matter to you, either one way or
-the other.’
-
-‘No,’ said Isabel; ‘one demands it, and expects it. And if one doesn’t
-get it as one’s right, one refuses to accept it as anyone’s favour.
-And obviously the lack of it can make no real difference. How can
-unpopularity affect one’s opinion of one’s self? And that is the only
-thing in the world that really does matter. By that alone one rises or
-falls, is glorified or condemned.’ She spoke quietly and carelessly, as
-much to herself as to him or the world at large. Just so, in such cool,
-insolently indifferent tones might Queen Isabel have discussed her own
-attitude from a dispassionate external point of view.
-
-‘Incidentally,’ replied Kingston, ‘one runs the risk of giving any
-amount of pain to any number of inoffensive people.’
-
-‘Now you are trying to make me feel a brute,’ answered Isabel. ‘But
-it is no good. If they are hurt, it is their own fault. Pain always
-implies some weakness in the person who suffers it. And you can’t make
-one person responsible for the inherent weaknesses of another, just
-because his action has stirred certain hidden symptoms to life. You
-might just as well scold me if I gave a tea-party, and somebody with
-advanced consumption got a cold at it, and died off. The disease was
-in him, not in me or my tea-party. And moral suffering is the symptom
-of a sort of moral phthisis. Only the diseased can suffer. So, as
-long as my actions are sane and healthy in themselves, you must not
-call them names if they happen to stumble on weak spots and corns in
-other people’s natures. I never knew the corns were there. I simply
-went my way. Everyone has a right to. Everyone must. And one is only
-responsible to one’s self, and only responsible for one’s self. So much
-for your accusation of hurting other people.’
-
-‘I never heard anything so callous in my life. If you were as bad as
-your words you would be a perfect fiend. But, mercifully, everyone in
-the world is better than their words, and worse than their thoughts.’
-
-‘Ah! you are a sentimentalist, Kingston. I am a realist.’
-
-‘Everyone thinks himself that. The only difference between the
-sentimentalist and the realist is that the sentimentalist’s reality is
-warm and beautiful, while the realist’s is glacial and hideous. And
-they are neither of them real realities, either. The real reality has
-something of both, and a great deal more than either or both together.
-Each view is only a glimpse of the great whole.’
-
-‘Yes; that’s not a bad idea. However old one may grow or think one’s
-self, one remains astonishingly much of a baby in the face of the
-immensities. I suppose to take any point of view is childish. One ought
-to take them all together, all at once--be a drunkard and a teetotaler
-and a bishop and a butcher and a thief and a saint all at one moment in
-one’s own person. That is the only way to get the perfect knowledge.
-And that, I suppose, is what the idea of God is. To understand
-everything by being everything. However, as that is so, I don’t think
-one need be ashamed of being a baby with lop-sided, partial, babyish
-views and fanaticisms.’
-
-‘Perhaps not. But you seemed to be proud of it. There is a great
-difference between being proud and not being ashamed.’
-
-‘Yes, Kingston, there is. And I admit it. And I give in. And I am
-defeated. And I want my tea. And I will try to behave prettily. And be
-an altruist with the tea-cake instead of an individualist.’
-
-Concessions occasionally mollify. But Isabel made hers so abruptly,
-so flippantly that it seemed as if she threw up the battle not
-conscientiously, but because she no longer thought it worth the trouble
-of fighting. Irritation swept over Kingston at being thus cheated
-like a child--played with, flouted, and put by as soon as the game
-had begun to weary the older player. His little victory lost all its
-satisfaction. He attributed his exasperation entirely to the impudent
-frivolity of Isabel and not at all to any underlying eagerness and
-enjoyment that he might have been beginning to develop in the dialogue.
-Outraged reasonableness swelled his demeanour as he turned in silence
-and led the way towards the Castle. Suddenly he felt a hand on his arm.
-
-‘Do be friends,’ said Isabel softly and earnestly. ‘We have been
-friends for such ages in the past, I expect, that it would be a pity to
-begin badly in the present. I am only a barbarian, not a venomous toad.
-So do be friends.’
-
-‘Do you really want to be?’ asked Kingston abruptly.
-
-‘Yes,’ said Isabel--‘yes,’ she repeated slowly, as if surprised at
-herself.
-
-‘Soberly and seriously?’ inquired her cousin. ‘I mean, is it a thing
-you honestly want? I thought you cared about nobody’s opinion.’
-
-‘I didn’t,’ she answered, ‘and I don’t. And yet just this I do care
-for. I want you to be friends with me. In my heart I am friends with
-you already--greater friends than I could ever have believed. Why
-should I be, why should I want to be? I have no idea. Well, what do you
-say?’
-
-‘Yes, if you will,’ replied Kingston. ‘Why shouldn’t we be friends? We
-count as cousins.’
-
-‘You don’t like me yet, of course,’ said Isabel calmly. ‘But, then,
-nobody does at first. All I want is that you shouldn’t be hostile and
-stick out bristles and resist. The rest will come.’
-
-Kingston’s consciousness was in a whirl. He knew that he thoroughly
-disliked this saucer-eyed, eager creature. Everything she said and did
-aroused in him pulses of animosity so keen as to be almost physical.
-On the other hand, in some strange way, she allured, fascinated,
-excited him. She led his instincts captive, while his judgment went
-charging down upon her undaunted. Irritating though she might be, she
-was neither stodgy nor boring. His mind seemed to pringle under her
-influence, fiercely yet thrillingly, like a numb, constricted limb
-awakening from its sleep. Compared to Gundred, she was as brandy to
-milk. Of course Kingston loved the milk and loathed the brandy. But
-loathsome though it might be, he could not deny that the brandy was
-more potent, more stirring, more exciting than the milk. Since the
-brandy was forcing itself into his cup, there was no need to throw it
-roughly away; he might sip, under protest, now and then, without danger
-of contracting any disloyal craving for brandy instead of milk.
-
-‘Very well,’ he said; ‘let us be friends, Isabel. One can’t control
-one’s love or liking. But everything comes to those who wait. So we
-will be friends.’
-
-His candour pleased her.
-
-‘Control?’ she said. ‘Our feelings control _us_, if they are real
-feelings. The only real feelings are those that are uncontrollable.’
-
-‘I am the son of many generations of unreal feelings then. There are no
-love stories in my quiet family--at least, only one, and that was a mad
-freak.’
-
-‘There are no others in mine,’ said Isabel, ‘except hate stories,
-perhaps. And I suppose they are the same thing, only turned wrong way
-out.’
-
-‘I believe that real love is quite calm and level, you know,’ explained
-Kingston. ‘Your great blazing stories are built of passion, not of
-love. A big love is very quiet, and goes on peacefully from day to day,
-almost monotonous in its imperceptible development.’
-
-‘It sounds too like the kingdom of heaven to be very satisfactory on
-earth,’ said Isabel.
-
-‘Anyhow,’ replied Kingston, hotly defending what nobody had attacked;
-‘I say that the happy concert of lives and marriages--ideal lives and
-marriages--is based on tranquil harmonies, not on melodramatic chords.’
-
-Isabel smiled quietly. ‘Why are we talking about love?’ she asked. ‘It
-was friendship we were settling on.’
-
-He made no reply, and they entered the Castle.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-
-The friendship between Kingston and Isabel did not progress apace.
-Its development was jerky, uneven, unsatisfactory. Kingston was at
-once restrained and spurred on by resentment. He resented the fact of
-the friendship, was perpetually reluctant, suspicious, filled with a
-strange, alert uneasiness. Isabel, for her part, found the relation
-less careless and smooth than her friendships usually were. It brought
-an usually poignant satisfaction, and, in revenge, an unusually
-poignant feeling of strain and annoyance at Kingston’s refusal to
-meet her half-way. Normally she should not have cared a straw--by all
-her rules she did not care a straw--yet, none the less, the guarded
-hostility with which he met her advances stimulated and exasperated her
-to the point of defiance.
-
-The two women did not find, as their acquaintance grew, that any
-intimacy ripened between them. Gundred retained her desire to keep
-Isabel by her side as a foil, but not even the ardour that the
-contrast was to keep alive in Kingston could quite reconcile her to
-the mental eccentricities and untidinesses of Isabel. In Gundred’s
-mind nothing was ever disorderly or misplaced; second-hand ideas lay
-neatly labelled in rows; the chaos of Isabel’s thoughts, her incessant
-flurry of pursuit after some wild notion or other, her ransackings
-of her intellectual store to find some lost fancy, to run down some
-far-fetched theory, were so many evidences, to Gundred, of her cousin’s
-unmethodical, ill-balanced nature. All thought, to Gundred, was clear,
-simple, obvious; she never entertained any opinion that had not been
-sanctioned by fashion and much previous use; she could not imagine why
-anyone should accept new notions, much less go wild-goose-chasing them
-up and down the cloudy domain of ideas. What had been thought before
-by wise, good teachers was quite good enough for her; to want more, to
-ask questions, to test ‘truths’ by reason, seemed forward, ill-bred,
-and unwomanly. She put down all Isabel’s vagaries of mind to her
-disastrous colonial education, and believed at first that a few weeks’
-association with ‘nice people’--the nice people being, in the context,
-herself--would cure her cousin of such vagabond tendencies. So by
-smiles and indifference she repressed Isabel’s ebullitions; and when
-she found that her conduct had no effect beyond excluding herself from
-the conversation, she resigned herself calmly to the inevitable.
-
-Irritated at first by Isabel’s mental jumps and flights, Gundred,
-after her attempts at repression had failed, grew tired and bored,
-made no effort to follow her cousin’s mental movements, and, with a
-mildly reproving air which nobody noticed, stood graciously aloof from
-Isabel’s dialogues with Kingston. She let them talk, and, by way of
-tacitly rebuking her cousin, ostentatiously ceased to take any interest
-in what they said.
-
-With Kingston, as was inevitable, this course insensibly began to
-shift her relationship. As the days went by, he talked more and more
-to Isabel, until by degrees she became insensibly the target for
-everything he said. Imperceptibly he grew to ignore his wife, thanks to
-the attitude that she assumed. However, she was perfectly, increasingly
-happy. For, as his intellectual intimacy with Isabel advanced, he grew
-more and more the warm lover of his wife. And she, the apparently cold
-and ethereal, by the irony of her own limitations, came at last to base
-the triumph of her wifehood on the strength of her husband’s embraces.
-His raptures, his compliments, his kisses, grew in number and ardour;
-she had her heart’s desire. No thought of jealousy could ever have
-approached her; for intellectual intimacy she had no taste, no wish.
-As long as she had Kingston’s arms, Isabel was perfectly welcome to a
-monopoly of his tongue. She, Gundred, was his wife, and nothing could
-alter the glory of that. She triumphed in the successful development of
-their relations.
-
-That men like to chatter and overflow and sweat off in talk the
-superfluous energy of their minds she knew to be an accepted fact.
-Some women are born for men to talk to, but the ultimate triumph
-belongs to the wife, the woman who orders the man’s dinner, sees to
-his comforts, has him for her property at bed and board. As long as
-his body remains faithful and loyal, who cares where his undisciplined
-mind may go roving from hour to hour? So Gundred was glad to compound
-for Kingston’s increasing affection by welcoming the distractions in
-which his mind indulged, and even, in the rare moments when she could
-divert her attention from her own bliss, was vaguely sorry for Isabel,
-reduced to so poor and undignified a rôle as that of wash-pot to the
-intellectual offscourings of a married man. But Isabel, after all,
-had brought the humiliation on herself, and Gundred soon returned
-to the contemplation of the mastery which she had established over
-her husband’s affection by providing him with someone to talk to.
-Wifely tact, she felt, had been splendidly justified. She never
-stopped to consider that the means by which she had achieved her end
-in themselves betrayed the disastrous weakness of her position. Her
-idea of temptation was limited to physical allurements; husbands, she
-knew, were only led away by bad, beautiful women, never by untidy,
-talkative ones. Her position was absolutely safe and dominant; the more
-freely her husband’s mind was allowed to wander and kick up its heels,
-the more securely was her husband’s body bound in the bonds of its
-allegiance. Infidelity is only a matter of the flesh. Without physical
-desire there can be no adultery.
-
-So passed the remaining days of their stay at Brakelond. Then the three
-removed to Ivescar, and, with the setting, the colour of the whole
-drama changed. Human life and death was the keynote of Brakelond;
-its Castle seemed built and mortared with the tears and tragedies of
-innumerable generations. Every stone was permeated with the history
-of ten thousand men and women, who, through eight centuries, had
-brought to bear upon the building the fire and fury of their individual
-existences. Outside the walls rolled down the skirt of forest, and
-below lay the sea; but forest and sea were subordinate in the scheme,
-decorations and embroideries on the main theme. And the main theme was
-the incessant human note that resounded in every detail of the old
-tragic Castle.
-
-At Ivescar, on the other hand, man was a new-comer, an accident,
-a thing irrelevant and even incongruous. High up in its narrow
-mountain-valley lay the house, amid a plantation of stunted, wind-swept
-pines. It had the air of having been put there, not of having grown.
-Brakelond had sprung and waxed from the rock it stood on; it was the
-last crowning development of the land it dominated. Ivescar was an
-artificial product, unrelated to the soil, the work of alien brains and
-alien natures. Twenty centuries might pass over it without bringing it
-into any closer kindred with its surroundings, without softening the
-raw, crude note of novelty that it would always strike among the solemn
-eternal hills. It was a large sandstone building, of the most solid
-Early-Victorian Tudor design, as Isabel’s instinct had foretold. In the
-middle rose a big square tower, finished off with a stone lacework of
-circles and spikes. It had a flagstaff, a cupola with a bell in it, and
-a huge conservatory that had been put there because it was expensive to
-set up, and now remained there because it would be expensive to remove.
-On three sides of it stretched a bare lawn, and on the fourth its
-less honourable quarters were shrouded in sparse plantation, created
-at great outlay, with much difficulty and no success. The one level
-space of ground in the glen had been picked out, all its irregularities
-trimmed away, and the pretence of a park elaborately maintained under
-the mountain-slopes that rose stark and stern on either side. A little
-river struggled down from the end of the valley, and found its way
-among stones and mosses through the young woodland. Where it passed
-within sight of the house, at the other side of the flat lawn, it had
-been civilized and sedulously constrained into decorum. Its banks had
-been widened, made uniform and flat. Dammed at one end, it had been
-made to stretch out into a square shallow lake, whose grey and steely
-surface reflected the staring yellow of the house against the grey
-hills and sky behind, with a dreariness impossible to conceive. Coarse,
-rank grasses grew along its margin, and its shoals, malodorous and
-muddy, were abristle with melancholy rushes.
-
-Behind and on either side of Ivescar rose the fells--steep slopes of
-grass and scree, carrying up to the white precipices that hemmed the
-little valley in. High above these again, but out of sight, rose the
-mass of the great mountains, each standing on its plinth of limestone.
-Here and there the line of a wall betrayed the existence of humanity,
-but otherwise, except for the house in its artificial wood, with its
-artificial lawn and lake, the landscape utterly ignored the world
-of men. It was grand, primeval, solitary, remote from all the small
-mortal concerns of life. As it had been since the dawn of history,
-so it remained to-day. Peoples had come and gone, dynasties towered
-and crashed; but the little glen under the shadow of the Simonstone
-had wrought out its own fate untroubled by the clatter and tinkle of
-collapsing empires. Silent and serene as it stood, the finger of man
-had never scarred its tranquillity, the voice of man had never broken
-into the current of its dream. And yet, in the midst of this immortal
-solitude, the fancy of a rich manufacturer had planted this insolent
-mushroom of a house, this brazen assertion of a fact which the hills
-had always chosen to ignore, though Celt and Saxon, Dane and Norman had
-vainly striven to enforce it on their consciousness, as they fought
-out their ephemeral fights across the flanks of Ravensber, or made
-their settlement on the flat crown of the Simonstone. The valley and
-the mountains had taken their unruffled course. Had the house been
-less clamorous, the assault on their notice less insistent, they might
-in time have come to assimilate the signs and the presence of man. A
-quieter dwelling might insensibly have melted into their scheme, have
-been merged into the vast individuality of the hills. But Ivescar was
-too flaunting, too blatant, too eternally new. It compelled attention,
-was an unceasing penny-whistle across the great harmony of silence.
-And so, unable to make Ivescar one with themselves, the mountains
-took the only other course, refusing all compromise, and forced the
-incongruity of the building upon the world’s notice, by the blank
-contempt with which they ignored it. Their unnoticing disdain made
-its yellow stones, its pretentious tower appear even more undignified
-than ever, emphasizing every detail of their parvenu richness, their
-uneasy vulgarity. Man at Brakelond was the dominant note of Castle and
-country; here the note was an isolated discord. Man was nothing, his
-works an offence, amid the enormous loneliness of the fells.
-
-Gundred, however, found herself warmly approving of Ivescar. True, the
-country just round was “dreadfully black and barren, very ugly and
-uncultivated”; but the house was roomy, airy, warm, comfortable, quite
-suitable and pleasant in every way. It would hold plenty of people, and
-had been built with an eye to the convenience of house-parties. Carpets
-and curtains and cushions were all opulent and softly luxurious. They
-compared well, to her taste, with the bare floors, the flags, the
-worn matting of Brakelond. She resolved on a few improvements, but, on
-the whole, was very well satisfied. A building produced by one mind
-may, perhaps, have a less complicated personality, a simpler sense of
-unity, than one built up by the varying tastes of twenty succeeding
-generations. Ivescar was plain and direct in scheme. There was a good
-collection of pictures, bought, all together, by James Darnley from
-the previous owner, who had accumulated them because he imagined it a
-suitable thing to do; otherwise Ivescar was tormented by no ambitions
-whatever, artistic or dramatic. It only aimed, with a good-humoured
-whole-heartedness, at being altogether comfortable. Gundred entered
-into its spirit, and in an environment so congenial her abandonment
-of all attempt to share in conversation with Kingston and Isabel
-became at once more complete and less noticeable. She passed into
-entire absorption in the details of daily life, lost any wish to be
-in touch with intellectual life, took the colour of her surroundings
-so perfectly that neither she herself nor the others realized how
-completely she had withdrawn from their company.
-
-As for Isabel, the exasperating vividness of the woman leapt into more
-violent relief than ever against the smug complacency of Ivescar. At
-Brakelond Isabel had been a part of the place; her individuality had
-toned in with all the other individualities that had gone to make up
-Brakelond. As one organ note is inconspicuous among a crowd of other
-organ notes, so Isabel’s nature had there been merged in a crowd of
-other similar natures. Here, however, at Ivescar the organ note of
-her personality sounded harsh and tremendous, almost terrifying, amid
-the clacking babble of mediocrity for ever kept up by the house. Only
-trifling, futile people had had part in the building and the life of
-Ivescar; their influence had left the place a pleasant little chorus
-of tinkling inanities; and, by contrast, the fierce song of Isabel’s
-nature rose dominant, tyrannous, obliterating all the lesser voices
-around.
-
-Kingston by degrees began to notice the disappearance of his wife and
-the supremacy of her cousin in his mind. Occasionally he showed a
-dim foreknowledge of the inevitable by brief spasms of anger against
-Isabel, by fruitless attempts to carry Gundred with them in their
-flights. But by now Gundred’s mental immobility had begun to be an
-annoyance to him, and he was always glad to relinquish his efforts and
-fall back into the familiar swing of dialogue with Isabel. The faint
-air of greatness which for a time had been reflected on Gundred from
-the walls of Brakelond had now faded utterly. She was swallowed up
-in household details, could be seen meditating on ‘menus’ while the
-most fantastic notions were flying swiftly between her husband and her
-cousin. Her life was now consumed in coping with the cook; she was
-completely happy in her task, and it was with growing readiness and
-growing wrath that Kingston let her drop from his mental intimacy.
-She filled up time by talks with her mother-in-law, who had a dower
-house down the valley. The somewhat woolly mind of Lady Adela was very
-congenial to Gundred, and her small, clear-cut nature found it both
-harmonious and restful--like her own, though so utterly unlike. The two
-women took refuge in each other; and Gundred, taken up by the house
-and Lady Adela, would not have had the leisure, even had she had the
-acumen, to remark how completely she was passing out of her husband’s
-life.
-
-‘Is the house insured?’ asked Isabel one morning. Kingston and she were
-sitting together under the long wall of the picture-gallery.
-
-‘I don’t know,’ he answered; ‘I always forget things like that. My
-dear,’ he cried, calling to his mother, who had walked up across the
-fields with her knitting, and now had established herself in one of the
-cushioned window-seats close to Gundred, who was methodically checking
-a Stores List--‘my dear, is the house insured?’
-
-Lady Adela answered in the affirmative, and Gundred made haste to
-clutch her share in a conversation that she could understand, by
-swiftly affirming that, if not, it ought to be at once.
-
-‘Otherwise one feels it such a responsibility to live in a house--yes?’
-she added.
-
-‘I don’t like betting and gambling,’ replied Isabel, assuming a manner
-of exaggerated rectitude.
-
-‘My dear!’ protested Lady Adela, looking mildly up at her over her
-spectacles. If Lady Adela could dislike anyone, she disliked her
-daughter-in-law’s new cousin. Deep in her heart she condemned Isabel as
-strong-minded. Tiresome and strong-minded.
-
-‘It’s a gamble with Fate, you know,’ explained Isabel; ‘all insurance
-is, of course--having a bet on with the Almighty that He won’t burn
-down your house or throw your train off the rails.’
-
-‘My dear!’ protested Lady Adela again.
-
-‘You have such strange fancies, Isabel,’ said Gundred coldly. ‘You
-always think of things that no one else would think of.’
-
-Clearly, as delivered in Gundred’s neat, precise tones, this was the
-final expression of righteous disapproval.
-
-‘My feet must be extraordinarily small,’ said Isabel to Kingston.
-‘I seem to be always putting them into it. They go into the most
-incredibly tiny loopholes. I don’t believe I could walk across the lid
-of a pepper-pot without putting my foot into it somehow.’ She stuck out
-both her feet in front of her, and gazed at them dispassionately.
-
-The action may have been an instinctive appeal for admiration. The
-feet, though large, were beautifully shaped, with a suggestion of
-strength and swiftness in their lines. But Kingston angrily compelled
-himself to notice that they overlapped their shoes, that one shoe had
-lost its buckle, and that the stocking above each descended in wrinkles
-that betrayed a weakness in the matter of suspenders.
-
-‘Cover them up,’ he said. ‘Mine eyes dazzle.’
-
-‘They haven’t died young yet, though,’ replied Isabel, finishing the
-quotation. ‘Perhaps they will, though--the feet, I mean.’
-
-‘Why do you ask about insurance, Isabel?’
-
-‘I was thinking that you might welsh the Powers that be, and burn the
-house down, and get the money to build a decent one. This great garish
-glassy palace is not a bit at home here among the hills. You want
-something sombre and quiet and self-sufficient as they are--something
-that will be at ease with them. This house of yours is about as much
-at ease among the hills as a brewer’s wife having tea with half a
-dozen Dowager-Empresses. You want a building that won’t be fussy and
-assertive.’
-
-‘Then want must be my master. You have the most placid way of
-suggesting things. Do you always get what you want yourself, quite
-irrespective of the means?’
-
-‘What is the use of wanting things,’ said Isabel defiantly, ‘if one
-doesn’t get them? One might as well never want them.’
-
-‘But what about other people? If they object? If you can only win over
-their dead bodies?’
-
-‘Oh, they must look out for themselves. Every herring must hang by its
-own tail. It is everybody’s business to get what they want. If they can
-prevent me from doing as I wish, why, then they may; and if they can’t,
-well, I romp in; and if they get in my way while I am doing it, why,
-so much the worse for them. They go under.’
-
-‘There’s your crude individualism again,’ protested Kingston. Then he
-turned to his wife, determined to bring her into the dialogue. She was
-soberly conversing with Lady Adela over the Stores List.
-
-‘Are you an individualist, Gundred?’ asked her husband. ‘Isabel’s a
-terror; she has no respect for other people.’
-
-Gundred finished her sentence calmly.
-
-‘Besides, they say that spotted ones are bad for the eyesight,’ she
-concluded, then prepared to answer her husband. ‘What did you say,
-dear? Of course one must respect other people, or how are other people
-to do the same to us?’
-
-Unlike Kingston, Isabel was inclined to resent her cousin’s invasion.
-
-‘Oh, Gundred doesn’t count,’ she cried. ‘Gundred’s a civilized woman.
-Now, you and I are only pagans, Kingston.’
-
-‘My dear, dear child,’ exclaimed Lady Adela, unspeakably distressed,
-‘Kingston is nothing of the kind, I am sure!’
-
-‘Don’t trouble about Isabel,’ explained Gundred. ‘She is always talking
-nonsense--yes? Nobody ever cares what she says. Go on talking to
-Kingston, Isabel, but really you must not interrupt us any more. We
-have our duties, Kingston, and you idle people must not disturb us....
-Dear Lady Adela, do you really think we want a dozen of those common
-table-cloths?’
-
-Kingston and Isabel were silent for a moment, listening to Gundred’s
-conversation with her mother-in-law.
-
-‘Well, I always believe it is best in the long run to get rather too
-much than too little,’ replied Lady Adela, pondering the question.
-
-‘Besides,’ amended Gundred, with a more cheerful air, ‘they might
-give one discount on a quantity.’ Nothing should induce her to waste
-the superabundant Darnley wealth. She licked the tip of her pencil,
-prepared to tick off table-clothes with a lavish hand.
-
-‘Would you say at eight and six each, or at nine shillings?’ she asked
-anxiously, poising the pencil in indecision.
-
-‘Oh, for the servants, my dear, eight and six will be ample. They wear
-out their things in no time. It is quite shameful that they should
-be wanting new ones already. I got them a whole supply only the year
-before last.’
-
-Gundred cluck-clucked.
-
-‘Dear, dear,’ she said, ‘that Mrs. Bosket must really be a very
-careless woman--yes? And she tells me that new sheets are wanted as
-well--sheets and pillow-cases, dear mamma.’
-
-‘My child, how truly dreadful!’ answered Lady Adela. ‘You must
-certainly keep a close eye on Mrs. Bosket, though I do trust the poor
-thing is honest.’
-
-‘Oh, perfectly, and most obliging, but not equal to responsibility.
-One so often finds that in a household. And it is so important to have
-an efficient head--yes? I feel that one cannot safely leave her the
-ordering of things like this, for instance. I have to do it myself.’
-
-Had she had ten housekeepers--had she been the daughter of two
-reigning sovereigns--Gundred would still have insisted on ordering the
-table-cloths herself. It was her nature, but she made a virtue of her
-nature’s necessity, and fell to weighing the comparative merits of
-pillow-cases at half a crown and at three and six. Half a crown was
-eventually fixed on.
-
-Isabel looked at Kingston. She saw that Gundred’s dialogue had
-irritated him. Why his annoyance was so keen she hardly knew. He
-himself would have been puzzled to account for it. Her eyes triumphed
-as she watched him, and obviously rejoiced at the defeat of his effort
-to pull Gundred into their talk.
-
-‘That’s all you are likely to get out of Gundred for an hour or two,’
-she murmured.
-
-‘Martha is a much more pleasant, useful person than tiresome,
-head-in-the-air Mary,’ he flashed back at her resentfully.
-
-‘Especially to talk to,’ replied Isabel mildly. ‘As a matter of fact,
-a man wants both sorts--a Martha-wife and a Mary-wife: the Martha-wife
-to air the beds and order the dinner, and the Mary-wife to look at and
-talk to. Most of the tragedies in history have arisen from a man’s
-failure to get the two in one person. Lucky men have an aunt or a
-sister, as well as a wife, to fill the second part; but generally a
-man either has a Mary-wife who talks brilliantly, but feeds him on
-cold mutton, or a Martha-wife who will order a good dinner, but can
-only talk about the servants. And then he looks round for someone
-to think about meals, while Mary discusses the soul; or to discuss
-the soul while Martha is interviewing the cook. And then there are
-complications. The whole system is wrong. People ought to be much freer
-to get what they like.’
-
-Kingston resented Isabel’s tranquil description of the Martha-wife.
-It had nothing to do with any case they knew of. To talk about it was
-silly impertinence.
-
-‘Individualism again,’ he answered. ‘You are an anarchist, Isabel, like
-all egoists. Anarchy never pays in the long run.’
-
-‘No,’ admitted Isabel, ‘one has to pay for it in the long run, of
-course. But until the bill comes in one has a good time--quite worth
-the price one has to give.... Ask the lady behind you. There is
-a triumphant instance of the Mary-wife, and the egoist, and the
-individualist, all in one. She died for it at last, but she had all she
-wanted while she lived. That is me; I’ll die gladly, but I mean to have
-all I want till then.’
-
-Kingston turned to look at the picture to which Isabel pointed. From a
-background as dark as her end there smiled out at him, enigmatically,
-whimsically, the face, so much more prudish than passionate, of a woman
-so much more passionate than prudish--the face of Anne, “Marquis” of
-Pembroke, concubine and Queen.
-
-‘So there is your model,’ he answered her contemptuously. ‘Well, she
-had her way, and her way led her to the block on Tower Green.’
-
-‘Let it. What does that matter? It had led her first over the scarlet
-cloth of a throne. The price was heavy, yes, but she always knew it
-would be. I expect she was even glad to die at last, and have rest, and
-be out of all her glorious, dreadful suspense. And the splendour she
-bought was worth it. What do I care for the bill I may have to settle
-some day? If I want a thing, that means I intend to have it. Do you
-think a beggarly consideration of economy would stop me? Thank Heavens,
-I am not a miser. Why, to haggle over Fate’s account would be like
-Gundred wrestling for a twopenny discount off a pillow-case. No, Queen
-Anne and I know better, don’t we, your Grace?’
-
-Isabel rose and stared into the picture. The pursed lips, the sly,
-slanting eyes beneath their demure lids, responded mysteriously to
-her gaze. This was not the woman that Holbein drew in the last hours
-of her tragedy, weary, worn, and haggard; this was the Queen of his
-earlier paintings, as he and Lucas Cornelisz saw her in the radiance of
-triumphant battle, the fierce adventuress-soul that, with nothing in
-her favour--neither beauty nor position nor wealth--and with everything
-against her in the fight--a kingdom, a wife, a Church--yet by sheer
-force of brilliancy, courage, and charm, fought her way at last,
-through the wreckage of a religion, to the throne of a Queen.
-
-‘Your Grace,’ said Isabel, ‘you and I are friends. You were a pagan
-like me. What you wanted nothing could stop you from getting, neither
-armies of enemies nor any silly dread of the price to pay at the end.’
-
-‘I wish you joy of your friend,’ said Kingston, filled with
-inexplicable hostility. ‘Ask her what she thought of it all at the
-end; ask her what she felt that last night at Greenwich, when the
-King had deserted her, when she was still treated as Queen by people
-bowing and backing and saying “Your Grace” to her, who in their hearts
-were all stealthy enemies from whom there was no escape (with bets
-among themselves as to when her head would be off and a new Queen
-crowned); when she had to be brave and royal among all those crowding
-black, invisible dangers, under the descending shadow of the axe.
-Don’t you think she wished then that she had not been such a pitiless
-individualist? Don’t you think she wished then that she had been
-allowed to live and die plain Lady Northumberland?’
-
-‘Brave and royal you were, your Grace,’ cried Isabel to the picture.
-‘You never regretted, did you? If you had, you would have been a poor
-lath-and-plaster creature, unworthy of what you did. Your nerves gave
-way for an hour or so. They had been at full stretch for three terrible
-years of crowned suspense. So it was no wonder they snapped just for a
-moment in your fall. But it was not death you were afraid of; it was
-just the crash and the dying. You were a Queen at heart. You fought for
-your life as a Queen, and in the end it was as a Queen you died. Nobody
-else, not even in that strong, brutal time, died in such an exaltation
-of gladness.’
-
-‘An egoist should not be an idealist as well,’ protested Kingston.
-‘You make too pompous a song about a peddling adventuress put
-shamefully out of the way by a political job.’
-
-‘Take care,’ cried Isabel. ‘When I knew her Grace, she was not a lady
-to be spoken lightly of. Her enemies only killed her because they did
-not dare to let her live. Even her worst enemies dreaded her cleverness
-and her courage. And her dying words must have taken the skin off her
-husband’s back when he heard them. The demure gentleness of them, the
-vitriolic irony of them! You may have been “spiteful, flighty, and
-undignified,” your Grace, but you were splendid, terrible, indomitable.
-And you must have been marvellously charming when you chose, you plain,
-prudish-looking creature with six fingers and the devil’s temper.
-There’s a Mary-wife for you, to hold the interest and curiosity of
-the King, while his poor good Martha of a Katherine was everlastingly
-saying her beads and hemming shirts.’
-
-‘My dear Isabel, I tell you that the song of history is “Pay, pay,
-pay.” If you want to follow Anne Boleyn, you must follow her all along
-the road.’
-
-‘My dear Kingston, history may sing “Pay, pay, pay,” but it sings to
-deaf ears when it tries to impose its twaddling threat on well-bred
-souls. Only stupid, parvenu people ever think of reckoning up the cost
-of anything beforehand. It’s the hall-mark of recent wealth to be
-sparing of its pence. One does not bother about such things. One buys
-first, and only asks the price when the time comes to pay the bill.’
-
-‘And then the price may make you bankrupt.’
-
-‘Oh no. Fate’s bills are paid in courage, and I hope one would never
-be bankrupt of that. I think I shall always be able to settle up. One
-plunges, like Queen Anne. Your Grace did not stop to haggle. You and
-I go boldly forward, order what we want from the Stores of Life, and
-don’t give a thought to discounts and reductions and Summer Sales. And
-then, when the time comes, we fork up with a will, and pay out our
-uttermost penny.’
-
-For a moment Kingston did not answer her. He stood looking into the
-secretive face of the Queen. Gundred’s voice broke the silence.
-
-‘I know where one can get them at two and six,’ she was heard remarking
-in her clear, level tones.
-
-‘There’s Queen Katherine arranging the household,’ laughed Isabel,
-with insolent regardless frankness, ‘and here is Queen Anne ordering a
-crown across the counter of life. No discount asked, and only the best
-required.’
-
-Kingston looked at her with rage in his eyes. She was always saying
-crude things like that--things that roused in him swift opposition
-and dislike. Yet he remained helpless, as if bound by a spell. And
-her indifference to everyone’s opinion was so profound, her scorn of
-conventions so sincere that no reproach could be brought home to her.
-She had no common standard for measurement by the rules of the world.
-One might as well have attempted to reprove a savage for going naked,
-or an Englishwoman for going clothed.
-
-‘Well,’ he said at last, ‘I hope your bill will be as heavy as Queen
-Anne’s; then we shall see how you behave when it comes to paying for
-it.’
-
-‘But perhaps I have not really decided what I shall order from the
-shop-keeper?’
-
-‘Oh, well, I neither know nor care,’ replied Kingston savagely. ‘And
-you don’t seem to have the decent instincts of the real honest buyer,
-either. From the anarchistic things you were saying a few minutes ago,
-I should have thought you would have been a shop-lifter, pure and
-simple, going in and stealing whatever you wanted, without a thought of
-paying for it.’
-
-This time he had touched her. She flushed.
-
-‘Oh no,’ she said. ‘When it comes to the big things of life, I am as
-honest as the day. Love and hope and so on I should expect and intend
-to pay the top price for--pay it thoroughly to the last farthing,
-sooner or later. I am only an anarchist in little things. I might
-steal for a fancy, and assert my individualism for a whim, but really,
-really, Queen Anne hasn’t a thought of bilking when she orders her
-crown. Whatever I buy I shall pay good money for, Kingston--pay it
-ungrudgingly, if I have to die for it.’
-
-Her earnest face, as she turned it to his, burning and eager, had a
-strange fascination. He turned roughly away towards his wife.
-
-‘We are talking about Anne Boleyn,’ he cried, raising his voice to
-penetrate Gundred’s attention--‘how she had her fun, and then paid the
-money.’
-
-‘And nine is twenty-one,’ answered Gundred, completing her sentence
-in mechanical tones.... ‘What, dear? Oh yes, Anne Boleyn, poor little
-thing! so dreadfully treated by her husband. The first martyr of the
-Church of England.... And now, about prunes, mamma?’
-
-Kingston, angry and disappointed, turned again to Isabel. Primly,
-inscrutably, Queen Anne smiled down upon them from the wall. She had
-heard about that martyrdom before. She knew better. She had been the
-martyr of ambition, not of dogma; she sold her life for a crown, not
-by any means for a faith. And she thought her martyrdom the grander.
-In her passionate mysterious heart she pondered Isabel’s brave
-declaration, and wondered whether the modern woman, too, would be
-content to pay her debt, when the time should come, for the big things
-she had ordered at the counter of Fate. Beneath the riddle of her
-smile Kingston and Isabel fell once more a-talking, while across the
-room Gundred was still ticking off groceries, and exchanging plans of
-household economy with her mother-in-law.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-
-‘Yes, very, very pretty,’ said Gundred approvingly. ‘No sugar, thank
-you.’
-
-Delicately, with neatly-lifted little finger, she raised her cup and
-sipped. From top to toe she was the fine flower of deportment, and
-her manner exhaled a mild consciousness of being the perfect model of
-decorum for the country neighbour on whom she was conferring the honour
-of a call. The afternoon being brilliantly fine, Lady Adela had wished
-to take her daughter-in-law to call on some intimate friends of hers,
-proprietors of a celebrated view, who lived on the other side of the
-lowland valley that stretched beneath the glen of Ivescar. Gundred was
-happy in the opportunity of exacting provincial approval, and, against
-everyone’s wishes, including his own, Kingston had insisted that he
-and Isabel should join the polite pilgrimage. Accordingly the landau
-had duly sallied forth with its burden of four, and after more than an
-hour’s drive through the soft country beneath the hills, had brought
-them to their destination. Now, on the famous terrace of Blakebank,
-Gundred sat full in the light of her hostess’s admiration, consuming
-cakes and tea with her usual crisp yet ethereal daintiness.
-
-‘The lights on the hills!’ cried Mrs. Norreys ecstatically, anxious
-that Mrs. Darnley should appreciate the full beauty of the prospect.
-
-‘Delightfully pretty,’ replied Gundred, casting a comprehensive glance
-across the world. ‘One quite envies you, Mrs. Norreys. We have no
-view like this at Ivescar. A charming place to have tea, out on this
-terrace. Oh, thank you. How greedy I am!--yes? But this air makes one
-so famished, and these little cakes of yours, so delightful.’
-
-With a sweet smile Gundred accepted a second cake, and devoted her
-whole attention to its decent consumption.
-
-In front of Blakebank the ground sloped away sharply to the river
-far down below. Dense woodland filled the hollow in which the water
-flowed, and rose again in a blue foaming mass on the farther side of
-the valley. Thence the eye followed undulation after undulation of
-meadow and copse, fields of soft green, plumed hedgerows, a placid
-country full of opulent peace. The foreground of the picture was formed
-by a strip of meadow beneath the terrace that dropped in a steep brow
-towards the woods. Here the grass was hidden and gilded by a sheet of
-buttercups, and the pure ardour of their gold was touched to a keener
-fire by the shafts of sunlight that slanted across them. Beyond their
-blaze lay the voluminous splendours of the woodland, dull and heavy in
-sullen shadow. For the day had its sharp notes of contrast. The air
-was leaden and lurid, dazzling, here and there, with a golden rain of
-sunlight, and here and there, again, made sombre by thunderous masses
-of cloud. Huge curling crags of purple and silver rolled and towered
-above the world, and the sky was opalescent with a hundred shifting
-colours. The landscape, drowsy and complacent, was transfigured into
-something mystic and dreamy. From the poignant glory of gold in the
-foreground the eye wandered on over the steamy blueness of the woods,
-over the rippling waves of vaporous green and blue that filled the
-valley, to where, seeming very far away across the glamour, the great
-rampart of the hill-country lay high against the faint rosy lights of
-the north. The lowering air, the sleepy, fantastic colours of the day,
-seemed to remove things distant to another world, and the mountains,
-dim, misty in shades of amethyst and azure, hardly appeared distinct
-from the ranges of cloud amid which they faintly loomed. Far away, far
-above the valleys, they lay in crests and billows of dreamland along
-the border of a fairy world. Yet only six miles of comfortable peace
-was all that lay between Gundred at her tea and those mysterious giants
-in the haze.
-
-Full in the middle of that walled horizon, isolated on all sides, rose
-the mass of the Simonstone, unrolling his apathetic splendour on the
-ranges of lesser hills that formed his throne. In steep, precipitous
-slopes his lines dropped abruptly to the western valley; to eastward
-they trailed away in long, placid curves. The ranges of white limestone
-that formed his pedestal shone dimly pink across the distance, and the
-towering bulk of the mountain was lucent as a carved sapphire from
-crown to base. His sheer stern western cliff, his flat summit, loomed
-disdainfully over the sleepy valleys at his feet; and his presence,
-serene and enormous, ruled the whole country with the inevitable weight
-of its majesty. Steep glens in the range divided him from the heights
-to either side; he stood out the conspicuous tyrant of the horizon.
-Away to the right, over a range of smaller fells, the leonine head of
-Ravensber stood up in secondary authority, and above the western cleft
-where Ivescar incongruously squatted in the undiscoverable distance,
-rose the slouching back of Carnmor. But of the trinity that dominated
-the hill-country, Ravensber and Carnmor, the lesser and the greater,
-were both subordinate to the imperious sweep of the Simonstone. Here,
-from the terrace of Blakebank, in the complete contemplation of his
-grandeur, might be perceived the full grotesqueness of the insolence
-that had planted Ivescar beneath the sombre glory of his shadow. From
-that parvenu house itself the blatancy of the contrast was not so
-evident; for Carnmor and the Simonstone were both shut out from view
-by the amphitheatre of white cliffs that closed in the glen, and gave
-support to their dominating mass. But to Blakebank, far away, the whole
-supremacy of the hills lay revealed in all its greatness, and their
-empire seemed, in the mysterious clouded lights of rose and blue,
-to belong to a world that had no knowledge of man or his evanescent
-doings. Gundred, meanwhile, having finished her tea, began to think
-of departure. She set to work delicately drawing on her gloves and
-preparing her farewells.
-
-‘Such a long drive--yes?’ she said; ‘I am afraid we must really be
-starting, Mrs. Norreys. My husband’s aunt is coming to us to-day, and
-we ought to be home in time to receive her.’
-
-The carriage was ordered, and the party stood exchanging compliments
-and politenesses.
-
-‘Such a delightful day,’ said Gundred, ‘and a drive home in the evening
-so charming in weather like this--yes?’
-
-‘You will have a lovely view of the hills as you go home,’ replied Mrs.
-Norreys. ‘You will have them in front of you all the way. Do notice the
-sunset-lights; too exquisite they are.’
-
-Long habit had developed in Mrs. Norreys a proprietary manner when she
-talked of the distant hills that made the attraction of her terrace.
-She spoke of them as a successful actor-manager might speak of a scene
-that his own great skill has contrived and arranged.
-
-‘Charming, charming!’ answered Gundred, with the enthusiasm which
-everyone thinks it a duty to manifest for landscape, though the true
-intelligent passion is so rare and sacred.
-
-Then the carriage was announced, and the party from Ivescar embarked on
-their homeward voyage.
-
-Kingston and Isabel had not contributed much to the gaiety of the
-entertainment. They had been possessed with the delight that Gundred
-had merely expressed. To them the beauty of the world as it lay
-unfolded before them had been so vast and holy as to make all comment
-obtrusive and irreverent. Kingston had felt the unspoken sympathy of
-Isabel’s mood, and her silence had mitigated for a time the feverish
-animosity with which he regarded her. As they drove home, there was
-little conversation between the four. Now and then Lady Adela made
-some remark on Mrs. Norreys’ kindness, her charm, the successful
-blend of her tea. But even Gundred was feeling too serene for speech.
-Everything combined to make her happy. Her gown was a perfect fit, the
-evening was comfortable, and she was conscious of having given her
-hostess a flawless model to copy--in manners, conversation, hair, and
-hat. Of course she never doubted her faultlessness or felt a qualm,
-but there were moments when its lovely perfection came upon her in a
-compelling wave of pleasure. She sat in a rapture of satisfaction as
-the carriage whirled her home through the quiet sunset. Tea and a good
-digestion assisted the placidity of her mood, and the influences of the
-atmosphere collaborated to make it complete. The twilight was pink and
-sweet as Gundred’s own opinion of herself. Immovably tranquil, roseate
-and mild, it had the fascination of a drowsy fairy tale. Cowslip and
-bean and hawthorn sent her their tribute in wafts of fragrance. She
-accepted everything as her due, and felt that all the world was showing
-a very proper spirit in conspiring to do her honour.
-
-So their road led them up and down the gentle slopes that filled the
-valley with ripples of green. Sleepy old farmsteads they passed,
-nestling in dense knots of verdure, and villages with their brilliant
-little strips of garden. The day’s work was over, and in the clear air
-rose the song of peace and rest. Only far above, over the nearing mass
-of the mountains, rose stormy ranges of cloud, flushed and splendid in
-purple and gold. And so at last they had done with the broad lowland,
-and the road set itself to mount up towards the high glen of their
-destination. Now the country changed. Below lay the wooded, feathery
-richness of copse and hedgerow, meadow and pasture. Stone walls began
-to replace the hedges, stiff wiry moor-grass the lush growth of the
-valleys; the framework of the earth was near the surface; the soil
-became a thin stretched skin, no longer a warm soft coat of flesh;
-here and there the film broke, and the limestone bones protruded. So
-the road wound its way to the upper levels, and climbed at last to the
-glen between the hills. Far ahead of them it streamed away up towards
-Ivescar--an undulating stripe of whiteness. Above, to their right,
-rose, stiff and stark, a wall of white rock, shutting out from sight
-the mountain above. To their left lay the narrow desolation of the
-defile, a stream meandering among sparse meadows, with here and there
-a bare barn or a farm surrounded by a few wind-tormented trees. And
-beyond these again, towered the farther wall of the valley, another
-escarpment of long limestone cliffs, which could be seen rising tier
-upon tier to the first brown and violet slopes of Carnmor. The road,
-hugging the western precipice, commanded a full view of the valley’s
-eastern rampart, but of the cliffs overhead revealed only the first
-and lowest range. This, in the sunset-light, was radiantly pink, but
-the sheer rocks across the stream, cut off from the light, were grey
-and grim, rising up in bank upon bank towards the moors above. No
-colour touched them, no softness made them lovable. Their inhospitable,
-irreconcilable sternness foreshadowed the abomination of desolation,
-and gave the valley a stony, lifeless melancholy that recalled the
-land that once flowed with milk and honey, but is now a wilderness of
-sterile stone.
-
-As the road led on up the narrowing pass, so the shadows deepened
-across the way of the travellers. Suddenly, however, the western wall
-of cliffs overhead, now no longer touched by the sun, dipped in an
-abrupt cleft; and there, very far above them, hung the sheer western
-face of Simonstone. Keen, precipitous, menacing, the mass of the
-mountain impended suddenly over the valley, and the apparition was
-almost terrifying in its unexpectedness. Another twenty yards, and the
-lower ranges would once more conceal it from view; here, for a swift
-moment, it revealed its over-lordship of the glen at its feet. Behind
-and over its brow high volumes of cloud stood stationary, and in the
-glow of evening the mountain and all the upper air was rich with a
-glamour of amethyst and hot violet.
-
-Gundred was dominated by this revelation, and her powers of expression
-rose to the emergency.
-
-‘Oh, look, how pretty!--yes?’ she cried, indicating the obvious with a
-neat wave of her neat hand.
-
-Never had her gift for inadequacy burst upon her husband in such a
-terrifying flash. For a moment he could not speak.
-
-‘Quite good,’ he answered at last, incapable of saying more to a woman
-who would have been incapable of understanding it.
-
-Isabel remained silent. Her eyes were fixed. Then she put out her hand
-in an eager gesture to stop the carriage.
-
-‘Stop them, Gundred,’ she cried; ‘I want to get out. I am going up
-there into the glow and the glory. I am tired of this dull grey world.
-Kingston, come with me. Let us go and be gods on the heights.’
-
-Gundred saw consent in her husband’s eyes. The carriage was stopped.
-
-‘Well, don’t be late for dinner, darlings,’ she conditioned. ‘Remember,
-Aunt Minna will be arriving. Do you really think you will have time?’
-
-‘What does time matter!’ exclaimed Isabel rebelliously. ‘There is no
-such thing.’
-
-Kingston would have liked to go alone. Gundred had just succeeded in
-irritating him, he felt, to the last point of endurance. Her bland
-impenetrability was nothing short of tragic. Nothing could ever teach
-her what to say and what to leave unsaid, for nothing could teach
-her to feel. She had the sublime elephantine tactlessness of perfect
-self-satisfaction. Her husband, for one wild moment, wanted to get away
-from it all--from Gundred, level, monotonous, stodgy, yet unsatisfying;
-from the dear good old mother who did not count, who never could
-count; from Isabel, tormenting, tantalizing, odious Isabel. To be
-alone, up there in the radiance, far above the world of desire and
-dissatisfactions--that would be, at least for half an hour, rest and
-relief. But he was to have none; Isabel was to come, emphasizing at
-every point the exasperating perfections, the exasperating limitations
-of his wife. With her usual primitive clumsiness, so utterly at
-variance with Gundred’s well-drilled movements, Isabel flounced out of
-the carriage, alighting with a jumping flop that brought down a coil
-of hair and a shower of pins. Kingston noticed that, as usual, her
-placket was open. He waited in silence till she should have finished
-her untidy adjustments.
-
-Gundred repeated her injunction.
-
-‘Aunt Minna will be so surprised if you are not there in time to
-receive her,’ she said. ‘Do be certain that you have time, darling.’
-
-Kingston forced himself to speak. ‘Ivescar is just over the hill,’ he
-said. ‘We shall be there as soon as you. It will be a short cut--up one
-side of the Simonstone, and down the other. Are you ready, Isabel?’
-
-Yes, Isabel had finished tucking up her skirt. It was a skirt as
-inadequate for visiting as for mountaineering. And now she had bunched
-it up on one side to give her legs full play, and its effect was not
-only incongruous, but lumpy and lopsided. However, for such matters
-Isabel cared nothing. She was ready. Without another word, Kingston
-turned aside and opened a gate. Together they passed through into the
-field bordering the road, on their way to the copse above, that sloped
-up to the limestone cliff, and so led on to the heights overhead.
-Gundred watched them go. A faint, a very faint ripple of doubt trembled
-across the calm waters of her self-complacency. She had the strangest,
-the most ridiculous, the most unheard-of feeling that in some way she
-had not been at the height of the situation. In some way, she had a dim
-instinct of having failed. As the carriage drove on, she suddenly found
-herself feeling a little lonely, a little cold.
-
-Kingston and Isabel wrestled their way to the cliff’s top, and found
-themselves on a flat floor of scar limestone that led straight away
-to the long, swift slope of the mountain. As if arranged by mortal
-hands, the blocks of white stone made a regular pavement, like the
-wrecked foundation of some Cyclopean temple. Between each block was a
-deep, dark rift, where ferns and lilies of the valley, and strange
-flowers with white plumy spires flourished in the shelter where no
-wind could ruffle them. Together the wanderers crossed the level,
-leaping and balancing lightly from rock to rock. Then heather and
-sedge began to break the even surface of the paving, and soon usurped
-its place altogether. Thence, to the summit, was nothing but moor and
-whortleberry, steep slopes of shale and grit. Kingston and Isabel
-addressed themselves resolutely to the ascent. Steep and arduous as
-it was, they had neither time for breath nor talking. They climbed
-strenuously, silently, taking pride in each step that proved their
-mastery over the earth by lifting them steadily higher, foot by foot,
-on the flank of the mountain that had seemed at first too vast to be
-conquered by any movements of so infinitesimal a creature as man.
-Slowly but certainly they found themselves advancing up the stark
-ladder of tussock and poised boulder. Each stone that they dislodged
-rolled crashing into farther depths, and at last they found themselves
-moving into the cold shadow of the clouds that evening seemed to be
-drawing down upon the summit. The crown of the mountain was now beyond
-their sight, cut off by the fierce angle of the slope; but they could
-see that the upper air was still aglow with sunlight round it, though
-the volumes of dark vapour seemed to be growing and darkening. Suddenly
-the acclivity took a swifter line, then paused for a moment from its
-labours. Surmounting it, they found that the ground lay for a few yards
-in a gentler curve, and there beyond, straight above them, was the
-summit, glorious and crimsoned. A last eager voiceless effort, and they
-had attained it. Around them whistled and hurtled a sharp wind, and
-before stretched away the round level plain of the hill’s crown.
-
-It was with a sigh of relief that the climbers rested and faced round
-to see the extent of their conquest. The whole world far beneath them
-was misty, ardent, gorgeous in the glamour of evening. Kingston and
-Isabel made their way to the ruins of the old cairn that had sent
-northward the news of many centuries. Among the scattered, rough-hewn
-boulders they settled themselves for an interval of repose in
-achievement. Behind them rose the ruined wall of the beacon tower that
-had talked, in its day, of Queen Jane and Queen Mary, of the Armada’s
-coming, and the passing of the Tudors. Before them, unrolled at their
-feet like a map, two thousand feet below, was all the splendour of
-the earth, phantasmal and glorified--tiny towns, and the worm-like
-track of great rivers, the minute tessellation of meadows, and the dim
-velvet of wide forests. The whole air, before them and beneath, was
-a-tremble with motes of gold. Gold filled and pervaded the atmosphere,
-confounding detail in a haze of glitter, and softening the great
-dazzling stretches of the western sea into an imperial harmony with the
-golden heaven and the golden earth.
-
-Kingston Darnley looked out across the glowing mystery beneath him.
-Rest, profound and eternal, seemed to be enveloping him. In reality,
-the very foundations of his nature were stirred and stirring.
-Insensibly, through the heat and worry of the foregoing days, his life
-had been growing ripe for a great upheaval. Slowly the tormenting
-desires, the incessant, unacknowledged hunger, the uneasy, restless,
-emotional uncertainty, the strenuous nourishment of artificial
-feelings, had all combined to bring his restless unhappiness to a head.
-Through unacknowledged storm and secret stress he had come at last
-to that deceptive calm which precedes the breaking up of the soul’s
-settled weather--the discharge of the soul’s accumulated electricity in
-a devastating nerve-cyclone. To-day his endurance of himself and his
-own forced contentment had touched its limit. Gundred had given him the
-last least touch that was needed to destroy the perilous equilibrium
-of his mood. Unconsciously he was waiting, in a breathless interval of
-suspense, for the crash of thunder that was to precipitate the crisis,
-and clear the air of all its unhealthy restraints.
-
-Suddenly as he lay there, with Isabel silent and watchful at his side,
-the glory of the world shivered coldly and vanished. A black shadow
-swooped over the mountain-top, and soon only the uttermost distance
-retained the glimmer of gold. Down, down upon the old cairn sank,
-like the portcullis of a fairy castle, a heavy curtain of darkness,
-shutting out all that was left of the gleaming distance. The cloud was
-upon them. And, as their gaze was fixed on the gloom descending from
-above, no less abruptly, no less silently, in grey coils and whirling
-streamers the mist curled up at them from beneath, rippling and foaming
-over the rim of the mountain, as a devouring wave sweeps round an islet
-and over its crown. In an instant the world was blotted out by the
-white darkness. Uniform, monotonous, it obliterated everything. Only
-the old cairn and a few yards of ground around it could now be seen.
-Kingston and Isabel were cut off from the earth, set alone as Deucalion
-and Pyrrha in a new sphere, one solid point amid a vast ocean of
-chaos....
-
-‘So much for the glory of life,’ said Isabel.
-
-Kingston rose. ‘I don’t like this,’ he replied. ‘It will be the very
-mischief to get down again. Come and help me find a way.’
-
-Together they moved away from the old cairn into the mist. As they
-went it widened before them, revealing a few dim feet of distance,
-then closed in again behind. Through the drifting pearly gloom objects
-were strangely magnified, made mysterious, portentous; rocks became
-monsters looming through the darkness, the level crown of the mountain,
-shifting fantasy of vapour. The ground beneath their feet seemed to
-swirl and shift with the movement of the fog, and, now that shape
-and colour had vanished from the world, an enormous crushing silence
-dominated the air. Faint and melting before their eyes stretched away
-the few visible yards of the flat soil, covered with short sedges,
-and, among the loose piles of grit, with a thick growth of little
-mountain-sorrel, whose brilliant reds and yellows had been levelled
-by the blank twilight into a sombre note, as of stale blood spilled
-out among the stones. Then, beyond, the solid earth wavered away
-into a phantom, revealing here and there a rock or a patch of grass,
-uncertainly, evanescently, as a faint, half-guessed shape, as the mist
-lightened or lowered.
-
-So they wandered carefully on across the plane of the summit, till
-suddenly, ahead of them, grim and mysterious, rose a long grey barrier
-fading to right and left in the profundities of darkness. It was the
-old boundary wall of the summit, built by Celtic kings in the lost ages
-when the hill-top was the last great British outpost in the north.
-Humped, shapeless, an indistinguishable mound of stone, the old wall
-remained intact, running round the plateau in a solid ring, unbroken
-except at the point where the beacon tower stood. Knowing that outside
-its precinct cliffs and pitfalls awaited the unwary, Kingston and
-Isabel turned, and set themselves to follow it on its circuit, hoping
-to find an outlet or a path. At one point they came on a small stone
-chamber built into its bulk, but no sign of gateway or track could
-they discover. Now they were crossing a bare part of the summit, a
-wilderness of rocky wreckage. Here and there, at short intervals, great
-rings and semicircles of half-buried stone could be divined in the
-level of the soil, foundation-lines to show where the huts and palaces
-of the Celtic kings had stood. Now they were but dim ridges, grown with
-dwarf sedge and sorrel, through which roughly burst the gritstone bones
-of their fabric. Adventurous climbers of the mountain had had their fun
-of the rocks that former occupants had made their houses and defence.
-Often the flat, hewn blocks had been lugged from their places by modern
-hands, to be arranged in some riddle or motto. One ambitious tourist
-had perpetrated a great design. Kingston and Isabel came suddenly upon
-it. It stretched bravely across the earth, a device of big boulders,
-carefully arranged. ‘I love you,’ it said to them, in its audacious,
-solid letters. ‘I’ and ‘you’ at either end of the legend faded away
-into the white obscurity beyond, and at their feet lay ‘love,’
-obtrusive, unconquerable, built of sound stones so square and firm as
-to defy the enmities of time and weather.
-
-‘I love you,’ read Isabel slowly.
-
-Hitherto few words had passed. Words, in that blanched silence, seemed
-futile and impertinent. There was in that vast loneliness of the mist
-a sense of intimacy too close to be profaned by speech; man and woman
-were alone, two halves of one primitive creature, in a primitive,
-floating chaos, where nothing else, as yet, had taken shape. How could
-such a drifting void hold anything so formal as speech? Speech belonged
-to that forgotten world of things visible and tangible, that world
-where other human beings lived, and there was light, sound, movement.
-Here, in the level, immovable silence of the primeval twilight,
-Kingston and Isabel found the intervening ages swept away.
-
-They had gone back into the dim time before the dawn of the world, when
-there was nothing more than this poised existence, vague, voiceless,
-pervasive.
-
-‘I love you,’ repeated Isabel, studying the tourist’s device--the
-blatant modern cry breaking into the abysmal stillness of old chaos.
-
-Kingston, with an effort, tore himself from the white mist of fantasy
-that had closed in upon his mind. The gloom suddenly held dangers;
-they loomed ahead. He had a dim sense that something unseen was moving
-towards him out of the swirling uncertainties around.
-
-‘It’s no good,’ he said. ‘We shall have to stay here till the clouds
-lift a bit. I simply can’t pretend to know my way. We should probably
-wander half over the moors, and go on in a circle till we got
-hopelessly lost or fell in a pothole. What a fool I was not to watch
-the sky! However, if the worst comes to the worst, you can shelter in
-that little shanty, and I don’t expect Gundred will be anxious; she
-never is.’
-
-‘Read what this creature has written,’ said Isabel. ‘It sounds better
-in a man’s voice.’
-
-Kingston looked down at the straggling stone letters at his foot. ‘I
-love you,’ he read. Then he looked up at Isabel.
-
-She was facing him. The motto lay between them. Her face, against the
-luminous pallor of the mist, was burning, aglow, filled with a strange
-triumphant challenge. Suddenly, with an appalling crash of thunder,
-the fantastic world in which he had lived so long shattered and broke
-about his head. He saw the call in her eyes, understood it, answered to
-it, helplessly as a bound slave. This was the one woman in the world.
-He had known her since the beginning of time, been with her since the
-creation; now at last she threw aside her veils, and stood before him,
-no longer a stranger, but the lost part of his own soul--that lost part
-for which he had so long been vainly seeking. Now, in an instant, he
-recognised the cause of all his enmity, his unrest, his gnawing hunger,
-the incessant angry cravings which had tormented him. Hitherto he had
-not seen the truth; he had guessed it. And those guesses, painful,
-secret, stifled--they had engendered all the throbbing hostility, all
-the restless enmity with which he had regarded this half-recognised
-intruder into his life. Now he knew her, now his heart heard the lost
-language for which it had pined, now his soul stood complete again in
-the acquisition of its lost part.
-
-Isabel saw that the answer to her call had come. At last she was known.
-‘Old friend,’ she whispered, smiling into his eyes.
-
-‘You--you,’ he stammered. ‘And I did not understand. It is You. I have
-never seen you before, Isabel, and yet--and yet I have known you all my
-life.’
-
-Suddenly she was clothed in glorious beauty from head to foot. From
-head to foot she was altogether splendid and desirable. Every inch of
-her called aloud for his worship. As the sooty kitchen-maid of the tale
-strips off her rags and stands revealed a King’s golden daughter, so
-now the accidents of Isabel’s disguise, the untidy hair, the shapeless
-clothes, all passed out of Kingston’s consciousness. Henceforth she
-stood far above such peddling criticism. The rules of his ordinary
-taste could never apply again to this recovered spirit out of the dead
-ages. She was his--his right, his property, his existence. She was
-altogether without fault or blemish, the completion of himself.
-
-‘You are beautiful,’ he said in a low voice--‘you are beautiful, the
-real Isabel. I never guessed what beauty was. It is you, Isabel. It has
-always been you.’ Wonder at the miracle possessed him, tied his tongue,
-gave him the pathetic little blundering gestures of the blind--of one
-suddenly emerged from a lifetime’s black darkness into the blinding
-glare of daylight.
-
-‘You have come to me at last,’ smiled Isabel. ‘I wondered when you
-would. You have been trying not to wake.’
-
-‘I have been holding my eyelids down,’ he answered. ‘I have been making
-myself blind. It has been hell; Isabel ... Isabel!’
-
-‘Yes,’ she replied--‘yes. You have been denying me ... you have been
-denying yourself. It is Peter’s crime. Of course it was hell. But now
-you have confessed the truth--the truth which was from the beginning.’
-
-He stared at her--the man made perfect in full self-realization--at
-her, the woman, whole and entire in her reunion with himself. Soul
-imperiously cried to soul, and body to body. She had the unimaginable
-beauty of the thing created by its lover, loved by its creator. Every
-line and curve of her was perfected handiwork of his own rapture. The
-loveliness that he saw in her, his own heart, his own flaming fancy
-had planted there, had fashioned and worshipped as the lover always
-fashions the idol that he worships.
-
-‘How is it,’ he said hoarsely--‘how is it you can be so beautiful,
-Isabel? You are not beautiful. My eyes know you are not beautiful. And
-yet my heart knows better. My heart knows there is nothing like your
-beauty--nothing like it, Isabel, anywhere in the world. My soul is
-twisted up in every part of you; there is something of me in every part
-of you. Your hair, your skin, your eyes--they are me, Isabel; I have
-given myself to make them. Can you understand it, Isabel? There isn’t
-an inch of you in which the sinews and the nerves of myself have not
-always been woven and twisted.’
-
-‘Ah,’ she cried, answering his low tones with a deep burst of feeling.
-‘We have been together through the worlds. We are not strangers.
-That is what you mean. You have buried yourself in me, and I have
-buried myself in you. We belong to each other. We have always belonged
-together. There are only you and I in this white pale world. That is
-what real lovers are. Alone--alone together for ever and ever and ever.
-Nothing can ever break our solitude--nothing can put itself between
-us--if only we are honest with ourselves.
-
-‘Isabel, what does it mean--this that we feel? What is it that we are?’
-he asked, whispering as if in the presence of a sacred mystery.
-
-‘Ourself,’ she answered triumphantly--‘ourself, awake, brought to
-life, welded together again. We have come out of a hundred ages. Do
-you suppose that we come together now for the first time? How do we
-know each other, then? This that we feel is the song of many dead souls
-calling in each of us to the many dead souls that have loved us in the
-other. We have been bound together since first we met in the far-away
-distance of things. Love is that. Love is never a new thing. Love is
-the oldest thing in the world. It has lived through a hundred thousand
-deaths of the body, and gathered strength and knowledge at every stage
-of its journey. It’s a jewel of a hundred thousand memories crushed
-together and crystallized into a pure sparkle of lights. It’s a chain
-of a hundred thousand links, each heavier than the last, and more
-golden. Kingston, the chain is round us and round us. Tie it tighter,
-tighter, for ever and ever. We will live everlastingly in this land of
-splendid bondage.’
-
-‘Isabel, what is it the wise people of the East say?’ answered
-Kingston, in the stupefaction of ecstasy. ‘They pledge themselves to
-one another for half a dozen lives or more. Isabel, that is what you
-mean. You and I are both bound together. We’ll plight our troth again
-now, far ahead into the future. For a score of existences, Isabel. Our
-love was not born a minute ago; it will not die to-morrow. It goes on
-and on, whatever bodies it takes to clothe itself. Our love is the only
-thing of us that goes on. And nothing can destroy it. It is ourselves.
-You are mine, Isabel, and I am yours--you are me, and I, you, not only
-now, in these shapes of ours, but through half a hundred more that
-are not yet born, Isabel. Isabel, what do words and talking matter?
-We cannot get away from each other; we are the same person. Now and
-always, Isabel. But we will never lose ourselves again; we must always
-recognise each other.’
-
-‘Yes,’ she said, ‘again and again and again. For ever and always. You
-have been trying to cut me, Kingston--_me_! trying to cut yourself.’
-
-‘You are chained to me, Isabel, and I to you! I will never break the
-chain at my end; you must never try to break it at yours.’
-
-‘No; we are always the same person henceforth. Why, there is no bond.
-We are too close together now even to be bound.’
-
-She stood gazing at him, her eyes, her pose, her manner inspired with
-conquest. The blank, sickening ferocity of passion seized him as he
-answered her look. It caught him by the throat, swept him away in a
-rapture of agony. To crush that beauty of hers, to mangle it, strangle
-it, absorb it utterly in himself, became at once the one blinding,
-obliterating need that filled his whole consciousness. An insatiable
-thirst of her loveliness possessed him. The keen, flame-like delirium
-of his desire was a devastating pain. His whole being moaned with
-the aching torment of it. The sight of her, the thought of her, went
-through him, pierced him, rent his innermost heart in twain. The
-drunken glory of suffering that held him on the wheel of knives was a
-frenzy very different from that placid repletion which had been his
-ideal--how long ago?--of the great ideal passion. Now at last he knew
-what passion was--the parching, gorgeous misery of it, the straining,
-leaping martyrdom. The ancient secret madness that once had dwelt in
-the orderly rooms of his father’s heart now stirred again in the son’s,
-and bled once more, under the wounds of ecstasy, as once, for a wild
-hour, it had bled long since at the hands of that ill-fated, forgotten
-woman whose place was now usurped by Isabel. Kingston, his calmer self
-destroyed by the red intoxication, moved towards his fate, vaguely,
-blindly.
-
-‘Isabel--Isabel!’ he murmured with dry, cracking lips, groping hands
-outstretched to take her.
-
-And Isabel welcomed his coming as the crown of life. She threw his arms
-wide and waited, glowing and transfigured.
-
-The ghostly twilight of the mist was round her, behind her. The face it
-revealed was fierce with joy, exquisite in its vividness. The dark hair
-drifted round it, and the throat rose vivid and white from the low-cut
-collar of her dress, thrown back splendidly, an ivory column. The neck
-of her dress was fastened awry by a little brooch, whose diamonds
-gleamed dully in the pale glooming.
-
-And in an instant the man’s flaming drunkenness had passed--passed
-utterly, in a spasm of torment almost beyond his bearing. As sometimes
-we are torn painfully, violently from the gay madness of a happy
-dream by the sound of a bell or some other noise that penetrates to
-our consciousness from the outer world beyond our vision, so now, in
-the crisis of his passion, the sight of his wife’s brooch at Isabel’s
-throat recalled Kingston Darnley, with a jarring crash, to the horrible
-realities of life. Isabel, characteristically buttonless and pinless,
-had borrowed it from Gundred to make good the deficiencies of her
-blouse. His arms fell, the light of his eyes grew dull, and died. His
-body stood motionless, and his spirit went down into the abyss of hell.
-
-Isabel saw the change, and at the sight her own glory sympathetically
-faded. They had done with the heights. Now their feet were set on earth
-again.
-
-‘Isabel--Isabel!’ he repeated. But the flame of his utterance had died
-down into a grey dreariness.
-
-Isabel saw that her moment was passing. A horrible anxiety possessed
-her. ‘What is it?’ she cried. ‘Kingston, what is it? What has come
-between us?’
-
-He pointed to the brooch. ‘Gundred,’ he answered--‘Gundred. We had
-forgotten.’ He was suffering so acutely in the death of passion that
-he could hardly make his words intelligible. The wrench was agonizing.
-Passion was not dead, but his heart knew that it must die--that he
-himself must be its executioner--must cast out the guest that was the
-dearest part of himself--cast it out and cut the throat of it. He
-desired still with all his soul, but knew that his desire must rest
-for ever unfulfilled. He belonged to Gundred. He must face his own
-responsibilities.
-
-Isabel could not hear what he said. But she shivered in the cold that
-had fallen upon them. Without words she understood what it was that had
-cut down the flower of his rapture in a moment, what drawn sword it was
-that had suddenly thrust itself between them. She stood withered and
-stricken with the shock, grown suddenly pale and old.
-
-Kingston was fighting down his pain, struggling with it, and gradually
-bringing it into bounds. He was too clear-sighted to give himself any
-hope. Had he been sprung of a more lawless stock, of men accustomed
-to love where they chose, without consideration of morality, he might
-have taken his pleasure as it came, and never given a thought to
-self-reproach or duty. But as it was, bygone generations stirred again
-in him, of men who had lived cleanly, decently, according to their
-lights, avoiding the wild urgencies of passion. Law, custom, convention
-had ingrained into them a respect for rule and restraint, and now their
-latest descendant reaped in his own person the cruel reward of all
-their virtues. To go further in the ghastly labyrinth was impossible.
-Joy was unattainable. Only duty could be pursued. And for shirking that
-there could be no excuse.
-
-Without a word he turned and walked away from that ill-omened motto
-on the hill-top. Vaguely, with hands thrust down into his pockets,
-he wandered on, crushing down the misery, the angry clamours of his
-nature, and steeling himself violently to the preservation of what
-remained possible to him of decency. For the sake of Gundred, of
-himself, of Isabel--for the sake of his love and hers, he must at least
-live as clean as might be. The struggle was a martyrdom, though, the
-shock of self-mutilation a grinding, lancinating anguish.
-
-Isabel stood for a moment, then followed him across the flat ground.
-She soon caught him up, and they advanced together in silence through
-the driving mists. Suddenly, vague and ghostly, the old cairn rose
-before them again, looming mountainous. When he had reached the stones
-at its foot, Kingston threw himself down upon its steps with a heavy
-gesture of lassitude. And still the silence ruled.
-
-‘Isabel,’ he said at last, in a dull, tired voice--‘Isabel, you must
-forgive me if you can. I have been a beast. I must have been off my
-head. I feel as if I had been drunk, and was only just beginning to
-come to. Whatever rot I talked you must try and forget it, Isabel. I
-can’t make out what the devil can have come over me!’
-
-The woman gave him an angry, challenging glance. ‘No,’ she said, ‘I
-won’t forget it. You spoke the truth. Why are you beginning to tell the
-old weary lies again? Surely we have got beyond that.’
-
-Her words, her defiant tone, caught his attention.
-
-‘You didn’t understand,’ he said. ‘I was a brute; there’s no more to
-be said. Don’t try to say any more. Of course you can’t understand. My
-God, what a damned muddle I have made of things!’
-
-‘But of course I do understand, Kingston. Nothing can undo what you
-have said. It didn’t need saying, and no amount of denials can ever
-make it untrue.’
-
-Kingston looked at her anxiously.
-
-‘Isabel,’ he said in a broken voice. ‘Do you realize what you are
-saying? I was fool enough to tell you----’
-
-‘What we both knew before in our heart of hearts,’ she interrupted
-passionately. ‘And now we know each other. Oh yes, I understand you.
-All of a sudden you have been overcome by some absurd qualm--some whim
-or other. You think we are to be separated by some ridiculous fad.’
-
-Amazement held him. This time he fixed his eyes on her and spoke
-slowly, laboriously, as one speaks English to someone who can only
-understand a foreign language.
-
-‘A fad!’ he repeated. ‘Hang it all, Isabel, is honour a fad, and
-decency, and all the rest of it? One does what one can. Is it only a
-whim?’
-
-‘Yes,’ she answered violently. ‘It is only a whim. These artificial
-scrupulosities of yours, they are just middle-class superstitions. You
-belong to me, and I belong to you. We know that is true. Very well,
-then; why should we deny in deed what we know to be true in fact. Oh, I
-have no patience with such whims. Nothing can separate us; why should
-we pretend to be separated by the fact that you have got what you call
-a wife? I am your wife. You have no other. You can’t have another.
-Your only duty is to me--to me and to yourself. All the rest is mere
-romantic sentimental nonsense.’
-
-His fastidiousness swung him back into a reaction of almost physical
-repulsion as he contemplated her. The impossibility of making her
-understand any honourable point of view was dreadful. He loathed her
-with all his heart as she sat there trying to enforce her claim. And
-yet he could not deny her claim, and, despite his shuddering disgust,
-he loved her as much as ever, reluctantly, angrily, but with all the
-secret unreasoned impulses of the bondage that held him.
-
-‘Isabel,’ he said, with forced gentleness, ‘can’t you even try to
-understand? I am sorry. Yes; it is true what you say. We belong to each
-other. Nothing can alter that. But I have given my word to someone
-else, and I must--don’t you see?--having struck the bargain, I must
-keep it. Make it a little easy for me, Isabel, though God knows I don’t
-deserve it. But one wants to keep one’s self as clean as one can.’
-
-‘I won’t make it easy for you,’ cried the other, beginning to realize
-that he had entrenched himself behind a wall of determination. ‘Clean?
-You won’t keep yourself clean by playing the hypocrite with Gundred.’
-
-‘Ah, God! Poor Gundred! It is a dirty game I have played with her all
-along. And yet I never knew. Before God, I never understood. I meant
-to deal fairly, and I will deal fairly, too, as fairly as I can. The
-mistake was mine, and I’ll pay for it--pay for it all alone. Don’t you
-see, whatever happens, she must not suffer, Isabel. She--she has given
-me all she had to give. So much for so little, Isabel. I must never
-let her guess that I haven’t an equal love to give in return.’
-
-‘As if she will not guess it every day and hour of her life! Do you
-suppose you can deceive her?’
-
-‘At least, I can give her a decent show in the eyes of the world,’
-replied Kingston, showing a really subtle knowledge of Gundred’s
-temperament. ‘That will be better than nothing, any way. Oh, Isabel,
-the whole affair is a damned horror. It’s all my fault. But we shan’t
-make it any easier by letting ourselves go to pieces over it. The only
-thing I can do now is to save myself from being any more of a brute
-than I can help. Yes, I know we love each other; we shall always love
-each other, worse luck. But we must spend the rest of our lives trying
-to forget it. We must kill our knowledge, Isabel. It’s the best thing
-we can do, damn it, for the best that is in us. I’ve made my mistake
-and had my fling, and come my cropper; now I must stand the shot.’
-
-‘It is not as if you could,’ cried Isabel--‘not as if you could pay
-your debt by yourself. It falls on me, because I am a part of you. I
-have to pay the heaviest price of all. I have done nothing; I have made
-no mistake; and now I am to pay!’
-
-He stared curiously at her excited face.
-
-‘We pay together, then,’ he said slowly, ‘and we pay a heavy price to
-keep our love for each other untarnished. That is what it comes to.
-I’ll pay anything not to tarnish my love for you, Isabel, my opinion
-of you. It is all I have left. I must save that at any costs. And save
-a--well, a little rag of my own decency, too. You are asking me--I hate
-saying it, but it is true--you are asking me to dishonour both of us
-by dishonouring my wife. I rate our love and ourselves a little higher
-than that, Isabel.’
-
-‘Oh, you are bloodless!’ she answered passionately--‘a bloodless
-prig! There is nothing of the man in you. Have you _nothing_ in your
-veins--no warmth, no life at all--that you can go on talking these
-frigid fancies of yours? Where do you come from--what are you? What
-are you made of? Can you feed your passions with these romantic
-metaphysics? What’ll they give you? Will they warm you when you are
-cold--with Gundred? Will they feed you, when you are starved--by
-Gundred? Will they give you company, when you are alone--with Gundred?
-Talk of your honour and mine! Our love is our honour. There is nothing
-else in the world. Gundred is nothing; there is no such thing as
-Gundred. I have blotted her out of existence!’
-
-Never had the pagan egoism of Isabel been more terrifying, more
-repulsive. Through his love he hated her as he watched the cruel swift
-sneer of her nostrils as she talked of his wife.
-
-‘Have you no shred of pity?’ he asked quietly. ‘Think of Gundred. The
-most damnable thing in the world has happened to her. She has given
-herself--her whole self--and got nothing in exchange. Can’t you at
-least let her have pity and respect? Poor little Gundred! I thought it
-was a square bargain when I struck it. I thought I gave her all I had
-to give. I swear I thought so. And yet all the time I belonged to you,
-Isabel, and you to me. Don’t you see that the only thing we can do now
-in common honesty is to spare Gundred all we can, and spare ourselves
-the dishonour of cheating Gundred even more than we have already?’
-
-But Isabel was beyond appeals, frankly barbarous and merciless.
-‘Gundred took her risks. All women do when they marry,’ she said. ‘And
-now she does not count any longer. What sort of man are you, to be
-pining about Gundred when I am here by your side? Look at me--yes,
-look, look--and see how long you can remember Gundred.’
-
-She fixed his gaze with burning eyes. But he turned away his head and
-refused to take up the challenge.
-
-‘I suppose it is your right,’ he answered, ‘to make everything as hard
-for me as you can. I deserve it, I know. Oh yes, you blot out all
-thought of everything but you, as soon as I look at you. You are the
-only thing I can see in the world. And I won’t look at you, Isabel.
-It is no use. Must I tell you again? I won’t stain the love we have
-for each other by any further treacheries towards the duty we owe to
-each other and my wife. Oh, Isabel, if you would only believe me, it
-is because I love you so awfully, so damnably, that I cannot look at
-you, or touch you. I love you too much. I ache in all my bones with
-the love of you, and I love you too much and too well to satisfy my
-love. Oh, don’t you understand? We could never forgive ourselves, never
-feel clean again. Our love would have been spoiled, made filthy and
-horrible with deception and mean lies and beastliness. It’s a sort
-of responsibility we have, to keep it clean. We can’t kill it; it is
-there, it always will be there. But, at least, we can prevent it from
-turning us black and rotten. I’d sell my life, Isabel, to have our love
-free and honourable--I would, Isabel.’
-
-Isabel laughed. ‘Oh, this dry and tedious discussion!’ she cried. ‘How
-many men would hair-split and quibble like this? Thank God, I have
-blood in my veins! My people never cared where or whom or why they
-loved. They took their pleasure where they found it. They were above
-all laws but their own desires. No silly conventions and superstitions
-ruled them. They were big, passionate men and women, with life in their
-veins, not sawdust.’
-
-‘Do you care nothing, absolutely nothing,’ he asked, ‘for--well, for
-feeling that you have behaved as cleanly as you can? Nothing for
-consequences? Nothing for anything but the pleasure of the moment?’
-
-‘It is in my blood,’ repeated Isabel arrogantly, investing the crude
-horror of her selfishness with a certain barbaric grandeur. ‘You know
-how I hate these huckstering considerations of yours. My self-respect
-is involved in getting what I want. Defeat is my only shame. And
-consequences--who cares for them? I know,’ she went on, giving the
-quotation with proud defiance--‘“I know that about this time there is
-a prophecy that a Queen of England is to be burned, but I care nothing
-if I be she, so that I have and hold the love of the King.” The love of
-my King I have and I hold; what does the rest signify? I told you Queen
-Anne and I were cousins.’
-
-‘How I wish,’ he said--‘oh, how I wish to God I could make you
-understand what I feel. I feel the most contemptible beast on the
-earth; you alone can help me to win back a little of what I have lost.
-If only you would make it easier for me, Isabel--if only you would make
-it easier for me, by believing how ghastly hard it is.’
-
-‘Yes; hard, hard, hard,’ said Isabel--‘hard I believe it is,’ she
-repeated, meeting the anguish and the struggle of his gaze. ‘And I
-want to make it harder. I want to make it impossible. Find yourself,
-Kingston--know yourself. Don’t go on tormenting us both with scruples
-and neurotic nonsense.’
-
-He rose and stared down at her with furious eyes. ‘You are pitiless,’
-he said--‘altogether horrible and evil. There’s no decency or
-civilization in you. You are as fierce as a savage. As I listen to you
-I hate you; every fibre in me hates and dreads you.’
-
-Isabel rose also and faced him. ‘And when you look at me?’ she asked.
-
-‘When I look at you,’ he groaned--‘when I look at you, every fibre of
-me longs for you and cries out for you. And yet I swear I hate you,
-Isabel.’
-
-‘Go on hating me, then, like that,’ answered Isabel triumphantly. ‘You
-have conquered me now. I feel that I cannot get near you again. For I
-know what that hatred means. And some day I shall win. I am bound to.
-You belong to me. You _are_ me. You recognised that a few minutes ago.
-But now you are a fool. You refuse your happiness. Well, one day I
-shall bring you to it again.’
-
-‘Let me go, Isabel,’ he pleaded. ‘Let us try to do the little best
-we can, you and I. Don’t make our lives more difficult or shameful
-than they need be. Oh yes, I know that you have everything in your
-power--too well I know it.’
-
-He spoke wearily in a low, broken voice that seemed to foreshadow the
-end of his resistance. As his weakness grew manifest Isabel’s strength
-grew greater.
-
-‘There is no escape from me,’ she said. ‘Remember I am yourself. And
-I shall always be there at your side, in your house, waiting, waiting
-till you wake up again from this foolish dream.’
-
-His struggle had suddenly collapsed into the helplessness of fatigue.
-Even at this defiance of hers he made no sign of revolt. ‘Oh, God,’ he
-said, ‘how can I get rid of you? What chance am I to have? But it is no
-use talking. One can’t talk the same language as you--one can’t talk in
-the same century. It is hopeless, I know. Your ideas are as savage as
-Queen Isabel’s--you have got all that fearful barbarous selfishness of
-hers, and one’s only chance of making you understand would be to talk
-to you in the old French that she must have spoken.’ His voice trailed
-off into silence.
-
-Isabel drew closer to him, and laid her hands softly on his arm.
-‘Kingston----’ she began.
-
-He shook off her light touch, and looked her full in the face. His eyes
-were blazing, and his manner had the restrained roughness of passion
-held hard in leash.
-
-‘Isabel,’ he said, ‘if you touch me, I swear to God I love you so much
-that I shall kill you--here and now, with my naked hands.’
-
-She believed him, and was exalted by triumph. ‘Ah,’ she cried, ‘you do
-love me. You are becoming a man at last. That would be a good death to
-die.’
-
-‘Body and soul of you,’ he went on fiercely, ‘hateful and glorious--I
-might destroy them, mightn’t I, but never could I be rid of them. I
-know there is no escape, Isabel. And now surely you can let me be. I am
-bound to you now and for always. Isn’t that enough?’
-
-Isabel smiled. ‘Enough,’ she cried. ‘It is everything; now or later,
-what does it matter? I win. I win. Kingston,’ she added, dropping
-indifferently from the heights of emotion to the plain lands of prose,
-with something of that unconscious ease which one might have imagined
-in the nature of a woman like Isabel the Queen, the very prose of whose
-life was emotion, and whose emotion was so practical as to be daily
-prose of her existence--‘ah, Kingston, I am tired. I am simply dropping
-with weariness. Are we going to get down off this mountain to-night?
-Because, if not, I must try to sleep in that hut we saw. And I know you
-will not be able to run away from me.’
-
-‘Sleep, by all means, if you can,’ he answered. ‘There is no going
-down through this mist. Luckily the night will be fairly warm, and
-by morning the clouds will have broken. But you will be hideously
-uncomfortable, I am afraid.’
-
-‘No,’ she replied; ‘I am naturally primitive. I have never minded
-roughing it.’
-
-Exhausted by their discord of wills, they now, by mutual consent,
-talked coolly and indifferently, casting memory behind them.
-
-Kingston helped Isabel to find the hut, and did what he could to make
-it habitable. Then, leaving her to get what rest she might, he returned
-to his thorny vigil under the old beacon. The air was motionless, and
-not ungenial in its temperature. Enveloped above and below in blank
-darkness, he had the sensation of being balanced softly in space. The
-calm, after the ardent misery of their dialogue, was inexpressibly
-refreshing. He abandoned himself to its placid influences, and instead
-of devoting the night to a thrashing out of all the many difficulties
-that threatened his relations with Gundred and with Isabel, he let it
-drift him away into the domain of peace. He hardly knew how completely
-exhausted he had been, and it was with the surprise which always
-attends us when we find ourselves doing prosaic things that seem at
-variance with the high dramatic moments of life they follow, that at
-last he found himself floating quietly off in sleep.
-
-Anguish was still there, deep down in his heart--a bruised feeling of
-hunger and dissatisfaction, a great shame for himself, and a great pity
-for his wife, as well as a firm resolve that she should not suffer.
-But passion had dulled the edge of its own intensity; only dull aching
-pains were left, rather than acute stabbing ones. Disappointment and
-hopelessness possessed him in an inexorable but not agonizing grip. In
-fact, he was too weary to feel the full weight of the yoke that was
-laid upon him. Cradled in the great silence, his tired consciousness
-sank at last to rest.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-
-When Kingston Darnley woke, the clouds had broken. Overhead was
-the clear vault of stars; beneath, a vast flocculent sea of milky
-whiteness. Already the eastern air was lightening with the first green
-tremors of dawn, and the warm calm of the night was giving place to the
-keen freshness of a new day.
-
-Kingston could rest no longer. He rose, and wandered to and fro across
-the summit, thinking out the situation in which he had become involved.
-A force too great for his resistance had swept him into its dominion;
-so much was certain. The force was hateful, paradoxical, inexplicable.
-But its grip was at his throat, and no struggles could extricate him.
-The whole face of the world had suddenly changed; hidden things had
-been made clear, and things which had once been thought precious and
-sufficient were now shown in the light of this strange sunrise to be
-altogether false and valueless. No reluctance, no blinking of facts,
-no well-meant pretences, could alter the fact that life had suddenly
-opened out before him, enormous, passionate, in all its scope, and
-that, in the revelation the mountains of bygone days were dwarfed to
-molehills.
-
-But these changes ruled only in the secret places of the heart. There
-remained the practical aspect of things. In the depths of his soul he
-now carried with him a knowledge of what was highest and most glorious
-in life, but that knowledge must for ever be buried in the depths. His
-own rash action, in the days before he had understood, before he had
-been awaked, had put it eternally beyond his power to stretch out his
-hands openly, and seize the happiness that his soul had found. Chains
-of diamond might bind him now and for ever to this second self that he
-had discovered; but chains of his own making, of his own riveting, made
-him prisoner to another life, in the lower world of daily existence.
-In the clear cold of the dawn the heats and tempests of his brain
-seemed to grow calm; he saw more and more clearly into the future and
-its possibilities; passion and its stress had given way to a cooler
-appraisement of circumstances. His nature, emotional rather than
-sensual, helped him to regain his balance. It was on the spiritual,
-transcendental side of his feelings that he dwelt.
-
-This love of his for Isabel, this love which came from outside, which
-had nothing to do with moral or æsthetic approval--it should be a
-thing altogether high and holy. To keep it clear of contamination, to
-sanctify it by restricting it to the loftiest regions of life--this
-was the task that lay before him. The task might be difficult. Isabel
-might try to increase the difficulty of it. But he would gather
-strength from the very difficulty of his position, the very intensity
-of his passion, which, by the sheer weight of it, must lay so great a
-responsibility upon him as his soul must needs rise to bear. For the
-heavier the weight, the easier it is to endure; the soul braces itself
-sternly, deliberately, to the labour, and carries off the burden of a
-crushing load more triumphantly than the straws which daily life and
-little desires impose--the straws which seem of no account, and for
-which, therefore, the soul makes no preparation, stiffens no muscles to
-sustain. Against a lapse Kingston felt himself defended as much by the
-solemn ecstasy with which he had come to accept the fact of his passion
-as by his sense of the redoubled duty which it made him owe to the
-other life that he had innocently involved.
-
-Tragic affection possessed him as he thought of Gundred;--Gundred,
-giving her all--that all which now appeared so little; Gundred, whose
-greatest gift had now become inadequate, yet must never be slighted
-or discarded. In a moment he saw the vast distance that now separated
-him from his wife. Had they ever, in reality, been close together?
-Now, without conscious treachery on either hand, time had removed
-them very far away from each other. He understood what impulse it was
-that had lately been making him try to pull her back into his life,
-and realized how completely she had passed out of it. There was no
-fault in her--at least, no other fault than a limitation of nature.
-How he himself could have escaped the penalty of his own character he
-could not see. The crisis of remorse was passing. He had committed no
-deliberate sin against his wife. What had come about had come about
-through no volition of his. If he loved Isabel that love was something
-outside himself--something that he could not kill, though he might
-duly cage it and control it. To cage it and control it accordingly
-was all that remained for him to do. Infidelity, treachery, adultery
-of the flesh would be an unpardonable treason to his love and his
-loyalty; the adultery of the heart is a thing instinctive, inevitable,
-committed sooner or later by many blameless men and women. This, the
-most important of human treasons, stands for ever beyond the reach of
-human restraint. No judge can analyze it, no jury weigh it; it can be
-valued by no damages, absolved by no divorce. The marriage of heart
-with heart is a matter outside the reach of law; the world and its laws
-are only concerned with external and visible manifestations. Let the
-outward life be clean and seemly; but nothing can govern the impulses
-of the inner secret life. Its movements can only be prevented from
-reacting shamefully on daily demeanour; they can never be measured,
-foretold, forbidden. Kingston knew that his heart was faithless to his
-wife--knew that, in reality, it had never been pledged to her at all.
-Her heart to his, perhaps; but he had pledged her nothing, he found,
-but his approval, his affection, his respect. All the more reason,
-then, that, having bought so much of her, and for coin so innocently
-false, he should pay his debt to the uttermost farthing in the only
-money he had to pay. Respect, affection, approval, all that he had
-pledged and promised--these should be paid without grudge or chicane,
-and the very completeness and honesty of these tributes must atone as
-far as possible for the cruel fact that he had no more to give her.
-In the fullness of his tribute to Gundred he must find at once the
-redemption of his own self-respect, the safeguarding of her happiness,
-and the glorification of this love of his, that might sink so low, and
-might be made to rise so high.
-
-The whole air, vibrating with cold intensity, was now of a poignant
-emerald. In the East it grew keener and keener from moment to moment.
-Beneath, at his feet, through the milky sea of cloud, the heavy
-presence of the lowlands began to pierce, and grew from mere darkness
-into dim husky purples. Against the fierce green of the dawn a few
-clouds stood out fiercely black against the pure sky. The deep abysmal
-blue of the night was flying westward, retreating, fading, passing.
-Now it looked wan and worn; the faint stars staled and grew sickly as
-morning lamps. Slowly, very slowly, the world began to stir, to reveal
-itself far down in the valleys and distances. Detail had not yet been
-delivered of chaos, but gradually the separate existence of hill and
-hollow showed itself in flat masses of obscurity. And then the tones
-began to change, to grow sharper, more real. In the first dawn outlines
-had been clear and hard, the blackness dense and without modification.
-Against the pale horizon moorland and mountain had stood out hard and
-stark, as if cut from cardboard. Now the haze of atmosphere began to
-clothe the new-born world in glamour, faint, mysterious, phantasmal.
-Along the eastern rim of the darkness stretched the swooping profile
-of Ravensber, like a lion couchant, flushing now, from a thing grey,
-cold, and dead, to a living mass of opal. Diaphanous, vague, uniform in
-colour against the pulsing vividness behind, the far-off mountain came
-nearer, its azure and amethyst grew every moment keener. At its feet
-the lower hills still lay dim and indistinguishable, but to them also
-life was returning; and as the great leonine shape above took warmer
-and warmer shades, from the first vaporous dimness of opaque blue to
-the splendours of a transparent jewel, so the intervening fells grew
-deeper in their tones of violet, more solid, more easily discernible
-among the faint mists in which the dawn had vested them, and from which
-they now began to separate themselves, while out of the vaporous films
-of the sky long trails and volumes of cloud were beginning to condense.
-
-Emerald was now passing into topaz, and the rolling masses of distance
-seemed every moment a shallower, greener blue. For the oldest and
-most primeval of all colours is blue--that vast, profound sapphire of
-midnight. But as darkness dies before the advance of dawn, each colour
-recedes westward as its successor presses hard upon it out of the
-East. Blue gives place insensibly to green--to green, faint at first
-and tremulous, then growing swiftly more sharp to its note of greatest
-pungency. And so, when the lucence of emerald is at its height, it
-rises abruptly into yellow--a yellow very pure and thin, and coldly
-pale. Blue has faded out altogether. The air has the vivid transparency
-of a topaz. Quickly the clear light intensifies itself, and passes on
-into richer, angrier tones of saffron and flame. Then, last of all,
-crimson and scarlet appear, final heralds of the approaching day.
-
-Already, very far up in the shrill green of the zenith, a few feathered
-clouds were growing pink. The Ravensber, now, was of a rosy blue,
-and the sky behind it thrilled with gold. The air rippled cool with
-increasing keenness, and the awakening earth seemed to await an
-imminent summons. Gradually the details of the earth below could be
-discerned in blocks of uncertain light and shadow. It seemed as if
-the day were pausing on its road. The golden east grew increasingly
-golden, and the green overhead grew pale and melted; but to eyes that
-had watched the swift advance of the earlier stages this tantalizing
-moment of suspense seemed interminable. The world now was purple and
-azure; the Ravensber stood out no longer the phantom of a dream. Life
-was growing plain and plainer. But still the poignant moment hovered
-indecisively on its way. The path of the sun was barred with streaks of
-cloud. Ashen grey and violet in the beginning, they had kindled at last
-through wine colour to an ardent amethyst, and their lower surfaces
-were edged with rose. As their fluffy masses mounted the sky, their
-surfaces grew brighter, their purple warmer, till, high overhead, their
-last faint drifts were now of a uniform glowing pink. Everything was
-ready for the sun: the earth was clean and fresh from its sleep, the
-air was vivid and clean and sparkling.
-
-When the last change came, it came with a blinding abruptness after its
-delay. The fire of the clouds grew swiftly fiercer, their purple turned
-to molten bronze, their edges broadened, became red, scarlet, flaming.
-Kingston saw now the exact spot where the sun was to rise. Down in a
-cleft of the hills, where far-off Ravensber tailed away into the first
-slopes of Fell End, there lay the heart of the cloud-drift, and there
-through its sombre curtains, the sun would have to break his way.
-Crimson and scarlet dominated the world now, throbbing from horizon
-to horizon. Splashes of infernal sanguine began to streak themselves
-across the East, growing every moment in number and in violence. The
-day was hurrying up in a leaping fury of splendour, and the path of the
-sun was a ladder of flame, leading upwards from the ravelled veil of
-darkness between the hills. And then, in a moment, the curtain of the
-clouded East was gashed suddenly and rent asunder: the earth seemed
-swept by a blast of blood and fire. The sun was up. Another instant,
-and his awful globe had leapt free of the broken masses of bronze
-beneath, and was mounting on its tyrannous way through heaven.
-
-Instantly before his glory all rival splendours faded. Scarlet,
-crimson, gold, and orange paled and died in the glare of his presence.
-The magical moment was passed. Clouds, mountains, and valleys were mere
-clouds and mountains and valleys again; the transfiguring radiance was
-dead. Only the air was still pervaded by the red glow. The world was
-torn from dreams to reality again. Calm, clear, definite, it lay below,
-stripped of mystery, a world of men and women, fears and desires,
-eating and drinking.
-
-Kingston walked round to where the western edge of the mountain dropped
-away to the fells far below. Beneath those, again, lay the narrow glen
-where Ivescar stood. Between the Simonstone and Carnmor it cut its
-way southward and then sloped down into the great valley beyond. The
-Vale of Strathclyde stretched softly through the distance, very broad
-and fertile, to the remote low hills that bounded it on the farther
-side. From where he stood Kingston could see its whole course mapped
-out before him, far away, clear and rosy in the fresh daylight. In
-a swooping curve it flowed westward under the wall of the mountain
-country, westward from its source away in the east, in the heart
-of Yorkshire, out to where its last placid ripples passed into the
-indistinguishable golden glory of the western sea. And there, beyond
-the low cleft in the woodlands, where a faint smoky haze betrayed the
-town of Lunemouth, the vast, flat glitter of the bay ran farther and
-farther out, till it was merged in the bright opalescence of the sky,
-against whose gleaming softness rolled northward, in dim sapphire,
-the jutting ranges that passed up into the tangled mountain chaos of
-Cumberland and Westmoreland.
-
-Trees, steeples, villages, stood up clear and vivid everywhere in the
-valley beneath, remote and tiny in the depths; but where each river
-coiled and writhed through woodland, there coiled and writhed across
-the face of the earth a monstrous sleepy dragon of white vapour. Higher
-up, again, in the narrower mountain valleys, wherever water flowed,
-the runnels of its course were filled with a dense bellying mass like
-pale smoke. From the hills behind, too, from the stern, deep-channelled
-country of fell and moor, rolled down towards the lowlands of
-Strathclyde great sluggish remoras of mist, blotting out each hollow in
-a snowy void, and leaving only here and there a little islet of dark
-rock or heather in the white swirling sea of their tide, as they lapped
-and curled round the lesser hills below. As the sun grew stronger,
-their volume momentarily ebbed and melted, but in the first moments
-of day the glen of Ivescar brimmed over with their confused currents,
-beneath the brow of the Simonstone, and as Kingston gazed down over the
-edge, he looked into a blank and woolly vacancy.
-
-While he stood there Isabel approached. There was no more battle, no
-more challenge in her air. Knowledge of the truth was enough for the
-hour. In the cold clear purity of dawn the ardours and agonies of
-passion could have no place. Kingston and she had found the great
-secret of their common life; no more words were needed.
-
-Kingston turned to her.
-
-‘We may as well be starting down,’ he said. ‘It will be easy enough
-now. I only hope Gundred has not been in a great state of anxiety. Did
-you get any sleep?’
-
-‘It was a bony bed,’ replied Isabel, ‘but I managed to rest quite
-fairly. But I feel utterly tired and squashed. Do let us go home, and
-get fed and cleaned and decent again.’
-
-‘In a few minutes,’ said he, ‘we shall hardly be able to believe we
-have ever been up here. This night will seem like fancy.’
-
-‘Or else we shall feel that we have been up here all our lives, since
-the very beginning of things. Kingston, I was angry with you, but you
-have taken me up on to a mountain, and showed me more beautiful things
-than I ever thought there were in the world. I have been thinking.
-Perhaps I understand a little better now.’
-
-He studied the calm radiance of her face. The sun fell full upon it,
-gilded and glorifying.
-
-‘Yes, Isabel,’ he said, ‘we must do what we can. We must try to--to
-honour ourselves. I am glad you begin to understand. After all, nothing
-can take away the thought of what we have found together up here,
-you and I. And we must not let that thought get spoiled, Isabel. How
-pompous I sound, though!’
-
-She sighed. ‘I am always running my head up against the walls of
-life,’ she answered. ‘I think I do see now what a mistake I made. I
-hurt myself and you. Oh, I shall never pretend to have conventional
-morals like you, but I am beginning to understand that self-denial is
-sometimes a splendid form of self-indulgence.’
-
-The thrill of the new day, the glowing serenity of everything around
-him had their influence on Kingston. His emotions reached calmer,
-greater heights than before, above the reach of storms. His tongue was
-loosened for a moment.
-
-‘We are above the world, Isabel,’ he said; ‘let us try to stay there.’
-
-She looked at him, her smile touched with irony.
-
-‘And yet,’ she answered, ‘you are going to lead me down into the
-valleys. Do you think one could always stay on the heights?’
-
-‘At least we have been there once in our lives,’ he replied. ‘How many
-people can honestly say that?’
-
-‘The valley is full of clouds and mists,’ said Isabel, peering down.
-‘Death and horrors may lie below us.’
-
-‘We are going there together, Isabel. We shall always be together now.
-We cannot help it, even if we wanted to. Nothing can release us from
-each other.’
-
-‘Not even the deaths and horrors?’ asked Isabel slowly.
-
-‘Why suppose that there will ever be any?’
-
-‘Oh, I am cold and cramped, perhaps; I am frightened of things all of
-a sudden. Even you and I will have each to go alone into the Valley of
-the Shadow, Kingston. You will not be able to go with me there, not
-even if we are to meet again on the other side. I am dreadfully afraid
-of death and dying. Life has suddenly become more lovely than ever. I
-love it and worship it. Come with me into life. But, even with you,
-I don’t like passing out of this warmth down into the mists and cold
-damps below there.’
-
-‘They will have disappeared by the time we get on to the lower flats,’
-he answered. ‘Let us set off. They are thinning every minute.’
-
-With a last look round the radiant plain of the hill-top, Isabel
-followed him over the edge, and down the first steep slope. Instantly
-they were out of the sunlight and the glow, in chill shadow as yet
-untouched by the influences of day. Down and down they plunged towards
-the mists beneath, while, far overhead now, the rosy beams of the
-day shot out across the world, cut off from them as they went by the
-intervening bulk of the mountain, sombre and stark. So they came
-at last to the pavement of white limestone below, and stood on its
-last, lowest ridge. Beneath them, grey, barren, inhospitable, lay
-suddenly revealed the topmost end of the little valley, hemmed in by
-its amphitheatre of cliffs. The mists were scattering now in desolate
-wisps of vapour, and the air was cold and dank in the shadow of the
-mountain behind. Through the torn veils of the white fog they could
-see clearly down upon every detail of the glen--the shape of each poor
-profitless field of brownish grass, enclosed by intersecting lines
-of stone wall, with here and there an ash-tree or a hawthorn, weird,
-tormented, witch-like, crouching eternally beneath the lash of the
-wind, and shivering in its sparse, blighted garment of leaves. Just
-below them rose the struggling stream, out of a stone slope thick
-with nettles that dropped away steeply from the foot of the cliff;
-it wandered homelessly through two or three grim meadows, where wiry
-herbage battled with the white outcrop of stone, then passed through a
-grated barrier into the domain of Ivescar. From the height of the cliff
-Ivescar itself, house and plantation, seemed more impudently vulgar
-than ever. The plantation filled the valley, glaringly artificial,
-glaringly unsuccessful, a serried army of wretched dwarfish little
-pines. And in the middle shone, steely and cold, the square expanse of
-the lake, and by its side, isolated on the desert of lawn, the house
-itself, dome, tower, pinnacles and all, raw, yellow, brutal in its
-contented ugliness.
-
-Kingston and Isabel gazed down at it with distaste; then they
-turned from the mournful glen, filled with chill shadow and sterile
-discomfort, to look back at the mountain from which they had
-descended. Very high overhead towered the imperious western face of
-the Simonstone, and the whole mass was glowing now like a thing alive,
-flushed with pulsing blood and vitality. From crown to base it was
-kindled to an ardent and luminous crimson, at once sombre and gorgeous,
-at once brilliant and terrible. Kingston and Isabel looked up at it
-in silence for a moment, then plunged, without a word, down into the
-bleakness of the stony valley. Another moment, and the mountain had
-vanished from their sight. They were in the cold shade of the cliffs,
-and the upper glories were hidden. So, still silent, they made their
-way through the fields, through the elaborate iron gates of the park,
-and into the pretentious deserts of Ivescar.
-
-Gundred had a quiet, practical spirit. When her husband and her cousin
-had failed to reappear in time for dinner, she wasted no energy in
-grief or anxiety, but came to the conclusion that they must have lost
-their way, and either found some other haven, or, at all events, taken
-the most prudent steps possible in the circumstances. It was never
-in her calm nature to be harassed without good cause; she always
-expected the best till she heard the worst, and gave everybody round
-her credit for coolness and imperturbable sagacity equal to her own.
-Accordingly on this occasion she made her husband’s apologies to Mrs.
-Mimburn, dined without agitation, and slept the night through in
-placid confidence that the wanderers would return with the morning.
-Her perfect trust in Kingston’s sense precluded all anxiety as to his
-welfare, and her perfect trust in his affection all anxiety as to his
-absence. When at last Kingston and Isabel returned, Gundred received
-them with a complete lack of fuss or excitement, but with proper
-attention suited to their state. Warmed, washed, fed, they soon fell
-again into the orderly course of the life that she had arranged. She
-condoled with them on the misadventure that had kept them prisoners on
-the hill-top, and troubled no more about the matter, as soon as she had
-made certain that neither of them had contracted chills or colds. Very
-tiresome she felt the misfortune to have been, but a thing that might
-have happened to anyone, of no real lasting importance.
-
-Not so, however, moved the keen mind of Minne-Adélaïde. That astute
-woman, ruffled by the inexplicable absence of her host, depressed by
-the barbarism of the view from her window, and at all times prone to
-the more passionate interpretation of life’s problems, set herself to
-the careful watching of Kingston in his relations with this strange new
-cousin of his wife’s. Mrs. Mimburn from the beginning was no friend to
-Gundred. She could not but suspect that Gundred disapproved of her. No
-persuasions could induce Gundred to call her ‘Minne.’ To Mrs. Mimburn’s
-complete disgust, the new niece persisted in calling her ‘Aunt Minna.’
-Thus predisposed against her hostess, Minne-Adélaïde unfavourably
-noted all Gundred’s limitations, her apparent coldness, her lack of
-appetizing brilliancy, of appeal, of all the many attractions with
-which a wise wife arms herself against the inevitable satiety of
-marriage. In an evening’s space, Mrs. Mimburn became convinced that
-Kingston must be dreadfully bored by this unsalted wife of his, with
-her frigid little excellencies. She kept a sparkling eye wide open
-for complications. When she heard that Kingston was on the hills
-with a female cousin, she smiled in one corner of her mouth; when
-time went by, and he was discovered to be spending the night with
-her on a mountain, she smiled in both, and licked her lips with a
-delightful foreboding of catastrophe. She welcomed her nephew with
-perfunctory joy when he at last appeared, and devoted her keenest
-attention to the examination of Isabel. And at once her experienced
-glance discerned what it had taken Kingston weeks to discover, what
-Gundred was still a long way from discovering. She saw that Isabel
-was attractive--illogically, unreasonably so, but attractive all the
-same--even unusually so. And Minne-Adélaïde knew that it is just these
-illogically fascinating people who do the most harm, and establish
-the most devastating tyranny over men’s roving tastes. ‘Aha!’ thought
-Minne-Adélaïde. Time began to hang heavy on her hands, and she fell to
-scanning the future with a hopeful anticipation.
-
-The days passed by in their usual lethargic orderliness. Nothing
-happened, nothing seemed likely to happen. Kingston and Isabel were
-rather better friends than before, perhaps, but Gundred was so clearly
-satisfied with the situation that no perils appeared to threaten.
-Minne-Adélaïde began to grow a little disappointed. Neither Kingston,
-Isabel, nor Gundred gave her anything to be interested in. Their
-behaviour continued merely amiable and ordinary. Perhaps Kingston had
-grown more ardent in his treatment of Gundred, but Mrs. Mimburn was not
-in a position to realize the fact. Certainly he grew daily more and
-more affectionate; he pulled her perforce into every conversation, he
-devoted himself to her comfort, he never allowed himself to be happy
-out of her sight.
-
-As for Isabel, he and she had very little to say to each other in these
-few ensuing days. What had happened had happened; it had given them a
-blessed consciousness; there was no need to be putting it into words.
-Exhausted by emotions, they were content to let themselves drift.
-That the situation was terribly unsafe and precarious Kingston knew in
-his heart. He realized that it could not long be continued. But for
-the moment he acquiesced, and trusted that, before the strain broke in
-catastrophe, Fate might provide some solution; and, meanwhile, there
-was nothing for Minne-Adélaïde to get hold of.
-
-Mrs. Mimburn had made herself into one of those women who belong to the
-town, and are quite out of place in the country. Her dress, her voice,
-her every movement suggested the perpetual neighbourhood of shops, and
-an habitual dependence on their resources. Paris and London spoke in
-her, and she looked garish and inappropriate whenever she carried her
-elaborate boots or her silk petticoats into the country. Her rustic
-clothes and hats were never genuine. They overdid their effects, and
-only succeeded in looking like those of an actress at a garden-party
-on the stage. Mrs. Mimburn’s soul was as urbane as her body and its
-appointments. She could not live or breathe for long in the country. A
-nice suburban corner like Surrey might be all very well for a week-end
-or so. It had a saving artificiality--motors and bridge-parties and
-all kinds of gaieties seemed quite in place. One could wear decent
-clothes, and yet be in the picture. A civilized landscape like that was
-nothing more than a good _mise-en-scène_ for an added last act to the
-“Drama of the Season.” Mrs. Mimburn could tolerate such an atmosphere
-without beginning to sigh for Bond Street. But Ivescar, dumped in its
-desolation, was nothing short of appalling. Minne-Adélaïde withered
-and shrank. She bitterly regretted that curiosity had brought her
-there. Nothing to do, nothing to see, nothing to say: only clouds
-and rocks to look at, and the rain for ever spotting one’s hat, and
-midges biting one awfully through the openwork of one’s stockings, if
-ever one went out on the lawn in a presentable shoe! Minne-Adélaïde
-looked restlessly round for any possibilities of amusement. She felt
-completely _dépaysée_, out of her world, an exile in a desert that made
-her most brilliant gowns seem blatant and tawdry. She grew homesick,
-feverish, overexcited by sheer weight of dullness. She would not go
-away till she had well spied out the land. But in the meantime she must
-have something to do--or die.
-
-‘So fascinating, your cousin,’ said Minne-Adélaïde one afternoon,
-suddenly wearied of counting the raindrops on the window-pane.
-
-Gundred looked up from her needlework.
-
-‘Isabel is quite attractive,’ she replied, her tone implying, ever so
-faintly, that it was a presumption of Mrs. Mimburn even to praise a
-Mortimer.
-
-The two women sat alone in the picture-gallery, Kingston being gone on
-some errand to his mother, and Isabel writing letters upstairs. Of late
-days Gundred had begun to notice the increasing warmth of her husband’s
-nature, and in some strange way his affection seemed to set her at a
-distance from him instead of bringing him nearer. Though she had never
-thought twice of his night on the mountain, yet the faint chill that
-she had felt that evening had never since quite left her. She could
-find no fault in their relations, could guess no limitation in himself
-or her; yet now his love seemed to leave her outside his life. She
-felt cold and lonely--quite without reason, she knew, but yet cold and
-lonely she felt. Therefore she was more than usually on the defensive
-against the impertinences of Minne-Adélaïde.
-
-Mrs. Mimburn noticed the implied snub.
-
-‘Dear Kingston has a lot to say to her,’ she went on viciously. ‘He
-always has such a lively mind. He likes people with plenty of _élan_.’
-
-‘Doesn’t he--yes?’ replied Gundred quietly, yet feeling the stab as
-she would certainly not have felt it a fortnight ago. The skin of
-her self-contentment was wearing thin. But she saw the other woman’s
-intention to hurt, and brought all the resources of her pride to repel
-the attack. ‘Isabel and my husband are the greatest friends,’ she went
-on. ‘I am so glad of it. She can talk to him about so many things.
-Sometimes she can amuse him better than I.’
-
-Her whole splendid pride shone in the calm with which she made these
-admissions. It was her crowning confession of faith in her husband. And
-yet, as she made it, the confession hurt her. Deep down in some secret
-place of her heart it touched a little hidden wound.
-
-Minne-Adélaïde saw only the rebuffing self-complacency of the speech,
-and was spurred to angry indiscretion by her niece’s arrogant
-tranquillity. ‘So wise you are, dear Gundred,’ she said, ‘to let them
-go about so much together. Now so many young women ride their husbands
-on the curb, and end by boring them to death. Not that your system has
-not got its dangers, dear. I wonder you are never anxious. Men are men,
-when all is said and done, and at your age you cannot be expected to
-know the horrors they are capable of.’
-
-Gundred gazed across at her husband’s aunt with cold grey eyes.
-
-‘You have probably been unfortunate in your experiences, Aunt Minna,’
-she replied. ‘Everything depends on the set in which one lives--yes?’
-
-Mrs. Mimburn laughed--a high, giggling laugh, with a clever upward run
-at the end.
-
-‘Nothing, my child--nothing,’ she replied. ‘All men are alike under the
-skin.’
-
-Gundred had a flash of cleverness.
-
-‘But the skin may be clean or dirty,’ she answered, ‘and that is what
-makes the difference--yes?’
-
-‘Life, my dear,’ said Minne-Adélaïde sententiously, ‘is a garden of
-roses growing in manure. You cannot play about in that garden without
-getting dirty. And men like the gardening work, and they don’t trouble
-to put on gloves for it either. Life is a dirty affair, _ma petite_.’
-Minne-Adélaïde honestly thought so, though her own life had been
-plain and clean in the most uninteresting degree, so far as its facts
-went. Gundred looked at her with chilly distaste. She misunderstood
-Mrs. Mimburn, thought her attitude genuine, instead of mere pose, and
-disliked her accordingly.
-
-‘We shall never agree,’ she answered. ‘We see things very differently,
-Aunt Minna. We have always known different sorts of people.’
-
-Mrs. Mimburn bit her enamelled lip. ‘Well,’ she answered, ‘I am sure
-I hope you will make a success of your life, dear Gundred. I do think
-the experiment is a little risky, though. Isabel is really a little
-dangerous, you know.’
-
-‘Are you talking about my cousin?’ asked Gundred loftily. ‘Oh, please
-don’t trouble. I think we understand each other.’
-
-‘No woman understands any other woman when there is a man in the case,’
-replied Minne-Adélaïde. ‘Only misunderstandings happen _then_. We are
-all cats together. One always has to be careful of other women.’
-
-‘How kind of you--yes?’ said Gundred; ‘but there is really nothing to
-warn us against.’
-
-‘Oh, _ma chère_, of course not. Dear Kingston is the best husband in
-the world. It is a pity, perhaps, he was not--well, a little more
-_noceur_ before he married. That would make one feel so much more
-secure of him as a husband. One has to remember, you see, that
-marriage is not only a matter of--obvious things. It’s not a case of
-having a man, but of holding him. A woman should always have reserves
-and spices in her nature to keep her husband on the alert--ordinary
-women, I mean. But you are so brave. You are trying to run a _ménage à
-trois_ on quite original lines----’
-
-‘My dear Aunt Minna, there isn’t any need to give me so much good
-advice. I have no wish to interfere with my husband’s amusements.’
-
-‘Not even to have any share in them? Now, that is so courageous. Of
-course you don’t seem able to amuse Kingston as much as Isabel can. I
-suppose you see that. He makes it plainer and plainer every day. Or
-perhaps you simply don’t care for the trouble, and so you give him a
-lively pretty creature to fill up the time with? So sweet of you. I
-only trust he won’t fill up the time so well that he won’t have any
-left for you. Men are so uncertain.’
-
-This time Mrs. Mimburn had pierced Gundred’s armour. Her colour
-deepened. ‘I should think it a silly insult to have any doubts of my
-husband,’ she answered. ‘And--and--well, it’s not as if Isabel were
-very extraordinarily beautiful.’ She regretted the lapse as soon as she
-had committed it. But Minne-Adélaïde pounced mercilessly.
-
-‘Let me tell you,’ she said, ‘if Isabel is not exactly beautiful, she
-is something much worse: _elle est pire_. She is fascinating. Now, mere
-prettiness is apt to get very _fade_ and insipid after a time--the
-monotony of marriage, you know. And if there is anyone so attractive
-as Isabel anywhere near, a man is terribly ready to forget mere
-prettiness.’
-
-‘Perhaps, but a gentleman does not forget his duty,’ answered Gundred,
-losing command of the situation for a moment.
-
-Minne-Adélaïde pursued her advantages accordingly. ‘Oh, well,’ she
-laughed, ‘if one only wants to hold one’s husband by his duty! And even
-a gentleman--what else is he but a man, as soon as his clothes are off?
-And they do show the strangest forgetfulness at times. _I_ could tell
-you stories.’
-
-Gundred hated herself for permitting such a dialogue. Mrs. Mimburn
-seemed to have entrapped her.
-
-‘Please don’t,’ she answered. ‘These things are not interesting.’
-
-‘You see,’ went on Minne-Adélaïde, ‘if one lets one’s self slide out
-of a man’s life, one is encouraging him to forget one--and to remember
-other people, which is worse. Now you--of course one can’t always fill
-one’s husband’s life, one can’t always talk to him, can one? Between
-ourselves, now, one can’t always understand him. And she does, this
-cousin of yours. And that may be all right, or, again, it may be all
-wrong.’
-
-Thus baited, Gundred grew furious. Her colour came and went, her
-manner became neater, cooler, blander than ever. And yet she could say
-so little. Mrs. Mimburn’s darts had found the weak spot that she was
-hiding even from herself. Through all her anger at Minne-Adélaïde’s
-insolence, the dialogue had for her a fearful, poignant interest that
-forbade her to follow her own first angry instincts, and cut it off
-with a snub.
-
-‘I think you are quite mistaken,’ she replied. ‘And, anyhow, I should
-always be glad to see my husband being amused--no matter who it was by.’
-
-‘Ah, you have the reckless unselfishness of the very young,’ answered
-Minne-Adélaïde intolerably. ‘That has wrecked so many marriages. “Trust
-nothing and nobody” ought to be one’s motto, and do all the amusing
-that may be necessary one’s self. It is safest in the long run--if
-one can do it, that is. However, you seem content to let someone else
-do it, and all I say is that I hope no harm will come of it. But when
-you want to take up your own position in your husband’s life again, you
-may find that someone else has filled it while you were ordering dinner
-and talking about the weather. It is even better, my dear, to bore your
-husband than to let him find that he can be kept amused all day and
-every day by someone else. I should get rid of the cousin, if I were
-you.’
-
-‘Yes?’ answered Gundred, gelid with wrath, yet, despite herself,
-enthralled in Mrs. Mimburn’s dreadful foreshadowings. She began to have
-some notion what it was that she had been finding unsatisfactory in
-her relations with Kingston. He petted her more and more, but more and
-more did he talk to Isabel, and his recent efforts to include Gundred
-only revealed his inability to do so. This it was, this situation of
-her own making, that had been giving her secret, unacknowledged qualms,
-and feelings of vague hunger. The more proudly, then, did she revolt
-against Mrs. Mimburn’s insinuations, and the vigour of her anger was
-the measure of her inward conviction that the insinuations held some
-truth.
-
-Minne-Adélaïde thought that she held Gundred helpless. She presumed on
-her power, made reckless at once by boredom and by gratified spite.
-
-‘Oh, well,’ she pursued, ‘it may pay to leave your husband for ever
-alone with Isabel. I can’t say. It wouldn’t pay with any other man or
-any other woman. But, of course, your husband _may_ be an exception.
-Most husbands are--to their wives--until the catastrophe. Now, if I
-were you, I should want to know a great deal more about that night they
-got lost on the hill together--or said they did. That sort of thing
-isn’t done, you know. It wants a good deal of explaining.’
-
-Confronted with the final insult, all Gundred’s pride, the best side of
-her courage rallied to her aid. Her manner betrayed no agitation, paid
-Mrs. Mimburn no compliment of excitement. Perfectly cool and level was
-her voice as she looked up and answered:
-
-‘You seem to forget that we are not living in one of that dreadful
-man’s plays,’ she said. ‘I should despise myself if ever I were capable
-of having such thoughts of my husband or my cousin. As you said just
-now, such things are not done--in the class I know, at all events.’ She
-fixed a cool, contemptuous, grey stare on the astounded Minne-Adélaïde,
-who suddenly had an unaccustomed feeling of getting the worst of it.
-
-Fluttered by this sudden revolt, Mrs. Mimburn made an effort to recover
-lost ground.
-
-‘I am sorry you take it like that,’ she began. ‘Of course one does not
-mean to accuse----’
-
-‘We will talk of something else--yes?’ said Gundred very coolly, but
-with complete decision.
-
-Minne-Adélaïde gasped. She considered her attitude towards life all
-that was _chic_, up-to-date, and sound. She imagined that no man or
-woman could ever spend the dark hours in each other’s neighbourhood
-without the ultimate disaster, and piqued herself on the smart
-knowledge of the world that discerned adultery in the most casual
-compliments. Gundred’s sudden revolt was preposterous in its ignorance
-of human nature, as well as supremely insolent in its offhand
-condemnation of her own views. She completely lost her temper.
-
-‘Oh, well,’ she said, ‘one has to remember how little you know of
-things, poor dear! Your innocence is really beautiful--if it weren’t so
-pathetic. You will have a rude awakening one of these days. I am afraid
-there can be no doubt that your husband has already----’
-
-She broke off, daunted by the look in Gundred’s eyes. The immemorial
-pride of the Mortimers gleamed and flashed in them. Gundred might have
-been brought up to be calm, unemotional, well mannered, but she came
-of a race that had never allowed itself to be baited by inferiors. And
-almost everyone else in the world was an inferior. Gundred fixed a
-chilling stare on Mrs. Mimburn’s excited face. ‘Be quiet, please,’ she
-said; ‘I am afraid you are a very vulgar woman.’
-
-All was over; Mrs. Mimburn was summed up and condemned in that one
-placid sentence, so judicially delivered. She could make no appeal; for
-the life of her, she could not even finish her remark. For the moment
-she was dominated by the force that came from her rigidly decorous
-enemy.
-
-Then in the silence, the door opened, and Kingston entered. Gundred
-turned towards him with a happy smile.
-
-‘Isn’t it a pity,’ she said in pleasant, gentle tones. ‘Aunt Minna says
-she must go back to London to-morrow. Nothing can persuade her to stay,
-I find.’
-
-Minne-Adélaïde stuttered and choked with wrath at this defeat. ‘Yes,’
-she said, purple through her powder--‘yes--yes, I must positively go
-back to town--positively go back to town to-morrow.’
-
-Gundred quietly resumed her work.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-
-Minne-Adélaïde was gone, but her work remained. A week had passed, but
-Gundred could never forget that dialogue. Still as far from her mind as
-ever was any crude distrust of her husband. It was not in her nature
-to have vulgar suspicions--to attribute to others that ugly baseness of
-which she herself could never have been capable. But, none the less,
-she grew vaguely fretted by Isabel’s presence, vaguely unhappy over
-the interest that Kingston took in her cousin. The two were always
-saying things that Gundred could not understand. Bit by bit she grew to
-feel that even to be an efficient housekeeper and a nice, well-dressed
-person is not always quite sufficient for a wife’s endowment. She made
-spasmodic attempts to follow Isabel’s flights into the abstract, and
-sometimes gave a book the preference over needlework. Her conversation
-became ambitious, aiming at brilliancy, but only achieving flatulence.
-She talked in capital letters, of high big words without definitions.
-Her contributions to ethical debate were windy, wearisome, perpetually
-circular and pointless. She saw that she could not attain to Isabel’s
-fantastic lightness of touch; she tramped a heavy ring of argument,
-and, being for ever unable to analyze her own meaning, was quite
-incapable of conveying it to others. Never before had she found herself
-inadequate. Now the conviction grew upon her that inadequate--at
-least, in some directions--she certainly was. She took refuge in the
-consciousness of her wedding-ring, and in the thought that impiety
-would be involved in the sharing of much that her husband and Isabel
-talked of. And for no possible consideration of earthly happiness would
-Gundred have wished to share impiety.
-
-Kingston and Isabel noticed Gundred’s efforts to keep pace with
-their conversations. On Isabel they had no effect. Isabel admitted
-no consideration of Gundred to any place in her life. She lived
-alone with Kingston, in a world of their own creation, and Gundred
-had for her little, if any, real existence. On Kingston Gundred’s
-manœuvres impressed the full ill-luck of the situation. He saw how
-she was trying to come near him, and her struggles to do so only
-emphasized the fact that she was far away. Her attempt had come
-too late. Understanding now, as he did, the relation in which his
-whole soul stood to Isabel’s, it became piteous to watch Gundred’s
-efforts, and understand their futility. He redoubled the warmth of
-his demonstrations, and, after the habit of men, tried to make up for
-denying her what she wanted by lavishing upon her everything she did
-not. Outward signs no longer satisfied her; she had awaked to the fact
-that true marriage involves the exchange of something more, and that
-something more it was not now in Kingston’s power to give her. He
-was delightfully attentive, delightfully demonstrative; he picked up
-cushions, placed footstools and pillows, fetched and carried with eager
-docility; he complimented, praised, gave lip-worship and kisses and
-embraces; but these vigorous manifestations were all so many simulacra
-of the love that was lacking. Gundred insensibly came to realize the
-lack, and Kingston’s well-meant attempts to dissemble it only had the
-effect of forcing it on her attention. He gave her no cause to feel
-lonely, was always at her side, always included her in the talk, never
-allowed himself to be alone with Isabel. Yet lonely Gundred still
-felt herself--shut out from something. By whose fault? The fault was
-undiscoverable.
-
-Her husband’s attitude was negative and balanced. He threw all his
-efforts into making good to Gundred the fraud that he had innocently
-perpetrated. He had no need to look at Isabel, to talk to her, to
-aggravate the trouble of Gundred’s position. To Kingston and Isabel
-their secret glory was glory enough. He even shrank from the idea
-of open friendship with the woman whom his heart loved. It was
-enough--completely, triumphantly enough--that she should be there in
-the same house with him, and that he should be for ever conscious of
-her presence and her relationship to himself. That relationship might
-have been profaned, spoiled, made common, had they allowed themselves
-to indulge in talk, in rapture, in the perilous delights of intimacy.
-As things were, it remained a lovely secret possession, a thing between
-them both, silent and holy, not to be brought down to earth. The
-earthly agonies had passed, or only recurred for fleeting moments. The
-privilege of keeping sacred a feeling so absorbing was enough for the
-glorification of the present. Morbid and perilous, the situation stood.
-A month would probably have destroyed its frail balance. In the nature
-of things it could not last. No sane lover could have contemplated its
-lasting. But Kingston and Isabel had no plan. They lived from hour to
-hour; they did not dare to look forward. Destiny would somehow loose
-the knot of their relations. Silent love was enough for the moment.
-Their emotions hung breathless on a delicate poise that would not
-let them contemplate any to-morrow. Besides, such a transcendental
-attitude, so dangerous, so unpractical, so deadly, left Kingston’s
-nature free to pay consolatory court to Gundred. With all his external
-nature he did homage to his wife, and concentrated his skill on paying
-in full to Gundred the debt he owed. Exalted and fantastic, rather than
-sensual and practical, his temperament made the task easier than it
-might have been found by many better, more full-blooded men. To him it
-became rather a fine martyrdom, in the successful achievement of which
-lay not only purification, but even pleasure. In the mutilation of the
-lower self for the sake of the higher he found a comfort so keen as to
-be almost joy.
-
-Thus, in eager self-mortification, he humbled himself before Gundred,
-and believed that she had no suspicion of any defaultings on his
-side. He felt that he was giving her good measure, pressed down and
-running over--though only of the second-best. That she guessed it to
-be the second-best her husband had no notion; so subtle an instinct
-would always have been beyond the prosaic Gundred whom he had known
-and married. Now he knew her no longer; life had developed them along
-different roads. So he continued in the confident hope that he was
-giving her the perfect satisfaction to which she had the right, while
-she, for her part, secretly chafed at his obvious efforts, grieved
-that effort should be necessary, and exerted herself more and more to
-enter his life again. And as for the future, that might look after
-itself. Sufficient to the day was the marital duty of it. Marriage,
-however, is a dead thing by the time it becomes a duty. Kingston had no
-suspicion of this, but Gundred, suddenly outstripping him in the race
-of intuitions, understood in her heart of hearts, and felt a mortal
-chill.
-
-The habits of a lifetime, though, are not easily broken by emotional
-gales; Gundred, for all her leaping excursions into the regions
-frequented by Kingston and Isabel, retained her old, well-drilled
-enthusiasm for domesticity. Hearts might break and sunder, but the
-trained courage of Gundred saw no reason why soup, for that, should
-grow tepid, or beds ill-aired. Whatever she might fear or suffer,
-however much she might strain and agonize for real intimacy with her
-husband, she could not have excused herself to herself for allowing
-her attention to wander from his comfort or neglect his health. She
-pursued the useful tenour of her way with a Spartan cheerfulness that
-might have been even more splendid than it was had not long habit
-so engrained in her the zeal of domestic services. She continued
-overhauling the house, its resources, its supplies, its deficiencies.
-Lady Adela having handed over to her the reins of government, she
-assumed them with unfaltering grip. Soon she became the housekeeper’s
-terror, and put to rout all the slack ease that had prevailed under
-the ineffectual amiability of her mother-in-law’s rule. While one
-side of her nature was battering for admittance into Kingston’s
-life, the other, the older, larger side, was occupied in examining
-store-cupboards, choosing wall-papers, pulling the house and its
-appointments into shape once more. Many improvements must be made,
-lighting remodelled, some of the worst horrors tactfully but decisively
-obliterated.
-
-And at this point, some ten days after Kingston’s understanding with
-Isabel, her inquiries brought Gundred face to face with the revelation
-that the drains of Ivescar were of an Early Victorian Tudor design
-no less pronounced than the style of its architecture. The discovery
-filled her with consternation. Her husband had confessed the day
-before to a sore throat. Diphtheria at once painted itself grimly on
-her imagination. Their stay at Ivescar must immediately end. With a
-strenuous exertion of character she swept Kingston and Isabel into
-harmony with her own determination, and the next morning they fled
-from Yorkshire. There was only one place for them to go to while the
-sanitary inspectors got to work. The London house was impossible--a
-desolation of painters and builders. They must return to Brakelond.
-Accordingly to Brakelond Gundred carried her acquiescent flock, and
-they took up their residence once again in the little wooden wing
-that jutted out over the sea. And so three more days passed, drifting
-Kingston and Isabel insensibly nearer to the inevitable catastrophe. In
-their fantastic ecstasy they were heedless of peril. But without some
-intervention of fate their path led downwards towards disaster, though
-they might ignore or angrily deny the fact even to themselves or each
-other.
-
-At Brakelond some of the old reflected strength came back to Gundred.
-She became, once more, rather the châtelaine than the glorified
-housekeeper. Her mind, less distracted by congenial cares, was able to
-devote itself with all its might to what she called, to herself, the
-recapture of her husband. She talked, claimed his attention, attempted
-metaphysical flights. Her efforts aroused in him sad laughter,
-irritation, and pity. They were tragically futile as ever--futile
-in the very nature of the case, no less than in the limitations of
-Gundred’s character. The situation drifted on and on. As for Isabel,
-Gundred not only tried to copy her methods, but to monopolize her
-company. She sat with her, took her for drives, kept her at her side as
-much as possible, flattering herself all the time that her manœuvres
-were imperceptible. Isabel, secure in her secret supremacy, allowed
-herself to be captured, and, in the superficial victory of Gundred,
-found an added joy in her own hidden amusement.
-
-‘A little drive this afternoon--yes?’ said Gundred, after lunch.
-‘Wouldn’t it be nice? You will come with me, Isabel?’
-
-Isabel assented. ‘At what time?’ she asked.
-
-‘Oh, four o’clock. I don’t want to go far. There is a woman I rather
-wished to go and see. Dear Mary Restormel, Kingston, you have often
-heard me speak of her. They have been friends of the family’s for I
-couldn’t say how long.’
-
-‘Shall I come with you?’ asked Kingston, not fancying the back seat of
-the victoria, and hoping to be excused.
-
-‘Oh no, dear. You had better sit in the garden and make yourself
-comfortable. We shall not be away long. Restormel is only about two
-miles off across the valley. And we’ll take the new horse too. So I
-expect we shall be home again in next to no time.’
-
-‘What does one talk to Mrs. Restormel about?’ asked Isabel.
-
-‘Oh, I’ll do that,’ replied Gundred, not admitting, even to herself,
-that her motive in taking Isabel was to prevent her from having
-Kingston to herself that afternoon. ‘I really want to see her. She is
-expecting a child in about a month, dear Mary Restormel. Such a mercy
-if it is a son--not that it will make any difference, I am afraid, for
-the place will certainly have to be sold as soon as poor Hugh Restormel
-dies. Such a cruel pity--the sweetest little old place, Isabel. But the
-Restormels are poorer than Church mice nowadays, and positively cannot
-keep it going for another generation. You will simply love it, Isabel;
-you will be able to wander in the garden and get lost.’
-
-Expressing her joy at the prospect, Isabel made her escape to get ready.
-
-Kingston and Gundred were left together.
-
-‘You are quite sure you will not be lonely, Kingston,’ said Gundred,
-after a pause. She spoke with a tinge of remorse in her voice,
-reproaching herself with painful conscientiousness for her wish to
-deprive him of amusing company.
-
-‘Oh no,’ he answered, not discerning her veiled apology, nor caring
-to. ‘I shall get along quite happily.’ He no longer answered her as he
-might have done in his first innocent friendliness, before Isabel had
-been revealed to him.
-
-Gundred noticed the difference, with a subtlety for which he would not
-have given her credit.
-
-‘It is so nice having Isabel with us--yes?’ she said, apologizing both
-to himself and her.
-
-Her husband had long since ceased to criticize Isabel; now he warmed
-honestly to her praise.
-
-‘She is splendid company,’ he replied. ‘Always full of interesting
-things to say. Don’t you think she is very amusing, Gundred?’
-
-‘Oh yes,’ answered Gundred with pathetic insincerity. ‘So bright and
-witty and facetious. I often wish I could say all the clever things she
-does. I am afraid I am much slower than she is, though. My brain does
-not run along so readily. I am fonder of serious things.’
-
-Her voice was touched with a faint wistfulness. Kingston hardly noticed
-it. He saw an opportunity for a show of that ardour which she found so
-unsatisfactory, and which he believed that she found so satisfying.
-
-‘She is one person, and you are another,’ he replied. ‘I would not have
-you different, little lady, for anything in the world.’
-
-This was pleasant and pretty. Gundred’s instincts found it blankly
-empty and chilling. He meant to be so warm, but a month ago such an
-advance as hers would have been very differently met. Then he had
-thought her cold, had been for ever calling upon her to thaw. Now he
-hardly appeared to notice whether she was warm or cold, despite his
-manifestations of enthusiasm. Now it was he that was frozen, and she
-might thaw, it seemed, in vain. Had her melting come too late?
-
-‘Wouldn’t you?’ she answered slowly. ‘Are you really sure you wouldn’t?
-Kingston,’ she went on in a low voice, ‘I do so want to do and say what
-you like.’ She hesitated and broke off, seeking piteously for words
-that should salve her pride in its downfall.
-
-He could not understand that her seriousness demanded the tribute
-of a serious answer in return. He gave her another of those easy
-protestations which sounded so well, and yet, as she felt, meant so
-little.
-
-‘You always do,’ he replied, ‘always and always. You can’t tell how
-much pleasure you give us, Gundred.’
-
-Against this geniality, so smooth, so superficial, she felt horribly
-powerless. There seemed no way, any longer, of piercing to her
-husband’s notice, of spurring him up to sincerity. And that casual ‘us’
-shut the door against her so finally.
-
-‘Ah,’ she answered in a tired tone, her smile tinged with tragedy. ‘You
-say such delightful things. But I do feel I am not clever enough for
-you.’
-
-‘It is not cleverness one wants,’ he said. ‘It is just you. You, and
-only you. You are exactly perfect. One doesn’t criticize and say you
-are not this and that. You are just You.’
-
-She knew that he no longer criticized. But what he thought loyalty
-she felt to be lack of interest. The ardour of his words awoke now
-no answering ardour of conviction in her mind. As for Kingston, an
-emotion of pure pity stirred him. This charming, dear little woman, how
-awfully much, after all, he owed her. He believed that he could only
-pay his debt to her by redoubling the formal warmth of his words. The
-more pitiable he found her, the more he intensified the eagerness of
-compliment that was his atonement at once to her and to himself, that
-eagerness which she found so void and cold. ‘Dear pretty lady,’ he
-said, ‘you should never have foolish little doubts. Don’t you realize
-that nobody’s husband was ever so happy in the world before?’
-
-She knew it. And she feared that she counted for nothing in that
-happiness of his. Her hands dropped, her voice grew chilly in its
-hopelessness. ‘Such a comfort--yes?’ she answered. ‘I am glad you are
-so happy, Kingston. I hoped you would be.’
-
-Isabel came back into the room, and in a moment an animated
-conversation was going forward. Gundred took her part bravely, speaking
-wherever speech was possible, always falling short or wide of the
-point, always on the edge of giving up the attempt, and always being
-picked up by her husband, and pushed back again into the dialogue. Then
-the carriage was announced, and she set off with Isabel to visit the
-Restormels.
-
-Kingston sat in the garden, pondering the strange situation, hoping
-that he was behaving fairly to all concerned, and believing that he
-was. What could come of it all he had no idea. Poor Gundred, he admired
-her, respected her, marvelled at her--did everything, in fact, but love
-her. And that was now beyond his power. Love he could show, love no one
-can force himself to feel. She no longer stirred any pulses of emotion
-in him. She was a mere acquaintance--a pretty, charming, well-mannered
-acquaintance, but nothing more. What could he do, except what he was
-doing? To send Isabel away would be to find himself soon ceasing even
-to tolerate his wife. Without Isabel his life would become vacant and
-boring beyond conception. And it was not possible but that his boredom
-would react unfavourably on his attitude towards Gundred. It was fairer
-to all that Isabel should remain with them, easing off the tension
-of the difficult situation. And in time everything would settle down
-somehow, and the problem of existence would solve itself. He would not
-look ahead. Ten days had passed in a dream of holy happiness. Why not
-ten months, ten years, ten lustres?
-
-Meanwhile the return of the two women was strangely delayed. Tea-time
-came and went without a sign of them. And then the agitating news
-arrived that the new horse had emphasized his novelty by bolting on
-the homeward way, and upsetting the carriage at the foot of the hill
-leading up to the Castle. Gundred was unhurt, and soon appeared, pale
-and shaken, but intrepid. As for Isabel, her leg had been badly broken.
-
-The next few hours passed in ceaseless bustle. Isabel, unconscious, was
-carried up to the Castle. Doctors, nurses, medicaments were wired for.
-Gundred’s courage came nobly to the fore. Despite the shock she herself
-had sustained, she went calmly, self-denyingly, self-importantly about
-her business. Kingston, who had seen nothing and suffered nothing of
-the accident, was far less placid and level-headed than Gundred. The
-sight of Isabel appalled him; Gundred firmly faced the responsibility,
-had her brought to the oaken parlour at the end of the old wooden
-wing, did all that could be done for her till the doctor arrived. When
-Isabel returned to consciousness it was Gundred who watched over her,
-comforted her, tried to mitigate her pain; Kingston could not bear to
-contemplate the horror. Had the sufferer been a man, Kingston, perhaps,
-might have confronted his groans more stolidly, though even so his
-sympathetic, emotional temperament must always have been less fitted
-than Gundred’s cool, unimaginative bravery, to cope with the manifold
-uglinesses of physical suffering.
-
-At last, however, the telegrams began to bear fruit. The doctor
-arrived, and matters showed signs of settling down into a more regular
-train. The bone was duly set, Isabel made comfortable, and hope held
-out of a speedy and prosperous recovery. A nurse came, and proved a
-very capable and decisive young person, whose only weakness was for
-looking-glasses. She was established in the empty upper rooms of the
-old wooden wing, and gave nightly scandal to the Castle servants
-by lighting all the candles she could get together, the better to
-contemplate her charms and curl her hair. Except for this trick of
-collecting so lavish an illumination and leaving it to take care of
-itself while she went about her other businesses, she turned out both
-pleasant and useful. Her charge soon grew to like her, and, within a
-day or two of the accident, life at Brakelond was subsiding once more
-into calm and comfort. Helpless Isabel lay in state in the little oaken
-parlour, where Kingston and Gundred kept her company, hardly leaving
-her alone from morning to night. There was even, as her recovery
-satisfactorily advanced, a certain quiet charm about this invalid life.
-Isabel incapable of movement was rather a softer, more human person
-than Isabel insolent in perfect vitality and health. Kingston and
-Gundred enjoyed sitting with her and talking to her. They took it in
-turns to read aloud, and did everything they could to make the victim’s
-imprisonment as bearable as possible.
-
-So the days went placidly by till, though she was as yet, of course,
-unable to set foot to ground, the doctor promised that before long she
-might expect to be getting about once more, without any ill-effects
-from her accident. The nurse’s position, relieved by Gundred’s
-assiduities, grew more and more formal, more and more of a sinecure.
-She spent most of her time among the servants in the Castle, and her
-own looking-glass saw less and less of her. There were her morning
-duties and a few routine services to be discharged later, but in the
-evening, when Isabel had dined, she could safely be left to the care
-of Kingston and Gundred, while Nurse Molly, her fringe in perfection,
-could go and delight the housekeeper’s room away in the Drum Tower.
-
-The conversations between the three over Isabel’s bedside took many
-a strange turn. Gundred was never encouraged by either Kingston or
-Isabel to feel any of her inability to take an adequate part. They
-chatted of everything that interested them, and Gundred was compelled
-to believe herself interested also.
-
-‘Now that the pain is over,’ said Isabel one night, ‘one wonders,
-looking back, what it was all about--what it meant, what it really was.’
-
-‘Oh, they always say a broken bone is dreadfully painful,’ replied
-Gundred. ‘I have always heard so--yes? Dear Isabel, you bore it so
-bravely.’
-
-‘One has to worry through,’ rejoined Isabel. ‘But what I meant was, why
-is the pain there? What makes a cracked bone produce all the unpleasant
-effects it does on one’s consciousness. It sends all kinds of horrible
-little burning, grinding, stabbing messages of spite to the brain. That
-is what pain is. But what are all those little messages for? Why does
-the beastly bone go on repeating itself so? If it only told the brain
-once and for all that it was broken, that ought to be quite enough. I
-hate a tautologous bone.’
-
-‘Yes,’ said Kingston, ‘but it only goes on sending those messages when
-your brain tries to disregard them. Your leg only hurt when you tried
-to move it. Pain is simply the repeated warning of Nature.’
-
-‘And the test of endurance--yes?’ put in Gundred. ‘Pain has the most
-marvellously elevating effect.’
-
-For a moment the conversation lapsed. They were sitting in the oaken
-parlour after dinner. The hour was growing late, and soon Nurse Molly
-might be expected to come and shut up Isabel for the night. However,
-at present she was at the other end of the Castle, taking her pleasure
-with the rest of the household, and the old wooden wing, with its
-inhabitants, was left quite deserted.
-
-‘I don’t believe it,’ said Isabel. ‘Pain is absolutely horrible.
-I am a coward about it. I loathe and dread it altogether. Pain and
-death--dying, rather--are awful to me. I love being alive and warm in
-the blessed world. Dissolution is ghastly. For nothing would I give up
-the joy of living. Oh, agony is too horrible. It’s not a lesson so much
-as a punishment. Oh yes, a punishment, even if it’s for something one
-has done hundreds of years ago, before one was in this body at all.’
-
-‘Oh, what a dreadful idea!’ cried Gundred, shocked--‘a terrible
-unchristian idea!’
-
-‘Not at all,’ contributed Kingston; ‘what about the blind man in the
-Temple? They asked Christ, “Did this man sin, or his parents, that he
-was born blind?” How could he have sinned, then, before he was born,
-except in some other existence? And Christ passed the question. If He
-had disbelieved the theory of reincarnation, He was quite capable of
-saying so very definitely. But He did not. By His silence He implicitly
-admitted its truth, instead of challenging it, and devoted Himself to
-the healing of the blind man.’
-
-‘So wonderfully hot it is in here to-night,’ said Gundred.
-
-‘I always feel,’ went on Isabel, ‘whenever I have a bad time, I am
-paying for having enjoyed a too good one once in a wrong way. I expect
-this broken leg of mine is the result of some selfish enjoyment of mine
-in bygone days that I have forgotten. I had prepared this penalty for
-myself in some mysterious way. For these things come automatically.
-Touch a button--commit the tiniest, wee-est action, good or bad--and
-years and years later, long after one has thought the action dead and
-forgotten, something happens that shows it has been alive and steadily
-working from the first hour to the last. Every littlest thing that
-happens, pleasant or painful, can always be traced back, I expect, to
-some cause, infinitely small and infinitely remote in the past, far,
-far away beyond one’s recollection.’
-
-‘Don’t you wonder,’ said Kingston, ‘what your actions of yesterday
-and to-day will produce, and how long it will be before their effects
-come down upon us? We shall probably have forgotten all about to-day
-by then, but everything that we have done must bear some sort of fruit
-some day or other, as you say. Your accident, for instance, will have
-some effect upon us, and Nurse Molly must make some change in our
-lives, sooner or later. If one cannot introduce a fresh action without
-effect into our lives, still less can one introduce a fresh person.
-Nurse Molly, with her marvellous fringe, will certainly bring some new
-element with her into our lives. Now, what will it be, Isabel?’
-
-Gundred saw a chance of being apposite.
-
-‘Talking of Nurse Molly,’ she said, ‘really, she must be terribly vain.
-Morgan tells me she lights all the candles she can get together, and
-then sits and looks at herself in the glass. The servants are perfectly
-scandalized. And when she goes away from the room, she never dreams of
-putting the candles out. She leaves them all burning quite happily, and
-never thinks about them again. Such a sinful waste--yes? And she might
-set these old wooden rooms on fire any day, by her carelessness.’
-
-Isabel ignored her cousin’s intervention, and went back to the original
-topic. ‘I hope,’ she said, ‘I have atoned for my wickedness of the past
-with this broken leg of mine. What I want to do is to lay up for myself
-a great fat store of merit, so as to go on getting happier and happier
-in all the later stages of my existence.’
-
-‘Yes, but before one can attain the perfect happiness,’ replied
-Kingston, ‘remember that one has to lose the desire for it. After
-ages and ages of purification, one leaves the last trace of desire
-behind--even the desire for good. Then one becomes the perfect
-knowledge which is the perfect peace.’
-
-‘So dreadfully chilly it sounds--yes?’ said Gundred.
-
-‘Well, but the warmth of life is also the torment of life,’ replied
-Kingston. ‘Desire may be as warm and pleasant as possible, but all
-desire is sorrow. Without desire there is no disappointment, no
-suffering, none of the horrible things in life that we all want to get
-away from.’
-
-‘Would one rather sacrifice desire for the sake of getting rid of
-sorrow, or is desire so pleasant that one would put up with sorrow to
-retain desire? I suppose desire is very painful and all the rest of it,
-but it does make life wonderfully interesting, and one’s days would
-be deadly lonely without it.... I don’t know that I want the perfect
-peace, as yet, Kingston. Perhaps when my soul has grown a few centuries
-older. At present all I want is to lay up for myself a supply of
-happiness to go on with.’
-
-‘You can only do that,’ he answered, ‘through
-suffering--self-abnegations, martyrdoms, and all sorts of uncomfortable
-strenuous virtues. By despising pain and bearing it for others, you may
-attain to happiness. Not simply by sitting quiet and saying you want to
-acquire merit. You must go through dreadful things cheerfully if you
-hope to lay up merit.’
-
-‘Nothing for nothing is the rule, evidently,’ said Isabel, ‘in morality
-as well as in commerce. So tiresome, when everyone longs to get
-bargains, and buy a pound’s worth for half a crown. But when happiness
-comes to the hammer, it always fetches its full price, I suppose, in
-whatever market you buy it.’
-
-‘Well, Gundred, what do you think?’ asked Kingston.
-
-‘Talking of hammers,’ replied Gundred, ‘there are the strangest
-thumpings going on upstairs. Don’t you hear? Hammerings and bumpings
-and knockings. Do you think Nurse Molly can be nailing up pictures?’
-
-‘Running pins into the fringe, I should think,’ replied Kingston, with
-a touch of petulance. Certainly Nurse Molly was making the oddest
-noise in her room overhead. In the silence that followed Kingston’s
-suggestions her unmethodical clatterings could be distinctly heard.
-
-‘We must certainly ask her to be quiet--yes?’ said Gundred. Then she
-rose and went to the window. ‘Why should it be so stifling in here?’
-she went on. ‘There is quite a gale outside. Only listen.’ She paused,
-and the roar of a great rushing wind was clearly evident.
-
-‘The wind seems to get up very suddenly on these coasts,’ said Kingston.
-
-‘Oh yes,’ answered Gundred; ‘all in a minute. Especially so late in
-the year. That is what makes the heat so extraordinary.’ She peered
-curiously out into the darkness. ‘Why, Kingston,’ she exclaimed,
-‘it is actually snowing. How perfectly astonishing! Quite a number
-of snowflakes are falling. And Nurse Molly’s illumination is really
-too scandalous; I can see it glowing quite far out into the night,
-throbbing and flickering.’ She pulled back the catch, and threw the
-little window wide.
-
-Instantly, from above, a long, keen shaft of pure flame curled swiftly
-down into the room, licked round the casement like a dragon’s tongue,
-and was gone again. Gundred had self-possession enough to close the
-window, then she staggered back. The roaring sound overhead was louder
-now than ever.
-
-‘The Castle is on fire,’ she remarked at last, after a heavy pause.
-Suddenly she felt elated by her sagacity. ‘The Castle is on fire,’ she
-repeated slowly.
-
-‘I think we had better get out of this,’ said Kingston. ‘It’s that
-woman’s confounded candles upstairs. Ring the bell, Gundred, will you?’
-
-He went to the door, and opened it. The passage, their one hope of
-reaching the body of the Castle, was an impassable mass of flame at its
-further end. Kingston came back into the room. Even now the full horror
-of the situation had not struck him.
-
-‘I’m afraid we can’t escape that way,’ he said quietly. ‘The corridor
-is ablaze.’
-
-Gundred, meanwhile, was vigorously pulling at the bell; in the silence
-that followed Kingston’s announcement she continued methodically at her
-task, and the knob could be heard slapping again and again into its
-socket as she released it.
-
-Kingston glanced from Gundred to Isabel.
-
-Isabel had said nothing hitherto. He waited poignantly to hear what she
-would suggest.
-
-At last she spoke. Her voice was strained with agony and terror.
-
-‘And I--I cannot move,’ she said. ‘I am tied by the leg.’
-
-Kingston turned furiously upon Gundred, who, in an access of vain
-frenzy, was rending and tearing the bell.
-
-‘Leave off making that hideous row!’ he exclaimed. ‘What do you suppose
-is the use of it? Do you imagine the servants will come through three
-yards of fire to get us out?’
-
-‘What are we to do?’ asked Gundred feebly.
-
-‘I’m hanged if I know,’ replied her husband. ‘We must do something,
-that’s certain, and pretty quickly. These old rooms will burn like
-tinder. There must be some way along outside.’ He looked out of the
-farther window. Now the clamour of the fire was growing every moment
-more insistent. The night air was aglow, and burning fragments were
-dropping like meteors towards the sea beneath.
-
-‘Yes,’ said Kingston. ‘There is a little ledge of rock. One couldn’t
-walk along it in the daytime, but we have no choice. Gundred, you will
-have to do what you can. You will be able to get along quite safely,
-if you go quickly and don’t think about it. And I must take charge of
-Isabel. Isabel, I’m afraid it won’t be very good for your bad leg, but
-I must carry you somehow. And there is no time to be lost.’
-
-Then Gundred understood everything. In the midst of an orderly
-comfortable life, it is not easy to understand that one is suddenly
-hemmed in by inexorable death. But at last the facts of the situation
-all burst in a shrieking pandemonium upon Gundred’s brain. She faced
-round upon her husband, read his face, and knew suddenly what terrible
-thing it was that he was thinking. In that awful moment of unveiled
-sincerity she saw that she, his wife, came second in his consideration.
-She was to get away as best she could. It was Isabel that mattered. The
-slow secret fears of her life roared out into the open, swept down upon
-her in a storm, and culminated. She clasped her hands for self-control,
-as the world shook and tottered round her. Desperately she clutched
-at her escaping senses; then, in a swirl, everything rushed together,
-grew dark, vanished. She dropped her hands, gave a sharp, moaning cry,
-and fainted. In the blank silence that followed her fall the voracious
-bellowing of the fire drew closer and fiercer.
-
-‘My God!’ said Kingston, in the low tone of absolute terror, ‘what are
-we to do now?’ He looked at Isabel. Between the two helpless women
-he must make his choice. He must make it instantly, too. He could
-not by any possibility save both. He looked again from Isabel to
-Gundred. Isabel’s face, in that supreme hour, was white and wet with
-anguish, but she said nothing. She saw too well what Gundred’s collapse
-involved. Kingston still stood glancing from one to the other. He knew
-which of the two his whole soul cried aloud to save; he knew also which
-of the two his duty called on him to save. Love and duty were at last
-impossible to reconcile. On the razor’s edge of agony his mind poised
-and quivered through a pause that seemed to fill whole delirious hours,
-yet was come and gone in a flash. Insensibly he was waiting to hear
-Isabel pronounce his sentence and her own. All her passionate love of
-life shone in her straining eyes. They implored him, called upon him,
-cried violently to him for safety. And then, in an instant, Isabel’s
-eyes were opened, and her soul rose triumphant on its wings.
-
-‘Your wife,’ she said, with dry lips, almost inaudibly. ‘Your wife. You
-must save her. Go--go quickly--and then come back for me--if there is
-time--oh God, come back for me quickly.’
-
-All was over. He knew he must obey. Without a word, he turned and
-gathered up the inanimate bundle that was Gundred. In feverish haste he
-clambered with his burden through the window. Insatiably, terrifically,
-the fire raged and ravened overhead. As he went he had a last glimpse
-of Isabel, her face gleaming with fear, set in the strain of mortal
-anxiety, her white hands clenched and writhing together on the quilt.
-Then he was out in the darkness, with brands and lumps of burning
-matter falling thick about his ears, drifting down into the night,
-to sink at last, hissing, into the invisible sea below. Stumbling,
-tottering, staggering, he dragged his load. How he ever reached safety
-he could never have told. A hundred times it seemed as if he must fall.
-But he struggled on vaguely, half-consciously, through a nightmare,
-and found himself at last on sure ground, under the shelter of the old
-Castle walls. Savagely he dropped his unconscious burden on a level
-spot, then turned to rush back for Isabel. And, at that moment, before
-his bloodshot eyes, the old wooden wing collapsed into a blazing hell
-of fire--a vomiting pyramid of sparks and flame.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-
-The soul passes in a moment from youth to manhood, through the iron
-door of a great sorrow. Between past and present stands the bolted
-portal, and the event of half an hour has set an eternal barrier
-between the thing one is and the thing one was. Kingston Darnley, as
-soon as his dazed brain began to understand what had happened, found
-that he looked back at his past across the haze of fire as on a drama
-played by strangers. Everything had changed; on that drama a curtain of
-anguish had descended, and now, when it lifted, the scene had altered,
-and the old actors had disappeared for ever. Kingston, no less than
-Isabel, had passed through the furnace. Seared and burned and blackened
-he emerged from it, changed beyond his own recognition, with passions
-killed and passions kindled. Somehow, by some mysterious help, he had
-struggled through the agony, and come out alive; but his consciousness
-was dazed and bruised, his vitality crushed, his fiery interest in life
-turned suddenly to the grey ashes of mere endurance.
-
-The days went by in a dreary dream. Kingston went mechanically about
-his duties, and saw the figure of Gundred moving at his side like
-something unreal and strange. There were inevitable activities for him
-to carry through, and he discharged them steadfastly, with his numbed
-mind fixed on other matters. As for Gundred, not having so suffered,
-she found herself more alive to the matters in hand. There were
-condolences, inquiries to answer, arrangements to be made, restorations
-to be seen about. Gundred’s interest in the details of life could never
-lie long dormant, and when the first shock had passed with two or three
-days of intermittent tears, Gundred dried her eyes carefully, with a
-due regard to their appearance, and began to pluck up her sense of
-importance once more, thanking Heaven for her powers of self-control.
-
-The fire had confined itself to the old wooden wing and the chapel,
-and had made no attempt to devour the stark stone walls of the Castle
-itself. Gundred was deeply grateful for the forbearance thus manifested
-by Heaven, and was soon immersed in plans for the rebuilding of the
-ruins. Her husband, stupefied and calm, was not yet able to give her
-any effectual help, and so on her unaided shoulders she triumphantly
-supported all the responsibilities of the case. As time passed, and her
-first outbreak of genuine sorrow was quelled by the flood of her new
-activities, Gundred even began to enjoy the importance which events had
-so abruptly conferred upon her. Suddenly she became more conspicuous in
-the public eye than ever in her life before. The tragedy of Brakelond
-challenged attention and pity up and down the length and breadth of
-England. In horror, in picturesqueness, in romance, it possessed all
-the titillating qualities best fitted to make it the talk of the
-country. And Gundred became the central figure of the picture; sympathy
-and admiration were concentrated on her; her courage, her coolness,
-her grief, her rapid resumption of self-control, were made the daily
-subject of laudation. Of her husband nobody knew much, or cared. Her
-own name, her own position, made her the pivot of the drama, to say
-nothing of all the other causes that had tended to obscure Kingston
-since the catastrophe--his dazed acquiescence in events, his reluctance
-to enter the world of new plans in which Gundred was moving so happily.
-He sank into the background, and was alone with his sorrow.
-
-Gundred was busy with designs for the new stone wing that should
-arise in place of the treacherous old wooden fire-trap, as soon as
-the ruins should have been cleared away. Kingston could be moved by
-nothing except the hope of finding Isabel’s relics. It was not till
-the third day that his wish was fulfilled. Then, buried in the densest
-chaos of débris, they found what remained of the dead. Gundred cried
-bitterly over the tragic discovery, and then, dabbing her eyes, began
-to meditate an epitaph that should compensate everyone for all that
-had been suffered. Kingston faced the piteous remains in a stupor. He
-could not have told what it was that he had expected the excavations to
-reveal, but surely nothing so crude as this mere wreckage of mortality
-that came to light. The fire had been merciless: a few fragments of
-flaky bone, the blackened crust of a skull, from which the white teeth
-gleamed horribly--this was all that it had left of Isabel. Kingston
-could never have anticipated the raw ugliness of the revelation. It
-stunned him anew. This black, bare globe was dreadful, filled with
-dreadful thoughts and associations, a monstrous burlesque of love and
-things lovely; its eyeless glare, its obtrusive grin, were ghastly
-in their mockery of life’s beauties; the glitter of two gold-crowned
-teeth in the lower jaw set the last fine edge on the horror, in their
-ironical reminder of the daily life now destroyed for ever. And yet
-this was Isabel--the real Isabel--or, rather, it was the earthly
-emblem of her. That rounded shape had actually contained her, had
-contained the hopes, the fears, the love that had gone to make up
-Isabel. And now, where and what was Isabel? Only the outward form had
-suffered; how could the mysterious secret passions that had been the
-framework of her personality, how could they have any share in the
-ruin that had fallen on the outward manifestation of Isabel? And yet,
-without that outward manifestation, how could she still be Isabel?
-Dimly, fantastically, he tried to figure her in another shape--as
-another woman, as a man. The task was impossible. To his bounded human
-outlook, the outward form was an integral part of the real Isabel.
-Yet, now he was brought face to face with the obvious fact that, while
-the outward form had been reduced to a thing of loathing and horror,
-the real Isabel must still be in existence somewhere, incorrupt and
-incorruptible. It was unthinkable that she should have suffered the
-fate of her body. So he must perforce bring himself to realize that the
-thing he loved had had no true connection with the hair, the skin, the
-features that it had worn for a while. Hair and skin and features were
-gone; but the beloved remained--out of sight, unrecognisable, remote;
-yet, for all that, perfect and unalienated. Fire could not touch the
-heart that was Isabel, the courage, the loyalty, the devotion that were
-Isabel. They were still alive as ever. But where, in what far world,
-how to be found again, and how to be known again when found?
-
-Kingston passed insensibly beyond the cheap materialism of orthodoxy.
-He could not postulate an infinite gilded space where Isabel might
-be eternally walking in her habit as she had lived on earth. This
-invincible anthropomorphism, this obstinate survival of the savage
-in us, by which we are all prone to imagine the dead as we saw them
-in life, and familiar for ever by their earthly features, had now no
-hold on Kingston. He knew that, whenever we may meet our dead again,
-and wherever that may be, heart will call to heart, and soul be known
-again to soul; but the features that we have known and loved, the
-bones, the flesh, the softness, will all have passed long since into
-other forms of life, merged in the huge kaleidoscope of the universe.
-Perhaps, in circumstances less cogent, he might have conceived himself
-as meeting the physical Isabel years hence in some glorified state,
-yet recognisable to eyes that had known her on earth. The sight of
-her relics, however, jarred him once and for all out of the puny,
-materialistic dream. The blackened hideousness of them forced on his
-attention the irrelevance of all physical forms. For a time they may be
-everything, these forms and features; ultimately they go for nothing,
-pass utterly, are dropped, discarded, alike by the love that wore
-them and by the love that worshipped the spirit they clothed. No, he
-had done for ever with the corporeal Isabel. Weaknesses and beauties
-of shape were all destroyed, reduced to their native insignificance.
-Yet Isabel remained. But he had lost her; she had passed beyond his
-knowledge into dim places where, if ever she heard the cry of his soul
-far off, she could not make him any answer. Now and then, perhaps, she
-might call to him in return; in the whisper of the evening wind, in
-the song of a bird; but never again in the accents he had known, from
-the lips that he had watched; and, even so, she might call unceasingly
-to the hungering ears of his soul, yet never be able to make them
-understand whose voice it was that they heard. His deep certainty that
-she still lived made the separation more paradoxical, more horrible
-than ever to Kingston. To know that she was there, yet to call in vain;
-never to see her, never to meet her, to be unable, through all his
-days, to open up any means of communication with the thing he knew to
-be still existing,--this was the ghastliest instance of Fate’s irony,
-giving so much, yet making the gift so nugatory.
-
-Kingston began to feel that, after all, the bill sent in by the
-gods had fallen more heavily on him than even on Isabel. Isabel had
-passed through agony to glory. But he, he had another agony, longer
-and more incurable than hers, though less poignant; and no glory to
-compensate, at the end, for the gnawing persistence of his pain.
-The grey, sad merit of doing his drudging duty by the world for two
-or three more score of years--that, perhaps, lay before him; but a
-chilling, colourless glory was this, at once harder and less rewarding
-than the sudden flare of martyrdom through which Isabel had passed
-upwards on her way. For upwards she had gone, leaving him henceforth
-alone on the lower levels where they had first met. Isabel--selfish,
-passionate, barbarous Isabel--in one whirling moment had leapt above
-all the trammels of false desire and fear--had soared into the great
-heights of selflessness, and left far beneath her the outworn husk
-of her old struggling egoism. In that other state where she now went
-radiant, it must be another Isabel that lived and moved--a purified
-Isabel, stripped of many mean and selfish thoughts; an Isabel far
-nearer than before to the ultimate radiance towards which the whole
-world is inevitably tending through ages of slow purification. How
-should he even be able to catch up lost ground and come level with this
-glorified Isabel once more? And yet, again, without features--without
-the well-remembered features of body (without so many of the mind’s
-well-remembered features too)--how, even if chance should be given, was
-he to recognise the soul that had once been one with his own?
-
-She had utterly outstripped him in the race. No test of his endurance
-could equal that test of hers--no, not if he lived decently and
-honestly all his days, doing the best he could with his duty through
-the lagging years that probably lay ahead; why, that would be nothing
-to compare with her ordeal, no such swift burning furnace as that
-through which Isabel had passed, and from which she had emerged all
-gold in the sunlight of her future.
-
-Because duty and honour had seemed to call, he had sacrificed the thing
-he loved for the thing he had promised to love. Even in cold blood he
-would still have done the thing--must have done it; any other course
-would have been impossible, a treason, a horror. But the sacrifice had
-been a rending of the heart; his whole soul was strained and bleeding
-from the wrench--bleeding to death, he thought. And, while Isabel
-had won freedom for herself, he had gained nothing but a lifetime’s
-loneliness. Without any peddling notions of striking a bargain with the
-gods, he could not but feel the sarcasm of their smile. He had sold his
-life’s happiness--to buy a lifetime’s unhappiness and desolation. He
-had done what was an agony to do, in order to obtain that which would
-be a long agony to endure. So he looked angrily, contemptuously, on
-the chilly duty and self-respect which was all that his martyrdom had
-gained him. He hated them for what they had cost, and hated them the
-more for his inmost knowledge that the purchase had been inevitable.
-Life without Isabel! It seemed that his soul had never in all the ages
-imagined the possibility of such a thing, yet now he was to envisage it
-through every remaining day and hour of his existence. She was gone,
-rising on strong wings towards heaven; he remained on earth, alone for
-ever, he who had so helped her take her flight.
-
-So time dragged by, and insensibly the first agony of his loneliness
-wore down into a calmer sorrow. Isabel’s bones were duly buried, and
-honoured with a neat inscription devised by Gundred, and matters
-gradually began to fall into a settled course once more. Kingston began
-to return to ordinary life, and his private grief no longer claimed
-his whole attention. Between himself and Gundred a barrier still rose,
-but he grew able to give her his help, and, bit by bit, to share once
-more in the superficial interest of her days. She, for her part, went
-bravely on her way; with more courage and on a more difficult way than
-she or anyone else suspected. The new wing was built; the new wing lost
-its raw look of novelty; gradually Isabel and her end became to Gundred
-little more than a vague if awful memory. She was not the kind of woman
-whose nerves can be thrown permanently out of gear. Self-restraint
-had been drilled into her blood through many generations, and she
-made imperturbability the test-virtue of good breeding. Only once in
-all her life had perfect coolness failed her, and that one momentary
-lapse had been the immediate cause of Isabel’s death. For a long time
-the knowledge of this was her secret cross. In her heart of hearts,
-that last awful instant had showed her that Kingston loved Isabel,
-that his care for his wife was mere loyalty. The sudden perception,
-the combination of new terrors and responsibilities had been suddenly
-too much for her endurance, already sapped and damaged by hidden
-anxieties and by the shock of the accident. Not meaning to be selfish,
-transported rather with the longing to be unselfish and give up her
-own life that her husband might save Isabel’s, she had yet, in the
-crisis, helplessly committed the final selfishness. She had killed
-Isabel. Nothing at first could quite excuse her to herself. And she
-knew that her husband must inevitably feel as she did. This was
-the barrier between them--Gundred’s innocent guilt, and Kingston’s
-answering knowledge that she, and she alone, had been the real cause of
-Isabel’s death. Her weakness had cost him the happiness of his life.
-How could he bring himself all at once to look on the poor woman with
-a cordial eye? He could not but bear her a grudge--all the more bitter
-that he realized how unintentional had been the cowardice that had
-had such terrible results. He guessed, in his inmost consciousness,
-that Gundred--cool, practical Gundred--would have wished to be no
-less heroic than Isabel, would have wished to sacrifice her own life
-to his happiness; and this instinct only aggravated his grudge, only
-intensified in its first vigour his aching, bitter grief that the
-sacrifice had not been achieved or made unnecessary by a brief exercise
-of Gundred’s usual calm. Yes, the death of Isabel stood between them
-for a while like a sword of fire.
-
-But Gundred was not a woman to suffer exaggerated scruples. Soon she
-surmounted the shock, and Bellowes’ Hypophosphates enabled her to
-triumph over morbid qualms. She reflected on the goodness and honesty
-of her intentions, set remorse in the background, and ere long was
-facing Kingston without any more such distressing reserves. He,
-meanwhile, was also growing quieter and more sane in his views. After
-all, no one was guilty. Everyone had acted for the best. Nature was
-not to be blamed. He was too fond of his wife to go on condemning her
-for an instant’s lapse. He saw the hysterical injustice of his grudge
-against her, and in time succeeded in overcoming it.
-
-Though neither knew it, Isabel’s stormy intervention and terrible
-exit had tided them over the difficult preparatory stage of wedlock.
-Now that she was gone, they gradually settled down together in that
-elastic bond of mutual tolerance which promises so well for permanent
-peace. Neither any longer expected too much from the other. Kingston
-grew to acquiesce in Gundred’s limitations, and rejoice in her
-perfections, without feeling fretted by the one or satiated by the
-other. He did not ask her to be an intellectual companion, to talk,
-allure, amuse. She was always cool and pretty to look at, always cool
-and pleasant in temper, an admirable hostess, housekeeper, and friend,
-altogether level and satisfying as a companion. He had had enough of
-vain searchings for the ideal. Nothing could divorce him from the
-memory of Isabel. He carried it with him from day to day, shrined in
-the depths of his heart, and through the placid duties and happinesses
-of his life never ceased to worship that lost part of himself, and
-yearn for its recovery. But on the surface he wore a face of perfect
-contentment, and his marriage with Gundred soon subsided into a
-whole-hearted alliance that was put to no strains, that stood the wear
-and tear of intercourse, and was felt to be quite ideal by all that had
-the privilege of watching it. And Gundred, now that the storm was over,
-gave equal allowances to her husband. The time was gone by now for high
-emotions and anguish. Her dim jealousy had vanished with its cause, and
-she no longer pined for the perfect intimacy that her nature made it
-impossible for her to attain. Instead of being in love with Kingston,
-she was now devoted to him, served him loyally and piously, made it
-her pride to keep him comfortable and contented. She divined in what
-quarter her strength lay, and took pains to cultivate all the qualities
-that gave her a hold on her husband. She learned life’s lesson, grew
-accommodating instead of exacting, prayed for him instead of preaching
-at him, and pressed upon his acceptance nothing that he did not want.
-The years had worn down the sharp corners of their characters in the
-mill of marriage, until at last their harmony was exact and without any
-apparent possibility of discord.
-
-The years glided placidly by, bringing no more great or violent
-developments into the lives of Kingston and Gundred. Five years after
-the fire at Brakelond Gundred bore a son, but otherwise little occurred
-to break the monotonous tenor of their days. Isabel, by now, was
-almost forgotten. Only Kingston retained his faithful worship of her,
-cherishing it secretly, far down under the loyal surface of his life,
-feeling that justice allowed him at least so much of compensation. From
-day to day he longed for her and listened unceasingly for some far-off
-echo of her voice. It seemed almost as if she had never been, as if
-she had left no relic of her existence in the world--except, perhaps,
-by a quaint freak of fortune, in the life of that Mrs. Restormel to
-whom Gundred had taken her on that fateful visit. For Mrs. Restormel,
-overcome with the horror of the news from Brakelond, had been so
-excited that her hour had come upon her unawares. Out of due time she
-had been delivered of her child, and a boy had made his appearance
-in the world only twelve hours after Isabel had quitted it. However,
-the Restormel baby prospered and grew strong, was christened by the
-family name of Ivor, and passed successfully through the vicissitudes
-of childhood. Otherwise, as Kingston Darnley felt, Isabel had come and
-gone, leaving no other trace in the world than that persistent image
-which her life had established in his own soul.
-
-The restless heat of youth had died down in Kingston as in Gundred. His
-son was growing from boyhood towards manhood. Unnoticed the years had
-flowed away till almost a quarter of a century had rippled by since
-the passing of Isabel. He himself was growing fixed and solid; grey
-was developing itself in his heart as in his hair. Life was very level
-and very comfortable and very pleasant. It was no longer stimulating.
-As for Gundred, the years had less effect either on her nature or on
-her appearance. She was one of the women who neither shrink nor swell
-with age. She had not grown fat; she had not grown thin. Possibly
-she had dried up a little. The freshness was gone from her features,
-though not their neat prettiness. They had grown perhaps a trifle
-wooden in their clear and rather hard perfection. Tiny lines had drawn
-themselves here and there, especially round the mouth. Otherwise her
-face had changed wonderfully little. The alteration was in its spirit
-rather than in its form. It was still strangely young for its years,
-but now it was far more decisive than before, older in experience,
-more matronly, more righteous. All her points had intensified, and now
-she had turned from a very pretty bride to a very pretty wife, full of
-responsibilities well borne, of interests, charities, benevolence. Her
-child, her schools, her households, her Primrose League gave abundance
-of occupation to her life, and more and more for her growing sense of
-excellence to feed on. From duty she never flinched or flagged; the
-consciousness of such undeviating rectitude of practice gave her manner
-a commanding air of self-confidence. Religion, too, tightened its hold
-on her. The better she felt herself becoming, the more useful and
-valuable, not only in herself, but as an example of conduct, the more
-her intimacy with Celestial Persons grew. Priggishness, self-conceit,
-as well as all the other grosser mental errors, were very far from the
-well-balanced security of her nature. The worst that an enemy could
-have said would be that she was a little slow to admit the possibility
-of any limitations in herself. In earlier years she had already been
-calmly self-confident. Time had only justified and reinforced the calm
-as well as the self-confidence, so she went her methodical way, a model
-for all matrons, and had, in the neat garden of her life, no disorderly
-plots, no tangles, no weeds. It was a precise arrangement of well-kept
-beds--everything in its place, and no profitable herb omitted. Her
-husband wandered outside its borders, and roamed the shrubberies of
-freedom. But Gundred found all that her nature ever needed to ask in
-that daily round, that common task for which her character had been so
-perfectly fitted by time and fate.
-
-Their life oscillated between London, Ivescar, and Brakelond. In
-London Gundred had her factory girls, her hospitals, her educational
-societies; at Brakelond there were the tenants to be looked after, the
-Castle and all its immense organism to be managed, the Tory Candidate
-to be upheld by threats of Gundred’s withdrawal of her custom from all
-who should so far presume upon the Ballot as to oppose him. At Ivescar
-there were farms, gardens, parishes to be controlled by Gundred’s
-masterful eye. For a masterful eye it was. Kingston slid back into
-himself, never regained his full vital energies, renounced interest
-in his career, and yielded the reins of government into his wife’s
-hands. As her sphere widened, and her power increased, Gundred’s
-unquestionable majesty increased proportionately, until the habit of
-ruling had grown so strong in her that no one would have presumed to
-doubt the wisdom or cavil at the commands of that tranquil little
-despot, whose voice was never raised in anger, whose orders never
-admitted the possibility of dispute. She arranged the lives of all
-around her with the serenest certainty, and indomitably shepherded
-her army of dependents, factory girls, tenants, and servants along
-the path of righteous happiness. As mistress she was a success; as a
-hostess the same strenuous qualities, the same self-sufficiency brought
-her the same success. She could never hold a room by her talk, but she
-could now listen graciously, and disguise her complete inattention by
-smiles. Clever people went willingly to her houses in London and the
-country. Her well-dressed, pleasant presence made a becoming quiet
-background for their conversation, and, as a housekeeper, she was
-unsurpassed. She never rivalled their efforts, she never failed to make
-them feel both clever and comfortable. A brilliant, ambitious woman
-could never have won the popularity that Gundred’s calm indifference
-achieved. If not gay, her set was clever and solid, nor did anyone ever
-discern that it was only her well-bred stupidity that had had the gift
-of gathering it round her by sheer force of apparent colourlessness and
-calm.
-
-Gundred loved the power that her position had attained, and, as time
-went by, Fate also was kind, and gave her that full measure of glory
-which had been denied to her earlier years. London had ignored the
-inconspicuous Miss Mortimer, unmarried, and slenderly portioned. But
-London showed itself very amenable to the charms of Lady Gundred
-Darnley, conspicuously wealthy, and with Brakelond as well as Ivescar
-at her back. For the old Duke faded away at last, and Gundred’s father
-reigned in his stead--a mild and inoffensive reign, which left all
-real dominion to be exercised by his daughter. For the new Duke, like
-his predecessor, had slid into a gentle imbecility, and now lived
-at Brakelond in contented seclusion; Gundred occupied the house as
-mistress, vigorously took up her father’s responsibilities, and was,
-to all intents and purposes, the tenth reigning Duchess of March and
-Brakelond. She never went in to dinner after a Marchioness without
-feeling that such an order of precedence was altogether paradoxical and
-out of joint. For was she not herself a Duchess in everything but name?
-
-Her constant energies overshadowed her husband in the public eye. By
-the side of his energetic practical wife he spent a peaceful existence
-very much alone, very little hampered by the more brilliant cares in
-which Gundred took such pleasure. She could not push him into any
-prominent position; he had lost, in an hour, all stir of ambition, and
-preferred to live on in the company of his dreams and memories and
-visions. Their son was his great delight, his most constant occupation.
-Gundred was a trifle too multifariously busy, a trifle too excellent
-to be a perfectly sympathetic mother. It was to his father that Jim
-Darnley carried all his more interesting private matters for sympathy
-and discussion. Kingston, as the years brought him increasing calm,
-found his world growing narrower, till at last it held only his son
-and his memory of that strange intoxicating passion which had ended on
-so terrific a final note at Brakelond more than twenty years ago. His
-heart still clung to the far-off thought of Isabel, and his life was
-always in some mystical sense alert to catch news of her in the shadowy
-lands where she might now be dwelling.
-
-Kingston could never bring himself to feel that Isabel--the real
-Isabel, as distinct from the body she had worn--was dead; he knew that
-she still lived, somewhere, somehow; he felt it in every fibre of his
-life; every nerve vibrated with the knowledge that somewhere, in some
-remote corner of the world, that lost half of himself was still alive.
-As the years passed his ideas, instead of growing fainter, grew keener,
-more fixed, more certain. He lived in mysterious expectation of a call,
-the sound of a voice he should recognise, some hint that Isabel had
-come back, that their paths through the world had crossed again. Sooner
-or later the call would come; it was impossible that it should not.
-He and Isabel were so close together; accidents like physical death
-could not be any permanent barrier. As the time went by he grew more
-and more sure that the call must come soon. Each day he hoped that the
-sign might be shown to-morrow, and, deep in his heart, listened in
-every conversation for the sound of Isabel’s voice, and looked in every
-face for a memory of Isabel’s. Meanwhile he lived out his placid life,
-friends with all, popular, suspected no longer of any eccentricities.
-The gentle, managing woman at his side had never any notion that
-her husband was cherishing such fantastic hopes. To her he had long
-been, in reality, a stranger, a stranger very dearly loved, and very
-faithfully looked after, but a stranger none the less, as are so many
-of us to those who love us best.
-
-As for Isabel, if Gundred ever recalled her name now, it was with
-a feeling of wrath that grew steadily towards hatred. Isabel stood
-for the one moment in which Gundred had faltered, in which she had
-not been sure of herself. Isabel was a painful memory, not only as
-recalling that far-off period of unrest, but also as raking back
-into recollection that one awful instant in which Gundred’s courage
-had failed her--with results so disastrous for poor Isabel. Had the
-results not been quite so disastrous for Isabel, Gundred could better
-perhaps have borne the recollection. As it was, they convicted her
-of inadequacy, and touched her secret pride in its tender point. She
-pushed such horrid reflections far back in the most private cupboards
-of her consciousness, and hated Isabel anew whenever accident compelled
-her to open the locked doors and turn over those dreadful bones of her
-one failure.
-
-But Gundred had great skill in ignoring all unwelcome topics; it was
-very rarely that she remembered her cousin, and all the dim, remote
-unpleasantnesses that Isabel represented. Her first year of married
-life now loomed down upon her out of the distant past as a confused
-nightmare-mirage of desert wanderings, from which her nice tact and
-the favour of Heaven had brought her feet at last out into the Canaan
-of prosperity, conjugal and social. The few brief sorrows of the past
-assumed gigantic proportions in the haze of memory, and Isabel was
-their incarnation. Gundred began to realise how directly Heaven had
-intervened to relieve her of her cousin’s threatening presence, and,
-though grateful for the service, it was to her credit that she retained
-humanity enough to think the means adopted unnecessarily drastic. This
-tenderness greatly elevated Gundred in her own eyes. She remonstrated
-with Heaven--not acrimoniously, indeed, but with feeling, and devoted
-many prayers to Isabel’s happiness in another world. But she rejoiced
-over Isabel’s removal from this, and nothing could have given her
-serenity a greater shock than any suspicion that her husband ever
-remembered the dead woman with tenderness or longing. However, she was
-protected from such perceptions as much by her own impermeability to
-unwelcome truths as by her husband’s perpetual skill.
-
-He had not come so far through life, safeguarding his wife’s happiness
-and trying to behave decently, only to undo all the good by allowing
-her now to see that he regretted Isabel. The course of years had
-taught him to keep a shut mouth on all his aspirations. His mind was
-apparently thrown wide for Gundred, but Isabel’s shrine was hidden
-in the very holiest of holies. As Gundred roamed through his mind’s
-reception-rooms, comfortable and clean and neatly decorated, she never
-had any suspicion of that locked room in the very heart of his soul’s
-dwelling, where the memory of Isabel was for ever worshipped. Many of
-us, indeed, there are that keep a secret shrine, but few of us suspect
-its existence in anyone else’s life. Gundred was perfectly happy in her
-monopoly of her husband, perfectly confident that she knew every corner
-of his mind. He, for his part, gave thanks for the salutary blindness
-which so often makes life tolerable, and continued to make his wife a
-visitor in the heart whose tenant was still the dead woman--the dead
-woman whom he daily expected to meet again, whom every hour brought
-nearer to the renewal of contact with himself. He had done his duty,
-played his part, abundantly paid Gundred all he owed and could;
-affection, respect, loyalty--of all these he had never failed for one
-moment to give her in good measure; the secret impulses of his love
-could not be controlled like their formal manifestations; no one could
-exact it; not one could expect it. His own inmost heart still yearned
-and cried for the return of Isabel, that return in which every day made
-him more firmly believe, more immediately look for.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV
-
-
-For twenty years had Kingston Darnley awaited the call that was to come
-to him from Isabel. He had made no effort to anticipate, or even to
-summon, the voice that he desired. It seemed to him better, finer, more
-loyal, to do nothing, to sit patient until the course of life should
-bring him again into touch with what he had lost. At the appointed
-moment the voice would reach him, and he would know it. But till that
-time should come, his soul revolted against the notion of going out
-into the devious byways of foolishness to call up the departed with
-necromancy or any other prevailing fad. For all such illegitimate
-dealings with the third-rate dead he had the strongest contempt; it
-would be a profanity to attempt such proceedings in relation to Isabel;
-wherever she was, she must be above those hireling spirits who go out
-in attendance on séances and circles. So for many years he maintained
-his resolution to be patient, and stiffened himself in disdain of cheap
-and common spiritualistic methods. He had no idea that people of any
-sense or breeding could find solace in futilities so apparent. Gundred
-was his standard by whom he judged all other women’s pretensions; and
-Gundred had, not so much a contempt as a rooted religious horror,
-immitigable, medieval, of magic, palmistry, psychometry--all the many
-names beneath which we disguise our curious longing to pry behind the
-veil. The very notion of such things made Gundred so piously angry that
-a certain reluctant, stifled belief could be guessed to underlie and
-inspire her denunciations. Meanwhile, however, her attitude confirmed
-Kingston in his, and he remained quiescent, until at last he came
-across Mrs. Mercer-Laporte.
-
-Mrs. Mercer-Laporte was dining with Mrs. Mimburn when Kingston and
-Gundred met her, having accepted their aunt’s invitation as a solemn
-but displeasing bi-annual duty. Gundred made a point of never evading
-it; Gundred made a point of never enjoying it. Minne-Adélaïde, however,
-with the years, had grown less flagrant; but the change made her no
-less odious than before to Gundred, for her love of the illicit had now
-turned from matters of the flesh to the darker mysteries of occultism,
-clairvoyance, ghost-raising. She had taken to frequenting circles,
-to entertaining phantoms, to wearing weird, shapeless clothes, and
-collecting round herself a crowd of people famous in the ‘psychic’
-world. And of these Mrs. Mercer-Laporte was the fine flower, the most
-exalted, the most spiritual, the choicest in ways and manners.
-
-She was almost obtrusively lady-like, tall and pale, and mild and
-bland, in long trailing draperies of blue. She had sweet anæmic
-features, and a watery eye that suffused with tears on the slightest
-occasion. Her hair was thin and sandy, coiled into a knob on the top
-of her narrow head; her mouth was large, lax, emotional; her glances
-soulful and celestial. She wore a quantity of mystical-looking chains
-and necklaces that gleamed and jingled as she languished from place to
-place with a certain priestly elegance. She fell to Kingston’s lot at
-dinner, and during the first part of the meal he felt himself truly
-unfortunate. At last, however, a chance word caught his attention and
-held it.
-
-‘Ah, my dear Mr. Merrington,’ he heard her saying to her other
-neighbour in high dulcet tones--‘dear, dear Mr. Merrington, believe me,
-I have often had the sweetest converse with my dear dead.’ She sighed,
-as if in rapture, while Mr. Merrington helped himself to a cutlet in
-aspic. ‘They return to those that love them, Mr. Merrington,’ she went
-on, as soon as the cutlet had been safely landed. ‘I never feel that
-my dear ones have been lost. They are always near one--it only needs
-a suitable medium to produce them. Oh, of course, I am not talking of
-silly common séances. _Those_ spirits are people one would not wish to
-have anything to do with; but, ah! the sweet and holy talks I have had
-with my own beloved ones in suitable surroundings.’
-
-At this point, seeing Mr. Merrington more favourably inclined towards
-the cutlet than the conversation, Kingston thought he might be allowed
-to take part in the talk.
-
-‘One always feels,’ he said, ‘that from all accounts the spirits that
-return must be those of exceedingly weak-minded people. The messages
-they make so much ado about conveying are invariably such rubbish.’
-
-Mrs. Mercer-Laporte turned the watery gleam of her smile upon him.
-‘What is matter?’ she asked hierophantically. ‘Ah, Mr. Darnley, what
-does matter matter? Believe me, you have been unfortunate in the
-spirits you have met. In the innumerable vibrations of the Universe
-there are rays innumerable that permeate the Whole with their blessed
-dew, and consume in their pure radiance all the coarser manifestations
-of matter. You speak without that inward higher knowledge which makes
-us one with the Infinite, in those far Universes where the Veil of
-matter exists no longer, and the blessed dead are free and untrammelled
-by any more cares of this vulgar flesh!’ Mrs. Mercer-Laporte stopped
-to take breath, and in an abstraction allowed herself to be given an
-artichoke. Then, while she was unconsciously devouring it, Kingston
-took advantage of the pause in her oration to recall her to the
-question that interested him.
-
-‘Then,’ he said, ‘soberly and without mistake, are you really sure that
-we can ever converse with our own friends in other states of existence?’
-
-But Mrs. Mercer-Laporte made a profession of irrelevance. In her world
-it was the hall-mark of wisdom, the guarantee of occult knowledge to
-which the profane crowd can never attain. She would not have lowered
-her pretensions by sticking to the point.
-
-‘Go,’ she said majestically, waving an inspired fork, ‘go to dearest
-Mr. Minch in Albany Road--49, Albany Road, Mr. Darnley; Albany Road in
-Notting Hill, remember. Go to him, Mr. Darnley, and be made happy. How
-all of us, bound down in this sphere of matter, how we leap and burn to
-attain the higher levels through which for ever the blessed ones are
-wandering on their angel wings! Ah, rapture, rapture, Mr. Darnley! Go,
-go to Mr. Minch.’
-
-Twaddling and silly as her utterances were, yet the woman was obviously
-sincere. Kingston had never met the type before, and now he saw that
-it was not quite so cheap and contemptible as he had always imagined.
-Predisposed by his secret longings, he prepared to lend a favourable
-ear, and the dulled sobriety of his middle-aged calm began to break up
-unexpectedly into a St. Martin’s summer of youthful enthusiasm.
-
-‘What does Mr. Minch do?’ he asked.
-
-‘Do?’ replied Mrs. Mercer-Laporte. ‘He draws the pearl from the Secret
-Lotus! He will tell you your heart’s desire. He will tell you of the
-sweet spirits hovering round you. He can see them all easily, and the
-colour of your own soul’s halo he will tell you too. Sometimes it is
-pink and sometimes it is blue. Mine,’ she added with pride, ‘is purple.
-No one but me has a purple halo, Mr. Darnley. But every one of us has a
-colour of our own, and dear Mr. Minch sees them distinctly and clearly,
-and tells you all about them, and about the dear spirits as well. And
-then, if there is anyone among them, anyone in the precious company
-of the invisible with whom you particularly wish to enter into sweet
-converse, Mr. Darnley, you might go on to Mr. Muddock at Hindhead.
-Mention my name, though, just to show that you have a reverend and
-faithful spirit. Mr. Muddock has _the_ most marvellous powers. He is
-more than a mere psychometrist. He can actually make the dead resume
-the garb of flesh, Mr. Darnley!’ perorated Mrs. Mercer-Laporte with
-awful solemnity.
-
-Suddenly Kingston’s resolve of twenty years weakened and broke. The
-long odds were that this talk of spirits was the mere nonsense he
-had always believed it. But still there could be no possible harm
-in trying to find out. And if, in sober truth, Isabel were really
-hovering on the edge of the other world, perpetually longing to enter
-into communication with him again, how tragically foolish to neglect
-the blessed opportunity because of any stupid materialistic qualm of
-incredulity. After all, there might be something in it. In the avowed
-belief that there was nothing, and the secret trust that there might
-be a great deal, he resolved that he would go and see the wonderful
-Mr. Minch. He intimated his decision to Mrs. Mercer-Laporte. The sibyl
-showed much mystic rapture.
-
-‘Ah,’ she said, ‘sweet and holy, sweet and holy. The blessed ones are
-waiting for you, Mr. Darnley, I feel convinced of it. I almost think I
-see one near you now, but alas, I have not quite reached the percipient
-plane as yet. But do go to dear Mr. Minch, and he will tell you her
-name and all about her, and what she wants to say to you. I have had
-the strangest, most marvellous experiences myself. My own sweet sister
-Margaret is always hovering round me, Mr. Darnley. She died when she
-was only six days old, and grew up in the spirit world. I recognised
-her distinctly, as soon as dear Mr. Minch described her.... Golden
-hair, he said, tall, blue eyes, high forehead, graceful figure. Then,
-to make _quite_ sure, I said, “Does your name begin with M?” and Mr.
-Minch asked the sweet spirit, and told me it said “Yes.” Then, of
-course, I knew. “Margaret,” I cried--just like that--“is it Margaret?”
-And it _was_ Margaret; she had come to tell me that I must go on
-bravely, and everything would come right. Now, wasn’t that a holy,
-happy experience, Mr. Darnley? Oh yes, you must go to Mr. Minch. Go
-to-morrow night at eight. He has a public circle then, and crowds of
-dear poor creatures go to him for help and comfort, and he heals them
-all--not only people like you and me, Mr. Darnley, but all the poor
-sweet cooks and housemaids.’
-
-Kingston was not quite so strongly impressed as Mrs. Mercer-Laporte had
-hoped by the reappearance of the somewhat immature sister Margaret.
-Yet, though he derided himself for such weakness, he could no longer
-resist the absurd temptation to put things to the test. He was quite
-fixed in his determination to see Mr. Minch, if it were only to laugh
-at him; and filled up the rest of the evening by cross-examining Mrs.
-Mercer-Laporte on all the other pink and purple spirits by whom she was
-apparently accompanied wherever she went. Gundred, who looked on the
-entertainment as a tiresome duty, calling only for one’s second-best
-gown, was surprised to see her husband so much amused and interested.
-When he deliberately went across the room after dinner to sit once more
-by Mrs. Mercer-Laporte, Gundred was quite startled by such a display
-of enthusiasm. However, she quickly noticed that Mrs. Mercer-Laporte
-had pink eyelids and a long bony neck; her astonishment subsided into
-contemptuous tolerance, and then passed into a pious pity. She thought
-how nice it was of Kingston to be so unnecessarily kind to the poor
-thing, perhaps the weirdest of Aunt Minna’s weird collection of guests.
-Gundred called back her attention to her own behaviour, and set herself
-once more to giving an example of nice deportment to this mob of people
-who clearly had no notion what decent clothes or manners might mean.
-
-The least touch destroys a delicate balance, and Mrs. Mercer-Laporte’s
-rather watery personality it was that had the power, after so many
-years of hesitation, to decide Kingston upon taking his long-delayed
-plunge into spiritualistic circles. Little as he might think of
-Mrs. Mercer-Laporte’s own rhapsodies, they forced upon his mind the
-reflection that many good and presumably prudent people derive much
-comfort and sustenance from occult manifestations. With all allowances
-made for credulity, hysteria, and affectation there yet, it seemed to
-him suddenly, must remain an irreducible minimum of fact about the
-ghostly communications which make the consolation of so many sad,
-lonely lives. The laws that govern life and death are, when all is said
-and done, so dimly, so doubtfully known and guessed, that bold must be
-he who dares, on the supposition of impossibility, to deny continued
-existence and continued volition to the blessed dead. Who was to take
-it upon himself to say confidently that they cannot return, for reasons
-that we know not, under natural laws of which we have no more suspicion
-than had the eighteenth century of those that give us electricity?
-Seeing the incalculable nature of the soul, the impalpable, mysterious
-substance of its being, the probabilities that physical death only
-give it freedom were, on the whole, very great and worthy of respect.
-Why obstinately mock, for the sake of a few frauds and charlatans, at
-a deep belief, as old as humanity, which has been held, and is held
-to this day, by many of the wisest and holiest among men? What claim
-to wisdom has the stiff-necked attitude of mere negation, based on
-nothing but ignorant prejudice and the sceptic’s baseless notion of
-what may or may not be possible to a thing of whose being, and the
-laws that control it, he knows no more than any enthusiastic believer
-in apparitions? Why not, then, take the braver, more honest course of
-inquiring for one’s self into the circumstances of the spirit-world?
-In any case the inquiry could do no harm; either way, one would gain
-certainty, instead of the present dreary and unprofitable doubt. And
-if Isabel’s purified soul were, after all, by some merciful freak of
-creation, still roaming the world in her lover’s neighbourhood, how
-utterly, childishly silly not to ascertain the fact and profit by it,
-in place of continuing deaf to that dear desired voice, out of puerile
-prejudice and a preconceived notion that such things could not be.
-Mrs. Mercer-Laporte’s enthusiasm had the effect of forcing all these
-arguments on Kingston with new and irresistible force. He could hold
-out no longer; his loneliness could afford to neglect no chances of
-relief; he would try what consolation the Other World had to offer.
-
-At the very notion fresh interest in life began to animate him. Without
-any weak cowardice or giving way he had yet, since the tragedy of
-twenty years before, lost any personal interest in every-day life,
-its bustle and ambitions. That career into which his mother had hoped
-so vaguely to push him and support him by the influence of March and
-Brakelond, had long since faded from the foreground of his mind.
-When at last Lady Adela gently and imperceptibly passed away, she
-left her son fairly settled into the position of his wife’s husband.
-Concentrated on thoughts of that beautiful past, he never again plucked
-up any enthusiasm for the present or the future. It was not that he
-was afraid of them, that he had shrinkings or morbid tenderness; they
-simply failed to interest him any more. He retired into that small
-secret life of his own, and the world gradually came to look on Mr.
-Darnley as the pleasant but unnoticeable appendage to Lady Gundred.
-Comfortably vast as was his income, Brakelond, that insatiable old
-monster, swallowed it all and gave no thanks. Despite his money,
-therefore, Kingston soon unconsciously held that subtly meek and
-subordinate place of a man whose wife it is that owns the estate and
-the money. He had no wish to assert himself, and even at Ivescar it
-was Gundred who now held the reins, and concentrated the general gaze
-upon herself. Now and then she deplored to their friends her husband’s
-apathy towards the Primrose League, but, on the whole, she had
-everybody’s agreement when she talked of him as ‘perfectly happy in his
-library among his books.’ “To be perfectly happy in one’s library among
-one’s books” is the blessed euphemistic privilege of the obscure rich,
-and Kingston acquiesced gratefully in his friends’ attitude towards
-his remoteness from their life and the empty clamours that seemed to
-fill it. Accustomed long since to his own quiet, inconspicuous path, it
-was with a kindling of vitality, then, that he contemplated sallying
-forth into the spirit world. It was a stirring of his old self, an
-emancipation from the obsession of Gundred’s majesty. Half ashamed,
-half excited, half contemptuous did Kingston set out to enter into
-relations with the dead.
-
-Following Mrs. Mercer-Laporte’s recommendation he began with Mr.
-Muddock. But Mr. Muddock turned out to be an illiterate and frowzy
-prophet, too clearly calculated for the need of ‘poor sweet cooks and
-housemaids’ to be of much assistance in the quests of better-educated
-people. However, after a brief spasm of disgust, Kingston decided to
-continue his enterprise, and gradually found himself involved in the
-higher spiritualistic circles. At first he had to be content with
-the ordinary hireling mediums, but as time went by, and his appetite
-became whetted by the glimpses of apparent truth that he gathered here
-and there amid thick and more or less palpable frauds, he began to
-be aware that there existed, behind the common world of second-rate
-believers, a sort of upper world in touch with the Beyond. To anyone
-with money the lower sphere of materialization was open, and the
-meetings of Mr. Muddock and his confrères were nightly crowded with
-the lonely and the bereaved, eager for a moment’s conversation with
-the lost beloved. But these interviews never satisfied Kingston, and,
-as he began to discern the higher possibilities behind, he secretly
-strained every nerve to enter that set of his own people which held,
-or proclaimed that it held, genuine and constant communication with
-those ‘that have passed over.’ The task was not altogether easy, and
-had to be cautiously ensued, for fear of waking the suspicions and the
-disapproval of Gundred. Kingston found himself despising himself for
-the cowardice of such a course, until he realized that what he was
-aiming at involved no sort of real disloyalty to Gundred, and that
-any concealment he might practise was in the interest of her peace
-and happiness. Satisfying himself obstinately with this rather jejune
-and sophistical excuse, he pursued his way, and at last found himself
-admitted to the upper section of the spiritualistic world.
-
-Here at last he met men and women of his own sort, men and women of
-birth and breeding and intelligence, whom no cheap claptrap could
-convince, no vulgar jugglery deceive. And yet these people, keen and
-apparently sensible, believed passionately and whole-heartedly in
-the manifestations they evoked. Their lives were ruled by ghostly
-advice elicited at their meetings, their desolation consoled by almost
-daily conversation with their beloved dead, their doubts turned into
-certainty on all points by revelations from beyond the grave. They
-claimed impartiality, and cultivated pure enthusiasm. And if the
-tragedy of the pitiful, unholy quest had been bitterly heart-rending
-among the illiterate and credulous crowds that haunted Mr. Muddock’s
-circles, and sustained themselves with ‘demonstrations’ and aitchless
-conversation with the inferior dead, far more so was it among these
-people of Kingston’s own world, where devotion served as conviction,
-and the anguish of longing was forced to masquerade as its own
-fulfilment. It was indeed a poignant, tragic life in which Kingston now
-found himself. Men and women, one and all, were gaunt and haggard of
-soul with their insatiable hunger. Some of them seemed philosophers,
-convinced that they were following on the track of a clear truth;
-others were manifest saints, gentle sacred souls, hopefully worshipping
-a Holy Grail of their own desire’s invention. Exalted, inspired,
-rarefied, filled with an apparent serenity of devotion, their company
-gave an impression of strange unearthly happiness, until the keen edge
-of their underlying agony was seen piercing through the superficial
-calm of their lives. The whole air round them was poisoned by loss and
-the inability to bear it. Their souls lived in a fierce, unacknowledged
-groping after the lost things they had loved. Men for vanished friends,
-women for lovers and children long dead--each had some dreadful secret
-craving, some inner infidelity towards the Eternal Mercy of life.
-There were old polished men of their world, strong intellects sapped,
-and keen eyes dulled in one direction only, by some hoarded passion
-never to be parted with, not even for the sake of happiness and
-peace and wisdom. There were beautiful white-haired women, sweet and
-gracious with much sorrow in bygone years, tired with recollections,
-and divorced from the heats of life, yet still held in a bitter
-bondage, drugging their pain with this piteous, passionate cult for
-the burden they had lost. Life and death had combined to offer them
-calm and release from torment; but they would have none of any such
-release--clung to the ghost of their dead torment, and redoubled it by
-the zest with which they told themselves that they soothed it.
-
-Into this world of insatiable emotion Kingston threw himself
-heartily--hopefully, too, seeing that the sincerity of his
-fellow-worshippers left no room for doubt, and that their enthusiastic
-belief seemed to give fair hope that it was justified. But soon he saw
-the fearful tragedy that lay beneath their enthusiasm, and realized how
-determined an illusion it was that they cultivated. He, too, no less
-than they, yearned and groped, but his nature, cooler, perhaps, than
-theirs, could not accept for pure gold of revelation the base ore of
-hysteria and fanaticism that they unwittingly but obstinately imposed
-upon themselves for truth. Their spirit-voices were nothing but the
-frustrate echoes of their own cries, cast back to them across the great
-gulf that separates the ignorant, unfaithful living from the free,
-glorified dead. Sounds and sights floated thick in their midst--honest
-sounds and sights, born of no trickery, indeed, but--though none dared
-to own it--engendered by the frantic zeal of the searchers themselves.
-They and none other supplied the words to which they listened in such
-ecstatic awe; they and none other evoked those vanished tones, those
-pale reflections of the well-beloved in which they took such comfort.
-Their very sincerity, their very rapture, only made more terrible
-the delusion on which they sustained themselves, the emptiness of
-the phantoms with which they tried to fill the lives that their own
-distrust had left to them desolate. Only want of faith can make death
-a reality. These sad, starving people, having made reality out of the
-shadow, now found themselves forced to create new shadows to exorcise
-the old. They had allowed themselves to think that death had power
-to sunder their loves, and now, after that first self-deception, the
-need was fierce upon them to invent another to nullify the first, and
-wipe out that death to which only their weak terrors had given an
-objective existence. From the beginning to the end they were altogether
-tragic--in their sorrow, in its cause, and in the means they took to
-heal it. Kingston, as the meetings passed, found himself more and
-more aloof from their consolations, more and more cold towards the
-manifestations that made the comfort of their poor struggling days.
-
-It was not here, not amid these faint voices crying what the listeners
-wanted to hear, not amid these dim ghosts of bygone passion that his
-own still living, throbbing passion could hope to come once more into
-contact with Isabel. He pitied his fellow-seekers, but he stood aloof
-from them. Sorrowing for the intensity of their false joy, he could
-gain from their cult no sustenance for his own hunger. His hunger was
-not as theirs, and the beloved fallacies that supported them could
-give no nourishment to him. He saw that their quest was false, their
-methods a mere sop flung to their own desire. Gradually Kingston
-withdrew himself from their company. The spiritualistic world, after
-all, held no solid help or conviction for him. He passed away into
-everyday life again, and went back to his quiet expectancy at Gundred’s
-side. Sooner or later the wonderful thing would happen, sooner or later
-the holy mystery of separation stand revealed, but no unlawful human
-methods could avail to hurry the processes of God. They of little faith
-might make for themselves a world of phantoms in which to worship a
-phantom; he must persevere alone, waiting patiently for what was to
-come. Gladly, if he could, would he have found satisfaction in the
-hollow solace invented by his fellow-seekers, but as his nature, as
-his more exalted perceptions, could not allow him any such makeshift
-consolation, the sooner he quitted so unwholesome and unsatisfactory a
-life the better. At least, he had the comfort of feeling that he had
-left no method untried, had not neglected any possible chance. But
-the alley into which he had strayed had been found blind, a short cut
-towards the Great Nowhere. He must return into the broad, beaten track
-of life, and go steadfastly forward, in confidence that somewhere, some
-day, he should inevitably meet again his lost companion.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV
-
-
-‘Dear Jim,’ said Gundred, ‘how happy he sounds!’ She folded up her
-son’s letter again, and put it deftly back into its envelope. He wrote
-to her once a week without fail from school, a neat, colourless letter,
-breathing duty and regard. To his father the boy wrote as the mood took
-him--careless, untidy epistles about the topic of the moment. ‘Another
-cup of tea, dear?’ she asked her husband, smiling at him across the
-table.
-
-Kingston looked at her with the approval that her appearance never
-failed to challenge. A crystalline perfection always hung about her,
-a clear, precise faultlessness that was always cool and fresh and
-pleasant. Age could do nothing against her. This morning, as for
-a thousand mornings past, as she would be for a thousand mornings
-to come, she was tranquil, exquisite, satisfactory. If she did not
-actually sparkle, she was always in a serene glow of elegance, her
-clear golden hair unalterably waved and curled, her garments refreshing
-in their unobtrusive charm of cut and make, her hands well-kept,
-white, delightful, flickering here and there from tea-caddy to
-cream-jug with a charming, housewifely preoccupation.
-
-Kingston, with a vivid recollection of the sibylline untidiness that
-haunted spiritualistic circles, brought a new appreciation to bear on
-Gundred’s unchangeably well-bred calm of look and dress and manner.
-She was very restful to be with. Pure milk, after all, certainly was
-better, in the long run, than intoxicants.
-
-‘Thanks, dear,’ he replied, accepting a cup of tea into which Gundred
-had dutifully poured the cream that he still hated as much as ever, but
-which twenty years’ experience of her immitigable firmness had taught
-him to accept without vain murmurings. ‘I think I will run down and see
-Jim one of these days. You come with me?’
-
-‘Well,’ replied his wife, ‘I have such a terrible lot to crowd into
-these last few days before we leave town. The end of the Season is
-such a rush, and one does dislike to leave anything undone. Besides,
-you know, I think it is a pity to unsettle Jim, and I really do rather
-dread the motor at this time of year. The dust is too truly horrible.
-Nothing can keep it out of one’s hair, try as one will; and then poor
-Morgan has such trouble getting it out again; and one ought always to
-consider the servants when one can--yes?’
-
-‘Very well, then; I will go down alone, to-day or to-morrow. Haven’t
-you got some sort of show on here this afternoon?’
-
-‘Yes, dear, a Mothers’ Educational Union Meeting. They wanted to hold
-it here, and one feels that one should do what one can for others while
-one is alive.’
-
-‘Well, I don’t suppose I shall be missed or mourned,’ said her husband;
-‘so I shall just slip quietly off, and take the motor down to Eton. You
-can receive the mothers, and so on, without me to help you. And I can
-have a good time with Jim.’
-
-‘Dear little Jim!’ said Gundred, smiling affectionately. Her son was
-fifteen, and rather unusually large for his age. But no size, no age
-could ever have cured his mother of talking and thinking of him as a
-little child. She had all the good woman’s utter, tragic inability to
-understand that her child becomes a boy and a man. Her Jim was still
-a baby. Of the real Jim she knew nothing whatever. Their relations
-were sometimes strained already, and in the future the strain would
-become fiercer and more unceasing, through Gundred’s idea of ruling
-the adolescent Jim by ideas that applied to the only Jim she had ever
-known--the kilted, white-frocked creature of the nursery, who had
-passed out of existence at least ten years ago.
-
-‘Then that is settled,’ replied Kingston happily. ‘I’ll take Jim your
-love, Gundred. Anything else to send him?’
-
-The father was always giving the boy presents. Anything that took his
-fancy he had a habit of buying for Jim. Gundred, no less affectionate,
-considered such indulgence spoiling and undesirable. She did not think
-it quite suitable to be so lavish, and her generosity was restricted to
-the orthodox seasons of Christmas and the birthday.
-
-‘My love, of course, dear,’ she replied, with a momentary primming of
-her lips; ‘and tell him how much I hope that he reads the little book I
-gave him on his birthday. Say that he will find it the greatest help. I
-myself have got the most wonderful comfort from it; the prayers seem to
-suit one so perfectly, and the hymns for each day are so uplifting and
-helpful.’
-
-Kingston, secretly unsympathetic towards Gundred’s habit of collecting
-small devotional works and showering them round upon her near
-relations, glided hastily away from the topic. Sincerely pious and
-devout herself, she made the common mistake of wishing to impose her
-own precise form of devotion on everyone else, and could not conceive
-it possible that any right-minded person should not derive as great a
-benefit as she did from her little pietistic volumes. To her son, in
-particular, she talked religion with that terrible intimate candour
-which the good woman feels to be so natural, and the normal man feels
-to be so horribly irreverent. From his mother, then, the boy shrank
-and hid himself, outraged in all his most intimate feelings of decency
-by the freedom with which she discoursed to him of God and Heaven and
-Good, and half a hundred secret, private matters that nothing would
-have induced him to discuss even with his dearest friend.
-
-Kingston ordered the motor, glad of an opportunity for escaping
-Gundred’s evangelistic activities. She herself made a faint pretence at
-deploring her inability to accompany him.
-
-‘I should so like to,’ she said; ‘but the mothers will expect me to
-be here, of course, to receive them. It would be so shocking to play
-them false. And the movement is such a good one. I never feel that one
-is in the world solely for one’s own pleasure. One belongs to others,
-and one’s highest joy should always be to do one’s duty by one’s
-neighbours--yes?’
-
-‘It is rather a nuisance at times, don’t you find?’ asked Kingston,
-on whom his wife’s habit of uttering edifying little speeches on all
-occasions never failed to have a slightly irritating effect, even after
-twenty years’ experience of them.
-
-‘But one should not consider one’s self,’ answered Gundred correctly.
-‘It is a terrible thing to be selfish. Besides, if God has given
-one special advantages, one should be glad to make use of them to
-make others happy. Houses and position and things like that are only
-precious because one can turn them to the use of others--yes? I should
-never like to think that I found my factory-girls and my mothers and my
-curates a nuisance. I look upon them as part of my duty in life. And
-duty is the truest pleasure.’
-
-Kingston felt as if he were in a dream. How different was this
-atmosphere of tranquil platitude from the feverish, restless world of
-longing in which he had lately been so busy. His mind staggered at the
-thought that this cool, deliberate Gundred could be of one blood with
-the harried, lonely creatures who frequented the spirit-raiser’s in
-desperate craving for lost loves and silenced voices. What kin was he
-himself--he with his secret cult, his deep secret ambition, to this
-placid woman, so secure in the intimacy of her God, so sedate in the
-conscious enjoyment of all her duties? It was a grinning irony that
-held them linked; in actual fact, they were mere acquaintances, knowing
-nothing of each other, sympathizing in nothing, bound only by the soft
-amicable bonds of custom and convenience.
-
-Breakfast was over. Gundred gathered up her letters in a tiny sheaf and
-rose. ‘I must go and see Motherley,’ she said, ‘about the arrangements
-for this afternoon. I think one ought to have iced coffee for the poor
-things in this hot weather, don’t you?’
-
-Gundred could never, in any possible circumstances of rank or
-condition, have been induced to leave the reins of household management
-in the hands of those who were paid to hold them. She was one of the
-many women who are housekeepers from their birth. The exercise of
-diligent economy was very dear to her heart, and she made a merit
-of indulging herself in it, by insisting that she attended to such
-matters only from a strong sense of duty. Kingston gave due weight to
-her question as he pondered it.
-
-‘Yes,’ he said very gravely, ‘on the whole I really think you might
-allow the mothers iced coffee.’
-
-‘I am so glad you think so, dear,’ responded Gundred with an air of
-relief. ‘One is so glad if ever one can give the poor things some
-little extra pleasure. It is quite one of the compensations of one’s
-life--yes?’
-
-‘But, then--these mothers--are they paupers, or what?’
-
-‘Oh, dear me, no! They are the most excellent creatures--quite rich and
-comfortable, most of them. They generally live in Kensington or Campden
-Hill, and they are all so much interested in children and education.
-But, of course, they don’t often get inside a house like this, so that
-one is anxious to do whatever one can to make it a delightful memory
-for them. I have got myself such a charming frock, dear, to give them
-another little enjoyment to remember afterwards. Really, you know, it
-soon comes quite easy to think of others and forget one’s self. One
-makes a habit of unselfishness--at least, one must try to, in one’s
-own small way--and God is very good about helping them who try to help
-themselves.’
-
-Kingston did not take the trouble to endorse this sentiment, and
-Gundred did not wait for him to do so. She knew it was too sound to
-need any such endorsement--so obvious, indeed, that she had only thrown
-it out in obedience to her unvarying custom of trying to improve her
-husband whenever she could.
-
-‘Well,’ she went on, after a pause, ‘I must really go about my duties
-now. One has so much to do. I don’t suppose I shall see you again,
-dear, shall I, before you start? I hope you will have a delightful day.
-Do take care of your poor eyes. And give my love to Jim, and tell him
-always to change his boots when he comes in, and be sure to read his
-Chapter morning and evening; he will find it such a help. And say how
-we are looking forward to the holidays--yes?’
-
-Kingston promised vaguely to give his wife’s messages. Then Gundred
-passed on her way to interview the cook, and complete arrangements
-for the effectual dazzling of the mothers from Kensington and Campden
-Hill. Left alone, her husband took refuge for a moment or two in
-dreamland. This life of his, orderly, decorous, colourless, with
-Gundred superintending its details, and seeing that its food was good
-and hot--this life of his was not a real life at all. It was a vapour,
-a phantom, having no part in the true life of his soul. His body moved
-on its appointed course from breakfast through the day to bed, bandying
-banalities with its tongue, looking out on Gundred’s world with amiable
-eyes; but he himself, the real man, belonged to a remoter world. In
-strange, far-off lands he roamed, seeking that which for a time was
-lost; the gorgeous, sombre mysteries of life and death were about his
-head, shedding a glamour of ecstasy on the secret byway that he was
-treading. How Gundred would stare, what pious sillinesses would she
-not utter, if for a moment--if only for the smallest fragment of a
-moment--her eyes could be unsealed to see the magic tangle of visions
-in which her husband was wandering, all the while that his earthly
-gaze was fixed on her, his earthly ears politely attentive to her
-talk, his earthly stomach contentedly absorbing the food that she made
-it her daily duty to provide. Dressed, brushed, washed, and fed, the
-simulacrum of her husband passed through the world at her side, but the
-thing she walked with was a changeling; the man she loved and looked
-after was the mere shell of a stranger--of a stranger whose eyes were
-fixed on the immensities, whose ears received her words as jargon in
-a tongue unknown, whose whole life was passed in that world of reality
-whose shadows now and then are cast across this life of ours that we
-call real, in the glimpses of what we call a dream. Little, visible,
-tangible, clear was the life that Gundred thought the true; vast,
-illimitable, without end or beginning was that enormous infinite where
-the soul of Kingston ceaselessly went seeking for the lost.
-
-‘By kind permission of the Lady Gundred Darnley, the Mothers’
-Educational Union--called for short the M.E.U.--held a most enjoyable
-meeting at 53, Grosvenor Street. The hostess’s demeanour gave great
-satisfaction, and her gown was held to shed real lustre on the
-occasion. It was a wonderful arrangement in blue and mauve, and no
-other woman of her age could have worn it; but the delicacy of her
-colouring, the serene charm of her features, were only enhanced by it,
-and the mothers from Kensington and Campden Hill spent a happy hour in
-devising means of copying its most successful features. Meanwhile, an
-American spinster, of world-wide renown but unappetizing appearance,
-gave an interesting and exhaustive address on the proper upbringing
-of children; and a Bishop’s wife in voluminous black brocade, with a
-bonnet built of bluebells, brought up the rear with an account of how
-her own darlings had been triumphantly reared on a system of perfect
-freedom tempered by whippings administered officially by each other.
-A discussion followed, in which old maids and childless widows vied
-with the mothers in expounding the secrets of education. The Lady
-Gundred Darnley herself contributed a brief but very pleasant little
-allocution, in which she insisted on the efficacy of prayer, and
-attributed her own success in dealing with her dear little son entirely
-to her inculcation of sound religious principles.’ Gundred was at the
-height of her glory; her graciousness was delightful, her condescension
-so profound that neither she herself nor anyone else could guess that
-it was condescension at all. When the meeting had concluded in a
-volley of mutual compliments, and a unanimous vote of thanks had been
-offered to their charming hostess, she shepherded the mothers down to
-food with the sublimest cordiality. The iced coffee flowed like milk
-and honey; tea was nothing accounted of, any more than was silver in
-King Solomon’s time. Eclairs, sandwiches, and buns disappeared like
-snow in summer; of every dish Gundred felt a calm confidence that each
-mother present was eyeing it carefully with a view to imitation. Of all
-life’s duties, Gundred perhaps best loved that of setting an example
-to others. She felt that the Creator had specially ordained her for
-that end, and was never so completely and conscientiously happy as when
-possessed with the certainty that she was duly fulfilling His design.
-
-But at last the meeting began to melt away, and Gundred was left
-alone in the large deserted room. Up and down among the little gilded
-chairs she roamed, pondering with complacency the success of the
-entertainment. In the course of her wanderings, she came into view of
-the great mirror that filled the space between two of the windows. She
-stood for a while in front of it, contemplating the perfections that it
-reflected. From the crown of her head to the glistering point of her
-shoe, she, ‘the Lady Gundred Darnley,’ the fastidious critic, had not
-the smallest fault to find. Her gown was an inspiration, and its fit an
-earthly manifestation of the ideal.
-
-‘Really,’ said Gundred to herself, ‘God has been very good to me
-indeed. I declare I do not look a day over twenty-five. No one would
-ever believe that I am forty. That is what comes of having a good
-conscience, and being a little careful what one eats. And it is not
-many women of five-and-twenty that could dare to wear a colour like
-this. My figure is positively girlish, and my complexion--well, one
-does not often see a better one, even among quite young girls.’ But at
-this point her meditations were interrupted by the sound of a ringing
-at the bell. She concluded that it must be some belated mother, who
-would be politely turned away by the butler. So she gave no further
-attention to the sound, but still stood admiring what the mirror
-revealed, with both hands caressing the beautiful lines of her waist.
-In this pleasant employment, however, she was startled by a discreet
-cough behind her. She wheeled hastily round.
-
-A small elderly gentleman was approaching, ushered by the butler.
-Gundred summoned her presence of mind to confront this unexpected
-apparition. The butler, meanwhile, was murmuring an unintelligible
-name. The visitor peered inquiringly up at her. For he was a very
-minute personage, smaller even than his hostess; he had an air of
-patient antiquity, and his thin neck poked forward till he had the look
-of a very shrunken, very wise, very benevolent little old tortoise.
-He was dressed, too, in the quaintest clothes, that somehow suggested
-that they had been bought ready-made, and were mysteriously, strangely
-inappropriate, seeming as if their present wearer were accustomed to
-quite different garb, and only wore these clumsy reach-me-downs in
-deference to European convention. He conveyed an impression of feeling
-fettered and uncomfortable in them, of longing for freer and more
-flowing vestments.
-
-Gundred assumed a smile of gracious interrogation.
-
-‘Mr. ----?’
-
-‘You are Mr. Darnley’s wife?’ inquired the new-comer.
-
-‘I am Lady Gundred Darnley, yes. What can I----?’
-
-‘I am your husband’s uncle,’ replied the stranger. ‘I have been in
-Japan for many years.’
-
-Gundred instantly flashed into recognition, and warmed into a less
-defensive smile. She tried vehemently to remember all she had heard of
-this semi-mythical uncle thus abruptly brought back into the land of
-the living.
-
-‘Ah yes,’ she answered genially, ‘you have been there for a very long
-time, I know. I quite envy you. Such a wonderful little people, the
-Japanese--yes? And have you come to settle down at home again?’
-
-‘My home,’ answered the little old man, in accents that betrayed a
-certain loss of familiarity with the English language--‘my home is
-still out there.’ He waved his hand vaguely, indicating the East. ‘But
-I was brought over for some business. I had not meant to come here. My
-kinship with your husband has been broken by fifty years of time, and
-twelve thousand miles of space. Why should I think he could be anything
-but a stranger? But lately I have heard him calling. There is something
-that he wants, something that he wishes to know. I have heard him
-incessantly calling. And so I came. Perhaps I can give him an answer.
-Is he here, your husband?’
-
-‘Something that my husband wants, something that he has been asking
-for?’ repeated Gundred in a stupor. Kingston had no wishes that were
-not also hers. His whole life, she knew, was an open book to her. And,
-even if it had not been, how could this strange apparition have heard
-her husband’s voice? For one wild moment Gundred imagined her husband
-baying his ambitions to the moon, or ululating to the universe from
-the middle of Grosvenor Square. Otherwise how could his voice have
-penetrated to the ears of this mysterious old man?
-
-The visitor answered her unspoken thought.
-
-‘A wish,’ he said, speaking slowly in his faint, sad tones--‘a wish has
-a life of its own. It has wings, and flies to all the four quarters
-of the air. It only needs the opened eye to see it in its flight, the
-opened ear to receive it. I have seen many strange things in the air. I
-am a very old man now. And I heard your husband’s longing, and I came
-to see if I could give him any help. I am on my way. I can only be here
-an hour or two. Your husband will soon be here again. I may wait for
-him?’
-
-All Gundred’s inquiries could elicit no more definite information. The
-old man merely repeated his statement, and asked to be allowed to await
-Kingston’s return. Baffled, interested, acutely puzzled, Gundred must
-needs leave the riddle of his mission unsolved, and take refuge in the
-customary platitudes about the charm of Oriental life. And thus it
-happened that when Kingston returned at last, dusty and hot, from his
-expedition, he found his wife sitting amid the gilded disorder of the
-drawing-room, engaged in a difficult dialogue with a stranger.
-
-That this was the long-lost uncle Kingston was soon brought to realize,
-and heard with unmitigated amazement that the Abbot, or Bishop, or
-whatever his rank might be, had come in answer to some imagined call.
-The old man had a fantastic charm. His air of frail antiquity, the
-wistfulness of his voice, the very incongruousness of his clothes
-gave him a fascination not easy to describe. He was someone out of an
-alien life, a visitor from the world beyond Kingston’s ken. A flavour
-of mysterious knowledge hung about his wandering glances, his soft,
-quiet, hesitating speech, his gentle, deprecatory manner; those misty
-eyes of his had the wonder and the wisdom of eyes that have pierced
-far into the hidden depths. His present surroundings, his present
-garments had a sharp and crying inappropriateness, yet, though in
-his air and build there was no obvious majesty, the comparison was
-all to the disadvantage of the surroundings and the garments. Even
-Gundred’s luxurious and splendid room seemed to grow tawdry and vulgar
-by contrast with this unimposing little figure in its midst. The
-manner of his irruption, too, into modern London life, as well as the
-announcement of his equally abrupt departure, increased the air of
-fantasy that hung round him. Flashing by out of another life, flashing
-on into another life, this grotesque little old tortoise was to spare
-them an hour on his road through the immensities. Kingston had no sense
-of kinship as he talked with this new-found uncle--hardly, indeed,
-any sense of talking with a fellow human being. The visitor was too
-clearly a dweller in strange worlds, belonged, in all his words and
-ways, too obviously to another sphere of existence. As for Gundred, her
-faint horror at entertaining a confessed Buddhist was tempered by the
-discovery that the Buddhist was an Abbot or a Bishop--at all events,
-held some conspicuous position in the heathen hierarchy. And even a
-heathen Bishop was clearly better than a heathen who was not a Bishop
-of any kind. She soon, however, thought it necessary to vindicate her
-superiority by attempting to convert the pagan prelate. After one
-effort, brief though bold, she was forced to desist. Mild, shrinkingly
-meek, the new uncle yet showed a certain confident command of spiritual
-weapons too mighty for his niece’s resisting powers.
-
-‘Why, oh, why,’ said Gundred with seraphic sweetness, when the Bishop
-had let drop some pleasant little sentiment--‘why are you not a
-Christian, dear uncle? Surely you must love the truth--yes?’
-
-Kingston felt hot with horror, but the visitor showed no discomposure
-at this sudden outburst of proselytising energy.
-
-‘Yes,’ he replied, in a gentle, hesitating voice--‘yes, I love the
-truth. We all love the truth when we see it, I think. But I love a
-whole truth better than a half truth. When a man is reading the Book of
-Life by the light of the sun, you would not expect him to go back and
-read it in a cave by even the brightest of lamps? You have very bright
-lamps; I have the sun.’
-
-Gundred collected all her forces for a theological argument such as her
-soul loved.
-
-‘But what is the point exactly of being a Buddhist, uncle?’ she
-inquired, determined to fire the first shot.
-
-However, the Bishop had not broken his journey through space in order
-to indulge in feminine polemics. He smiled demurely.
-
-‘For one thing, niece,’ he answered slowly, ‘we are not required
-or permitted by our Faith to believe that two-thirds of the world
-are doomed inevitably to burn in fire for all eternity--as you, I
-understand, are bound to believe, by all your many different varieties
-of Christianity. Now that, dear niece, would be, I am sure, a very
-great comfort to your tender nature.’
-
-Gundred was on the point of making a dignified rejoinder, to the effect
-that one does not talk of such things, or think of them, but hopes for
-the best. However, she felt a hostile influence compressing her words.
-A strange force was over her, compelling silence. In another minute
-she found that she could hold the field no longer. Wishing with all
-her heart to stay, she yet found herself mysteriously forced to rise
-and make her excuses. The uncle received her explanations gently, and
-gave her thanks for the hospitable reception that she had extended to a
-stranger. He would not see her again, for in a few moments he must be
-on his way again. But though it might be long before they met again,
-he would tender her his blessing. Accepting the tribute with graceful
-reserve, Gundred passed reluctantly out of the room.
-
-Kingston faced round eagerly towards the visitor. What strange message
-was it that had come to him through such unexpected lips? Was the whole
-story a fairy-tale? How could his secret wishes and longings have
-reached the notice of this stranger twelve thousand miles across the
-sea? Surely the soul has no system of wireless telegraphy? Kingston
-had a sudden uneasy recollection of telepathy, and the vast range of
-possibilities that it opened up. He fell silent, awaiting his uncle’s
-next word.
-
-The little old man sat huddled in his chair, gazing straight before
-him. The withered claw-like hands were fastened one over the other; the
-pale mysterious eyes were fixed on things very far away.
-
-‘Bound on the wheel,’ he said at last, ‘bound again and again on the
-wheel of false desire.’
-
-Kingston asked him what he meant.
-
-‘The fire of passion,’ replied the pale tired voice, ‘is a thing old as
-all life. Because of some strong passion, born many ages since, you now
-suffer the pangs of loss and separation. It is no new thing, this pain
-of yours. It rests with you now, my son, whether you will carry it on
-with you along the road, as you brought it with you into this stage of
-your journey.’
-
-Astonishment, intense and paralytic, possessed the younger man as these
-evidences of insight into his own most secret feelings dropped so
-prosaically, so unemotionally from the lips of this worn old wanderer.
-But even astonishment yielded to the keen wonder aroused by the
-possibility that the words revealed. He demanded further revelations
-from his uncle.
-
-‘Over all the fields of existence the opened eye can wander,’ replied
-the other. ‘I can see whence you have come, and in what dark places you
-are now wandering. Because of the help that I hoped I could give you, I
-have come here to-night. You are suffering the penalty of bygone folly,
-you are chained in the bond of a bad Karma. You have loved something,
-and you think now you have lost it. Worst of all, you long to recover
-it, you long to rivet round you again the fetters of desire and sorrow.
-Many and many are they that come to me, crying for the sound or the
-touch of some beloved dead. Women calling across the abysses to their
-dead children, their lovers, their husbands; men clamouring for reunion
-with the women they have loved. This life of yours, too, here in the
-West, is filled with the cry of those who seek what they have lost.
-‘Give us back our dead,’ they say; ‘let us touch them, hear them,
-speak to them again.’ In hopes of this evil miracle your churches are
-crowded, your charlatans grow rich, your Heaven finds believers. A
-place to meet the dead again! Weak and foolish, weak and foolish, not
-to know that love is sorrow, and that the dead we loved stand for the
-heaviest grief of our lives.’
-
-‘But then,’ answered Kingston, ‘what is love? Why do we feel it, if it
-is such a weak and foolish passion?’
-
-‘What is love? It is the ghost of your own dead lives recalled to
-life again. What are we but the agglomeration of innumerable previous
-personalities? All our feelings are dim echoes of a hundred million
-fragmentary feelings that have lived before in the innumerable dead,
-who are dust of the ages. What is it that gives us the keen joy that we
-take in some piece of music, in some corner of landscape? It is the
-harmony of countless memories that are awakened in us out of all our
-dead existences by the sound we hear, or the sight we see. Otherwise,
-it could mean nothing to us, if this life were our first, if we had no
-previous existence to build on. All life is memory made incarnate. All
-love is a recognition.’
-
-‘Then you are talking of reincarnation,’ answered Kingston; ‘what has
-love to do with that?’
-
-‘Reincarnation?’ said the other. ‘There is no such thing. Reincarnation
-would mean that the same You goes on into body after body, like one
-wine poured on from bottle into bottle. Think for a moment what it is
-that is You. What is your true personality? Is it the thing that has
-fears and foolish desires and dislikes? Or is it the secret higher
-thing that stands behind the common everyday self of you? It is not
-that everyday You which is indestructible. The You of your bodily loves
-and hates dies with your body, should be wiped out utterly and vanish;
-it is the real You that continues through all the ages, until at last
-it is made one with the Radiance from which it sprang. Your wishes and
-fears must not live after you; none of the many details that have gone
-to the making of you survive, but only the total that they make up. On
-the slate of life your qualities are set down and added together. Then
-bodily death wipes out the items, and only the result of the addition
-remains. That is Karma--the character you build up for yourself through
-the ages. And yet, if you will, you can perpetuate in some degree the
-evanescent passions of your earthly life. That is what so many long to
-do. Immortality, to them, means an infinite prolongation of bodily and
-emotional enjoyment. They cannot sunder their notion of heaven from
-their idea of their own earthly personality. In heaven they think they
-must carry their earthly tastes, their earthly limbs unaltered. They
-imagine that without the limbs and the earthly tastes they will somehow
-cease to be themselves. They believe that these limbs and those tastes
-are themselves, and they want to enjoy them unchanged through eternity.
-They do not understand that desire is sorrow, and that to carry on the
-passions and the pleasures of earthly life is also to carry on the
-agonies and disappointments of earthly life. But in perfect happiness
-there can be no pain. Perfect happiness has no part in the earthly
-passing personality of man, for in the corporeal pleasures of that
-personality pain is always close at the side of pleasure. The Real Self
-suffers no pain; only the phantom self it is that suffers; you, and
-all like you, are forsaking the true for the false. You are seeking to
-prolong the sorrow instead of taking the opportunity of release.’
-
-‘But what release?’
-
-‘Your chance is now with you; through many ages you had been firmly
-bound on the wheel of desire, loving from life to life with a fire of
-anguish that grew with feeding. For of all the phantom joys love is the
-greatest and the most delusive. Love is an accumulation of memories
-from bygone loves, increasing by indulgence, from life to life, until
-at last the burden of pain is too great to be borne. You, Kingston, in
-this present person of yours, have suffered the incarnation of a very
-ancient deadly love. How else can you account for the mystic rapture,
-the violent, inexplicable sense of recognition which makes the essence
-of a tyrannous love? It is soul crying suddenly out to a soul loved
-long since and lost. It is the meeting of two selves that have grown
-together through a myriad years, separated by the gulfs of bodily
-deaths, but always certain to meet again, drawn irresistibly together
-by the clamour of mutual desire.’
-
-‘Ah,’ replied Kingston, ‘if only one could be so certain of that
-meeting again! But when, and where, and how?’
-
-‘Unhappy question! You that have been freed are eager to enter again
-into bondage. If that bondage is the keenest of all earthly pleasure,
-yet recognise that it is the pleasure of the phantasmal bodily self.
-It has no part with the perfect knowledge, except in so far as it is
-divorced from the earthly self. And even in this world, though of all
-pleasures the keenest, it is also of all agonies the keenest. You would
-suffer the pains of hell, I know, to gain the joys of that fancied
-heaven. Wisdom and clear sight have not come to you yet. You must make
-yourself yet another hell of sorrow before you can hope to attain the
-great emancipation. As it is, you do not even desire emancipation.
-Emancipation sounds cheerless to you--lonely, sterile, monotonous. Yet
-some day, at some point on your pilgrimage, desire will so fade in you
-that you will be able to understand how it is that perfect peace knows
-nothing of monotony, and that the agonies of passion do not prove that
-its joys are real or holy or satisfactory.’
-
-‘How do you mean--make my own hell?’
-
-‘Hell is nothing more than the dominion of passion that we establish
-over our lives--of passion and all the hellish torments that passion
-engenders. We make our own hells by dwelling obstinately in the world
-of false desire. If we felt the only true desire, the desire of those
-things that are real, then there would at once be no more pain, and our
-state would be heaven. Desire is hell. And that hell we build and stoke
-and kindle for ourselves--go on kindling from life to life, in our
-fancy that the fire we endure contains the ultimate pleasure our souls
-can taste. It is no capricious Personality above that sends us anguish
-and misery. Everything we suffer follows automatically from some action
-of our own in this or some bygone phase that our marred memories can no
-longer recall. Here in the West you do not understand how this can be,
-though in your heart of hearts you know that it is. But in the older,
-wiser East men have learned to train their recollection until it is
-as easy to recall the sorrows of a bygone life as those of yesterday
-or the day before; for time is a thing that has no real existence in
-the infinite life of the soul. You, because of that old tie, knew the
-woman, and loved her and lost her. Because of that fire of false desire
-that you had fed in yourself for so many existences, you suffered anew
-the hell of your own making--the hell of loss and loneliness. But kill
-such false desires, and you kill the false miseries of this life that
-men think real. You stand at a point where you might strike upwards
-towards the heaven of peace; the curse of your love had nearly wrought
-out its completion, and passed away. But by nourishing as you do the
-fever of longing for the dead, you are binding yourself anew with the
-chains that were beginning to weaken and drop.’
-
-‘I don’t want to hear all this,’ replied Kingston impatiently. ‘If you
-know so much, tell me when and where I shall be able to find what I
-have lost. Shall I find it in this life? Shall I know it when I have
-found it? Remember how it passed away from me. You seem to understand
-all that happened, so tell me whether the change will affect our
-knowledge of each other.’
-
-‘In one tremendous moment the woman rose far above all the false
-desires in which she had bred herself. She gave her life for the truth.
-She sacrificed utterly that false self of hers which was the thing that
-your false self had so loved through the ages. And for her great merit
-it must be that she must reap great rewards,--not rewards apportioned
-by a personal providence, but rewards that spring naturally out of
-her action. She has shaken herself free of the links that bound her
-to you. The Buddha enwombed in every mortal Karma has torn away many
-of the veils that shrouded him in that woman’s heart. Because, in her
-last moment she loved the true better than the false, and followed
-rather the higher love that led upwards than the lower love which would
-have kept her at your side--therefore she is released. The streams
-are sundered at last on the rock of parting. That bondage of hers has
-passed away--weak and erring and desirous, perhaps, she still may
-be--faulty and human, but at least that one chain of desire which held
-her is snapped and broken utterly. You go hunting for her through all
-the fields of your earthly life, and she, in an instant, she was cured
-of all vain longings. Therefore between you there is a gulf fixed for
-ever. You, in the days of your meeting, will know her and desire her,
-but she will not know you; she will be free of you for ever, and your
-recognition will wake in her no answering recognition, and thus of her
-merit will be doubled your damnation.’
-
-‘I’ll take the risk of that,’ cried Kingston, wanting to smile at
-these august fantasies; but the low, husky voice, the faint tremulous
-manner filled with age and mystery and wisdom compelled his reverent
-attention. ‘I don’t care whether she knows _me_ or not when we meet
-again, so long as I know _her_. The sundered streams must meet again
-somehow. As long as I feel that I have met her again, I can be
-perfectly happy. That is all I ask.’
-
-‘The soul lies to itself,’ answered the old man sadly. ‘Festering
-sorrow you will have in this, and you know it. For all lust, whether
-of the body or the soul, is sorrow. It cannot be otherwise, for sorrow
-and lust are two words for the one great falsehood that pervades this
-visible world of phantoms.’
-
-‘Tell me,’ interrupted Kingston, jesting uneasily to hide his
-earnestness, ‘as you have told me so much--can you tell me in what
-shape I shall find her, if find her I ever shall? Surely what she did
-will have brought her greater beauty than ever, if what you say is
-true, that our rewards are automatically developed out of our actions?
-As for knowing her, on your theory that all love is memory, of course
-I shall know her, whether she has gone beyond knowing me herself or
-not. I shall feel it in my blood when we meet again, overwhelmingly,
-fiercely, as I suppose I must have known her from the first, when she
-reappeared for a month or two in my life, twenty years ago. But can you
-say what form the result of her beautiful actions will take this time?
-Will she be a queen or a beggar?’ Kingston laughed, trying to lighten
-the impression of his eagerness. But the old man sighed.
-
-‘Sorrow, thick and thick, are you calling down upon yourself,’ he said,
-‘the bitterness of vain longing, doubled and redoubled. How can I tell
-you when and where you may meet again? Wander from magic incantation
-to incantation, strengthening your disappointment as you strengthen
-your longing. And--at the end, that meeting which shall be only on one
-side. Dread that reunion, dread that rediscovery of the lost. You will
-not find the lost again; you will find only the new, more beautiful
-thing into which her own beautiful action has transformed that which
-seemed lost. For merit plays its part in change, inward and outward.
-Through what endless trials had the holy lady Yasodhara to come before
-her high spotless Karma brought her at last to the side of the Blessed
-One Himself. Through all the ages she had lived on, ever higher and
-holier, before she could attain the end. And why should that which
-wore a woman’s shape continue still a woman, in its glorification? It
-was the man’s courage that showed. Can you be certain that what she was
-is not now a man--a man, perhaps, weak and earthly, but, after all, a
-man, by virtue of that one instant in which all woman’s weaknesses died
-in her, and only the bravery held firm. Life is freer, bolder, wider
-for a man; should not the free, bold soul pass on into a more fitting
-frame, where its opportunities will be greater and its trammels fewer?
-But why look forward into the great darkness of desire? Her Karma may
-even yet have dreadful sorrows to work out, yet from one sorrow, at
-least, it is now free. But I had come to you to-night because, after
-all my many years of life and much questioning, it has come to me to
-see farther than many across the fields of life, and sometimes to hear
-voices that other ears are not opened to hear. So I heard the crying
-voice of your hunger growing fierce in its loneliness, and I saw its
-sorrow deepening down the road of the future, and it seemed to me that
-perhaps I might give you help in loosening the bonds that bind you to
-the wheel of false desire. But now I know once more, as all life has
-taught me, that it is given to none to help his neighbour. Heaven and
-Hell we make for ourselves, sometimes thinking Hell is Heaven, and
-Heaven Hell, and no man can unseal our eyes or divert our course. So
-you must go on your way, Kingston, and I on mine, neither seeing what
-the other sees, strangers speaking unintelligible tongues. And it
-will be long before you see what I have grown to see. And yet, in the
-distance of time, that day will come, and you will be healed of all
-your sorrows. But now, in this life of yours, for a test and a hell and
-a torment will be the gratification of your longing when it comes. As a
-trial and a condemnation of you and yours will it come, suddenly, with
-disaster and despair, and the possessing of it will bring an anguish
-bitterer than any that has gone before, for that is the unchanging law
-of Desire. So I have brought you my message and my vain warning. The
-force of your craving will bring about its own accomplishment, as,
-sooner or later, all longing must bring about its accomplishment, and,
-at the same time, its penalty. For a terrible moment you will see your
-wish made flesh again, then all will pass away into darkness, and your
-last state, through your own action, will be worse than the first.’
-
-Kingston might, in saner circumstances, have smiled at denunciations
-so fantastic. But the little old man, so quiet yet so earnest, had a
-strange inexplicable dominance. He might not be believed, but he must
-at any rate be respected. In all he said there was a deep passion of
-earnestness, wistful and solemn, that gave the wizened little figure
-in the outrageous European clothes something of the prophet’s tragic
-grandeur. Now, his mission being discharged, the visitor arose to start
-once more on his way. Kingston, in the feeling that he had no real part
-in this earthly world, could make no effort to detain him. Nor would
-any effort have succeeded. As he had come, abruptly, unannounced, so he
-would go, abruptly, without mitigating gradation of farewells.
-
-Gently he gave his hand to Kingston.
-
-‘Very far apart are we two,’ he said, with a whimsical smile of his
-dried lips. ‘We speak in different languages, across a barrier of
-worlds. Yet one day we shall draw together, and our hearts be made
-kin again. And now I must go. Say good-bye for me to your wife. Out
-of our passions we make whips for our own backs, and there are other
-passions besides that of love for others. She too, your wife, must pay
-the penalty that she has appointed for herself, and out of her fancied
-strength shall come the great weakness that shall impose on her, and
-you, and all, that punishment which wisdom would have helped you to
-avoid. None is good but he who does not know it.’
-
-Kingston was not paying close attention. His mind was fixed on the
-hope thus made so definite, if perilous, of reunion with Isabel. He
-foresaw a second meeting, a second recognition, even though it might
-be one-sided. In the rapture of his hope he laughed at risks, and
-would face all the vague punishments foretold by the old man without
-a moment’s fear or hesitation, for the chance of setting eyes again,
-for however short a time, on the love that he had lost. In that hour
-the fires of youth flamed high in his heart, and he cared nothing what
-bitter waters might quench them once more in the end. In a dream he
-escorted the old man to the door, and watched him pass gently away
-into the void from which he had so suddenly emerged. Into the crowd
-of moving figures in the street the old man passed, and melted like
-a phantom. It was with almost the feeling of having been asleep and
-strangely dreamed that Kingston went back to the drawing-room, and
-found himself once more in the prosaic calm world where Gundred sat
-in a perpetual atmosphere of duty and terrestrial activities. When
-she returned to her husband with many questions as to the Bishop’s
-message, plans, and present whereabouts, Kingston could almost have
-believed that the last hour had been wiped out of his life, or, rather,
-had never formed a part of it. Her arrival made the whole episode so
-remote and so fantastic to look back upon that he could scarcely feel
-that it had really occurred at all. She was so practical, so busy,
-so matter-of-fact; visions and abstractions could not breathe in her
-neighbourhood, grew faint, vague, unreal, until the earthly life in
-which she moved appeared to be the only one with which sensible people
-could ever have to reckon. She had the not uncommon gift of making the
-invisible seem non-existent.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI
-
-
-Kingston made haste to forget, as far as possible, the ominous
-prophecies that had descended on him, and in a rush of final activities
-the Season drew to an end. Gundred was beginning to turn her thoughts
-towards Brakelond, and as soon as the Eton and Harrow match was over,
-she decreed that they must take their flight thither. She had many
-duties to discharge there in a very short time, for, after little
-more than a fortnight, other duties would call them all northward to
-Ivescar for the hecatombs of the Twelfth. Meanwhile at Brakelond there
-was a new school to be opened, a Church Bazaar to be patronized, a
-Primrose League Fête presided over, and a horrid Radical fishmonger
-to be deprived of custom, with a stately autograph exposition of his
-crimes by the Lady Gundred Darnley. There were also a few lighter
-tasks, and especially a long-standing engagement to dine with the
-Hoope-Arkwrights. The Hoope-Arkwrights were new people of great
-wealth, who had bought the old house of the Restormels, beautified
-it regardless of expense, and ever since had been angling for the
-friendship of ‘the Castle.’ By Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright’s untiring
-benevolence towards bazaars, Gundred had at last been brought to accept
-an invitation to dine at Restormel. ‘Poor things,’ she said, ‘one
-should always give pleasure when one can, and really it will be quite
-enough to ask them to tea one day.’ Accordingly she had promised the
-Hoope-Arkwrights the favour of her presence, and graciously arranged
-her plans to fit in with the date of their festival. At the Eton and
-Harrow she shone resplendent in her favourite shades of mauve, to the
-devouring wrath of other mothers, who, in spite of artificial aids,
-only succeeded in looking their full forty or fifty. She scanned the
-gowns and yawned over the play, and paraded proudly about on the arm
-of Jim, imagining him to be delighted with the occasion, rather than
-in a cold sweat of horror at every moment, lest anyone else should
-hear the comments that his mother sent forth in her cool penetrating
-tones. Then, having discharged her duty by her son and the match, she
-drove back to Grosvenor Street and turned her thoughts to departure.
-Kingston would run down to Brakelond in the motor. Gundred enlarged
-on her longing to accompany him, but declared that duty imperiously
-called upon her to accompany the household by train, to see that the
-journey was made satisfactorily, without any loss of luggage, or
-extravagance, or indecorum of conduct. Accordingly, on the appointed
-day, the Lady Gundred Darnley might have been seen amid pyramids of
-parcels and stacks of trunks, taking her Hegira at the head of an army
-of retainers. As for Kingston, he had yet another day or so in town,
-and then must follow his wife down to the West so as not to disappoint
-those ‘poor Hoope-Arkwright people’ of the glory that had been promised
-them.
-
-The weather was settled, and he anticipated a successful run. He was
-tired of London. There was heavy over him a sense of things about to
-happen. Matters seemed coming to a head. What his foreboding meant he
-could not tell; he had put the old uncle’s vague prophecies far away
-at the back of his consciousness, and attributed the oppression that
-crushed his spirits with a weight of impending catastrophe entirely to
-the influences of the thunderous weather and the air of London, stale
-and exhausted by the season. It was with relief that he got into the
-car on a radiant morning, and set out on his flight from the sultry
-city.
-
-But the day’s journey was not prosperously made. The roads were dusty,
-the wind was baffling, the car went peevishly and ill. Panting heavily
-along, the machine traversed the beautiful heaths and uplands that lie
-to the west of London. Kingston had meant to break his journey far on
-the way. It was necessary that he should arrive at Brakelond in good
-time on the morrow, seeing that this festivity over which Gundred so
-fussed was due to take place that evening. And so, the distance down
-to the West being great, Kingston had planned to spend the necessarily
-intervening night at Salisbury, so as to give himself ample time to
-make the rest of the journey. However, after the long, unsatisfactory
-day of delays, a downright catastrophe at last brought him to a
-standstill, no farther advanced upon his pilgrimage than Basingstoke.
-In that once placid but now assertive little metropolis, hallowed at
-once by the memories of Mad Margaret and of Elizabeth Bennet, Kingston
-found himself forced to make his rest that night. He gave orders for an
-early start on the morrow, then wandered out from the grim desolation
-peculiar to English country hotels into the streets and market-place.
-Roaming from alley to alley, he contrasted old with new, and beneath
-the walls of the old Assembly Rooms, bent his mind to see the famous
-Ball where Darcy first sighted his destiny. Soon, within the old room
-above, barnlike now and desolate, ghostly lights were shining, and the
-tinkle of long-dead music was blending with the rhythmical tumult of
-many feet. Brilliant and entrancing, Elizabeth came and went, up and
-down the dance; Mary posed and minced, Kitty and Lydia were agog for
-partners. As the stranger outside stood and recalled that immortal
-scene, the visible world around him faded quickly away, and again
-he understood how much more real may be that which has no earthly
-existence than that which earthly hands may touch and earthly eyes
-examine. Streets and walls of Basingstoke, hideous clock-tower and
-town-hall--it was not that they were real; they were phantoms of an
-ugly hour; reality, for evermore, was that little town which never was
-and never will be, where dwelt those men and women that never lived on
-earth, and yet must live eternally--those men and women so far more
-vivid and lasting than the ghosts amid whom we live; those real men
-and women whose voices must ring on perennially down the ages, giving
-joy and satisfaction to generation after generation, until the English
-language has passed with Nineveh and Babylon into the limbo of things
-forgotten.
-
-Sombre hucksters, clerks, shopkeepers moved up and down the dingy
-roadway. To Kingston, by now, they were but vapours; the street had
-changed, and its population was of old friends, bright and clearly
-recognised. Here strutted Wickham and Denny through the dusk,
-red-coated and raffish, in attendance on the giggling Lydia; and
-‘stuffy Uncle Phillips, breathing port wine,’ came lumbering paunchily
-towards his doorway. Here, where a modern Emporium had faded away,
-giving place to the neat-fronted little shop of bygone days, shone
-the shoe-roses that were to dance at Netherfield, and the bonnet that
-Lydia bought because it was ‘not so very ugly.’ Farther on, again, the
-pretentious hotel where Kingston was to spend his night had melted into
-vacancy. In its place stood the long, rambling inn, whitened, clean and
-simple, with its pillared portico and its hospitable entrance. And
-whose lumbering chariot was it that stood there at the door, whose high
-turban and commanding beak loomed out of its deep, cavernous recesses?
-Surely, surely there was Lady Catherine angrily demanding the road to
-Longbourne, and insisting that the morrow’s weather must certainly be
-fine? And now Mr. Bingley rode along on his black horse, blue coat
-and all; Charlotte Lucas stepped briskly by on an errand; Darcy came
-escorting the effusive Caroline to the shop; last of all appeared the
-centre of the vision--the world, rather, where all those visions had
-been born and made real--the deceptively meek and mild little maiden
-with the twinkling eyes; the demure and inconspicuous spinster in
-whom dwelt the keenest spirit that ever spoke in English, or looked
-out for English ‘follies and nonsense, whims and inconsistencies.’
-Round-cheeked, prematurely capped, sedate, Miss Austen pattered on her
-road. It was with a sudden cold shock that her passing called back
-Kingston into the world of to-day. Gone again was the real Basingstoke
-in a flash, and all the real people that had dwelt there--gone like
-the sudden wreckage of a dream. Now there stretched before his eyes
-only the crude and banal sordor of the prosaic modern town. Jude the
-Obscure, and Sue, and beastly Arabella had violently usurped the place
-of Bingley and Darcy and adorable Elizabeth. Everything was changed
-to ugliness and squalor. Kingston, chilled and saddened, returned to
-the hotel which once more stood on the site of that old inn where the
-Misses Bennet had eaten their nuncheon.
-
-In the morning, when the time came for Kingston to set off once more on
-his journey, even the bustling streets of to-day had a cheerfulness of
-their own. The sun was shining brilliantly, the motor had recovered its
-good humour, everything looked solid and practical and businesslike
-and wholesome. The vision of the twilight had passed. Jane Austen was
-once more dust of Winchester Cathedral, and the butchers and bakers
-and grocers who stood by their shop-doors and counters were now the
-sole occupants of the little town; the mystic walls had melted into
-modern brick and stucco, the ghosts had faded back into the world
-they came from. And yet, as Kingston went on his way, he knew that in
-a hundred years or less the case would be reversed again, as he had
-seen it reversed in the dusk of the previous evening. For ultimate
-reality conquers ephemeral, apparent reality, and the butchers and the
-bakers and the grocers would long since have passed away, and become
-indistinguishable drift again of the earth, with no memory to say that
-they had ever worn flesh at all; but Bingley and Darcy and Elizabeth
-would still be there, eternally young, unforgotten and unforgettable.
-For what death can touch the life invisible? Reality lives on for ever;
-it is only the composite, the visible, the tangible, that can break up
-in change, and pass, and disappear. The solid is the only phantom.
-
-On and on through the tranquil glory of the day and the country the
-motor sped willingly upon its course, put to its highest pressure of
-flight, that the whole distance might be accomplished in as little
-time as might be. To-day it ungrudgingly gave its best energies to
-travelling cheerfully, indefatigably, briskly. Through sleepy little
-towns it hummed and whirred; along deep lanes, and under the shadow of
-great ancient forests. Then by degrees the way became more open. The
-road wound on, over stretch after stretch of purple moorland, dotted
-here and there with sparse pines or hollies that had watched the
-hunting of William the Norman; over vast tracts of heather and sedge,
-over hill and valley of the wide country. By now the clear freshness
-of morning had given way to the leaden glare of midday. The air was
-thick and dull with heat, and banked clouds indistinguishably crowded
-the dome of heaven, only occasionally permitting a pale sun to pierce
-the haze. The sky had no longer any colour; an indeterminate brassy
-heat pervaded it, and its farthest distance melted sullenly into the
-livid profundities of the landscape, till there was no horizon, only
-one vague vapour filling the uttermost parts of the world.
-
-Kingston drove on unregarding. The road was clear and uneventful;
-his mind, released from the motorist’s incessant agony as to hens,
-inexperienced dogs, defiant children, and deaf old women who abruptly
-cross at corners, was left free to occupy itself with the wonder
-suggested by his visit of the night before to shadowland. What, after
-all, was this reality that all men think of? He himself, at once solid
-and evanescent, of what was he built? Of what were all his neighbours
-built? Where was the permanent element in them? Flesh and body and
-bones must go; following the logical sequence, he saw that resemblances
-must go, recognitions, and the consequent reintegration of bygone
-personal passions. So far that mysterious old man from the East had
-been right. These superficial passions belong to the superficial Self,
-and must pass away when the superficial Self resolves itself once
-more into the elements of which it had originally been composed; but
-behind all this, above all this, there must needs be some immortal
-part, some real Self that could recognise the eternal reality in the
-creations of an old maid’s vanished brain, and understand that the
-invisible has a very solid and a very vital existence. As he thought
-the matter through, the sense of physical personality began to melt
-away. Gradually he grew into comprehension of the fact that the He
-of everyday life, the He that has wants, angers, hungers, thirst--the
-He, in fact, that everyone imagines to be the enduring, everlasting
-entity, that all men crave and agonize to believe immortal, has really,
-in the everlasting truth of things, no genuine existence whatever.
-The only He that could pass on into immortality was the mysterious
-something behind, the indestructible Thought that could call the body
-and all its manifestations into being, and then, when tired, dismiss
-the body again into corruption and go forward on its road. Unable, of
-course, fully to dissever his consciousness from the consciousness
-of physical existence, his mind, in the absorbed immobility of his
-limbs, found itself more and more nearly able to face the fact that
-its personality had nothing to do with the earthly Kingston Darnley.
-The earthly Kingston Darnley, the thing that wore clothes, and ate,
-and drank, and was cold if naked, and cross if hungry, and angry
-if denied its wishes--that was a mere accident, built of earthly
-accidents like itself, no more capable of immortality than the food
-it wanted or the clothes that made so large a part of what it called
-its existence. As they, in an hour or a year, must dissolve and pass
-back into their constituent elements so must that phantasmal Self of
-his resolve itself, in the course of a few seasons more, into its
-constituent elements again, and die for ever with the death of its own
-desires. Only the inner, secret Self must go for ever forward upon the
-upward way, untouched by all the shifting changes which that earthly,
-ghostly Self might suffer. And Isabel, the lost thing for which he was
-searching, what was she, and to which Self did she belong--the real
-or the phantom Self? Was she the creation of his higher or his lower
-desires? And if he was to find her, as now he felt a growing certainty
-that he must, what would she be? Into what form would the splendour
-of her last moment have transferred her? And now he began to remember
-more vividly the old man’s warning. With what peril of agony and
-disappointment was fraught his quest, its realization and attainment?
-By the attainment of one’s keenest desire comes that anguish of
-disappointment which is fierce in proportion to the fierceness of the
-desires that called it into being. Desire, by satisfying itself, begets
-desire, and so, with each fresh craving and its gratification, the
-chain of suffering grows heavier and stronger, binding the soul more
-and more fast prisoner in the bondage of pain. For a moment he saw this
-clearly, understood that only in freedom from the hungers of the lower
-self can spring that freedom from sorrow which is the ultimate end of
-all human ambition, the goal of all humanity’s highest hopes, here and
-in the hereafter. Then his vision clouded, and the lower self intruded
-its presence once more. His mind dwelt on the achievement of his quest,
-the long-delayed reunion with the thing that had been lost. Even had
-he willed to escape, he remembered now that in a moment of what had
-then been mere fantasy he had plighted his troth to Isabel far down the
-future. Now, though she might perhaps be free, he was tightly bound--at
-once by his pledge as by his desires. Perhaps, in so far as his
-desires had forcibly purged themselves from grossness, the grossness
-of his bondage might be softened. But a slave he needs must be to the
-craving which he had so fomented by indulgence through so many desirous
-years. A dim fear began to fall like a veil across the radiance of his
-anticipation. Now he understood that reunion with Isabel could not be
-quite what he had thought and longed for. There must be some change,
-and with that change must come suffering. He had said, in the ardour of
-his desideration, that he would take all risks of sorrow. Now he first
-felt that the risks might well be heavy, and the sorrow sooner or later
-inevitable. A sense of foreboding filled him. What he wanted that he
-should have, and with his satisfaction must come that grief of dust and
-ashes which always makes the gratification of one desire the prelude
-of its yet bitterer successor, even as the drunkard’s satisfaction of
-his craving only means the renewal of a redoubled, more insatiable
-craving on the morrow. His desire should achieve its end, and with that
-achievement find only the beginning of another desire and a keener
-pain. A vague, mysterious fear of the path which he had set himself
-to tread now dominated all his thoughts. It had seemed to lead into
-such bright places. But now shadows lay thick across it, and its way
-stretched down towards the abysses. He began to dread the road on which
-he had so deliberately set his course ever since that violent sorrow of
-twenty years before. He was suddenly afraid of that future for which he
-had so long been craving, and shrank from the fulfilment of his longer,
-eager quest.
-
-Without delay or misadventure, the motor covered the distances with
-untiring appetite as fast as they unfolded themselves, further and
-further into blue horizon after blue horizon. Brakelond was nearing;
-Kingston might soon expect to see its mysterious mass dominating the
-lesser hills and woods. There was now but one steep barrier of hills
-to surmount--a slow, straight climb of three miles or more to the
-summit of a ridge--and thence the road would drop straight over easy
-declivities to the last brief levels that would still separate the
-traveller from his destination. Already the hill stretched ahead of
-Kingston. Before him, with the appalling directness of those eternal
-Roman roads, the white ribbon stretched taut and stern, away and
-away to the crown of the pass. Kingston set the motor to breast the
-long rise with all its might, for there was no time to waste. His
-calculations had run things very fine. He had only another hour or
-so to get home, wash, dress, and be ready to accompany Gundred on
-her mission of condescension. If he failed, he knew well the neat
-reproaches that would meet him, the mild sighings, the pathetic
-resignation so much harder to bear than any objurgations. He pushed the
-motor to its utmost exertions.
-
-The acclivity was now climbing over open moorland. Away to right and
-left fell the slopes of the hill towards the rich levels far beneath.
-Evening was shedding its glamour over the country, and all the details
-of the way were transfigured by the magic of twilight. Straight ahead,
-over the edge of the pass, the sun was setting in a splendour of
-scarlet that spread a solid beam of fire from pole to pole, beneath
-the solid purple of the cloud-banks that rolled and towered up towards
-the zenith. The air beneath was a-quiver with fire, and the earth
-was kindled to a fierce and lucent tone of violet, hot, yet solemn,
-mysterious, almost tragic in the breathless stillness of the evening.
-Against the glare beyond, the climbing road shone cold and ghastly
-under the unbroken cloud-masses overhead, grey as a rain-washed bone by
-contrast with the amethyst of the earth and the sudden furious glory
-of the sky. Leading up over darkness to that scarlet furnace in the
-west, it might have been the very way to Hell. Terrible ghosts might
-be mounting its straight, still stretch. As the motor gradually rolled
-up its slopes, Kingston saw that there was indeed a wayfarer upon the
-road. Far away as yet, hardly discernible, a black speck was nearing
-the summit of the pass. A quick, fantastic terror suddenly seized
-on Kingston; he shrank from overtaking the wanderer, from passing
-him, from seeing his face. Even from afar that solitary figure had
-a malign influence. It was some ominous and evil thing, that remote
-point of darkness on the ghostly pallor of the road. The moments, as
-they throbbed by, seemed big with terrible events about to be born.
-A dreadful hush of expectation filled the world. And still the motor
-climbed pitilessly, gaining on the pedestrian so far ahead. Kingston
-encouraged his foolish instincts so as the better to laugh at them. It
-was this strange evening that had given him such a start--this strange
-evening, filled with an immemorial, awful loneliness. This light was
-mysterious and haunting--the deep sombre purples of the moorland, the
-grim, cold whiteness of the road--and then, at the end of the gloom,
-that abrupt, ferocious glare beyond, that terrifying blaze of the
-sunset between the two rims of darkness above and beneath. The whole
-effect was unearthly, almost crushing. And the world seemed holding
-its breath; nothing stirred, no leaf, no zephyr; the cry of no bird
-could be discerned, and even the dry susurrence of the heather-bells
-was stilled in the blank immobility of the atmosphere. And through the
-uncanny hush the throbs and pantings of the motor broke obtrusively,
-like the agonies of some great monster in travail, intensifying by
-contrast the vast loneliness of the silence. And there, arriving at the
-crown of the pass, moved on the one sign of life that occurred anywhere
-in the desolate prospect. That sign of life added a strangely jarring,
-menacing note.
-
-And then to Kingston’s cherished feelings of mystic awe was abruptly
-added another. That figure far up on the grey road was no stranger.
-He knew it well, had known it from time immemorial--known it and yet
-feared it. The instinct came upon him with a crash, like the sudden
-recognition of something dreadful that leaps into a nightmare. It
-was no qualm; it was a certainty. He knew that when he should have
-reached the summit of the ridge he would look back at the wayfarer’s
-face and see--_what_, he could not tell, but something, at all events,
-that he had known for years. The feeling grew on him, and grew and
-grew, until at last a devouring curiosity annihilated his previous
-dread. He abandoned himself to the influences of the wizard twilight,
-and allowed himself to nurse these fantasies which daylight could not
-have conceived, nor his daylight self been brought to tolerate. Now,
-however, by the poised, watchful dusk, their power was strengthened and
-made momentarily heavier. Overwhelming impulses of acquaintanceship
-seized Kingston. Who could it be that had so enthralled his attention
-even from afar? And now they were close upon the mystery. It wore a
-man’s figure, lithe and tall, in a dark knickerbocker suit. Suddenly it
-turned at the noise of their coming, and looked round. Kingston had one
-instant of suspense, then fell headlong into an abyss of self-contempt.
-He had so cosseted his absurdities that he had come at last to believe
-in them. Why, this wanderer was simply a respectable young gentleman of
-one-and-twenty or so, whom he had never set eyes on in his life before.
-He was good-looking, too--brilliantly good-looking, with fine features,
-a beautifully springy form, and splendid grey eyes, but a total
-stranger none the less. Kingston felt a pang of disappointment; but
-though on the surface he knew that he had never seen the boy before,
-yet a dim instinct within him still obstinately insisted that this was
-no first meeting. The instinct would not be cried down by perverse
-facts; it clamoured for recognition, and gradually the former acute
-feeling of curiosity and acquaintance began to rise again in Kingston.
-He felt sure he must already have seen the boy somewhere, though he
-could not recall a single feature. Probably he had caught a glimpse of
-him in London, and his subconscious mind had photographed the glimpse
-upon his memory. On a sudden irresistible impulse, he slowed the motor
-on its course, and as he passed the wayfarer, leaned out towards him.
-
-‘We seem to be going the same way,’ he shouted above the outraged
-bellowings of the machine. ‘Can’t I give you a lift?’
-
-The other looked up in surprise. Seen at such close quarters, he was
-more handsome than ever.
-
-‘Oh, thank you,’ he answered after a pause. ‘Thanks very much. But I am
-very nearly at my destination.’
-
-Refusal spoke clearly in his tones, and as he replied Kingston felt
-again the same overpowering certainty that this was an acquaintance
-of long standing. Everything seemed violently, vividly familiar, yet
-nothing, no inflection, no feature, could he track down to its place
-in his memory. Besides, if his instinct had been true, surely the
-stranger must have shared it, and the offer of a lift would have led,
-as it was intended to do, towards a mutual recognition. But the boy
-evidently had no such feeling of acquaintance, and had declined the
-suggestion without the faintest hint that he had ever seen the motorist
-before. The whole coil must be a web of mere fancy. Kingston released
-the machine, which bounded gladly on, leaving the wayfarer behind in
-the shadow of the hill. Another instant, and they were on the summit.
-A blinding glory dazzled Kingston’s eyes. The whole atmosphere was one
-shimmering ripple of light. Beneath his feet, dim in the vibrating
-gold, lay the last two miles of level and plain. Indistinguishable,
-though close at hand among its woods, lay the redecorated house of
-the Restormels, where he was to dine that evening. And there, beyond,
-infinitely remote amid the vaporous radiance, rose Brakelond, far above
-the world, silhouetted in shades of purple against the devastating
-glare of the sunset. Wonderfully magical, wonderfully mystical in the
-last fires of the evening, seemed that fantastic vision of the Castle,
-fit haunt of old dead passions and splendours, the glowing casket of
-half a thousand memories, gorgeous, palpitating, terrible. For an
-instant he paused on the summit of the hill, gazing at that crown of
-wonder against the flaming west; then he gave the straining motor its
-head, and plunged downwards on the final stage of his journey. Soon,
-as he approached it, the Castle lost its mystery, grew solid, looming,
-earthly. Kingston suddenly realized that there, high up in her great
-vaulted room, its Lady Gundred was sitting in front of her mirror,
-having her hair done, and wondering whether her husband would arrive
-in time for dinner. The motor rushed fiercely up the last steep stages
-of the Castle hill, passed under the machicolated gateway, and came
-noisily to rest in the shadow of the Erechtheion. Kingston, thoroughly
-restored by now to prose and sanity, leaped hastily out, and went to
-his room to get ready.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII
-
-
-Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright was a large, short woman, genial and comfortable,
-always anxious to give pleasure and make herself popular. Her husband
-had made a great deal of money some years since in ways that were
-characterized by his friends as energetic, and by his enemies as
-shady. However, nothing very definite had ever been said against him,
-so that the charitable could avail themselves, uncontaminated, of his
-wealth, and make a merit of their willingness to tolerate its owner.
-In himself, he was a quiet and obscure little man, who left the
-ordering of daily existence entirely in the hands of his wife; and she,
-without vulgarity or snobbishness, had a passion for being liked, for
-being surrounded by pleased, approving people. In the neighbourhood of
-Brakelond she had already achieved general favour; she was everywhere
-hailed as a ‘dear good woman’; the lavish appointments of the house,
-the excellence of the cook and cellar, accomplished only less than
-her own real kindliness, and the surrounding families all ended by
-accepting the new-comer with a good grace, until at last only Brakelond
-held itself aloof. And now even Brakelond was about to surrender. Mrs.
-Hoope-Arkwright, however devoid of sycophantic feelings, could not but
-feel that the occasion was a great one. Lady Gundred Darnley, virtual
-Duchess of March and Brakelond, was very much the sovereign of the
-county, no less by position than by choice, and her first ceremonial
-appearance at the Hoope-Arkwright’s board was beyond question an event
-of the highest importance. Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright had ordered her best
-dinner, donned her best gown and her heartiest smile; she was genuinely
-happy, and meant that the festival should be a complete success.
-Gundred, at this moment driving towards the house in a blessed glow of
-conscious benevolence, could not feel the favour of her visit more than
-did Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright.
-
-‘Joe dear,’ said the gratified hostess to her husband, as they stood
-together in the empty drawing-room before the arrival of their
-guests--‘Joe dear, you will take Lady Gundred, of course. Remember
-what an interest she has in the schools and Church bazaars. And don’t
-talk about the Duke, whatever you do. She does not like it. There is
-nothing--well, positively wrong with the poor Duke, but still, one says
-as little about him as one can.’
-
-Mr. Hoope-Arkwright promised obedience. His wife looked around her with
-complacency, surveying all the rich perfections of the room. ‘I do
-think she will find the place improved,’ she remarked.
-
-The Hoope-Arkwrights’ treatment of the old house that they had bought
-from the ruined Restormels had been drastic, though reverent. They had
-altered everything, and sternly pretended to have altered nothing,
-after the habit of new-comers who have passed from the first crude
-stage, of destruction, unto the second crude stage, of imitation. All
-the old quaintnesses and beauties had been left, but they had all been
-elaborated, done up, polished, painted, exaggerated, until they hardly
-knew themselves, and wore the uneasy look of things that had been put
-up yesterday for effect. The old house was now like the stage-setting
-of an old house; everything wore the painful flamboyancy, the assertive
-archaism of the theatre, neat, shining, obtrusive as a new pin. The
-armoured figures on the stairs and in the long oaken hall now carried
-electric lamps in their mailed fists, and this combination of practical
-modern contrivance with respect for antiquity was not only typical of
-all the other improvements but also a ceaseless matter of pride to
-the new owners of Restormel. Their complacence and their contrivance
-were equally characteristic. The same spirit pervaded the house and
-made it spick and span, bristling with expensive conveniences from
-attic to cellar. The long parlour in which Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright now
-stood in expectation of her guests was a great low room panelled in
-oak, with leaded casements of dim glass. At least, this is what it had
-been. Now it had Art-Nouveau windows with cushioned seats, and a broad
-white cornice, behind whose rim lurked electric lights in plutocratic
-abundance, shedding a pale, diffused glare, as of a ghostly day. The
-scene they shone on was no longer ancient, but ‘antique.’
-
-Everything was overdone; everything was in that strenuous good taste
-which is the worst taste of all. The oaken settles, so carved, so
-polished, were blatantly unconvincing in their very eagerness to
-convince; oaken tables here and there carried silver photograph-frames
-and silver bowls of roses. In their devout attempt to preserve
-inviolate the antiquity of the house, the Hoope-Arkwrights had scorned
-the introduction of a carpet, and the expanse of the floor was now an
-artificial skating-rink of parquet, so new and glossy that it might
-have served as a mirror, over whose surface were scattered a few
-desolate islets of rug that slid treacherously away beneath unwary
-feet, carrying their victim in a helpless slide across the room. Under
-the tables sat monstrous great green china cats, painted all over with
-little roses in patterns and ribbons. Their emerald eyes of glass
-glared grimly forth from each lair, and their presence added a neat
-note of modern art to the pristine simplicity of the other decorations.
-
-As Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright gazed approvingly around, the door opened, and
-two young men came in. One was short and pleasant and plump--clearly
-the son of the house; the other was slender, tall, and dark, of
-remarkable beauty, both of feature and build. His hostess welcomed him
-warmly.
-
-‘I do hope you are not tired after that long walk, Mr. Restormel,’ she
-said; ‘I am sure you will be glad of your dinner. The air does give
-one an appetite, doesn’t it? I have only walked as far as the garden
-to-day, but I declare I feel as famished as a wolf.’
-
-The kind lady screwed up her comfortable features into fanciful
-imitation of a famished wolf. The young man smiled.
-
-‘No,’ he said, ‘I don’t often get tired with walking. And then think
-what I had to look forward to at the end of it.’
-
-Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright looked conscious for a moment.
-
-‘Ah yes,’ she replied with some feeling. ‘I am afraid we are dreadfully
-thoughtless, Mr. Restormel. It must be dreadful for you to come back
-here and find a lot of new people kicking about in your own house, as
-it were; I do hope you’ll try not to think about it. When Jack told
-me how he had met you at Oxford, and who you were, and all about you,
-I declare I felt quite shy and uncomfortable at the thought of asking
-you to pay us a visit. And to arrive just to-night, too, when we have
-got a sort of little dinner-party too. I am sure you must find it very
-trying.’
-
-The handsome boy smiled down at her again. She was evidently in anxiety
-that he should be happy and set at his ease, though her methods lacked
-subtlety. He accepted her sympathy, but diverted her conversation.
-
-‘Oh,’ he replied, ‘we come and go, all of us, and it never does to
-bother about what one cannot help. Anyhow, I am sure Restormel never
-had jollier, kinder people in it than it has now. Tell me, Mrs.
-Hoope-Arkwright, who is coming to dinner to-night?’
-
-‘What, has not Jack told you?’ cried the hostess, with a little
-inflection of pride, turning to her son. ‘Well, there are Sir Nigel
-Pope and his new second wife, and the Martin Massingers with two
-sisters, and the Archdeacon and Mrs. Widge, who are staying with them,
-and the Lemmingtons, and the Goddards, and the Pooles--yes, and the
-Darnleys--from Brakelond, you know, Lady Gundred and her husband.’
-
-‘Oh, Lady Gundred. Of course I have heard all about them. My mother
-used to see a good deal of her at one time, before the place was sold.’
-
-‘Oh yes, how stupid I am! I am always forgetting that you know all the
-people about far better than we do, though only by hearsay, most of
-them. Yes, of course you know about dear Lady Gundred. You will be next
-her at dinner, on the other side from my husband. What a comfort! You
-will be able to talk to her about old times. I am afraid you will be
-in starvation corner, by the way, Mr. Restormel, but I thought--even
-before I remembered that you knew her--that you would not mind that if
-you were next to dear Lady Gundred.’
-
-‘You must remember,’ answered young Restormel, ‘that the place was sold
-when I was only six months old, so I cannot feel that I have any very
-intimate acquaintance with Lady Gundred. Tell me some more about her;
-what is she like?’
-
-‘The sweetest and best of women, Mr. Restormel. And so pretty. Quite
-extraordinary, for she must be--what?--well over thirty, certainly,
-and yet she looks quite like a young girl still. Fair, you know, with
-a delightful complexion and lovely golden hair, and that kind of
-beautiful little figure which never alters. Yes, she must certainly be
-over thirty. She has got a son who can’t be less than fifteen. Jack,
-surely Jim Darnley is quite fifteen?’
-
-Young Hoope-Arkwright glanced up from the photograph-book with which he
-was beguiling the time.
-
-‘What, Jim Darnley? Oh yes, fifteen, at least.’
-
-‘There you are. And his mother looks like his sister still. He is the
-dearest boy, Jim Darnley--the simplest, most unaffected creature. And,
-of course, he will be Duke of March and Brakelond one of these days,
-when his grandfather dies. They are sure to revive the title for him.
-But he might be just anybody, and his mother the same. I have always
-wondered why she does not make her husband take her own name. But no;
-she is such a really good woman that she thinks a wife ought always
-to stick to her husband’s name. That shows you what she is. And such
-a worker of all good kind works, indefatigable among the poor and the
-sick--for ever sending out soup and boots and blankets, you know.
-Her life is quite made up of kindnesses. They very, very seldom dine
-out, the Darnleys, in the country, so that you are lucky to meet them
-here like this to-night. Her husband is a very nice man too. I am
-sure you will like them both immensely. But of course she is the most
-interesting of the two.’
-
-At this point the other guests began to arrive, and Mrs.
-Hoope-Arkwright was forced to abandon her dialogue with young
-Restormel. She introduced him rather perfunctorily to one or two of the
-new arrivals, taking pains to slur over his name until she should have
-the opportunity of explaining his identity quietly to them at dinner
-or afterwards; then she turned to her hospitable duties, and Jack
-Hoope-Arkwright carried off his friend into one of the windows, where
-they stood laughing and talking together while the guests gradually
-gathered. Then, after a few moments, Ivor Restormel and his host came
-back towards the hearth to look at some photograph or ornament that
-stood on the primitive oak table that stood close by, and thus it was
-that they were once more close at the hostess’s side when at last, in a
-significant pause, the butler re-entered. His appearance suggested an
-archbishop of sporting tendencies, and he evidently cultivated a nice
-sense of drama. His voice boomed sonorous as he announced:
-
-‘Mr. and Lady Gundred Darnley.’
-
-Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright moved forward a step or two.
-
-Minute but majestic, the Lady Gundred Darnley proceeded up the room,
-panoplied in perfections, and giving exactly the proper amount of
-smiles, of exactly the proper kind, in exactly the proper way, to all
-the proper people. At her heels came Kingston, but nobody cared to
-look twice at him. Lady Gundred was the star of the evening; as she
-entered, she had the double consciousness of not only conferring great
-pleasure, but of conferring it in the handsomest and most ungrudging
-manner. For in the plenitude of her generosity she had decided that it
-was her duty not to fob off poor, kind Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright’s dinner
-with one of her second-best frocks; and now she reaped the reward of
-her efforts in the general gaze of delight that greeted her appearance
-in one of her smartest gowns, looking incredibly crisp and young in a
-beautifully-built harmony of pale blue and pale gold. The frock set
-the crown upon the favour of her coming. It was, indeed, very rarely
-that the Darnleys dined out in the neighbourhood of Brakelond, and
-therefore Gundred was the more ready to emphasize the approval that
-her coming was to bestow on Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright in the eyes of all
-the county. Dear woman, how good she had been about that bazaar! how
-loyally she had turned away her Liberal gardeners! She well deserved
-not only to be dined with, but to be dined with in one of one’s decent
-gowns. And then one might ask her to tea at Brakelond, and show her
-the pictures. Gundred showed herself sweet and kind in the highest
-degree, as Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright made her welcome. Her manner always had
-a tranquil friendliness and a grace so instinct with placidity that
-only the most discerning could have discerned her underlying pride,
-in her demeanour’s very negation of pride. Here and there, perhaps,
-an acute onlooker might guess that her gentleness was founded on an
-intense arrogance unsuspected even by its possessor, on a self-esteem
-so tremendous as to have passed beyond all hint of self-assertion
-into a Nirvana of apparent unself-consciousness. An ingenious friend
-in London, indeed, had once said that, though Gundred’s manner and
-signature unfailingly wore the proper style of ‘Gundred Darnley,’ yet
-that, reading between the lines, both of manner and signature, one
-could always see that it really ran, ‘Gundred March and Brakelond.’
-However, her pride was far too cardinal a point of doctrine to be
-made the theme of declamation; Gundred never obtruded it, never
-lowered its dignity by insisting on it, never allowed it to make her
-offensive, except in minute and subtle ways. Now, as she pressed Mrs.
-Hoope-Arkwright’s hand and commended her kindness, the hostess felt
-that never had she met anyone so pleasant and cordial and delightfully
-unaffected.
-
-Then Gundred raised her eyes and looked round her to see who else
-might be in the room. She saw Sir Nigel, saw the Lemmingtons, saw the
-Archdeacon and his wife; she was glad that Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright had
-chosen such unexceptionable people to be witnesses of Brakelond’s
-condescension. Then her gaze moved on. The next moment she saw somebody
-whom instantly, inexplicably, she disliked as she had never before
-disliked anyone at first sight. Cool and gracious, Gundred was the last
-person in the world to feel unusual emotions; but now, as she looked
-at a tall dark young man--a boy of about twenty, he seemed, remarkably
-beautiful and attractive--her soul started proudly away in a flurry
-of instinctive repulsion. He was unpleasant, that good-looking youth,
-altogether unpleasant and odious. She had no notion why this feeling
-swept so completely across her mood; it took entire possession of
-her. Quickly she averted her eyes, and glanced round the uneventful
-circle of the other guests. They, for their part, quite unsuspicious
-of Lady Gundred’s sudden outburst of dislike, were concentrating their
-admiration on the calm grace of her manner, so exquisitely civilized
-and concise. Passions must always be very far from that serene
-pleasantness of demeanour. And meanwhile Gundred was busy thinking how
-displeasing that young man was, while with soft smiles she responded
-to Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright’s compliments. But suddenly the hostess became
-conscious of someone at her side. She turned towards the handsome dark
-boy, and before Gundred could see what was to happen, had brought
-him forward. ‘Let me introduce you to Lady Gundred Darnley,’ she
-said. The young man made a motion as if to put out his hand. Gundred
-instantly responded by taking that cruel revenge which is always in a
-woman’s power on such occasions. She ignored the hand, gave a glacial
-little smile and a glacial little bow. The young man seemed slightly
-astonished at this chill, and his eyes met hers for a moment. They were
-splendid eyes, those of his--cool, deep, grey, kindly. They glanced
-with wonder into the ice of Gundred’s stare, and in that moment she
-felt his gaze intolerable, saw things that she mysteriously hated
-and dreaded in those grey depths. For once in her life Gundred’s
-composure was faintly ruffled. She dropped her glance, and faintly
-blushed with annoyance. This is what one got by being generous and
-dining with presumptuous people like the Hoope-Arkwrights. Under her
-calm, imperturbably smiling exterior Gundred was gravely annoyed. She
-moved backwards, away from this unwelcome introduction. Her movement
-produced a change in the arrangement of the crowd. Kingston stepped
-forward, and came into sight of the tall, slender figure with which his
-wife had seemed to be talking. Already he had had a strong conviction
-that he knew the back; now that he saw the face, he recognised the
-wayfarer whom he had passed on his road that afternoon. And once again,
-tyrannous, overwhelming, came the certainty of old acquaintance.
-Before, however, he could start a conversation, dinner was announced,
-and Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright began to marshal her guests in procession.
-Gundred hailed the release with joy, and passed out with gentle majesty
-at the head of the cortège.
-
-What, then, was her indignation when, having settled herself at her
-host’s right, delicately removed her gloves, unfolded her napkin,
-untied the little bundle of pastry faggots that lay before her knotted
-up with blue ribbon, she turned towards her other neighbour, and
-discovered that he was no other than the strange, beautiful young man
-for whom she had conceived so unusually sudden a dislike. She hated
-strong emotions, and very rarely indulged them, but this one was beyond
-her control--a matter of instinct. In the first flash of revelation,
-she felt convinced that this beautiful boy was a corrupter of youth, a
-contemner of religion, everything that was bad and horrible; she plumed
-herself immediately on the nice discernment that enabled a Christian
-woman to divine such things, and made a virtue of the hostility she
-harboured. Talk to such a creature she would not. She turned quickly
-upon her host, and initiated the usual introductory conversation on the
-beauty of the table decorations.
-
-The dinner-table was of a piece with the rest of the restored house.
-It was so aggressively old as to be obviously new. It was of that
-ancient oak which is for ever modern; and, in deference to primitive
-simplicity, it wore no cloth. Glass and silver gleamed down its long
-narrow stretch, and in the middle ranged a hedge of roses and orchids
-embowered in ferns. Electric light was not permitted to mar its
-harmony with any suggestion of modernity. Candles in plain old silver
-candlesticks illuminated the table and its guests, shedding a soft and
-discreet glamour of pink from beneath their shades of crimson paper.
-Gundred commented amiably on the beautiful effect attained.
-
-Mr. Hoope-Arkwright, who left such details to his wife and the
-decorators, made what reply he could, and the conversation flowed
-placidly along the lines that Gundred loved, developing in the way that
-showed her social aptitudes at their best.
-
-‘My wife says that electric light does not do for a dinner-table,’
-explained Mr. Hoope-Arkwright. ‘Too harsh a light it sheds, she tells
-me. I don’t understand such things myself, but everyone says the
-candles and their pink shades are very becoming.’
-
-‘Yes, indeed,’ replied Gundred; ‘one always likes a soft gentle light.
-And so clever of dear Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright not to have a tablecloth.
-All the glass and silver shows up so well. Such wonderful taste she
-has.’
-
-‘Well, I always like a tablecloth myself, you know--seems cleaner,
-somehow; but Maggie says it is not the thing in a house like this.’
-
-‘Such a delightful house--yes? And I do think you and dear Mrs.
-Hoope-Arkwright have been so tactful about it--altering nothing, as it
-were, and yet improving everything, and making it so comfortable. It
-was very different in the poor Restormels’ time. I can remember what it
-was like then.’
-
-Mr. Hoope-Arkwright saw that she had not grasped her other neighbour’s
-identity, and as personal explanations are not easy unless one has the
-tact to shout them, so that their object may have no suspicion who is
-meant, he preferred to turn the conversation into other channels. ‘Are
-you fond of flowers, Lady Gundred?’ he asked.
-
-In such temperate dialogues Gundred particularly shone. She was
-especially valuable in London for her power of flowing endlessly
-and amiably on about matters which could never possibly interest or
-stimulate anybody, or arouse difficulties of any sort. She was felt
-to be a thoroughly safe guest. So Mr. Hoope-Arkwright’s question gave
-her a most favourable opportunity for the display of her favourite
-qualities, and she seized upon the topic with joy.
-
-‘Oh yes,’ she answered; ‘I have always been devoted to flowers. Such a
-comfort they are--yes? Quiet friends, I always say. One could not live
-without them.’
-
-‘Roses, now--do you care particularly for roses?’ pursued Mr.
-Hoope-Arkwright.
-
-‘Oh, the queen of flowers,’ she made haste to reply. ‘But, do you know,
-I can never quite care for a rose that has no scent. There is something
-unnatural about it--no? But these of yours are perfectly lovely, and
-how sweet! Do you find the soil good for them here?’
-
-‘Well, as to that I can hardly tell you. I leave such matters to my
-wife and the gardener. But they are fine fellows, as you say.’
-
-‘Quite like little pink cabbages--yes? Only so very, very beautiful, of
-course. How one loves a rose! And they go so well with the orchids too.
-So nice to be able to grow orchids.’
-
-‘Yes, they do run into money, orchids do. You would be astonished at
-the prices some of them fetch.’
-
-Gundred thought this a vulgar ostentation, and assumed her mildly
-pious air. ‘And I dare say, after all, not half so beautiful as many
-a dear little flower of the hedgerows?’ she replied. ‘Money means so
-little--yes? I often feel that one’s greatest pleasures are those which
-cost us least. The lovely lights on the hills, the roseate hues of
-early dawn--these are the joys which no money can buy. How thankful one
-ought to be to Heaven for giving us all these healthy pleasures--yes?’
-
-Neither Mr. Hoope-Arkwright nor Gundred herself had any exhaustive
-experience of early dawn and its roseate hues. But the sentiment was
-improving and laudable. The host, however, was inclined to be prosaic.
-
-‘Well,’ he answered, ‘one need not sniff at money, either, Lady
-Gundred. Where would one be without it?’
-
-‘Ah, where indeed?’ sighed Gundred; ‘and yet one never has enough. But
-one always likes to feel that there is something higher than money,
-Mr. Hoope-Arkwright--yes? Money can give you all these beautiful
-flowers, and this delightful house, but can money give happiness, Mr.
-Hoope-Arkwright?’
-
-‘Anyway, money can give us most of the things that make up happiness.’
-
-‘Not a tender, loving heart, Mr. Hoope-Arkwright. Not a childlike faith
-and simplicity,’ replied Gundred pathetically. ‘And without these
-what is life? Our only real happiness lies in doing what one can for
-others. And that, I always feel, is the most real and precious use of
-money--yes?’
-
-Mr. Hoope-Arkwright’s most characteristic activities had hitherto
-lain rather in doing others than in doing things for them. Also, he
-had very different views on the use of money from those so correctly
-enunciated by Gundred. So he preserved a discreet silence on the
-point, and listened unprotesting while she proceeded to enlarge on
-the more idyllically beautiful possibilities of life. He inserted ‘Ah
-yes,’ and ‘Ah no,’ at intervals into the interstices of her remarks,
-and cast about for an early opportunity of taking refuge with his
-other neighbour. Mr. Hoope-Arkwright did not really share his wife’s
-hospitable instincts, and he did not care two straws about Lady Gundred
-Darnley--or, for that matter, about Lady Anybody Anything. ‘To do the
-civil’ he saw to be his duty, but the moment that dinner was half
-over and his duty duly discharged, he meant to indemnify himself for
-his endurance of this dull, pretty woman and her boring platitudes by
-having a good time with his other partner, Sir Nigel Pope’s second
-wife, a young woman of a gay and kindred spirit. Accordingly, when the
-roast peacock had arrived, he seized his moment with great promptitude.
-
-‘Now, that is what I call quite poetic,’ he exclaimed, when Gundred had
-finished by saying that she thought a good, useful life was like some
-fragrant flower. ‘What do you think, Lady Pope?’
-
-Lady Pope made a prompt, flashing reply, and in another moment was
-engaged in a warm duologue with her host; Gundred was left out in
-the cold. She felt a certain annoyance at being dropped like this.
-Her self-complacence would not, of course, let her know that she
-had been dropped. She knew that she had been giving poor dear Mr.
-Hoope-Arkwright one of the pleasantest half-hours of his life--a little
-uplifting talk with a really refined woman--but still it was just a
-trifle tiresome that he should have so very keen a sense of duty.
-Evidently it was only the strictest sense of duty that had made him
-change partners so precisely at the halfway house of the meal; but
-Gundred would have been better pleased if he had not allowed his sense
-of duty to be quite so minute and intrusive. Very proper and right, of
-course, yet almost too scrupulously right and proper to be altogether
-tactful. Then it suddenly occurred to her that she in turn ought to
-talk to her horror on the other side. No, that she would not. Duty
-and right themselves should not compel her. She stared stonily before
-her, eating the peacock with wrathful and mincing precision. She would
-hear no preliminaries on her right. She gazed straight out across the
-table. Far off she saw her husband looking at her. Watchful interest
-and curiosity filled his expression as he glanced from her neighbour
-to herself. Perhaps he was wondering why she was not talking to him.
-Duty clearly commanded her to. But for once in her life correct,
-decorous Gundred would be deaf to the call which she usually heard
-and obeyed so sedulously. She nibbled at a pastry faggot, and kept a
-stern silence. Her neighbour made two attempts at conversation, but
-she answered so coldly as to nip them both in the bud. Then, abruptly,
-her attention was caught and riveted. The pink candle-shade in front
-of her was tilting to one side, threatening every moment to take fire.
-She looked anxiously round to her host for help, but he was by now
-far too deeply engaged with Lady Pope. Gundred gazed in annoyance at
-the paper shade. Surely it was beginning to smoulder? Ever since the
-catastrophe at Brakelond Gundred had disliked fire hardly less than the
-burned child, and now her untutored desires would have prompted her
-to get up and move away. But she had the martyr-like courage of her
-breeding and conventions. She sat there in suspense, smiling, calm, and
-altogether smooth to look at. However, there was no need, after all, to
-feel so helpless. She must inevitably appeal to the young man on her
-right. Speech had become a necessity, though always a distasteful one.
-Besides, after all, how absurd to let even so strong an instinct make
-one uncivil! Gundred fought down her reluctance bravely, and turned to
-her neighbour.
-
-‘Do you think,’ she asked firmly, though in a low, rather strained
-voice, ‘that you could lower that shade a little? Do you see, I believe
-it will catch fire in a moment--yes?’
-
-No answer followed her appeal. In astonishment she repeated it, and
-raised her eyes to her enemy’s face. She was astounded by what she saw
-there. She herself had been put out, even alarmed for a minute by the
-imminent fate of the candle-shade; but her neighbour’s gaze was fixed
-on the point of peril in a set white pallor of pure terror. Never in
-her life had she seen such an agony of dread on any human countenance.
-The young man, so beautiful, so lithe, so strong, was a monstrous
-coward. His face was rigid with fear, his eyes staring horribly. The
-sight was indecent in its nude revelation of weakness. In an instant
-all Gundred’s courage came back to her, and at the same moment her
-hatred for her neighbour was mitigated by a cold ferocity of contempt.
-He was still evil and hateful, but now he was contemptible also. He,
-a man, to be so terrified of a little burning candle-shade! At that
-same moment the shade tilted further, caught, and flamed. Gundred was
-conscious that her neighbour’s hands clenched upon his chair in a
-convulsive jerk of fright. Calmly, firmly she reached forth her arm,
-and crushed the blazing paper into a blackened flake. Servants came
-running to sweep up the ashes, and Mr. Hoope-Arkwright confounded
-himself in apologies for his neglect. Gundred showed herself perfectly
-amiable to her host, but on her other neighbour she would have no mercy.
-
-‘I saw it was going to catch,’ she said gently, ‘and I asked Mr.--this
-gentleman, to put it out. But he cannot have heard me, I think.’ She
-included both men in her remarks, and spoke in soft, far-reaching tones
-that could not escape their attention. Mr. Hoope-Arkwright made some
-polite rejoinder, gave her a few compliments, then went back to his
-dialogue with Lady Pope. Gundred, reinstated in her own self-esteem,
-turned to see what effect her cut had had upon the coward. Had he
-winced beneath the lash? Yes, evidently he had. Gundred was justly
-pleased. Heaven had made her the instrument of his well-merited
-punishment. And now he was trying to make excuses. She would listen, so
-as the better to slight them. She offered a coldly acquiescent air as
-he began to speak.
-
-‘I am sorry,’ he said in a slow, hesitating voice, hardly yet restored
-to equanimity. ‘I am afraid I heard you perfectly.’
-
-Gundred would see no courage in the confession. It was mere effrontery.
-‘Yes?’ she replied. There was a pause. ‘Yes?’ repeated Gundred cruelly,
-demanding an answer.
-
-The young man went on, speaking with difficulty. Gundred felt a keen
-joy in thus dragging the coward through a confession of his cowardice.
-To be a man and a coward--that was not punishment enough. He should
-also know what a woman thought of him.
-
-‘I ... well, the long and the short of it is, I can’t face fire,’
-continued the hesitating, painful voice.
-
-‘You would not make a good soldier--no?’ rejoined Gundred, with a
-pinched little smile.
-
-‘Oh, in that way I hope I should be all right. It is flame and smoke
-and burning that I cannot face. All my life I have had the fear. I
-suppose everyone has a secret horror in their lives. Fire is mine.
-I have suffered from it always. You don’t know what it is. It is
-something far worse than fear. I am not really afraid of the fire. I
-knew how ridiculously harmless that little burning shade would be, but
-it was the fire, the flame that made me--well, made me almost sick with
-a shrinking--a sort of supernatural repulsion that I cannot explain.’
-
-‘How very unfortunate!’ answered Gundred, deliberately cool and
-incredulous in tone. ‘It must be so very inconvenient--yes? People are
-sadly apt to misunderstand, don’t you find?’
-
-The young man, however, was a worm only in his tendency to turn.
-He flushed, seeing clearly the hard malice of her mood. ‘Very few,
-thank Heaven,’ he answered, ‘have ever had the opportunity of
-misunderstanding. You have been especially unlucky, and so have I.’
-
-‘Oh, don’t mention it,’ replied Gundred, politely demurring.
-
-‘I must, obviously,’ he went on. ‘You see, one bears one’s secret
-horror, whatever it may be, quite alone, telling nobody about it. But
-sometimes, once or twice in one’s life, some cursed accident drags it
-to the surface, and the horror becomes too bad to bear, and an outsider
-gets a glimpse of it. I have been unfortunate in the moment of my
-accident, and in the person who saw it, and there is no more to be
-said: that is all.’
-
-The young man, the coward, the unmentionable, seemed actually to be
-snubbing the brave, the serene, the faultless Lady Gundred Darnley.
-This must instantly be put a stop to.
-
-‘One does not like to believe that any man can have a fear too bad to
-bear--no?’ inquired Gundred, very gently and softly, as if asking for
-the sake of information.
-
-The victim had clearly had enough of this persecution. ‘After all,’ he
-said, ‘when one comes to think of it, I suppose you are yourself more
-or less responsible for my fears, if anyone is.’
-
-Gundred gave him a blank blue stare.
-
-‘I?’ she questioned in amazement, as if the very suggestion were an
-insolent piece of irreverence.
-
-The young man was not abashed, however, and proceeded to make his
-position good.
-
-‘You had a ghastly fire at Brakelond many years ago,’ he answered.
-‘Somebody was burnt--a cousin of yours, I think. Well, that fire was a
-great shock to my mother, and upset her dreadfully. I was the result,
-and I am the incarnation of her terrors.’
-
-Gundred hesitated in her enmity, and her manner changed.
-
-‘I beg your pardon,’ she said; ‘but I did not quite catch your name
-before dinner. But from what you have just said, are you--surely you
-must be----’
-
-‘I am Ivor Restormel,’ said the enemy. ‘I was born about twelve hours
-after your fire at Brakelond. So you cannot wonder that I carry the
-traces of it in my life, as it were. And so, you see, I was right: you
-are in some way responsible for my dread of fire. Wasn’t it a careless
-servant who set light to the old wooden wing of Brakelond? Well, if it
-had not been for that careless servant, I should not have had any dread
-or shrinking from fire.’
-
-‘Really,’ said Gundred, hardly heeding him, ‘this is wonderfully
-interesting. Then you are poor dear Mary Restormel’s son? I used to
-know your mother so well in the days before you were born. And then
-the place was sold, of course, to these Hoope-Arkwrights, and I never
-saw much of poor dear Mary again. But how very strange to meet you
-here--yes?’
-
-Gundred was always faithful to her traditions and her memories. The
-stranger came immediately into the hallowed circle of Gundred’s own
-class, and no longer suffered the condemnation of the outsider. In
-her heart of hearts, Gundred, perhaps, would never surmount her first
-mysterious sense of repulsion; but anger, disdain, reproof must at once
-be very much modified in the case of a person who now stood revealed
-as no longer an unhallowed, nameless member of the Hoope-Arkwright
-world, but as poor dear Mary Restormel’s son, with the right divine to
-Gundred’s sympathetic loyalty. Her strong and dutiful _esprit de corps_
-even prompted her to something resembling an apology.
-
-‘Of course I had no notion who you were,’ she said. ‘What you tell me
-is a perfect explanation. How very dreadful for you, though! But I
-quite understand your feeling--a simple instinct. Yet, of course, until
-one knew who you were, it did seem a little strange--yes?’
-
-Ivor Restormel had ceased to take much interest in the question.
-
-‘Oh, well,’ he said, ‘one is always meeting odd things in life. I only
-wish I had escaped that particular oddity. However, I do all I can to
-get the better of it, and in a way I have succeeded. I can face flame
-more than I could, though it still gives me the same supernatural
-creepy feeling. What I have suffered, too, in seeing women smoke is
-more than I can express.’
-
-‘Not at all a nice habit, I think,’ replied Gundred. ‘Somehow, it never
-seems appropriate or ladylike--no?’
-
-‘Oh, it is not _that_ I mind, but the possibilities are so horrible. A
-man wears rough tweeds and things. No spark could settle on them. But
-think of the innumerable frills and fluffs and films that a woman has
-floating all round her nowadays. A chance spark, and the dropping of a
-red cigarette-end, and--ah! it doesn’t bear thinking of.’
-
-He broke off, shuddering, and Gundred could see that at the bare notion
-of such a catastrophe the old white, shivering terror had laid hold
-of him. She had heard before of these strange, inherited passions,
-prenatal, ineradicable, but this was the first instance she had ever
-met with, and it filled her with interest now that she realized that
-its victim was a man of her own order, and as such, of course, not to
-be classed in the common rank of cowards. Her subconscious fear and
-dislike of Ivor Restormel still held their place in her mind, but they
-had retired to the background of her thought for the moment, leaving
-room for the curiosity that his identity and his idiosyncrasy aroused.
-
-‘So very dreadful,’ she murmured, ‘for your poor mother. I had not
-realized that dear Mary had been so much upset by that awful fire.
-You know, Mr. Restormel, I feel as if we were quite old friends, you
-and I. As you say, I cannot help feeling, after all, that we have got
-some of the responsibility to bear for the odd feelings that you have
-inherited. You have had quite a distressing legacy from those old
-wooden rooms at Brakelond--yes?’
-
-Laudably, deliberately friendly, Gundred raised her neat smile to meet
-Ivor Restormel’s gaze. He was looking at her full, with his deep grey
-eyes, true and honest, and altogether pleasant. Yet, as she met their
-glance, suddenly the instinctive hostility surged up into Gundred’s
-mind with redoubled strength. Fear and dislike seized her. She could
-not bear that glance, could not tolerate her neighbour’s presence. She
-turned away her head with a sensation of almost terrified hostility.
-What was this imperious repulsion that now held her--the first emotion
-that had ever threatened to pass the limits of her self-control? She
-could not understand it; never before had she felt anything even
-remotely resembling this blind, paradoxical dislike. Perhaps, years
-since, her bitter memories of Isabel had been tinged with the same
-unreasoning horror, but those far-off qualms had been faint and
-colourless compared with the vehement feeling now aroused in her by
-this beautiful and harmless stranger. She stiffened herself to show
-a firm front; self-contempt began to stir in her. Why, had it come
-to this, that she, Lady Gundred Darnley, the model of deportment and
-nice tact, now wished publicly to violate her own code, to be rude and
-inconsiderate to a person who on all counts, as being unobjectionable,
-a fellow-guest, and an equal, claimed her consideration and her
-courtesy? Such a lapse could never be permitted. She must fight down
-this folly, and be kind to Ivor Restormel through the rest of this
-nightmare meal. Then she would leave the house as soon as she could,
-and pray Heaven that she might never set eyes on him again.
-
-Ivor Restormel saw something strange in her manner, but took no heed.
-He did not in the least care what Lady Gundred Darnley might choose to
-think of him. He felt confident that he could in no way have offended
-her; further than that his interest in her attitude did not go. The
-secret dislikes of one’s acquaintances are incalculable. It is both
-hopeless and useless to take such things into one’s consideration. One
-can but watch one’s own behaviour to keep it clear of offence, and then
-leave the rest to Providence.
-
-‘Brakelond must be wonderfully beautiful,’ continued Ivor Restormel,
-amiably manufacturing conversation in the pause made by Gundred’s
-sudden lapse into silence, ‘judging by the view of it from here. I
-have never seen anything so fairy-like and splendid. I suppose you
-have rebuilt the burnt part long ago? All wood, you say it was? Yes, I
-have heard so much of that old wing that I feel as if I knew it well,
-every step and winding of it. Ugh! what a ghastly death-trap!’ Again he
-shuddered at his vivid recollections of a place he had never seen.
-
-Any criticism on her family or its possessions always roused Gundred to
-polite animosity. Now the feeling came to her rescue, and armed her
-against this dreadful young man who seemed so pleasant and innocuous.
-
-‘It was very interesting and wonderful,’ she answered reprovingly.
-‘We all loved it. But, of course, wood is always rather a peril--yes?
-Oak panelling is most delightful, but one cannot help feeling it a
-responsibility.’
-
-‘I hate the very idea of it,’ replied the other with fervour. ‘Why,
-whenever I think of those wooden rooms at Brakelond, I can smell that
-horrible cold, old, acrid smell of a burnt-out ruin--the horrible smell
-of charred wood, which gets into one’s nostrils and one’s throat.
-Sometimes in my life I have had to meet that smell, and whenever I get
-a whiff of it, I always have a vision of the wing at Brakelond, all
-wrecked and blackened and fallen in, haunted by the dreadful acid fumes
-of stale fire and smoke.’
-
-Gundred might have protested further against the quite uncalled-for
-vigour of Ivor Restormel’s memory, but at that moment Mrs.
-Hoope-Arkwright was making efforts to capture her attention from behind
-a bower of odontoglossums. She smiled her acquiescence, made some
-indifferent remark to her neighbour, and rose to head the departing
-procession. Thank Heaven, the ordeal was over, and she had come out of
-it safely, without any more loss of self-respect than was involved in
-the conception of so incalculable an instinct of hostility. Gundred
-felt her self-complacency returning. She knew that it does not matter
-what sentiments one may entertain, so long as one gives no sign of
-entertaining them. One’s private blemishes are one’s own private
-concern alone, provided that one does not let one’s clothes slip down
-and reveal them to the world.
-
-Her husband, meanwhile, at the other end of the table had proved
-but a tame and uninteresting companion to Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright. His
-attention throughout the meal had been fixed at every possible moment
-on Gundred’s right-hand partner. For whole long minutes he scanned that
-keen, handsome face. Where had he seen it before? Why did he find it so
-very much more attractive than even its own intrinsic beauty warranted?
-He stared at it, analyzed it, dissected its features. No, collectively
-and separately they were quite new to him. He grew more and more
-confident that he had never met the young fellow before; otherwise
-he must have remembered him. It was not a face to be forgotten. No,
-he had never seen it before. And yet the imperious conviction grew
-and deepened in him that that face was worn by no stranger--that he
-and the boy at the end of the table were in some mysterious way the
-oldest of intimate friends. Many years before he had felt the same
-passion of recognition when he at last understood what it was he felt
-for Isabel; now the same haunting sense of old acquaintance returned
-to him, and held him in a firm and inexorable grip. As soon as the
-women had all left the room, he carried round his glass, and settled
-himself decisively at Ivor Restormel’s side, thereby upsetting all the
-post-prandial arrangements, which had been meant to make him the prey
-of more interesting and conspicuous men among the guests.
-
-‘We met on the road this afternoon, I think,’ said Kingston; ‘or,
-rather, I passed you. You refused to accept a lift.’
-
-Ivor Restormel smiled back at him.
-
-‘It was awfully good of you,’ he replied. ‘I have never been offered a
-lift by a motor before. But, you see, I was so close to Restormel, it
-would hardly have been worth while.’
-
-‘Are you staying here?’ inquired Kingston, more and more strongly drawn
-to this new acquaintance.
-
-‘Yes; Jack Hoope-Arkwright is a great friend of mine. We are at Oxford
-together. And, besides, I belong here in a sort of way. The place used
-to be my people’s. I am Ivor Restormel.’
-
-The name instantly brought back to Kingston’s mind that deadly accident
-which had eventually been the secondary cause of Isabel’s death. He
-shuddered. But the link of recollection thus forged seemed to bind
-him more closely to young Restormel. The boy had an inexplicably
-strong fascination. He was pleasant, he was good-looking, he was well
-built; but there was something else. He was more attractive than all
-these good qualities could have made him. Kingston took an increasing
-pleasure in hearing him speak.
-
-‘I remember all about you,’ answered the older man. ‘My wife used to
-know your mother well. It was my wife you have been sitting next to.
-Perhaps she told you how she used to know your people.’
-
-Kingston knew Gundred’s devoted loyalty to all old friends and
-neighbours, and was anxious to impress Ivor Restormel’s identity upon
-her, foreseeing that it would incline her favourably to his sudden plan
-of seeing as much as possible of the young fellow.
-
-‘Yes, Lady Gundred soon recognised who I was. But I am afraid she was a
-little disappointed in me. I think I could see it.’
-
-Kingston was slightly alarmed. He knew Gundred’s prejudices of
-old--soft and mild as milk; hard, ineluctable as iron.
-
-‘Oh, nonsense!’ he replied, with more anxiety than the occasion
-appeared to warrant. ‘My wife is always a little cool and non-committal
-when she meets people for the first time. You will soon get accustomed
-to her.’
-
-It never occurred to him that he was apparently explaining his wife,
-more or less apologetically, to a total stranger. Ivor Restormel was
-puzzled. His beauty had already made him many sudden friends, had
-immensely helped him on his way through life, predisposing everyone in
-his favour; but it had never yet kindled such a fire of zeal as seemed
-to be developing in Mr. Darnley. He was inclined to be cautious in
-acceptance, and during the rest of the meal gave careful, quiet answers
-to Kingston’s advances. But Kingston had not the faintest interest
-in the boy’s beauty, nor, precisely, in the boy himself. It was the
-acquaintance, the old friend in him, that Kingston divined so keenly,
-and was eager to investigate more fully. The vehement attraction that
-he felt towards Ivor Restormel was something, so to speak, impersonal,
-something quite unconnected with the boy’s pleasant manners or
-agreeable face. It was an attraction towards something deep and hidden
-in the young fellow’s personality, and the attraction grew stronger and
-clearer with every minute of their dialogue.
-
-At last the time came to go into the drawing-room. The men rose, and
-drifted in knots towards the door. Kingston, as he went, retained
-possession of young Restormel, despite the evident anxiety of Mr.
-Hoope-Arkwright and Sir Nigel to have a word with Lady Gundred’s
-husband.
-
-‘Look here,’ he said. ‘How long are you staying with the
-Hoope-Arkwrights? Come over to Brakelond, will you? Come over
-to-morrow. I should like you to see the place.’
-
-Ivor Restormel accepted the unexpected invitation with thanks. Jack
-Hoope-Arkwright, following in their wake, wondered at the precipitate
-friendliness of Mr. Darnley. Such sudden hospitality was by no means
-in the traditions of Brakelond. A long preliminary purification
-was generally necessary before Lady Gundred considered her friends
-well tested enough to be invited to the Castle. And here was Ivor
-Restormel, after half an hour’s acquaintance, not only asked, but
-pressed to come, and to come as soon as possible. Times were changing
-indeed. It had taken the Hoope-Arkwrights three years to know the
-Darnleys, and eight to be dined with by them.
-
-The rest of the evening passed without event. Gundred, however,
-gradually grew displeased with her surroundings. At first she had duly
-been throned on the best sofa, and listened to in silent admiration
-while she pronounced on the weather, the decadence of decorum in the
-servants’ hall, and the proper management of cooks. But ere long Lady
-Pope, whom, in her mind, Gundred characterized as a pushing young
-person, had begun to cut in frivolously, irreverently, with jokes
-and stories. Gundred, who had a faint instinct that all wit was more
-or less vulgar, did her best to repress these interruptions; but her
-efforts were vain, and soon even her devout hostess was listening and
-laughing at Lady Pope’s sallies. Lady Gundred was left rather out of
-the picture, and her authoritative comments on cooks began to lose
-their hold on the general attention. Then when the men appeared it was
-even worse. Lady Pope became the centre of a court; even those who
-came to make their dutiful obeisance to Lady Gundred passed hastily
-on, after a few pallid words about the weather, to join the cheerful
-crowd round the younger woman. Then games were played, largely at Lady
-Pope’s instigation; and Gundred, who would have disliked any proposal
-that sprung from one whom she now felt herself compelled to regard,
-however disdainfully, as a rival, had, further, personal reasons
-for disapproving this development. For she sang; and she expected,
-accordingly, to be asked to sing. Her music was waiting outside to be
-fetched; it would have been obviously proper of Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright
-to press her most important guest to perform. But apparently everyone
-preferred the thoughtless gaiety of this unprofitable evening to
-hearing Lady Gundred discoursing Chaminade in her neat and well-drilled
-little flute of a voice, which, as her friends said in extenuation, was
-so truly wonderful for a woman of forty.
-
-Finally, to add to all these annoyances, she saw her husband neglecting
-everyone else in the room to talk to that young man for whom she
-had conceived such a repulsion. She would rather, even, have seen
-him spending the time in attendance on that forward Lady Pope. But
-Kingston was so distressingly friendly. Actuated by many collaborating
-motives, Gundred made haste to ask for her carriage, and showed every
-sign of imminent departure, much to the distress of hospitable Mrs.
-Hoope-Arkwright. Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright felt that the evening had not
-been altogether satisfactory since dinner. Lady Pope had evidently
-shone excessively; and the light of Lady Gundred Darnley had been
-thereby most unjustly dimmed. It grew plain that Lady Gundred was a
-little put out. Gaiety and dignity were hard to combine. Lady Pope
-offered the gaiety; Lady Gundred the dignity. And the two ambitions
-were irreconcilable; for it was already clear that Lady Gundred could
-not amuse--certainly not while Lady Pope was of the party. Grievously
-did Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright regret that she had infused the gay and
-sparkling element of the young woman into what she had meant to be
-the serene if soporific delights of a dinner made illustrious by the
-presence of March and Brakelond. But it was now too late for regret,
-and no entreaties could soften Lady Gundred’s determination to go.
-
-‘Thanks so much,’ said Gundred sweetly. ‘Such a delightful
-evening. We have enjoyed ourselves so much. But we must
-really think of the horses. Good-night, Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright.
-Good-night--good-night--good-night.’
-
-Scattering bows and farewell condescension like a queen, the Lady
-Gundred Darnley moved towards the hall. Kingston obediently followed
-her, and soon the door of the brougham was shut upon them, and they
-were off. Gundred smoothed out her flounce with a certain pettishness
-unusual to her calm temperament.
-
-‘A dreadful house,’ she said decisively, ‘so horribly rich and
-new--and the most vulgar and trying people. One wonders how even the
-Hoope-Arkwrights contrive to collect such a crew. Surely, Kingston, I
-could not have heard you asking one of them to come to Brakelond? Just
-as we were leaving. It must have been my fancy, of course.’ She was
-sitting very upright, rigid with rectitude, her pale lips compressed,
-her pale eyes gleaming scornfully. Kingston felt like a guilty child.
-
-‘Only young Restormel,’ he said. ‘You will like him, Gundred. I am sure
-you will like him immensely. He is one of the most attractive people I
-have ever met. After all, he is an old neighbour of yours, not like the
-Hoope-Arkwrights and the rest of their friends. I made him promise to
-come over to-morrow. And then, later on, he might come to stay with us
-for a bit. I should like you to see more of him, Gundred. He will be
-someone for you to help and befriend.’
-
-A very long silence, leaden and ominous, filled the brougham. Then
-Gundred spoke, in a bland, deliberate low voice.
-
-‘Really, Kingston,’ she said, ‘you are almost trying at times.’
-
-Her husband felt himself annihilated. This, from Gundred, was very
-heavy rebuke. He made no answer, and they drove on to Brakelond without
-another word.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII
-
-
-Gundred, however, was too good a wife to make useless difficulties. As
-her husband had invited this young man, this young man must clearly
-be endured. After all, the visit would soon be over, and she herself
-need not put in more than a bare appearance. To tell the truth, she
-was not quite easy as to her own attitude in the matter. It could not
-be altogether right to conceive such violent antipathies, and she was
-painfully surprised to find herself entertaining such a feeling. She
-told herself that there could be no smoke without fire, and that sooner
-or later her infallible female instinct would be found justified. But
-until it should be so found justified, she was far too conscientiously
-good a woman to be happy in the indulgence of an unreasonable hatred.
-Accordingly, she deliberately suppressed her annoyance, and made it her
-penance to receive Ivor Restormel on the morrow with her usual quiet
-grace. The effort brought its own reward; dislike him mysteriously,
-instinctively, she still did and always would, but there was no longer
-the uncomfortable vehemence about the feeling. She could tolerate him,
-though she could not make him welcome.
-
-Ivor Restormel walked over in the afternoon. Gundred gave him tea
-and then left him to her husband’s care, on the plea of a post to
-catch. Kingston took his guest into the new wing that had been built
-on the promontory after the fire, and proceeded to question him
-and talk to him more exhaustively than had been possible the night
-before amid the exigencies of a party, no matter how scandalously
-disregarded. There was no beginning about their friendship, it seemed
-to Kingston, no breaking of new ground. It was simply the picking up
-of a dropped thread where it had fallen. The feeling was strange and
-almost uncanny, the more so that it was evidently not shared by Ivor
-Restormel. He received his host’s overtures with diffidence, seemed
-ill at ease, at a loss to understand the warmth of his treatment. Mr.
-Darnley was nothing more to him than a chance acquaintance of the night
-before. As the dialogue went forward, too, the visitor’s uneasiness
-became more and more marked. His face took on a strange look of strain
-and anxiety; in his speech could be heard from time to time that note
-of abstraction which can be heard in a voice whose owner is trying
-hard to keep up a conversation, while his mind is fixed far away on
-the contemplation of unpleasant private matters. Kingston watched
-the expression of his guest’s eyes, the curious hunted fear that his
-whole manner began to suggest, and again experienced more strongly
-than ever the mysterious feeling of having seen that manner, that
-strained expression, somewhere before. His memory must be playing him
-the maddest tricks; for he could have sworn that this boy was well
-known to him in every detail of face and disposition; yet by now it was
-clearly proved--as clearly proved, at least, as anything in this world
-could ever be--that the two had never met, and never even set eyes on
-each other before. But Kingston still hoped against hope that a chance
-discovery in the dialogue might reveal some hint or glimpse of a former
-meeting, however brief, partial, trifling. Thus, and thus alone, could
-his instinct be justified.
-
-But, as the conversation went forward, the visitor’s uneasiness grew
-keener and more unsettling. At last it could no longer be controlled.
-
-‘I should awfully like to see some more of the Castle,’ he said. ‘You
-said something last night about showing me the pictures.’
-
-But the boy’s evident wish to move was too interesting to be gratified.
-Kingston saw it, could not understand it, meant to understand it.
-
-‘Oh, there will be heaps of time,’ he replied. ‘You must come over
-again some afternoon. But it takes at least a day to see the Castle
-thoroughly. We may just as well stay here peacefully. Really, these are
-the most comfortable rooms in the whole building, although they are
-quite modern.’
-
-‘Modern, are they?’ answered young Restormel. It was a silly answer,
-and betrayed the inattention of his mind. For the rooms were too
-obviously modern for any comment on the fact to be other than fatuous.
-
-‘Yes, they were only built about--yes, twenty years ago.’
-
-Ivor Restormel leapt to his feet. His anxiety culminated, seemed
-mysteriously confirmed. His eyes were filled with a horror he was
-trying to conceal. ‘Surely,’ he stammered, ‘these are not the rooms
-that were restored after the----’
-
-‘After the fire? Yes. This was where the old wing stood.’
-
-‘I thought so; I knew they must be,’ replied Ivor Restormel with forced
-calm. ‘And they have not got rid of the smell yet. I noticed it as soon
-as I got inside.’
-
-‘The smell! What smell?’ asked his host, amused by this odd notion of
-his visitor’s, and sniffing about for the aroma of dead rats.
-
-‘The smell of fire,’ said Ivor Restormel, speaking in a low voice, as
-of a thing too dreadful to be talked of in normal tones. ‘The whole
-place is full of the smell of fire. Don’t you notice it, Mr. Darnley?
-I suppose nothing can be on fire now? No; it is the stale old smell of
-a fire that has been out for a long time--the sharp, beastly smell of
-charred wood and burnt stone. I know it so well.’ He shivered against
-his will.
-
-Kingston was startled at this strange new development. He had heard
-nothing of Ivor Restormel’s hidden horror. Gundred had disliked the
-whole subject too much to tattle about it. Kingston was astounded
-at the sudden fantastic anxiety of his guest, the perturbation of
-his manners, his evident discomposure. So vivid was Ivor Restormel’s
-apprehension that it even impressed itself on Kingston. The host
-inhaled the air sharply. There was not the faintest suggestion of fire
-or smoke. The room was sleepily fragrant with potpourri from the old
-perforated jade censer on the corner table. Otherwise there was nothing
-in the air. And yet it was evident that Ivor Restormel was dodging
-some secret terror that was almost on the point of breaking covert and
-declaring itself.
-
-‘You have got a most wonderful imagination,’ said Kingston at last.
-‘There is no smell of fire here. On my word, there isn’t. There
-couldn’t be. The fire was put out twenty years ago, hang it all! The
-smell of it could not very well be hanging about here still.’
-
-‘No; I suppose not,’ answered the other, obviously quite unconvinced.
-
-Then, lamely, hesitatingly, he explained the reasons why the memories
-of the catastrophe at Brakelond had become so closely involved with his
-own life, and what a troublesome legacy it had left him through the
-shock that his mother had suffered. Kingston was more and more stirred.
-
-‘I never heard anything more extraordinary,’ he replied. ‘Suggestion,
-I suppose it must be. And this room makes you feel uncomfortable even
-now, I can see, and you manage to smell fire where there has been no
-fire for twenty years. And yet you have no more recollections?’
-
-‘Recollections? I don’t quite know what there could be for me to
-recollect.’
-
-‘Well, to tell you the truth, when I first saw you on the road, I had
-a vague and yet a very strong feeling that you and I have met before,
-and known each other quite well. I imagine that was all a mistake? See
-if you can’t remember any previous meeting between us, though. It would
-be interesting if you could, for my instinct was quite extraordinarily
-clear on the point, though my memory seems to say accurately and
-definitely that I had never seen your face till I passed you in the car
-yesterday afternoon.’
-
-Ivor Restormel shook his head positively, and made haste to answer in
-the negative. The question did not interest him in the least. The one
-feeling of which he was conscious was his tyrannous need of getting
-away from those serene and pleasant modern rooms, which, to his excited
-fancy, seemed full of horrid ghosts.
-
-‘No,’ he said. ‘I am pretty well certain we can never have met
-before. I was brought up abroad, you see, by my mother, after they
-sold Restormel. And the last two or three years I have been living
-at Oxford. I have not been to London or anywhere where we could have
-met. No--no.... I say, I am a most awful idiot to-day. I can’t imagine
-what has come over me,’ he cried abruptly. ‘But this jolly room of
-yours--well, it feels to me horribly uncanny. You say there is no fire,
-and of course there isn’t; yet the smell is in my nostrils and my
-throat all the time, choking and stifling me. Did you ever hear such
-rot? Do you mind if we go out in the garden or somewhere? I’m not often
-taken like this, please believe me. I have never felt anything like
-this in my life. I told you how I hate and dread fire, though I have
-never suffered from it; but nothing has ever given me such an awful
-impression of fire as I feel here to-day.’
-
-He had been standing ever since he rose from his chair, or walking
-uneasily from end to end of the room. Now he stood in front of his
-host, gazing at him with eyes which, for all his tongue’s pretence at
-ease, were filled with a haunting dread. Kingston was deeply moved by
-the spectacle of this fighting terror before him. The terror moved
-his pity, the courage of its victim moved his admiration. And, behind
-everything else lay the curiosity that this manifestation woke in him.
-But he could no longer disregard his visitor’s eagerness to be gone
-elsewhere. He rose from the window-seat.
-
-‘I am sorry,’ he said. ‘I cannot understand it. Yes, let us go, if you
-wish. We might take a turn in the garden. I would not have brought you
-in here if I had had the slightest idea that you feel like this. But
-I never could have believed that such a stretch of imagination was
-possible.’ Kingston broke off, studying the controlled fear in the
-young man’s face. Then he abruptly began again. ‘Look here,’ he said,
-‘do tell me exactly what it is you see and feel that gets on your
-nerves so. I cannot understand it.’
-
-Ivor Restormel glanced round the room. Under Gundred’s supervision it
-had been rebuilt in a cool and placid modern style. Everything in it
-was pretty, graceful, harmonious. The walls were panelled in white;
-flowers were standing about in tall blue glasses. The big windows
-admitted shafts of soft afternoon light through their drawn white
-blinds, and the whole impression was one of fragrant, comfortable peace.
-
-But Ivor Restormel’s eyes saw something very different.
-
-After a pause he answered, huskily, in broken, difficult tones:
-
-‘You will think me more of an ass than you do already,’ he replied.
-‘I suppose it must be my mother’s stories that account for it. But,
-besides the awful smell of burning here, I seem to see a horrible
-wreckage of charred ruins. Oh, I can see these walls and all the jolly
-decorations. And yet, somehow, when I look again they are not there any
-longer. There is only the shell of some other building, something all
-fallen in and blistered and blackened with fire. Great heaps of ashes
-and bleached rubbish are piled high between what is left of the walls.
-The whole place is choking with the stale fumes of smoke. And the rooms
-are open to the grey sky far overhead; and grey drifts of rain come
-dashing in from time to time on the smouldering masses.’
-
-Kingston watched his visitor’s face with an amazement that bereft him
-of words.
-
-‘By God!’ he said slowly, wondering where his thoughts would lead him
-in the next few minutes. ‘By God! you describe it exactly as if you had
-been here twenty years ago.’
-
-Ivor Restormel shook his head fiercely, as if trying to shake off some
-horrid, persistent memory.
-
-‘I feel as if I had,’ he replied suddenly. ‘I feel just as if I had
-been here twenty years ago, worse luck. The moment I came into the room
-I saw it all. I felt--oh, well, I felt that I must have been here in
-the ruins ever so long ago, and had the worst time here that anyone
-ever had--as if I had been tied by the leg here, somehow, and pinned
-down in damnable terror and pain.’
-
-‘Come along out of it,’ said Kingston quietly, after a pause. He
-dared not trust himself to say more. An idea had been born in his
-brain--born, or called once more to life?--an idea so wild, so
-fantastic, that he hardly dared to entertain it. And yet, in the
-depths of his heart, he knew that it was the truth. In silence he led
-the way towards the Castle, while his visitor tried to impress upon his
-unheeding ears a dozen apologies for the gross and idiotic folly of
-which his nerves had made him guilty.
-
-As soon as he was out of the fateful room all his self-possession
-seemed to have returned, and he could not account for the sudden
-vertigo of terror that had haunted him there. What had come over him
-he could not imagine. Mr. Darnley must certainly think him the most
-confounded idiot. What must Mr. Darnley think of anyone who could
-let himself be made such a rude, mannerless idiot of by a sort of
-hysterical schoolgirl qualm? The whole thing was too asinine for words.
-He had no excuse to make.
-
-And all the time Mr. Darnley said nothing, heard nothing of his guest’s
-protestations. This beautiful nervous boy had no interest for Kingston
-Darnley; he did not care what he said or felt or looked like. But
-the terror that haunted Ivor Restormel was not his; the mysterious
-attraction that filled him was not his own. Somewhere, deep down in
-his being, lived Something that had felt that terror, Something that
-exercised that attraction over Kingston, Something that called to
-Kingston as an old friend. And that Something, Kingston knew it, heard
-it calling to him imperiously out of the eternal past. It was the
-Something that had once carried the name and shape of Isabel. There was
-no mistaking it. Now at last Kingston understood what it was that had
-gripped him yesterday on the road, what inexplicable summons of old
-friendship. The dead had come back to him after many years. But clothed
-in alien flesh, forming part of a new personality, shut off from
-recognition by the barriers of the body. For in this boy lived only
-the one fragmentary recollection of the final catastrophe. Nothing
-in Kingston’s soul, no call of ancient kinship, no appeal to bygone
-pledges, could penetrate to the ears of that secret self. The dead had
-come back, known to him, but incapable of knowing him again. How could
-he wake memory in that changed thing which had returned, at once the
-same, and yet so different, in its freedom from that bond which once
-had made them one, and now, still as strong as ever in the hold it had
-over himself, had broken and fallen away for ever from the other soul
-it had gripped? Kingston looked at his visitor with a feeling that drew
-near to hatred. This stranger held the thing he still loved. The body
-and the shape of it was an irrelevant, a maddening accident; it was
-the secret thing that Kingston called to, the secret thing that was
-prevented from hearing by this new personality in which it had clothed
-itself. Kingston felt a sharp grudge against Ivor Restormel, his body,
-his brain, his beauty. That body, that brain, that beauty made the
-locked casket that imprisoned the living dead. And yet, inasmuch as
-Ivor Restormel was the shrine of that lost passion, he was, on the
-other hand, ineffably precious and sacred. He could not be let go.
-The boy himself was less than nothing; but what he held was more than
-everything.
-
-Ivor Restormel thought his host justifiably offended, and tried to
-mitigate the effect of his own silly rudeness. But his pleasant chatter
-fell on unheeding ears, and he began to think that he had alienated Mr.
-Darnley beyond reconciliation. And no wonder. Who could be expected to
-put up with a puling idiot like that? Ivor Restormel mentally kicked
-himself, and felt that he would gladly have vindicated his character by
-returning into those haunted rooms. Without having any special wish to
-please either of the Darnleys, he was one of those people who always
-like to be popular, and grow faintly unhappy when they fail to make a
-favourable impression. He did all he could to mollify his host, and was
-distressed, though not surprised, to find all his efforts fall flat.
-In ordinary circumstances he would not have minded so much; but now he
-felt that he really owed Mr. Darnley some extra pleasantness, if only
-to make up for having just made so egregious an ass of himself. He
-tried his level best to set matters right; but for a long time he got
-no answer--or at most an absent-minded monosyllable. Kingston was not
-yet equal to conversing with this tiresome young interloper who had
-come between himself and the dead, while, at the same time, revealing
-at last to him the return of the lost. They walked in silence up and
-down the garden together, while Gundred watched them from an upper
-window, disliking the visitor as much as ever, and wondering when in
-the world he would begin to think about going.
-
-‘Wanted to see the pictures, didn’t you?’ said Kingston abruptly at
-last, cutting, regardless, into something that the other was saying.
-
-Ivor Restormel felt more and more out of place. Evidently he would do
-well to say good-bye. However, he could not escape from this civility
-of his host, however perfunctory. So he followed Kingston as he
-strode into the Castle, paying no attention to the boy at his heels.
-Gradually Kingston was beginning to recover his composure and face the
-inevitable. This wonderful secret certainty of his must be cherished
-and acted on, though already he began to taste something of the pain
-that had been foretold him, from incessant yearning knowledge of a
-thing that could not recognise him in turn, and could never recognise
-him again. The door between them was of locked iron--a vain agony to
-beat against. And yet it was not an agony that he could spare himself,
-for, though the door was of locked iron for ever, yet behind it dwelt
-the thing he had sought for so long. He saw now the irony of his fate.
-But nothing could divert its course. Ivor Restormel found his host
-growing calmer and more courteous again. Soon he was even cordial,
-and the tension of the situation seemed at an end. The two men passed
-through the picture-gallery, giving a share of attention to every
-picture, though each, in reality, was busy with his own thoughts, Ivor
-feeling the satisfaction of successful effort, and Kingston foreboding
-the anguish of an effort that could never be successful. At last they
-had gone the length of the gallery, and stood before the old panel of
-Queen Isabel.
-
-‘Here is the She-wolf,’ said Kingston pleasantly. ‘Don’t you think she
-looks her name? Isabel of France and England.’
-
-The younger man laughed uneasily.
-
-‘Yes,’ he answered. ‘An evil lady, I suppose? It is curious what a
-horror I have of the very name. Isabel--it seems to stand to me for
-everything I hate most in the world, fire included. I must have some
-beastly memory somewhere connected with the name of Isabel, but I
-cannot lay my hands upon it.’
-
-The little artless admission roused Kingston to the highest point of
-excitement. He must penetrate to the secret haunt of that soul which
-had such clear flashes of recognition. The task _must_ not be hopeless.
-He turned almost savagely upon his guest.
-
-‘Restormel,’ he said, ‘what do you mean by that? For God’s sake,
-think--think hard, and tell me what you mean by that. Think, man,
-think.’
-
-The vehemence of his attack, however, had no effect upon the younger
-man. Kingston had hoped that by its sheer sudden intensity it must
-inevitably strike a chord of memory, must inevitably rouse up the
-sleeping soul with its cry of eagerness. But it failed--failed
-utterly, and his mood fell back baffled.
-
-‘I’d tell you if I could,’ protested Ivor. ‘But, upon my soul, I can’t.
-It is just another of my idiotic crazes. I wish I had not told you now.
-It only makes one seem more of an ass than one did before. Anyhow, I
-think I must be getting back to Restormel, Mr. Darnley. Thanks so much
-for letting me come over. I have awfully enjoyed seeing the Castle.
-Will you say good-bye for me to Lady Gundred?’
-
-‘Look here,’ said Kingston, suddenly kindled to anxiety by this threat
-of departure--‘look here. What are you going to do, Restormel, when you
-leave the Hoope-Arkwrights? I mean, what are your plans in life?’
-
-‘Mine? Oh, well, I hardly know. I have got to make some money somehow.
-There isn’t a penny-piece for us to live on. I shall have to be a
-clerk, or something of the kind, I imagine. My mother sent me to Oxford
-because she wanted me to make my living by teaching. But it does not
-seem that there is much chance of that nowadays. The world swarms with
-tutors and masters.’
-
-Kingston saw his chance. It was unthinkable that this recovered joy of
-his life should be allowed to pass away again immediately, leaving him
-in the darkness that he had endured for twenty years. He could not bear
-the thought of parting with Ivor Restormel. The very notion was a pain.
-
-‘But look here,’ he said abruptly, ‘why not come to us and be my
-secretary, and do tutor to my son Jim, perhaps, in the holidays? I am
-sure we should all get on capitally together, and, honestly, I don’t
-think that you could easily pick up anything much better. And we’d do
-our best for you. What do you say?’
-
-Ivor, confounded at this sudden proposition, the last thing that
-he had expected after his behaviour of that afternoon, lost himself
-in thanks and self-depreciation. Kingston would hear of no such
-hesitations.
-
-‘We might just as well settle it now,’ he said. ‘There’s nothing to
-consider much, or think over--that is, if you really care to try this
-kind of work. You know about us, and we know about you; and, so far as
-we are concerned, I don’t see that anything could possibly have fallen
-out more conveniently.’
-
-‘But I--do you think I should be able to do what you want?’ asked Ivor
-Restormel. ‘Remember, please, I have never attempted anything of the
-sort before. You may not find me what you like, after all.’
-
-‘One knows that sort of thing as well at the end of five minutes, very
-often, as at the end of five years. I am quite certain that you are
-exactly the sort of fellow we want. I knew it the first moment we met.
-So don’t make any more difficulties or apologies, but just say that you
-will come to us.’
-
-‘But of course, if you really think--well, I shall be delighted, of
-course.’
-
-‘That’s right. And there’s no particular reason for putting things
-off, is there? So come to us as soon as you can. To-morrow, or the day
-after. You won’t want to stay much longer with those Hoope-Arkwright
-people. And I should like you to get accustomed to us and the place
-before we go off to my place in Yorkshire and our son Jim comes home.’
-
-And so, after a few more faint demurrings, Ivor Restormel, bewildered
-and dazed by the rapid development of events, found himself pledged
-to take up his residence at Brakelond with the least possible delay.
-Matters being thus settled to Kingston’s satisfaction, he allowed his
-visitor to depart, and then began to brace himself to the task of
-breaking his latest plan to Gundred.
-
-The good wife neither raves nor flouts. But, if she be good enough,
-she has the power of being quite wonderfully disagreeable in a mild
-and dutiful manner. Gundred had never countered Kingston with any
-ill-bred vehemence, but by now he knew that on occasions she could don
-a pious resignation inexpressibly hard to bear. Some such display, he
-was afraid, might greet his announcement, for, to his experienced eye,
-it was already plain that she did not approve of Ivor Restormel. Her
-sweetness to him had had a certain glacial tone which Kingston well
-knew. He anticipated that she might make difficulties.
-
-But events were moving too rapidly for Gundred’s orderly habit of mind.
-She was too much taken aback when she heard the arrangement that her
-husband had made to offer any coherent or valid opposition. A vague
-passion of wrath possessed her, and her anger lost half its efficacy
-with all its usual crushing calm. For Gundred, the imperturbably
-gentle and correct, so far forgot herself as to combat Kingston’s
-plan with violent obloquy. Never before had he seen her unreasonable,
-or hysterically bellicose; and the unusual spectacle, so far from
-compelling his sympathy, only hardened his decision by its contrast
-with her usual well-regulated temper. Had a glimpse of the past been
-vouchsafed to him, after all these years, that he should now forego the
-agonizing joy of it, simply because his wife chose to abandon herself
-to a groundless antipathy against a young man, a perfect stranger,
-in whom she, of all people, could certainly not discern that inmost
-inhabitant whose presence gave him so strong a claim on Kingston? No,
-her foolishness justified him in disregarding her opposition.
-
-As for Gundred, she lost her head, lost it completely, in the complete
-surprise that overwhelmed her. Imagining that a meal or so at Brakelond
-would mark the extent of her husband’s ridiculous fancy for the boy
-against whom her instinct so urgently warned her, she had been content
-to allow matters their course, considering resistance unnecessary. And
-now, while she acquiesced, matters had suddenly grown to such a pitch
-that resistance was no longer possible. The situation had passed beyond
-her control. At first she could hardly believe that Kingston really
-meant to disregard her hostility. Hitherto, through all their married
-life, husband and wife had never seriously clashed. A quiet tolerance
-towards each other’s plans had marked their relations. In fact, neither
-had really been sufficiently excited over the other’s actions ever
-to make a fuss. They trusted each other, and lived in the amity of
-confident indifference. Ideal as their union had been, though, it had
-been the union of two parts, not fused, but cemented; now at last,
-after twenty years, surged up the hot water of opposition, and in the
-moment of trial the cement revealed itself by melting. At a touch the
-two lives fell apart, and were separate once more. The revelation was a
-shock to Gundred.
-
-‘Kingston,’ she cried, ‘I tell you, I distrust that young man. I cannot
-think what you mean by proposing to have him in the house. The very
-moment I set eyes on him I felt that there was something wrong about
-him. A woman’s instinct is never mistaken, Kingston.’
-
-‘Oh, don’t be so ridiculous, Gundred,’ answered her husband. ‘Have you
-anything definite to say? If so, say it, by all means, and we’ll think
-no more of the matter. But if you have not, don’t dishonour yourself by
-making scenes and abusing a young fellow of whom you know nothing but
-what is perfectly good.’
-
-‘And Jim?’ replied Gundred, taken at a disadvantage, and stripped in
-an instant of the lovely calm that usually clothed her like a Paquin
-frock--‘my Jim? Am I to see my only child, Kingston, handed over to
-the company of a man against whom I have the very strongest feelings
-of fear and horror? Kingston, I tell you I look on that young man with
-positive fear and horror. Have I ever said anything like this before
-about anyone else? Do you think I am mad enough and unchristian enough
-to take prejudices like this without a reason? But it is stronger than
-I am, this feeling. It is so strong that I feel it would be wicked to
-disregard it. It is Heaven’s warning to us all. I know that it speaks
-the truth, Kingston; don’t be so obstinate.’
-
-Knowing in his secret heart what secret tie it was that bound him to
-the occupant of Ivor Restormel’s personality, Kingston could not but
-feel it strange and impressive that Gundred should have conceived so
-violent and instinctive animosity against the young fellow. Could it
-be a blind feeling of jealousy, recrudescent from the past? Anyhow,
-it was the very devil and all of an inconvenience. And, as no sort
-of wrong was meditated to Gundred, as no sort of wrong was possible,
-Kingston saw clearly that her unreasonableness not only allowed him,
-but enjoined him, in her own interests, to take a firm way of dealing
-with these hysterical passions. Had she been cool and staid as usual,
-he would have found the situation much more difficult to cope with; as
-it was, her dishevelled zeal gave him the advantage, and enabled him to
-assume the high position of one who has right and reason on his side.
-
-‘Hang it all, Gundred,’ he protested. ‘What a piece of work to make
-about nothing! One would have thought you would have been only too
-glad to help an old neighbour’s son. You are generally so keen to do
-what you can for people. Do try and get over these absurd fancies.
-Do you suppose I am not just as anxious as you are that Jim shall be
-kept out of undesirable hands? Come, you don’t think me a fool, I hope?
-You don’t imagine that I should pick out a scoundrel for a whim? I
-tell you, I like this young fellow; I like him more than I can say. He
-attracts me strongly; I am sure we shall find him a great addition.’
-
-Gundred looked up at him with righteous wrath in her eyes. ‘He must
-have bewitched you,’ she said, devoutly and sincerely. ‘The Forces of
-Evil sometimes have the most awful power. Oh, Kingston, listen to me.
-Be wise, and repent in time. Oh, I never thought it would come to this.
-Why, _why_ did we ever dine with those dreadful people?’
-
-‘Gundred, you are either hysterical or medieval. And in either case,
-really one cannot argue with you. I have never seen you like this
-before. Poor boy! can you soberly think him an emissary of the devil?’
-Kingston laughed.
-
-But Gundred, among many other antiquated notions in which she took
-pride, retained a most steadfast belief in the bodily existence of
-Satan. To be old-fashioned in manners, mind, morals--in everything
-but clothes--was her especial glory. In London she claimed to be
-conspicuous by her old-world excellencies. When she met, or heard--for
-they did not frequent her set--of other Dukes’ wives and daughters
-who were frivolous and freethinking and modern, Gundred took pride in
-asserting the obvious fact that she was not as they, that she continued
-to give a rare and beautiful example of pristine decorum to her order.
-Her friends might find the spectacle dull, but they could never deny
-that it was edifying. And among the old-fashioned adornments with
-which she persisted in decking her habit of mind, her belief in the
-Powers of evil, of witchcraft and possession, were given not the least
-important place. She described herself complacently as an old-fashioned
-Christian, and never passed a palmist’s placard in Bond Street without
-feeling that the law ought to have more scruples about allowing a witch
-to live. Now, accordingly, she primmed her lips fiercely at Kingston’s
-scepticism.
-
-‘All I know is,’ she answered, ‘that these warnings are sent us for our
-good, and that the Powers of Evil are for ever round us, seeking whom
-they may devour. Kingston, will you, or will you not, pay attention to
-what I say?’
-
-By this time her truculent attitude had dissipated her husband’s last
-lingering scruples. Looked at very minutely, very casuistically,
-perhaps it was not perfectly fair to force upon Gundred someone
-she disliked, simply because he himself desired to keep watch and
-communion with the precious personality that dwelt within the object
-of her hostility, and probably was the unknown cause of it. But
-nothing of all this could Gundred possibly know, for one thing; and,
-for another, her attitude had become so grotesquely exaggerated and
-defiant that no husband of any sense or spirit could be justified in
-giving way to it. Why, the situation was preposterous and transpontine
-to an intolerable degree. His own sudden fantastic instinct had been
-strange and grotesque enough, in all conscience; but Gundred’s fury of
-opposition lent yet a further touch of grotesqueness which removed the
-whole episode into the domain of mystical melodrama. Why, they might be
-living in a novel of Lytton or Mortimer Collins, instead of in a very
-comfortable and orderly present into which had suddenly flashed a gleam
-of romance out of an equally comfortable and orderly past. Kingston
-would not recognise his own instinct as anything abnormal, and was bent
-on keeping all suggestion of the abnormal out of his human relations.
-The prenatal memory, he knew, was not only a fact, but a fact--at any
-rate, in the East, where memory and its training are better understood
-than over here--of no uncommon occurrence. There was nothing strange
-in the fact that in this boy of twenty, there should still be lurking
-some fragmentary elements of the woman whose martyrdom and courage
-he reincarnated. Kingston would not decorate the situation with any
-romantic glamour; it was a plain, indisputable occurrence, and his
-whole life should insist on treating it as a matter of course. In his
-violent resolve to keep the young fellow close at hand there was no
-sentiment, no idiotic feeling of attachment for the young man himself,
-or any objectionable nonsense of that kind. The young fellow was of no
-account at all. Kingston’s wish to secure his continued presence must
-be put down simply prosaically, solely, to his recognition of the fact
-that in the boy’s personality the lost Isabel sometimes spoke again,
-and therefore his company was doubly and trebly desirable; but only for
-what it conveyed, not in the least for what it was. And, all this being
-so, Kingston was the more irritated by the instinctive knowledge of the
-truth that Gundred’s absurd behaviour seemed to hint at, the more bent
-on resenting it, ignoring it, and, by determination in his own way,
-crushing out the signs of resistance that she was so vehemently showing.
-
-‘Oh, let’s have no more of this, Gundred,’ he exclaimed. ‘You do not
-know what you are saying. I am exceedingly sorry to annoy you, but you
-know you would despise yourself and me if I gave way to such ridiculous
-nightmares. You will see things quite differently to-morrow. Do try and
-look at the matter more sensibly.’
-
-‘Man sends sense,’ cried Gundred, ‘and God sends instincts. Listen to
-God, Kingston, or you will be sorry for it.’
-
-He shrugged his shoulders cruelly.
-
-‘There is no coping with religious exaltation,’ he answered coldly,
-with a weary feeling that this woman at his side was quite alien to him
-in all her thoughts and ways.
-
-Gundred rose. ‘If that is what you call it,’ she replied, with more of
-her habitual dignity, ‘I think there is no more to be said.’
-
-‘I agree with you. There is nothing more to be said.’
-
-‘And this young man, Ivor Restormel, he is to come here in a day or
-two?’
-
-‘Yes,’ answered Kingston. ‘I settled it all up with him this afternoon.’
-
-‘And you absolutely refuse to give me what I ask for?’ went on Gundred,
-returning now, after the heat of the conflict, to the impressive calm
-of her usual manner. She was preparing a new attack.
-
-‘My dear Gundred,’ answered her husband, more gently now that he saw
-her more amenable, and therefore more worthy of consideration, ‘I will
-gladly spend the rest of my life doing what you wish, as long as you
-ask me for things I can in decency do.’
-
-‘Ah,’ replied Gundred, ‘that is what people always say. They will do
-everything in the world to please one, except the only thing one asks
-them for. _That_ is never reasonable or right.’
-
-‘Well, it certainly was not in this case, now, was it,
-Gundred--honestly, now, was it? You asked me to throw this wretched
-young man over, to break my promise to him, to upset all his plans, to
-cast him adrift again after I had offered him our help. And why? All
-simply because you had been bored at the Hoope-Arkwrights’ tedious
-dinner, and eaten something which disagreed with you, and made you look
-on all the world with a bilious, peevish eye, and on your luckless
-dinner-neighbour in particular. For that is what it all comes to, you
-know; that is what your wonderful edifice of instincts and suspicions
-and righteous qualms is founded on.’
-
-‘Yes; you may sneer,’ answered Gundred coolly, regaining her supremacy
-with her self-control. ‘It is always very easy to sneer. Well, I see
-that you must have your way; you will not listen to me. Somehow, I feel
-that there is something in the boy that stands between us--something
-that has been between us, somehow, for a long time, though we did not
-know it, and has now come to life again, or wakened up and set to work
-moving us apart. That may be my fancy, perhaps. I know I am upset. I
-am surprised and shocked. I expected better, happier things of you,
-Kingston. But this I will say, that if you won’t listen to what you
-call my foolish instincts, you will be very sorry for it some day. God
-will certainly punish you for disregarding the clear message that He
-sent you through me. And this obstinacy of yours will bring its own
-penalty in time. I know it. I know what you are doing is altogether
-wrong. And, as your wife, I shall put up with it. But day and night I
-shall pray God to remove this dreadful thing from our home. I shall
-pray that something may open your eyes.’
-
-Kingston smiled uneasily, to disguise the impression that her appeal
-was making on his mood. ‘My dear Gundred,’ he said. ‘Pray by all means.
-The prayers of a good woman can never bring harm or pain.’
-
-‘Not even if you love the harm? Not even if you are wedded to the
-harm?’ asked Gundred. ‘Perhaps they might divorce you from the harm,
-and then that separation might be painful.’
-
-‘Oh, don’t talk as if you meant to put poison in poor Ivor Restormel’s
-soup,’ cried Kingston, to relieve the tension of the situation. He did
-not, however, in his own conscience feel altogether easy. The more bent
-was he, therefore, on laughing down his wife’s denunciations.
-
-‘God chooses His own instruments for His own purposes,’ answered
-Gundred earnestly. Then she rose, her demeanour filled with tranquil
-decision, with a stern majesty of protest that stirred again a twinge
-of remorse in her husband’s heart. Was it she that was foolish, or was
-it he that was selfish? After all, no sort of harm was planned against
-her, no disloyalty of any kind, no cooling of affection. If here and
-there a boy’s chance words contained the spirit of a long-dead woman,
-well, what was that to Gundred--especially as she could never know it?
-And his indulgence in the secret pleasure of those words could give no
-reasonable pain to her. And yet, so long as they did give her pain, did
-it very much matter whether the pain were reasonable or not, as far as
-the inflictor’s innocence or guilt was concerned? For what pain in the
-world is reasonable, if one looks far into the causes and the future
-of things? Kingston made haste to conclude that his actions could
-not possibly be expected to have reference to any silly feelings of
-Gundred’s that might engender pain in her, as the result of their own
-incalculable developments. Perhaps he made himself too many excuses,
-defended himself too vehemently, was in too great haste to declare
-himself convinced by his own arguments. He accepted Gundred’s last
-words without any symptom of yielding.
-
-And she who, up to the last moment, had never thought that her big guns
-could be fired without effect, was left helpless, defeated, plunged in
-the bathos of the situation.
-
-‘Good-night,’ she said, quietly disguising the black bruise that her
-heart had sustained.
-
-Had Kingston suspected it, he might, perhaps, have softened. But
-Gundred by now was once more the cool, self-righteous little faultless
-person he had always known. Her serene rectitude of voice and manner
-annoyed him.
-
-‘Good-night,’ he answered with equal coolness. Husband and wife
-went to their several rooms, after the first real quarrel of their
-married life. Innocently, ignorantly, Ivor Restormel had come between
-them--or, rather, the Thing that lived again in him had stirred again,
-as Gundred had divined, to intervene, as once before, between the two
-stranger-souls who, in the flesh, were contented husband and wife.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX
-
-
-The interloper was established between Kingston and Gundred, and the
-purely formal nature of their marriage might have been clear even
-to themselves. They fell apart without wrench or difficulty, and on
-Gundred a heavy sense of loneliness settled like a cloud. She it was
-that suffered most from the separation, for she had not her husband’s
-compensations. All these years she had lived in the happiness of what
-she believed to be perfect intimacy with Kingston, sharing his hopes,
-his wishes, his thoughts; now, in a flash, she was made to guess
-that she had merely shared the outer aspects of his life, that the
-fancied beautiful completeness of their union was merely the band of
-tolerance strengthened through the long years by custom. Now that the
-elasticity of the tie that bound them was put to too great a stretch,
-it flew asunder, and, in the rebound, struck Gundred a stinging blow.
-It was not, of course, to be expected of her that she should realize
-the situation clearly, or face the true state of the case with any
-perspicacious candour. All she felt was felt dimly, instinctively,
-half-consciously; not even to herself would she admit what she felt, or
-analyze the solitude that seemed gathering round her. But very vaguely,
-in the introduction of Ivor Restormel, she understood that she herself
-must somehow have failed--could not be quite all to her husband that
-she had imagined herself, must at some point have fallen short of the
-perfect wife’s proper performance. This uncomfortable perception,
-which caught her in her tenderest spot, she made haste to burke and
-bury in the depths of her consciousness. But its ghost occasionally
-walked; and, though she did the best for herself by insisting daily
-on her husband’s unjustifiable cruelty and the blackness of the
-influences that had seduced him, yet she could never wholly escape
-that faint instinct of failure which was the one thing that her
-efficiency-worshipping nature most passionately dreaded.
-
-The days went by in a strain that was wholly absurd, but also
-wholly unpleasant. Examining things in the light of healthy, normal
-experience, Gundred could not even tell herself that she had a
-grievance. She still feared and disliked the presence of Ivor
-Restormel, with a fear which no reason could account for, but which no
-reason could dispel. But in every way the boy was perfectly harmless
-and even pleasant. Gundred, in her heart of hearts had expected that
-her instinct would immediately be justified on closer acquaintance by
-discovering that Ivor Restormel took drugs, or read French novels, or
-had a tendency to gambling and kleptomania. She watched him carefully,
-in public and in private, secretly and openly, hoping that some such
-development might force her husband to recognise the soundness of her
-intuitions, and get rid of the undesirable immigrant. However, none
-of these idiosyncrasies could be brought to light, observe she never
-so minutely. The boy was just an ordinary, nice, healthy boy; there
-was nothing vague or mysterious or neurotic about him; his personality
-had no strong colours anywhere, was altogether mild, unformed, healthy
-in its growth. And yet Gundred, recognising all this, could not help
-shrinking from him, shrinking from him more eagerly day by day, with
-a vigour of feeling not by any means wholly attributable to her anger
-against Kingston for disobeying her wishes in this matter. Among the
-weak points of her character a lack of honesty could not always be
-counted; she frankly acknowledged to herself that no fault could be
-found with Ivor Restormel. Good, kind, companionable, nice-minded, he
-appeared to be everything that she herself, by all the rules of her
-code, should most warmly have liked and approved. This only made it the
-odder, therefore, that she should feel against him so unconquerable a
-secret dislike. Gundred almost felt as if it were not the boy himself
-that she disliked, but some deep corner of his character which she
-seemed to have known and dreaded for many years. She divined in him
-a lurking enmity of which his own innocent and sunny nature was
-altogether unconscious. But Gundred pulled herself up short at this
-point, and refused to indulge in any such vain fantasies. People, it is
-well known, do not contain these dual personalities; if Gundred dreaded
-this boy, who, to all seeming, was everything sane and wholesome, her
-feeling could have nothing to do with any nonsensical superstition, but
-would certainly--if not sooner, then later--be disastrously shown to
-have been founded on fact, by the discovery of its object’s carefully
-hidden iniquity. Gundred, as the days went by, withdrew herself more
-and more wholly from her husband’s life. Now she no longer took even a
-formal share in it. She stood outside and watched for her opportunity
-to strike at the intruder. That neither Kingston nor Gundred any
-longer felt how completely they were removed from each other in itself
-revealed the secret weakness which all these years had underlain the
-smooth, firm surface of their relations. Each, it appeared, could do
-perfectly well without the other, and only feel the separation as a
-matter for indignant pride.
-
-The interloper, meanwhile, was quite unconscious of the hidden passions
-that were seething round him. Ivor Restormel had a happy temperament
-that only looked for the best in everything. Reasons and explanations
-did not interest him, nor had he much subtlety to discern any animosity
-that did not take the form of a blow in the eye. So long as he was not
-made to enter the smoke-haunted rooms of Brakelond he was inclined
-simply and wholly to enjoy himself. What it all meant he had no idea,
-nor what he had done to attract so smooth and pleasant a life as
-seemed to be opening out before him. Occasionally he had a very faint
-suspicion that Lady Gundred, for some reason, did not entirely approve
-of him. But, then, she was always so mild and remote in manner, so it
-must only be his fancy; after all, he had done absolutely nothing to
-annoy her; and, anyway, what was the good of bothering? So he took
-the pleasures that the gods provided, without question or cavil, and
-began to enjoy the surroundings to which he had been so suddenly, so
-unexpectedly, transplanted. He had inherited a love of beauty, comfort,
-calm; the change from a penurious life spent between a third-rate
-Oxford college and a dingy little house in the Banbury Road, among
-people no less distasteful than the lives they led--the change from
-all this to the large serenity of Brakelond was restful and delicious
-in the extreme. Here voices were never raised in queribund tones;
-here all the little difficulties of life were kept in oblivion, and
-existence went on oiled wheels along a gentle, placid course. Lady
-Gundred might be a little chilly and undemonstrative, but, at any rate,
-she was always smooth; she never fussed or grew peevish, was never
-worried about the details of housekeeping. Ivor Restormel loved the
-unquestioning quiet of his new life. As for his host, well, there he
-was altogether baffled.
-
-Mr. Darnley seemed at once indifferent and enthusiastic about his new
-secretary. At one moment he would talk eagerly, almost affectionately;
-and then, again, he would be perfectly indefinite and tame in tone.
-Ivor could not make it out at all; did Mr. Darnley like him or not?
-Surely he must--surely he must even have taken a strange, violent
-fancy to him. Otherwise, why should Mr. Darnley have made such rapid
-advances; why should he have been so anxious to get him over to
-Brakelond; why should he have been in such haste to offer him the
-secretaryship, and so keen that he should take it? All these things
-were proof of liking, if anything in the world could ever be. Yet Ivor
-Restormel could never feel wholly satisfied, after all, that his host
-had any personal feeling for him. In himself he even seemed to bore
-Mr. Darnley. Ivor was quite acute enough to see before long that Mr.
-Darnley took very little interest in him personally. And this made
-the whole relation incalculably strange. Why saddle yourself, why go
-out of your way to saddle yourself with a person for whom you do not
-intrinsically care two straws? Ivor began to think that he even noticed
-a certain animosity sometimes in his host’s attitude towards him. It
-almost seemed as if by talking in his own person, of his own concerns,
-that he was annoying and disappointing Mr. Darnley. What could this
-mean? Mr. Darnley appeared to be always watching him, always listening
-for some chance word from him. And then, all of a sudden, Mr. Darnley’s
-interest would kindle and flame. Warmth would come into his manner,
-and Ivor would get the sensation of being acutely liked. And then,
-in a moment, perhaps, his talk would wander outside the range of its
-listener’s interest. Mr. Darnley would shake his head with a sort of
-desperate irritation, the light would die out of his eyes, and his
-demeanour become cold, and sometimes even savage. Evidently the talker
-must have somehow cheated him, must have ceased to say the things he
-wished to hear. But what were those things? Ivor Restormel spurred
-himself to unaccustomed subtlety; he disliked this sensation of being,
-as it were, only spasmodically and vicariously cultivated. His face and
-manners generally made him friends without difficulty; he was piqued by
-their apparent failure to give him any victory over a man whom they had
-seemed to lead so unresistingly captive at first sight.
-
-Ivor exerted himself to ensure Mr. Darnley’s approval, and carefully
-marked the moments which held his employer’s enthusiasm and the
-subjects that provoked it. Apparently, though, any talk of his own
-life and ideas was of no interest, or very little, to Mr. Darnley. And
-how can one capture people’s friendship if they are obviously bored
-by everything that concerns one’s self? No; not quite everything.
-Ivor soon found that any talk about his particular private weaknesses
-was always sure to rouse Mr. Darnley to a subdued, secret fury of
-eagerness. As soon as Ivor dropped any chance apologetic word about
-the terrors that he had so strangely inherited, and as long as he
-continued telling of them, so long, and so long only, did Mr. Darnley
-seem to have an interest and a liking for him--an interest wonderfully
-keen, a liking deep and strong. And then, if he took advantage of
-this evident friendship to go on to other matters, then the evident
-friendship would immediately chill off and vanish into an annoyed
-indifference. Mr. Darnley could not be touched by conversation on any
-other topic. But that one topic was always sure of the most instant
-success; it had only to hint its presence in the dialogue for Mr.
-Darnley’s whole zeal to leap to the alert. Mr. Darnley even seemed to
-be always watching for its appearance, and, what was strange and even
-exasperating, would put up with hours of Ivor’s conversation in the
-obvious hope that sooner or later the one matter of interest would
-crop up into the talk. It is annoying to find one’s company cherished
-only for the sake of conversation on one particular subject, and Ivor
-began deliberately to avoid the topic, as much from hurt vanity as from
-personal pride.
-
-Then the situation developed even more oddly, for Mr. Darnley would
-hardly let the boy out of his sight. He must be always at his side,
-always putting up with what clearly failed to interest him, in the
-persistent hope that as the delay grew longer and more wearisome, so
-the reappearance of the one interesting topic must be coming nearer
-and growing surer. He clung to Ivor’s company, although it plainly
-had no intrinsic value for him, anxious not to lose a moment of it,
-for fear the moment of true speech should come and pass without his
-knowledge. Ivor, sweet-natured as he was, showed his resentment at the
-topsy-turvy situation by talking persistently of things that concerned
-himself, his daily life, or his employer’s. And it was even amusing,
-had it not been rather humiliating, to notice how Mr. Darnley chafed
-beneath the interminable ordeal, yet would not lose an instant of
-it, lest in that instant the thing he was looking for so passionately
-should poke its head up and vanish again unnoticed. But Ivor, for sheer
-pride, would indulge him but seldom. Besides, it happened that the one
-thing which Kingston wished to hear was also, naturally enough, the one
-thing that Ivor least wished to tell. For the boy was acutely ashamed
-of those idiotic instincts of terror with which his premature birth
-had left him. The one thing worse than those terrors themselves was
-the humiliation of acknowledging them. So he was doubly reluctant to
-gratify the morbid curiosity of the older man.
-
-Kingston, in fact, was paying very heavily for the indulgence of
-his long desire. The situation, to him, was one persistent agony of
-expectation, always straining, always being disappointed. Now at last
-he understood the punishment that he had earned. For, by his own wish,
-he was doomed to call, and call for ever, to something that could
-never hear. The dead was free, but the living was still bound, was
-more tightly bound than ever in that bond of desire which is at once
-the pet pleasure and the dreadful agony of all who enter it. And a
-dreary agony it was; Isabel was there, within his reach almost, but for
-ever beyond his reach. No cry could rouse her, no appeal restore her
-personality to life. And yet, mysteriously but certainly, she was there
-once more; once more clothed in flesh, once more gazing out of human
-eyes and speaking with a human voice. Nevertheless, for all the good
-he could have of his prayer’s gratification, she might still have been
-dead bones and dust of the earth. For she could not hear him, could not
-recognise him, and the irony of her deaf, blind presence at his side
-was a torment far more keen than all the long years of her absence. He
-ravened and battered against the iron wall of her unconsciousness,
-and for ever was beaten back, sickened, bruised and bleeding from the
-violence--the eternally fruitless violence--of his effort to stir her
-recollection. Her memory slept for ever in the dead past; only the
-immortal part of her still lived, and was incurably deaf to any human
-call. She did not hear him, she could not hear him; never, never, all
-down the ages could she hear him again. The irremediable separation was
-only made more ghastly, more appalling, by the tantalizing proximity of
-her. He could see her, hear her, know her well. And all the knowledge
-was not only profitless, but an aggravation of his misery. He saw
-now what a fool he had been to tie himself anew in the bondage of
-desire; an eternal parting would have been far less painful, far less
-maddeningly cruel, than this grim and nugatory reunion.
-
-Again and again he battled fiercely to win the recognition that he
-knew in his heart of hearts to be for ever beyond his reach. He was
-incessantly trying to lead Ivor Restormel into some discussion of his
-secret terrors, hoping that so Isabel’s voice might speak once more,
-and possibly, in time, Isabel’s self be aroused again. But the task was
-hard, and Ivor reluctant to be made the mouthpiece of that inmost self
-of his whose identity--whose very existence, even--he never suspected.
-And then it was that Kingston found himself hating the boy. The boy
-stood between himself and Isabel; for ever must stand between himself
-and Isabel. And yet the boy contained the secret treasure--_was_, in
-a worldly sense, the secret treasure; he could not have the one for a
-neighbour without putting up with the presence of the other, without
-keeping the boy for ever at his side, and tolerating endlessly the
-revelations of the boy’s uninteresting personality. Kingston approved
-of the young fellow well enough in himself; he was amiable, kind,
-pleasant to look at and talk to. In ordinary circumstances Kingston
-would have liked him and never thought twice about him. Now, however,
-his liking was complicated by a resentment that at times deepened into
-something like hate. The boy was keeping so much from him. It was not
-the boy’s fault, of course, yet that did not make the situation any
-easier to bear. He alternately liked and disliked him with a vigour for
-which the boy’s own personality was entirely innocent.
-
-He was always laying traps for him, watching him, trying to stir up the
-spirit that possessed him. Gladly would Kingston have pierced between
-Ivor and the secret thing that inhabited him. The one he valued not
-at all, or only as containing the other which he now valued above
-everything in the world, for ever beyond his reach though it was. He
-resented the boy’s body, his beauty, his young developing nature which,
-sooner or later, might be expected to conquer those old dim memories
-and achieve the ultimate death of the Isabel he had known those twenty
-years before. If he could have set free the sleeping soul he would
-gladly have seen its new body break up and die. He hated that new body,
-which made so impermeable a wall between himself and the vanished thing
-he had so vainly found again. He looked on Ivor Restormel as an unarmed
-burglar might look on an impregnable safe in which lies the diamond
-of his ambition. The safe is precious and desirable because of the
-diamond inside, but, in so far as it makes the diamond impregnable, is
-doubly detestable for the very fact that the diamond _is_ inside. And
-in Kingston’s case the problem was even crueller; for the burglar may,
-with long labour, break the safe and attain the diamond. Kingston, in
-breaking the safe, would by the same action cause the diamond to vanish
-once more. As things stood, the safety--at all events, the continued
-proximity--of the diamond depended entirely on the continued security
-and inviolate condition of the safe.
-
-He began soon, in his difficulty, to read up the countless Oriental
-cases of prenatal memory. There, in the East, souls that have been
-parted by bodily death are reunited in another shape, and know each
-other and are happy. There the great facts of life, of that shadowy
-fallacy that we call death, are clearly known and understood. But here
-we are still driven by phantom fears, and troubled by that which has no
-real existence except in our own weakened imaginations. Our memories
-are too closely trammelled by false teaching, too little practised
-and experienced, to pass intact across the blank interval of physical
-death. At the best it is only an occasional glimpse we carry on into
-another life, and even so those glimpses come but rarely, and fade as
-our earthly life advances to maturity again. More people have these
-glimpses, it is true, than ever dare to acknowledge them; but they are
-little understood and never fairly made use of. It is to the East we
-must go to see how little account the trained soul makes of physical
-death. There, through innumerable ages, the light has been seen, and
-memory has been educated from hour to hour and from day to day until
-at last the soul finds it as easy to recall the events of a hundred
-years ago as those of last night or this morning. Kingston studied the
-many cases that the Eastern Gospel gives us, and which Western science
-is just beginning to discern anew. Always he hoped against hope that
-they would give him some key to unlock the house of memory. Yes, the
-mortal body is just that--a house of memory, a jerry-built house at
-best. But the lock is stern and stark. What key is there, what jemmy,
-what crowbar, that can prevail on the lock that guards the house of
-memories, can prevail, at least, without wrecking the house and letting
-the memories go free once more?
-
-Kingston had no hope that he could find such a key. The old Eastern
-stories showed the glorified free memory as the possession only of
-the free glorified soul that has escaped the bondage of desire. When
-desire has passed away, then the uncontaminated soul knows no barrier
-of time or space. But in the kingdom of desire are all the burning
-pains and limitations which desire provides to scourge its devotees
-in the very moment of their seeming satisfaction. To eyes desirous,
-life is narrowed to a thing of the moment; it is only from the high
-places of enlightenment that the opened eye of the Real Self can wander
-over all the fields of existence, and see the nullity of death, the
-eternity of truth and holiness, from bodily life to bodily life, until
-at last the great goal is gained. Kingston saw himself helpless now
-in the grip of the passion he had invoked. Nothing could satisfy it,
-nothing could release him from it. Nothing but the death of his body,
-and even that release seemed now to his awakening intelligence to be
-but problematical. He began to wonder what could be the end of this
-fantastic tangle. Days went by, and he found himself more tightly
-chained to the agony of his perpetual disappointment in Ivor Restormel,
-more cruelly hungry for the satisfaction which lay for ever in his
-sight and beyond his reach, more and more fiercely stung by the misery
-that he himself had brought upon himself.
-
-He grew into a sense of drifting towards a catastrophe; the strain,
-the torment could not be prolonged indefinitely without the sudden
-snap of his endurance. Some thunderclap of fate must break up the
-dreadful stagnation of this nightmare. As the time passed, and his
-efforts brought him no nearer to fulfilment, made it increasingly plain
-that he could never come any nearer to fulfilment, he felt the growing
-imminence of doom. This companion who was no companion, his desire had
-evoked It from the shadows, soon It must go back into the shadows from
-which he had called It, having first accomplished fully the punishment
-of his selfishness. He watched the human Ivor Restormel with a curious
-consciousness of watching a thing unearthly, a thing moving amid
-darkness towards a great darkness not so very far away. This boy, so
-much alive, so content with life, was not in reality alive at all. He
-was just a shadow, a faint film of personality, by comparison with the
-old living thing that lurked in him. Vague and indeterminate as his own
-character was, he was the penalty, made incarnate, of Kingston’s own
-selfishness; he was the eidolon of the past projected into the present
-in order to tantalize and damn the soul that had desired it. Built of
-clouds, he must pass back ere long, swiftly, tragically into cloudland,
-and that reality behind the clouds, that living fragment far down in
-the shadowy personality of the boy, must pass onwards again on its
-upward way--that strange immortal essence which once had been Isabel.
-And this foreknowledge of the end, this sensation of drifting daily
-more and more hurriedly towards something terrible, impelled him to
-cherish with a more and more eager passion this presence that had been
-vouchsafed to him, however incomplete, however unsatisfying he might
-find it.
-
-Each hour brought him nearer now to the last that should ever be.
-He bent himself sternly, in the lessening time that was his, to the
-desperate task of awakening recollection in a soul where recollection
-slept for ever. Less and less did he see or think of Ivor Restormel,
-more and more ardently, more and more despairingly, of the thing that
-dwelt in Ivor Restormel, the thing that soon must leave its habitation
-to pass elsewhere again. He sought the boy’s presence more and more
-persistently, would never spare him out of his sight, exacted more and
-more of his conversation. And all the while he was caring less and
-less for the boy, his words, or his utterance. Now that he had found
-out what it was that had attracted him to the boy, he was ceasing to
-see the boy himself at all, to hear his earthly voice. All Kingston’s
-attention was fixed on the glimpses that he could hope to get of the
-secret presence he divined, his ears were open only to those occasional
-flashes of memory that spoke in Ivor Restormel out of that remote past
-beyond the grave. He must make the dreadful most of the short time that
-was left him. It was but little he could hope to make, but the time, he
-felt, was running rapidly out towards its end.
-
-Gundred saw everything. Gundred understood nothing. That her husband
-grew keener and keener to monopolize Ivor Restormel she saw, and
-righteous anger became fiercer within her. That Kingston should so
-slight her company as obviously and vehemently to prefer that of a
-person against whom she had most solemnly warned him, was matter
-enough and to spare for just wrath. Gundred grew colder and colder in
-manner, lived more and more aloof, felt stronger and stronger in her
-consciousness of justified dread. That Kingston clung every moment to
-the side of his secretary she noticed; that, in reality, he did not
-care two straws about his secretary she could hardly be expected to
-discern. The plain and sufficing fact was that he never seemed happy,
-never at his ease, unless Ivor Restormel were with him, and even then
-he very rarely seemed perfectly satisfied either. Gundred saw that
-there was something unusual and mysterious about this friendship
-that in some ways scarcely seemed a friendship at all, yet made such
-tremendous claims on time and company.
-
-Gundred, scanning the situation from her retirement, came deliberately
-to the conclusion that Kingston’s evident infatuation was the result
-of some malign influence. Nothing else could account for his restless
-attraction towards Ivor Restormel, combined so frequently with obvious
-boredom and annoyance when in his company; nothing could so completely
-explain the apparent innocuousness of Ivor himself, as compared with
-the instinct of repulsion that Gundred always felt towards him, and
-felt more fanatically from day to day. Gundred knew that she was not
-capable of unjust or disorderly feelings. And, if she disliked people,
-it meant that they deserved to be disliked. And if no reason for such a
-dislike could be discovered anywhere in Ivor Restormel’s personality,
-well, that only made it more clear that Gundred’s infallible instinct
-was founded on her perception in him of some evil supernatural
-influence, possessing him and working through him. The idea grew
-and fermented in her brain, and heroic remedies began to suggest
-themselves. No one, in these dreadful latter days, could seriously
-doubt that the Evil One was abroad. What more credible than that he
-should have picked out for attack a soul like her husband’s, which
-Gundred knew to be weak in doctrine, and saw to be not impeccable in
-practice? Gundred grew in the certainty that, whether Ivor Restormel
-knew it or no, he was filled with unhallowed powers that were exerting
-a wicked force on the man whom he had so uncannily attracted from the
-first.
-
-All her life’s course had led Gundred along placid, sunny ways,
-and her nature, through those years, had revealed only the peace
-and serenity of true refinement. And now, at last, at the touch of
-this righteous jealousy, there began to stir in her the fierce old
-blood of Queen Isabel, the stern harsh passions of the Mortimers. The
-fanatic stirred in its long sleep, and Gundred felt herself inspired
-to lead a domestic crusade against the Powers of Darkness. At any cost
-her husband must be saved. In old days an Earl of March had, by his
-laudable zeal in persecution, elicited commendatory letters from Queen
-Mary. His spirit now awoke in Gundred, and she realized in herself the
-strength to act mightily in a noble cause.
-
-In every way this undesirable intruder, who seemed so amiable and
-pleasant and desirable, was having the most untoward effect on
-Kingston’s mind and morals. Had he not caused a hitherto blameless and
-obedient husband to revolt against his wife’s righteous dominion after
-twenty years of harmony, and to cast her wishes defiantly beneath his
-feet? And now it became obvious that Kingston was suffering in other
-ways. She saw him to be a dabbler in things best left alone, in things
-unhallowed, Satanic, dreadful. Of his attendance on spirit-circles
-Gundred luckily knew nothing, otherwise, in her determination to be
-old-fashioned by contrast with the hysterical occultism that now
-obtains, she would probably have wished to call in an exorcist. But
-even in his reading he had strayed into improper paths. The strangest
-things he was now for ever studying--Eastern books and mystical
-fantasies of the most unsettling description. The weirdest of these
-he made a point of reading to Ivor Restormel, and Gundred, who
-generally insisted on being by, noticed that he seemed to read eagerly,
-challengingly, as if in momentary expectation that the matter would
-elicit some answering flash of some kind or another from the boy. It
-never did, and the readings, therefore, always broke off short with a
-shrug of disappointment and even of disgust; but Gundred divined a soul
-in peril from the very attempt he made. It was surely an incantation he
-was practising, an invocation to the mysterious evil thing that haunted
-Ivor Restormel. She presented a bold front to such dangers, and would
-not be kept away from the readings.
-
-Kingston one Sunday evening seemed absorbed in his dubious books,
-while Gundred sat at her knitting, an employment by which she piously
-signalized the Sabbath. All through the week she did fine needlework,
-but on Sunday she put away her embroideries and conscientiously knitted
-comforters for the Deep-sea Fishermen. But suddenly Kingston looked
-up from his page, and began to read in a curious tone of watchful
-defiance, addressing his secretary, who was inoffensively engaged with
-a newspaper. ‘Listen to this, Ivor,’ he began, ‘listen to this, and
-tell me what you think of it.’ Gundred, in her observant silence, noted
-that her opinion was not asked, and her wrath grew greater and more
-righteous, chalking up yet another item to the Evil One’s account.
-‘“Once upon a time,”’ read Kingston, ‘“many thousands of years ago,
-there came a great Buddha to a city in India. He was a great and
-glorious Buddha, but the time is so very far away now that even his
-name has passed into Nirvana, and cannot be recalled. But all the
-people in the city wrought their hardest to do him honour. From the
-King and his nobles downward everyone gave his richest silks and rugs
-to line the road of the Holy One’s arrival, and in all their land there
-was not a widow or a little child so poor that they had not some bright
-pebble or piece of cloth to do their small homage to the Incarnate
-Perfection. Only one shepherd lad, from the jungle beyond, had nothing
-to give. He was young and strong and very beautiful, and his whole
-soul cried out in worship of the Buddha. The most splendid jewel in
-the world, the most priceless tapestry and cloth of gold, he would not
-have thought good enough for the honouring of the Holy One; and yet he
-had nothing, no treasure, however humble, that he could throw beneath
-the blessed feet. He, that would have given half the world, had not so
-much as a handful of painted shells. So his heart was very heavy within
-him, and sadly did he draw near to the city on the appointed day. And
-on his road there met him a maiden, lovely and gracious, that wore in
-her hair a flower. But this was such a flower as the boy had never seen
-before. It was altogether radiant and heavenly, splendid beyond the
-imagination of man to conceive. It grew in a cluster of seven blooms,
-and the fragrance of it filled the jungle. If he could only have this
-wonderful thing to offer to the Heavenly Visitor, then, indeed, thought
-the boy, he would at least have done no dishonour to the Light that his
-heart honoured above all else on earth. ‘Maiden,’ he said, ‘for what
-price will you sell me the flower that you wear in your hair?’ And she
-answered that for a very great price she would sell him two blossoms
-from the cluster. And once again his heart was daunted, for the price
-she asked was more than anything that he could hope to get together in
-a long laborious life. He shook his head. ‘I had desired,’ he replied,
-‘to do fitting honour to the Holy One, but I see now that that hope is
-beyond me.’ Then the maiden took the blossom from her hair and held it
-out towards him, for her eyes were opened. ‘My Lord,’ she answered to
-the peasant lad, ‘my sight is unsealed, and I can see. Very many years
-hence--a thousand years hence--I see that you, in the fullness of
-time, even you yourself shall become a revealed Buddha here on earth.
-Take this flower of mine, then, without money and without price, but
-promise me only that in that far day I may stand at your right hand and
-be near you in your glory.’ And the boy smiled and gave her his word.
-So after all he had his offering to lay before the Blessed One, and
-his heart was satisfied. And the maiden went her way through life, and
-on through the many deaths that lay beyond. And he also, the peasant
-lad, died in the ripeness of his age, and lived and died through many
-generations, advancing always on the upward road. And at length the
-time was accomplished, and the maiden’s prophecy fulfilled. For the
-peasant lad became the Spotless One, the Buddha Sakhya-Muni, High and
-Holy, altogether Blessed and Perfect, the Best Friend of All the World.
-And in that day, the maiden found herself again, and came at last to
-her reward. For she was the Lady Yasodhara, his wife, the first of all
-the sacred women that trod the happy way and entered into light....”’
-
-Kingston ceased, his voice filled with interrogation, pausing eagerly
-for Ivor’s opinion, hoping against hope that that opinion might be more
-illuminating than he felt it would be. Again and again had he tried to
-kindle that dormant consciousness with scenes like this, always keenly
-hoping that they would touch some chord of understanding far down in
-the hidden depths of the boy’s dual personality. But the hope was never
-to be fulfilled; he knew it was never to be fulfilled, yet each fresh
-disappointment was sharper and more wounding than the last. Kingston
-paused for a comment on the story. None came. After a pause he demanded
-one.
-
-‘Well,’ he said, ‘what did you think of that, Ivor?’
-
-The boy looked up; his attention, though formally yielded to
-Kingston’s reading, had, in reality, been surreptitiously concentrated
-on the sporting column of the paper he held in his hand.
-
-‘What did I think of it?’ he repeated a trifle vaguely. ‘Oh, not half
-bad. Quite a decent bit of writing. But awful rot, sir, of course.’
-
-Kingston vibrated with acute annoyance. Thus, for the thousandth time,
-the gate of possibilities had been slammed brutally in his face by the
-uninteresting shadowy, rudimentary soul that shared Ivor Restormel’s
-body with that wonderful immortal dead. He gazed at the boy with
-positive hatred in his eyes. In a spasm of irritation Kingston turned
-towards his wife.
-
-‘And you, Gundred,’ he inquired, ‘what do you think of it? Evidently
-Ivor hasn’t the faintest notion what it is all about. It says nothing
-to him. Does it say anything to you?’
-
-‘Very dreadful and unchristian,’ said Gundred firmly, but mildly. ‘I
-wonder you can bear to read such things. I am sure it cannot be good
-for Mr. Restormel to hear them.’
-
-Kingston might talk if he pleased of ‘Ivor,’ Gundred pointed her
-disapproval by adhering rigidly to the formal mode of address,
-and would never accord her enemy the favour of any more friendly
-appellation.
-
-‘Mr. Restormel,’ she repeated decisively, ‘could not be expected to see
-anything in such irreverent nonsense.’
-
-Kingston could not trust himself to answer her, nor to make any further
-remark on the abysmal stupidity of the boy who stood so perpetually
-between him and the memory of Isabel. Hurriedly turning over the pages,
-he began to read that most wonderful scene in history, the second
-meeting of the triumphant Buddha with Yasodhara his wife, after those
-many years of parting and glorification. Both the world’s great Buddha
-stories contain the tragedy of a woman; but the tale of the Indian
-Princess, widowed through long earthly years of the man she loved, and
-then, in the end, reunited with the Perfected Incarnation of Holiness,
-is even more tremendous, if less physically poignant, than that of
-the Mother who stood on Calvary. Mystical, majestic, splendid, is the
-crowning moment in the life of Yasodhara, and Kingston read the words
-that relate it with a passionate sense of the truth that they convey.
-Then he fell silent.
-
-‘Very pretty, dear,’ said Gundred. ‘Would you pick up my wool for me?
-Thanks. But I do think one might find something more profitable to read
-on Sundays. I think one ought to make Sunday different somehow, from
-other days, and not read novels and things like that. One should only
-read _real_ things on Sundays--yes?’
-
-She slipped into sight the volume with which she occasionally beguiled
-the devout labours of her knitting. With a gentle little air of
-excellence she laid it down again unostentatiously, but so that the
-gilt lettering showed along its cover. It was the ‘Life of Bishop
-Boffatt,’ by Three Nieces, with a ‘Foreword’ from Archdeacon Widge.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX
-
-
-All this clearly indicated that Gundred’s interference was urgently
-needed in the cause of holiness. Day by day she watched the situation,
-feeling more and more certain that her mission was the rescue of
-her husband. He, meanwhile, bore hourly, with increasing pain, the
-tantalizing torments of his paradoxical proximity to the thing he had
-so long looked for and now had found in vain. Ivor Restormel wondered
-at his good fortune, and only occasionally noticed the crochets of
-Kingston and Gundred. Of the two, Gundred had by far the more tactful
-temperament. Her dislike, now fast verging towards religious horror,
-was not to be discerned except by an eye far more keen than Ivor
-Restormel’s. A serene gravity, a cool calm were so much the dominant
-characteristics of her nature that the exaggeration of her gravity,
-the additional chill in her calm passed unnoticed by one so little
-practised in observation. The restless eagerness of Kingston was more
-plain and more distressing. Ivor Restormel sometimes wondered what
-it was that he did or failed to do that so roused disappointment and
-annoyance in this friend who never really seemed a friend, and yet had
-gratuitously done so much for him. However, he was not of a temper to
-let such matters oppress him. He put them behind him, and disregarded
-any tension that he might ever be inclined to discern in his relations
-with his employer or his employer’s wife.
-
-So the days passed unsatisfactorily by, until the time came for the
-family’s removal to Ivescar. Deep in his heart Kingston had a dim hope
-that the sight of Ivescar might once more rekindle a flash of memory
-in the boy. It was with trembling anxiety that he watched the first
-impressions that Ivor received from his first sight of the Yorkshire
-moors. Would the veil lift again, for even the briefest glance from the
-soul that dwelt behind? Brakelond had roused the sleeping personality
-in the boy; surely it was only to be expected that Ivescar, where so
-much had happened, could do no less? And Ivor gratified Kingston’s
-hope up to a certain point--only, as before, in doing so to rouse a
-keener desire. For from the first sight he instinctively loved the
-mountain-country, entered into its charm, appreciated the solemn
-majesty of it. He felt, he said, as if he had known it all his life,
-as if he and the hills were friends of long standing. And Kingston,
-hearing this, listened with quiet face but with a heart agonized in
-suspense. The door seemed to be drawing ajar for a greater revelation.
-The very next moment might bring some recognition. Kingston would not
-admit to himself the hopelessness of his hope. Eagerly he waited for
-what the boy might say next. And the door opened no further, but closed
-again as fast as ever. Never again could that hidden consciousness
-of Ivor’s wake to know itself. The expectation that it ever would
-was groundless, tormenting, delusive as all the pleasures held out
-by false desire. Kingston suffered more than ever, as each fresh
-disappointment grew more painful than the last, though more and more
-surely anticipated. The boy knew nothing; no veil could be lifted from
-his eyes; he enjoyed his surroundings simply, boyishly, without any
-sense of deep memories out of which they were built.
-
-And then, into the midst of these unhappy combinations was precipitated
-the new element of Jim Darnley’s presence. Jim Darnley at fifteen was
-unfeignedly glad to find a companion not so very much ahead of him in
-years. Ivor Restormel was young for his age; Jim Darnley, as an only
-son, was inclined to be older than his; and the instant fellowship
-that was established between the two set the last seal on Gundred’s
-righteous indignation. Kingston did not care whom or what the earthly
-Ivor Restormel might care for, so long as his company might still hold
-out hopes of glimpses from the past. Moreover, he was glad that Jim
-should have a companion, and should, by taking so comfortable a fancy
-to him, justify his father in the choice of a secretary. As a man,
-and as a man already preoccupied with other matters, he had no sort
-of inclination to be jealous of his son’s friendships. With Gundred,
-however, the case was altogether different. She loved her only child
-with the fierce and almost savage affection often felt by a woman who
-cannot understand the object of that affection. Naturally the fact
-was the last thing that she would allow her soul to face, but in the
-jealousy with which she regarded all new factors in his life might be
-read her unacknowledged fear that her intimacy with him might not be as
-strong as she made a point of believing it to be. She was one of those
-women who are by nature more mother than wife, and in the fullness of
-uneventful years had insensibly come to transfer a good deal of her old
-urgent passion for Kingston to the child that she had borne him. In
-connection with Gundred, mild and cool, ferocity and passion are words
-that sound oddly, and yet, under the suave mildness, the dispassionate
-decorum of her manner, her feelings for her son had a certain definite
-passion, and even ferocity. That the boy never knew it was the
-misfortune of his mother’s training; she would not betray the fact of
-her love, and had no thought that by so betraying it she might be able
-to supplement, in his eyes, the deficiencies of her understanding.
-
-For Gundred was incapable of any true companionship with her son. He
-admired her, he loved her distantly and diffidently, but he shrank
-from her, and had nothing intimate or warm to say. That she was not
-conscious of this flaw in their relation may be called the compensating
-mercy of that weakness in herself which had developed that flaw.
-She was by now almost entirely devoid of intuitive intelligence.
-Or, rather, perhaps, she had so diligently trained herself that, in
-the long course of time, she had drilled her mind out of any faint
-tendency to perceive and analyze that it may ever have possessed.
-Her sense of decency commanded her to live entirely on the surface of
-things; prying into secret motives and feelings she considered vulgar
-and indecent. Accordingly, if lip-kisses were properly exchanged, and
-superficial affection reigned, she made a point of considering that
-the soul-relations thus symbolized must be eminently satisfactory.
-She looked no further than the symbol, and disliked the idea that
-kisses and terms of endearment may, after all, not stand for the love
-whose emblems they are--may even, at a pinch, be used to disguise the
-lack of that love. And yet her hidden, shamefaced jealousy may be
-taken to have been the last flickering phantom of the natural woman’s
-insight into domestic relations. All his life she had grudged her son
-his friendships, gently nipped them with the frost of her criticism,
-sedulously taught him to find fault and be captious.
-
-The education had borne no fruit in Jim, except a bitter one for
-Gundred. His nature was too warm and sunny to have any real communion
-with his mother’s frosts, and as soon as he found that she always
-had something coldly unpleasant to say of everyone he liked, he had
-responded, not by discarding his friends, but by drawing farther and
-farther away from his mother. With the merciless clear-sightedness of
-the young, so vivid, if so limited, he had judged his mother by her own
-precepts long since, and found her wanting. She endlessly preached the
-loveliest morality, the tenderest forbearance towards all the world,
-the most sedulous avoidance of harsh or censorious comment. And yet
-she was always sure to pick some fatal flaw in all his friends, to
-discover and expose some blemish, to insist on some fault or weakness.
-And the very fact that her criticisms were always more or less just
-militated, in the end, against her influence. For Jim found that he
-liked his friends more than he disliked their failings, and, taking
-their side accordingly, he gradually came to look upon his mother’s
-unerring eye for other people’s shortcomings as the worst enemy of his
-own happiness. Thus pitiably, by the exaggeration of her own virtues,
-through the keenness of her own maternal love, Gundred laid up for
-herself inevitable disappointment in regard to the one thing that her
-heart desired, and innocently prepared for herself a dark version
-of the mother’s tragedy. By now Jim had his friends and his life to
-himself; outside that precinct, walled and guarded, stood his mother,
-alone, too proud to admit that she stood outside, too wilfully blind to
-see the unbroken wall that fronted her, and, in any case, too proud to
-clamour for admittance.
-
-But the friendship that immediately arose between Jim and Ivor
-Restormel was to Gundred as a sudden light of revelation, laying bare
-the fact of her exclusion from her son’s life. Characteristically, even
-to herself, she would not admit what she saw, but attributed the novel
-pain to her anxiety for Jim’s welfare. That Jim should have friends of
-his own age had been grudgingly conceded as an odious necessity, to be
-cavilled at and snubbed, but impossible to deny. Now, however, that
-the pernicious influence that had so mysteriously gripped her husband
-threatened to enthral her son as well, Gundred told herself that all
-her maternal duties, no less than her conjugal, commanded her to take
-the field against the powers of darkness. Her jealousy masqueraded
-as pure motherly zeal, and its very bitterness was masked from her
-own sight by the disguise of duty. Her feeling, too, was intensified
-by the failure of all her usual weapons to discredit Ivor Restormel
-in the eyes of his new friend. Jim generally sat and answered her in
-submissive affirmatives, while she gently dissected his friends and
-pointed out how entirely unworthy they all were of approval, though
-not, of course, of pity; now, however, he could not even give her
-criticism the courtesy of apparent acquiescence.
-
-He rose up in defence of Ivor, instead of, as usual, listening
-pleasantly and then going his own way undeterred--a course which long
-experience had taught him was the wisest, especially as his mother
-was quite unable to notice that her advice was disregarded, if only
-her advice had been politely received. In vain she pointed out to him
-that Ivor Restormel’s mind was cheap and crude; that his orthodoxy was
-tepid, his manners unnecessarily enthusiastic, his whole deportment
-lacking in finish and refinement. Jim could not listen in respectful
-silence; he protested, he pleaded. He had become all of a sudden
-disloyal and treacherous to his mother. Gundred regarded all opposition
-from her son as unfilial, and could not conceive the possibility of his
-having any right to hold an opinion at variance with hers. She claimed
-to provide him with all his thoughts, henceforth and for ever, on the
-ground of having in the distant past provided him with a body to hold
-them. That her son was an individual she could never recognise, and on
-the rare occasions of his overt revolt, felt the indignant astonishment
-of Balaam when he discovered that his ass had a voice of its own.
-Accordingly, if Jim now opposed her criticisms, it was only a treason
-and a sin engendered in him by this evil spirit that had captured him,
-and every word that he said in Ivor’s favour only served to deepen his
-mother’s feeling that she was certainly called upon to rid her son and
-her husband of this threatening danger that had already produced such
-dire results in the disaffection of her nearest and dearest.
-
-‘I cannot have you running about the hills all day with Mr. Restormel,
-dear,’ said Gundred blandly, but with decision.
-
-‘But why not, mother?’ protested Jim, who, in normal circumstances
-would probably have said, ‘No, mother,’ and gone all the same, Gundred
-never knowing.
-
-‘Because I say not, dear,’ replied Gundred inadequately. ‘You must
-let mother be the best judge of your companions, dear. Mother knows
-best--yes?’
-
-‘I say, you know, I think it is awfully hard lines. Ivor is the best
-fellow going. You don’t know him, mother.’
-
-‘Don’t call him Ivor, Jim,’ reproved Gundred. ‘It is not respectful. He
-is older than you. And that is another reason why I do not like to see
-you wasting your time with him. He is not good company for you.’
-
-‘Yes; but you always say that. What is there wrong with poor old Ivor?’
-
-Having nothing definite to allege, Gundred, of course, found it
-necessary to become sibylline and pompous.
-
-‘You must trust mother, dear,’ she answered. ‘There are many things you
-are too young to know. It is enough for you to remember that mother
-does not wish you to see too much of Mr. Restormel. You must avoid him
-as much as possible--though, of course, without being rude and unkind.’
-
-But Gundred’s solemn implication of mysterious knowledge had been
-played off so frequently that it had long since lost its effect. Jim
-knew well that it only concealed her invariable jealousy.
-
-‘No,’ he said; ‘I am awfully fond of old Ivor. I don’t see why I should
-make myself nasty to him. Father likes him no end.’
-
-This did not serve to mollify Gundred.
-
-‘You should always do what mother wishes, without asking questions,’
-she rejoined. ‘And what father may do is no concern of yours. Your
-father may be taken in like everybody else. But you ought to think it a
-privilege to obey your mother. Think of what you owe her--yes?’
-
-Like many women, Gundred believed that, having engendered a child,
-entirely without regard for that problematical child’s wishes, must
-necessarily give her a lifelong claim on his gratitude. Like many
-women, she insisted on the debt, everywhere and always, until, by
-ceaseless demands, she had come near to exhausting the supply.
-Accordingly the conference continued for a while, unsatisfactorily.
-Jim for once had lost his grip on that lamentable diplomacy which
-an unwise mother’s exactions so early engrain into her children. He
-could no longer even acquiesce. He became warm in Ivor’s defence,
-and, with every word, Gundred felt more certainly that his disloyalty
-was the crime of the evil force that possessed him. That force must
-unquestionably be combated and dispossessed. And soon she found that
-she was incapable of coping with Jim. Worse, she could not even have
-recourse to the secular arm in the person of her husband, for her
-husband was equally under this incalculable diabolical sway. She grew
-more angry in her demands as the demands were refused. And Jim, flushed
-with opposition, verged on rudeness, would not be brought to promise
-the abandonment of his new friend, and treated his mother’s ultimatum
-with ominous cheerfulness.
-
-‘You would not like to have to choose between Mr. Restormel and
-mother, would you--no?’ suggested Gundred with the supreme imprudence
-of excitement. And this weapon, too, had lost its efficacy with too
-frequent use. Jim had heard it too often now to retain any illusion as
-to its dramatic value.
-
-He was very uncomfortable, though, as he answered: ‘Oh, rot, mother;
-you know that is impossible. I wish you would not say such things. You
-don’t want to make me out a beast to you, do you, just because I don’t
-want to be a beast to Ivor? It’s all rot finding fault with him, you
-know. He is a jolly good fellow, and father would not have got him here
-if he had not liked him too. So he must be all right, anyway.’
-
-With a fatal lack of tact, Gundred went off on a side issue, and began
-protesting against the unnecessary crudeness of her son’s language--a
-crudeness which she made haste to attribute to Ivor’s degrading
-influence.
-
-‘Well,’ replied Jim, ‘if there is nothing else to say against poor old
-Ivor than that! He isn’t the first person in the world who has said
-“rot,” and I don’t imagine he will be the last.’ And on that hit he
-rose and made his escape, despite his mother’s attempts to restrain him
-with loving arms, and exact, by kisses, a more satisfactory termination
-to the dialogue.
-
-Gundred was left alone, feeling solitude as she had very rarely felt
-it in her life before. This intruder had destroyed the harmony of her
-home, had blighted her relations with her submissive subjects, had
-sapped loyalty, filial piety and honour in the hearts of all who owed
-her duty. This influence was altogether evil, and must be defeated
-without loss of another day. It was a blessed work this that Heaven
-had appointed her to do, and it must be done briskly, whole-heartedly,
-without any lookings-back from the plough, or weaknesses of any kind.
-Gundred began to revolve measures, and plans at last grew definite in
-her mind. She faced her course of action boldly. Ivor must be got rid
-of--somehow, anyhow. _Qui veut la fin, veut les moyens._
-
-And at this point she suddenly grew frightened. This road that she was
-treading, into what grim and stony places would it lead her? Gundred,
-for the first time in her life, began to feel afraid of herself. The
-intense fire of the righteous passion that consumed her, well, it was
-alarming, although it was so righteous. So righteous? A very faint
-flicker of hesitation dawned in Gundred’s mind. _Was_ this passion of
-hers so righteous? It was carrying her, she felt, toward actions that
-sooner or later might be dark and dreadful; all the more important,
-then, to make sure beforehand that it was an inspiration of Heaven,
-not, by any chance, a temptation from Hell. Hitherto Gundred had never
-doubted that the Almighty had created her for a shining instance of
-the soul which is temptation-proof; now, however, she began to waver
-in her belief that she, alone of mortal beings, was set above the
-wiles of evil. After all, she was human; it was just barely imaginable
-that this uplifting ardour that she felt might proceed from the
-Powers of darkness rather than from those of light. That anger and
-hatred are often laudable she knew well, but this anger and hatred
-of hers were so devastating, so tyrannous that she could not, in all
-candour, feel herself absolutely certain of their celestial origin. She
-felt, as she pondered the matter, that she was indeed showing proper
-conscientiousness, an almost unworthy tenderness towards that Amalekite
-of an enemy; but the question was so important, so much hung on it,
-that no labour could be wasted in making sure as to the rights and
-wrongs of the case.
-
-After all, though, would the Almighty have allowed her to entertain
-such passions if He had not meant her to indulge them? Yet even the
-greatest saints had been tempted by the devil. Indeed, the greater the
-saint the greater the temptation. The problem was nice, and required
-careful weighing. In any other case she would readily have conceded
-that such a passion might have been inspired without the connivance
-of the Almighty; in her own she was so perfectly, though so humbly,
-convinced that she lived and spoke as the mouthpiece of Heaven itself
-that she could hardly conceive it possible but that any feeling she
-nourished must, of necessity, be just and holy, through the very
-fact that it was she, the Lady Gundred Darnley, who had engendered
-and developed it. However, a pious doubt now besieged her, and she
-dutifully cast about in her mind for means to solve this riddle that
-her scrupulous sense of right had set before her. Until this was
-decided, she felt that it would be unfair to proceed to extremities
-even against Ivor Restormel. But how to decide it?
-
-Prayer, Gundred felt, was the only obvious method. The Almighty must
-be asked to declare as to the sanctity of the crusade that she was
-meditating. Gundred, filled with the consciousness of holiness, would,
-nevertheless, go to Heaven to have that consciousness confirmed. In all
-ways she was clean and blameless, worthy of the celestial attention.
-She looked doubtfully for a moment at the little fair curls that lay
-on her dressing-table. But after all, they could not really be called
-a fraud on the Almighty, for were they not built up out of her own
-hoarded combings? And, for the rest, there was no other spot of deceit
-or frailty anywhere in her. So she knelt in confidence, and prayed.
-If her hatred for Ivor Restormel were wicked, would God give a sign
-by causing it to die immediately? On the other hand, if it continued
-to thrive in her heart, she would take its persistence as a sign that
-it was very pleasing in the sight of Heaven, and might be pursued to
-its ultimate extremities. She laboured the point once more, so that
-Heaven could not possibly fail to grasp it. If to-morrow she still
-hated Ivor Restormel, she would understand that her hatred was pious
-and profitable; if she should awake feeling filled with love and pity
-for him, then she must believe that her previous inspiration had been a
-temptation of the Evil One. Filled with a sense of imminent revelation,
-Gundred went to bed, and could hardly sleep for anxiety as to the
-morrow, and the sentiments that the morrow would show forth.
-
-It was late when she woke from tardy and troubled dreams. Over her soul
-for a minute or two there brooded a heavy weight of mystery. Something
-wonderful was immediately to happen. But for a moment she could not
-discern what it was. Then she remembered her prayer, and fell to
-scanning her morning’s feelings for its answer. The revelation was at
-hand. But it would only burst upon her fully when she had come face to
-face with her imagined enemy. In a ferment of anxiety she had herself
-dressed, then hurried downstairs, her colour perceptibly heightened and
-her demeanour almost ruffled by the tense anxiety of her expectation.
-Into the morning-room she hastened, eager to find Ivor Restormel. There
-he was; she paused upon the threshold watching him, and waiting for
-the miraculous guidance that Heaven would certainly vouchsafe. Had her
-feelings for him changed during the night? In a flash of satisfaction
-the answer came, admitting no further question or cavil.
-
-For she hated him as much as ever. Yes, certainly as much as ever--even
-more, perhaps. And nothing could so clearly prove, after her prayers,
-that her hatred was pleasing to the Almighty. If it had been evil,
-He would, of course, have annulled it, according to request. God
-evidently meant her to hate Ivor Restormel, and to doubt any more
-would be nothing short of wicked infidelity. Triumphant in perfect
-satisfaction, in self-complacency restored and enhanced by this
-prodigious proof of God’s approval, Gundred addressed herself quietly
-to everyday life once more. Strengthened in her Heaven-sent attitude of
-mind, she advanced towards the breakfast-table with an added majesty of
-calm, and scattered greetings with a fair assumption of benevolence.
-With the answer to her prayer a sense of rest had come upon her and
-made it easier for her to be kind even to Ivor Restormel. She found the
-others of her party busy discussing some new and interesting point. Jim
-made haste to enlighten her.
-
-‘The Rovers are going down Long Kern this morning, mother,’ he
-exclaimed. ‘And Ivor says he is going with them. I am awfully keen to
-go, too. Don’t you think I might?’
-
-Gundred instantly avenged herself for the suffering that her son’s
-perverse disloyalty had been so long inflicting upon her.
-
-‘Most certainly not,’ she replied. ‘I have a perfect horror of such
-places. You would not wish him to go, Kingston--no?’
-
-‘There can’t be any danger,’ replied Kingston; ‘they will have
-efficient ropes and things. And Weston says there are the most
-wonderful caves at the bottom.’
-
-‘Are you really going, Mr. Restormel?’ asked Gundred, without paying
-further heed to Jim’s protests or Jim’s disappointment. She saw in a
-second how brilliantly God had answered her prayers for help. Long Kern
-was a small but deadly rift in the limestone of the hill above, which
-dropped three hundred feet of narrow shaft sheer down to unfathomable
-caverns below. Gundred saw clearly that the whole problem of her life
-was to be solved by a miracle. For Heaven may make a miracle out of any
-particularly happy coincidence. And what coincidence could possibly be
-more happy, more miraculous than this? For God clearly meant to destroy
-Ivor Restormel underground.
-
-Ivor, meanwhile, declared that he was eagerly looking forward to the
-exploration. The Rovers, about a dozen of them, were to make the
-descent at midday, and meant to stay in the caves down below until they
-had unravelled, as far as possible, the labyrinth of their passages. As
-for precautions and methods, they were to use rope-ladders and guiding
-wires, so that no real risk of any sort could be anticipated.
-
-Gundred listened with a wise smile. She knew better. Ivor Restormel
-might take as many precautions as he pleased; nothing could avail him
-against the combined weight of Gundred’s prayers and Heaven’s attention
-to them. This scheme of his was quite obviously the direct inspiration
-of the Powers above, working in Ivor to his destruction, as they had
-worked so many years ago for the fatal hardening of Pharaoh’s heart
-in Egypt. Gundred blandly acquiesced, and lent an unusually pleasant
-countenance to the young man’s exposition of his plans. As he was so
-evidently doomed, she might fairly relax the righteousness of her wrath
-against him. Even for one merciful moment she thought of interposing,
-of saving Ivor’s life by deprecating his scheme. But the moment
-passed--she saw how irreverent it would be to counter Heaven’s design.
-And to oppose Ivor’s plan would necessarily be to oppose Heaven’s also.
-So Gundred piously resigned everything into God’s hands, and stood
-aside to let matters take their course.
-
-Jim, meanwhile, was pressing her with pleas that he also might be
-allowed to join the party. His father, too, did not seem disinclined to
-grant his request. Gundred returned briskly to the immediate present.
-No, no; this complicating element must on no account be introduced. She
-could trust Heaven to look after Ivor Restormel when once he was inside
-Long Kern, but she was not at all inclined to trust It to discriminate
-between the innocent and the guilty, when it came to arranging the
-rock-fall or the sudden rush of water which she anticipated with a
-certain holy complacency. All Ivor’s companions would almost certainly
-perish with him. On no account, then, must her own precious child run
-any risk of being included in the Evil One’s condemnation. She looked
-at Jim, so eager, so young, so brilliant.
-
-There was nothing in the world her hidden nature loved so hungrily.
-By comparison even her great love for Kingston was very much a matter
-of pride and habit. But Jim was her own, of her own body, of her own
-blood, the crowning achievement of her life, the visible evidence of
-Heaven’s approval. In himself he was altogether lovely and delightful.
-And beyond all that again, beyond his own personal qualities, he stood
-to Gundred for the other thing she most venerated and cherished in the
-world--the glory of March and Brakelond. When he grew up he was to
-resume his mother’s name, and unite the resplendency of the Mortimers
-with the money of the Darnleys; and then, when her father died, it
-was an open secret that the dignities of the House would be revived
-in the person of her son. Gundred felt that through her own wifely
-and motherly virtues she had been privileged to support the banner of
-March and Brakelond. It was because she had always been so humble, so
-devout, that such an honour had been vouchsafed her, and her son was
-doubly precious in her eyes, not only in himself, but as the Duke of
-her own providing, who should continue, from his high place, to set an
-example of Evangelical piety to the people of England. She shuddered
-at the thought of allowing her jewel to run into danger, and made haste
-to make it very certain to Jim that in no circumstances would he be
-allowed to share Ivor’s descent of Long Kern.
-
-‘You don’t want to get wet and cold right down there in the horrid
-dark--no?’ concluded Gundred ingratiatingly.
-
-‘But it won’t be wet,’ protested the boy. ‘Father has had the stream
-dammed about two hundred yards above the hole. Otherwise they would not
-have been able to go down at all. They would all have been drowned. The
-water is very high just now, after the rain. But, as it is, it will be
-quite dry down in the caves.’
-
-But Gundred, strong in her private foresight of Heaven’s intentions,
-could not be swayed from her decision. Kingston was forced into the
-contest, and found himself compelled, for the sake of peace and
-dignity, to endorse his wife’s prohibition. Jim subsided at last,
-flushed with resentful disappointment. Gundred, meantime, was eating
-her egg dispassionately, with her usual seraphic tranquillity, while
-her heart was filled with strange, conflicting feelings. She looked
-across at Ivor Restormel with secret curiosity. She knew that he was
-doomed, and in the last moments could not stifle a certain pity which
-struck her as being faintly irreligious and painfully human. But he
-was so young and so beautiful, however evil and pernicious. To die
-down there in the eternal darkness, caught like a rat in a trap by the
-vengeance of Heaven, that was a pitiable fate. That it would assuredly
-descend Gundred could no longer entertain a doubt, and, when she
-remembered that it was her own prayers that had jogged Heaven into this
-intervention, she felt a dim pricking of remorse. During the few hours
-that remained she would be kind to the predestined victim. Ivor was
-pleasantly surprised by the suavity with which Lady Gundred offered him
-a second cup of tea.
-
-‘Do have some more,’ pleaded Gundred; ‘you will want to be properly
-prepared for this wonderful expedition of yours. Shall I tell them to
-make you up a little lunch?’
-
-In her heart of hearts she knew that he would never need lunch on earth
-again, and her economical temper grieved to think of the hard-boiled
-eggs and the cress sandwiches that would be wasted if her offer were
-accepted. But, as he could not be expected to know how profitless
-Heaven intended to make any packets of lunch that she might provide,
-she felt that the kindness must in common decency be offered.
-
-Ivor, however, replied that he hoped to be back at Ivescar in plenty
-of time for tea, and that he would not trouble about food till then.
-Gundred smiled and sighed to think how tragically he was mistaken.
-Her feelings were firm and rigid. Long thought and long anxiety had
-crystallized now into a mystic ecstasy of certainty. In the previous
-weeks she had known sore vacillations and distresses. But now the
-friendly Powers had made everything plain once more. Until this morning
-she had felt a certain weakness and need of earthly counsel; as a sound
-Evangelical Protestant, she had, of course, a proper pious horror of
-the priesthood and the confessional; and yet there had been times when
-she would have liked to pour forth her troubles to a fellow-creature.
-Had she consulted a doctor rather than a priest, he might have told
-her that an _idée fixe_ is not the healthiest companion for a woman of
-self-contained and secret nature, and that the previous generations of
-March and Brakelond, feeble-minded or eccentric, held out a special
-prospect of disaster when such an _idée fixe_ was cherished by herself.
-However, by now, the time for warnings and advice was past. Gundred
-was fully possessed by the mania that had arisen so naturally from
-her devout habits and her weak mind, wrought on by jealousy and by a
-tyrannous consciousness of being herself the chosen of Heaven. Now she
-faced what she foresaw to be the punishment of her enemy, with the cold
-calm of Jael. She was glad that Heaven had taken the affair so promptly
-into its own hands.
-
-Once before, her Celestial Ally, she remembered, had intervened by a
-miracle to relieve her from the perilous presence of Isabel Darrell.
-Now the same prodigy of favour was to be repeated in a different form,
-and who was she to carp at the tender mercies of the Almighty? With
-folded hands and placid heart she sat by to let matters take their
-appointed way. Nothing in all the world would so utterly have horrified
-her as the statement that she desired the death of Ivor Restormel. She
-repeated to herself again and again that she wanted nothing of the
-sort, but had perfect trust in the wisdom of the All-wise. She had no
-desires of any kind; nothing but pure faith. And to wish for anyone’s
-death, how very abominable and unchristian and unwomanly! Far, far from
-her gentle mind was any such truculent passion; the utmost that she
-would own to herself was that she would find it impossible to grieve
-when Heaven had taken her enemy to its mercy. And, as for altering
-the course of events, that was clearly out of the question. She could
-only await what Heaven should send. She now forgot that she herself,
-as it were, had given Heaven a nudge in the matter. She deliberately
-disclaimed all responsibility, and plumed herself on the mildness and
-resignation that her conduct showed. Stiff and calm in what by now was
-nothing short of monomania, the unfortunate woman sat and smiled, as
-her own damnation passed onwards to its accomplishment.
-
-Meanwhile, however, her husband was making a suggestion. She came back
-out of her dream to hear it.
-
-‘Why shouldn’t you and I and Jim go up to Long Kern and watch them
-go down?’ he said, anxious to indemnify Jim as far as possible for
-the disappointment which his mother had inflicted. As soon as Gundred
-understood the proposition she gasped. This seemed almost too heavy a
-trial for her to bear. Then she suddenly understood that this was the
-sanctifying sacrifice that Heaven demanded of her. She must stand by
-and watch the fulfilment of her prayers so as to make the intervention
-of Heaven complete and holy. She signified her assent.
-
-‘But we must be back in time for lunch, dear,’ she conditioned, living
-her dual life as ever, one-half of her personality dwelling perpetually
-in dining-rooms and drawing-rooms, while the other soared into the high
-domains of religious frenzy. Then, breakfast being over, she rose and
-went her way mechanically upon her household duties, pending the awful
-consummation of her destiny, at which she was so soon to assist.
-
-At the appointed time she was ready for the start. The others were
-waiting for her in the hall, and they proceeded silently up towards
-the hills. Jim was too excited to talk much; a scheme that demanded
-all his attention was budding in his brain; Gundred, by now, was
-moving in a remote world far above earthly speech, in communion with
-the invisible. Ivor himself vaguely discerned some strange exaltation
-beneath the restraint of Gundred’s mood, and was reluctant to intrude
-his conversation. And Kingston himself was so sick and tired of his
-long struggle to achieve the impossible recognition that he had not the
-heart nor the temper to say much to the perverse human individuality
-that intervened so bitterly between him and the eternal memory it
-contained. So they surmounted the long ridges of limestone, and came
-out at last upon the stretches of moor above that undulated gently
-upward towards the steep skirt of the Simonstone. The air that morning
-was clean and pure, filled with a white light and a bracing virility
-of tone; much rain had fallen in the last two days, and the atmosphere
-was moist and brilliant in colouring; great snowy ranges of cloud
-went sailing gloriously across the wet azure of Heaven, and the great
-mountain above towered high overhead in soft masses of brown and
-purplish green, while before them the moorland rolled away in waves
-of rust-coloured velvet, to where it suddenly ceased, in a sharp line
-that seemed the rim of the world, beneath which, far below, lay the
-broad valley and the plain-lands. The surface of the fell had folds
-and dimples and crests, but in the huge monotony of the expanse it
-appeared a waved sea of colour. Down the little gullies ran here and
-there a stream, riotous after the rains of over-night; here and there
-in the levels lay a small peat-pool that glittered like a forgotten
-silver shield among the sedges. And then they came at last to a deeper,
-steeper cañon, which soon broke off in a blind hollow, ringed in by
-precipitous banks of heather. And here it was that the stream which
-filled the channel disappeared. Long Kern was impressive in its very
-unimpressiveness. It was but a short and narrow slit between two masses
-of flat white limestone, and across the orifice a fallen boulder made a
-bridge. Hardly two yards intervened between the one lip and the other.
-And in that space yawned a solid shaft of black night. Sheer down and
-down fell the water that filled the chasm, three hundred feet and
-more, to the rayless labyrinth of caverns that made the heart of the
-mountain. Coming suddenly across this rift in the moorland one would
-at first have thought it nothing, a drop, perhaps of a fathom or so.
-It was terribly inconspicuous and prosaic. Then, stepping along the
-rocky bridge that crossed it, one might be struck with a suggestion
-of its possibilities, and, throwing a rock into the darkness, might
-hear, after a long pause, the crashing rumble of its impact far below,
-as it bounded and dashed from ledge to ledge and side to side of the
-gulf, till it sent faintly up to the listener’s ear its last remote
-thunderous echoes from the black lake three hundred feet below, where
-the dim roar reverberated along the walls and ramifications of the
-cavern.
-
-On the brink the party paused. Ordinarily the place was lonely and
-desolate, but to-day there were signs of occupation and activities.
-Beams were stretched across the narrow gulf, and coils of rope were
-lying ready. The Rovers were scattered about, making their preparations
-for the descent. They were a club of professional men from the
-neighbouring large manufacturing towns, who amused themselves by
-exploring the recesses of the caves that honeycombed the Simonstone.
-On many previous occasions Kingston had made their efforts easier.
-And to-day, for the exploration of Long Kern, he had given them
-indispensable help by having the rain-swollen stream dammed off. The
-bed of the river was now nearly dry, and the water diverted into
-another channel. Otherwise, as Jim had said, the descent would have
-been impossible. The Rovers were very grateful, accordingly, for this
-spirited collaboration, and gave the Darnleys a warm welcome. To all
-four they extended an offer to make the descent, and when it appeared
-that Ivor Restormel was the only one who would accept their invitation,
-they showed a little disappointment. With Jim especially they pled to
-accompany them, tantalizing him cruelly, and were only made to desist
-at last by the unequivocal firmness of Lady Gundred’s hostility
-towards the proposal. And so they set about the last preparations.
-Gaily talking and laughing among themselves, they proceeded to the
-fastening of ropes and the final arrangements for the descent.
-
-Suddenly Gundred could bear the ordeal no longer. The matter-of-fact,
-innocent cheerfulness of it all was too much for her, with her terrible
-secret foreknowledge. She knew that Heaven had doomed every one of
-those happy people, so as to make sure of Ivor Restormel. Of course,
-he alone might fall, or strangle, or have a stone dropped on his head.
-But, on the whole, it was far more likely, far more in accordance
-with Scriptural precedent, that guilty and innocent should all perish
-together. So much the worse for the innocent! Her mystic exaltation
-did not go the length of protesting against their fatal plan at the
-eleventh hour, but it was not quite firm and faithful enough to bear
-the grim spectacle unmoved. She turned hastily and moved away up the
-empty bed of the stream, leaving Jim and her husband to watch the
-descent. From the bend in the river-bed she turned to take a last look
-at her enemy. He was still chattering and smiling with his friends,
-adapting the rope, adjusting satchels and packages. Kingston was saying
-something at which they both laughed. Then Gundred, very sick and heavy
-at heart, in spite of her sense of sacred ecstasy, turned the corner
-and was out of sight of the pothole.
-
-Kingston eyed the narrow gulf of darkness with unspoken dread. Now, at
-the last moment, he disliked Ivor’s determination to share the descent.
-He hated the idea of watching the boy disappear into that night below.
-It seemed too symbolic of that eternal night into which the restored
-memory must one day pass again. And yet, the granting of his own
-importunate desire, what had it brought him except the bitterness of a
-yet fiercer, more insatiable desire? For a while he would even be glad
-to have rest from his tormenting, baffling intimacy with the secret
-thing that could never hear the cry of his voice. Let the boy go down,
-then, into the darkness, carrying with him that wonderful mystical
-thing that he enshrined. Kingston’s fingers were raw and bleeding,
-his whole soul broken and agonized with long fruitless plucking and
-battering at the locked doors of that shrine. Let it go, then, for
-half an hour, and leave him at peace. As it had returned to him once
-before, out of the greater darkness of the grave, so, in the course of
-a few moments, it would come back to light again from the darkness of
-the pit, and all his torments would be renewed, growing ever keener
-and fiercer towards the dim end that he dared not try to foresee. The
-knowledge of doom was black and heavy upon him as he watched the boy
-preparing for his disappearance, and, in the concentration of his
-bitter mood, he hardly heard the voice of Jim, now once more raised in
-eager pleading to be allowed the joy of the descent.
-
-Gundred meanwhile was wandering on in a stupor, not thinking, not
-daring to think. The whole of life seemed to her to be hanging in
-suspense. The next half-hour was to vindicate her righteousness and
-make dreadfully manifest the majesty of Heaven. Her brain oscillated
-in coma, and she was no longer conscious of any pain or any feeling
-at all. Everything passed from her mind except the actual physical
-pleasure of the moment, the keen freshness of the air, the lovely
-colours of life, the myriad little voices that haunted the world. Then
-suddenly they were all merged in one vehement, rushing murmur. She
-looked down. She had arrived at the dam that diverted the stream.
-
-A bank of turf and stones had been built, and against its barrier the
-brown water surged and ravened angrily, in a froth of white bubbles
-and spume, eager to take its old way down into the pothole and the
-caverns below. Disappointed, however, of its hope, it must needs go
-foaming and scolding along an unaccustomed course, over green grasses,
-drenched and streaming in its current, and down a slope of rush and
-sedge. Soothed unconsciously by its hum, Gundred sat down and idly
-watched the raging swirl of the water. It was well that the stream had
-been thus firmly held back and diverted, for a huge mass of water it
-was that made it so turbulent. After two days’ rain on the Simonstone,
-all the waters of the mountain were in flood, and the Long Kern should
-naturally have been filled with a roaring spate. Suddenly Gundred’s
-human consciousness was vaguely aware of an alteration. Something
-seemed to be shifting, the noise of the fretted torrent changing its
-note. Then she saw a filament of water percolating. As she watched, it
-widened. The dam was not strong enough to bear the surging wrath behind
-it. The dam was breaking; Gundred awoke with a violent start. She rose
-and turned impulsively towards the pothole--on the point of running, of
-shrieking a warning, of doing something helpful or human. Then, in an
-instant, she understood that she could do nothing--understood what it
-was that Heaven had achieved for her. Her prayer had been answered. She
-must give thanks, and stand aside.
-
-Firmly, decidedly, with head carried high, and the fanatic’s mad light
-in her eyes, Gundred turned away from the stream and walked swiftly
-home across the moor. What came after was the work of Heaven. Heaven
-must take full responsibility. Heaven had broken the dam; Heaven might
-easily have ordained that the descent should not yet have commenced.
-Gundred had done nothing. Heaven had done it all. She could only go
-quietly home and trust in the wise mercies of Providence. In an hour or
-so she would hear what had happened.
-
-But, though she did not know it, the strain on her endurance was
-fearfully heavy. She found her mind perpetually wandering back to the
-Long Kern, wondering in an agony whether the explorers had already
-embarked on their adventure when that roaring volume of brown water
-had swept thunderously down upon them--wondering whereabouts in
-that perilous chasm it had caught them, what it must feel like to
-be so suddenly, so fearfully battered out of life, and swept away
-into the abysses of the Underworld. Her brain was a sickening chaos.
-Fire and water, fire and water; the two great moments of her life
-had come to her through fire and water. Through the roaring waters
-of that broken dam she vaguely remembered the roaring fires of
-Brakelond. Isabel--Isabel--in a way, had given her life for Gundred;
-and Gundred?--Gundred, after many years, had, in a way, stood by and
-watched the taking of other lives. Dimly, instinctively, she could not
-refrain from comparing the two catastrophes, from feeling a blind,
-illogical sense that they stood in some mystic relation to each other.
-And so, alone, she came at last to Ivescar.
-
-Her training stood her in good stead, and enabled her to go
-subconsciously through the routine duties of her day. She did not put
-off lunch when her husband failed to return, but ate it in solitary
-state, and heartily--recognising that it was always her duty to sustain
-her body. Her soul, however, was very far away. In her inmost heart
-she knew that Ivor Restormel was dead. She did not dare to face the
-knowledge and understand it, but it was there, gnawing, persistent.
-She steeled herself to bear the terrible news that Jim and Kingston
-must soon be bringing back. And lunch must be kept hot for them. As the
-hours went by and brought no certainty to end her growing suspense, the
-pandemonium of clamouring voices in Gundred’s brain grew louder, more
-confused, more frightening. She seemed on the very edge of something
-very horrible--she, the favourite, the chosen, the glorified of Heaven.
-Something very horrible was surging into sight. In another moment she
-would see it. Terror--mysterious, ghastly--seized and gripped her. Then
-in the silence she heard approaching footsteps. The Horror was at hand.
-Gundred rose, pale and trembling, exerting all her forces, even in this
-last moment, to preserve the outward decorum of her demeanour. The door
-opened, and her husband came into the room. She stared at him in dumb
-dread. For a moment he could command no words. In silence his eyes met
-hers. His voice was low and husky and shattered, when at last he had
-gathered strength to speak.
-
-‘Gundred,’ he whispered--‘Gundred....’
-
-She interrupted him. Now, in the fulfilment of her destiny, a dreadful
-courage flowed back to her.
-
-‘Something terrible has happened,’ she said; ‘tell me quickly.’
-
-He was too busy with his own grief to notice that she seemed prepared
-for what she was about to hear.
-
-‘The dam,’ he answered--‘the dam. It broke. It burst as soon as they
-had gone down.’
-
-Gundred clasped her hands tightly to prevent their trembling from being
-observed. She spoke as if in a dream.
-
-‘And Ivor,’ she asked, unconsciously using the Christian name--‘Ivor,
-is he safe?’
-
-Kingston laughed bitterly.
-
-‘Safe?’ he cried--‘safe? Ivor is dead. They are all dead. I waited
-till they had got the bodies up. The flood soon subsided, and the men
-were able to get down and find the bodies. That is why I waited.’
-
-Gundred moaned. The reality was more crushing than she had ever feared.
-God had granted her desire, but in a terrific way, and its granting
-brought her small joy. She almost ceased to feel holy.
-
-‘Oh, Kingston,’ she murmured.... ‘Kingston, how awful! Too shocking to
-think of--too shocking to think of.’ She shook her head, covering her
-eyes as if to shut out the vision of those wretched adventurers caught
-and swept away by the flood which her prayers had loosed upon them.
-In that moment she felt a murderess. And the sanctity of the murder
-faded from her mind. Then she turned to the one spot of comfort in the
-whole disaster. What a merciful interposition of Heaven it was that had
-prevented her from allowing Jim to make the descent. That preservation
-in itself showed the special favour of the Almighty. He had set her son
-apart from the catastrophe that He had ordained. Her voice was calmer
-as she uncovered her face and spoke again.
-
-‘And Jim?’ she asked. ‘What have you done with him? I do pray he did
-not see this dreadful sight. Poor little Jim! What an awful shock it
-would have been!’ Then she caught her husband’s eye, and paused in
-sudden terror of what she saw there.... ‘Kingston?’ she cried. He could
-give no answer. ‘Kingston?’ she repeated sharply, her voice rising to a
-shrill note of anxiety. ‘Kingston, what is it?’
-
-‘Jim went down with the others,’ said her husband in a low, colourless
-tone. ‘He wanted so much to go. I said he might. Jim went down with the
-others.’
-
-Gundred gave a short cry.
-
-‘Then how did you succeed in saving him?’ she gasped. ‘How was it he
-was not drowned with the others? Kingston, how did you succeed in
-saving him?’
-
-‘I did not,’ answered Kingston very quietly. ‘Jim is drowned. They are
-bringing back his body now with the others.’
-
-‘No,’ said Gundred, in a fearful stupefaction of calm--‘no, it is
-not possible. Jim is not dead. God must have saved him. It is not
-possible.’ Then her quiet cracked like glass. ‘Kingston,’ she screamed,
-‘say it is not possible. Jim is safe.’
-
-The father shook his head. ‘Jim is drowned,’ he repeated. ‘Drowned with
-the others.’
-
-A deadly silence fell between them. Gundred pressed both hands to her
-head. The brain inside was a fiery wheel of agony, blinding her with
-the coruscations of its anguish. Then at last her hands sank to her
-sides and she looked up. Her face was fixed and ghastly, her voice
-unnaturally stolid as she spoke.
-
-‘There!’ said Gundred very slowly and deliberately. ‘That is what comes
-of disobeying one’s mother!’ Then she broke abruptly into peal on peal
-of high laughter. Shrieking with horrible merriment, she fell back upon
-the sofa, rocking to and fro in the convulsion of her madness. Kingston
-dropped into a chair, and hid his head in his hands. It seemed as if
-that fearful noise would never cease. And yet he could see nothing,
-hear nothing. He was alone for ever in the black darkness. Everything
-was gone. And still Gundred sat and laughed.
-
-THE END
-
-BILLING AND SONS, LTD., PRINTERS, GUILDFORD.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Telegrams: ‘Scholarly, London.’
-
-41 and 43 Maddox Street, Bond Street, London, W., _January, 1907_.
-
-Mr. Edward Arnold’s List of New Books.
-
-MEMORIES.
-
-By MAJOR-GENERAL SIR OWEN TUDOR BURNE, G.C.I.E., K.C.S.I.
-
-_Demy 8vo. With Illustrations._ =15s. net.=
-
-Sir Owen Burne joined the 20th Regiment (now the Lancashire Fusiliers)
-in 1855. He came in for the end of the Crimean War and served
-throughout the Indian Mutiny, receiving two steps in rank for gallantry
-in the field. Not long afterwards he became Military Secretary to the
-Commander-in-Chief, Sir Hugh Rose. He was Private Secretary to Lord
-Mayo until his assassination, and made a personal report on that tragic
-event to the Queen. Later he became Secretary in the Political and
-Secret Department of the India Office. He was also Private Secretary
-to Lord Lytton, when Viceroy, and served ten years as a member of the
-Council of India.
-
-An interesting chapter of Sir Owen’s reminiscences deals with the year
-1873, when, as Political A.D.C. to the Secretary of State for India,
-he assisted Sir Henry Rawlinson in taking charge of the Shah of Persia
-during his visit to England. Copious extracts are given from His
-Majesty’s diary, which has come into Sir Owen’s hands.
-
-The book is a lively record of a distinguished career, freely
-interspersed with amusing stories, and illustrated with photographs of
-some noteworthy groups.
-
-LONDON: EDWARD ARNOLD, 41 & 43 MADDOX STREET, W.
-
- * * * * *
-
-SOME PROBLEMS OF EXISTENCE.
-
-By NORMAN PEARSON.
-
-_Demy 8vo._ =7s. 6d. net.=
-
-Dealing with such Problems of Existence as the origin of life, spirit
-and matter, free will, determinism and morality, and the sense of sin,
-Mr. Pearson lays down as postulates for a theory which philosophy and
-religion may be able to accept, and which science need not reject--(1)
-the existence of a Deity; (2) the immortality of man; and (3) a Divine
-scheme of evolution of which we form part, and which, as expressing the
-purpose of the Deity, proceeds under the sway of an inflexible order.
-The author’s method is well calculated to appeal to the general reader,
-though some of his conclusions as to the past and future of humanity
-differ considerably from popularly received opinions on the subject.
-
- * * * * *
-
-SIX RADICAL THINKERS.
-
-By JOHN MACCUNN, LL.D.,
-
-PROFESSOR OF PHILOSOPHY IN THE UNIVERSITY OF LIVERPOOL.
-
-_Crown 8vo._ =6s. net.=
-
-These brilliant essays possess an exceptional interest at the present
-moment when Liberal and Radical principles bulk so largely in the
-political arena. The six main subjects of Professor MacCunn’s volume
-are Bentham and his Philosophy of Reform, the Utilitarian Optimism
-of John Stuart Mill, the Commercial Radicalism of Cobden, the
-Anti-Democratic Radicalism of Thomas Carlyle, the Religious Radicalism
-of Joseph Mazzini, and the Political Idealism of T. H. Green.
-
- * * * * *
-
-LETTERS FROM THE FAR EAST.
-
-By Sir CHARLES ELIOT, K.C.M.G.,
-
-AUTHOR OF ‘TURKEY IN EUROPE,’ ‘THE EAST AFRICAN PROTECTORATE,’ ETC.
-
-_Demy 8vo. With Illustrations._ =8s. 6d. net.=
-
-This is an exceedingly interesting series of letters on the political
-and social situation in India, China, Japan, and the Far East generally.
-
- * * * * *
-
-A PICNIC PARTY IN WILDEST AFRICA.
-
-By C. W. L. BULPETT.
-
-Being a Sketch of a Winter’s Trip to some of the Unknown Waters of the
-Upper Nile.
-
-_Demy 8vo. With Illustrations and Map._ =12s. 6d. net.=
-
-The object of the expedition described in this book was to survey the
-Musha and Boma plateaux, which lie between the River Akobo and Lake
-Rudolf. It was organized by Mr. W. N. McMillan, an experienced American
-traveller, and was remarkably successful, though the fact that one of
-the caravans marched thirty-eight days on half-rations, largely through
-a country flooded by incessant rain, shows that the excursion was very
-far from being altogether a picnic. Mounts Ungwala and Naita were
-ascended, and hundreds of square miles of previously unexplored country
-were surveyed and mapped. The accounts of the abundance of game will
-make the sportsman’s mouth water.
-
-A considerable amount of the description of scenery and life on the
-Nile and Sobat is extracted from the journal of Mrs. McMillan, who
-accompanied her husband. Many of the illustrations are from drawings
-made on the spot by Mr. Jessen, cartographer of the expedition.
-
- * * * * *
-
-TIPPOO TIB.
-
-The Story of a Central African Despot.
-
-Narrated from his own accounts by Dr. HEINRICH BRODE.
-
-_Demy 8vo. With Portrait._ =10s. 6d. net.=
-
-In the course of a prolonged residence at Zanzibar as consular
-representative of Germany, Dr. Brode became intimately acquainted with
-the celebrated adventurer Tippoo Tib, and succeeded in inducing him
-to write the story of his life. This he did, in Swaheli, using Arabic
-characters, which Dr. Brode transcribed for translation into German.
-The material thus supplied by Tippoo Tib has been expanded by Dr. Brode
-into a remarkable picture of Africa before and during its transition
-into the hands of the white man.
-
- * * * * *
-
-THE PRINCES OF ACHAIA AND THE CHRONICLES OF MOREA.
-
-A Study of Greece in the Middle Ages.
-
-By Sir RENNELL RODD, G.C.V.O., K.C.M.G., C.B.,
-
-AUTHOR OF ‘CUSTOMS AND LORE OF MODERN GREECE,’ ‘FEDA, AND OTHER POEMS,’
-‘THE UNKNOWN MADONNA,’ ‘BALLADS OF THE FLEET,’ ETC.
-
-_2 Volumes. Demy 8vo. With Illustrations and Map._ =25s. net.=
-
-In this masterly work Sir Rennell Rodd deals with a curiously
-interesting and fascinating subject which has never been treated of in
-English, though a few scanty notices of the period may be found. It is
-gratifying to know that the British School in Athens has of late turned
-its attention to the Byzantine and Frankish remains in the Morea.
-Meanwhile this book will fill a great blank in the historical knowledge
-of most people.
-
- * * * * *
-
-THUCYDIDES MYTHISTORICUS.
-
-By F. M. CORNFORD, M.A.,
-
-FELLOW AND LECTURER AT TRINITY COLLEGE, CAMBRIDGE.
-
-_Demy 8vo._ =10s. 6d. net.=
-
-This is an important contribution to the study of Thucydides. Having
-attributed the causes of the Peloponnesian War almost entirely to
-commercial factors, Mr. Cornford shows how Thucydides, free from modern
-ideas of causation, unfolds the tragedy of Athens, led by Fortune at
-Pylos, by the Hybris and Infatuation of Cleon and Alcibiades, to the
-Nemesis of Syracuse. The book will be found interesting by all students
-of history. All passages from Greek authors are quoted in English in
-the text, which can be understood without reference to the Greek in the
-footnotes.
-
- * * * * *
-
-GREEK LIVES FROM PLUTARCH.
-
-Newly Translated by C. E. BYLES, B.A.,
-
-FORMERLY EXHIBITIONER OF ST. JOHN’S COLLEGE, CAMBRIDGE.
-
-_Crown 8vo. With Illustrations and Maps._ =1s. 6d.=
-
-This is an entirely new translation abridged from the Greek. Although
-primarily intended for the use of schools, it should be found
-acceptable by the general reader.
-
- * * * * *
-
-THE NEXT STREET BUT ONE.
-
-By M. LOANE,
-
-AUTHOR OF ‘THE QUEEN’S POOR.’
-
-_Crown 8vo._ =6s.=
-
-Like its predecessor, this book is not only a mine of interesting and
-amusing sketches of life among the poor, but, in its more serious
-aspect, a remarkable and most valuable corrective of many widely
-prevalent and erroneous views about the habits of thought and ethics of
-the poorer classes.
-
- * * * * *
-
-A HUNTING CATECHISM.
-
-By COLONEL R. F. MEYSEY-THOMPSON,
-
-AUTHOR OF ‘REMINISCENCES OF THE COURSE, THE CAMP, AND THE CHASE,’ ‘A
-FISHING CATECHISM,’ AND ‘A SHOOTING CATECHISM.’
-
-_Foolscap 8vo._ =3s. 6d. net.=
-
-This, the third of Colonel Meysey-Thompson’s invaluable handbooks,
-will appeal to hunting men as strongly as the previous volumes did to
-lovers of rod and gun. The information given is absolutely practical,
-the result of forty years’ experience, and is largely conveyed in the
-form of Question and Answer. The arrangement is especially calculated
-to facilitate easy reference.
-
- * * * * *
-
-AT THE WORKS.
-
-A Study of a North Country Town.
-
-By LADY BELL,
-
-AUTHOR OF ‘THE DEAN OF ST. PATRICK’S,’ ‘THE ARBITER,’ ETC., ETC.
-
-_Crown 8vo._ =6s.=
-
-In this little book Lady Bell has entered upon a new branch of
-literature. It is not a novel, but a description of the industrial and
-social condition of the ironworkers of the North Country.
-
- * * * * *
-
-INDIVIDUAL OWNERSHIP AND THE GROWTH OF MODERN CIVILIZATION.
-
-Being HENRI DE TOURVILLE’S ‘Histoire de la Formation Particulariste,’
-translated by M. G. LOCH.
-
-_Demy 8vo._
-
-The articles which are here presented in the form of a volume were
-contributed by the author to the French periodical _La Science Sociale_
-over a period of six years ending in February, 1903. His death occurred
-within a few days of his completing the work. M. de Tourville, after
-showing that the transformation of the communal into the particularist
-family took place in Scandinavia, and was largely due to the peculiar
-geographical character of the Western slope, traces the development of
-modern Europe from the action of the particularist type of society upon
-the fabric of Roman civilization.
-
- * * * * *
-
-MEMORIES OF THE MONTHS.
-
-FOURTH SERIES.
-
-By the Right Hon. Sir HERBERT MAXWELL, BART., F.R.S.
-
-_Large crown 8vo. With Photogravure Illustrations._ =7s. 6d.=
-
-This fresh instalment of Sir Herbert Maxwell’s delightful ‘Memories of
-the Months’ will be welcomed by lovers of his descriptions of country
-life.
-
- * * * * *
-
-NEW EDITION.
-
-LETTERS OF MARY SIBYLLA HOLLAND.
-
-Selected and Edited by her son, BERNARD HOLLAND.
-
-_Crown 8vo._ =7s. 6d. net.=
-
-To this, the third, edition of these attractive letters, Mr. Bernard
-Holland has added a large number of new letters, which were not
-included in the second edition, having been found or contributed since
-the date of its publication. The book is now in its final and complete
-form.
-
- * * * * *
-
-THE REMINISCENCES OF LADY DOROTHY NEVILL.
-
-Edited by her Son, RALPH NEVILL.
-
-_Demy 8vo. With Portrait._ =15s. net.=
-
-SIXTH IMPRESSION.
-
-There are very few persons living whose knowledge of English Society
-is, literally, so extensive and peculiar as Lady Dorothy Nevill’s,
-and fewer still whose recollections of a period extending from the
-day of the postchaise to that of the motor-car are as graphic and
-entertaining as hers. In the course of her life she has met almost
-every distinguished representative of literature, politics and art, and
-about many of them she has anecdotes to tell which have never before
-been made public. She has much to say of her intimate friends of an
-earlier day--Disraeli, the second Duke of Wellington, Bernal Osborne,
-Lord Ellenborough, and a dozen others--while a multitude of more
-modern personages pass in procession across her light-hearted pages.
-A reproduction of a recent crayon portrait by M. Cayron is given as
-frontispiece.
-
- * * * * *
-
-PERSONAL ADVENTURES AND ANECDOTES OF AN OLD OFFICER.
-
-By Colonel JAMES P. ROBERTSON, C.B.
-
-_Demy 8vo. With Portraits._ =12s. 6d. net.=
-
-The phrase ‘a charmed life’ is hackneyed, but it may be used with
-peculiar appropriateness to describe Colonel Robertson’s military
-career. ‘The history of my nose alone,’ says the cheery old soldier
-in his Preface, ‘would fill a chapter,’ and, indeed, not only his
-nose, but his whole body, seem to have spent their time in, at all
-events, running a risk of being seriously damaged in every possible
-way. The book, in fact, is simply full of fine confused fighting and
-hair-breadth escapes.
-
-Joining the 31st Regiment in 1842, Colonel Robertson took part in
-the Sutlej Campaign from Moodkee to Sobraon. He was in the Crimea,
-and throughout the Mutiny he commanded a regiment of Light Cavalry,
-doing repeatedly the most gallant service. The incidents of life in
-Ireland and the Ionian Islands during the intervals of peace are worthy
-of ‘Charles O’Malley,’ and are described with something of Lever’s
-raciness of touch.
-
- * * * * *
-
-THE AFTERMATH OF WAR.
-
-An Account of the Repatriation of Boers and Natives in the Orange River
-Colony.
-
-By G. B. BEAK.
-
-_Demy 8vo. With Illustrations and Map._ =12s. 6d. net.=
-
-The author, after serving nearly two and a half years in the South
-African War, was appointed Assistant Secretary of the Orange River
-Colony Repatriation Department, and subsequently Assistant Director
-of Relief under the Government. His information is thus not only
-first-hand but unique. The book is illustrated with some extremely
-interesting photographs.
-
- ‘The book is sure to become a standard work, for it throws a flood
- of light upon and solves many of the knotty questions of that
- period which have agitated men’s minds at home and abroad.’--_Daily
- Telegraph._
-
- * * * * *
-
-PATROLLERS OF PALESTINE.
-
-By the REV. HASKETT SMITH, M.A., F.R.G.S.
-
-EDITOR OF ‘MURRAY’S HANDBOOK TO SYRIA AND PALESTINE,’ 1902;
-
-_Large crown 8vo. With Illustrations._ =10s. 6d.=
-
-The late Mr. Haskett Smith was a well-known authority on the Holy Land,
-and in this book he personally conducts a typical party of English
-tourists to some of the more important sites hallowed by tradition.
-
- ‘The reader is not only charmed by the pleasant experiences and the
- interesting discussions of the pilgrims, but at the same time he
- acquires a great deal of information which would otherwise have to be
- sought in a combination of cyclopædia, “Speaker’s Commentary,” and
- guide-book.’--_Tribune._
-
- * * * * *
-
-POLITICAL CARICATURES, 1906.
-
-By Sir F. CARRUTHERS GOULD.
-
-_Super royal 4to._ =6s. net.=
-
-The change of Government, with the consequent variety of political
-topics, very greatly enhances the attraction of this new volume of
-cartoons by ‘Sir F. C. G.’ If the increased acerbity of political
-relations is found to be slightly reflected in these later cartoons,
-the many fresh and interesting studies are no less happily handled than
-those produced under the Conservative régime.
-
- * * * * *
-
-NEW FICTION.
-
-_Crown 8vo._ =6s.= _each._
-
- THE SUNDERED STREAMS.
- By REGINALD FARRER,
- AUTHOR OF ‘THE GARDEN OF ASIA’ AND ‘THE HOUSE OF SHADOWS.’
-
- BENEDICT KAVANAGH.
- By GEORGE A. BIRMINGHAM,
- AUTHOR OF ‘THE SEETHING POT’ AND ‘HYACINTH.’
-
- THE GOLDEN HAWK.
- By EDITH RICKERT,
- AUTHOR OF ‘THE REAPER’ AND ‘FOLLY.’
-
- FOURTH IMPRESSION.
- THE LADY ON
- THE DRAWINGROOM FLOOR.
- By M. E. COLERIDGE.
-
- SECOND IMPRESSION.
- THE MILLMASTER.
- By C. HOLMES CAUTLEY.
-
- SECOND IMPRESSION.
- QUICKSILVER AND FLAME.
- By ST. JOHN LUCAS.
-
- SECOND IMPRESSION.
- THE BASKET OF FATE.
- By SIDNEY PICKERING.
-
- OCCASION’S FORELOCK.
- By VIOLET A. SIMPSON.
-
- * * * * *
-
-ABYSSINIA OF TO-DAY.
-
-An Account of the First Mission sent by the American Government to the
-King of Kings.
-
-By ROBERT P. SKINNER,
-
-COMMISSIONER TO ABYSSINIA, 1903-1904; AMERICAN CONSUL-GENERAL; FELLOW
-OF THE AMERICAN GEOGRAPHICAL SOCIETY; SOCI DOU FELIBRIGE.
-
-_Demy 8vo. With numerous Illustrations and Map._ =12s. 6d. net.=
-
-The object of this American Mission to the Emperor Menelik was to
-negotiate a commercial treaty. The Mission was extremely well received,
-and the expedition appears to have been a complete success. The
-picture drawn by Mr. Skinner of the Abyssinians and their ruler is an
-exceedingly agreeable one; and his notes on this land of grave faces,
-elaborate courtesy, classic tone, and Biblical civilization, its
-history, politics, language, literature, religion, and trade, are full
-of interest; there are also some valuable hints on the organization and
-equipment of a caravan.
-
- * * * * *
-
-WESTERN TIBET AND THE BRITISH BORDERLAND.
-
-By CHARLES A. SHERRING, M.A., F.R.G.S.,
-
-INDIAN CIVIL SERVICE; DEPUTY COMMISSIONER OF ALMORA.
-
-_Royal 8vo. With Illustrations, Maps and Sketches._ =21s. net.=
-
-During the last few years Tibet, wrapped through the centuries in
-mystery, has been effectively ‘opened up’ to the gaze of the Western
-world, and already the reader has at his disposal an enormous mass of
-information on the country and its inhabitants. But there is in Western
-Tibet a region which is still comparatively little known, which is
-especially sacred to the Hindu and Buddhist, and in which curious myths
-and still more curious manners abound; and it is of this portion of the
-British Borderland, its government, and the religion and customs of its
-peoples, that Mr. Sherring writes.
-
-The book contains a thrilling account by Dr. T. G. Longstaff, M.B.,
-F.R.G.S., of an attempt to climb Gurla Mandhata, the highest mountain
-in Western Tibet, with two Swiss guides.
-
- * * * * *
-
-LETTERS OF GEORGE BIRKBECK HILL, D.C.L., LL.D., Hon. Fellow of Pembroke
-College, Oxford.
-
-Arranged by his Daughter, LUCY CRUMP.
-
-_Demy 8vo. With Portraits._ =12s. 6d. net.=
-
-Dr. Birkbeck Hill’s ‘Letters’ form, with a few connecting links written
-by his daughter, an autobiography whose charm lies in its intimate
-portrayal of a character which was, in its curious intensity, at
-once learned, tender, and humorous. He wrote as he talked, and his
-talk was famous for its fund of anecdote, of humour, of deep poetic
-feeling, of vigorous literary criticism, and no less vigorous political
-sentiment. As an Oxford undergraduate, he was one of the founders,
-together with Mr. Swinburne, Prof. A. V. Dicey, and Mr. James Bryce,
-of the Old Mortality Club. He was intimately connected also with the
-Pre-Raphaelites. At college, at home, on the Continent, or in America,
-everywhere he writes with the pen of one who observes everything, and
-who could fit all he saw that was new into his vast knowledge of the
-past. His editions of ‘Boswell’s Johnson,’ of ‘Johnson’s Letters,’ and
-‘The Lives of the Poets’ have passed into classical works. But that
-his writings were not exclusively Johnsonian is abundantly shown by
-such books as the Letters of Hume, Swift, General Gordon, and Rossetti,
-as well as by his ‘Life of Sir Rowland Hill,’ his ‘History of Harvard
-University,’ and various collections of essays.
-
- * * * * *
-
-LETTERS TO A GODCHILD ON THE CATECHISM AND CONFIRMATION.
-
-By ALICE GARDNER,
-
-ASSOCIATE AND LECTURER OF NEWNHAM COLLEGE, CAMBRIDGE; AUTHOR OF
-‘FRIENDS OF THE OLDEN TIME,’ ‘THEODORE OF STUDIUM,’ ETC.
-
-_Foolscap 8vo._ =2s. 6d. net.=
-
-This series of actual Letters written to an actual Godchild on the
-subject of Confirmation is intended for parents and teachers who either
-feel that some of the instruction to be derived from the Catechism is
-obscured by archaism of style and thought, or who desire something in
-the way of a supplement to the Catechism. It is not intended to take
-the place of works of formal religious instruction.
-
- * * * * *
-
-TRANSLATIONS INTO LATIN AND GREEK VERSE.
-
-By H. A. J. MUNRO,
-
-SOMETIME FELLOW OF TRINITY COLLEGE, AND PROFESSOR OF LATIN IN THE
-UNIVERSITY OF CAMBRIDGE.
-
-With a Prefatory Note by J. D. DUFF,
-
-FELLOW OF TRINITY COLLEGE, CAMBRIDGE.
-
-_Medium 8vo. With a Portrait._ =6s. net.=
-
-These translations were originally printed for private circulation
-in the autumn of 1884, a few months before the author’s death. They
-were never published, and for years past the price asked for the book
-second-hand has been high. It has therefore been decided, with the
-consent of Munro’s representatives, to reprint the work, so that those
-who are interested in Latin Verse and in Munro may acquire a copy at a
-reasonable price.
-
- * * * * *
-
-NEW AND CHEAPER EDITION.
-
-THE QUEEN’S POOR.
-
-Life as they find it in Town and Country.
-
-By M. LOANE.
-
-_Crown 8vo._ =3s. 6d.=
-
-Sir Arthur Clay, Bart., says of this book: ‘I have had a good deal of
-experience of “relief” work, and I have never yet come across a book
-upon the subject of the “poor” which shows such true insight and such
-a grasp of reality in describing the life, habits, and mental attitude
-of our poorer fellow-citizens.... The whole book is not only admirable
-from a common-sense point of view, but it is extremely pleasant and
-interesting to read, and has the great charm of humour.’
-
- * * * * *
-
-NEW EDITION, ENTIRELY REWRITTEN.
-
-PSYCHOLOGY FOR TEACHERS.
-
-By C. LLOYD MORGAN, LL.D., F.R.S.,
-
-PRINCIPAL OF UNIVERSITY COLLEGE, BRISTOL; AUTHOR OF ‘THE SPRINGS OF
-CONDUCT,’ ‘HABIT AND INSTINCT,’ ETC.
-
-_Crown 8vo._ =4s. 6d.=
-
-For this edition, Professor Lloyd Morgan has entirely rewritten, and
-very considerably enlarged, his well-known work on this important
-subject. He has, in fact, practically made a new book of it.
-
- * * * * *
-
-MISREPRESENTATIVE WOMEN, AND OTHER VERSES.
-
-By HARRY GRAHAM,
-
-AUTHOR OF ‘RUTHLESS RHYMES FOR HEARTLESS HOMES,’ ‘BALLADS OF THE BOER
-WAR,’ ‘MISREPRESENTATIVE MEN,’ ‘FISCAL BALLADS,’ ‘VERSE AND WORSE,’ ETC.
-
-_Foolscap 4to. With Illustrations by_ DAN SAYRE GROESBECK. =5s.=
-
-Admirers of Captain Graham’s ingenious and sarcastic verse will welcome
-this fresh instalment, which contains, among the ‘other verses,’ a
-number of ‘Poetic Paraphrases’ and ‘Open Letters’ to popular authors.
-
- * * * * *
-
-THE LAND OF PLAY.
-
-By MRS. GRAHAM WALLAS.
-
-_Crown 8vo. With Illustrations by Gilbert James._ =3s. 6d.=
-
-The four stories which make up this delightful children’s book are
-entitled ‘Luck-Child,’ ‘The Princess and the Ordinary Little Girl,’
-‘Professor Green,’ and ‘A Position of Trust.’
-
- * * * * *
-
-A SONG-GARDEN FOR CHILDREN.
-
-A Collection of Children’s Songs
-
-Adapted from the French and German by
-
-HARRY GRAHAM AND ROSA NEWMARCH.
-
-The Music Edited and Arranged by NORMAN O’NEILL.
-
-_Imperial 8vo. Paper._ =2s. 6d. net.=
-
-_Cloth, gilt top._ =4s. 6d. net.=
-
-This is a charming collection of forty-three French and German songs
-for children translated and adapted by Capt. Graham and Mrs. Newmarch.
-It includes nine songs arranged by J. Brahms for the children of Robert
-and Clara Schumann.
-
- * * * * *
-
-A HANDBOOK OF SKIN DISEASES AND THEIR TREATMENT.
-
-By ARTHUR WHITFIELD, M.D. (LOND.), F.R.C.P.,
-
-PROFESSOR OF DERMATOLOGY AT KING’S COLLEGE; PHYSICIAN TO THE SKIN
-DEPARTMENTS, KING’S COLLEGE AND THE GREAT NORTHERN CENTRAL HOSPITALS.
-
-_Crown 8vo. With Illustrations._ =8s. 6d. net.=
-
-This book is designed especially to meet the needs of those who have
-to treat the commoner skin diseases. While giving short descriptions
-of the rarer forms, the chief attention is bestowed on those
-more frequently met with. The diagnostic features of the various
-eruptions are dealt with in detail, in order that they may give
-help in determining the lines of treatment. The more recent work in
-clinical pathology, both microscopical and chemical, is for the first
-time brought into use in an English text-book. The book is freely
-illustrated with original photographs.
-
- * * * * *
-
-THE CHEMICAL INVESTIGATION OF GASTRIC AND INTESTINAL DISEASES BY THE
-AID OF TEST MEALS.
-
-By VAUGHAN HARLEY, M.D. EDIN., M.R.C.P., F.C.S.,
-
-PROFESSOR OF PATHOLOGICAL CHEMISTRY, UNIVERSITY COLLEGE, LONDON;
-
-And FRANCIS GOODBODY, M.D. DUB., M.R.C.P.,
-
-ASSISTANT PROFESSOR OF PATHOLOGICAL CHEMISTRY, UNIVERSITY COLLEGE,
-LONDON.
-
-_Demy 8vo._ =8s. 6d. net.=
-
-This book opens with a description of the method of obtaining gastric
-contents, and the estimation of the capacity of the stomach. The
-various Test Meals employed in diagnosis are next described. The
-macroscopical examination of the gastric contents and conclusions to
-be drawn on inspection are discussed, and a short description of the
-microscopical appearances follows. The chemical analysis of the gastric
-contents is then given. The Organic Diseases of the Stomach are all
-separately described, with specimen cases of analysis to illustrate
-them. The Functional Diseases of the Stomach, which are more frequently
-met with in ordinary practice than the Organic Diseases, are also very
-fully given. The chemical methods employed in the investigation of
-Intestinal Diseases are then described with great fulness, four types
-of Test Meals being given.
-
- * * * * *
-
-A GUIDE TO DISEASES OF THE NOSE AND THROAT AND THEIR TREATMENT.
-
-By CHARLES ARTHUR PARKER, F.R.C.S. EDIN.
-
-_Demy 8vo. With 254 Illustrations._ =18s. net.=
-
-EXTRACT FROM THE PREFACE.
-
-‘To acquire the necessary dexterity to examine a patient systematically
-so as to overlook nothing, to recognise and put in its proper place the
-particular pathological condition found, and finally, but chiefly, to
-treat both the patient and the local abnormality successfully, seem to
-me the three most important objects of a course of study at a special
-hospital. This book, which is founded on lectures given at the Throat
-Hospital with these objects in view, is now published in the hope of
-helping those who are either attending or have attended a short course
-of study at special departments or special Hospitals for Diseases of
-the Throat and Nose....’
-
- * * * * *
-
-THE DIAGNOSIS OF NERVOUS DISEASES.
-
-By PURVES STEWART, M.A., M.D., F.R.C.P.,
-
-PHYSICIAN TO OUT-PATIENTS AT THE WESTMINSTER HOSPITAL, AND JOINT
-LECTURER ON MEDICINE IN THE MEDICAL SCHOOL; PHYSICIAN TO THE ROYAL
-NATIONAL ORTHOPÆDIC HOSPITAL; ASSISTANT PHYSICIAN TO THE ITALIAN
-HOSPITAL.
-
-_Demy 8vo. With Illustrations and Coloured Plates._ =15s. net.=
-
-This book, which is intended for the use of senior students and
-practitioners, to supplement the ordinary text-books, discusses the
-most modern methods of diagnosis of Diseases of the Nervous System.
-The substance of the work, which is illustrated by original diagrams
-and clinical photographs, nearly 200 in number, was originally
-delivered in lecture form to students at the Westminster Hospital
-and to certain post-graduate audiences in London and elsewhere. The
-subject of Nervous Diseases is approached from the point of view of the
-practical physician, and the diagnostic facts are illustrated, as far
-as possible, by clinical cases.
-
- * * * * *
-
-MIDWIFERY FOR NURSES.
-
-By HENRY RUSSELL ANDREWS, M.D., B.SC. LOND., M.R.C.P. LOND.,
-
-ASSISTANT OBSTETRIC PHYSICIAN AND LECTURER TO PUPIL MIDWIVES AT THE
-LONDON HOSPITAL; EXAMINER TO THE CENTRAL MIDWIVES BOARD.
-
-_Crown 8vo. With Illustrations._ =4s. 6d. net.=
-
-This book is intended to supply the pupil midwife with all that is
-necessary to meet the requirements of the Central Midwives Board, and
-to be a practical handbook for the certificated midwife.
-
- * * * * *
-
-ALTERNATING CURRENTS.
-
-A Text-book for Students of Engineering.
-
-By C. G. LAMB, M.A., B.SC.,
-
-CLARE COLLEGE, CAMBRIDGE,
-
-ASSOCIATE MEMBER OF THE INSTITUTION OF ELECTRICAL ENGINEERS; ASSOCIATE
-OF THE CITY AND GUILDS OF LONDON INSTITUTE.
-
-_Demy 8vo. With Illustrations._ =10s. 6d. net.=
-
-The scope of this book is intended to be such as to cover approximately
-the range of reading in alternating current machinery and apparatus
-considered by the author as desirable for a student of general
-engineering in his last year--as, for example, a candidate for the
-Mechanical Sciences Tripos at Cambridge.
-
- * * * * *
-
-A MANUAL OF HYDRAULICS.
-
-By R. BUSQUET,
-
-PROFESSOR À L’ÉCOLE INDUSTRIELLE DE LYON.
-
-Translated by A. H. PEAKE, M.A.,
-
-DEMONSTRATOR IN MECHANISM AND APPLIED MECHANICS IN THE UNIVERSITY OF
-CAMBRIDGE.
-
-_Crown 8vo. With Illustrations._ =7s. 6d. net.=
-
-This work is a practical text-book of Applied Hydraulics, in which
-complete technical theories and all useful calculations for the
-erection of hydraulic plant are presented. It is not a purely
-descriptive work designed merely for popular use, nor is it an abstruse
-treatise suitable only for engineers versed in higher mathematics. The
-book is well illustrated, and is full of Arithmetical Examples fully
-worked out. In these examples, no knowledge is assumed beyond that of
-simple arithmetic and the elements of geometry.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Transcriber’s Notes:
-
-Punctuation has been made consistent.
-
-Variations in spelling and hyphenation were retained as they appear in
-the original publication, except that obvious typographical errors have
-been corrected.
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Sundered Streams, by Reginald Farrer
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE SUNDERED STREAMS ***
-
-***** This file should be named 62469-0.txt or 62469-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/2/4/6/62469/
-
-Produced by Demian Katz, Craig Kirkwood, and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net
-(Images courtesy of the Digital Library@Villanova University
-(http://digital.library.villanova.edu/))
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/62469-0.zip b/old/62469-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index dd58bb6..0000000
--- a/old/62469-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62469-h.zip b/old/62469-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index a46f43d..0000000
--- a/old/62469-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/62469-h/62469-h.htm b/old/62469-h/62469-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 3b317fb..0000000
--- a/old/62469-h/62469-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,17279 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Sundered Streams, by Reginald Farrer.
- </title>
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2 {
- text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
- clear: both;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
-}
-
-.p-1 {margin-top: -0.25em;}
-.p1 {margin-top: 1em;}
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-.p3 {margin-top: 3em;}
-.p4 {margin-top: 4em;}
-
-/*Modified horizontal rules to fix ePub display issue*/
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.tb {width: 45%; margin-left: 27.5%; margin-right: 27.5%;}
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
-/*End modified horizontal rule CSS*/
-
-.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
- /* visibility: hidden; */
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
-} /* page numbers */
-
-.blockquot {
- margin-left: 5%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-/*Indent-padding*/
-.ir0{text-align:right;}
-
-.displayinline{display:inline-block; line-height:1}
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-/* Images */
-img { max-width: 100%; height:auto; }
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- max-width: 90%;
-}
-
-/* Transcriber's notes */
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- padding:0.5em;
- margin-bottom:5em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
-
-/*CSS to set font sizes*/
-/*font sizes for non-header font changes*/
-.xxlargefont{font-size: xx-large}
-.xlargefont{font-size: x-large}
-.largefont{font-size: large}
-.mediumfont{font-size: medium}
-.smallfont{font-size: small}
-.boldfont{font-weight:bold}
-.sansseriffont{font-family:sans-serif}
-
-/*CSS to force a page break in ePub*/
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
-
-p.nobreak{
- page-break-before: avoid;
- padding-top: 0;
-}
-
-h2.nobreak{
- page-break-before: avoid;
- padding-top: 0;
-}
-
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Sundered Streams, by Reginald Farrer
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: The Sundered Streams
- The History of a Memory That Had No Full Stops
-
-Author: Reginald Farrer
-
-Release Date: June 24, 2020 [EBook #62469]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE SUNDERED STREAMS ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Demian Katz, Craig Kirkwood, and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net
-(Images courtesy of the Digital Library@Villanova University
-(http://digital.library.villanova.edu/))
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<div class="figcenter">
-<img id="coverpage" src="images/cover.jpg" alt="Cover." />
-</div>
-
-
-<h1 style="line-height:1.5"><span class="xlargefont">THE</span><br />
-SUNDERED STREAMS</h1>
-
-
-<p class="center largefont p2">THE HISTORY OF A MEMORY THAT HAD<br />
-NO FULL STOPS</p>
-
-<p class="center p4"><span class="mediumfont">BY</span><br />
-<span class="xlargefont">REGINALD FARRER</span></p>
-
-<p class="center smallfont p1">AUTHOR OF<br />
-‘THE GARDEN OF ASIA,’ ‘THE HOUSE OF SHADOWS,’ ETC.</p>
-
-<p class="center smallfont p3">‘Shōshi no kukai hétori nashi: Sodé no furi-awasé mo tashō no en.’</p>
-
-<p class="center smallfont">[There is no shore to the bitter Sea of Birth-and-Death: even the<br />
-touching of sleeves in passing is the result of some connection in a
-former life.]</p>
-
-<p class="center p3" style="line-height:1.5">LONDON<br />
-<span class="largefont" style="letter-spacing:0.25em">EDWARD ARNOLD</span><br />
-41 &amp; 43 MADDOX STREET, BOND STREET, W.<br />
-1907</p>
-
-<p class="center">[<em>All rights reserved</em>]
-</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="center" style="line-height:1.75">TO<br />
-<span class="largefont">‘MILADI’</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">ALICE, COUNTESS OF BECTIVE</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[1]</span></p>
-
-<p class="nobreak center xxlargefont boldfont" style="margin-bottom:1em">THE SUNDERED STREAMS</p>
-
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER I</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The English language, flexible and rich though it be,
-lacks words in which to convey the subtler social distinctions.
-We have had to go abroad for ‘nouveau-riche’
-and ‘parvenu,’ to say nothing of ‘Philistia,’
-‘Bohemia,’ the ‘demi-monde,’ and all the other geographical
-names that we have taken from the atlas of
-the human world to describe some small corner in our
-own little parish. But, as our civilization grows more
-and more complex, so does our borrowed vocabulary
-grow less and less adequate, until nowadays we find
-not a few fine differences in our microcosm which no
-word of our own or of any other nation avails to
-identify. The ‘Arrived’ and the ‘New-rich’ are
-familiar figures, but what of those many families who
-suddenly become wealthy and prominent after many
-generations of well-bred obscurity? They cannot
-fairly be described as ‘nouveau-riche’ or ‘parvenu’;
-they have been there all the time, though not in
-evidence; to brand them with the stigma of novelty
-would be manifestly unfair. They have antiquity
-without importance&mdash;a vast difference, in the eyes
-of social astronomers, between them and the blazing
-stars of wealth that so suddenly emerge from the black<span class="pagenum">[2]</span>
-night of genealogical non-existence. As well compare
-a dazzling meteor, here and gone in a flash, with
-a genuine star which, after æons of inconspicuousness,
-abruptly swells into a luminary of the first magnitude.
-To describe such fixed lights in our English hemisphere
-a new word must first be coined in another language,
-and then borrowed. Such people are not ‘nouveau-riche’;
-they are ‘renrichis.’ And to this class belonged
-the Dadds of Darnley-on-Downe&mdash;that obscure
-dynasty from which it is now necessary to show the
-gradual genesis, through many quiet generations, of
-Kingston Darnley, its apostate offspring.</p>
-
-<p>Among soft Kentish meadows sleeps the little
-metropolis of Darnley-on-Downe. It lies on the grassy
-plain like a neat poached egg on a vast green plate, and,
-over all, the blue vault of heaven makes a domed lid.
-The Downe meanders placidly at the foot of its gardens,
-and comfortable little Georgian houses speak of
-agelong ease and decent leisure. Darnley-on-Downe
-has no local peer, no local palace; rank and fashion,
-therefore, are represented only by these dignified
-dwellings of red brick, each enclosed in shrubberies of
-rose and laurel and lilac, each tenanted by some
-family well known for generations in Darnley-on-Downe.</p>
-
-<p>As Cranford was, as Highbury was, so also was
-Darnley-on-Downe&mdash;placid, happy and exclusive, intolerant
-of all new-comers and of all change. Mrs.
-John succeeded Mrs. Joshua, and Mr. Reuben Mr.
-James; and no outsider was ever permitted to disturb
-the orderly dynasties that so long had ruled in the
-little town. Crowns fell, but the serenity of Darnley-on-Downe
-remained unruffled, and the collapse of the
-Corsican ogre took no higher rank in general conversation
-than the misdoings of Mrs. Blessing’s Matilda, or
-the strange theft of Miss Minna Dadd’s Leghorns. So,<span class="pagenum">[3]</span>
-talking only to themselves, and only of themselves, the
-aristocracy of Darnley-on-Downe passed inconspicuously
-from the nursery to the grave, through the
-leisurely old days when the peace of the country contrasted
-so strongly with the restless misery of the great
-cities, and, in the absence of halfpenny morning
-papers, only rare rumours filtered down into the provinces
-of a young Queen gradually making her seat
-secure on a dishonoured and endangered throne.</p>
-
-<p>Nowadays Cranford, probably, plays pit, and
-motors hoot beneath the walls of Donwell Abbey.
-Nowadays clash and clangour fill the one main street
-of Darnley-on-Downe, and the Georgian houses are
-being swept away to make room for glassy palaces of
-art-nouveau design. But, in the days when Fortune
-swooped so suddenly on the Dadds, only peace and
-slumber haunted the Market Place and St. Eldred’s.</p>
-
-<p>Clean, humble, small, and quiet, the cottages and
-shops of the working-classes lined the broad pavement,
-with here a neat bank fronted by Corinthian pilasters,
-and there a rambling, wide-mouthed inn, haunted by
-loafing dogs and ostlers full of leisure. Then came the
-church, solid and unassuming, very essence made
-visible of that orderly if unimpassioned spirit that then
-possessed the Church of England. Under its shadow,
-flanked by tall clipped obelisks of yew, squatted the
-solid square of the vicarage, with green lawn and beds
-of roses leading down to the wicket that opened on the
-roadway. And beyond this again began a wide,
-ancient avenue of limes, fragrant and tranquil, on
-whose either side stretched that series of red-brick
-houses in which the Upper Ten of Darnley-on-Downe
-discreetly led its days, and formed an aristocracy no
-less rigid, no less zealous for birth and tradition
-than that higher world called ‘county,’ with which
-it had nothing to do, and yet so much in common.<span class="pagenum">[4]</span>
-St. Eldred’s was the name of this provincial faubourg,
-and the wayfarer, passing down its green length, might
-divine its exclusive character from the lack of any
-invidious distinction made between the houses. The
-identity of each was kept sacred for the elect, and the
-outsider was to know nothing. In our own assertive
-time each gate would bear a curly Gothic title&mdash;‘Chatsworth,’
-‘Arundel,’ ‘Sandringham’ would gratify
-our loyal eyes. In those days Mrs. Blessing knew Miss
-Dadd’s house, and Miss Dadd knew Mrs. Blessing’s.
-This knowledge was held to be amply sufficient, and
-it was even felt that to share it with the unprivileged
-world at large would be profane and vulgar. Thus
-the unguided stranger would have travelled uninstructed
-past gateway after gateway, past trim
-red wall after trim red wall, without being able to
-attribute any definite personality to the dweller in
-each cloistered precinct. And therefore he must
-necessarily have passed on his way without gathering
-any idea of the extent to which the Dadds dominated
-St. Eldred’s.</p>
-
-<p>All the dwellers in these houses lived in a small way,
-and all of them drew their incomes from some retail
-trade. ‘County’ people, from their own high circle,
-contemplating these lesser worlds, would never have
-guessed the intense and silent arrogance with which,
-in turn, these lesser worlds looked down on the
-struggling aspirants from beneath, on the new and
-unknown persons who painfully fought to win a footing
-in St. Eldred’s. But, in the close ring of this
-aristocracy, the Dadds were certainly the ruling
-dynasty. Had the wayfarer been privileged with a
-guide, he would have learned that every fourth house
-in St. Eldred’s enshrined a Dadd or the relation of
-a Dadd. Here dwelt Mrs. Reuben Dadd; yonder
-Mr. and Mrs. Joshua Dadd; and, not a stone’s-throw<span class="pagenum">[5]</span>
-farther, was the house of the Misses Adelaide and
-Minna Dadd. As for the head of the family, Mr.
-Dadd, with his consort, dwelt in a stout-pillared
-edifice which even an uninstructed stranger must have
-seen to be the residence of a presiding Power.</p>
-
-<p>The Dadds permeated social life in Darnley-on-Downe.
-They were everywhere, had married into
-every family, had accorded brides to every neighbouring
-house of repute, had come at last to be, as it
-were, the very incarnation of decency and proper pride
-in Darnley-on-Downe. They were no richer than
-their neighbours, but in those days wealth gave no
-precedence, and the Dadds had a prestige which their
-fellow-nobles in St. Eldred’s lacked. For the Dadds
-owned land, and, though St. Eldred’s made no attempt
-to connect itself with the world of landowners and
-county families, yet a vague aroma of grandeur still
-clung to the one family in its midst that might be said
-to verge on the territorial class. The glory of the
-Dadds was a big freehold farm beyond the town, where
-they had been established from time immemorial,
-honourably obscure from the days of Henry the
-Eighth. St. Eldred’s, accordingly, cherishing its own
-pedigrees and antiquities, as it did, with as fervent a
-passion as any Austrian noble, yet by tacit consent
-accorded supremacy to this landowning family in its
-midst.</p>
-
-<p>The Dadds by now had gone down, alas, in the
-world; however, St. Eldred’s never dreamed of
-making worldly prosperity a criterion for approval.
-St. Eldred’s lived, itself, in a penurious prosperity or
-a prosperous poverty; wealth, being unattainable, was
-held to be undesirable as well as rather vulgar, and the
-fading income of the Dadds only set the seal on their
-title to general admiration. The farm was still theirs
-indeed, but its yield was less and lessening. All through<span class="pagenum">[6]</span>
-the good old Protection days their corn had brought
-high prices; but, unfortunately, the cost of living had
-grown even higher in proportion, until the Dadds
-found themselves forced to renounce agricultural
-hopes, leave the farm fallow, and plunge into small
-trade. From this they made a fair livelihood, and were
-able to support their regal position in the world of
-St. Eldred’s. So they lived, married, ruled, and died,
-till never a house in St. Eldred’s but was kin to the
-royal family of Dadd.</p>
-
-<p>James Dadd after James Dadd contentedly took up
-his sceptre, swayed it during his time, and laid it by.
-Their clan, like all others in St. Eldred’s, was magnificently
-complacent in contemplation of its own
-position. No Dadd was ever heard to aspire to more
-giddy worlds, no Dadd was ever known to show any
-hankerings after wilder flights, after new courses, after
-original thought or action of any kind. In a young
-member of the family, in a collateral, the weight of
-his elders would immediately have crushed out such
-sparks of discontent; as for the head of the dynasty,
-so surrounded was the ruling Dadd by now with
-uncles, cousins, and aunts, not to mention dowagers of
-bygone sovereigns, that it would have been as easy for
-him to revolt as for a Pope to make headway against
-the College of Cardinals. Such, then, was the decorous
-state of affairs, when suddenly a most astonishing
-thing happened.</p>
-
-<p>The railway mania was sweeping over England.
-Counties were being opened up, and landowners being
-driven crazy with hysterical apprehensions of ruin,
-and opposition to every threatened change. At first
-all these commotions left the quiet waters of St.
-Eldred’s unruffled. But eventually a railway company
-came sniffing round the ancestral but profitless
-farm of the Dadds, and, somehow, during the negotiations,<span class="pagenum">[7]</span>
-it was discovered that those barren acres covered
-a coal-field of exuberant richness.</p>
-
-<p>It was not to be expected that this new fact should
-bring about any sudden alteration in the feeling of
-St. Eldred’s towards the Dadds. Only a mild flutter
-agitated for a while the red-brick houses. Then it
-was felt that the acquisition of wealth by the Dadds
-was very right and proper. Wealth was only vulgar
-when in new and plebeian hands. A Dadd could be
-trusted to avoid giving offence, a Dadd would never
-be ostentatious, nor presume to change his mode of
-life. So, undeterred by any disapproval from their
-peers, the ruling Dadds proceeded quietly to develop
-their new possibilities. What those possibilities were
-no one had the audacity or the grandeur of mind to
-compute. Unsuspected, unrealized, volumes of money
-rolled ceaselessly in to the account of the mine-owners,
-while they, in their innocence, continued unperturbed
-in the old simple ways, never caring to dream that their
-new wealth could do more for them than add, at most,
-a parlourmaid.</p>
-
-<p>It was some years before even this grand addition
-was made to their scale of living, and then it was only
-when the sudden death of James Dadd the Eighth had
-left the family sceptre in the hands of a queen-regent.
-The widow ruled for her son (now, at a tender age,
-raised to the rank of James Dadd the Ninth), and
-hardly had she grasped the reins of power than she
-began to show signs of wishing to use the abundant
-resources which had now been accumulating for fifteen
-years or more. Her ambitions were not approved,
-and the extra parlourmaid was only condoned as an
-indulgence for the sorrows of widowhood. But from
-that moment a little rift began to widen between the
-reigning Dadds and Darnley-on-Downe. The money
-began insensibly to come between the rulers and the<span class="pagenum">[8]</span>
-ruled. It was inevitable that it should. An income&mdash;even
-an unspent income&mdash;of fifteen thousand a year
-cannot long live on terms of perfect friendly equality
-with incomes of several hundred or so. The richer,
-sooner or later, condescends; the poorer, sooner or
-later, grudges. Thus it was in Darnley-on-Downe.
-Even the suspicion that Mrs. Dadd had ‘notions’&mdash;that
-she would have liked a landau, and had conceived
-thoughts of sending her sons to Eton&mdash;caused
-a certain vigilant enmity to exasperate the keenness
-with which her every action was watched and weighed
-by her council of relatives. The slightest sign of
-ambition was soon marked as a treason to the clan.
-All the Dadd connections, all the Dadd collaterals,
-all the dowagers and younger branches of the Dadds
-made common cause with St. Eldred’s, and joined in
-the general suspicion with which the conduct of Mrs.
-Dadd was viewed. The widow found herself unable
-to carry out the smallest extravagance. Very innocent
-and trifling were the few indulgences that she had
-hoped for, but even these were put beyond her reach
-by the decree of her relatives, by that incorruptible
-synod over which even a Dadd queen-regent had no
-more power than a doge of Venice over his Council of
-Ten. Nor was her submission able to redeem her
-popularity. The very fact of having once had ‘notions’
-was enough to mark her out for ever as a traitor to the
-Constitution of St. Eldred’s. She was no longer quite
-‘one of themselves.’ The excommunication was pronounced
-by those terrible princesses, the Misses
-Adelaide and Minna Dadd, and no one was found to
-question its justice as it thundered across the tea-table.</p>
-
-<p>Inquiries were made into her remote ancestry, and
-it was soon found that, though by birth an unblemished
-Blessing, yet she had inherited the sinister tendencies<span class="pagenum">[9]</span>
-of a Messiter great-great-great-grandmother, whom
-history convicted of eccentricities that went the
-length of reading her Bible in French. From such a
-tainted spring what purity could be expected? The
-situation was summed up by the Misses Adelaide and
-Minna Dadd. The stream cannot rise higher than its
-source, was their stern pronouncement. A regretful
-loyalty, a disapproving adherence now marked the
-family’s attitude towards her&mdash;a loyalty, an adherence
-as faithful but as disapproving as ever a virtuous
-believer in Divine right can have felt for a drunken
-and profligate Pretender, or a patriotic Catholic for
-Queen Elizabeth.</p>
-
-<p>So far, it is true, her eldest son, James Dadd the
-Ninth, seemed a model of Dadd virtues. He had
-made no open move towards ostentation and prodigality.
-His younger brother Robert, however, was
-the incarnate tragedy of St. Eldred’s, the incarnate
-accusation of Mrs. Dadd’s regency. Briefly, this ulcer
-of St. Eldred’s must be skimmed; Robert Dadd had
-run away from home, and when next heard of, many
-years later, was understood to be in Japan, and to
-have become a Mormon or a Buddhist, or a disciple
-of whatever religion rules in those benighted parts.
-Never again was his name heard in St. Eldred’s, but
-the Messiter great-great-great-grandmother was held
-accountable for such a strange, terrible aberration&mdash;the
-first break in the impeccable succession of the
-Dadds. There was yet another child&mdash;a daughter&mdash;but
-she was ten years younger than her brothers, and
-could not as yet prove, in her own person, the corrupt
-heredity of her mother. However, she was already
-watched with care, and every tearing of her pinafore
-was held symptomatic of inherited depravity.</p>
-
-<p>James Dadd the Ninth came at last to his own, and
-his unhappy mother, crushed by years of disapproval,<span class="pagenum">[10]</span>
-sank, unregretted, to the grave. And hardly had
-St. Eldred’s consigned her decently to the tomb, than
-James Dadd gave abundant proof of the evil spirit
-that all his relatives had long suspected. He left
-Darnley-on-Downe. He shut up the family house;
-he travelled; he began timidly to live on a scale that
-drove St. Eldred’s dizzy with horrified astonishment.
-Thanks to his mother’s economy, he was now extremely
-rich, and bit by bit began to realize the extent of his
-opportunities. But, though St. Eldred’s shook its head
-over him, though the Misses Adelaide and Minna Dadd
-refused to read the papers any longer, for fear of
-finding his iniquities chronicled, James Dadd remained
-the true son of his fathers. Wealth could not
-make him wealthy; it takes a generation at least to
-make the genuine spendthrift, to ingraft the joy and
-the splendour of purchasing. James Dadd remained
-nervous, awkward, bourgeois in his uneasy enjoyment
-of his money. Assertive one moment, he was uneasy
-and parsimonious the next, always self-conscious,
-always troubled by the disapproval of the only world
-he really knew&mdash;the world that had made him and
-written its signature large across the face of his personality.
-Wherever he went, he carried St. Eldred’s,
-and heard the mild but tremendous tones of the Misses
-Adelaide and Minna Dadd among the arches of the
-Colosseum as in the silences of the Desert. Sometimes
-he defied the voices, sometimes he quailed before
-them, but escape them he never could. He was out
-of his sphere; they told him so. He had cast off his
-own world, and could enter no other.</p>
-
-<p>Often in his travels he met other men on similar
-errands of pleasure, young men and old, sons of
-country squires or illustrious families. In most cases
-they had not a quarter of his income, but they seemed
-to have the careless knack of getting more pleasure out<span class="pagenum">[11]</span>
-of half a crown than he could ever buy with a five-pound
-note. Poor as they might be, generations of
-spending ancestors had left them the secret of spending
-easily, gaily, serenely, of letting money flow unperceived
-between their fingers, of securing a double
-return for their outlay through their very indifference
-as to whether they ever got any return at all. This
-was the whole distinction between himself and them.
-Actual superiority of birth and breeding they had
-none, though their forbears might be more prominent
-than his. But centuries of inconspicuousness disqualify
-a man for the conspicuous position conferred
-by sudden wealth, and James Dadd, for all his long
-pedigree, was far less fitted for his new place in life
-than many a grandson of some successful politician
-or lawyer, who might number, perhaps, two generations
-to James Dadd’s twenty, but made up for this
-lack of quantity by the eminence of the father and
-grandfather whose high and hard-won position he
-had painlessly inherited.</p>
-
-<p>So James Dadd, misplaced and ill at ease, passed
-thus through life with occasional spasmodic attempts
-at the assumption of a defiant self-complacency. He
-knew that he was an outcast from St. Eldred’s. Even
-if he would, he could never now return to the red-brick
-house of his early years. In the flesh, perhaps, he
-might, but his spirit could never again be admitted
-within its doors, could never again be admitted to
-intimacy by the spirit of St. Eldred’s. Rashly he had
-cut himself off from his own people, and must henceforth
-face the fact. Nor, though either diffident or
-vehement in the spending of his money, could he really
-contemplate returning to the life of Darnley-on-Downe.
-He had tasted of headier joys&mdash;tasted awkwardly,
-perhaps, and incompletely, but even so the small-beer
-on which St. Eldred’s had reared him must for evermore<span class="pagenum">[12]</span>
-be insipid to his palate. Though now he never
-heard from his brother Robert, he sympathized with
-his revolt, and resolved that he, too, could never again
-have any part in the life of Darnley-on-Downe. And
-at this point, just after the one brief tragic flash of
-romance that broke into his life, he came across Lady
-Kirk-Hammerton.</p>
-
-<p>Lady Kirk-Hammerton was the sonless widow of
-a second-rate Lord Chancellor. Devoid of wealth or
-breeding, she and her husband had had recourse to
-blatancy to emphasize their value. Now that he was
-dead she redoubled the intensity of her methods, and
-soon acquired that notoriety which she considered
-synonymous with fame. Bereft of her husband,
-there was no reason why people should ever take
-notice of her again, unless her demeanour forced them
-to do so. Therefore she set herself heroically to the
-task of making her existence conspicuous in the eye
-of the world, with such success that, with the best
-resolve, nobody could succeed in ignoring her. Physically
-and metaphorically, she shouted her way from
-place to place, and her conversation blazed no less
-obtrusively than her gowns. As for a foil, she felt
-that her brilliancy needed none, and therefore had no
-reason for tolerating her daughter’s incorrigible respectability.
-With the more joy, therefore, did she
-fall upon James Dadd at Naples, and hurl him, not
-unwilling, into the company of her undesirable offspring.</p>
-
-<p>But if the daughter emphasized the mother’s
-mature and vehement charms, so did the mother’s
-overwhelming presence show up the pale grace of the
-daughter. Lady Adela Vayne-Kingston was pretty,
-shrinking, mild, domestic&mdash;the very type that, in
-happier circumstances, would have been most dear to
-St. Eldred’s. She hated her mother’s loud voice and<span class="pagenum">[13]</span>
-louder manners; her one hope was to marry someone
-obscure and gentle, who would remove her from the
-burning atmosphere of Lady Kirk-Hammerton, in
-whose train, since her girlhood, she had been dragged
-hither and thither, never protesting, but always reluctant.
-James Dadd, for his part, found in Lady
-Adela a reminiscence of his old home-life. She seemed
-to him the ghost of peaceful St. Eldred’s, with an
-added touch of worldly experience and travelled charm.
-Her character, far from repeating her mother’s, harked
-back to some obscure ancestress, probably in domestic
-service, and was so meek and placid as to be the very
-incarnation of all that James Dadd had been brought
-up to love and respect. On the other hand, this same
-gentleness of temperament, which St. Eldred’s considered
-the hall-mark of good breeding, was believed by
-Lady Kirk-Hammerton to be especially distasteful to
-those high circles after which she hankered; and she
-had long, therefore, been eagerly seeking a chance to
-be rid of the daughter whom her best efforts had failed
-to render brazen and clamorous. Her delight, accordingly,
-surpassed all bounds, when at the end of a week’s
-acquaintance, James Dadd proposed to Lady Adela,
-and was thankfully accepted.</p>
-
-<p>Though the Misses Adelaide and Minna Dadd had
-ceased to subscribe to ‘the Paper,’ they yet had their
-recognised channels for the reception of news. For
-the butcher conveyed the events of the world to their
-cook, and she, in turn, laid edited selections before
-her mistresses. In this way was brought to their
-notice the approaching marriage between ‘James
-Dadd, Esq., of Darnley-on-Downe, and the Lady
-Adela Vayne-Kingston, daughter of the late Earl of
-Kirk-Hammerton.’</p>
-
-<p>That afternoon was hurriedly convened a great
-meeting of the Dadd family to consider this announcement.<span class="pagenum">[14]</span>
-Unmixed disapproval filled every bosom in the
-tribe. The engagement was held equivalent to the
-abdication of James Dadd from the headship of his
-race. In two ways the proposed marriage was disliked.
-It was thoroughly unsuitable to a Dadd; it
-was thoroughly unworthy of a Dadd. Lady Adela
-was at once too high and too low to be a fair match
-of James Dadd. Accident had given her a titular
-position superior to her lover’s, while her birth was
-in every way disastrously inferior to his own. Even St.
-Eldred’s had heard something of Lady Kirk-Hammerton,
-and it was impossible to imagine that her daughter
-could, by any stretch of courtesy, be called a lady in
-the true sense of the word. All the Dadd pride of
-birth rose up against the thought of connection with
-a girl without a grandfather&mdash;a girl, too, whom uninstructed
-sections of the world might dare to consider
-her husband’s social superior. It was felt that James
-Dadd had inflicted a crowning insult on his family in
-thus threatening to misally it. Mrs. John, Mrs.
-Reuben, Mrs. Joshua, coincided in the opinion firmly
-announced by the Misses Adelaide and Minna Dadd;
-the young Johns, Reubens, and Joshuas, dissented in
-nothing; only the peccant James’s sister, now a girl
-of promising beauty, held her own counsel, and decided
-to write congratulations to her brother and his destined
-bride. For in her, too, the blood of great-great-great-grandmother
-Messiter was at its fell work; her soul
-longed for change and variety and gaiety; and all
-these things she saw attainable through James’s
-marriage with the daughter of that notorious Lady
-Kirk-Hammerton.</p>
-
-<p>But she was too wise to make her heresy public;
-and the condemnation of James’s choice was passed
-without protest by the assembled council. An ultimatum
-was drafted by the Misses Adelaide and Minna<span class="pagenum">[15]</span>
-Dadd, and would have been dispatched on the morrow,
-with the approval of all, had not the morrow brought
-news that destroyed every hope of reconciliation with
-the traitor. It was announced that, with royal permission,
-James Dadd, of Darnley-on-Downe, would in
-future be known as James Darnley. St. Eldred’s
-gasped at the wickedness of this public repudiation.</p>
-
-<p>In point of fact it was Lady Adela, gentle and
-winning, whose vitality had stirred to a great effort,
-under great pressure, and had risen to urge upon her
-lover this change of name. She pointed out that to
-ask a girl to become Lady Adela Dadd was to exact a
-sacrifice as far beyond mortal power to grant as beyond
-mortal justice to demand. James Dadd, recognising
-that he could never hope to be reincluded in the clan
-whose nominal sovereign he still was, found himself
-inclined to consider Lady Adela’s plea in a favourable
-spirit. Together they decided to adopt the more
-euphonious name of Darnley, and James Dadd hastened
-to make his decision public, that thus he might at once
-be finally cut off from any remonstrances or embassies
-of his family. He judged the temper of St. Eldred’s
-rightly. His announcement was taken as an irremediable
-declaration of war. His name was never mentioned
-again in Darnley-on-Downe, except as that of
-one deservedly dead and unregretted. The sceptre
-passed into the capable hands of Mr. and Mrs. Reuben
-Dadd, and by silent consent it was agreed that no
-infant henceforth should bear the dishonoured names
-of James or Robert. Only James Dadd’s young sister
-remained hopefully loyal to his memory, and when, a
-year later, the redoubled severity of the Misses Adelaide
-and Minna Dadd alone betrayed their secret knowledge
-that a son had been born to Mr. and Lady Adela
-Darnley, the one acknowledgment of the event that
-reached the outlaw from Darnley-on-Downe was a<span class="pagenum">[16]</span>
-surreptitiously-posted letter of his sister’s. If anything
-could have aggravated the wrath of the Misses
-Adelaide and Minna Dadd it would have been the
-knowledge that the infant, that their own great
-nephew, had been christened, not James, but Kingston.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston Darnley, indeed! There was a name for a
-child! You cannot make a silk purse out of a sow’s
-ear, said the Misses Adelaide and Minna Dadd; and
-they were universally felt to have expressed the situation
-in all its bearings. And thus, from years of corrupting
-wealth and secret disloyalty, was generated the
-culminating disgrace of the Dadds, in Kingston Darnley.
-Kingston Darnley!</p>
-
-<p>Why, why had great-great-great-grandfather Blessing
-married a Messiter of eccentric tendencies? And
-what a curse is money! Better decorum and a competence
-than stalled peacocks and a marriage with the
-daughters of Heth! It became the fashion in St.
-Eldred’s to affect, by contrast, a greater poverty than
-the circumstances of anyone necessitated. To give
-two cakes at tea became vulgar, and the Misses
-Adelaide and Minna Dadd took to going to church with
-only one Prayer Book between them. Nothing could
-have induced St. Eldred’s to confess that it knew
-anything of the Darnleys, and the various steps in
-Lady Adela’s progress were sternly ignored by a
-watchful world. Even when Mr. and Lady Adela
-Darnley entertained a Princess for some charitable
-function, the only comment made in St. Eldred’s was
-the tacit one involved in the simultaneous retirement
-to bed of the Misses Adelaide and Minna Dadd.
-Another outcast, however, was soon added to James
-and Robert&mdash;another topic for the silence of St.
-Eldred’s. For, after some secret correspondence,
-James Darnley’s sister eloped from the care of her
-aunts, and was next heard of under the wing of her<span class="pagenum">[17]</span>
-brother’s wife in London. Within a year she had
-married a stockbroker of abundant wealth. The lips
-of St. Eldred’s snapped on this fulfilment of the
-disasters brought about by great-great-great-grandmother
-Messiter. The old dynasty of Dadd was ended
-in Darnley-on-Downe. The main royal line was wiped
-out, and the Reuben Dadds reigned in its stead.</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER II</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The new-made Darnleys, James and his sister, were
-triumphantly ushered into the upper world by Lady
-Adela, whose father’s rise, whose mother’s persistence,
-had won at last a reluctant toleration from her betters.
-Accustomed from her birth to live on terms of acquaintance
-with more or less interesting or conspicuous
-people, Lady Adela had developed something of that
-native air and ease which James Dadd had never been
-able to acquire in all his long exile from his own social
-hemisphere. Nor did James Dadd, transformed into
-James Darnley, ever succeed in fitting himself perfectly
-to his altered conditions. His wife, besides loving him
-devotedly, if placidly, did all she could to acclimatize
-him; she made him buy a vast new house on the
-Yorkshire moors; she filled it with people, she made her
-husband play the squire; but to the last this man of
-many descents remained less adaptable, less congenial
-to his new environment than many a versatile Hebrew
-whom twenty years of unlimited wealth transform
-into what is nowadays considered a very tolerable
-imitation of an English gentleman&mdash;especially as seen
-on the stage. Among people who talked of money and
-diseases with a freedom that struck him as indecent,
-James Darnley, brought up to think both topics unmentionable,
-remained timid and uncomfortable to<span class="pagenum">[18]</span>
-the end of his days, and when at last a combination of
-dyspepsia and a Primrose League banquet caused him
-to retire from a world in which he had always been a
-stranger, even Lady Adela felt that he was somehow
-set free from a long bondage. Gentle in her grief as
-in all her other emotions, she resigned herself to becoming
-crapes, and found new pleasure in the guardianship
-of her son Kingston, now turned eleven.</p>
-
-<p>But if James Darnley, first of his line, died a failure,
-far otherwise was it with his sister. In her the blood
-of great-great-great-grandmother Messiter must have
-seethed and boiled with concentrated virulence, for
-she took to her new life with a zeal that left nothing to
-be desired, and soon dropped behind her all trace and
-all memory of Darnley-on-Downe. Her manners, from
-the first, were forward and easy; her ambition was to
-be considered a woman of fashion, and she carried to
-its accomplishment a temperament entirely devoid of
-bashfulness or indecision. Mr. Mimburn, her wealthy
-stockbroker husband, soon shrank into mere cheque-signing
-obscurity beside the flaming figure of his wife.
-Her remarks were quoted, her gowns described; she
-became at last, in those far-off days, a precursor of
-that modern type of woman who is perfectly virtuous,
-except in dress, manners, and mind. Nothing would
-have horrified her more than illicit proposals, except
-the accusation of being shocked by them; nothing
-have more appalled her than an attack on her virtue,
-except the suspicion that she had any.</p>
-
-<p>Her gossip always made a point of flirting round
-impropriety, and she was at pains to damn her own
-flawless character by arch implications. She had
-cultivated French, and now was a walking chronicle
-of the demi-monde, as well as a living picture of
-its most prominent inhabitants. A passport to
-her friendship was the possession of a past, and she<span class="pagenum">[19]</span>
-hastened to attribute amorous adventures to all her
-dearest friends on any foundation or none. The
-foundation did not matter; the point was that the
-suggestion glorified them in her eyes; part of her
-admiration for Lady Adela arose from the fact that
-she suspected that saintly woman of having ‘consoled
-herself’ during the lifetime of the late James
-Darnley. Mrs. Mimburn’s knowledge of her sister-in-law’s
-untried and incorruptible virtue was never
-allowed to interfere with this romantic possibility; in
-the face of all probability, in the face of all evidence,
-she must imagine some such episode in any career
-that touched her own, or else immediately cease to
-take any interest in it. So far had she travelled from
-the mental chastity that ruled in Darnley-on-Downe.</p>
-
-<p>So, between mother and aunt, the young Kingston
-Darnley journeyed through boyhood to maturity.
-Lady Adela was an ideal parent, and discharged her
-maternal duties with a gentle ease that made her son’s
-progress altogether pleasant. She was one of the
-cushion-women whose numbers nowadays are yearly
-diminishing. Without initiative, without any clearness
-of mind, she had the placid receptivity that often
-accompanies such a temperament. The lack of colour
-in her own character made it harmonious and restful
-as a background to more vivid personalities. Therefore,
-without effort or desire on her part, she attracted
-confidence. She was good to lean on; she listened
-well&mdash;though often without hearing, and always without
-understanding. But her sweet acquiescence gave
-everyone the idea of being fully comprehended, and
-her incapacity for independent action added to her
-value as a recipient of confidences. She could be
-trusted to say little and do less; and the large majority
-who, in making confession, only desire a sympathetic
-listener, felt that Lady Adela was an altogether soft<span class="pagenum">[20]</span>
-and comfortable personality to repose against. What
-more could be required? The faithful adviser frequently
-gives much less, and is, as a rule, much less
-valued than the imperturbable Lady Adelas of life.
-Kingston Darnley was universally held to be highly
-fortunate in his mother, and, by the time he came of
-age, as he had neither married an actress nor gone to
-ruin on the turf, her skill in managing him was considered
-marvellous, and even beyond what might
-reasonably have been expected.</p>
-
-<p>‘I assure you, La-la, considering what young men are
-nowadays, I do think you have done wonders,’ said
-Mrs. Mimburn, who had called to congratulate her
-sister-in-law on the latest triumph achieved by her
-diplomacy.</p>
-
-<p>‘Kingston is the dearest child,’ acknowledged Lady
-Adela, deprecating undue flattery of her own genius.
-‘One only needs to guide him. He is all obedience.
-I have never attempted to drive him, Minnie.’</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Mimburn tossed her head. Her name was
-always a sore point. She had suffered heavily in the
-matter at the hands of her parents, who had christened
-her Minna Adelaide, after her great-aunts of
-formidable memory, the Misses Adelaide and Minna
-Dadd. Understanding that such names were a grievous
-handicap to any runner in the race of fashion, and
-desirous, too, of obliterating all traces of Darnley-on-Downe,
-Mrs. Mimburn did the best she could to remedy
-the disaster by resolutely calling herself ‘Minne-Adélaïde.’
-This Gallicism Lady Adela could never
-bring herself to remember, and embittered the life of
-her sister-in-law by calling her Min or Minnie when
-in a good temper, or plain Minna on the very rare
-occasions when she happened to be in not so good a
-one.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well,’ tartly replied Mrs. Mimburn, with another<span class="pagenum">[21]</span>
-toss of her plumed head, ‘I think you have been
-wise, La-la. But you need not be too sure of Kingston.
-There isn’t any reason to believe, La-la, that even <em>your</em>
-son is not made of flesh and blood. Such stories one
-hears! And a mother is the last person a boy could
-think of confiding in. Depend upon it, you don’t
-know everything. Boys don’t let their mothers marry
-them off at Kingston’s age unless there is a reason for
-it. Dear me! of course not; everyone loves a little
-bit of freedom,’ concluded Mrs. Mimburn, filling her
-voice with the suggestion of a wicked past.</p>
-
-<p>Lady Adela had the happy knack of never hearing
-anything that displeased her. The process of years
-had brought her a sweet serenity that nothing could
-ruffle. Whatever happened Lady Adela smiled.</p>
-
-<p>‘Dear boy,’ she answered reflectively, without any
-symptom of having noticed her sister-in-law’s remarks,
-‘dear, dear boy! he has always been as free as air.
-And he has been so good about the engagement.
-Min, you know, five-and-twenty is such a charming
-age for a man to settle. If one waits longer the nice
-girls of one’s own age have all got married off, and one
-has to put up with an elderly one, or a widow, or
-something dreadful like that.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Or something even worse,’ supplemented Mrs.
-Mimburn, with a smile of worldly knowledge. She
-was looking most typical that afternoon. She was a
-little round dark woman, with deep, luscious eyes, and
-more black hair than Nature had provided. Her gown
-was of brown velvet, adorned with an incalculable
-number of ruckings, tuckings, ruchings, quillings,
-flutings, flouncings, rosettes, and insertions. Her
-parasol lost its outline in a foam of scarlet, and her
-brown tricorne hat, with its one enormous geranium-coloured
-plume, was worn at an audacious tilt, in exact
-imitation of that assumed by Marie de Lorraine in the<span class="pagenum">[22]</span>
-second act of ‘Mélanges du Divorce.’ That gorgeous
-lady, whose notoriety almost passed into fame, was
-Mrs. Mimburn’s favourite model. She had constituted
-herself the especial chronicler of Marie de Lorraine,
-copied her clothes devotedly, bought every scent
-and powder that bore her name, and collected her
-anecdotes, apocryphal or unpublishable, with as much
-enthusiasm as a pious Pope accumulates relics. While
-the hat recalled ‘Mélanges du Divorce,’ the parasol
-to-day was based on that in ‘Infidèle,’ the gown
-was collated from two that appeared in ‘Messalineries,’
-the tippet’s prototype had figured in ‘Autour de
-Mitylène,’ and the Parisian pearls that twined round
-Mrs. Mimburn’s throat had been specially copied from
-the historic necklace which her heroine had extracted
-from Prince Henri de Valois, to the general scandal of
-Europe. Even in the matter of cosmetics Mrs. Mimburn
-was faithful to her model, and her rich complexion
-glowed like a plum behind its bloom through a skin-tight
-mask of Blanc de Perle ‘Marie,’ while her ruby
-lips owed their flamboyancy of tint to the Vermeil de
-Lorraine.</p>
-
-<p>Lady Adela looked at her across the tea-table with
-a kind smile. She felt that her sister-in-law added
-colour to the room. Lady Adela was one of those
-women whose habitations have a certain cool tonelessness
-that matches their own character, and, like
-their disposition, suits with any tint that may be
-introduced. Her boudoir was nondescript and mild
-in scheme; pale, sweet flowers stood here and there
-in transparent glasses, and the summer light flowed in,
-pale and ghostly, through the lowered white silk
-blinds. Entrenched behind china and silver, Lady
-Adela seemed the incarnation of the room’s spirit;
-she also had the same indefinable pale sweetness. Her
-gown was grey, her abundant beautiful hair snow-white,<span class="pagenum">[23]</span>
-her features were filled with a gentle complacency.
-Altogether she irresistibly called to mind
-an old white rabbit&mdash;a very soft, very fluffy, very
-reverend and lovable old white rabbit.</p>
-
-<p>‘Dear Min,’ she said at last, ‘you have no notion
-what a comfort this engagement is to me.’</p>
-
-<p>Again Mrs. Mimburn bridled. Why could La-la
-never realize the difference between Min and Minne?</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah, <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">ma chère</i>,’ she replied, ‘indeed, it must be.
-And you certainly have done wonders. It is not every
-mother who can say that her son has never given her
-an hour’s anxiety in his life, and ended up by marrying
-the very first girl that she picked out for him.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Never an hour’s anxiety,’ repeated her sister-in-law,
-always behindhand in a conversation. ‘No, dear
-Min; I can truly say that ever since Kingston had
-diphtheria at school he has never given me another
-hour’s anxiety. And they said afterwards that that
-was only some other kind of sore throat. But it was
-quite as alarming at the time, I remember. Anyhow,
-since then the dear boy has been everything I
-could wish.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It makes him sound terribly dull,’ commented Mrs.
-Mimburn. ‘Now, I like a boy to be a little bit naughty
-myself&mdash;a&mdash;well, a <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">bêtise</i> now and then, you know.’</p>
-
-<p>‘There is nothing of <em>that</em> kind about my son, Minna,’
-protested Lady Adela in a momentary spasm of dignity.
-Mrs. Mimburn, as in duty bound, had, of
-course, suspicions that her nephew was not all he had
-the tact to seem. But she was anxious to hear details
-of his engagement, and therefore waived the question
-of young men’s iniquity, which she was usually inclined
-to treat with a wealth of illustrations and many
-anecdotes from the career of Marie de Lorraine.</p>
-
-<p>‘But tell me about Gundred Mortimer, La-la,’ she
-said. ‘I have never met her. What is she like?’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[24]</span></p>
-
-<p>Lady Adela warmed into the expression of a more
-positive enthusiasm than she usually showed.</p>
-
-<p>‘Min,’ she answered, ‘Gundred is absolutely the
-dearest of creatures. Everything that is nice. I
-really feel that I have quite found a daughter&mdash;thoroughly
-well brought up, and charming manners,
-and truly religious, which is such a great thing nowadays.
-Not at all forward or fashionable, but just a
-steady, old-fashioned, good girl. I am sure you will
-love her, Min.’</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Mimburn began, on the contrary, to conceive a
-strong dislike for the future Mrs. Darnley&mdash;a dislike
-tempered only by the hope that she might be found to
-have had a mystery in her life.</p>
-
-<p>‘Quite a bread-and-butter miss,’ she tittered.</p>
-
-<p>‘Do have some more, Min,’ pleaded Lady Adela,
-with apparent irrelevance, exercising her usual happy
-power of ignoring unfavourable comment. ‘Yes,
-nothing could be luckier in every way. She is the
-very wife I should have chosen for dear Kingston.
-She will make him perfectly happy. And now, Min, I
-do really feel that my work is finished. It has been a
-great responsibility, you know, having sole charge of
-a son all these years. There are so many dangers.
-Mercifully, he has always had confidence in me, and I
-have been able to keep him away from everything undesirable.
-But, of course, as time goes on, one gets
-to feel more and more anxious. You can say what
-you like, but it isn’t always easy to understand young
-men. Even a mother’s sympathy finds it difficult
-sometimes.’</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Mimburn had a very terse answer to the riddle
-of young-manhood. Human nature presented no
-mysteries to her mind; woman was the solution of them
-all. She sniffed knowingly.</p>
-
-<p>‘I think <em>I</em> could manage it, La-la,’ she replied.<span class="pagenum">[25]</span>
-‘However, you are marrying off Kingston, and that is
-the great thing. I suppose he is very much in love?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, very, very, even before I suggested it. And
-she adores him, of course. I saw that long ago. But
-dear Kingston is so simple and good, he had no idea
-until I told him.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And he proposed&mdash;when? Yesterday?’</p>
-
-<p>‘After lunch, dear Min. I asked Gundred on purpose,
-and we had some really delightful Caviare biscuits.
-And then I managed to leave them in the drawing-room&mdash;and&mdash;and&mdash;it
-came off, dear Min. I am so pleased.’</p>
-
-<p>‘What does Mr. Mortimer say, La-la?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Naturally he is charmed, Minna. What should he
-be? Besides, nobody cares much what Mr. Mortimer
-says. But his dear aunt, Lady Agnes, is quite on our
-side. In fact, you may imagine that she and I talked
-it all out between us.’</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Mimburn laughed.</p>
-
-<p>‘What an obedient boy Kingston must be,’ she said.
-‘Had he nothing to say in the matter?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Kingston trusts to his mother to know best,’
-answered Lady Adela with gentle dignity. ‘Gundred
-is altogether pretty and good and sweet, so what more
-could he want? Besides, as I pointed out to him&mdash;and
-he quite understood&mdash;such a marriage will be a
-great help to him in his career, when he finds one.’</p>
-
-<p>‘But Mr. Mortimer is very silly, surely,’ protested
-Mrs. Mimburn. ‘How can he be a help to anyone?’</p>
-
-<p>‘One shouldn’t be harsh,’ replied Lady Adela, ‘and
-I am sure when he succeeds to the dukedom nobody
-will think him as foolish as they do now.’</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Mimburn was still in a carping mood.</p>
-
-<p>‘The Duke himself is actually an imbecile, isn’t
-he?’ she asked. ‘How dreadful to marry into a
-family where there is madness, La-la! A mad,
-ga-ga&mdash;great-uncle, isn’t it? Yes. Poor Gundred!’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[26]</span></p>
-
-<p>However, Lady Adela refused, as always, to take
-any but a hopeful view.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well,’ she said, ‘we must trust that it will all be
-for the best. And there is a little insanity in my own
-family, too, Min, so that will make us quite quits, won’t
-it? No; the only thing I do regret is that dear Gundred
-has not got more relations. You see, Lady Agnes
-has never married, and Gundred is an only child herself,
-so that really poor Kingston will hardly have got
-so many nice new connections as I could have wished.
-There was an Isabel Mortimer, I am told, an aunt of
-Gundred’s, but they don’t talk about her. She
-married a New Zealander, or something dreadful, and
-went out there and died. I forget if she left any children,
-but of course it can’t matter whether she did or
-not.’</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Mimburn scented romance, and immediately
-became more friendly towards the match.</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah, well, poor thing!’ she said. ‘We all have our
-temptations. I should be the last to blame anybody.
-Life teaches one to understand, La-la. It’s not Miss
-Gundred’s fault. Probably it runs in the blood. These
-things do. You know Marie de Lorraine’s mother
-used to drink methylated spirits, and they say she
-herself can never act unless&mdash;well, dear me, these
-things are very odd, aren’t they?’</p>
-
-<p>Lady Adela was not listening; she rarely did listen
-to anyone, and never to Mrs. Mimburn. ‘Yes,’ she
-said, returning on her tracks. ‘I spoke to dear
-Kingston quite plainly. I told him that such an
-opportunity would never come in his way again. And
-after all, it is something to make a good marriage
-nowadays. And I said to him how delighted I should
-be if he would take it. He was so nice about it. I
-am sure he had been in love with Gundred all the while.
-I know he used to say how pretty and sweet she was.<span class="pagenum">[27]</span>
-Anyhow, he made no sort of difficulty, and they will
-be married at the end of the season.’</p>
-
-<p>‘What an anxiety off your mind!’ cried Mrs. Mimburn,
-giggling archly.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ replied Lady Adela gravely. ‘One wants
-one’s son to settle down; and, of course, one likes
-cleverness well enough in other people, but in one’s
-own children one can really have too much of it. When
-it came to Kingston’s telling me he thought it wrong
-to shoot grouse, I knew it was time to see him safely
-married. Grouse are so truly excellent. It always
-happens, I am sure. If a young man does not marry
-early in life he becomes clever, and gets into every kind
-of uncomfortable fad. But Gundred will prevent and
-cure all that, I am quite sure. She is so religious and
-good, dear Min, as I told you; she will have no patience
-with humanitarianism and all those dreadful fashionable
-crazes. Humble and simple and devout, Min&mdash;just
-the wife that dear Kingston wants. I have never
-been really anxious about him, I need not say, but I
-certainly was beginning to think it time he fell into
-the hands of some nice sensible girl or other.’</p>
-
-<p>Mental aberrations never interested Mrs. Mimburn.
-Her curiosity was confined to the vagaries of the flesh.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, well,’ she said, ‘that will wear off, you know,
-all that nonsense. You may be thankful it was nothing
-worse. Most young men&mdash;ah, well! One must be
-grateful that Kingston never got into the clutches of
-Marie de Lorraine, for instance. She is such a terror.
-Even her garters, you know, diamonds and pearls.
-Oh, dear me, how delightful life would be, wouldn’t
-it, if one didn’t have to be good?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Men,’ continued Lady Adela in a ruminant manner,
-‘are always a little puzzling at the best of times. Even
-if they seem perfectly satisfactory in every way they
-are quite liable to break out sometimes into most<span class="pagenum">[28]</span>
-extraordinary freaks. One can never tell. Though dear
-Kingston is as quiet as anyone could possibly be, I do
-feel that it is satisfactory to get him settled so nicely.’</p>
-
-<p>‘As you say,’ admitted Mrs. Mimburn knowingly,
-‘one can never tell. The strangest things one hears!
-Quite old men, too&mdash;so very funny! There was Lord
-Bennington; they say he wanted to run away with
-Marie de Lorraine&mdash;seventy, if he is a day, La-la, and
-eight grandchildren. Dear me, yes; one can never
-prophesy what a man will do. Only be ever so little
-polite to one, and the next minute&mdash;well, I suppose
-it is human nature, after all.’ She sighed coyly, as
-one whose virtue is for ever being besieged.</p>
-
-<p>‘Even my own dear husband,’ continued Lady Adela,
-‘the best and most devoted of men, had had his
-moments of madness&mdash;really, one can call it nothing
-else, can one, Min? You remember how good and
-orderly James always was? Nothing seemed able to
-excite him, and though I am sure he loved me most
-warmly, still&mdash;well, it wasn’t at all <em>public</em>, Minnie.
-And yet, you know, there was a Frenchwoman, or
-something dreadful like that, whom James quite lost
-his head over, so I am told, before he met me. Perfectly
-crazy, they say he was, and when she was
-drowned he wanted to commit suicide. Now, could
-anything sound more unbelievable, Min?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I have heard about it,’ replied Mrs. Mimburn;
-‘one of those ridiculous affairs I was talking of. Poor,
-sober, straightforward, stodgy, bourgeois James, and
-some terrible creature with padded hips and a French
-walk. That is just what happens. Your nonconformist,
-your decent provincial, always gets caught by
-the most brazen <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">horizontale</i>. James was absolutely
-idiotic about it, so people told me&mdash;met her&mdash;now,
-where did he meet her?&mdash;anyway, he suddenly made
-himself more absurd than a schoolboy&mdash;and I could<span class="pagenum">[29]</span>
-tell you stories of <em>them</em>, La-la&mdash;fell in love with her
-at first sight, and talked the most amazing nonsense
-you can imagine. She was his affinity, if you please,
-the other half of his soul, the lost love of a century ago.
-And all this from sober old James. She must have
-been a shameless creature, too&mdash;but they always are,
-<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">ces dames</i>; for she seems to have met him&mdash;well,
-quite half-way, and encouraged his monstrous craze.
-And then she was most mercifully drowned, and after
-a week of sheer madness, James calmed down into his
-right mind again, and was only too glad to marry a
-nice quiet girl like you, La-la. Now, that just shows.
-If there ever was a person whom one would have
-thought perfectly safe from a passion like that, the
-person was our decent, beef-eating James. But no,
-one can never count on a man. Nine out of ten of the
-men we marry, however placid and devoted they may
-be, have had some dreadful insane romance in their
-lives, La-la. One knows what it is to be a man’s
-romance one’s self, and, dear me, it’s not by any
-means the same thing as being a man’s wife!’</p>
-
-<p>‘Such a sad, dreadful story,’ commented Lady
-Adela comfortably, taking no notice of Mrs. Mimburn’s
-artful, question-courting sighs. ‘And to think of its
-happening to James, too. Do you know, Min, he
-always wore black for that woman on the twentieth
-of July. So stuffy of him, in the hot weather!’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, my dear La-la, trust a man always to <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">afficher</i>
-himself in the most ridiculous way he can.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Minna, do you think Kingston is at all like his
-father?’</p>
-
-<p>‘My dear La-la, all men are alike. Let us trust
-that Kingston’s marriage will prevent him from
-playing the fool like that, though.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Minnie, do you know Kingston sometimes seems
-to me so like his father that I am almost frightened.<span class="pagenum">[30]</span>
-And yet he is quite different, which makes it all the
-odder. Somehow, his father seems to look over
-Kingston’s shoulder at me from time to time, and every
-now and then I hear poor James’s voice distinctly in
-something Kingston says. And yet they are two quite
-different people. Isn’t it uncanny? I take quinine
-for it, Minnie. And I know dear James is safe in
-heaven, of course, but yet I can never quite help
-feeling that the father and son are the same in some
-mysterious way. And that is so uncomfortable, Min.
-One does like to think that people are really dead
-when they have been buried. It seems so much more
-proper, somehow.’</p>
-
-<p>Exhausted by her effort of subtlety, Lady Adela
-sighed and poured more water into the teapot. Meanwhile
-Mrs. Mimburn was growing impatient.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, dear La-la,’ she said, ‘Kingston is just a man.
-That’s all the likeness there is between him and his
-father. It is the male element you feel in both. No
-woman can help feeling it&mdash;<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">voilà ce qui donne les
-frissons</i>. And now, La-la, I seem to have been a perfect
-age, and, really, I ought to be going on. Do you
-think Kingston and Gundred are likely to be in soon?
-Because I did want to see her, and it is getting so late
-that I can hardly spare more than another minute or
-two.’</p>
-
-<p>Lady Adela looked helplessly at the clock.</p>
-
-<p>‘The play surely must be over by now,’ she answered.
-‘Do wait, Minnie. They will be here any time now.’</p>
-
-<p>‘What has he taken her to this afternoon?’</p>
-
-<p>‘“La Tosca.” It sounds a very dreadful sort of
-play, and not at all one to take a nice girl to. But
-dear Kingston has always been interested in literature
-and things like that, so I suppose he wants to interest
-dear Gundred in them, too. There are such pretty
-books nowadays; I never can see what people want<span class="pagenum">[31]</span>
-with clever ones. However, I do think Gundred will
-cure dear Kingston. She has the sweetest, simplest
-tastes. We agree in everything.... Ah, there they
-are,’ broke off Lady Adela in tones of triumph, as if
-the return of the lovers were a personal achievement
-of her own. Mrs. Mimburn rose, diffusing an eddy of
-Peau de Marie as she did so.</p>
-
-<p>‘Just a moment,’ she announced, ‘and then I must
-fly. I must, indeed.’ She gathered herself into a
-welcoming posture, picturesquely assumed the parasol,
-and stood with protruded hips to watch the opening of
-the door and the entrance of her nephew’s future wife.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Mortimer had clearly no false bashfulness about
-confronting and challenging the approval of her future
-husband’s family. Sedately and collectedly she came
-into the room, greeted Lady Adela, and then underwent
-the introduction to Mrs. Mimburn. Her lover
-followed close upon her track&mdash;tall, fair, handsome,
-radiant, his manner filled with proprietary joy.</p>
-
-<p>Miss Mortimer might be recognised at first glance as
-the very fine flower of that type which, after all, even
-Lady Adela only copied. From head to foot her
-appearance and bearing proclaimed that she belonged
-to a class that had ruled unquestioned for many generations.
-She was very neat, placid, clear-cut in dress,
-build, and demeanour, an elegant, tiny figure, unalterably,
-coldly perfect in every detail. Everything
-about her was exactly as it should be, from the elaborate
-neatness of her pale golden hair to the nice grace with
-which she accepted Mrs. Mimburn. Her manners, her
-smile, were consciously faultless, and she radiated the
-impression of imperturbable good breeding. She was,
-in fact, a crisp and charming specimen of that type
-which develops later into neat-featured peeresses with
-royalty fringes, violet toques, and short cloaks of
-sable or mink. It was easy to see how she had attracted<span class="pagenum">[32]</span>
-Lady Adela. The two women had ease, gentleness,
-placidity in common. But there the resemblance
-stopped. Miss Mortimer’s mind was as definite, as
-clear, as simple as her appearance; she had none of
-that soft vagueness which characterized Lady Adela;
-her decisions were as swift and firm as their expression
-was gentle and well bred; one could divine in her the
-immovable obstinacy of one who is never violent or
-angry, but always unchangeably certain that he is
-right. As she smiled upon Mrs. Mimburn’s congratulatory
-fondlings, she conceived an instantaneous
-dislike for that over-decorated woman, and had no
-difficulty in feeling sure that her disapproval was
-righteous.</p>
-
-<p>‘Call me Minne,’ Mrs. Mimburn was saying effusively,
-gladly conscious that she was making a highly favour-impression
-on the bride-elect. ‘Always remember to
-call me Minne.’</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Mimburn had never allowed her nephew to
-emphasize her age by calling her aunt, and saw no
-reason for delaying to make the situation clear to her
-prospective niece.</p>
-
-<p>‘So kind,’ murmured Gundred, smiling into Mrs.
-Mimburn’s eyes, and noticing the heavy rings of bistre
-that enhanced their charms. Then she turned to
-Lady Adela.</p>
-
-<p>‘Just one cup of tea, dear Lady Adela, if I may?
-And then, really, I must be getting home. Kingston
-and I have been having the most delightful afternoon,
-but papa will be thinking I have been run over, or
-something terrible. And I sent the carriage home, too.’</p>
-
-<p>Lady Adela poured her out a cup of tea, and Kingston
-Darnley offered it to her with due devotion.</p>
-
-<p>‘No, dear, no sugar,’ said Gundred gently, repulsing
-his offer. ‘You forget, I never take sugar.’ His
-ardour was such that he persisted in plying her with<span class="pagenum">[33]</span>
-all good things; hers was such that she expected him
-to remember minutely all her preferences and dislikes.
-Accordingly, her clear, sweet voice conveyed a hint of
-reproach.</p>
-
-<p>‘And have you enjoyed the play, dear?’ asked
-Lady Adela.</p>
-
-<p>‘Very wonderful,’ replied Gundred. ‘But so painful,
-Lady Adela. I cannot see why they should want
-to perform such painful things. There is so much
-beauty in life&mdash;yes? So why should we look at the
-ugly things?’</p>
-
-<p>‘It’s all in the day’s work,’ suggested Kingston
-Darnley. ‘Beauty as well as ugliness. One has to
-face both in life.’</p>
-
-<p>‘But beauty can never be ugly,’ answered Gundred,
-‘and art only deals with beauty&mdash;&mdash;’ Her calm tones
-carried the conviction of perfect certitude, and flattened
-out the conversation like a steam-roller.</p>
-
-<p>She was too pretty, however, for such syllogisms to
-be as daunting as they might have been from the lips
-of a plainer woman. Kingston contemplated the
-speaker with a pleasure that obliterated all close consideration
-of the thing spoken.</p>
-
-<p>‘I like a play with plenty of passion in it,’ announced
-Mrs. Mimburn. ‘English plays are so absurdly
-mealy-mouthed. These things exist, and, really, the
-whole of life is wonderfully interesting. And yet
-English writers leave out the most exciting half of
-everything. Why, for my own part, as soon as I have
-read the <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">haut goût</i> parts in a book, I take no further
-interest in the story.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It is all a matter of taste, I suppose&mdash;yes?’
-answered Gundred, her cold tone implying that it
-was a matter of good taste and bad, and that on the
-point her own was as good as Mrs. Mimburn’s was
-bad.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[34]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Some women like to pretend that they are not
-flesh and blood,’ began Mrs. Mimburn.</p>
-
-<p>Clearly, sweetly, decisively, Gundred interposed.</p>
-
-<p>‘Dear Lady Adela,’ she said, ‘really, you make the
-very best tea that anyone could imagine. And it is
-such a rare art nowadays. But, do you know, I must
-not stay another minute. Poor papa will be getting
-quite anxious. Kingston dear, you may get me a
-hansom if you like, but I cannot let you come with
-me. Your mother will almost forget she ever had a
-son. You must stay with her and tell her about that
-dreadful play.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Look here, do let me come with you,’ pleaded
-Kingston. ‘I hardly feel to have seen you at all to-day.
-I want to talk to you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Dear boy,’ smiled Gundred, ‘you have just had
-three and a half hours of my company.’</p>
-
-<p>‘In a stuffy theatre, with four hundred people
-looking on the whole time. Besides, one can’t talk&mdash;<em>really</em>
-talk, in a theatre. It isn’t really being together,
-sitting side by side in the stalls. One might as well
-be with one’s grandmother, for all one is able to say.
-There are ever so many things I haven’t had a chance
-of saying to you. Take me home with you, Gundred,
-and let me dine with you.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred shook her head. ‘Impossible, dear,’ she
-answered decidedly. ‘We have got people coming, and
-it would put the table out. You may run in to lunch
-to-morrow, though. And now, may he ring for a
-hansom, Lady Adela?’</p>
-
-<p>But at this point Mrs. Mimburn intervened with an
-urgent plea that Gundred should let herself be driven
-home in Mrs. Mimburn’s carriage.</p>
-
-<p>‘Now, do, dearest Gundred,’ pleaded Mrs. Mimburn,
-nerving herself to the inevitable audacity of calling
-the new niece by her Christian name. Then she<span class="pagenum">[35]</span>
-fetched her breath in a gasp of relief, and went on.
-‘Our horses go like the wind, and you will be home in
-a flash&mdash;an <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">éclair</i>, a positive <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">éclair</i>.’</p>
-
-<p>To Gundred’s British mind the word merely suggested
-confectionery, and the proposal, as emanating
-from Mrs. Mimburn, was altogether distasteful. She
-smiled a cordial refusal. But Mrs. Mimburn pressed
-her point.</p>
-
-<p>‘We must really see something of each other, dear,’
-she went on, ‘now we are to be relations. A cosy
-little drive together, now, don’t say no. I shall be
-quite offended if you do.’ Mrs. Mimburn persisted
-until Gundred saw that there was no hope of being
-able decently to decline the offer.</p>
-
-<p>‘You are so kind,’ she said. ‘Well, if you are really
-sure it will not be taking you out of your way? Kingston,
-dear, may I have my parasol?’</p>
-
-<p>He told her he had left it outside the door.</p>
-
-<p>‘Where?’ asked Gundred. ‘Come and show me.’
-Together they slipped out of the room, leaving Mrs.
-Mimburn making her farewells to Lady Adela, and exchanging
-comments.</p>
-
-<p>‘But look here,’ protested Kingston, as they stood
-on the landing, ‘why am I not to see you again till
-to-morrow? Why shouldn’t I dine with you? Confound
-the table, you know.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Hush,’ said Gundred, but not sternly. ‘It really
-would put the table out. And papa is so particular.
-Besides’&mdash;she faltered for a moment&mdash;‘besides, Kingston
-dear, I&mdash;I don’t want you to see too much of me
-before we are married. You might&mdash;you might get
-tired of me, you see.’ She raised her eyes and looked
-full into his. In the smiling depths of her gaze might
-have been seen the whole truth. Sedate, restrained,
-correct, she loved her choice with a passion that no
-one was allowed to guess from the cool suavity of her<span class="pagenum">[36]</span>
-usual demeanour. Only in stolen flashes of privacy
-such as this was even Kingston permitted to realize
-his triumph. Gundred lived, as a rule, in public;
-every gesture, every inflection, was calculated to
-satisfy that pervasive invisible arbiter whose approval
-confirms its object’s title to ‘good form.’ Few and brief
-were the moments in which she consented to be, in
-body and spirit, alone with her lover. And rarely had
-he time to grasp the concession, before the blessed
-instant passed and Gundred slipped back into her cool,
-normal self, hastily evasive, as if frightened of her own
-self-revelation. So it was now. He heard her murmured
-words on the cool, dim landing, saw the look in
-her eyes, and realized her meaning. But as he caught
-at her hands, and broke into a hot protest, the mask
-flew back on to the girl’s face again. She reclaimed
-her hands and busied herself in putting on her gloves.
-It was the polite, public Gundred that stood before
-him. To his contrast with her public self, so self-contained
-and orderly, was due half the sweetness and the
-charm of that shy wood-nymph soul that only allowed
-itself to peep out at him so timidly and rarely. He saw
-that the moment was over.</p>
-
-<p>‘You are so demonstrative,’ said Gundred calmly.
-‘And putting on one’s gloves is a serious matter. One
-cannot do two things at once. And, oh, dear me! I
-have never said good-bye to your mother.’</p>
-
-<p>She slipped quickly back into the drawing-room
-before he could stop her, and, as he remained outside,
-playing disconcertedly with the tassel of her parasol, he
-heard the well-known clear level tones taking a
-daughterly farewell of Lady Adela. Then Mrs. Mimburn
-emerged in such a roaring surf of silk petticoats
-that other sounds became indistinguishable. She
-squeezed her nephew’s hand.</p>
-
-<p>‘A thousand congratulations,’ she whispered.<span class="pagenum">[37]</span>
-‘Charming, charming! Just the sort of girl that pays
-for marrying. You will wake her up. She will be
-quite a different creature when you have been married
-a little while. I know that sleeping-beauty type of
-girl.’</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Mimburn smiled darkly upon him, and put a
-world of knowledge into her glance. But she had not
-time to say more, for Gundred now appeared, and the
-two women descended the stairs, exchanging civilities.
-Kingston followed, to see them safely tucked into Mrs.
-Mimburn’s elaborate victoria.</p>
-
-<p>‘Lunch to-morrow; don’t forget,’ said Gundred, as
-a last reminder. Then the carriage drove off, and
-Kingston went upstairs again to his mother.</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER III</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>To love is by no means necessarily to understand, and
-Kingston Darnley, as Nature and life had moulded him,
-was a very different character from Kingston Darnley
-as his mother’s vague mind imagined him. In point of
-fact she, good woman, knew little of her son but his
-face, though, with the splendid intrepidity of the benevolent
-stupid, she claimed an intimate acquaintance
-with every detail of his being. Her complete ignorance
-was due to no conscious process on either side; he as
-little dreamt of concealing anything from her as she of
-ignoring any quality in him. But time had taught
-Kingston that whether he confided in his mother or
-not, she was just as wise after the revelation as before,
-being totally devoid of any power to understand what
-she was shown, or, indeed, to realize that she was being
-shown anything at all.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston Darnley soon learned to lead his own life
-without reference to his mother; to help by listening<span class="pagenum">[38]</span>
-was her province; to help by comprehending was
-beyond the capacities of her nature. So Lady Adela
-was left to dwell serene in the world of her own happy
-little kindly fancies, while the facts of life went by her
-in a roar, without ever being able to capture her notice.
-She felt that never had mother been more loving or
-more beloved; that never had son been more loyal
-and devoted; her parental eye was fixed unerringly
-on her child, and she knew his nature down to the
-uttermost convolutions of its smallest eccentricity.
-Did she ever forget that he disliked the smell of onions?
-Had she ever failed to notice and deplore his coldness
-towards her favourite clergy? And had she not succeeded
-in the last, noblest, highest ambition of a
-mother’s life&mdash;that of imposing upon him a thoroughly
-nice and suitable bride? And he, for his part, had never
-rebelled, never repined, never objected, not even to the
-bride. Accordingly, Lady Adela felt proudly secure
-that she understood her son in every fibre of his being.
-So she smiled upon him with perfect unintelligence, and
-gave nightly thanks to the Powers that had so gifted
-her with the perfect tact of motherhood.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston Darnley at one-and-twenty had found
-himself a great deal older than his years. His contemporaries
-were mere children. He had lived the
-sheltered life at his mother’s side, until at last came the
-belated time when she reluctantly permitted him to
-go to Oxford without her shielding company. General
-opinion&mdash;even that of her son&mdash;seemed opposed to
-Lady Adela’s plan of taking lodgings in Holywell
-Street, and thence keeping a mother’s eye upon her
-child. And to popular opinion Lady Adela accordingly
-yielded. She never made more than a mild and flabby
-resistance, and could always be induced by opposition
-to give up her most cherished plots with a smile. But
-until Kingston, alone and undefended, set off one sad<span class="pagenum">[39]</span>
-October evening from Paddington, he had never been
-allowed outside the sphere of his mother’s presence&mdash;one
-can hardly say of his mother’s influence&mdash;for any
-influence that Lady Adela may ever have had must
-always have been merely that of kindly, null proximity.</p>
-
-<p>However, reared by carefully-selected tutors in the
-gentle but stifling atmosphere of a widow’s house, the
-mind of Kingston Darnley had shot into premature
-and unsuspected growth. Intelligence he would always
-have had, but his training forced it into early development.
-And, as the growing pains of the mind
-are always painful as those of the body&mdash;especially if
-experienced too soon or too keenly&mdash;so Kingston
-suffered from the unseasonable expansion of his
-thoughts, and his discomfort was increased, no less
-than its cause, by the fact of his essential loneliness.
-He had no one to speak to. On the first mention of
-an idea, Lady Adela confidently diagnosed the need of
-pills; and any perception of inequalities in this best
-of all possible worlds must be treated by the purer air
-of Brighton or Bournemouth.</p>
-
-<p>So Kingston was driven in upon himself, and, by the
-time he came of age, had ardently discovered all the
-paradoxes that more fortunate people come to in due
-time at twenty-five or so, and then are able to take
-as platitudes. The injustice of wealth, the iniquities
-of sport, of religion, of land-tenure&mdash;all these crimes
-Kingston Darnley felt to be his own particular revelation,
-and they fermented in his mind until he had few
-thoughts in common with his fellows. They, meanwhile,
-went placidly on their way, and when Kingston
-arrived at Oxford, he found himself a stranger and
-misplaced among the men of his own years. He was
-filled at first with a gnawing, cavilling discontent that
-arose as much from idleness and opulence as from too<span class="pagenum">[40]</span>
-rapid and unhealthy growth. They, for their part,
-were honest, jolly fellows, who looked on discontent
-as an uncomfortable and ‘bad-form’ thing, to be
-strenuously frowned and jeered out of their circle.
-To enjoy what came, without analysis, was their
-scheme, and they resented being asked to inquire into
-the reasonableness and the morality of their enjoyment.
-At one-and-twenty no really sane creature
-wants to think. The time for thought comes later,
-when the first ardours of action are passing.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston Darnley, though he had far too much sense
-and geniality to preach or impose his ideas on anyone,
-was felt to be always suggesting questions, never to be
-accepting the joy of the moment, in a properly acquiescent,
-youthful manner. And nothing is more
-annoying to the hedonist, of whatever age, than the
-companionship of someone who seems to be examining
-the sources of his joy. It may be that no joys can
-stand the test of reason, and the hedonist’s dislike of
-the sceptic may gain its intensity from the hedonist’s
-own unacknowledged realization of the fact. Even
-when Kingston got drunk his tone of mind seemed
-analytical, far removed from the frank, bellowing
-joyousness of the more healthy enthusiasts round him.
-They sat about in the Quad and howled, or beat baths
-beneath the windows of the junior Dean; Kingston,
-anxious to please, howled and beat baths with the best.
-But, whereas the ebullition was pure nature and joy
-of living with them, with him it was always an assumption,
-a pose, no matter how carefully assumed and disguised.
-And the consciousness of this was no less
-galling to him than to them. All felt ill at ease, disconcerted,
-disillusioned by his presence. His well-intentioned
-hilarity seemed somehow to turn the gold
-of their pleasure to brass, to strike a jarring note in
-the chorale of enjoyment they were playing so whole-heartedly.<span class="pagenum">[41]</span>
-So, though never unpopular, Kingston
-Darnley was isolated. His own set in the college did
-not want to be bothered with the iniquitous why and
-wherefore of the game-laws, or the manifest impossibility
-of miracles; and the other sets to whom he would
-have brought these discoveries in glad pride had grown
-accustomed to them long ago, and for many years had
-looked on them as the buried foundation-stones of all
-reasoning. So that Kingston fell between two stools,
-and must needs keep company with his ideas until the
-passing of time should bring him level with the contemporaries
-over whom his training had given him such
-an unhealthy and fictitious advantage.</p>
-
-<p>In any case it is hardly likely that he could ever have
-taken any really intimate part in Oxford life. Training
-or no training, his mind had that inquiring tone so
-fatal to unreflecting hilarity. He was too much interested&mdash;in
-the wrong things, too, and in the wrong
-way&mdash;in people, in causes, in problems. The men who
-should have been his friends were concerned almost
-entirely with the joy of living and the avoidance of all
-unnecessary work. And how is the son of a widow,
-reared at home decorously, without other boys to riot
-and tumble with&mdash;how is he to have any personal
-enthusiasm for the joy of living, as understood by
-healthier, normal men of his own age? Nor is the
-precocious cleverness of the unquiet mind any real test
-of ability. Few of Kingston Darnley’s contemporaries
-but had as good an intelligence as his. Their brains,
-however, developed naturally along the natural path.
-In twenty years he had lived hurriedly through five-and-twenty
-of feverish mental development; their
-five-and-twentieth year&mdash;of mind no less than of body&mdash;still
-lay well ahead of them. By the time he and
-they would be thirty they might all, perhaps, be contemporaries
-together. The unhealthy, straggling<span class="pagenum">[42]</span>
-shoots of his forced growth would have been blighted
-down to a level with theirs, sturdy and natural; and
-by the time they came to consider the game-laws and
-the gospels, they would bring a ripe and genial intelligence
-to bear on such points, neither thinking nor
-talking in excess, but letting profitless points of doctrine
-slide, for the sake of hitting on a sane and decent
-scheme of living, such as can best be attained by the
-average sensible gentleman’s compromise between
-abstract justice and sound, everyday behaviour.</p>
-
-<p>And Kingston himself would find, in the course of
-years, that the rubs and jars of life would bring his
-point of view to the same pitch as theirs, and would
-perceive that thought is a frivolous and profitless indulgence
-of the idle mind, as compared with the more
-fruitful achievement of an honest man’s daily duty,
-along the lines of obvious, rough-cast morality. Meanwhile,
-however, though without conscious arrogance,
-he realized his isolation, and viewed it alternately with
-pride and regret. On the whole, as self-satisfaction is
-the postulate of all human life, the pride predominated,
-and he carried unconsciously through Oxford the idea
-of being a chosen candlestick for spiritual light.</p>
-
-<p>Other feelings, too, contributed to his sense of loneliness.
-Birth and wealth had given him caste; but
-custom had not yet trained him to it. From the
-middle-class, staid traditions of Darnley-on-Downe he
-had inherited several hereditary tendencies that not
-the most determined efforts could eradicate. He was
-conscious of them; they annoyed him, they disconcerted
-him by making him feel more than ever
-that he did not match his surroundings, and this
-mortifying consciousness was unsupported by any such
-heroic glamour as that which attended the independence
-of his sceptical spirit. He knew that he was not careless
-enough in the spending of money. Spend it he<span class="pagenum">[43]</span>
-did, freely and eagerly; but he always knew what it
-had bought, and his mind kept accounts long after he
-had fiercely broken himself away from the spell of
-pass-books and schedules. This was not as it should
-be. Money, to be spent correctly, should be scattered
-loosely, and the spender should have as little idea as
-possible of the way in which it has gone. Only thus
-can a well-bred indifference to finance be attained.
-The ideal of his contemporaries was to be perpetually
-in debt, and never to have anything whatever to show
-for all that had been spent. On four hundred or four
-hundred and fifty a year right-minded people might
-attain to complete destitution, bare rooms, shabby
-clothes, and a perpetual assumption of bankruptcy.
-One very popular man even achieved the result on six
-hundred. This was a rare triumph of extravagance,
-however, and a reasonable ambition would confine
-itself to a complete ignorance as to all outgoings.
-And this Kingston Darnley could never acquire. The
-ghost of his father stirred in him, demanding a solid
-recollection of every purchase. He bought the best,
-bought it and lavished it freely. But he never could
-rid himself of the knowledge that it was the best, and
-thus a faint suspicion of ostentatiousness hovered over
-all his entertainments, and the happy, slovenly wastefulness
-with which his contemporaries ran into debt
-for atrocious port or uneatable dinners could never be
-reached by a man with his finical instinct for perfection.
-This lack of carelessness, either as to quantity
-of pounds spent or quality of things purchased, stigmatized
-its owner for ever as an outsider&mdash;not to mention
-the fact that he invariably paid money down for all
-he bought. His wealth might as fairly have been
-blamed for this vice, perhaps; nevertheless, a hatred
-for debt was one of Kingston’s most inalienable
-legacies from Darnley-on-Downe, and, had he not been<span class="pagenum">[44]</span>
-able to pay cash for the best, he would certainly have
-remained content to buy the worst. And this, again,
-was a suspicious trait in the eyes of his contemporaries,
-who, though quite happy to buy the worst, always
-made it their pride to run up bills for it that would
-have been exorbitant had they been ordering the best.</p>
-
-<p>These small hereditary feelings set James Darnley’s
-son apart from his contemporaries, and it only required
-the remains of middle-class prudishness to achieve his
-isolation. Kingston found it impossible, in spite of
-habit and effort, to acquire the easy personal <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">sans-gêne</i>,
-the tripping, untrammelled tongue of his contemporaries.
-He did his best; listened genially,
-accumulated anecdotes and retailed them among his
-friends; but always heavily, never as to the manner
-born. His friends held the free, frank language only
-possible to the perfectly cleanly mind, naked and unashamed;
-he, for his part, was always uneasy in his
-nudity, and took his share in the talk with that consciousness
-of impropriety that doubles impropriety.
-The Dadd respectability still hampered its rebellious
-descendant, and prevented him from ever entering into
-perfect harmony with that world where decency is a
-matter of conduct, not by any means of language. On
-this point his aunt Minne-Adélaïde had certainly the
-advantage. But the woman is proverbially more
-adaptable than the man.</p>
-
-<p>Still isolated, then, at home and abroad, Kingston
-came down at last from Oxford at twenty-four, a
-character untried, unformed, unground by any real
-contact with the mills of life. An inordinate sensitiveness
-to impressions, an excessive personal daintiness,
-were the marks of his nature at that time, so far as a
-friend could discern it. For the rest, very pleasant
-of look and temper, friendly, honest, and no more
-selfish than a good-looking young fellow of four-and-twenty<span class="pagenum">[45]</span>
-has every right to be. Lady Adela was delighted
-to receive him under her wing once more, and
-noticed with joy the subsidence of some of his more
-tumultuous ideas into tranquillity. She had a fearful
-notion that everyone left Oxford ‘a roaring atheist,’
-and it was a great joy to her that Kingston completely
-disproved this fallacy, not only by accompanying her
-to church, but also by carrying her hymn-book. She
-devoted herself to exploiting her son, and he, not finding
-rebellion necessary for his pleasure, allowed himself
-to be guided wherever his mother wished.</p>
-
-<p>Rich and handsome in high degree, he began to find
-London a very pleasant and companionable place,
-without the ostentatious thoughtlessness of Oxford, or
-the frank intellectual apathy of his home. In point of
-fact, London began to do for him what neither home
-nor Oxford had succeeded in doing. Gradually he
-grew down to his own level, his edges were rubbed off,
-his generous, exaggerated ideas dwindled to their
-proper place in the perspective of life. He realized
-that to live well and beautifully it is not necessary to
-be for ever examining the foundations of action;
-that life is simple and enjoyable for those who prefer
-living it to discussing it; that justice, while august
-and unattainable in the abstract, and astonishingly
-contradictory in its precepts, is yet, in the concrete,
-very easily discerned and followed in this workaday
-sphere by plain-minded people whose eyes are fixed,
-not on the stars in high heaven, but on their reflection
-in the muddy ways of the world. He ceased to nourish
-fantastic theories against the hanging of murderesses,
-conceived the possibility of good in vivisection, and
-began at last to contemplate a Piccadilly midnight
-with the not unkindly stoicism of a man of the world.
-Inwardly, as he often told himself, his ideas remained
-the same, but their outward manifestation grew calmer<span class="pagenum">[46]</span>
-and more ordinary. When he met his Oxford friends
-he found that he was much more in sympathy with
-their way of taking life as a matter of course.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Lady Adela was bent on seeing him safely
-married. This, she considered, was the easiest and
-most desirable way of protecting him against all the
-wicked possibilities that lie in wait for a young man.
-To save him from the contamination of many women
-by tying him tight to one, before he had had time to
-look about and make his choice, seemed to her a very
-prudent, not to say holy, course. So she paraded
-desirable damsels before him, and held amicable counsel
-with mothers not at all averse from an alliance with
-Kingston Darnley’s wealth. The mothers and Lady
-Adela worked and manœuvred with Machiavellian
-cunning; needless to say, their designs would have been
-plain to a sucking child; and, equally needless to say,
-Kingston, pleased and flattered, lent himself more or
-less amiably to their strategy, with a guilelessness that
-quite reassured them as to his ignorance of their
-purposes.</p>
-
-<p>But that very blamelessness of her son’s which Lady
-Adela wished to safeguard was the ruin of her plan.
-For, as a matter of fact, Lady Adela, by an accident of
-fate, rather than by any perspicacity of intellect, was
-right in holding the mother’s usual superstition of her
-son’s purity. Kingston Darnley, emotional and fastidious
-of temperament, impressionable rather than
-passionate, curious and idealistic, had hitherto not
-gone the way of all flesh. He had avoided ‘experiences’;
-and experiences had never sought him out.
-The sense of personal decency remained strong upon
-him, and its strength was reinforced by his old theories
-of morality, and by his strong tendency towards
-mental, rather than physical passion. So he remained
-a spectator in the great sexual battle of life.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[47]</span></p>
-
-<p>And this onlooker attitude is not endearing even to
-the most holy and maidenly of women. Women require
-to feel that a man is a man&mdash;that is, they require
-to feel the thrill of his virility in the deep fibres of their
-consciousness&mdash;to have their interest caught and held
-by the proximity of the dominating male. It is only
-to the depraved woman that the saint is of personal
-interest; and, even then, her interest is depraved as
-her nature. The normal girl&mdash;though she has not the
-faintest understanding what her wishes mean&mdash;needs
-to feel the possible conqueror in the man she is talking
-to&mdash;at least, if he is to rouse her curiosity and grow
-in her acquaintance. And this mysterious thrill, of
-the man triumphant, Kingston was utterly unable
-to communicate. Therefore his friendships with
-women were almost wholly impersonal. He had none
-of that love-making power which experiences confer;
-had no idea of how the blood is stirred and defiance
-stimulated; no gift for that bold expression of physical
-approval which is so dear to even the best of women.
-Women had to ask him if their frocks were pretty,
-and if he liked their hats; even then his answers never
-went the fervent lengths that their questions had been
-meant to open up.</p>
-
-<p>His flirtations were abstract, platonic, unearthly&mdash;all
-that a mother considers most unprofitable, though
-perilous. The artist, indeed, can be a sensualist;
-but the artistic spirit and the sensual have no real
-relationship. What attracts the one repels the other,
-and it is only within the fierce energetic soul of genius
-that the two can be reconciled. Kingston Darnley,
-without genius, had the artist spirit. And the artist
-spirit was for ever showing him fresh superficial
-blemishes in the offered maidens&mdash;blemishes whose deterrent
-force his animalism was not powerful enough
-to overcome. This one had hands that didn’t match;<span class="pagenum">[48]</span>
-that one perpetually wore lace mittens; a third had a
-nose that perspired at dances; or an irritating cackle
-that revealed a golden tooth. One and all, he liked
-them&mdash;even loved them&mdash;in so far as their minds were
-clear, pleasant, friendly, lovable. But to be loved
-for her mind is the last thing that a well-looking
-young woman requires. And when he thought of
-marrying them, when he considered the prospect of
-living for ever with a perspiring nose or a mittened
-hand, Kingston revolted at the idea, no matter how
-precious the soul that owned the nose or the mitten.</p>
-
-<p>It may be imagined, then, that, whatever his relations
-with older, plainer women, settled in life, he
-was neither popular nor at ease with the marriageable
-maidens provided by his mother. In vague dissatisfaction
-with his home, he was even anxious to marry
-and settle down with some sympathetic, adorable
-woman&mdash;but always that accursed prosaic aspect of
-the case came uppermost, and repelled him in horror
-from the plan.</p>
-
-<p>Only once had he ever felt what he hoped might be
-the premonitory thrill of a really great passion&mdash;a
-passion such as might tide him over the more difficult
-questions involved. In this hope he had nurtured
-young love; and as love in so many lucky people is
-a matter of habit and determination, he had seemed
-soon to be in a fair way to success. The girl, too,
-showed signs of approval, and everything appeared so
-prosperous that Lady Adela gave hearty thanks and
-put half a crown into the plate, feeling that Heaven had
-earned more than its customary shilling. And then
-one day he had sat with the girl and her aunt in
-Kensington Gardens. And the cruel glare of daylight
-had shown him a fine colony of down on her nose,
-and the places whence and where her maid had transferred
-a rosette to hide a stain on her gown. All was<span class="pagenum">[49]</span>
-over. The girl was everything delightful; but the
-idea of being bound eternally to a potentially bearded
-nose was impossible. Kingston could no longer bear
-the thought of marrying, and told his mother that his
-hope had proved fallacious. Heaven only got sixpence
-the next Sunday; and, even so, it was in coppers.</p>
-
-<p>It was shortly after this episode that Heaven, bearing
-no malice, had thrown Lady Adela into the track of
-Lady Agnes Mortimer. Lady Agnes was a single
-woman of small means, and an eccentricity that passed
-all bounds. However, she was something of a personage,
-by virtue of her name as well as of her character,
-and the great-niece whom she was trying to
-marry might do very well for Kingston Darnley. So
-thought Lady Adela, pondering the many eligible
-qualities of the girl who would one day be daughter to
-a Duke of March and Brakelond, and who, besides,
-had so many qualities that endearingly resembled her
-own&mdash;at least, so far as kindness, devotion, sweetness,
-and piety went. She brought her son, accordingly,
-into contact with Miss Mortimer, and was surreptitiously
-overjoyed to find him obediently disposed.
-As for Lady Agnes, she contemplated with equanimity
-the introduction of the Darnley wealth into the impoverished
-House of Mortimer, and tried to soften
-down her asperities lest the match should be impeded.</p>
-
-<p>The House of March and Brakelond no longer
-loomed so large in the public eye as once it had, and as
-Gundred still felt it should. The reigning Duke was
-an imbecile, uncomfortably poor and very aged. There
-was no Duchess, no near relations, nothing to give
-prominence or interest even to the daughter of the
-heir-apparent. Gundred Mortimer attracted little
-notice in London, keeping house parsimoniously for
-her father in Russell Square, and going out on the
-rather shabby arm of Lady Agnes. Lady Agnes was<span class="pagenum">[50]</span>
-accepted because her eccentricities made her so incalculable
-as to be amusing; but Gundred was soon
-found to be almost depressingly normal and correct.
-There were scores of more naturally noticeable girls in
-London; Miss Mortimer, as Miss Mortimer, had no sort
-of personal importance, whatever power and dignity
-Fate might see fit to bestow at some later date on
-‘Lady Gundred.’ Nicely mannered, nicely minded,
-nicely dressed, Miss Mortimer was an inconspicuous,
-if pleasant, figure in the crowd, and the elevation of
-her father to the dukedom seemed so remote that there
-was no according her any advance on her face-value.
-Had the prospect of finding her mistress and deputy
-Duchess at Brakelond only been more actual or
-imminent, then the world might have lent Miss
-Mortimer credit and respect on the reversion; but
-Mr. Mortimer and his daughter had been Mr. and Miss
-Mortimer for so many years now that no one found it
-easy to think of them as prospective ‘Duke of March
-and Brakelond’ and ‘Lady Gundred.’ Whenever
-anyone thought now of the Mortimers, it was always
-of the old&mdash;incredibly old&mdash;imbecile, dying eternally
-at Brakelond among his parrots.</p>
-
-<p>Nor was Mr. Mortimer himself of a commanding
-character, fit to capture that popular interest which his
-daughter’s quiet neatness had been unable to attach.
-Mr. Mortimer, son of the late Lord Roger, and heir-apparent
-to his uncle, must always, whatever his
-position, have been a nonentity, not only from his
-poverty, but from his silliness. Mr. Mortimer was
-strangely, unbelievably silly. He was merely silly.
-He was silly in the wrong way. He neither shocked
-people nor amused them. Even his daughter realized
-that he was silly, and felt no grievance with the world
-for ignoring him. The world had, at one time, done its
-best to encourage a coming Duke. But the long delay<span class="pagenum">[51]</span>
-in the succession, coupled with Mr. Mortimer’s overwhelming
-foolishness, had gradually worn off the
-patience of even the most far-sighted; and now his
-daughter went about inconspicuously with her great-aunt,
-while her father stayed unregretted at home,
-and presumed on his prospects in a placid, most-comfortable-chair-assuming
-way.</p>
-
-<p>Gentle, neat, polite, Miss Mortimer, in her heart of
-hearts, resented the indifference with which the world
-seemed to treat the future mistress of Brakelond.
-And this resentment, demure and calm as it was, did
-not make her more attractive or approachable to the
-men from whom she would have liked to claim attention
-as her right. She stiffened herself into a rigid
-piety, and by contrast with the gay, attractive girls
-around her, made herself defiantly dull and godly in
-demeanour, pluming herself the while on her unfaltering
-maintenance of old-fashioned piety in degenerate
-days. And as soon as the men discovered
-that, in her way, she was mildly sulking at them for not
-making more of her, they ceased their efforts to make
-anything at all, and took refuge with the hundreds of
-other bright, pleasant girls who had twice Miss Mortimer’s
-charm and none of her prospects or pretensions.</p>
-
-<p>It was strange that Gundred, delightfully pretty in
-her cool way, serene, beautifully mannered, could
-exert no compelling force on her surroundings. That
-she wished to claim attention was the sign of her
-weakness; for those who can command attention never
-take the trouble of asking for it. But Gundred’s
-mind was always secluded, self-centred, reserved. She
-never gave out any light or warmth. She accepted,
-absorbed, received with gracious dignity; she never
-had the power of radiating any return of friendly
-feeling, any comforting geniality of human sympathy.
-As a talker she was gently frigid, sweetly insipid in her<span class="pagenum">[52]</span>
-way of avoiding all topics of general interest, and, while
-restricting the conversation to her own concerns, of
-restricting it entirely to such of those as were most
-obvious and least interesting to the world at large.
-The weather, as it affected her plans; the visits that she
-paid, the churches she attended, and the cooks that
-she engaged; such were the subjects on which she
-pellucidly discoursed in the prettiest of voices, with
-the most pleasant of smiles; to the unutterable
-weariness of some partner who wanted a little more
-vitality in the conversation.</p>
-
-<p>Nor was she more successful as a listener. Even
-during the most thrilling recitals her eye might be seen
-wandering towards the next comer, or her mind guessed
-to be wondering whether she had not accorded the
-speaker enough of her attention. Men soon ceased to
-tell her anything of value, and followed her own example
-of talking amiably but saying nothing. Lady
-Agnes was beginning to despair of her great-niece’s
-prospects when Kingston Darnley was ushered into
-the lists by his mother.</p>
-
-<p>He came, he saw, he conquered. Idle-looking, tall
-and fair, beautiful in build and feature, he could not but
-command personal admiration; while in mind, keenly
-active, riotously fanciful, he was the last man in the
-world to conciliate Miss Mortimer’s approval, and,
-therefore, the first to captivate her attention. To her
-prim and maidenly habits of thought he was seductive
-in his lazy twinkling moods, seductive in his moments
-of emotion, seductive in those ebullitions of ridiculous
-gaiety that Gundred knew to be so disorderly and unconventional,
-yet reluctantly felt to be so delightful.
-Hitherto men had either bored her or been bored by
-her, had always failed to penetrate the closed garden of
-her attention; Kingston Darnley now came swinging
-carelessly into the sacred enclosure, and paid her the<span class="pagenum">[53]</span>
-compelling compliment of making her believe herself
-brilliant and amusing.</p>
-
-<p>Often it happens that the staid and decorous, hard
-as iron in their disapproval of all frivolity, are suddenly
-and completely melted by someone frivolous beyond
-their uttermost possibilities of disapproval. One is
-liable to love one’s opposites, if those opposites be
-sufficiently opposed. Only a little less different herself,
-and Gundred might have disliked Kingston
-Darnley; but he was so madly divergent from all her
-ideals that the very sharpness of the contrast drove her
-to capitulate rapidly and completely. She even
-ceased to claim his attention; she began to beg for it.</p>
-
-<p>Her training had collaborated with her nature in
-guarding her from self-betrayal. Her manners continued
-gentle, guarded, suavely frigid as before.
-But Lady Adela, with the eye of a hopeful mother,
-pierced the disguise of Gundred’s feelings, and lost no
-time in proclaiming the discovery to her son. Kingston
-Darnley, for his part, was strongly attracted by Gundred.
-To his fastidious temperament she never offered
-a jarring note. She was always crisp and cool; always
-deliberate and graceful; her hair was never disordered,
-nor her hat crooked, nor her stockings ill-gartered.
-At all points she was unalterably serene, impeccable
-and satisfying. Emotionally, too, she gave him what
-he wanted. He needed no ardent, unbalanced temper
-in his wife. He needed just that gracious acquiescence
-which Miss Mortimer supplied. She was restful
-in all her ways, her mind was thoroughly well-mannered,
-and her smiling calm assured him of a sympathetic
-nature. As he laid his ideas before her he was enraptured
-to see how sweetly, how reasonably she
-listened, and found full agreement in her cool grey-blue
-eyes, behind which, in reality, her inattentive brain
-was admiring the tact of his tie. But, whatever her<span class="pagenum">[54]</span>
-secret thoughts, she never revealed them, and those
-cool, grey-blue eyes had been trained to express
-decorous attention; therefore Kingston Darnley soon
-realized that in Miss Mortimer he had found that perfect
-conjunction of ideal soul with ideal body in the
-quest for which his five-and-twenty years had hitherto
-been vainly spent.</p>
-
-<p>That his feeling was not a great passion he sometimes
-felt&mdash;that it was not even commensurate with the
-passion which he had sometimes found himself forced
-half-incredulously to divine behind the chill fires of
-Gundred’s eyes. But his experience with the lady of
-the downy nose had daunted him and disillusioned
-him; with the knowledge of wide experience he now
-knew that a great passion falls to the lot of very few,
-and that it is well to take the good the gods provide.
-Failing the Supramundane Mate to whom all idealists
-look with longing, he would compromise with a woman
-in every respect charming, alluring, delightful&mdash;a woman
-of temperate mood, a woman of neat and faultless
-style in body and mind, a woman, in short, who could
-be trusted never to clash with any of life’s harmonies
-or discords.</p>
-
-<p>Her name, too, tragic and glorious, fired that curiosity
-of man to possess something rare and old and
-precious. Of Brakelond he only thought as a fit setting
-for Gundred’s mystic charm. For Gundred’s serene
-correctness, so prosaically pleasing in a London drawing-room,
-became ‘mystic charm’ when associated in
-the mind of her idealizing lover with the long oaken
-galleries of Brakelond. And Gundred, for her part,
-considered the possible glories of position and power
-only as gifts to confer on her radiant, ridiculous
-captor. She did what she decently could to please
-and captivate Kingston, deployed cunning little unsuspected
-wiles of dress and manner; brightened her<span class="pagenum">[55]</span>
-garments and her ways; achieved at last that miracle
-only possible to a first-rate woman, of being gay without
-becoming skittish. Little need had she of wiles.
-Her gentle flawlessness satisfied Kingston Darnley
-completely; and at his time of life, after his experience,
-he knew enough to be humbly content with
-satisfaction, asking no more of life, and expecting much
-less. What folly to let a plump chicken escape from
-the hand on the chance of a Phœnix flying out of the
-bush at some far-distant date! Better give thanks
-that the chicken is at least plump. Kingston Darnley
-gave thanks accordingly, and dawdled along the happy
-path that leads to proposal.</p>
-
-<p>He could only see perfection everywhere. If Gundred
-was sometimes unresponsive, that was surely her
-cold and lovely maidenliness. If her acquiescent
-sweetness lacked salt at times, and seemed to promise
-biliousness, the criticism showed, in itself, a bilious
-bachelor for whose ailment that sweetness had been
-especially prescribed by Fate. If Gundred’s answers
-sometimes seemed remote, inadequate, half-hearted,
-that was but the effort of a loyal soul struggling to
-get into perfect stride with his, and neglecting the
-interests of the present for the sake of the future.
-As he looked and listened, her unruffled pleasantness
-destroyed for his emotions the grosser terrors of
-marriage, and yet gifted them with a strange, appealing
-fascination. Carried away by his approval, he proposed
-at last, and was placidly accepted by a heart
-resolutely dissembling its delight. Lady Adela heard
-the news with joy, and a pound was not too much for
-Heaven next Sunday.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[56]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER IV</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>‘My dear,’ said Kingston Darnley to his mother one
-afternoon, ‘being in love is the strangest thing.’</p>
-
-<p>Long habit had taught him to indulge in soliloquy
-under the mask of a dialogue with his mother. She
-allowed him to talk, and never interrupted the flow
-of his self-communings by any sudden sign of understanding
-them. Few people are more comfortable to
-confide in than those who can always be safely reckoned
-on to understand nothing of what is said to them.
-Lady Adela laid down her knitting and beamed
-lovingly at her son over her spectacles.</p>
-
-<p>‘A strange and blessed thing,’ she answered in her
-soft tones.</p>
-
-<p>‘I wonder,’ continued her son, ‘whether everybody
-feels alike. More or less, I suppose&mdash;although everyone
-thinks that he has the secret all to himself.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Love is sent, sooner or later, to everyone,’ replied
-Lady Adela.</p>
-
-<p>‘But how do people know that it is the right love?’
-questioned Kingston. Then he went on, without
-waiting for the irrelevant answer which his mother
-would surely provide. ‘Uncertainty is a deadly
-thing. And the worst of it is that everyone who really
-wants to find happiness must always be uncertain as
-to the way. Only those who don’t care can ever be
-perfectly, securely certain.’</p>
-
-<p>‘True love is always unmistakable,’ replied his
-mother, who, in her time, had married the late James
-Dadd from a feeling that anything would be preferable
-to prolonged existence with Lady Kirk-Hammerton.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes; but it must have different manifestations.
-I remember when Tom Clifford was engaged to that<span class="pagenum">[57]</span>
-Menzies girl he couldn’t bear her out of his sight, never
-let any other man have half a dozen words with her.
-Now, I don’t mind who Gundred talks to, or what she
-says&mdash;not a scrap. And&mdash;well, it’s always a joy to
-see her, of course&mdash;everyone must feel that&mdash;but I
-haven’t any wish to go about all day at the end of her
-hat-ribbon. Is that because I am cold-blooded, or is
-it the proper normal thing to feel?’</p>
-
-<p>‘My dear boy is so full of chivalry,’ answered Lady
-Adela with affectionate vagueness. ‘No nice girl would
-like to be too much monopolized. It is hardly delicate.’</p>
-
-<p>‘One had a sort of notion,’ continued Kingston,
-unregarding, ‘that love-making was more of a desperate
-flesh-and-blood affair. I suppose the real thing is
-more ethereal than the everlasting philanderings that
-one reads about. Heaven knows, they are earthly
-enough.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Marriages are made in heaven,’ replied his mother
-reverentially.</p>
-
-<p>‘And love is made on earth, I gather&mdash;at least, love
-of the novelist’s sort. Certainly marriage is happier
-in every way&mdash;calmer, less discomposing, more orderly
-and decent and&mdash;and&mdash;abstract, as it were. I cannot
-imagine anyone not loving Gundred. She appeals
-to everything that is best in one. And the crowning
-mercy of it all is that she never gives one thrills of any
-kind, never rouses any primitive, prosaic emotions.
-She is always just what one expects&mdash;gentle and
-charming and satisfactory&mdash;and nothing else. There
-is no intoxication about her. And, really, you know,
-that is a relief. One had imagined that love&mdash;love
-in the completest sense&mdash;was a kind of celestial
-drunkenness. It is a tremendous relief to find that it
-is only a quiet temperance drink after all&mdash;the Water of
-Life, as it were. I don’t think either my head or my
-stomach care very much for intoxicants.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[58]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Your dear father was just the same,’ replied Lady
-Adela calmly; ‘two glasses of port never failed to
-upset him. Some people’s interiors are so sensitive.
-If one is in the least troubled that way, it is far better
-never to touch stimulants. Or peppermint, they say,
-does wonders.’</p>
-
-<p>‘One has wrestled through loves of different kinds,’
-said Kingston, securely continuing his soliloquy, ‘and
-it is certainly a blessed surprise to find that the real
-thing is placid and satisfying. The hunger and thirst
-of passion are fierce and dreadful&mdash;it never seemed
-likely that perfect happiness could be found in the mere
-appeasing of them. I am sure I much prefer the
-lasting, tranquil completeness of an emotion to the
-feverish clamour of an appetite. And that, after all,
-is what most people seem to mean by love. I have
-always rather hated violence and brutal manifestations.
-They seem a little vulgar, very crude and indecent,
-very unworthy of our higher emotional powers.’</p>
-
-<p>‘My boy is so full of nice feeling,’ said Lady Adela;
-‘violence is a terrible thing. I remember I once saw
-a dog run over by a tram. I have never forgotten it.’</p>
-
-<p>‘One feels a certain something solid and eternal
-about real love,’ went on her son, contentedly talking
-to himself aloud under pretence of addressing his
-mother. ‘It is a huge level tract of feeling, stretching
-out into the immensities, without anything to break
-the enormous flat surface of it. It goes on for ever and
-ever, without valleys or pinnacles, or rough places of
-any kind. And surely that is better than perpetually
-scrambling up peaks and falling off them again, into
-abysses. Real love is not a mountain track; it is a
-solid turnpike road with a smooth, sound surface.
-One’s life jogs along it imperceptibly, and one’s attention
-need not be kept fixed on the driving to see where
-one is going. With Gundred I feel that I am with<span class="pagenum">[59]</span>
-someone whom I have known for ages in the past, and
-whom I shall continue to know for ages in the future,
-without jars or disconnections. There is something
-monumental, something filling about the sensation.
-People who find the hot rough-and-tumble pandemian
-love enough for them would think the real
-heavenly feeling stodgy and perhaps&mdash;well, perhaps
-even a little dull. It does lack diversity somehow.
-It offers repletion without any sauces to appetise. But,
-then, I suppose the immensities must of necessity
-seem monotonous to our small, jigging intelligences.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I am sure, Kingston,’ said Lady Adela with conviction,
-‘that no one could have a better intelligence
-than you. It is quite something to be thankful for.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Now, Gundred, for instance&mdash;very often with her
-I have a shut-out feeling of getting no further, of
-finding locked doors and stone walls. Sometimes I
-have nothing that I want to say to her, and sometimes
-she has nothing that she wants to say to me. Sometimes
-she does not understand what I mean, sometimes
-we seem to be talking different languages, without any
-real wish to make ourselves intelligible. When we
-have said that we love each other there is nothing
-much left for us to say. And isn’t that exactly as it
-should be? The love is the only thing that matters,
-after all. One does not marry for the conversation,
-but for the love. Other people can give one the conversation.
-No; one has to look forward over the whole
-field of life&mdash;it is not only the present amusement that
-matters. What is very amusing and delightful for
-half an hour would be quite intolerable to put up with
-for fifty years of marriage life. <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Marrons glacés</i> and
-caviare sandwiches are excellent in their way, but,
-when everything is said and done, bread is the real
-staple of existence. The primitive passionate lover is
-trying to make half an hour’s surfeit of sweets and<span class="pagenum">[60]</span>
-savouries supply the place of all healthy meals through
-all the years to come; it is only the idealist who sets
-himself calmly down to a long indefinite course of
-bread-and-butter. There can be no doubt that the
-bread-and-butter regime is the saner and the more
-blessed and the more refined of the two. But, of
-course, if one simply lives from hand to mouth and
-from hour to hour, the bread-and-butter scheme <em>is</em>
-apt to look a little dull by comparison with frequent
-snacks of indigestible, exciting dainties. However,
-thank Heaven, I have got what is best for me&mdash;and
-sense enough to recognise the fact. If Gundred sometimes
-fails to feed me up with pretty fancies from hour
-to hour, she is laying up for me a supply of satisfying
-bread-and-butter for the rest of our lives. And one’s
-whole life is obviously more important than any given
-half-hour of it.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ replied Lady Adela after a pause, ‘but one
-must be careful about bread-and-butter. Too much is
-apt to make one stout. I quite agree with dear Gundred,
-though, as to plain food being the most satisfactory
-in the long run. I read the other day a very
-nice book, in which the characters sat down to “a
-plain but perfectly-cooked meal.” Now, that struck
-me as expressing so exactly what one wants.’</p>
-
-<p>‘My dear,’ said her son abruptly, ‘what did my
-father and you talk about when you were engaged?’</p>
-
-<p>Lady Adela, who had expected from her son the
-soothing accompaniment of another monologue to the
-music of her knitting, started at his abrupt question,
-lost count of her stitches, then looked vaguely up at
-last, her lips moving in a vain effort to recover her place
-in the row.</p>
-
-<p>‘What did we talk about?’ she repeated. Then she
-blushed faintly. The distant past was transfigured
-with romance.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[61]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Dear boy,’ she resumed in hushed, reverent tones.
-‘The engagement is the sweetest time in a woman’s
-life. The loveliest things your poor dear father gave
-me. We were at Naples, you know, and one gets the
-most charming corals there, and mosaics, and brooches
-carved out of lava. I have got them all. And then
-your poor dear father and I used to go out on to the
-terrace in the evening and look at the sunset and
-Vesuvius, and the steamers coming into the bay. He
-used to take my hand, and we stood there, saying
-nothing. There was nothing to say, dear. We both
-felt too much. One does not want to talk. And sometimes
-he&mdash;he would give me a kiss. And all the time&mdash;well,
-there was nothing else in the world, somehow,
-but just ourselves. We were quite alone. We should
-have been quite alone, even in a crowd.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah, that is just exactly different with Gundred and
-me. We are never alone. We should not be alone in
-the wilderness. Gundred seems to live her life before
-an invisible audience of hundreds of people. That is
-why one can never get near her real self; there is
-always the consciousness of the audience restraining
-her.’</p>
-
-<p>Lady Adela, however, was lost in roseate reminiscence.</p>
-
-<p>‘So well I remember,’ she went on, ‘how the
-evening used to get darker and darker as we stood on
-the terrace, and the smell of dinner used to float up to
-us so deliciously from the ground-floor. Your poor
-dear father adored the Neapolitan cookery, and we
-used to talk of how we would have someone who could
-do <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">risotto</i> when we were married and settled down.
-But none of our cooks ever could. Dear me, and the
-lights in the bay, and the warm, quiet darkness of it
-all, and just us two, alone in the world.’</p>
-
-<p>The sweet and innocent sentimentality of Lady<span class="pagenum">[62]</span>
-Adela had succeeded in draping the usual beautiful
-gauze of romance across an episode which, in its time,
-had been marked by plain and practical precision.
-As ivy, in the course of years, grows over the bare stone
-of a ruin, so does romance cover over the hard bare
-facts of a woman’s past. No matter how stark and
-cold it may have been, yet, if her nature be loving and
-soft, its softness will subdue and transfigure the
-roughnesses of many crude bygone days. By this time
-Lady Adela believed in her romantic marriage as firmly
-as she believed in her vicar and her Sovereign.</p>
-
-<p>‘So delightful it was to be with your poor dear
-father,’ she went on; ‘he was the kindest and most
-thoughtful of men. He always saw that I had a footstool
-and a corner seat, and the sun nicely shaded off
-my eyes. He used to come and sit by me, too, while
-I was sketching, and read aloud to me until we both
-fell asleep. I have never liked any one else to read
-aloud to me since. Mamma was very bustling and
-worldly, and I was not at all happy with her. But
-when your poor dear father came and found me, the
-whole of my life was changed. He was the fairy prince
-that came to rescue me.’</p>
-
-<p>‘But you told me once, my dear, that my father
-had once cared very much for someone else.’</p>
-
-<p>‘The world, dear boy, abounds in the most dreadful
-women. And, indeed, why God made so many women
-at all&mdash;and most of them so plain&mdash;nobody has ever
-yet been able to tell me. There was a horrid creature
-who made your poor dear father think he was in love
-with her, as they call it. But, of course, he was nothing
-of the kind. For as soon as she was safely drowned
-and out of the way, he forgot all about her, and came
-and married me, and no two people were ever happier
-together in the world than he and I. Ours was a case
-of true love, dear boy, if ever there was one. And<span class="pagenum">[63]</span>
-I am certain yours will be the same. It is my earnest
-prayer, dear, and my sure hope. Gundred is the most
-thoroughly nice, good girl.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And it would not matter if a shade of dullness
-sometimes seemed to fall between us?’</p>
-
-<p>By this time Lady Adela was, for a wonder, awake
-to the purport of her son’s questionings. Her excursion
-into the past had brought her back refreshed into
-the present.</p>
-
-<p>‘Kingston, dear,’ she answered, ‘what else would
-you expect from a really nice-minded girl? She is
-not a married woman yet. The time has not yet
-come for her to enter fully into your life, or you into
-hers. Remember how your poor dear father and I
-used to sit silent together for hours, never saying a
-word.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes; but you did not feel the want of words. I
-think we sometimes almost do. That makes all the
-difference.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Words will come, dear&mdash;words and all other
-blessings in their time. Gundred will be the greatest
-help and comfort to you in your life, and I am sure you
-love each other tenderly.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston suddenly began to feel the difficulties of
-the dialogue. To confide is all very well and comfortable,
-so long as the confidant is not listening or understanding.
-The moment he shows signs of noticing
-what is said, the mortifying indelicacy of the proceeding
-becomes plain. Finding his mother unwontedly
-awake to his remarks, Kingston’s sensitiveness drew
-in its horns.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, thanks, my dear,’ he said lightly. ‘I am sure
-everything will turn out for the best. I am the
-luckiest fellow alive, and don’t suppose I forget it.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Some people always touch wood,’ said Lady Adela
-meditatively, ‘when they say a thing like that. Such<span class="pagenum">[64]</span>
-a silly superstition. But, still, there may be something
-in it.’ She rapped the tea-table firmly.</p>
-
-<p>Mother and son had been so absorbed in their
-dialogue that they had not heard the hall door bell
-ring. Suddenly the door opened, and Miss Mortimer
-was announced. Fresh, crisp, pleasant as ever,
-Gundred entered the room and kissed her future
-mother-in-law.</p>
-
-<p>‘Dear Lady Adela,’ she said, ‘I felt I must come
-round and see how you were. This heat&mdash;so ridiculously
-trying for a climate like ours.’ Then she turned
-to Kingston. ‘And Kingston,’ she added; ‘how
-is he?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Poor gentleman,’ replied her lover tragically. ‘Mr.
-Darnley has been quite on his last legs lately. But
-he recovered miraculously all of a sudden, as soon as
-he saw Mapleton showing somebody into the room.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You really do talk the most shocking rubbish,’ said
-Gundred sensibly, but without disapproving sternness.
-‘Lady Adela, why do you let Kingston talk such
-rubbish?’</p>
-
-<p>‘My mother,’ replied Kingston, intercepting the
-mild remonstrance of Lady Adela’s reply, ‘brought me
-up to speak the truth, the whole truth, and nothing
-but the truth. You asked me about the state of my
-feelings, and I gave you a truthful reply. Behold!
-Your coming has taught me, for the ninety-ninth time,
-that life is worth living. Sit down and I will ring for
-tea. My dear, surely it is tea-time? Gundred has
-clearly come here simply and solely to get a cup of
-tea. With me she will have nothing to say. It is
-tea she wants. She pants for it, like the hart for cooling
-brooks.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Hush!’ said Gundred; ‘don’t talk like that. It’s
-irreverent. But, indeed, Lady Adela, I certainly
-should be delighted if you would let me stay and have<span class="pagenum">[65]</span>
-some tea with you. I lunched with Aunt Agnes, and
-she gave me a lunch of unimaginable nastiness, so
-that now I feel as if I had not eaten for days.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You poor darling!’ cried Lady Adela with pitying
-indignation; ‘that is always the way. Wait, and I
-will order you something really nice. Look after
-Gundred, Kingston dear, while I go and interview
-Tessington about to-night. I have been wanting to
-see her all the afternoon, and I can just as well have
-her up to the dining-room.’</p>
-
-<p>Having thus tactfully explained her departure, Lady
-Adela left the lovers alone. A silence fell.</p>
-
-<p>‘What are you thinking of?’ asked Gundred at last.</p>
-
-<p>‘I am wondering,’ replied Kingston, ‘what, precisely,
-is going on behind those inscrutable eyes of yours&mdash;what
-thoughts are playing about behind that cool
-white forehead of yours. And the worst of it is that
-I can never find out. You will never let me in of your
-own accord; and if I took an axe and forced my way
-in I should only find a mess of blood and bone.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Don’t be horrid,’ said Gundred, shuddering. ‘I
-am sure I tell you everything I think. I hide nothing
-from you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Perhaps not, you well-mannered Sphinx. But you
-reveal nothing. Nothing about you gives any index
-to your thoughts. You are too fearfully and wonderfully
-trained. I have seen you suffering agonies of
-boredom with a smile; I have seen you suffering
-torments of cold and discomfort with the sweetest
-blandness. No one can ever guess what a person like
-that is really thinking. For all I know, you may, at
-this very moment, be remarking a smut on my nose or
-a blemish on my character. Your behaviour gives no
-clue.’</p>
-
-<p>‘But, Kingston dear,’ protested Gundred, moved
-by this denunciation, ‘you would not have a rude<span class="pagenum">[66]</span>
-and boorish wife, I am sure. And you know I have no
-fault to find with you. I think I have shown that&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>‘With really rude people one knows where one is.
-Their amiability means true friendship and true approval.
-With your suave, elegant, charming sort
-smiles may mean anything or nothing. One never
-knows where one is. “Mind you come again soon,”
-you tell me, ever so pleasantly. And the very instant
-before you have said exactly the same thing, in the
-same cordial inflection, with the same inviting smile,
-to some woman whom I know you intensely dislike,
-and only allow inside the house on sufferance. Now,
-what am I to think?’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred began to feel quite distressed.</p>
-
-<p>‘But, Kingston,’ she cried, ‘one must be civil. One
-simply must. Why do you attack me like this?
-What have I done?’</p>
-
-<p>‘You are such a beautiful little icicle,’ answered her
-lover. ‘Will you never thaw? You are an icicle
-inside an iron safe. How can one get at you to thaw
-you?’</p>
-
-<p>‘How utterly absurd you are, Kingston! Haven’t
-I given you the key? Besides&mdash;oh, I’m not an icicle;
-I’m not a bit of an icicle. Only&mdash;well, what is it you
-want?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Be quite, quite honest for a minute, Gundred.
-Strip your soul stark, and tell me whether you love me.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, don’t hold my hands like that. It’s so hot....’</p>
-
-<p>‘You are always cool, my dear&mdash;a capital refrigerator
-you are.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Kingston, you are unkind this afternoon.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, what about my answer? Do you really love
-me, Gundred?’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred still shirked the inquisition, though secretly
-she enjoyed it.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[67]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘I am engaged to you,’ she answered.</p>
-
-<p>‘That is the muffled up, overdressed sort of thing
-you always say,’ replied Kingston. ‘Give me the bare,
-naked truth. Do you truly love me, Gundred?’</p>
-
-<p>She turned upon him with a flash of inspiration.</p>
-
-<p>‘You would never ask me such a question if you
-weren’t sure of your answer already,’ she cried.</p>
-
-<p>‘Perhaps not, but give it me all the same. It’s not
-enough to know a thing; one wants to be told it sometimes.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, that is just like a silly woman&mdash;never believing
-a man cares for her unless he goes on telling her so
-twice a minute. Oh, Kingston, don’t let us be so
-childish. These things don’t need to be talked about.
-I hate talking about them. It isn’t decent. The more
-one feels the less one should say. Only kitchen-maids
-chatter about their love affairs, and wear their hearts
-on their sleeves.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Anyhow, that’s better than wearing it in someone
-else’s pocket, as so many others do.... Gundred,
-does your soul never take off its stays? Does it always
-live in public, on view, in full Court dress and train and
-feathers?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Kingston&mdash;dear Kingston, I think you must be
-a little bilious. I am not always in public. Here I
-am alone with you&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Alone? Oh dear, no! You are always acting,
-always posing to half a hundred people in the room
-whom I can’t see. They prevent you from ever
-speaking honestly to me, as I speak to you. They dictate
-the way you walk, the chair you sit in, every word
-and action of your day.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I don’t understand you, Kingston. A woman has
-so much more to think of than a man in some ways.
-Surely ... you know by now that I&mdash;well, that I do
-care for you. You mustn’t ask me to be always<span class="pagenum">[68]</span>
-saying so. You wouldn’t like it if I did. Do be
-reasonable. One has to behave decently&mdash;yes? Our
-points of view are so different. It seems to me that
-I tell you far too much&mdash;sometimes I think I am
-shameless and horrid&mdash;and yet you&mdash;you think me
-cold and unsatisfactory.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Can’t you realize how a man starves for a little
-warmth, Gundred?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I hate to think of men like that; I am sure you are
-not one of them. Anyhow, I hope we shall never condescend
-to their horrid level. You are engaged to
-me, Kingston, and that ought to be quite enough....
-It is for me.’</p>
-
-<p>She glanced at him with gleaming eyes. He heard
-the cool, level tone, and missed the gleam. He sighed.</p>
-
-<p>‘And some people have thought <em>me</em> cold and fish-blooded,’
-he thought, in a spasm of irritation. But
-clearly it was useless to dash himself against the firm
-rock of Gundred’s placidity.</p>
-
-<p>‘You are almost as impersonal as one of those
-Buddhist saints that my Uncle Robert has lived with,’
-he replied. ‘You make one feel cold.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred, resolved in her attitude, would take no
-notice of his renewed attack. ‘Your Uncle Robert,’
-she said, ‘have I heard of him? Oh yes; he is that
-brother of your father’s who ran away to Japan so
-many years ago and became a Buddhist himself,
-poor man, didn’t he? Will he ever come back to
-England?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Not if he’s as wise as he sounds. His life out there
-seems to be almost perfect contentment.’</p>
-
-<p>‘How strange that is&mdash;yes? Well, I have got odd
-relations, too, in out-of-the-way corners of the world,
-you know. There’s poor papa’s sister, Isabel Darrell,
-away in Australia, with a daughter. I really rather
-hope they will never come home. Colonial relations<span class="pagenum">[69]</span>
-are apt to be so truly dreadful. And now, Kingston
-dear, what I came to see you about to-day is this.
-Have you any very strong ideas as to the honeymoon?
-Because papa and Uncle Henry and Aunt Agnes are
-all very anxious that we should go to Brakelond.
-And I do think there is something rather nice in the
-idea. After all, I suppose it will be our place some
-day, and our children’s after us. In a way it is my
-wedding-present to you. Don’t you think we might
-begin our married life there? Uncle Henry won’t be
-in our way at all. He is kept in a wing right apart
-from the rest of the Castle, and the building is so
-enormous that you might put up twenty people there,
-and no one need have any notion that there was anyone
-in the place besides himself.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ replied Kingston, warming to the prospect;
-‘it sounds a delightful plan. I was wondering when
-we could go to Brakelond. Hugh Frazer did say something
-about lending us his place, but I can easily explain.
-Luckily, all my Dadd relations are out of the
-reckoning, so there is no one to claim any tiresome
-rights. By all means let us go to Brakelond. It
-must be the most gorgeous old place. Haven’t they
-still got the room where Queen Isabel sat and worked?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes, horrid woman!’ said Gundred tersely. ‘I
-don’t like to talk about her. I can scarcely believe she
-was my ancestress.’</p>
-
-<p>‘But splendid, Gundred&mdash;splendid and tragic and
-romantic.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred’s firm, pale lips tightened into a line of
-disapproval.</p>
-
-<p>‘I never can see why wicked people are especially
-splendid or tragic or romantic,’ she said. ‘Goodness
-is so much nicer&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Perhaps it is,’ replied Kingston, after a pause, ‘but
-not always so interesting.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[70]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘One has no wish to be interested in anything that
-is not pure and beautiful and good,’ announced Gundred,
-with an air of virtuous finality.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, well, we’ll go there, anyhow,’ answered Kingston,
-shying away from the imminent argument, ‘and
-have no end of a mystic splendid time. We’ll sit
-about all day, and forget the world, and read novels to
-each other.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Not novels, dear,’ said Gundred gently; ‘sensible
-books&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston shrugged his shoulders. Clearly the conversation
-had run into one of its frequent culs-de-sac,
-and there was no continuing it. Gundred was impregnable
-to all assaults of the picturesque, and
-adamant to all new opinions or suggestions. Over
-Kingston was coming that bruised and daunted feeling
-to which, sooner or later, his meetings with her seemed
-invariably to lead. She held him at arm’s length,
-baffled him, rebuffed him, deliberately kept herself a
-stranger from his ardours, his intimacy. Each dialogue
-of theirs seemed to resolve itself inevitably into
-a futile if friendly discussion of topics indifferent. Of
-course this offered all the richer promise for the long
-years of coming matrimony, but meanwhile Gundred’s
-maidenly reserve turned the preliminary canter of
-courtship into a jog over rather arid and sterile ground.
-When Lady Adela tardily returned to the room, in
-the wake of tea, she found the lovers canvassing the
-<em>Academy</em>. Gundred, however, was so perfectly certain
-that her choice was sound and holy that the
-conversation was unfruitful if amiable. Lady Adela
-joined it, and it easily admitted a third voice.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[71]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER V</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Brakelond had the impassive mouldering grandeur
-of a great house that has outlived the troubled hours
-of its glory, and settled into a lethargic contemplation
-of its past. From very far away its castellated mass
-could be seen dominating the country from the steep
-wooded hill on which it perched. On three sides
-the forest flowed down in ample splendid folds, a
-cloak of emerald in spring, and, in autumn, cloth of
-gold. And along the fourth side the crag dropped
-away sheer into the western sea. Seen from afar, the
-Castle on its pinnacle had a remote and fairy-like
-effect, as if, indeed, the scene had been of Camelot or
-Broceliaunde. Into the clear blue of the sky pricked
-the soft sapphire masses of the Castle, the looming
-great Drum Tower, and the smaller, indistinguishable
-turrets; while, below, fell smooth and swift the dim
-violet of the woodland, like a misty drapery of colour.
-Over the country ran other lesser ranges, clothed in
-younger, neater woodlands; but the great building on
-its eminence ruled supreme, and the forest round the
-skirts of its hill was the very fairy-haunted forest of
-old romance. Among those gnarled trunks, in those
-green eternal twilights of the thicket, might Merlin
-still lie sleeping, or King Mark, a-hunting, yet hap on
-Tristram of Lyonesse. And far overhead, the crown
-of the country, rose the mystic walls of a Castle that
-might have held the fair Iseult or Morgan the Sorceress,
-a great drowsy splendour of stone, willingly cut off
-from the rush and turmoil of to-day, dreaming for
-ever, in complacent calm, of that hot and glorious life
-that it had long ceased to live.</p>
-
-<p>As an old illustrious man or woman carries always
-the consciousness and the glamour of his achievement,<span class="pagenum">[72]</span>
-no matter into what feebleness or decrepitude old age
-may have brought him, so buildings that are not of
-yesterday carry always the haunting sense of their
-past, and achieve a tranquil pride in desolation and
-the world’s oblivion, for ever beyond the reach of any
-smug, inglorious new country-house, all red-brick and
-sham Elizabethan gables.</p>
-
-<p>The country-house has telephones and electric light
-and all the latest devices of luxury; the old castle has
-matted corridors and inadequate lamps, and a general
-air of shabbiness. But that shabbiness is more beautiful
-and well-bred than all the clamorous elegancies of
-the other; the comparison is between some old and
-splendid lady, poor, dowdy, and forgotten in the
-clacking crowd of tongues, but serene in her impregnable
-charm, the incarnation of all that is finest in the
-traditions of a thousand years&mdash;and some scented,
-powdered woman of to-day, frilled, curled, decorated
-with all the lavish and assertive ornaments by which
-novelty seeks uneasily to impose its fancied supremacy
-over antiquity&mdash;a woman of loud tones, loud colours,
-loud movements, in her own person a great braying
-band of jingles from the latest edition of that comic
-opera which is such a creature’s London life.</p>
-
-<p>Only the self-sufficient&mdash;in fact, only those who are
-perfectly calm and indifferent to the general suffrage,
-secure in their unalterable, unselfconscious certainty
-of breeding&mdash;can afford to ignore the tricks and
-trappings on which the less fortunate have to rely for
-notice. Only the well-bred can afford to be dowdy;
-only the well-bred can afford to ignore the Peau
-d’Espagne or the Violette des Bois which may happen
-to be in fashion, and trust for their triumph only to
-the faint, unanalyzed fragrance of beauty and nobility
-that accompanies them inseparably from birth to
-death, without effort or expense of theirs. And as<span class="pagenum">[73]</span>
-a modern building, decked out in modern old oak,
-and fussy with stolen ornaments from bygone times,
-must always base its claim to admiration on the self-advertisement
-of its luxuries, so some old collapsing
-turret, the haunt of dead Queens, the chosen home of
-sad beautiful memories, needs no adornment, no
-advertisement to reinforce its calm and unconscious
-right to our worship. Brakelond, old, gorgeous, forgotten
-Brakelond, was too proud to trick itself out for
-popular applause, too quiet in its self-centred pride to
-allure the vulgar; it challenged reverence by right
-divine, and held the attention without desire to do so.</p>
-
-<p>All this of Brakelond far away, throned on the undulating
-horizon of misty woodland. It was a sapphire
-crown on a pinnacle of the world’s rim. It did not
-flop and flounder along its hill, like Windsor; rather,
-it held itself bravely, concisely, on its seat, with something
-of Belvoir’s distant majesty. But Belvoir is as
-generous as it is beautiful, offering itself to the world’s
-admiration; Brakelond, on the contrary, was governed
-by a grimly selfish passion of seclusion, severe and
-rigid. It kept aloof as if it had indeed been some
-magic Castle of Lyonesse, and none was permitted to
-approach beyond the outermost borders of the forest
-precincts. Lonely, menacing, fearful, Brakelond
-frowned away the approach of all new-comers. The
-spirit of its owner haunted it, insisted on inviolable
-privacy.</p>
-
-<p>For, from the great dominating Drum Tower flew
-perpetually the flag that told of an old man, brainless,
-dribbling, dreadful, dying for ever by slow inches in
-his high, drug-scented rooms. Around him ceaselessly
-screeched the parrots whose bright colours were the
-one consciousness of his life, whose poignant yellings
-made the one music capable of penetrating to his ears.
-Their clamour drove his attendants frantic, but the<span class="pagenum">[74]</span>
-old Duke, immobile, log-like, gave no sign of discomfort,
-gave no sign at all of life or its energies. He
-seemed dead, had seemed dead for many years; his
-existence tottered on a breathless poise that a hair’s
-touch might send swinging over the border-line of
-death; but that poise was firm and even; nothing
-shook it; nothing, in the cool unbroken lethargy of
-his days, could agitate the balance that rested so
-unwaveringly on such a razor’s edge of insecurity.
-So the parrots daily rent heaven with their screams,
-and amid the infernal din the aged wizard of the fairy
-castle, shut away from all the world by a barrier of
-stout walls and locked gates and impassable centuries,
-lay and awaited his end, a creature long since wiped
-out of life, having no part in to-day or to-morrow, but
-already one with the innumerable yesterdays of the
-dead.</p>
-
-<p>Into this haunt of sad mystery did Gundred bring
-her husband for their honeymoon. So stern and
-tragic a setting for the bright, modern drama of their
-lives had something stimulating about the abruptness
-of its contrast. Happiness, after all, could build
-beneath the eaves of that immemorial tragedy, and
-the flower of joy spring gaily from the crevices of that
-citadel whose mortar was tears and blood and the
-bones of innumerable generations, crushed and
-mangled. Kingston and Gundred took their pleasure
-lightly amid the surrounding atmosphere, and, in the
-labyrinthine vastness of the building soon lost all
-consciousness of that secluded presence, high up in
-the remote wing where the parrots made their song
-in the undiscerning ears of the dead that could not die.</p>
-
-<p>The main bulk of the Castle was old&mdash;some of it
-very old. On one projecting spur of rock that overhung
-the sea a hundred feet and more below, stood the
-most ancient relic of all&mdash;a suite of little wooden-panelled<span class="pagenum">[75]</span>
-rooms, low, many-cornered, slippery-floored,
-with strange turns and steps between them. This
-wing was cut off from the rest of the Castle, which
-towered over it from behind like a crouched monster.
-It was connected only by one small corridor, and held
-a rough primeval chapel which dated from days before
-any other stone of Brakelond, and was given by tradition
-as a place of assignation between Tristram and
-Iseult. This fragment of myth made visible seemed
-to be no part of the building, but a precious jewel of
-the past extruded from its enormous fabric.</p>
-
-<p>The body of the building, too, contained ancient,
-history-haunted corners. A series of rooms was
-credited to the design and the occupation of Queen
-Isabel. Here the She-Wolf of France, old Queen
-Jezebel, had dwelt with the lover whom she nearly
-seated on the throne of England. A traditional portrait
-of her still gazed out across the rooms she had
-owned, a stiff daub on a wooden panel, giving the fierce,
-tight-lipped stare of the adventuress, high-boned, pink-cheeked,
-archaic in drawing, angular, convincing in
-its very primitiveness of workmanship&mdash;jewelled and
-furred there and here in dimmed patches of colour
-that had once been crudely brilliant. Brakelond had
-been the scene of Queen Isabel’s highest fortunes.
-Her ghost still seemed to hold the high halls of her
-prosperity, her pitiless spirit dominated that wing
-which owed its life to her. This was her true burial-place&mdash;rather
-than Castle Rising, where at last, after
-all the changes of her eventful life, she died, old, fat,
-monstrous, honoured in dishonour, incredibly wealthy,
-the first millionaire of Europe.</p>
-
-<p>Dark and dusty were the windings of the Castle
-corridors&mdash;dark and dusty as the winding paths of
-Mortimer and Isabel. The building had been put
-together from time to time, added to, built on to, with<span class="pagenum">[76]</span>
-no thought of conformity, of harmony, of convenience.
-It was rather a congeries of Castles than one unanimous
-edifice. From far off it was seen as a single fabric;
-within its walls the daunted visitor could gain comfort
-from noticing its many discordancies, the innumerable
-violent breaks in the continuity of its development.
-There was no complete rhythm in the building’s design;
-part clashed with part, and in the jarring conflict of
-tastes and periods the enchantment which distance had
-lent was shattered by the sudden onslaughts of criticism.
-Here jutted out a Georgian wing, solid and
-stiff, but ill-attuned to the austere majesty of the great
-Drum Tower. There, a Duke of the eighteenth century,
-a friend of Pope and Lady Mary, had erected a
-Chinese pagoda, that perked impertinently up with
-its fantastic, saucy eaves among the stalwart turrets
-that had frowned on Edward of York, and given vain
-shelter to Marguerite of Anjou. Then, again, another
-Duke, contemporary of George the Glorious, had
-appended to the Elizabethan front of the Castle a
-small but accurate copy of the Brighton Pavilion. Its
-wriggling cupolas, its fluted minarets, shone white
-with plaster, and its main plantation of bulbs, like
-gigantic onions, bulged and swelled beneath an oriel
-whence the Virgin Queen had watched a masque.</p>
-
-<p>Each inhabited portion of the Castle, too, was of
-a style violently and even deliberately discordant with
-the severe and uninhabitable splendours of the Drum
-Tower and the old Keep. These contained huge,
-gloomy rooms, with infinitesimal windows, that looked
-out, for the most part, on sunless little courtyards,
-mere wells of darkness, made by the addition of new
-buildings to the old. Here, in these big, stark halls,
-were mouldering arrangements of armour, or acres of
-dingy pictures, bloated Flemish boors, dubious angular
-Madonnas, riotous female nudities, all hidden from the<span class="pagenum">[77]</span>
-world by a merciful veil of dirt. The stone floors were
-inadequately disguised with worn matting, and at
-night one feeble, smoky lamp was allotted for the
-illumination of each apartment. A proud neglect, an
-almost arrogant ostentation of poverty and discomfort,
-reigned supreme.</p>
-
-<p>The inhabited wings of the Castle were different in
-effect, though similar in scheme. Rows of bare
-barrack-like rooms lined the corridors&mdash;hung with
-glaring chintzes, and furnished with chairs of rep and
-horsehair. Their ornaments were meagre as their
-blankets, and their large windows threw a merciless
-glare of daylight on their serviceable sterling ugliness.
-Each had a square of carpet from which the pattern
-had long been trodden out and through in patches;
-each had cupboards and washstand of light grained
-wood; each was coldly spacious, airy, cheerless, and
-inhospitable. Most loud of all the discords that many
-generations of bad architects had contributed to the
-original of Queen Isabel’s castle was the high white
-wing where the old Duke lay dying. An Early Victorian
-Duchess had made this addition; it was big and
-bald and bare, faced with white stucco and adorned
-with modern-Gothic pinnacles. It grew out like a
-monstrous polyp from the side of a gracious little
-Jacobean pavilion, and dominated the main entrance
-with its stalwart blatancy. To crown all, the same
-Duchess had built on to the great Drum Tower a
-<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">porte-cochère</i> on the model of the Erechtheion, and
-had holystoned the Drum Tower itself of a pale and
-repellent buttermilk blue.</p>
-
-<p>Of all this accumulated history Gundred was, as it
-were, the sum and incarnation. The Castle, village
-of unconnected houses though it was in reality, yet had
-a collective personality of its own, even as a crowd of
-unrelated human beings has a collective personality<span class="pagenum">[78]</span>
-beyond and above that of a mere aggregation of units.
-And she, its daughter and heiress, was also its result.
-It is written that neither man nor woman can ever
-escape from his or her traditions. The traditions are
-the character, and we are the reincarnated spirits of
-very many dead ages. As sunlight brings out all
-manner of unguessed possibilities from the innocent
-blank photographic plate, so the influence of Brakelond
-on the last child of its history must bring out in
-her nature new moods and unguessed colours of mind
-that had lain dormant in the undistinguishing atmosphere
-of London. And thus Brakelond could not but
-set a distinction between Kingston and Gundred.
-Between the flaming memories of Brakelond and the
-long, quiet, eventless story of Darnley-on-Downe
-there must always be a great and significant difference.
-Gundred, gentle, unimpassioned, mild and
-calm, was yet the daughter of fighting centuries, of
-men and women who had lived, suffered, loved and
-died magnificently, flamboyantly, full in the eye of
-the world. She was the daughter of a ruling race.</p>
-
-<p>And he, emotional, energetic, ambitious, was sprung
-from an interminable line of sterling, honest mediocrities.
-Great glories, great sorrows had avoided
-Darnley-on-Downe; the crashing crises in the House
-of Mortimer had no parallel in the long unchronicled
-history of the Dadds. No more than his wife could he
-escape from his traditions. And those traditions, well-bred,
-decent, honest though they were, yet were not
-the traditions of a ruling race. Inconspicuousness was
-their keynote. And Kingston found himself an alien
-in the citadel of the dead Mortimers. Their ghosts,
-insolent, gorgeous, tyrannous, looked down with contempt
-on the colourless shadows of all the sober Dadds.
-Those ghosts had ruled, in their great day, over
-counties of Dadds, over legions of good honest gentlemen<span class="pagenum">[79]</span>
-of coat-armour who had been glad and proud
-to take service under the banner of the Mortimers.
-The House of March, perpetually struggling for
-sovereignty, had drawn to its service squires and
-knights innumerable from all the counties that it
-ruled. And the sense of feudal over-lordship was
-strong in the inherited blood of the Mortimers, even
-to the uttermost generation. Those others, those
-lesser people, noble and gentle, were but small and
-insignificant in the eyes of men and women who had
-violently swayed the destinies of England. They were
-loyal subjects, those others, perhaps, but equals and
-allies never. And now a man of the obscure order was
-lawful possessor of the last Mortimer. Queens and
-the sons of Kings had been, in old days, the mates
-of Brakelond; and the Castle seemed as if it could
-never accustom itself to the formal ownership, even to
-the presence, of one who might in former years have
-been squire or feudatory, indeed, to some Lord or Lady
-of March, but who could never, in the wildest upheaval
-of King Henry’s time, have hoped to become the
-master of a Mortimer.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred had given her whole heart to her husband.
-But now, in the shadow of all her ancient selves, something
-began to thrill in her veins that was more than
-the mere pride of part-proprietorship in a splendid
-and historic house. An old house, soaked in all the
-personalities of a thousand bygone years, must needs
-retain the flavour and fragrance of them; and on one
-who in his own person resumes the lives of twenty generations,
-the compelling influence of his home, the scene
-and material of all those lives that throb again in his,
-must necessarily be so dominant that insensibly he
-takes the colour of the past by which he is surrounded.
-If this was so in the case of Kingston, hampered and
-controlled by all the decent ancestors that had lived<span class="pagenum">[80]</span>
-and died unnoticeably in Darnley-on-Downe, it was
-likely that the effect would be far more obvious in
-the case of one whose own character was so neutral as
-Gundred’s, and whose ancestors were so terrific and
-blazing as the Mortimers. From every flagstone,
-from every wall, pressed out upon Gundred the influence
-of some masterful forefather; and in her quiet
-nature here and there a secret nerve or fibre, latent
-hitherto, and unsuspected, recognised the call of the
-soul in which it once had formed a part, and thrilled to
-life again. At Brakelond Gundred insensibly took the
-lead. It was she that decided to settle in the little
-ancient wooden wing that jutted away from the main
-mass of the Castle out upon the spur of cliff by the
-Chapel of King Mark. Her gentle manner grew more
-and more imbued with sovereignty, and her husband
-found himself now amused and now rebuffed by Gundred’s
-obvious sense of being at home. Away in
-London she might be anyone in general, or no one in
-particular, concealed her family pride in the Mortimers,
-was able to give her zeal for morality full sway
-in the condemnation of Queen Isabel. But at Brakelond
-her own individuality was swamped. Half reluctantly
-at first, but soon openly and even proudly,
-she began to contemplate the career of the wicked
-Queen, and exalted her with faint damnation that soon
-passed into positive sympathy. She spent her days unfolding
-to her husband all the nooks and secrets of the
-Castle. And, whereas normally she was a person of the
-most sensitive and neat-minded righteousness, hating
-fierce crimes, frigidly abominating love-intrigues, here
-in Brakelond her sense of right and wrong was in abeyance,
-and at times she canvassed old bloodstained stories
-with an unmoral calm, and a manner that admitted a
-not uncomplacent participation in their horrors.</p>
-
-<p>To Kingston it became a relief to hear her retailing<span class="pagenum">[81]</span>
-the legends of her house. The honeymoon, in its
-undiluted intimacy, may well become a strain. However
-much two people may have to say to each other,
-the knowledge that there is absolutely no one else at
-hand to speak to may well impart that itch of rebellion
-which most people experience when bowed
-under the yoke of necessity. Not to be able to do a
-thing often brings the wish to do it; a wish which,
-without the prohibition, might never have occurred.
-So an enforced duet may occasion faint hankerings
-after an occasional trio.</p>
-
-<p>In a honeymoon, too, after the first emotional stress
-and glory are over, a revulsion well may threaten&mdash;a
-revulsion to which ardent lovers are more liable than
-those couples who have married on lower calmer
-levels, and who, having never risen to great ecstatic
-heights, can never, therefore, fall to the emotionalist’s
-profound abysses of languor and depression. And, if
-two people shut up together in a lighthouse, with the
-hope of some day parting, develop insane, irrelevant
-furies against each other’s ways, how much greater
-danger of disillusionment must there be for a man and
-woman forced into minute prolonged contemplation
-of one another, with no reasonable hope of any release
-on this side of the grave. The most passionate love
-leaps over crimes and vices in the loved object; but
-stumbles at times over a personal habit, a veil ill-tied,
-a faulty taste in hats. The Ideal is a high and holy
-empyrean where love can range unfettered and unimperilled;
-the kingdom of daily life is a lumpy and
-uneven territory where the winged feet of emotion are
-apt to trip over some mean, unlooked-for obstacle.
-And the honeymoon is a time for complete revelation
-of personal as well of spiritual peculiarities, in which
-the veil of mystery is finally torn away from the nude
-reality of two people’s lives.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[82]</span></p>
-
-<p>Kingston and Gundred began insensibly to enter on
-that period of prosaic exploration which lies between
-the mystic raptures of the first hours and the later
-harmonies of settled married life. The day of blind
-passion seemed over. Gundred found herself commenting
-inwardly on Kingston’s habits; the smell of
-tobacco was no longer so precious to her as in the days
-when it stood for part of an enthralling enigma; his
-ways were untidy, he dropped the newspapers on the
-floor and never picked them up, he wrote his letters at
-odd times instead of setting aside a definite hour for
-correspondence; he was never in really good time for
-meals. And then he had mannerisms which, in the
-dual solitude, began to prey upon his wife. He sometimes
-walked up and down the room like a bear in a
-cage, until she wanted to scream; when he sat quiet,
-he occasionally kept up a maddening succession of little
-rhythmical taps with his feet; and, above all, he was
-given to whistling. Then in mind, though altogether
-precious, of course, and adorable, he had certain flaws.
-His religious views were clearly lax, his moral attitude
-was not strenuous, he was too eager, too inquisitive,
-for Gundred’s intelligence, which preferred to hold on
-firmly, with the unswerving trust of the dutiful pupil,
-to everything it had received at second-hand. She
-took life for granted, considered the scheme of things
-very admirable, and her own position in it more admirable
-still. Nothing was to be questioned. Therefore
-Kingston’s habit, divined or expressed, of accepting
-nothing without examination, made his wife feel
-worried and restless, as if her mind had mated with an
-earthquake. Finally, as the days went by, Kingston
-dissatisfied her inmost desires by gradually relaxing
-the amorous enthusiasm of their first married days.
-It is usually the man who first wearies of conjugal outbursts&mdash;men
-having other business in life, and women,<span class="pagenum">[83]</span>
-under the old primeval dispensation, none. And Gundred’s
-discontent was the more exasperating that she
-was secretly ashamed of it, and had far too much
-personal pride, far too strong a sense of decorum, to
-express it. As Kingston grew less and less demonstrative
-in his affection, Gundred revenged herself at
-once on him and on her own feelings by stiffening herself
-into an added primness of factitious maidenhood,
-by which she had the power of holding herself aloof
-from her nearest and dearest, as well as of repelling
-that very sense of intimacy that her own most secret
-soul desired. Her soul was of those that render themselves
-to no subduing warmth of love, but, whatever
-the fate of the body, must be violated, if possible, and
-taken by assault.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston, for his part, found that marriage had not
-dissipated or broken the spiritual barrier between himself
-and Gundred. Her citadel was still locked against
-him, inexpugnable, not to be captured by any guile or
-violence. There were still great heavy gaps in their
-conversation, great tracts of desert country across
-which their souls were incapable of taking hands.
-The calm beatitude that Kingston had foreseen began
-to reveal itself a state of something not unlike sterility,
-diversified with moments of irritation when he skirmished
-round the stone walls of Gundred’s guarded
-mind, and only succeeded in bruising himself, no
-matter how furiously he attacked. She could not be
-led, forced, cajoled, kissed, harried, or bullied into
-understanding. A sense of hopelessness sometimes
-seized him before the sweet indomitable obstinacy of
-her mind. It was at once so hard that no blow could
-make an impression, and so soft that no blow could
-strike home. Unlike Anne Elliot in all else, her
-manners&mdash;of mind and body alike&mdash;‘were as consciously
-right as they were invariably gentle.’ That<span class="pagenum">[84]</span>
-invariable, gentle consciousness of rectitude was
-cruelly trying to the restless, questioning, agile temper
-of her husband. He longed to stir up its provoking
-serenity, to stick pins into its lethargic mass. But
-nothing, no effort of his, could move it, shake it, upset
-that tranquil self-complacence. It was like grappling
-with a phantom in a nightmare. Neither men nor
-angels could ever turn Gundred Darnley from an
-opinion or a habit. She knew that her outer and her
-inner woman alike were both thoroughly, faultlessly
-dressed, in the best-fitting, most suitable garments,
-and no jot or tittle would she alter of her physical or
-mental trimmings. Neat, not gaudy, was her equipment,
-and, secure of perfection, she could not conceive
-the possibility of any improvement.</p>
-
-<p>That was another thing&mdash;her neatness was something
-inhuman, something almost appalling. She always
-put everything back in its place, always folded up the
-papers and laid them down tidily on the table when
-she had finished them, always devoted the hour after
-breakfast and after tea to the writing of letters, was
-always dressed and ready exactly a minute before the
-gong sounded. Neat, neat, heartlessly neat, were all
-her proceedings, from the way she docketed her
-ideas to the way she buttoned her boots and did her
-hair. True it was, indeed, that the maid was responsible
-for these details, but she, too, had evidently been
-mastered by Gundred’s devastating tidiness. Never a
-thought mislaid, never a curl misplaced, never too
-much or too little of anything, no excess, no enthusiasm,
-no hot outbursts, nothing but a serenely equable
-development, as cruel and crushing in its steady, remorseless
-movements as the advance of a steam-roller.
-If she sat, she sat with perfect correctness:
-feet in the proper position, hands folded in her lap, or
-prettily occupied with some pretty piece of work. If<span class="pagenum">[85]</span>
-she walked, it was crisply, concisely, without softness
-or undulations, erect, well-modulated, and poised in
-the certainty of faultlessness. And the very qualities
-that had so appealed to Kingston’s fastidiousness a
-month before, now became a terror when he contemplated
-a lifetime’s endurance of them. To see Gundred
-ruffled, muddy, untidy, would have been as great
-a joy to him as water in the wilderness; but no wind
-ever tumbled the orderly daintiness of her hair, no
-gale ever pushed her hat out of place, no mud ever
-dared adhere to her brilliant little boots. Never tired,
-never angry, never out of looks, Gundred was also
-never buoyant, never ecstatic, never radiant, and the
-bland sweet monotony of her threatened to become
-as maddening to her husband as the incessant repetition
-of one level, unvarying note.</p>
-
-<p>One or two small habits she had, too, which exasperated
-him at times. She was fond, for one thing
-among others, of talking about God in a frequent,
-casual way that he found intolerable in its assumption
-of intimacy, and in its cheapening of the soul’s most
-private thoughts. God’s, to Gundred, was the biggest
-name on her visiting-list, and she displayed it with a
-pride that people quite devoid of terrestrial vulgarity
-sometimes think it allowable to display when talking of
-their acquaintance in celestial circles. Her soul had
-a tinge of supramundane snobbishness, and though, on
-earth, she would not have thanked a Queen for a kiss,
-she took a gentle satisfaction in emphasizing her possession
-of the Almighty’s approving friendship. She
-conceived heaven as an enormously magnified and
-everlasting Court-concert, where only the “nicest”
-people were admitted, and where she herself was not
-only to have the entrée, but to be in the very heart
-of the royal set.</p>
-
-<p>She had, besides, a way of appending an interrogative<span class="pagenum">[86]</span>
-‘yes’ to every other sentence, which, by degrees,
-drove her husband to distraction. He found himself
-looking ahead for it along the conversation as one
-looks ahead for the next telegraph-pole on a slow
-journey. And as surely as the telegraph-pole that
-‘yes’ would come, maddening him with the certainty
-of its reiteration.</p>
-
-<p>Brakelond, accordingly, was a relief to both husband
-and wife&mdash;how great a relief they neither of them
-knew. They could take refuge from themselves
-among the ghosts of the dead Mortimers. Gundred
-almost grew excited as she repeated the stories of her
-people, and the spirits of the dead seemed to fill her
-veins with some of the blood she apparently lacked.
-A stark thorny tree it was, to have borne, at the last,
-so mild and white a bud as she. Always in opposition,
-always ambitious, always unscrupulous, maniacs
-in persecution, in martyrdom, in love, the Mortimers
-had risen and fallen, tempestuously fighting, up and
-down the steps of the throne. Ruined with Queen
-Isabel, they had survived only to fall again before the
-House of York. With the Tudors their glory towered
-once more, until a characteristically ambitious attempt
-to marry the Queen of Scots had destroyed the March
-of the time. Then, after a few years of comparative
-quiet, they had risen conspicuous as the only great
-house that had sided with the country against King
-Charles. This unpopular piece of patriotism forced
-the Mortimers into discreet seclusion through Restoration
-days, until a new opportunity of manifesting it
-arrived with the Great Revolution. The House of
-March, always especially patriotic when patriotism
-involved enmity to the Crown, had had a narrow
-escape of ruin at the time of King Monmouth’s disaster,
-and, for its safety, the Prince of Orange did not
-land a day too soon. His coming, however, with the<span class="pagenum">[87]</span>
-comparative loyalty that followed, and its resultant
-dukedom, had established March and Brakelond in
-that period of slow prosperity which had led on through
-two centuries of gradual inanition to its present effete
-or atrophied state. It seemed as if the furious old
-Castle and the furious old race that owned it could
-not live fully nor thrive without that atmosphere of
-violence in which they had so often gloried and
-agonized together. Peace&mdash;slackening, corroding, monotonous&mdash;was
-fatal to the vitality of the Mortimers.</p>
-
-<p>But, despite the obvious influence exerted by the
-Castle on the individuality of Gundred, Kingston could
-not but be struck again and again by the contrast
-between his pin-neat, impeccable wife, orderly in
-mind, body, desires, and the many riotous scarlet
-lives that she summed up in her own neutral-tinted
-nature. Always turbulent, always passionate, impatient
-of rule, loving and hating without limit or bond of
-reason, breathing the air of battle from birth to death,
-and flagging in the close air of peace, the Mortimers
-were a strange race to end thus, in a woman to whom
-peace, order, reason, limit were the very conditions
-of her being. As she talked to him of her people,
-Kingston noticed the small, flickering flames of vitality
-that leapt up in her nature out of the dead past. Here
-and there in her utterance from time to time some bygone
-tyrant dictated an inflection, some dead Queen
-contributed a thought. Kingston heard these voices
-so distinctly, noticed so clearly the occurrence of each
-foreign thought that twanged abruptly in the music
-of Gundred’s voice, like the sudden throb of a harp
-across a piano’s level ripplings, that it seemed to him
-at last as if, at moments, she were the mere mouthpiece
-of ghosts. For a vanishing instant, now and then, her
-lips spoke what her mind had not conceived, what her
-heart had not sanctioned. She was possessed by a<span class="pagenum">[88]</span>
-fragment of the life that had gone before. But was
-this all? Robbers and wantons that they were in
-their lawless splendour, had the Mortimers given their
-descendant nothing beyond these fragmentary reminiscences?
-Was there in her, far down under the orderly,
-decorous placidity of her surface, no stirring possibility
-of those old primitive passions, of those fierce
-blood-lusts or those religious frenzies, that should have
-come with the very fabric of her life out of the buried
-long-ago? The question was strangely interesting, in
-the bizarre contrast between the neat, methodical
-thing she was, and the wild daughter of the past that,
-by some freak of fortune, she might perhaps again
-become. Kingston watched her keenly, hoping that
-some day, sooner or later, might raise again the hidden
-depths of her nature, and reveal, in a tempest of
-passion, the frantic possibilities of the Mortimers.
-The idea was inconceivable, monstrous, grotesque;
-but attractive as a romantic paradox. As with most
-paradoxes, deep down in his heart he utterly disbelieved
-it.</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER VI</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Kingston Darnley, as usual, was late for breakfast.
-He had loitered pleasantly over his toilet, relieving
-the repellent prose of the process by frequent intervals
-of poetic rest at the open window. The little old
-diamond-paned casement of his dressing-room was
-open, and the crooked oak-panelled apartment was
-flooded with morning sunlight. Very far below,
-against the feet of the cliff beneath, the blue and gold
-of the clear water came lapping in friendship, and its
-lazy utterance rose faint and thin to the listener
-through the virginal clarity of the air. The day was
-not yet old enough for the haze and stress of heat: all<span class="pagenum">[89]</span>
-was still clean and fresh from the cool sweetness of the
-night and the unclouded dawn. To the uttermost
-horizon spread the level floor of the sea, a glory of
-scent and colour, gleaming, vital, incredibly buoyant
-and young for all its uncounted æons of life.
-Again and again Kingston stayed to dally with the
-enormous loveliness of life, leaning from the window
-whence he might have dropped a pebble straight into
-the purple ripples a hundred feet and more below,
-where they played leisurely at hide-and-seek among
-the rocks under the cliff.</p>
-
-<p>It was indeed a morning to be up and alive&mdash;a
-morning to be naked in the naked embrace of the
-world. As the hours go by, the world, no less than
-man, puts on its clothes. Clouds and shadows and
-haze come up to cover the strong free limbs of the
-earth. It is only in the short space after sunrise in
-some still morning that the world stands out pure and
-glorious in its nudity&mdash;vivid, stainless, triumphant as
-the white flawlessness of the young Apollo newly risen
-out of the dark, formless void. The upspringing day
-is our emblem of youth fresh from slumber&mdash;beautiful,
-ardent, splendid in the clear glory of his build&mdash;before
-he makes haste to hide himself in the sombre,
-ugly trappings of convention. Kingston was in no
-haste to take that leap of many centuries that separates
-man, as Nature set him forth, from the clothed, shapeless
-dummy that man has made himself.</p>
-
-<p>From the adjoining room his wife recalled him again
-and again to the flight of time. She was never to be
-distracted from her duties by any beauty or ugliness
-of the outer world. Had the Last Day dawned in
-fire, Gundred would have duly finished having her hair
-done before confronting it. There is a time for everything,
-she says, and all reasonable people know that
-the time for looking at landscapes is after lunch, while<span class="pagenum">[90]</span>
-taking one’s afternoon drive, before going home to tea
-and the second post. Then, at the proper moment,
-ecstasies are allowable, and even suitable. But every
-minute of the day has its task, and nothing can be
-plainer than that dressing-time is the time to dress.
-Kingston, however, whistled idly at his desultory
-work, and dawdled as if the whole forthcoming week
-were vacant. He loved the young tenderness of the
-sunlight, and drew great breaths of life at the open
-window. Overhead, and far away to the right,
-stretched along the cliff a mighty, menacing shaft of
-darkness, the shadow of the huge Castle behind. But
-this little old wing, on its spur of rock, jutted so boldly
-out from the main mass of the building that all here
-was radiance. Gundred, too, enjoyed the sun, but
-did not allow his ardours to distract her from her
-duties. She had the white blinds pulled down, and her
-toilet was cheered merely by a subdued consciousness
-of the warmth outside. Then, when all was carefully
-and properly accomplished, she made her way down
-twisting steps, and along a strip of corridor, to the end
-of the wing, where the last two rooms on this ground-floor
-were portioned off as dining-room and sitting-room.
-The whole arrangement was quaint enough to
-please her, but neither so inconvenient nor so unusual
-as to offend her sense of what was becoming. It was
-better than living, sitting and dining, in the grim,
-mouldering halls of the Drum Tower, or in the bald,
-chintz-hung rooms of the modern wings.</p>
-
-<p>The unexpected booming of the gong roused Kingston
-to a sense of time. With an effort he tore himself from
-his ecstatic contemplation, and compressed the remainder
-of his toilet into half a dozen crowded moments.
-Then, flurried, and filled with the feeling that he ought
-to be apologetic, he hurried towards the dining-room.</p>
-
-<p>He found his wife seated at the breakfast-table,<span class="pagenum">[91]</span>
-decapitating a boiled egg with her usual crisp neatness,
-which always suggested that she was doing the
-egg a favour in making it an example of exactly how
-an egg should be eaten. She was a lesson to the
-world. And he felt that she knew it.</p>
-
-<p>She, for her part, noticed immediately that his tie
-was under one ear, that it was exceedingly ill-knotted,
-and that it was the wrong sort of tie for that particular
-collar.</p>
-
-<p>‘I thought I would begin, darling,’ said Gundred.
-‘I did not know when you would appear. Such a
-lovely morning&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>Here, also, she had shown her appreciation of its
-loveliness by having all the blinds drawn down. A
-muffled white radiance was all that she allowed to
-reach her from outside.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston, meanwhile, had been collecting letters and
-papers from the sideboard.</p>
-
-<p>‘Letters for you, my dear,’ he said; ‘three.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Leave them there, darling, will you? I never look
-at my letters till after breakfast. It is so nice to make
-a habit of everything&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>Her husband, returning to the table, helped himself
-and sat down. For a time the meal went forward in
-silence. Then he looked across at his wife with intense
-approval. In the softened light Gundred looked
-wonderfully pretty. The table was bare&mdash;a piece of
-oak too beautiful to hide&mdash;and beyond its dark surface,
-where silver, glass, and white china gleamed and
-glittered, Gundred’s head and shoulders rose in soft
-relief against a very old painted panel on the further
-wall, a dim, dingy portrait of King Henry the Seventh.
-Before her on the table stood a bowl of pink and
-salmon-coloured sweet-peas. In the dim, primeval
-room, in the quiet mellowed glow, she struck a note of
-exquisite modernity. The curled gold of her hair,<span class="pagenum">[92]</span>
-the small clear features, the inconspicuously perfect
-gown harmonized, in the very audacity of their contrast,
-with the ripened antiquity that surrounded her.
-She touched another octave. From head to foot there
-was nothing about her to find fault with. And, against
-such a background, her charm was seen more whole
-and successful than in a garish setting of modern
-furniture and other, showier women.</p>
-
-<p>‘By Jove!’ said Kingston, ‘you do look extraordinary
-cool and beautiful, Gundred. How do you
-manage it? I don’t believe you could ever grow old!’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred was pleased. Such comments had been
-growing too rare. But she was one of those women
-who repel what they most desire, whether from motives
-of mortification or allurement, it would at first sight
-be hard to decide.</p>
-
-<p>‘Nonsense, Kingston dear!’ she said; ‘one gets
-older every day. You must really not try to make
-me vain.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Never,’ replied her husband, ‘have I seen anyone
-who gave me the same perfect feeling of satisfaction
-that you do. You always look as if you had just come
-out of the smartest bandbox that was ever made. One
-can’t realize that it’s all taken to pieces again every
-night.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Don’t, dear,’ said Gundred. ‘You are always so
-exaggerated. I am so glad I look nice, but it is only
-a matter of taking pains. Anybody can be neat&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I couldn’t. If it weren’t for Andrews, I should
-always have odd socks and boots, I am sure I should.
-I believe I am capable of wearing an up-and-down
-collar in the evening if it was put out for me. What
-would you do if I did, Gundred&mdash;divorce me on the
-spot?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Darling, don’t talk so lightly about such a dreadful<span class="pagenum">[93]</span>
-subject. God has joined us together, and of course
-I should not think of divorcing you if you came down
-to dinner in an up-and-down collar. It would be very
-wrong of me. But, oh, Kingston dear, I do hope you
-never will. It is so easy to be tidy. Your tie is all
-crooked this morning, dear.’</p>
-
-<p>Her husband whistled instead of answering, as he
-helped himself to cold ham. A man may let a woman
-mend his morals or his mind, but he would rather suffer
-any reasonable torture than have it suspected that she
-meddles with his clothes.</p>
-
-<p>When Kingston returned to the table Gundred was
-ready with a renewed supply of tea. ‘Nice and fresh
-and hot,’ she advertised. ‘Let me give you another
-cup.’ She poured out for each, adding cream in fair
-quantity to her own, and lavishly to her husband’s.
-This was a habitual little silent proof of her love for
-him, and had no reference to the fact that he particularly
-disliked cream in his tea. As for herself, she
-expected Kingston always to remember and respect
-her avoidance of sugar. But then his tastes were
-wrong, while hers were right. For he was Kingston, a
-man: and she was Gundred, a good wife.</p>
-
-<p>‘You’ve put cream in,’ protested Kingston, wrying
-his mouth at the taste.</p>
-
-<p>‘Have I, dear? I’m so sorry. Take my cup instead.
-I have not touched it.’</p>
-
-<p>She gave her cup a rapid final stir to make the cream
-disappear amid the tea, then handed it to him, and
-watched complacently while he drank it without any
-further complaint. She imagined that he was deceived,
-and felt herself happily embarked on that
-career of small benevolent falsehoods which make so
-necessary a part of the good wife’s success. She foresaw
-innumerable ways of cheating him for his own
-good, of making him eat veal in disguise, of teaching<span class="pagenum">[94]</span>
-him to like rabbit by serving it up as chicken cream.
-As a matter of fact he fully realized what she had done,
-but knew that it was useless to make a protest. He had
-learnt by now in a fortnight that all opposition to
-Gundred’s ideas was unprofitable. She had a firm
-notion that cream was good for him. Therefore cream
-he was evidently doomed to have, for the sake of
-domestic peace&mdash;and in quantities, too, as generous as
-the love that poured them out. Gundred had the
-bland pertinacity of the martyr, combined with the
-imperturbable self-complacence of the Pharisee. Before
-her gentle, inexorable determinations all hostile resolves
-were as the stone which an incessant drip of
-water permeates and dissolves.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston swallowed his polluted tea as quickly as
-possible; then, breakfast being over, began to think of
-the day’s news. He offered his wife a paper.</p>
-
-<p>‘Letters first, thank you, dear,’ said Gundred, seating
-herself concisely on a small, stiff-backed settle. She
-always preferred hard and rigid furniture to the
-cushions and softnesses that nowadays prevail. She
-felt them more virtuous, more decent, more suitable.
-She turned towards her husband. ‘Take the arm-chair,
-dear,’ she said.</p>
-
-<p>There was but one in the room that had any pretensions
-to comfort. Kingston, finding that Gundred
-was determined to remain where she was, settled himself
-in it with his papers.</p>
-
-<p>‘Kingston, dear,’ pleaded his wife suddenly, ‘you
-won’t leave the papers all anyhow on the floor, will
-you? It’s so untidy&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>For answer he softly whistled a snatch, then, growing
-absorbed in the news, began abstractedly to drum
-a small rhythm on the oaken floor. Gundred bore it
-for a moment. Then a combined instinct of martyrdom
-and love rebellious stirred her to action. She<span class="pagenum">[95]</span>
-rose and picked up a small cushion that happened to
-be on the settle, a bony little unyielding square,
-prickly and stiff with embroideries that tradition
-attributed to Queen Elizabeth.</p>
-
-<p>‘A cushion, darling,’ said Gundred in level tones,
-standing behind his chair. ‘Move your back&mdash;sit up
-a little, and let me arrange it for you.’</p>
-
-<p>Her utterance, her action, were characteristic of her
-nature. The utterance decorous, cold, impassive, the
-action springing from an unresting love. Neither from
-her words nor from their inflection could Kingston
-have guessed the warmth of the affection that beamed
-out of her eyes as she stood looking down at the back
-of his neck with an ardour which she would have been
-utterly ashamed to show to his face. Only by such
-attentions as these, valuable as symptoms of her concealed
-devotion, could Kingston ever make a guess at
-her feelings.</p>
-
-<p>‘Thank you, dearest,’ he replied gratefully, shifting
-himself so as to admit the insertion of Queen Elizabeth’s
-uncomfortable comfort. It harassed him, its
-adamantine corners cut into his ribs and the small of
-his back, but as an emblem of his wife’s tenderness he
-endured and welcomed it. What she zealously concealed
-from him in word she was perpetually anxious
-to reveal vicariously by such actions as these. ‘Thanks
-awfully,’ he repeated, then twisted round, so as to get
-a glimpse of Gundred’s face. Instantly the light
-faded out of her eyes, and all she allowed him to see
-was a decent wifely expression of solicitude. He never
-divined that any other had been there.</p>
-
-<p>But suddenly she permitted herself a word of self-betrayal.</p>
-
-<p>‘I always want you to be comfortable, dear,’ she
-said. The words were cool and coolly spoken, but
-under them lay the warmth of Gundred’s secret nature.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[96]</span></p>
-
-<p>Kingston, fired by such an advance, rose and swung
-round. He caught his wife’s two hands&mdash;those charming
-hands that were never hot or cold.</p>
-
-<p>‘I owe you something for that,’ he said, and kissed
-her twice.</p>
-
-<p>Very gently Gundred drew herself away. Her heart
-was afire with gratification, but she felt that every
-consideration of decency, economy, and pride compelled
-her to conceal it. To be made cheap was the
-last horror that her mind could imagine; and all outward
-displays seemed to level her with kitchen-maids
-and factory-girls.</p>
-
-<p>‘Don’t be so boisterous, darling,’ she remonstrated,
-while her heart longed to thank him for what he had
-done, and beg him to do it again. In the daytime,
-however, the invisible audience before whom she lived
-forbade these manifestations; only under the cover
-of darkness could she feel them permissible. ‘It is
-too early in the day,’ said Gundred, patting into place
-a curl that had never been out of it.</p>
-
-<p>Not for the first time Kingston sighed and found himself
-baffled by his wife’s perpetual assumption of virginity.
-Beyond the reach of all allowed caresses, her
-soul remained untouched, immaculate. The bloodless
-chastity of temperament that invested this last of
-Queen Isabel’s offspring was for ever a barrier between
-man and wife. And neither Kingston nor Gundred
-had any doubt as to whether the barrier were natural
-or artificial. Both believed it an essential part of
-Gundred’s nature. If Gundred herself ever doubted,
-she stifled the doubt as ill-bred, repulsive, almost
-irreligious.</p>
-
-<p>‘Ice-house!’ cried Kingston. ‘One may kiss your lips,
-but the real you is far away beyond the reach of kisses.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred knew that this was not true, longed to
-deny it, yet was glad that her husband thought it.<span class="pagenum">[97]</span>
-She was taking a shamefaced, almost fierce delight in
-the dialogue. For once her correct coldness had
-proved a challenge. Too often she had grieved that
-the low temperature of her behaviour was passing unregretted,
-unnoticed, and was even beginning to lower
-the temperature of her lover. Cold she still wished to
-be, for pride and decorum, yet without paying any of
-the penalties. The personal intimacy that one aspect
-of marriage enforces only the more impelled her soul,
-for the sake of its stiff self-respect, to take refuge in all
-possible mental reservations and seclusions, by way
-of indemnifying itself and justifying itself for the other
-candours into which Nature had driven her, not unwilling,
-indeed, but always feeling that she ought to
-be unwilling. Gundred’s temperament was civilized
-very far below the surface, and the rough facts of life
-never ceased to strike her as monstrous and barbaric.
-And most barbarous of all was her own surprised
-acquiescence. She could only recapture her vanishing
-dignity by emphasizing at every possible moment the
-immaculate maidenhood of her mind. This was at once
-her revenge on Nature, and on herself for loving what
-Nature sent. But her husband could not understand
-these subtleties; no clue was given him to the labyrinth
-of Gundred’s hidden emotions; he took her at her face-value,
-and imagined her as deeply, incurably frigid as
-was the manner that she thought proper to assume.</p>
-
-<p>He stood before her, still holding her hands, gazing
-hotly into the depths of her cool eyes. But now they
-gave him no answering light. Shallow, clear, and
-cold, they met his own without a tremor. No soul
-looked out of them.</p>
-
-<p>‘The real you,’ he repeated at last, after a long pause&mdash;‘the
-real you. Where is it, I wonder? Or is there
-any such thing? I thought once I could thaw you, but
-one can’t thaw an icicle unless one can get near it.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[98]</span></p>
-
-<p>The passion of his speech pleased her no less than the
-success of her own decorous hypocrisy. Now evidently
-she was winning the demonstrations for which she
-secretly hungered, and without any sacrifice of her
-pudicity.</p>
-
-<p>She drew her hands away.</p>
-
-<p>‘Let me go, dear,’ she said, with mild decision. ‘You
-make me feel hot and rumpled. If you want to kiss
-me&mdash;well, I suppose I am your wife&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>The tacit invitation, the unexpressed desire, were
-too successfully concealed by the decorous dullness of
-her tone. He read into it annoyance and disgust.
-Abruptly the flame of his mood was extinguished.
-He dropped her hands, so suddenly that they, not
-expecting any such desertion, hung limp and disappointed
-for a moment in the air.</p>
-
-<p>‘Sorry to have bothered you,’ he said. ‘I suppose I
-am too rough.’</p>
-
-<p>Without another word he subsided again into his
-chair, and fell to reading the paper. Gundred retired
-to her settle, feeling how glad she ought to feel thus
-triumphantly to have vindicated her sense of decency.
-But her satisfaction was hollow; her soul had received
-a shock when her hands had been so suddenly dropped&mdash;a
-nasty jarring shock such as one receives in a dream,
-stepping into vacancy where one had expected solid
-ground. Her hands fell slowly to her sides, cheated,
-frustrated; then set languidly about opening her
-letters, as if diverted from their proper use. It was a
-minute or two before she could concentrate her attention.
-In her turn she experienced something of that
-snubbed, humiliated sensation which she had so often
-inflicted on her husband. Then good training conquered
-personal disappointment, and she began to
-read. In an instant her attention was chained.</p>
-
-<p>‘Kingston,’ she cried, looking up, ‘here is a letter<span class="pagenum">[99]</span>
-from Isabel Darrell, of all people in the world. She
-wants to pay us a visit. Why, I declare,’ she added,
-‘Isabel writes from London. I must say she loses no
-time.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Isabel Darrell?’ questioned Kingston. ‘Who is
-she, and what does she want with us&mdash;especially now,
-when we are supposed to be on our honeymoon?’</p>
-
-<p>‘My cousin,’ Gundred reminded him. ‘Her mother
-was my father’s sister, Isabel Mortimer. Don’t you
-remember, I told you about her? Poor Aunt Isabel!
-She married a dreadful man who came over from
-Australia or New Zealand, and took her back there,
-and led her a most terrible life, I am afraid. Aunt
-Isabel died three years ago, and now her husband
-seems to have died, too, and the daughter has come to
-England to see her own people. We shall have to have
-her here, Kingston. I must write at once. I’ll let
-her have a line by this morning’s post. But I do wish
-Aunt Agnes ever wrote letters: we ought to have heard
-of Isabel’s arrival at least a week ago. We must certainly
-send for her at once.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred wanted her husband to protest against this
-sacrifice of their privacy, perhaps to forbid it. If he
-had done so, she would have resisted his objections,
-and eventually have made a wifely virtue of yielding
-to them. But the best of people are not without their
-small ungenerosities, and Kingston Darnley was in a
-mood to punish his wife for her obstinate chilliness.
-If their privacy were to give no real intimacy, it might
-just as well cease.</p>
-
-<p>‘Capital!’ said Kingston. ‘We want someone to
-liven us up a bit. Write to your cousin and tell her
-to come here at once. She’ll be someone for you to
-talk to.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Won’t she&mdash;yes?’ assented Gundred, wounded
-indeed, but quite successful in concealing the fact.<span class="pagenum">[100]</span>
-‘Poor thing! I will send her a wire. She can be here
-by dinner-time. How odd of her, though, to think
-one likes being interrupted on one’s honeymoon! Do
-you suppose they do that kind of thing in the colonies?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, I don’t know. I dare say she heard we had
-been here for more than a fortnight, and thought we
-must have had about enough of it.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, it will be very nice. Would you like to see
-her letter?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I don’t mind,’ answered Kingston indifferently.
-In the circumstances wild horses would not have
-forced him to confess how much he resented the invasion.
-Not even to himself would he confess it.
-But already he had conceived a keen dislike for his
-cousin, Isabel Darrell.</p>
-
-<p>‘Quite an odd letter,’ commented Gundred; ‘not
-at all like anyone else’s. My poor aunt was always
-strange and eccentric&mdash;evidently Isabel takes after her
-mother.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Let me see,’ said Kingston, in the hope of finding
-something to feed his feeling for Isabel Darrell.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred handed him the letter. It was written in
-a large, flamboyant hand, on large flamboyant paper;
-twirls and flourishes abounded, and the signature was
-written with a sprawling arrogance that might have
-done credit to a second-rate actress.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>‘<span class="smcap">Dear my Cousin</span>,’ it began,</p>
-
-<p class="p-1">‘I have come to England at last, to enter the
-bosom of my family. My father, to the relief of everybody,
-has entered Abraham’s. Don’t think me flippant,
-but one cannot always mourn, not even for the worst of
-parents. Meanwhile, here am I in London, buying frocks
-so as not to disgrace my family. When can I come to
-you? As soon as you like. A wire will fetch me. I
-understand that your honeymoon is nearly over, so I<span class="pagenum">[101]</span>
-don’t suppose a casual third will be much of a nuisance
-by now. And, anyhow, I have nowhere else to go. I
-am dying to see Brakelond, too, and the ducal great-uncle.
-Aunt Agnes and I have had quite enough of
-each other in a week, but she has been doing her duty
-nobly by the returned prodigal. Really, she is too
-weird for words. I believe she thinks New Zealand is
-the capital of Australia, or else the other way round.</p>
-
-<p class="ir0 p-1"><span style="padding-right:4em">‘Your affectionate and only cousin,</span><br />
-‘<span class="smcap">Isabel Darrell, of the Mortimers</span>.’</p></div>
-
-<p>Kingston found himself amply justified in his dislike.
-Underbred, loud, vulgar, evidently Isabel Darrell
-was a very undesirable specimen of the colonial. Her
-clashing presence would teach him anew to appreciate
-the quiet perfection of Gundred. He returned the letter
-with a laugh.</p>
-
-<p>‘So very odd&mdash;yes?’ said Gundred; ‘just like her
-poor dear mother. Aunt Isabel was just the same&mdash;so
-flaunting, and independent, and unconventional.
-Isabel must be the oddest girl.’</p>
-
-<p>‘She sounds a shocking bounder,’ said Kingston.</p>
-
-<p>‘She is my cousin, dear,’ said Gundred, very gently,
-after a slight pause. The emphasis was slight but unmistakable.
-Another pause followed.</p>
-
-<p>‘And when are we to expect that sacrosanct person,
-your cousin?’ inquired Kingston, who knew nothing of
-that calm loyalty which people of Gundred’s sort display
-towards even the most despised and detested of
-their relations when they come up for discussion in the
-presence of anyone unconnected with ‘the family.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Isabel? Ring, dear, for Murchison, and I will
-send a wire. She will have time to catch the midday
-train, and we shall have her here in good time to
-dress for dinner. But of course she won’t be able to
-see poor Uncle Henry.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[102]</span></p>
-
-<p>Kingston rang, feeling himself powerless to avert the
-coming of this discordant, pestilent alien, and Murchison
-was duly entrusted with the telegram. As soon
-as it had gone both Kingston and Gundred began to
-feel injured, and by common consent forbore to say
-another word about Isabel Darrell. Gundred felt herself
-aggrieved that her husband should so readily and
-with such apparent gladness have consented to the
-invasion of a stranger; Kingston felt himself aggrieved
-that Gundred should so gladly and with such apparent
-readiness have suggested the importation of a third
-person. Each thought the other bored with the
-honeymoon; neither was, but the one from offended
-pride, and the other from conscientious delicacy considered
-it a duty to make the pretence; and, each
-concealing his feeling strictly from the other, husband
-and wife drew deliberately apart to make room for
-the figure of Isabel Darrell between them.</p>
-
-<p>The day drifted by in colourless talk, and the fine
-splendour of the morning grew clouded with a leaden
-haze. Kingston and Gundred sat out the hours in
-the small close garden that was shut in by the Castle.
-Their own little oaken wing jutted away ahead of them,
-but the line of the cliff, before it ran out in that unexpected
-spur, was enclosed by three old towers of the
-building, and here, in the square levelled space, looking
-straight over the boundless sea, with a battlemented
-wall of windows behind, and the Drum Tower glooming
-high over it in the background, had been made the only
-patch of garden that existed to give light and life to the
-grey mountain of masonry. The little flowery patch, gay
-with sweet-peas and roses, seemed as discordant with
-the Castle as a bow of ribbon on the brow of a precipice.
-It was frivolous, impertinent, saucy in its defiance of
-the stern greyness that it adorned. The only fit colours
-to relieve the sombre majesty of Brakelond were those<span class="pagenum">[103]</span>
-of blood and fire, not those of grass and flowers. But
-the contradiction was so flagrant as to be fascinating,
-and the lovers took daily joy in this little impudent oasis.</p>
-
-<p>However, their unuttered thoughts of the new-comer
-dominated every remark they made, and it was
-a relief when evening drew near, and each minute
-brought nearer and nearer the abrupt termination of
-their solitude. Isabel had telegraphed her joy at
-being permitted to come, and her intention to do so
-immediately. Orders were given to prepare for her,
-and she was expected to arrive in time to dress for
-dinner. When, therefore, the carriage returned empty
-from the station, six miles away, after having kept
-dinner waiting for half an hour, both Kingston and
-Gundred felt their grievances redoubled. Kingston
-saw how right he had been to detest the very notion
-of this disorderly stranger, and Gundred realized more
-than ever how slack and neglectful of her husband it
-had been not to forbid the importation of such a disconcerting
-element into their ordered tranquillity.
-Meanwhile a telegram arrived, explaining that Isabel
-had lost her train, had taken a ‘special,’ and hoped to
-arrive in an hour or so. Again the carriage was sent,
-and, after another tedious interval of expectation the
-lovers were told that its lights could be seen returning
-up the hill. To ease the arrival of a shy, desolate
-colonial Gundred decided to receive her in the great
-hall itself. Accordingly, at the news, Kingston and
-Gundred passed on through the dim, gaunt passages
-of outwork and bastion until they found themselves at
-last in the heart of the big Drum Tower. The hall
-was a vast flagged expanse, walled in by high, dusty
-glooms, into whose recesses no light of any feeble
-lamp or lantern could penetrate. Grime and weary
-antiquity seemed to permeate it, and the air was close
-and heavy with a scent of mouldered greatness.<span class="pagenum">[104]</span>
-Kingston, as he went, began insensibly to play a game
-with himself. He picked out the names of four moods,
-to be repeated to himself, one for each flag on which
-he trod; and his fate, his whole attitude to Isabel was
-to be foretold by the paving-stone on which his foot
-should rest at the instant of the new-comer’s alighting.
-His fancy was taken from the game which children play
-with their cherry-stones, and the moods he chose were
-‘Love, Hate, Fear, Contempt.’ In turn he repeated
-them as he stepped from flag to flag, careful always
-never to set his foot on any boundary line. ‘Love,
-Hate, Fear, Contempt,’ he murmured inwardly from
-stone to stone, while Gundred walked briskly at his
-side, her clear mind a hundred years removed from
-any such silly infantile fantasies. Now they were
-drawing near the huge, gaping doorway. There were
-not so many of the great squares left to tread, and the
-jingling approach of the carriage could be more and
-more clearly heard. Kingston’s heart began to beat
-with the artificial excitement of his game. ‘Love,
-Hate, Fear, Contempt....’ The carriage had driven
-up.... ‘Love, Hate, Fear, Contempt....’ He
-lingered, hoping that the stranger would alight appropriately
-on the word ‘Contempt.’ In vain. There
-was some delay. Perforce he must advance to the
-three or four remaining flag-stones. Quickly, to get it
-over without danger, he hurried with a long stride
-on to the stone that meant ‘Love,’ eager to leap to the
-next. But the unconscious Isabel was quicker. As
-his foot was set on ‘Love,’ Isabel jumped untidily
-from the carriage. Kingston laughed internally. ‘So
-much for fate,’ he thought; then, calmed again, he
-advanced with Gundred to meet the stranger. In the
-flickering light, among the draughts that swirled in
-the high cavern of darkness, his first impression was
-of a limp, floppy hat, bulged, overtrodden boots, and<span class="pagenum">[105]</span>
-a deplorable draggled tippet. Greetings were hurriedly
-exchanged, and Kingston felt justified of all his hostile
-forebodings. Awkward, shapeless, inopportune, tawdry,&mdash;‘Contempt’
-or ‘Hate’ should certainly have been
-his footing with regard to Isabel Darrell.</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER VII</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>It was not till the three had arrived in the oaken parlour
-of the old chapel wing that Kingston could pause to
-take stock of the new-comer, and revise his first impression.
-Revise it? It needed only to be amplified,
-many new details to be added to the first rough sketch
-of his dislike, fresh lines and shades to be stippled in
-on the displeasing portrait.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred was one of the comparatively few Englishwomen
-whose hat always looks as if it had grown with
-her hair, and forms an integral part of her head as
-Nature made it. Isabel, on the other hand, was one
-of the vast majority whose hat sits on their hair
-awkwardly, like a stranger, with no suggestion of anything
-more than an accidental and reluctant relationship
-painfully achieved with pins. And it was a bad
-hat, too&mdash;formless, flabby, large and slatternly in its
-lines. It made no pretence at being straight, but
-flapped and floundered distressingly as she walked.
-Clearly Isabel was one of those women who can never
-keep a hat straight. Regiments of daggers and
-skewers cannot prevent them from giving the impression
-of living perpetually in a gale. Their headgear
-is aimless, uncongenial, offering a perpetual suggestion
-of irrelevance. And, as the hat is symptomatic of
-the woman, the rest of Isabel fulfilled the dire promise
-of her headgear&mdash;immense, shapeless, foolishly waved
-and undulated, of limp, coarse black straw, with the<span class="pagenum">[106]</span>
-big bow of cheap satin that did not seem to belong to
-it, but to be stuck on casually with one of the protrusive,
-jetty pins that ironically pretended to keep it
-fixed, and, with it, sagged from side to side in a futile
-and disconsolately impudent manner. Isabel, throughout,
-was flimsy, loose, and flaccid in design. Nothing
-about her seemed to be in any relationship to herself
-or to any other detail of her dress: her attire was a mere
-careless aggregation of unsuitable elements, as depressing
-in its feeble slovenliness as a party of ill-assorted
-people. Her gown dragged and trailed around
-her here and there, suggesting that she daily tied it on
-anew with tapes, and secured the more salient points
-with safety-pins. It was not a gown&mdash;no homogeneous
-creation of any sane mind. It had none of
-a real gown’s individuality; it was a mere haphazard
-covering. Then her boots: again, as she sat in the
-settle, the lamplight caught their toes: they were
-both wrinkled and bulgy, an ingenious prodigy of
-the incorrect. As Kingston watched them in the little
-oaken room, the lamplight seemed to concentrate its
-efforts on their shapeless points: they held his gaze as
-if by mesmerism, and seemed to swell monstrously and
-waver gigantic in the gloom, till the world was
-swallowed up in those amorphous lumps.</p>
-
-<p>It was some time before Kingston could turn his
-attention from the clothes to the woman that they so
-disastrously symbolized. Here, too, he met at every
-point with a violation of all his favourite canons.
-Isabel Darrell was evidently as untidy as her garments.
-Her figure was long and elastic. Only a certain
-arrogant untidiness of carriage could save her from the
-reproach of lankiness. She walked with a free unconventional
-swing from the hips, with a sort of bounding
-spring that might have been more pleasantly noteworthy
-had it not set her hat mopping and mowing<span class="pagenum">[107]</span>
-afresh at every step. At every step it jauntily jumped,
-up and down, and from right to left, until the attention
-was concentrated on its antics rather than on any
-beauties that might have been found in the gait
-which compelled them. Very different indeed was
-the barbaric looseness of Isabel’s movement from
-the neat and civilized precision of Gundred’s every
-motion. That she wore no stays was very evident,
-and the flapping freedom of her legs suggested that
-her nature had been built for breeches rather than for
-petticoats.</p>
-
-<p>Her face, when you came to look at it, was not, perhaps,
-quite so terrible as might have been expected.
-In fact, Kingston found it rather disappointing in its
-possibilities. He consoled himself by noticing that
-the mouth was ridiculously wide, revealing, too, a
-glimpse of gold; but, still, it was an eager, mobile
-mouth, full of energetic vitality. Gundred’s pretty,
-definite lips invariably preserved their proper lines;
-but Isabel’s had smiles and flashes of feeling that kept
-no limits and obeyed no conventions. Agile, too,
-and expressive beyond due bounds, they had a gleaming
-redness that was put to shame by the decent pallor
-of her cousin’s. Her face was irregular, uneven, unconventional,
-yet not without a certain heady and
-unlawful charm. Like her mouth, it was so very much
-alive. It did not seem, as did Gundred’s, to be a
-moulded mask, but to be the woman’s very own
-naked soul. The claim of her birth was clear in the
-strangely delicate beauty of her ears&mdash;the only part
-of her that could ever, by any possibility, be called
-neat or dainty&mdash;and in the firm, fine curves of her
-nose and upper lip. The nose especially, swift and
-decided in its line, carried high and defiant, had the
-long thin nostrils, sensitive, fierce, cruel in their lifted
-curve, that one sees in the conspicuous women of old<span class="pagenum">[108]</span>
-ferocious days. Kingston and Gundred had seen them
-in the face of Isabel the Queen.</p>
-
-<p>As for the rest of her character, a student might have
-found traces of uncontrolled personality in her broad
-forehead, heavy along the supraciliary ridge, and in the
-deep set of her eyes. The eyes themselves were big
-and ardent, of that grey-green whose precise tone
-can never be actually discerned. Golden at one time,
-emerald at another, they are always vivid, blazing,
-inscrutable. And over all hung in a dense cloud the
-heavy obscurity of her hair. Black as darkness it
-was, long, straight, and utterly impatient of restraint.
-Its arrangement was of a piece with Miss
-Darrell’s whole accoutrement. Evidently she was
-content with twirling it into a rough lump, poking it
-here, pinning it inadequately there. At every point
-it burst its bonds: loose coils and ropes were dropping
-and trailing unreproved; each movement, each jump
-of the hat, set free a fresh strand. Miss Darrell clearly
-counted on the hat’s pressure to preserve at least some
-semblance of order; but that unhappy adornment was
-powerless to exert any influence; it jigged and jolted
-as the hair dictated, and the mass on the top of her
-head hopped happily in a unanimous heap as she went,
-carrying the hat unresisting to its sway.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Gundred was pouring forth a stream of
-pleasantness. Her gentle voice ran on in an orderly
-melody, expounding the joy that she and Kingston
-felt in welcoming a kinswoman to Brakelond. And,
-as she spoke, not a detail of her cousin’s untidiness
-escaped her eye. But the pitying disapproval that she
-felt found no hint of expression in her voice. Tone
-and manner remained calm, dispassionate, colourless
-as ever. Isabel, for her part, had no such nice polish,
-and made no attempt to conceal her excitement. Her
-eye roved, her head went eagerly from side to side,<span class="pagenum">[109]</span>
-scanning her surroundings. When Gundred paused,
-she interposed some quick question, some keen remark
-on what she saw. But to her cousin’s formal little
-speeches she was evidently not attending. Her
-manners were careless as her dress.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston, taking no part in the dialogue, devoted
-himself to watchful criticism of the enemy. He
-noticed how the smile flickered and flashed across her
-eager face, and how the fine nostrils thrilled and contracted
-now and again with enthusiasm. Those
-nostrils, he felt, were well known. Where had he
-seen them? He did not remember the face of the
-She-Wolf Queen, but, as he looked at that of Isabel,
-stronger and stronger grew his impression that it was
-no stranger. His hostile feelings grew and deepened.
-The face, the manner, the charm of Isabel made some
-vehement, inexplicable claim upon him; and in his
-resistance to so unreasonable a call, his attitude
-stiffened itself into a determined enmity. There could
-be nothing appealing or desirable about this sloppy,
-disorderly creature, yet he felt the beginning&mdash;was it
-the beginning or the renewal?&mdash;of a paradoxical
-fascination that contradicted his own most cherished
-sense of what was admirable. He looked again at
-Gundred, and strenuously admired her neat, cool
-beauty, the perfection of her appointments, her gestures,
-her inflections, her expressions. Nothing was
-wrong there; no criticism could be made: it was all
-just right; there was the admirable, incarnate.</p>
-
-<p>Thence, his judgment reinforced, his gaze swept
-back to Isabel. There it was all just wrong: criticism
-could run riot; there, incarnate, was the second-rate.
-Second-rate? Blind instinct protested, and pointed
-the way to a discovery. Isabel was not second-rate.
-By every rule she should have been, but second-rate
-she was not. Strangely, unaccountably not. The<span class="pagenum">[110]</span>
-rules in this case seemed to have collapsed. There, at
-all events, was everything that normally makes up the
-second-rate&mdash;cheapness, tawdriness, untidiness. But
-these items could not be added up to make the expected
-total. He hated his consciousness that in her
-was something&mdash;something that he recognised almost
-as an old friend&mdash;character, enthusiasm, whatever it
-was, that exempted her from ordinary rules. And, as
-he chafed against himself for not being able to pass the
-whole-hearted condemnation that his fastidiousness
-clamoured for, so he doubly chafed against the mystery
-in her that imposed so illogical, so unreasonable a
-limitation on his judgment, and forced him to feel, in
-what all the laws of taste denounced, a monstrous,
-fantastic fascination that defied analysis and resistance.</p>
-
-<p>‘So nice,’ he heard Gundred saying; ‘and then you
-will go with us to Ivescar, I hope&mdash;our place in Yorkshire.
-I have never been there yet, of course, so you
-and I will have great fun exploring it&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Too glorious for words!’ cried Isabel irrelevantly,
-her eyes roaming eagerly from wall to wall of the little
-low room. ‘I have never dreamt of a fairy-palace
-like this. That panelling! Oh, it’s too precious.
-And the beautiful dim dustiness of it all! One feels
-as if one were trespassing on the domain of ghosts.
-These tiny, crazy, oaken parlours&mdash;they must be simply
-soaked with memories.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Nice little rooms&mdash;yes?’ said Gundred complacently,
-contriving to reprove such undisciplined
-enthusiasm by the very gentleness with which she
-accepted it. ‘Dusty’ did not seem to her at all a
-fitting compliment to pay the oldest wing of Brakelond.
-She was certain that the housemaids discharged
-their duty perfectly.</p>
-
-<p>‘Nice!’ cried Isabel ardently; ‘what a ridiculous<span class="pagenum">[111]</span>
-word! They are the haunt of dead centuries. Don’t
-you feel either primeval or irreverent every time you
-drink a cup of tea here?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh no,’ replied Gundred mildly. ‘I hope I should
-never have such dreadful feelings anywhere, and the
-rooms are really quite convenient. The only thing is
-that they are so cut off from the rest of the Castle.
-You’ll see to-morrow. This wing stands right away
-from the rest of the building, on a spur of rock that
-drops straight into the sea. They are all wood, these
-rooms&mdash;the oldest part of Brakelond.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I know I thought I had walked miles before we got
-here,’ replied Isabel&mdash;‘miles, through the most fascinating
-dreadful dark halls and passages, just like the dim
-labyrinths in a Maeterlinck Castle.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ answered Gundred; ‘it takes the servants
-quite a time to answer the bell; and if one didn’t use
-hot irons in the urn it would be cold before it got to
-us. And what one would do if anybody fainted or
-anything I simply can’t imagine. There is just one
-long passage leading to these rooms, and all the servants
-are ever so far away in the Georgian part.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Well,’ said Isabel, ‘you can make this your last
-resort. When the Castle is carried by invaders or
-catches fire, you can run out here, and shut yourselves
-up on your little promontory, and nobody will ever be
-able to get at you again.’</p>
-
-<p>‘This wouldn’t be at all a good place if the Castle
-took fire,’ said Gundred&mdash;‘built of wood, and no other
-way out. But everything is very safe, I am truly
-thankful to say. Our great-uncle Henry saw to all
-that before he was taken poorly.’</p>
-
-<p>For a moment she was the Mortimer, talking to a
-Mortimer, and leaving her husband outside the conversation.
-He, for his part, did not notice the recurrence
-of that little, proudly conscious yet unconscious<span class="pagenum">[112]</span>
-inflection in her voice. He was too much absorbed
-in watching Isabel. The returned colonial was even
-more obviously the daughter of Brakelond than was
-Gundred. The vividness of her personality was in
-full harmony with the stern old building to which
-Gundred’s nature only occasionally chimed in tune.
-Isabel was the contemporary of Brakelond. The contrast
-between the two women was that between a
-jungle and a Dutch garden&mdash;between a passionate,
-loose-petalled rose and a decorous, shapely lily. And,
-though the lily had its place in the pleasance of Brakelond,
-though the Dutch garden might be thrust into
-its vast scheme, yet the true frame of the Castle was
-the untamable wildness of the forest, its most inevitable
-ornament the glowing ardour of the rose. In the long
-list of all who had been March and Brakelond here
-and there a lily-life occurred, it is true; but the rose,
-flaming, riotous, red, must always stand for the fittest
-emblem of the Mortimers.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly Isabel turned upon Kingston, growing
-conscious of his attention.</p>
-
-<p>‘Why do you stare at me?’ she asked. ‘Have we
-met each other before?’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston doubted; a sense of renewed acquaintance
-was very strong upon him. ‘No,’ he replied; ‘we
-have never met before. I don’t see how we can ever
-have met before.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Surely not, dear&mdash;no?’ added Gundred.</p>
-
-<p>‘I believe,’ said Isabel abruptly, ‘that one has met
-everyone in the world before, and that every now and
-then one remembers something here and there. Your
-husband and I have probably met in a dream, or&mdash;perhaps
-we loved or hated each other thousands of
-years ago, or our ancestors did, which is the same
-thing.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, I don’t believe that,’ answered Gundred,<span class="pagenum">[113]</span>
-gentle, but shocked. ‘That’s evolution, isn’t it? A
-horrid idea&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston, meanwhile, with stern loyalty, forced
-himself to compare the neat and ladylike blankness
-of Gundred’s mind with the uncontrolled wanderings
-of her cousin’s. He himself might have much the
-same ideas as Isabel, but how much more restful and
-proper for a woman to abide by conventional views.
-So he denied his own feelings, and disliked more than
-ever the untidy apostle who seemed to have a mind
-as restless as his own.</p>
-
-<p>Isabel began developing her theme excitedly&mdash;talked
-of the innumerable ghosts of Brakelond, of
-inherited memories, previous existences, and the impossibility
-of supposing that life begins abruptly
-at birth and ends at death. No friend, at the best of
-times, to abstract discussions, Gundred had the
-orderly-minded wife’s intense dislike of such a display
-in the mouth of another, and an unmarried, woman.
-In a man it was permissible, if regrettable; in a wife
-it was reprehensible and unwomanly, though not
-utterly unpardonable; but in a mere maiden it was a
-dishonour to her sex, a brazen revolution, a discarding
-of that spiritual chastity which makes the really nice
-girl’s mind a closed and cloistered garden, impossible
-of access. Accordingly she made haste to nip the
-conversation.</p>
-
-<p>‘You must be so tired,’ said Gundred, rising suddenly
-from her chair. ‘I am sure you will be glad to
-go to bed&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>Isabel was one of the people whom a long journey
-animates and inspires. Quite careless as to smuts,
-dishevelled locks, and crooked hats, she was at her
-best in that weary hour of arrival which makes other
-women rush to looking-glasses. However, Gundred’s
-tones clearly conveyed the impression that etiquette,<span class="pagenum">[114]</span>
-if not common politeness, demanded agreement with
-her statement. Isabel admitted that she was tired
-accordingly, and allowed herself to be guided to her
-room.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston and Gundred grew closer thenceforth.
-The warmth of their first married days seemed to have
-returned. Kingston, in the ardour with which he
-regarded his wife, was secretly indemnifying her for
-that obstinate folly in his own heart which refused
-to condemn the new-comer absolutely. He took
-countervailing pains to emphasize his love and admiration
-for Gundred. And she, realizing that he
-loved her more keenly, thanks to the comparison with
-Isabel, yielded to her own heart’s desire, passed from
-acquiescence to reciprocation, and was delighted to
-find how successfully she emerged from the comparison,
-and shone by the side of ragged, reckless Isabel. If
-Kingston could not divine, or dared not divine, the
-deep current of emotion that underlay his actions, how
-much less could such a subtlety be expected of his
-wife? She noticed with joy that Isabel was in every
-way the foil best calculated to show off her own perfections.
-She rejoiced to find that her husband was
-as keen-eyed as herself for the edifying contrast, and,
-though already conceiving a disapproving distrust of
-Isabel, believed so strongly that her presence would
-assure the continuation of Kingston’s renewed warmth
-that she decided to prolong her cousin’s visit to the
-uttermost.</p>
-
-<p>Her motives in making the suggestion were also her
-husband’s in accepting them. He was glad to find
-himself so appreciating that nice precision of Gundred’s
-which he had been beginning to find monotonous;
-and, when she suggested that Isabel should
-more or less make a home with them till she married,
-he let himself believe that her presence would perpetually<span class="pagenum">[115]</span>
-fire his admiration for Gundred, and fell
-gladly in with his wife’s benevolent design.</p>
-
-<p>‘Poor darling,’ said Gundred; ‘she wants forming
-so. It will be quite like training a child. I never saw
-anyone who was so&mdash;so&mdash;just <em>any</em>how&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>‘A bit all over the place, certainly. Well, she
-couldn’t do better than copy you. And you might
-give her a hat or two. But not that one you wore in
-the garden this afternoon.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Did you like it, dear?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Most awfully. It made one feel so cool and
-summery.’</p>
-
-<p>‘How nice of you to notice my hats, dear! No
-other woman’s husband does that.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I always notice everything you wear. Every line
-of you, every bow and ribbon. But I can’t always
-tell you what I think of you. You won’t often let
-me. You hold one at arm’s length, and make one
-think one’s self silly and childish. If you knew how
-much one loved every detail of you, you wouldn’t
-make one feel such a violent ass every time one tries
-to express what one feels.’</p>
-
-<p>‘But I don’t want to make you feel an idiot, Kingston
-darling. It is sweet to hear you say how much
-you&mdash;care about me. It seems to make my whole life
-seem warm and comfortable. Never leave off feeling
-as you do. I think I am always glad to know you feel
-like that, and I&mdash;well, I do enjoy hearing you tell me
-so from time to time. But in the daylight, somehow,
-it seems undignified and&mdash;a little common, to exchange
-rhapsodies. And yet I love to think the rhapsodies
-are there. And&mdash;don’t you find it makes them more
-precious to keep them rare&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>To Kingston a feeling unexpressed was apt, sooner
-or later, to degenerate into atrophy. But in the
-warmth of the moment he entered into Gundred’s<span class="pagenum">[116]</span>
-point of view. Her reserves seemed beautiful and
-well bred by the side of his deliberate recollection of
-Isabel and her leaping, uncontrolled enthusiasms.</p>
-
-<p>‘Perhaps you are right, you exquisite thing,’ he
-answered. ‘But now and then you ought to let me
-speak. I must tell you now and then, in word as well
-as in deed, that you are the most exquisite thing in
-the world, the most dainty, the most well-finished, the
-most adorable thing in the whole world. Altogether
-without a fault or a blemish you are, like a clear
-polished jewel; one is for ever seeing a fresh facet of
-your perfection.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, Kingston, you really mustn’t say such things.
-It can’t be right. I am sure you are flattering me.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah, that is your usual answer. You always cut
-me short whenever I try to tell you what I feel for you.
-You make love seem silly and indecent. You are
-always trying to nip it in the bud.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred hesitated. Then she smiled. ‘Well, Kingston
-dear,’ she said, ‘I have not had to nip it in the bud
-so often lately&mdash;no? You have not given me the
-chance so very often.’</p>
-
-<p>‘One gets tired of being rebuffed and chilled and
-made to feel a demonstrative, tiresome fool.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Not tiresome, darling. And, Kingston, whatever
-I say, you&mdash;you&mdash;well, you need not always pay <em>quite</em>
-so much attention to it, need you? One sometimes
-says a thing because one ought to, not because one
-means it&mdash;yes? I don’t think I am always quite such
-a chilly fish as you seem to imagine. You must not
-always judge by what one says. I&mdash;well, I love everything
-you say and do, dear. Don’t ever leave off
-because you think I don’t approve. I do, Kingston,
-whatever I may say&mdash;I approve, because it is you.
-Only you must not expect me to say so in the daytime,
-with the sun showing up everything, and servants<span class="pagenum">[117]</span>
-all over the place. I hardly like to say it, even here
-in the dark, with nobody to see. It seems to put me
-into your power too much.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Into my power! Well, I am in yours. That is
-what marriage is. I am between your hands&mdash;between
-those wonderful little cool hands of yours, Gundred.
-What will you do with me? Crumple me up
-and throw me away, or drop me on the rocks, as if I
-were a toad? That is what your civilized daytime
-manner seems to threaten every now and then. Or
-will you keep me safe, and stroke my fur the right way,
-and keep me warm?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I like to hear that my stupid hands can do such
-wonderful things. Do you really admire my hands,
-Kingston dear?’</p>
-
-<p>‘They are just carved ivory fresh from the hands of
-God. There is nothing human or hot or earthly about
-them. They are fresh and calm, and without spot or
-frailty. They are the most lovely hands that ever
-woman had.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Prettier than poor Isabel’s&mdash;no?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Poor Isabel? With her hands like a pair of
-boxing-gloves? Don’t let us talk about great floppy
-Isabel now. It is only you I want to talk about. You
-are the only person in the world.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, you mustn’t be so unkind about poor Cousin
-Isabel,’ protested Gundred, purring with unconscious
-pleasure. ‘You must remember she did not make
-herself. And think how tiresome it would be if there
-were nobody different from me in the whole world. It
-takes all sorts to make a world, dear, yes?’</p>
-
-<p>‘No, it doesn’t, wonder-lady. The whole world is
-nothing but a huge infinite room of mirrors, reflecting
-you, always and everywhere. Hundreds, thousands,
-millions of you, that is what I see in the world. How
-can I make you believe me?’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[118]</span></p>
-
-<p>To make one’s self believe one’s own statements is,
-unfortunately, a far easier task than to make other
-people believe them. However, Gundred’s mind
-asked nothing better than to be convinced, and the
-roseate state of her rapture was far above analysis
-and metaphysics.</p>
-
-<p>‘I am sure you would not say such a thing if you did
-not mean it, dear,’ she said. ‘It is a beautiful thought
-of yours. But you must not grudge poor Isabel a
-home with us until she marries. After all, whatever
-her shortcomings, poor darling, she <em>is</em> my cousin.
-And so it won’t be long before she marries. It’s not as
-if she were just nobody in particular.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston, convinced that the presence of Isabel reinforced
-his admiration for Gundred, made no opposition.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well,’ he said, ‘I don’t suppose it will make much
-difference to us. She is not the kind of woman who
-is likely to come between husband and wife.’ He
-laughed.</p>
-
-<p>‘I am certain she is not, poor darling!’ assented
-Gundred. ‘We must try to pull her into shape and
-teach her better,’ she added, with meditative earnestness,
-as if coming between husband and wife were the
-especial object of a woman’s life and training. ‘And
-yet, I believe there are men who admire that sort of
-girl, Kingston. I never can understand a man liking
-a woman who cannot put on a hat properly, but everybody
-says they do. I remember Mary Capplethwaite;
-she was neater than a new pin, with her hair most
-beautifully done, and the sweetest little face. But
-that did not prevent her husband from running away
-with Mildred Gunston, who always looked as if she had
-been left out all night in the wind and the rain. Of
-course, dear Mary may have got a little monotonous,
-but, still, I do think it is a great thing to be tidy and
-nice&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[119]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘That is all a man asks of a woman,’ answered
-Kingston. ‘And one might ask it for ever of your
-cousin Isabel, and never get it, I imagine. One knows
-that type of woman so well. The idea is that inferior
-clothes show a superior soul. The poor things believe
-that they reveal the beauty, and the freedom, and
-the preciousness of their individuality by neglecting
-everything that makes the ordinary woman desirable.
-They think they are above using the means that no
-really clever woman ever disdains. They are the half-baked,
-the half-clever, the weak, feeble copies of the
-strong-minded, strong-souled creatures they imitate
-and think they are. One meets them at Oxford; the
-place swarms with them. They sham genius by means
-of untidiness. Half of them are tailor-made and half
-of them are æsthetic&mdash;in blue plush sleeves and
-moulting terra-cotta-coloured plumes, or in short
-skirts and boat-shaped hats with a cock’s feather on
-one side. How well I know it; and that is your
-Cousin Isabel.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You really mustn’t dislike the poor darling so
-dreadfully, dear. We must make her happy with
-us. But I am so glad that you agree with me about
-that kind of woman. I never can see why one’s hair
-should not be properly done, however clever one is&mdash;yes?
-<em>I</em> have never wanted to be dishevelled or
-slovenly. We must gradually get poor Isabel into the
-way of thinking about her appearance a little more.
-After all, she ought to look at least well-bred, dear, and
-even now she has one or two good features.’</p>
-
-<p>But Kingston would not agree. He grew forcible
-on the new-comer’s imperfections, and would allow
-her no saving grace of line or carriage. She was all
-wrong. He insisted on the fact, proved it again and
-again, revelled in it, and turned it to the glorification
-of his wife. Gundred, for her part, made a weak<span class="pagenum">[120]</span>
-defence; without quite knowing it, she drew joy and
-sustenance from her husband’s condemnation of her
-cousin. It seemed an earnest of his love’s ardour.
-So she merely palliated Isabel’s faults, and was more
-glad to challenge admiration for herself by their discovery
-than sorry that such blemishes should be
-brought to light. Sweetly and lovingly did she encourage
-her husband’s criticisms with her mild protests.
-Her line was to admit her cousin’s shortcomings,
-but to declare that she loved her notwithstanding.
-Thus she preserved the full delight of the comparison,
-while at the same time preserving also the proper
-loyalty of a Mortimer for a Mortimer. But her daylight
-dignity had melted; the loyalty of a Mortimer was felt
-to be now subordinate to that of a wife. Gundred had
-the happy power of making a virtue of everything she
-did, no matter what inconsistencies her actions might
-seem to involve. Husband and wife continued to
-make love over the faults of their cousin, and it was
-decided with joy that the woman whose weaknesses
-could be turned to such delectable account must on no
-account be allowed to deprive them of her company.
-Isabel was to live with them, to go with them to Ivescar,
-to serve as a perpetual whetstone for Kingston’s admiration
-of Gundred. Some day she would undoubtedly
-marry, but meanwhile Gundred’s kindness should
-achieve the double end of giving her cousin a home and
-turning her cousin’s existence to a profitable purpose.</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER VIII</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The next morning Isabel was as late as Kingston.
-Gundred condoned the offence on the score of fatigue,
-but Kingston regarded it with that severity we always
-show to our own pet faults when we meet them in<span class="pagenum">[121]</span>
-people we dislike. Daylight added nothing and softened
-nothing in his first impressions as to his wife’s
-cousin. Still untidy, still disorderly, still ebullient,
-Isabel was as reprehensible as ever in all she did and
-said, and Kingston’s irritation grew as he noticed how
-often she said what he would have said himself, how
-she caught his own flying thoughts while Gundred’s
-mind was still loitering in their track, or busy with the
-teapot; how unable his instinct still was to endorse the
-opinion of his reason that Isabel was altogether unworthy
-of notice. Without seeming to, without caring
-to, she claimed his notice, insisted on it, held it; and
-as the day went by, he found himself looking at her
-again and again with reluctant interest. Each time
-he forced himself to notice a loose strand of hair, a
-brooch unfastened, a hook and eye gone wrong; but
-not the most strenuous disapproval of details could
-kill his angry curiosity as to the personality of which
-they made part. As she talked, her wide mouth, with
-its scarlet lips, flickered and flashed at every feeling,
-and her great eyes blazed at him, now green, now grey,
-now gold, till the white was visible all round, and he felt
-himself bound in the magnetism of their stare. Isabel
-had accepted Gundred’s proposal with equanimity.
-Yes, she would make a part of their household gladly,
-until such time, she said, as she married or eloped.
-What Gundred had meant&mdash;at least, in part&mdash;as a
-favour done to the poor colonial cousin, the poor
-colonial cousin accepted with the high calm of perfect
-equality, easily, gracefully, and without a second
-thought or any emphasis of gratitude. Gundred felt
-that her cousin’s manner of receiving favours lacked
-something; she made them seem mere services; and
-her words, too, sounded flippant and offhand to
-Gundred, who clung to small politenesses and the proper
-observances of courtesy.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[122]</span></p>
-
-<p>They were sitting out, all three, in the small square
-garden. The day was sultry and mysterious, with
-curling heavy masses of white and fawn-coloured cloud
-towering high over the rim of a pallid sea. Behind,
-the mass of the Castle was of a bronzy-rose in the strange
-light, dreamlike and splendid. In bed and border no
-flower stirred, and the scent of roses rose straight into
-the leaden air like so many spires of faint invisible smoke.
-They sat looking out towards the edge of the world,
-the unwavering dim line of water that stretched beyond
-the old wing of King Mark’s Chapel. Above all the
-rest of the Castle Isabel loved to look at that old haphazard
-rickle of rooms, that crazy hive of long-dead
-activities, which stood out from the rest of the building
-on its defiant promontory over the sea. It was a little
-barnacle, growing off the hulk of Brakelond, and attached
-only by the slender stalk of one narrow passage, at
-whose outer end was its cluster of buildings, the low
-squat chapel, then the rooms where Kingston, Gundred,
-and Isabel had their dwelling, and, above, a second
-story, a series of low rooms at present uninhabited.</p>
-
-<p>‘Ivescar?’ said Isabel. ‘Ivescar&mdash;oh yes, thank
-you very much, Gundred. I shall be ever so pleased
-to go to Ivescar. Oh, those little rooms of ours are
-too delicious for words. And there’s no ivy too; that
-would make them conventional. I love them. I
-don’t think the Castle does, though. They seem too
-proud to belong to it. They keep themselves to themselves.
-The ghosts are happier there than in the big
-tower. My room was simply crammed with them,
-Gundred. All last night they hovered about.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You don’t say so!’ exclaimed Gundred. ‘How
-dreadfully inconvenient! I do hope they did not keep
-you awake, dear. Do you really believe in them?
-Surely not&mdash;no? One believes that God would never
-allow such things. Anyhow, we must be very careful<span class="pagenum">[123]</span>
-not to let the servants hear about them, or all the housemaids
-will be giving notice. But I was talking about
-Ivescar. We thought of going there in quite a few
-days now. The summer is getting on, and Kingston
-wants to show me to all our people there&mdash;tenants and
-so forth. One feels it rather one’s duty&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Ivescar?’ repeated Isabel; ‘I don’t think I am
-very much interested in Ivescar, am I? Of course, I
-am looking forward to going there. But it cannot be
-anything like this. And I belong here. I am sure I
-do. It is not anything like this, Gundred?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, dear me, no, of course not. There isn’t anything
-like this anywhere. Ivescar is just a nice modern
-place, large and comfortable, but quite modern. I
-haven’t been there yet, but Kingston has told me all
-about it. His father bought it, estate and all, when
-he married&mdash;didn’t he, Kingston?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ replied her husband; ‘he chose a county as far
-away as possible from all his own people in Kent.
-They quarrelled with him when he married, and now
-none of them will have anything to do with us. So he
-thought when it came to settling down as a landed proprietor
-and all the rest of it&mdash;my mother’s pet fancy,
-that was&mdash;that he would go right away to the other
-corner of England. So now our own family, the
-Dadds, are still sitting in Darnley-on-Downe, watching
-the coal-pits that support the head of the clan at the
-other end of the country. It is a quaint irony.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Haven’t you any exciting possibilities among your
-relations?’ asked Isabel, turning to him. ‘They sound
-a little stodgy, to say nothing of the fact that they have
-all cut you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, there is a mystery, I believe. An uncle, a
-brother of my father’s, who ran away to Japan, and is
-now a Buddhist Abbot or Bishop, or something of the
-kind. But for all the excitement one is ever likely to<span class="pagenum">[124]</span>
-get out of him, he might as well never have been born.
-He is twelve thousand miles away, and we shall probably
-never set eyes on him again.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred looked a little pained, and made haste to
-divert the conversation from this irreligious topic, just
-as Isabel was about to burst out into enthusiastic
-curiosity.</p>
-
-<p>‘So Mr. Darnley bought this delightful estate in
-Yorkshire, and there is no use thinking of unpleasant
-things in the past. Nothing could sound nicer than
-Ivescar. Describe it, Kingston.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, well, it sits right up among the fells and moors,
-just under one of the big mountains, in a tiny little
-bare glen all of its own. It is a stern, splendid country,
-very large and stiff and barren, up at Ivescar, and then,
-down below, there is a great fat valley, all smooth and
-smiling, that rolls away westward to the sea. There
-are jolly rivers and waterfalls all about in the hills, too,
-and wonderful caves and crevasses and pitfalls. It’s
-quite unlike anything else in England, and it grows on
-one in the most extraordinary way. There is something
-very primeval and mysterious about it.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And capital shooting,’ added Gundred. ‘Such
-nice moors, they tell me, Isabel. We will go up and
-have lunch with the guns as often as we can&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes, the moors are gorgeous,’ said Kingston. ‘I
-don’t shoot myself; I have given it up. But the moors
-are certainly gorgeous. One can lose one’s self on
-them for hours, and probably fall into potholes and
-things.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, you must take up your shooting again, dear,’
-protested Gundred, who had the usual tender-hearted
-woman’s ambition that her husband should destroy
-innocent lives as lavishly and enthusiastically and successfully
-as fashion demands. ‘You must certainly
-take it up again. I do think it such a good thing for a<span class="pagenum">[125]</span>
-man to have some interest in life, don’t you, Isabel&mdash;something
-for him to do in the country&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>Isabel abruptly let this uninteresting development of
-the conversation lapse unanswered.</p>
-
-<p>‘The country does sound attractive,’ she conceded,
-turning eager eyes on Kingston. ‘And you talk of it
-as if you belonged there. But you don’t, of course.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No, but my dear mother has spent so many years
-pretending to that the pretence is second nature by
-now. Dear mother! it used to be the funniest thing in
-the world to see her playing at the Old Established
-Family. It was her great ambition, and she drilled
-my poor father day and night into acting the squire.
-By now I verily believe she has persuaded herself
-that we have been settled at Ivescar for half a dozen
-centuries at least. She goes about among the tenants
-with the most splendid air of having known them all,
-and all their families, since the days of Edward the
-Confessor. There’s nothing so genuine as a good
-imitation&mdash;except that the good imitation is generally
-too good, and overdoes itself.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Well,’ said Isabel, ‘you have fired me with a longing
-for the mountains and the caves and waterfalls. But
-what is the house itself like?’</p>
-
-<p>At this point Gundred caught them up again. She
-had dropped out of the dialogue in a twinge of decorous
-annoyance at the cavalier way in which Isabel had
-ignored her opening on sport and shelved the conversation.</p>
-
-<p>‘A very nice house, Kingston tells me,’ she put in.
-‘Built about a hundred years ago. Very comfortable
-and convenient.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah, I know,’ interrupted Isabel. ‘That tells me
-everything. All of the best Early-Victorian Tudor.
-Everything solid and handsome and expensive, with a
-picture of your husband’s father in the hall, life-size,<span class="pagenum">[126]</span>
-carrying a gun and a dead rabbit. I can imagine
-Ivescar&mdash;just a house&mdash;just a thing with doors and
-roofs and windows&mdash;simply a place to live in. Now,
-this, this’&mdash;she waved her hands comprehensively&mdash;‘this
-isn’t a place to live in. It’s a place that lives on
-people. Here it’s the people that are subordinate to
-the building. At Ivescar nobody cares about the
-house except for the people. The house only exists to
-keep their feet warm, and send them up their dinner all
-cosy and hot from the kitchen. Yes, Ivescar is a place
-to live in, and this is a place to die in. One can’t
-imagine one’s self dying in an ordinary house. Death
-is too big a thing to come under its nice squatty ceilings.
-One feels the whole thing would fly in flinders; Death
-would lift the roof off, and burst the walls, if he came in.
-He is so large. But one could die here, and the setting
-would not be a bit mean or unsuited to the drama.
-Any nice, carpety, cushiony building does to live in;
-one wants a really-truly house to die in&mdash;a place where
-one can receive the Great Visitor without feeling
-cramped or undignified or cheap. Imagine dying in a
-chintz bedroom, with enamelled tin baths and foot-pans
-and hot-water cans.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Lots of people do,’ protested Kingston. ‘I suppose
-they have the Elizabethan feeling that the play is more
-important than its setting.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, but they don’t die at all,’ cried Isabel. ‘Very
-few people are great and holy enough to die. Nine
-people out of ten just change shapes and go on again.
-You can tell that by the fuss they make. One always
-fusses more when one harries about at a junction than
-when one arrives at a terminus. Most people, when
-they come to die, are simply getting out of one train
-and into another on their journey. Arriving at the end
-is a much more simple solemn business. That is
-what I mean by dying. And for that one needs a<span class="pagenum">[127]</span>
-splendid stage. It is a far leap into Nirvana, and if
-one is to make it, one wants a good take-off, a running
-jump from a strong springy board, with nothing to
-trammel one and lessen one’s movements. To hop
-along into another mean little manifestation, as most
-people do, requires very little outside help. It is hardly
-more than a shuffle from one bed to another. One
-does not want any spring-board for that.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I expect,’ said Kingston, ‘that a vast number of
-quiet good people reach Nirvana without big jumps
-or spring-boards, or anything of the sort. They go
-on living obscure, kindly lives, and then, at the end of
-everything, they just gently slip away and cease, and
-enter Nirvana without any splash at all.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah, those are the people who go on the great journey
-without luggage. But the average person takes any
-amount of packages and parcels with him, all kinds of
-fears and fusses and hopes and terrors. And the reason
-why he makes such a to-do whenever he has to change
-trains or carriages is because he is so afraid he may
-leave one of the precious bundles behind. He thinks
-they are his individuality, just as a decent woman
-thinks that her clothes are hers. In fact, scarcely
-anyone can conceive an idea of himself without his
-trappings. And so, all along the Great Railway, you
-have people wailing and shrinking at the thought of
-death. They know, in their heart of hearts, that at
-each change they leave one or two of the bundles behind&mdash;a
-fear or a hate or a habit&mdash;and they cannot understand
-that they can continue to be themselves without
-the bundles. They think, as I said, that the bundles
-are an essential part of themselves; whereas it is not
-till one has gradually shed all one’s bundles that one
-can hope to arrive, one’s own real unhampered self,
-at the Terminus. It is only the Self that is meant to
-arrive, not the bundles. They are the common property<span class="pagenum">[128]</span>
-of all, like clothes and rugs and umbrellas, but
-each man’s self is a lone, isolated thing.’</p>
-
-<p>She spoke with her usual fire, urgently, with hands
-lavishly waved, and blazing eyes. Gundred, quite out
-of the talk, left behind in the lower world, looked on
-with bewildered disapproval.</p>
-
-<p>‘Travelling is a great trouble&mdash;yes?’ she hazarded.
-‘I always have as little luggage as possible.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston dropped back into Gundred’s world with a
-crash. He had been interested and uplifted on the
-wings of his cousin’s fantasies. He could meet her
-flying in that empyrean of ideas. He loved the vague,
-dim regions of her thought. Gundred, without clipping
-his wings, kept him tethered to her own perch.
-Happily she clucked and hopped with him in the
-glittering cage&mdash;a hen-soul yoked with a restless
-hawk’s. Now, out of the free air beyond, had appeared
-a second hawk, and insensibly Kingston’s wings began
-to flutter uneasily for a flight.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ he said rather savagely, answering an unspoken
-question. ‘No wonder poor Gundred can’t
-understand such mists and inanities. Have you any
-idea what you mean, Isabel?’</p>
-
-<p>His irritation was all against Gundred’s inadequacy.
-It showed her almost in an inferior light. Characteristically,
-though, he diverted his annoyance to the score
-of his cousin’s mysticism, and unburdened on her the
-feelings that his wife had engendered.</p>
-
-<p>‘Idea?’ replied Isabel scornfully. ‘No; why should
-I? If anyone ever stopped to think what their words
-really meant, and refused to speak until they had found
-out, why, no one would ever open their lips again.
-Man sends the words, and Heaven, we trust, sends the
-meaning. I have vague notions of a meaning very far
-away above and beyond all the harassing futilities of
-language, beyond the domain of grammar and derivations<span class="pagenum">[129]</span>
-and split infinitives and metaphors and things.
-But of course one can’t hit it; one can only aim at it.
-One shoots off into the clouds in the hope of sometimes
-winging a truth. There’s no use sitting and aiming,
-aiming, aiming; one has to up with the gun of one’s
-mind and blaze away. Nine times out of ten one misses
-dead, but bit by bit one gets practice, just as in earthly
-shooting, until at last one has attained a good average
-level of success, though I am afraid till the end of
-the chapter one only wings Truth, never gets it fair
-and square in the heart.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Shall we go in and have tea&mdash;yes?’ said Gundred,
-with gentle dignity, into which was mixed a fine proportion
-of reproof. She rose and moved towards the
-door. Isabel looked after her.</p>
-
-<p>‘I have shocked Gundred,’ she said candidly and
-callously. ‘I suppose I was bound to. She is too fascinating
-and pretty for words, but I don’t feel, somehow,
-as if her soul and mine were really cousins. I’m sorry
-if I have hurt her. It is all my fault. One is such a
-fool. One gets interested in an idea, and off one goes
-at score, and nothing else matters in the world but the
-hunting of it down. You are like that, too, though you
-are pretending hard not to be. Why do you? Are
-you trying to match Gundred? You’ll never be able
-to, you know.’</p>
-
-<p>She looked up at him, laughing. Her face had a
-radiant, exasperating vitality. In that moment he
-disliked her more even for what she had than for what
-she lacked.</p>
-
-<p>‘Don’t see how you can possibly tell that,’ he said,
-standing over her, with his hand on the back of his wife’s
-chair; ‘and I don’t see that it matters&mdash;to you, at
-all events.’</p>
-
-<p>‘A perfect match,’ continued Isabel, pursuing her
-thought with no attention to Kingston&mdash;‘a perfect<span class="pagenum">[130]</span>
-match&mdash;I suppose it is when neither husband nor wife
-is a match for the other. No, it doesn’t matter a bit.
-Only I am interested. I always am. I have only just
-arrived from the back of beyond, and yet I feel as if I
-had known you both&mdash;known you, at least, for half a
-dozen centuries. I can see all sorts of odd things in
-your mind&mdash;things that you have no idea of. You are
-quite naked to me as I look at you.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston conceived an instant red desire to shake
-and maltreat this insolent barbarian.</p>
-
-<p>‘Are you coming in to tea?’ he asked, turning
-away as if to leave her.</p>
-
-<p>Isabel sat up in the long garden chair in which she
-had been lounging.</p>
-
-<p>‘Stop,’ she said.</p>
-
-<p>Angrily, against his will, he stopped and turned
-towards her. Her voice compelled him. Unknown
-voices were answering her in his heart.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well?’ he asked, trying to mitigate the animosity
-that surged within him, no less at her demeanour than
-at the power she exerted.</p>
-
-<p>‘Don’t be so angry with me,’ she replied; ‘or don’t
-be angrier than you can help. I am a moral hooligan;
-I am quite irresponsible. So you need not think me
-more odious than I am. Honestly I mean no harm.
-But one must amuse one’s self.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Necessarily by annoying everyone else?’ asked
-Kingston as amiably as he could.</p>
-
-<p>‘I don’t mean to,’ said Isabel; ‘nobody ever cared
-less about annoying people than I do.’ She rose
-swiftly, with a certain lithe splendour of movement.
-‘Listen,’ she said in a new voice of seriousness, her
-eyes on a level with his: ‘I have an impulse. I will
-tell you the truth, as far as I can. Perhaps you think
-that what I say and do is simply bad manners and
-sheer native offensiveness. It isn’t that. It is that I<span class="pagenum">[131]</span>
-don’t care&mdash;neither what happens, nor what I say, nor
-what anyone else in all the world may say or think or
-do. I don’t care a damn. Not a single solitary. I
-never have. And, of course, that simplifies conduct
-immensely, though I admit it may make one a little
-trying to live with at times. Do you understand?’</p>
-
-<p>She spoke calmly, indifferently. But in every word
-she spoke he could hear the note of a perfect pride, of a
-pride so intense as to be quite careless, quite impersonal,
-quite unself-conscious. It was true that she did not
-care. But her indifference was based on no obtrusive
-conceit, on no selfish ill-breeding, no instinct for flamboyance
-and advertisement. It was the deep base of
-her nature, a serene impermeability to other people’s
-opinion, and Gundred had something of the same
-quality; but Gundred was indifferent because her
-pride made her feel superior to all the world. The
-pride of Isabel was that higher, more terrific pride which
-leaps beyond a mere comparison of one’s self with
-others, and is simply an all-absorbing sense of individuality.
-Whether Isabel was superior to others she
-never cared to stop and consider; all she cared for was
-the thought that she was she and they were they.
-The comparison was still there, but implicit, subconscious,
-tacit. Her personality defied criticism by
-ignoring it. Kingston suddenly found the serene
-audacity of her attitude a challenge to his interest.</p>
-
-<p>To wake feeling in such a Stylites of egoism, to win her
-praise or her condemnation, would be a task more
-piquant to a professed emotionalist than any seduction
-to a sensualist. To seduce the mind of Isabel, to draw
-it down from its heights, and force it to feel, fear, or
-hate&mdash;at least, to abandon its indifferentism, there was
-a test of skill. Had the indifference been a pose, the
-task would have been cheap, lacking in adventure.
-That it was mere undecorated nature was at once the<span class="pagenum">[132]</span>
-defender’s great strength and the besieger’s strong
-attraction. It challenged arrogantly, irresistibly. Then
-Kingston remembered how much he disliked his cousin,
-and refused to hear the call. Strenuously he shut his
-ears to it, and gave her appeal a colourless answer.</p>
-
-<p>‘In some ways,’ he said, ‘I suppose it is as well not
-to care what people think or say. But the position is
-always an ungraceful one, and is certain ruin to one’s
-hopes of popularity. However, if you don’t care, of
-course, popularity does not matter to you, either one
-way or the other.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No,’ said Isabel; ‘one demands it, and expects it.
-And if one doesn’t get it as one’s right, one refuses to
-accept it as anyone’s favour. And obviously the lack
-of it can make no real difference. How can unpopularity
-affect one’s opinion of one’s self? And that is
-the only thing in the world that really does matter.
-By that alone one rises or falls, is glorified or condemned.’
-She spoke quietly and carelessly, as much to
-herself as to him or the world at large. Just so, in
-such cool, insolently indifferent tones might Queen
-Isabel have discussed her own attitude from a dispassionate
-external point of view.</p>
-
-<p>‘Incidentally,’ replied Kingston, ‘one runs the risk
-of giving any amount of pain to any number of inoffensive
-people.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Now you are trying to make me feel a brute,’
-answered Isabel. ‘But it is no good. If they are hurt,
-it is their own fault. Pain always implies some weakness
-in the person who suffers it. And you can’t
-make one person responsible for the inherent weaknesses
-of another, just because his action has stirred
-certain hidden symptoms to life. You might just as
-well scold me if I gave a tea-party, and somebody with
-advanced consumption got a cold at it, and died off.
-The disease was in him, not in me or my tea-party.<span class="pagenum">[133]</span>
-And moral suffering is the symptom of a sort of moral
-phthisis. Only the diseased can suffer. So, as long as
-my actions are sane and healthy in themselves, you
-must not call them names if they happen to stumble
-on weak spots and corns in other people’s natures. I
-never knew the corns were there. I simply went my
-way. Everyone has a right to. Everyone must.
-And one is only responsible to one’s self, and only responsible
-for one’s self. So much for your accusation
-of hurting other people.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I never heard anything so callous in my life. If
-you were as bad as your words you would be a
-perfect fiend. But, mercifully, everyone in the world
-is better than their words, and worse than their
-thoughts.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah! you are a sentimentalist, Kingston. I am a
-realist.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Everyone thinks himself that. The only difference
-between the sentimentalist and the realist is that the
-sentimentalist’s reality is warm and beautiful, while
-the realist’s is glacial and hideous. And they are
-neither of them real realities, either. The real reality has
-something of both, and a great deal more than either
-or both together. Each view is only a glimpse of the
-great whole.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes; that’s not a bad idea. However old one may
-grow or think one’s self, one remains astonishingly
-much of a baby in the face of the immensities. I suppose
-to take any point of view is childish. One ought
-to take them all together, all at once&mdash;be a drunkard
-and a teetotaler and a bishop and a butcher and a
-thief and a saint all at one moment in one’s own person.
-That is the only way to get the perfect knowledge.
-And that, I suppose, is what the idea of God
-is. To understand everything by being everything.
-However, as that is so, I don’t think one need be<span class="pagenum">[134]</span>
-ashamed of being a baby with lop-sided, partial,
-babyish views and fanaticisms.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Perhaps not. But you seemed to be proud of it.
-There is a great difference between being proud and
-not being ashamed.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes, Kingston, there is. And I admit it. And I
-give in. And I am defeated. And I want my tea.
-And I will try to behave prettily. And be an altruist
-with the tea-cake instead of an individualist.’</p>
-
-<p>Concessions occasionally mollify. But Isabel made
-hers so abruptly, so flippantly that it seemed as if she
-threw up the battle not conscientiously, but because she
-no longer thought it worth the trouble of fighting.
-Irritation swept over Kingston at being thus cheated
-like a child&mdash;played with, flouted, and put by as soon
-as the game had begun to weary the older player. His
-little victory lost all its satisfaction. He attributed
-his exasperation entirely to the impudent frivolity of
-Isabel and not at all to any underlying eagerness and
-enjoyment that he might have been beginning to develop
-in the dialogue. Outraged reasonableness swelled
-his demeanour as he turned in silence and led the way
-towards the Castle. Suddenly he felt a hand on his
-arm.</p>
-
-<p>‘Do be friends,’ said Isabel softly and earnestly.
-‘We have been friends for such ages in the past, I
-expect, that it would be a pity to begin badly in the
-present. I am only a barbarian, not a venomous
-toad. So do be friends.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Do you really want to be?’ asked Kingston
-abruptly.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ said Isabel&mdash;‘yes,’ she repeated slowly, as if
-surprised at herself.</p>
-
-<p>‘Soberly and seriously?’ inquired her cousin. ‘I
-mean, is it a thing you honestly want? I thought you
-cared about nobody’s opinion.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[135]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘I didn’t,’ she answered, ‘and I don’t. And yet
-just this I do care for. I want you to be friends with
-me. In my heart I am friends with you already&mdash;greater
-friends than I could ever have believed. Why
-should I be, why should I want to be? I have no
-idea. Well, what do you say?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes, if you will,’ replied Kingston. ‘Why shouldn’t
-we be friends? We count as cousins.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You don’t like me yet, of course,’ said Isabel
-calmly. ‘But, then, nobody does at first. All I
-want is that you shouldn’t be hostile and stick out
-bristles and resist. The rest will come.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston’s consciousness was in a whirl. He knew
-that he thoroughly disliked this saucer-eyed, eager
-creature. Everything she said and did aroused in him
-pulses of animosity so keen as to be almost physical.
-On the other hand, in some strange way, she allured,
-fascinated, excited him. She led his instincts captive,
-while his judgment went charging down upon her undaunted.
-Irritating though she might be, she was
-neither stodgy nor boring. His mind seemed to pringle
-under her influence, fiercely yet thrillingly, like a
-numb, constricted limb awakening from its sleep.
-Compared to Gundred, she was as brandy to milk.
-Of course Kingston loved the milk and loathed the
-brandy. But loathsome though it might be, he could
-not deny that the brandy was more potent, more
-stirring, more exciting than the milk. Since the
-brandy was forcing itself into his cup, there was no
-need to throw it roughly away; he might sip, under
-protest, now and then, without danger of contracting
-any disloyal craving for brandy instead of milk.</p>
-
-<p>‘Very well,’ he said; ‘let us be friends, Isabel.
-One can’t control one’s love or liking. But everything
-comes to those who wait. So we will be friends.’</p>
-
-<p>His candour pleased her.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[136]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Control?’ she said. ‘Our feelings control <em>us</em>, if
-they are real feelings. The only real feelings are those
-that are uncontrollable.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I am the son of many generations of unreal feelings
-then. There are no love stories in my quiet family&mdash;at
-least, only one, and that was a mad freak.’</p>
-
-<p>‘There are no others in mine,’ said Isabel, ‘except
-hate stories, perhaps. And I suppose they are the
-same thing, only turned wrong way out.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I believe that real love is quite calm and level, you
-know,’ explained Kingston. ‘Your great blazing stories
-are built of passion, not of love. A big love is very
-quiet, and goes on peacefully from day to day, almost
-monotonous in its imperceptible development.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It sounds too like the kingdom of heaven to be very
-satisfactory on earth,’ said Isabel.</p>
-
-<p>‘Anyhow,’ replied Kingston, hotly defending what
-nobody had attacked; ‘I say that the happy concert
-of lives and marriages&mdash;ideal lives and marriages&mdash;is
-based on tranquil harmonies, not on melodramatic
-chords.’</p>
-
-<p>Isabel smiled quietly. ‘Why are we talking about
-love?’ she asked. ‘It was friendship we were settling
-on.’</p>
-
-<p>He made no reply, and they entered the Castle.</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER IX</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The friendship between Kingston and Isabel did not
-progress apace. Its development was jerky, uneven,
-unsatisfactory. Kingston was at once restrained and
-spurred on by resentment. He resented the fact of
-the friendship, was perpetually reluctant, suspicious,
-filled with a strange, alert uneasiness. Isabel, for her
-part, found the relation less careless and smooth than<span class="pagenum">[137]</span>
-her friendships usually were. It brought an usually
-poignant satisfaction, and, in revenge, an unusually
-poignant feeling of strain and annoyance at Kingston’s
-refusal to meet her half-way. Normally she should not
-have cared a straw&mdash;by all her rules she did not care
-a straw&mdash;yet, none the less, the guarded hostility with
-which he met her advances stimulated and exasperated
-her to the point of defiance.</p>
-
-<p>The two women did not find, as their acquaintance
-grew, that any intimacy ripened between them.
-Gundred retained her desire to keep Isabel by her side
-as a foil, but not even the ardour that the contrast was
-to keep alive in Kingston could quite reconcile her to
-the mental eccentricities and untidinesses of Isabel.
-In Gundred’s mind nothing was ever disorderly or
-misplaced; second-hand ideas lay neatly labelled in
-rows; the chaos of Isabel’s thoughts, her incessant
-flurry of pursuit after some wild notion or other, her
-ransackings of her intellectual store to find some lost
-fancy, to run down some far-fetched theory, were so
-many evidences, to Gundred, of her cousin’s unmethodical,
-ill-balanced nature. All thought, to Gundred,
-was clear, simple, obvious; she never entertained
-any opinion that had not been sanctioned by fashion
-and much previous use; she could not imagine why
-anyone should accept new notions, much less go wild-goose-chasing
-them up and down the cloudy domain
-of ideas. What had been thought before by wise,
-good teachers was quite good enough for her; to want
-more, to ask questions, to test ‘truths’ by reason,
-seemed forward, ill-bred, and unwomanly. She put
-down all Isabel’s vagaries of mind to her disastrous
-colonial education, and believed at first that a few
-weeks’ association with ‘nice people’&mdash;the nice people
-being, in the context, herself&mdash;would cure her cousin
-of such vagabond tendencies. So by smiles and indifference<span class="pagenum">[138]</span>
-she repressed Isabel’s ebullitions; and when
-she found that her conduct had no effect beyond
-excluding herself from the conversation, she resigned
-herself calmly to the inevitable.</p>
-
-<p>Irritated at first by Isabel’s mental jumps and
-flights, Gundred, after her attempts at repression had
-failed, grew tired and bored, made no effort to follow
-her cousin’s mental movements, and, with a mildly
-reproving air which nobody noticed, stood graciously
-aloof from Isabel’s dialogues with Kingston. She
-let them talk, and, by way of tacitly rebuking her
-cousin, ostentatiously ceased to take any interest in
-what they said.</p>
-
-<p>With Kingston, as was inevitable, this course insensibly
-began to shift her relationship. As the days
-went by, he talked more and more to Isabel, until by
-degrees she became insensibly the target for everything
-he said. Imperceptibly he grew to ignore his wife,
-thanks to the attitude that she assumed. However,
-she was perfectly, increasingly happy. For, as his
-intellectual intimacy with Isabel advanced, he grew
-more and more the warm lover of his wife. And she,
-the apparently cold and ethereal, by the irony of her
-own limitations, came at last to base the triumph of
-her wifehood on the strength of her husband’s embraces.
-His raptures, his compliments, his kisses,
-grew in number and ardour; she had her heart’s desire.
-No thought of jealousy could ever have approached her;
-for intellectual intimacy she had no taste, no wish.
-As long as she had Kingston’s arms, Isabel was perfectly
-welcome to a monopoly of his tongue. She,
-Gundred, was his wife, and nothing could alter the
-glory of that. She triumphed in the successful development
-of their relations.</p>
-
-<p>That men like to chatter and overflow and sweat off
-in talk the superfluous energy of their minds she knew<span class="pagenum">[139]</span>
-to be an accepted fact. Some women are born for men
-to talk to, but the ultimate triumph belongs to the wife,
-the woman who orders the man’s dinner, sees to his
-comforts, has him for her property at bed and board.
-As long as his body remains faithful and loyal, who
-cares where his undisciplined mind may go roving from
-hour to hour? So Gundred was glad to compound for
-Kingston’s increasing affection by welcoming the distractions
-in which his mind indulged, and even, in the
-rare moments when she could divert her attention from
-her own bliss, was vaguely sorry for Isabel, reduced to
-so poor and undignified a rôle as that of wash-pot to
-the intellectual offscourings of a married man. But
-Isabel, after all, had brought the humiliation on herself,
-and Gundred soon returned to the contemplation of the
-mastery which she had established over her husband’s
-affection by providing him with someone to talk to.
-Wifely tact, she felt, had been splendidly justified.
-She never stopped to consider that the means by which
-she had achieved her end in themselves betrayed the
-disastrous weakness of her position. Her idea of
-temptation was limited to physical allurements;
-husbands, she knew, were only led away by bad, beautiful
-women, never by untidy, talkative ones. Her
-position was absolutely safe and dominant; the more
-freely her husband’s mind was allowed to wander and
-kick up its heels, the more securely was her husband’s
-body bound in the bonds of its allegiance. Infidelity
-is only a matter of the flesh. Without physical desire
-there can be no adultery.</p>
-
-<p>So passed the remaining days of their stay at Brakelond.
-Then the three removed to Ivescar, and, with
-the setting, the colour of the whole drama changed.
-Human life and death was the keynote of Brakelond;
-its Castle seemed built and mortared with the tears and
-tragedies of innumerable generations. Every stone was<span class="pagenum">[140]</span>
-permeated with the history of ten thousand men and
-women, who, through eight centuries, had brought to
-bear upon the building the fire and fury of their individual
-existences. Outside the walls rolled down the
-skirt of forest, and below lay the sea; but forest and sea
-were subordinate in the scheme, decorations and embroideries
-on the main theme. And the main theme
-was the incessant human note that resounded in every
-detail of the old tragic Castle.</p>
-
-<p>At Ivescar, on the other hand, man was a new-comer,
-an accident, a thing irrelevant and even incongruous.
-High up in its narrow mountain-valley
-lay the house, amid a plantation of stunted, wind-swept
-pines. It had the air of having been put there,
-not of having grown. Brakelond had sprung and
-waxed from the rock it stood on; it was the last crowning
-development of the land it dominated. Ivescar was
-an artificial product, unrelated to the soil, the work of
-alien brains and alien natures. Twenty centuries
-might pass over it without bringing it into any closer
-kindred with its surroundings, without softening the
-raw, crude note of novelty that it would always strike
-among the solemn eternal hills. It was a large sandstone
-building, of the most solid Early-Victorian Tudor
-design, as Isabel’s instinct had foretold. In the middle
-rose a big square tower, finished off with a stone lacework
-of circles and spikes. It had a flagstaff, a cupola
-with a bell in it, and a huge conservatory that had
-been put there because it was expensive to set up, and
-now remained there because it would be expensive to
-remove. On three sides of it stretched a bare lawn,
-and on the fourth its less honourable quarters were
-shrouded in sparse plantation, created at great outlay,
-with much difficulty and no success. The one level
-space of ground in the glen had been picked out, all
-its irregularities trimmed away, and the pretence of a<span class="pagenum">[141]</span>
-park elaborately maintained under the mountain-slopes
-that rose stark and stern on either side. A
-little river struggled down from the end of the valley,
-and found its way among stones and mosses through
-the young woodland. Where it passed within sight of
-the house, at the other side of the flat lawn, it had been
-civilized and sedulously constrained into decorum.
-Its banks had been widened, made uniform and flat.
-Dammed at one end, it had been made to stretch out
-into a square shallow lake, whose grey and steely surface
-reflected the staring yellow of the house against
-the grey hills and sky behind, with a dreariness impossible
-to conceive. Coarse, rank grasses grew along
-its margin, and its shoals, malodorous and muddy,
-were abristle with melancholy rushes.</p>
-
-<p>Behind and on either side of Ivescar rose the fells&mdash;steep
-slopes of grass and scree, carrying up to the white
-precipices that hemmed the little valley in. High
-above these again, but out of sight, rose the mass of the
-great mountains, each standing on its plinth of limestone.
-Here and there the line of a wall betrayed
-the existence of humanity, but otherwise, except for
-the house in its artificial wood, with its artificial lawn
-and lake, the landscape utterly ignored the world of
-men. It was grand, primeval, solitary, remote from
-all the small mortal concerns of life. As it had been
-since the dawn of history, so it remained to-day.
-Peoples had come and gone, dynasties towered and
-crashed; but the little glen under the shadow of the
-Simonstone had wrought out its own fate untroubled
-by the clatter and tinkle of collapsing empires. Silent
-and serene as it stood, the finger of man had never
-scarred its tranquillity, the voice of man had never
-broken into the current of its dream. And yet, in the
-midst of this immortal solitude, the fancy of a rich
-manufacturer had planted this insolent mushroom of a<span class="pagenum">[142]</span>
-house, this brazen assertion of a fact which the hills
-had always chosen to ignore, though Celt and Saxon,
-Dane and Norman had vainly striven to enforce it on
-their consciousness, as they fought out their ephemeral
-fights across the flanks of Ravensber, or made their
-settlement on the flat crown of the Simonstone. The
-valley and the mountains had taken their unruffled
-course. Had the house been less clamorous, the assault
-on their notice less insistent, they might in time have
-come to assimilate the signs and the presence of man. A
-quieter dwelling might insensibly have melted into their
-scheme, have been merged into the vast individuality of
-the hills. But Ivescar was too flaunting, too blatant, too
-eternally new. It compelled attention, was an unceasing
-penny-whistle across the great harmony of silence.
-And so, unable to make Ivescar one with themselves,
-the mountains took the only other course, refusing all
-compromise, and forced the incongruity of the building
-upon the world’s notice, by the blank contempt
-with which they ignored it. Their unnoticing disdain
-made its yellow stones, its pretentious tower appear
-even more undignified than ever, emphasizing every
-detail of their parvenu richness, their uneasy vulgarity.
-Man at Brakelond was the dominant note of Castle and
-country; here the note was an isolated discord. Man
-was nothing, his works an offence, amid the enormous
-loneliness of the fells.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred, however, found herself warmly approving
-of Ivescar. True, the country just round was “dreadfully
-black and barren, very ugly and uncultivated”;
-but the house was roomy, airy, warm, comfortable,
-quite suitable and pleasant in every way. It would
-hold plenty of people, and had been built with an eye
-to the convenience of house-parties. Carpets and
-curtains and cushions were all opulent and softly
-luxurious. They compared well, to her taste, with the<span class="pagenum">[143]</span>
-bare floors, the flags, the worn matting of Brakelond.
-She resolved on a few improvements, but, on the whole,
-was very well satisfied. A building produced by one
-mind may, perhaps, have a less complicated personality,
-a simpler sense of unity, than one built up by the
-varying tastes of twenty succeeding generations.
-Ivescar was plain and direct in scheme. There was a
-good collection of pictures, bought, all together, by
-James Darnley from the previous owner, who had
-accumulated them because he imagined it a suitable
-thing to do; otherwise Ivescar was tormented
-by no ambitions whatever, artistic or dramatic. It
-only aimed, with a good-humoured whole-heartedness,
-at being altogether comfortable. Gundred
-entered into its spirit, and in an environment so congenial
-her abandonment of all attempt to share in
-conversation with Kingston and Isabel became at once
-more complete and less noticeable. She passed into
-entire absorption in the details of daily life, lost any
-wish to be in touch with intellectual life, took the colour
-of her surroundings so perfectly that neither she herself
-nor the others realized how completely she had withdrawn
-from their company.</p>
-
-<p>As for Isabel, the exasperating vividness of the
-woman leapt into more violent relief than ever against
-the smug complacency of Ivescar. At Brakelond Isabel
-had been a part of the place; her individuality had
-toned in with all the other individualities that had
-gone to make up Brakelond. As one organ note is
-inconspicuous among a crowd of other organ notes,
-so Isabel’s nature had there been merged in a crowd
-of other similar natures. Here, however, at Ivescar
-the organ note of her personality sounded harsh and
-tremendous, almost terrifying, amid the clacking babble
-of mediocrity for ever kept up by the house. Only
-trifling, futile people had had part in the building and<span class="pagenum">[144]</span>
-the life of Ivescar; their influence had left the place
-a pleasant little chorus of tinkling inanities; and, by
-contrast, the fierce song of Isabel’s nature rose dominant,
-tyrannous, obliterating all the lesser voices around.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston by degrees began to notice the disappearance
-of his wife and the supremacy of her cousin in
-his mind. Occasionally he showed a dim foreknowledge
-of the inevitable by brief spasms of anger against
-Isabel, by fruitless attempts to carry Gundred with
-them in their flights. But by now Gundred’s mental
-immobility had begun to be an annoyance to him, and
-he was always glad to relinquish his efforts and fall
-back into the familiar swing of dialogue with Isabel.
-The faint air of greatness which for a time had been
-reflected on Gundred from the walls of Brakelond had
-now faded utterly. She was swallowed up in household
-details, could be seen meditating on ‘menus’ while the
-most fantastic notions were flying swiftly between her
-husband and her cousin. Her life was now consumed
-in coping with the cook; she was completely happy in
-her task, and it was with growing readiness and growing
-wrath that Kingston let her drop from his mental
-intimacy. She filled up time by talks with her mother-in-law,
-who had a dower house down the valley. The
-somewhat woolly mind of Lady Adela was very congenial
-to Gundred, and her small, clear-cut nature
-found it both harmonious and restful&mdash;like her own,
-though so utterly unlike. The two women took refuge
-in each other; and Gundred, taken up by the house and
-Lady Adela, would not have had the leisure, even had
-she had the acumen, to remark how completely she
-was passing out of her husband’s life.</p>
-
-<p>‘Is the house insured?’ asked Isabel one morning.
-Kingston and she were sitting together under the long
-wall of the picture-gallery.</p>
-
-<p>‘I don’t know,’ he answered; ‘I always forget<span class="pagenum">[145]</span>
-things like that. My dear,’ he cried, calling to his
-mother, who had walked up across the fields with her
-knitting, and now had established herself in one of the
-cushioned window-seats close to Gundred, who was
-methodically checking a Stores List&mdash;‘my dear, is
-the house insured?’</p>
-
-<p>Lady Adela answered in the affirmative, and Gundred
-made haste to clutch her share in a conversation that
-she could understand, by swiftly affirming that, if not,
-it ought to be at once.</p>
-
-<p>‘Otherwise one feels it such a responsibility to live
-in a house&mdash;yes?’ she added.</p>
-
-<p>‘I don’t like betting and gambling,’ replied Isabel,
-assuming a manner of exaggerated rectitude.</p>
-
-<p>‘My dear!’ protested Lady Adela, looking mildly
-up at her over her spectacles. If Lady Adela could
-dislike anyone, she disliked her daughter-in-law’s new
-cousin. Deep in her heart she condemned Isabel as
-strong-minded. Tiresome and strong-minded.</p>
-
-<p>‘It’s a gamble with Fate, you know,’ explained
-Isabel; ‘all insurance is, of course&mdash;having a bet on
-with the Almighty that He won’t burn down your house
-or throw your train off the rails.’</p>
-
-<p>‘My dear!’ protested Lady Adela again.</p>
-
-<p>‘You have such strange fancies, Isabel,’ said Gundred
-coldly. ‘You always think of things that no one else
-would think of.’</p>
-
-<p>Clearly, as delivered in Gundred’s neat, precise tones,
-this was the final expression of righteous disapproval.</p>
-
-<p>‘My feet must be extraordinarily small,’ said
-Isabel to Kingston. ‘I seem to be always putting
-them into it. They go into the most incredibly tiny
-loopholes. I don’t believe I could walk across the lid
-of a pepper-pot without putting my foot into it somehow.’
-She stuck out both her feet in front of her,
-and gazed at them dispassionately.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[146]</span></p>
-
-<p>The action may have been an instinctive appeal for
-admiration. The feet, though large, were beautifully
-shaped, with a suggestion of strength and swiftness in
-their lines. But Kingston angrily compelled himself
-to notice that they overlapped their shoes, that one
-shoe had lost its buckle, and that the stocking above
-each descended in wrinkles that betrayed a weakness
-in the matter of suspenders.</p>
-
-<p>‘Cover them up,’ he said. ‘Mine eyes dazzle.’</p>
-
-<p>‘They haven’t died young yet, though,’ replied
-Isabel, finishing the quotation. ‘Perhaps they will,
-though&mdash;the feet, I mean.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Why do you ask about insurance, Isabel?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I was thinking that you might welsh the Powers that
-be, and burn the house down, and get the money to
-build a decent one. This great garish glassy palace
-is not a bit at home here among the hills. You want
-something sombre and quiet and self-sufficient as
-they are&mdash;something that will be at ease with them.
-This house of yours is about as much at ease among
-the hills as a brewer’s wife having tea with half a dozen
-Dowager-Empresses. You want a building that won’t
-be fussy and assertive.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Then want must be my master. You have the most
-placid way of suggesting things. Do you always get what
-you want yourself, quite irrespective of the means?’</p>
-
-<p>‘What is the use of wanting things,’ said Isabel
-defiantly, ‘if one doesn’t get them? One might as
-well never want them.’</p>
-
-<p>‘But what about other people? If they object?
-If you can only win over their dead bodies?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, they must look out for themselves. Every
-herring must hang by its own tail. It is everybody’s
-business to get what they want. If they can prevent
-me from doing as I wish, why, then they may; and
-if they can’t, well, I romp in; and if they get in my<span class="pagenum">[147]</span>
-way while I am doing it, why, so much the worse for
-them. They go under.’</p>
-
-<p>‘There’s your crude individualism again,’ protested
-Kingston. Then he turned to his wife, determined
-to bring her into the dialogue. She was soberly conversing
-with Lady Adela over the Stores List.</p>
-
-<p>‘Are you an individualist, Gundred?’ asked her
-husband. ‘Isabel’s a terror; she has no respect for
-other people.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred finished her sentence calmly.</p>
-
-<p>‘Besides, they say that spotted ones are bad for the
-eyesight,’ she concluded, then prepared to answer her
-husband. ‘What did you say, dear? Of course one
-must respect other people, or how are other people to
-do the same to us?’</p>
-
-<p>Unlike Kingston, Isabel was inclined to resent her
-cousin’s invasion.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, Gundred doesn’t count,’ she cried. ‘Gundred’s
-a civilized woman. Now, you and I are only pagans,
-Kingston.’</p>
-
-<p>‘My dear, dear child,’ exclaimed Lady Adela, unspeakably
-distressed, ‘Kingston is nothing of the kind,
-I am sure!’</p>
-
-<p>‘Don’t trouble about Isabel,’ explained Gundred.
-‘She is always talking nonsense&mdash;yes? Nobody ever
-cares what she says. Go on talking to Kingston,
-Isabel, but really you must not interrupt us any more.
-We have our duties, Kingston, and you idle people must
-not disturb us.... Dear Lady Adela, do you really
-think we want a dozen of those common table-cloths?’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston and Isabel were silent for a moment,
-listening to Gundred’s conversation with her mother-in-law.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, I always believe it is best in the long run to
-get rather too much than too little,’ replied Lady
-Adela, pondering the question.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[148]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Besides,’ amended Gundred, with a more cheerful
-air, ‘they might give one discount on a quantity.’
-Nothing should induce her to waste the superabundant
-Darnley wealth. She licked the tip of her pencil,
-prepared to tick off table-clothes with a lavish hand.</p>
-
-<p>‘Would you say at eight and six each, or at nine
-shillings?’ she asked anxiously, poising the pencil in
-indecision.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, for the servants, my dear, eight and six will be
-ample. They wear out their things in no time. It is
-quite shameful that they should be wanting new ones
-already. I got them a whole supply only the year
-before last.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred cluck-clucked.</p>
-
-<p>‘Dear, dear,’ she said, ‘that Mrs. Bosket must really
-be a very careless woman&mdash;yes? And she tells me that
-new sheets are wanted as well&mdash;sheets and pillow-cases,
-dear mamma.’</p>
-
-<p>‘My child, how truly dreadful!’ answered Lady
-Adela. ‘You must certainly keep a close eye on Mrs.
-Bosket, though I do trust the poor thing is honest.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, perfectly, and most obliging, but not equal to
-responsibility. One so often finds that in a household.
-And it is so important to have an efficient head&mdash;yes?
-I feel that one cannot safely leave her the ordering of
-things like this, for instance. I have to do it myself.’</p>
-
-<p>Had she had ten housekeepers&mdash;had she been the
-daughter of two reigning sovereigns&mdash;Gundred would
-still have insisted on ordering the table-cloths herself.
-It was her nature, but she made a virtue of her nature’s
-necessity, and fell to weighing the comparative merits
-of pillow-cases at half a crown and at three and six.
-Half a crown was eventually fixed on.</p>
-
-<p>Isabel looked at Kingston. She saw that Gundred’s
-dialogue had irritated him. Why his annoyance was
-so keen she hardly knew. He himself would have<span class="pagenum">[149]</span>
-been puzzled to account for it. Her eyes triumphed
-as she watched him, and obviously rejoiced at the
-defeat of his effort to pull Gundred into their talk.</p>
-
-<p>‘That’s all you are likely to get out of Gundred for an
-hour or two,’ she murmured.</p>
-
-<p>‘Martha is a much more pleasant, useful person
-than tiresome, head-in-the-air Mary,’ he flashed back
-at her resentfully.</p>
-
-<p>‘Especially to talk to,’ replied Isabel mildly. ‘As
-a matter of fact, a man wants both sorts&mdash;a Martha-wife
-and a Mary-wife: the Martha-wife to air the beds
-and order the dinner, and the Mary-wife to look at and
-talk to. Most of the tragedies in history have arisen
-from a man’s failure to get the two in one person.
-Lucky men have an aunt or a sister, as well as a wife,
-to fill the second part; but generally a man either has
-a Mary-wife who talks brilliantly, but feeds him on
-cold mutton, or a Martha-wife who will order a good
-dinner, but can only talk about the servants. And
-then he looks round for someone to think about meals,
-while Mary discusses the soul; or to discuss the soul
-while Martha is interviewing the cook. And then there
-are complications. The whole system is wrong.
-People ought to be much freer to get what they
-like.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston resented Isabel’s tranquil description of
-the Martha-wife. It had nothing to do with any case
-they knew of. To talk about it was silly impertinence.</p>
-
-<p>‘Individualism again,’ he answered. ‘You are an
-anarchist, Isabel, like all egoists. Anarchy never pays
-in the long run.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No,’ admitted Isabel, ‘one has to pay for it in the
-long run, of course. But until the bill comes in one
-has a good time&mdash;quite worth the price one has to give....
-Ask the lady behind you. There is a triumphant<span class="pagenum">[150]</span>
-instance of the Mary-wife, and the egoist, and the individualist,
-all in one. She died for it at last, but she
-had all she wanted while she lived. That is me; I’ll
-die gladly, but I mean to have all I want till then.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston turned to look at the picture to which Isabel
-pointed. From a background as dark as her end there
-smiled out at him, enigmatically, whimsically, the face,
-so much more prudish than passionate, of a woman so
-much more passionate than prudish&mdash;the face of Anne,
-“Marquis” of Pembroke, concubine and Queen.</p>
-
-<p>‘So there is your model,’ he answered her contemptuously.
-‘Well, she had her way, and her way led
-her to the block on Tower Green.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Let it. What does that matter? It had led her
-first over the scarlet cloth of a throne. The price was
-heavy, yes, but she always knew it would be. I expect
-she was even glad to die at last, and have rest, and be
-out of all her glorious, dreadful suspense. And the
-splendour she bought was worth it. What do I care
-for the bill I may have to settle some day? If I want
-a thing, that means I intend to have it. Do you think
-a beggarly consideration of economy would stop me?
-Thank Heavens, I am not a miser. Why, to haggle
-over Fate’s account would be like Gundred wrestling
-for a twopenny discount off a pillow-case. No, Queen
-Anne and I know better, don’t we, your Grace?’</p>
-
-<p>Isabel rose and stared into the picture. The pursed
-lips, the sly, slanting eyes beneath their demure lids,
-responded mysteriously to her gaze. This was not the
-woman that Holbein drew in the last hours of her
-tragedy, weary, worn, and haggard; this was the
-Queen of his earlier paintings, as he and Lucas Cornelisz
-saw her in the radiance of triumphant battle,
-the fierce adventuress-soul that, with nothing in her
-favour&mdash;neither beauty nor position nor wealth&mdash;and
-with everything against her in the fight&mdash;a kingdom,<span class="pagenum">[151]</span>
-a wife, a Church&mdash;yet by sheer force of brilliancy,
-courage, and charm, fought her way at last, through
-the wreckage of a religion, to the throne of a Queen.</p>
-
-<p>‘Your Grace,’ said Isabel, ‘you and I are friends.
-You were a pagan like me. What you wanted nothing
-could stop you from getting, neither armies of enemies
-nor any silly dread of the price to pay at the end.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I wish you joy of your friend,’ said Kingston, filled
-with inexplicable hostility. ‘Ask her what she thought
-of it all at the end; ask her what she felt that last night
-at Greenwich, when the King had deserted her, when
-she was still treated as Queen by people bowing and
-backing and saying “Your Grace” to her, who in their
-hearts were all stealthy enemies from whom there was
-no escape (with bets among themselves as to when
-her head would be off and a new Queen crowned);
-when she had to be brave and royal among all those
-crowding black, invisible dangers, under the descending
-shadow of the axe. Don’t you think she wished then
-that she had not been such a pitiless individualist?
-Don’t you think she wished then that she had been
-allowed to live and die plain Lady Northumberland?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Brave and royal you were, your Grace,’ cried
-Isabel to the picture. ‘You never regretted, did you?
-If you had, you would have been a poor lath-and-plaster
-creature, unworthy of what you did. Your
-nerves gave way for an hour or so. They had been at
-full stretch for three terrible years of crowned suspense.
-So it was no wonder they snapped just for a moment
-in your fall. But it was not death you were afraid of;
-it was just the crash and the dying. You were a
-Queen at heart. You fought for your life as a Queen,
-and in the end it was as a Queen you died. Nobody
-else, not even in that strong, brutal time, died in such
-an exaltation of gladness.’</p>
-
-<p>‘An egoist should not be an idealist as well,’ protested<span class="pagenum">[152]</span>
-Kingston. ‘You make too pompous a song
-about a peddling adventuress put shamefully out of
-the way by a political job.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Take care,’ cried Isabel. ‘When I knew her Grace,
-she was not a lady to be spoken lightly of. Her enemies
-only killed her because they did not dare to let her live.
-Even her worst enemies dreaded her cleverness and her
-courage. And her dying words must have taken the
-skin off her husband’s back when he heard them. The
-demure gentleness of them, the vitriolic irony of them!
-You may have been “spiteful, flighty, and undignified,”
-your Grace, but you were splendid, terrible, indomitable.
-And you must have been marvellously charming
-when you chose, you plain, prudish-looking creature
-with six fingers and the devil’s temper. There’s a
-Mary-wife for you, to hold the interest and curiosity of
-the King, while his poor good Martha of a Katherine
-was everlastingly saying her beads and hemming
-shirts.’</p>
-
-<p>‘My dear Isabel, I tell you that the song of history
-is “Pay, pay, pay.” If you want to follow Anne
-Boleyn, you must follow her all along the road.’</p>
-
-<p>‘My dear Kingston, history may sing “Pay, pay,
-pay,” but it sings to deaf ears when it tries to impose
-its twaddling threat on well-bred souls. Only stupid,
-parvenu people ever think of reckoning up the cost of
-anything beforehand. It’s the hall-mark of recent
-wealth to be sparing of its pence. One does not bother
-about such things. One buys first, and only asks the
-price when the time comes to pay the bill.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And then the price may make you bankrupt.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh no. Fate’s bills are paid in courage, and I hope
-one would never be bankrupt of that. I think I shall
-always be able to settle up. One plunges, like Queen
-Anne. Your Grace did not stop to haggle. You and
-I go boldly forward, order what we want from the<span class="pagenum">[153]</span>
-Stores of Life, and don’t give a thought to discounts
-and reductions and Summer Sales. And then, when
-the time comes, we fork up with a will, and pay out
-our uttermost penny.’</p>
-
-<p>For a moment Kingston did not answer her. He
-stood looking into the secretive face of the Queen.
-Gundred’s voice broke the silence.</p>
-
-<p>‘I know where one can get them at two and six,’
-she was heard remarking in her clear, level tones.</p>
-
-<p>‘There’s Queen Katherine arranging the household,’
-laughed Isabel, with insolent regardless frankness,
-‘and here is Queen Anne ordering a crown across the
-counter of life. No discount asked, and only the best
-required.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston looked at her with rage in his eyes. She
-was always saying crude things like that&mdash;things that
-roused in him swift opposition and dislike. Yet he
-remained helpless, as if bound by a spell. And her
-indifference to everyone’s opinion was so profound,
-her scorn of conventions so sincere that no reproach
-could be brought home to her. She had no common
-standard for measurement by the rules of the world.
-One might as well have attempted to reprove a savage
-for going naked, or an Englishwoman for going clothed.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well,’ he said at last, ‘I hope your bill will be as
-heavy as Queen Anne’s; then we shall see how you
-behave when it comes to paying for it.’</p>
-
-<p>‘But perhaps I have not really decided what I shall
-order from the shop-keeper?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, well, I neither know nor care,’ replied Kingston
-savagely. ‘And you don’t seem to have the decent
-instincts of the real honest buyer, either. From the
-anarchistic things you were saying a few minutes ago,
-I should have thought you would have been a shop-lifter,
-pure and simple, going in and stealing whatever
-you wanted, without a thought of paying for it.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[154]</span></p>
-
-<p>This time he had touched her. She flushed.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh no,’ she said. ‘When it comes to the big
-things of life, I am as honest as the day. Love and
-hope and so on I should expect and intend to pay the
-top price for&mdash;pay it thoroughly to the last farthing,
-sooner or later. I am only an anarchist in little things.
-I might steal for a fancy, and assert my individualism
-for a whim, but really, really, Queen Anne hasn’t a
-thought of bilking when she orders her crown. Whatever
-I buy I shall pay good money for, Kingston&mdash;pay
-it ungrudgingly, if I have to die for it.’</p>
-
-<p>Her earnest face, as she turned it to his, burning and
-eager, had a strange fascination. He turned roughly
-away towards his wife.</p>
-
-<p>‘We are talking about Anne Boleyn,’ he cried, raising
-his voice to penetrate Gundred’s attention&mdash;‘how she
-had her fun, and then paid the money.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And nine is twenty-one,’ answered Gundred, completing
-her sentence in mechanical tones.... ‘What,
-dear? Oh yes, Anne Boleyn, poor little thing! so
-dreadfully treated by her husband. The first martyr
-of the Church of England.... And now, about
-prunes, mamma?’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston, angry and disappointed, turned again to
-Isabel. Primly, inscrutably, Queen Anne smiled
-down upon them from the wall. She had heard
-about that martyrdom before. She knew better.
-She had been the martyr of ambition, not of dogma;
-she sold her life for a crown, not by any means
-for a faith. And she thought her martyrdom the
-grander. In her passionate mysterious heart she pondered
-Isabel’s brave declaration, and wondered whether
-the modern woman, too, would be content to pay her
-debt, when the time should come, for the big things
-she had ordered at the counter of Fate. Beneath the
-riddle of her smile Kingston and Isabel fell once more<span class="pagenum">[155]</span>
-a-talking, while across the room Gundred was still
-ticking off groceries, and exchanging plans of household
-economy with her mother-in-law.</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER X</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>‘Yes, very, very pretty,’ said Gundred approvingly.
-‘No sugar, thank you.’</p>
-
-<p>Delicately, with neatly-lifted little finger, she raised
-her cup and sipped. From top to toe she was the fine
-flower of deportment, and her manner exhaled a mild
-consciousness of being the perfect model of decorum
-for the country neighbour on whom she was conferring
-the honour of a call. The afternoon being
-brilliantly fine, Lady Adela had wished to take her
-daughter-in-law to call on some intimate friends of
-hers, proprietors of a celebrated view, who lived on
-the other side of the lowland valley that stretched
-beneath the glen of Ivescar. Gundred was happy in
-the opportunity of exacting provincial approval, and,
-against everyone’s wishes, including his own, Kingston
-had insisted that he and Isabel should join the polite
-pilgrimage. Accordingly the landau had duly sallied
-forth with its burden of four, and after more than an
-hour’s drive through the soft country beneath the hills,
-had brought them to their destination. Now, on the
-famous terrace of Blakebank, Gundred sat full in the
-light of her hostess’s admiration, consuming cakes and
-tea with her usual crisp yet ethereal daintiness.</p>
-
-<p>‘The lights on the hills!’ cried Mrs. Norreys ecstatically,
-anxious that Mrs. Darnley should appreciate the
-full beauty of the prospect.</p>
-
-<p>‘Delightfully pretty,’ replied Gundred, casting a
-comprehensive glance across the world. ‘One quite<span class="pagenum">[156]</span>
-envies you, Mrs. Norreys. We have no view like this
-at Ivescar. A charming place to have tea, out on this
-terrace. Oh, thank you. How greedy I am!&mdash;yes?
-But this air makes one so famished, and these little
-cakes of yours, so delightful.’</p>
-
-<p>With a sweet smile Gundred accepted a second cake,
-and devoted her whole attention to its decent consumption.</p>
-
-<p>In front of Blakebank the ground sloped away
-sharply to the river far down below. Dense woodland
-filled the hollow in which the water flowed, and rose
-again in a blue foaming mass on the farther side of the
-valley. Thence the eye followed undulation after
-undulation of meadow and copse, fields of soft green,
-plumed hedgerows, a placid country full of opulent
-peace. The foreground of the picture was formed by a
-strip of meadow beneath the terrace that dropped in
-a steep brow towards the woods. Here the grass was
-hidden and gilded by a sheet of buttercups, and the
-pure ardour of their gold was touched to a keener fire
-by the shafts of sunlight that slanted across them.
-Beyond their blaze lay the voluminous splendours
-of the woodland, dull and heavy in sullen shadow.
-For the day had its sharp notes of contrast. The air
-was leaden and lurid, dazzling, here and there, with
-a golden rain of sunlight, and here and there, again,
-made sombre by thunderous masses of cloud. Huge
-curling crags of purple and silver rolled and towered
-above the world, and the sky was opalescent with a
-hundred shifting colours. The landscape, drowsy and
-complacent, was transfigured into something mystic
-and dreamy. From the poignant glory of gold in the
-foreground the eye wandered on over the steamy blueness
-of the woods, over the rippling waves of vaporous
-green and blue that filled the valley, to where, seeming
-very far away across the glamour, the great rampart of<span class="pagenum">[157]</span>
-the hill-country lay high against the faint rosy lights
-of the north. The lowering air, the sleepy, fantastic
-colours of the day, seemed to remove things distant to
-another world, and the mountains, dim, misty in shades
-of amethyst and azure, hardly appeared distinct from
-the ranges of cloud amid which they faintly loomed.
-Far away, far above the valleys, they lay in crests and
-billows of dreamland along the border of a fairy world.
-Yet only six miles of comfortable peace was all that lay
-between Gundred at her tea and those mysterious
-giants in the haze.</p>
-
-<p>Full in the middle of that walled horizon, isolated
-on all sides, rose the mass of the Simonstone, unrolling
-his apathetic splendour on the ranges of lesser hills
-that formed his throne. In steep, precipitous slopes
-his lines dropped abruptly to the western valley; to
-eastward they trailed away in long, placid curves.
-The ranges of white limestone that formed his pedestal
-shone dimly pink across the distance, and the towering
-bulk of the mountain was lucent as a carved sapphire
-from crown to base. His sheer stern western cliff,
-his flat summit, loomed disdainfully over the sleepy
-valleys at his feet; and his presence, serene and enormous,
-ruled the whole country with the inevitable
-weight of its majesty. Steep glens in the range divided
-him from the heights to either side; he stood out the
-conspicuous tyrant of the horizon. Away to the right,
-over a range of smaller fells, the leonine head of
-Ravensber stood up in secondary authority, and above
-the western cleft where Ivescar incongruously squatted
-in the undiscoverable distance, rose the slouching back
-of Carnmor. But of the trinity that dominated the
-hill-country, Ravensber and Carnmor, the lesser and
-the greater, were both subordinate to the imperious
-sweep of the Simonstone. Here, from the terrace of
-Blakebank, in the complete contemplation of his<span class="pagenum">[158]</span>
-grandeur, might be perceived the full grotesqueness of
-the insolence that had planted Ivescar beneath the
-sombre glory of his shadow. From that parvenu house
-itself the blatancy of the contrast was not so evident;
-for Carnmor and the Simonstone were both shut out
-from view by the amphitheatre of white cliffs that
-closed in the glen, and gave support to their dominating
-mass. But to Blakebank, far away, the whole
-supremacy of the hills lay revealed in all its greatness,
-and their empire seemed, in the mysterious clouded
-lights of rose and blue, to belong to a world that
-had no knowledge of man or his evanescent doings.
-Gundred, meanwhile, having finished her tea, began
-to think of departure. She set to work delicately
-drawing on her gloves and preparing her farewells.</p>
-
-<p>‘Such a long drive&mdash;yes?’ she said; ‘I am afraid
-we must really be starting, Mrs. Norreys. My husband’s
-aunt is coming to us to-day, and we ought to
-be home in time to receive her.’</p>
-
-<p>The carriage was ordered, and the party stood exchanging
-compliments and politenesses.</p>
-
-<p>‘Such a delightful day,’ said Gundred, ‘and a drive
-home in the evening so charming in weather like this&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>‘You will have a lovely view of the hills as you go
-home,’ replied Mrs. Norreys. ‘You will have them in
-front of you all the way. Do notice the sunset-lights;
-too exquisite they are.’</p>
-
-<p>Long habit had developed in Mrs. Norreys a proprietary
-manner when she talked of the distant hills that
-made the attraction of her terrace. She spoke of
-them as a successful actor-manager might speak of a
-scene that his own great skill has contrived and
-arranged.</p>
-
-<p>‘Charming, charming!’ answered Gundred, with
-the enthusiasm which everyone thinks it a duty to<span class="pagenum">[159]</span>
-manifest for landscape, though the true intelligent
-passion is so rare and sacred.</p>
-
-<p>Then the carriage was announced, and the party
-from Ivescar embarked on their homeward voyage.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston and Isabel had not contributed much to
-the gaiety of the entertainment. They had been possessed
-with the delight that Gundred had merely
-expressed. To them the beauty of the world as it lay
-unfolded before them had been so vast and holy as to
-make all comment obtrusive and irreverent. Kingston
-had felt the unspoken sympathy of Isabel’s mood, and
-her silence had mitigated for a time the feverish animosity
-with which he regarded her. As they drove
-home, there was little conversation between the four.
-Now and then Lady Adela made some remark on Mrs.
-Norreys’ kindness, her charm, the successful blend of
-her tea. But even Gundred was feeling too serene for
-speech. Everything combined to make her happy.
-Her gown was a perfect fit, the evening was comfortable,
-and she was conscious of having given her hostess
-a flawless model to copy&mdash;in manners, conversation,
-hair, and hat. Of course she never doubted her faultlessness
-or felt a qualm, but there were moments when
-its lovely perfection came upon her in a compelling
-wave of pleasure. She sat in a rapture of satisfaction
-as the carriage whirled her home through the quiet
-sunset. Tea and a good digestion assisted the placidity
-of her mood, and the influences of the atmosphere
-collaborated to make it complete. The twilight was
-pink and sweet as Gundred’s own opinion of herself.
-Immovably tranquil, roseate and mild, it had the
-fascination of a drowsy fairy tale. Cowslip and bean
-and hawthorn sent her their tribute in wafts of
-fragrance. She accepted everything as her due, and
-felt that all the world was showing a very proper
-spirit in conspiring to do her honour.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[160]</span></p>
-
-<p>So their road led them up and down the gentle
-slopes that filled the valley with ripples of green.
-Sleepy old farmsteads they passed, nestling in dense
-knots of verdure, and villages with their brilliant little
-strips of garden. The day’s work was over, and in
-the clear air rose the song of peace and rest. Only far
-above, over the nearing mass of the mountains, rose
-stormy ranges of cloud, flushed and splendid in purple
-and gold. And so at last they had done with the
-broad lowland, and the road set itself to mount up
-towards the high glen of their destination. Now the
-country changed. Below lay the wooded, feathery
-richness of copse and hedgerow, meadow and pasture.
-Stone walls began to replace the hedges, stiff wiry
-moor-grass the lush growth of the valleys; the framework
-of the earth was near the surface; the soil became
-a thin stretched skin, no longer a warm soft coat of
-flesh; here and there the film broke, and the limestone
-bones protruded. So the road wound its way to the
-upper levels, and climbed at last to the glen between
-the hills. Far ahead of them it streamed away up
-towards Ivescar&mdash;an undulating stripe of whiteness.
-Above, to their right, rose, stiff and stark, a wall of
-white rock, shutting out from sight the mountain
-above. To their left lay the narrow desolation of the
-defile, a stream meandering among sparse meadows,
-with here and there a bare barn or a farm surrounded
-by a few wind-tormented trees. And beyond these
-again, towered the farther wall of the valley, another
-escarpment of long limestone cliffs, which could be
-seen rising tier upon tier to the first brown and violet
-slopes of Carnmor. The road, hugging the western
-precipice, commanded a full view of the valley’s eastern
-rampart, but of the cliffs overhead revealed only the
-first and lowest range. This, in the sunset-light, was<span class="pagenum">[161]</span>
-radiantly pink, but the sheer rocks across the stream,
-cut off from the light, were grey and grim, rising up in
-bank upon bank towards the moors above. No colour
-touched them, no softness made them lovable. Their
-inhospitable, irreconcilable sternness foreshadowed the
-abomination of desolation, and gave the valley a
-stony, lifeless melancholy that recalled the land that
-once flowed with milk and honey, but is now a wilderness
-of sterile stone.</p>
-
-<p>As the road led on up the narrowing pass, so the
-shadows deepened across the way of the travellers.
-Suddenly, however, the western wall of cliffs overhead,
-now no longer touched by the sun, dipped in an abrupt
-cleft; and there, very far above them, hung the sheer
-western face of Simonstone. Keen, precipitous, menacing,
-the mass of the mountain impended suddenly
-over the valley, and the apparition was almost terrifying
-in its unexpectedness. Another twenty yards, and
-the lower ranges would once more conceal it from
-view; here, for a swift moment, it revealed its over-lordship
-of the glen at its feet. Behind and over its
-brow high volumes of cloud stood stationary, and in
-the glow of evening the mountain and all the upper
-air was rich with a glamour of amethyst and hot
-violet.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred was dominated by this revelation, and her
-powers of expression rose to the emergency.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, look, how pretty!&mdash;yes?’ she cried, indicating
-the obvious with a neat wave of her neat hand.</p>
-
-<p>Never had her gift for inadequacy burst upon her
-husband in such a terrifying flash. For a moment he
-could not speak.</p>
-
-<p>‘Quite good,’ he answered at last, incapable of
-saying more to a woman who would have been incapable
-of understanding it.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[162]</span></p>
-
-<p>Isabel remained silent. Her eyes were fixed. Then
-she put out her hand in an eager gesture to stop the
-carriage.</p>
-
-<p>‘Stop them, Gundred,’ she cried; ‘I want to get
-out. I am going up there into the glow and the glory.
-I am tired of this dull grey world. Kingston, come
-with me. Let us go and be gods on the heights.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred saw consent in her husband’s eyes. The
-carriage was stopped.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, don’t be late for dinner, darlings,’ she conditioned.
-‘Remember, Aunt Minna will be arriving.
-Do you really think you will have time?’</p>
-
-<p>‘What does time matter!’ exclaimed Isabel rebelliously.
-‘There is no such thing.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston would have liked to go alone. Gundred
-had just succeeded in irritating him, he felt, to the last
-point of endurance. Her bland impenetrability was
-nothing short of tragic. Nothing could ever teach her
-what to say and what to leave unsaid, for nothing
-could teach her to feel. She had the sublime elephantine
-tactlessness of perfect self-satisfaction. Her
-husband, for one wild moment, wanted to get away
-from it all&mdash;from Gundred, level, monotonous, stodgy,
-yet unsatisfying; from the dear good old mother who
-did not count, who never could count; from Isabel,
-tormenting, tantalizing, odious Isabel. To be alone,
-up there in the radiance, far above the world of desire
-and dissatisfactions&mdash;that would be, at least for half an
-hour, rest and relief. But he was to have none;
-Isabel was to come, emphasizing at every point the
-exasperating perfections, the exasperating limitations
-of his wife. With her usual primitive clumsiness, so
-utterly at variance with Gundred’s well-drilled movements,
-Isabel flounced out of the carriage, alighting
-with a jumping flop that brought down a coil of hair
-and a shower of pins. Kingston noticed that, as<span class="pagenum">[163]</span>
-usual, her placket was open. He waited in silence till
-she should have finished her untidy adjustments.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred repeated her injunction.</p>
-
-<p>‘Aunt Minna will be so surprised if you are not
-there in time to receive her,’ she said. ‘Do be certain
-that you have time, darling.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston forced himself to speak. ‘Ivescar is just
-over the hill,’ he said. ‘We shall be there as soon as
-you. It will be a short cut&mdash;up one side of the Simonstone,
-and down the other. Are you ready, Isabel?’</p>
-
-<p>Yes, Isabel had finished tucking up her skirt. It
-was a skirt as inadequate for visiting as for mountaineering.
-And now she had bunched it up on one side to
-give her legs full play, and its effect was not only
-incongruous, but lumpy and lopsided. However, for
-such matters Isabel cared nothing. She was ready.
-Without another word, Kingston turned aside and
-opened a gate. Together they passed through into the
-field bordering the road, on their way to the copse
-above, that sloped up to the limestone cliff, and so led
-on to the heights overhead. Gundred watched them
-go. A faint, a very faint ripple of doubt trembled
-across the calm waters of her self-complacency. She
-had the strangest, the most ridiculous, the most unheard-of
-feeling that in some way she had not been at
-the height of the situation. In some way, she had a
-dim instinct of having failed. As the carriage drove
-on, she suddenly found herself feeling a little lonely,
-a little cold.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston and Isabel wrestled their way to the cliff’s
-top, and found themselves on a flat floor of scar limestone
-that led straight away to the long, swift slope
-of the mountain. As if arranged by mortal hands, the
-blocks of white stone made a regular pavement, like
-the wrecked foundation of some Cyclopean temple.
-Between each block was a deep, dark rift, where ferns<span class="pagenum">[164]</span>
-and lilies of the valley, and strange flowers with white
-plumy spires flourished in the shelter where no wind
-could ruffle them. Together the wanderers crossed
-the level, leaping and balancing lightly from rock to
-rock. Then heather and sedge began to break the
-even surface of the paving, and soon usurped its place
-altogether. Thence, to the summit, was nothing but
-moor and whortleberry, steep slopes of shale and grit.
-Kingston and Isabel addressed themselves resolutely
-to the ascent. Steep and arduous as it was, they had
-neither time for breath nor talking. They climbed
-strenuously, silently, taking pride in each step that
-proved their mastery over the earth by lifting them
-steadily higher, foot by foot, on the flank of the
-mountain that had seemed at first too vast to be conquered
-by any movements of so infinitesimal a creature
-as man. Slowly but certainly they found themselves
-advancing up the stark ladder of tussock and poised
-boulder. Each stone that they dislodged rolled crashing
-into farther depths, and at last they found themselves
-moving into the cold shadow of the clouds that evening
-seemed to be drawing down upon the summit. The
-crown of the mountain was now beyond their sight,
-cut off by the fierce angle of the slope; but they could
-see that the upper air was still aglow with sunlight
-round it, though the volumes of dark vapour seemed
-to be growing and darkening. Suddenly the acclivity
-took a swifter line, then paused for a moment from
-its labours. Surmounting it, they found that the
-ground lay for a few yards in a gentler curve, and
-there beyond, straight above them, was the summit,
-glorious and crimsoned. A last eager voiceless effort,
-and they had attained it. Around them whistled and
-hurtled a sharp wind, and before stretched away the
-round level plain of the hill’s crown.</p>
-
-<p>It was with a sigh of relief that the climbers rested<span class="pagenum">[165]</span>
-and faced round to see the extent of their conquest.
-The whole world far beneath them was misty, ardent,
-gorgeous in the glamour of evening. Kingston and
-Isabel made their way to the ruins of the old cairn
-that had sent northward the news of many centuries.
-Among the scattered, rough-hewn boulders they settled
-themselves for an interval of repose in achievement.
-Behind them rose the ruined wall of the beacon tower
-that had talked, in its day, of Queen Jane and Queen
-Mary, of the Armada’s coming, and the passing of the
-Tudors. Before them, unrolled at their feet like a
-map, two thousand feet below, was all the splendour of
-the earth, phantasmal and glorified&mdash;tiny towns, and
-the worm-like track of great rivers, the minute tessellation
-of meadows, and the dim velvet of wide forests.
-The whole air, before them and beneath, was a-tremble
-with motes of gold. Gold filled and pervaded the atmosphere,
-confounding detail in a haze of glitter, and
-softening the great dazzling stretches of the western
-sea into an imperial harmony with the golden heaven
-and the golden earth.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston Darnley looked out across the glowing
-mystery beneath him. Rest, profound and eternal,
-seemed to be enveloping him. In reality, the very
-foundations of his nature were stirred and stirring.
-Insensibly, through the heat and worry of the foregoing
-days, his life had been growing ripe for a great
-upheaval. Slowly the tormenting desires, the incessant,
-unacknowledged hunger, the uneasy, restless,
-emotional uncertainty, the strenuous nourishment of
-artificial feelings, had all combined to bring his restless
-unhappiness to a head. Through unacknowledged
-storm and secret stress he had come at last to that
-deceptive calm which precedes the breaking up of the
-soul’s settled weather&mdash;the discharge of the soul’s
-accumulated electricity in a devastating nerve-cyclone.<span class="pagenum">[166]</span>
-To-day his endurance of himself and his own forced
-contentment had touched its limit. Gundred had given
-him the last least touch that was needed to destroy the
-perilous equilibrium of his mood. Unconsciously he
-was waiting, in a breathless interval of suspense, for
-the crash of thunder that was to precipitate the crisis,
-and clear the air of all its unhealthy restraints.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly as he lay there, with Isabel silent and
-watchful at his side, the glory of the world shivered
-coldly and vanished. A black shadow swooped over
-the mountain-top, and soon only the uttermost distance
-retained the glimmer of gold. Down, down upon the
-old cairn sank, like the portcullis of a fairy castle, a
-heavy curtain of darkness, shutting out all that was
-left of the gleaming distance. The cloud was upon
-them. And, as their gaze was fixed on the gloom
-descending from above, no less abruptly, no less silently,
-in grey coils and whirling streamers the mist curled
-up at them from beneath, rippling and foaming over
-the rim of the mountain, as a devouring wave sweeps
-round an islet and over its crown. In an instant the
-world was blotted out by the white darkness. Uniform,
-monotonous, it obliterated everything. Only the old
-cairn and a few yards of ground around it could now be
-seen. Kingston and Isabel were cut off from the earth,
-set alone as Deucalion and Pyrrha in a new sphere,
-one solid point amid a vast ocean of chaos....</p>
-
-<p>‘So much for the glory of life,’ said Isabel.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston rose. ‘I don’t like this,’ he replied. ‘It
-will be the very mischief to get down again. Come
-and help me find a way.’</p>
-
-<p>Together they moved away from the old cairn into
-the mist. As they went it widened before them,
-revealing a few dim feet of distance, then closed in again
-behind. Through the drifting pearly gloom objects
-were strangely magnified, made mysterious, portentous;<span class="pagenum">[167]</span>
-rocks became monsters looming through the
-darkness, the level crown of the mountain, shifting
-fantasy of vapour. The ground beneath their feet
-seemed to swirl and shift with the movement of the
-fog, and, now that shape and colour had vanished
-from the world, an enormous crushing silence dominated
-the air. Faint and melting before their eyes
-stretched away the few visible yards of the flat soil,
-covered with short sedges, and, among the loose piles
-of grit, with a thick growth of little mountain-sorrel,
-whose brilliant reds and yellows had been levelled by
-the blank twilight into a sombre note, as of stale blood
-spilled out among the stones. Then, beyond, the solid
-earth wavered away into a phantom, revealing here
-and there a rock or a patch of grass, uncertainly,
-evanescently, as a faint, half-guessed shape, as the mist
-lightened or lowered.</p>
-
-<p>So they wandered carefully on across the plane of the
-summit, till suddenly, ahead of them, grim and mysterious,
-rose a long grey barrier fading to right and left
-in the profundities of darkness. It was the old boundary
-wall of the summit, built by Celtic kings in the
-lost ages when the hill-top was the last great British
-outpost in the north. Humped, shapeless, an indistinguishable
-mound of stone, the old wall remained
-intact, running round the plateau in a solid ring,
-unbroken except at the point where the beacon tower
-stood. Knowing that outside its precinct cliffs and
-pitfalls awaited the unwary, Kingston and Isabel
-turned, and set themselves to follow it on its circuit,
-hoping to find an outlet or a path. At one point they
-came on a small stone chamber built into its bulk, but
-no sign of gateway or track could they discover.
-Now they were crossing a bare part of the summit, a
-wilderness of rocky wreckage. Here and there, at
-short intervals, great rings and semicircles of half-buried<span class="pagenum">[168]</span>
-stone could be divined in the level of the soil,
-foundation-lines to show where the huts and palaces
-of the Celtic kings had stood. Now they were but
-dim ridges, grown with dwarf sedge and sorrel, through
-which roughly burst the gritstone bones of their fabric.
-Adventurous climbers of the mountain had had their
-fun of the rocks that former occupants had made their
-houses and defence. Often the flat, hewn blocks had
-been lugged from their places by modern hands, to
-be arranged in some riddle or motto. One ambitious
-tourist had perpetrated a great design. Kingston and
-Isabel came suddenly upon it. It stretched bravely
-across the earth, a device of big boulders, carefully
-arranged. ‘I love you,’ it said to them, in its audacious,
-solid letters. ‘I’ and ‘you’ at either end of the
-legend faded away into the white obscurity beyond,
-and at their feet lay ‘love,’ obtrusive, unconquerable,
-built of sound stones so square and firm as to defy the
-enmities of time and weather.</p>
-
-<p>‘I love you,’ read Isabel slowly.</p>
-
-<p>Hitherto few words had passed. Words, in that
-blanched silence, seemed futile and impertinent.
-There was in that vast loneliness of the mist a sense of
-intimacy too close to be profaned by speech; man
-and woman were alone, two halves of one primitive
-creature, in a primitive, floating chaos, where nothing
-else, as yet, had taken shape. How could such a drifting
-void hold anything so formal as speech? Speech
-belonged to that forgotten world of things visible and
-tangible, that world where other human beings lived,
-and there was light, sound, movement. Here, in the
-level, immovable silence of the primeval twilight, Kingston
-and Isabel found the intervening ages swept away.</p>
-
-<p>They had gone back into the dim time before the
-dawn of the world, when there was nothing more than
-this poised existence, vague, voiceless, pervasive.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[169]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘I love you,’ repeated Isabel, studying the tourist’s
-device&mdash;the blatant modern cry breaking into the
-abysmal stillness of old chaos.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston, with an effort, tore himself from the white
-mist of fantasy that had closed in upon his mind.
-The gloom suddenly held dangers; they loomed ahead.
-He had a dim sense that something unseen was moving
-towards him out of the swirling uncertainties around.</p>
-
-<p>‘It’s no good,’ he said. ‘We shall have to stay here
-till the clouds lift a bit. I simply can’t pretend to know
-my way. We should probably wander half over the
-moors, and go on in a circle till we got hopelessly lost
-or fell in a pothole. What a fool I was not to watch
-the sky! However, if the worst comes to the worst,
-you can shelter in that little shanty, and I don’t
-expect Gundred will be anxious; she never is.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Read what this creature has written,’ said Isabel.
-‘It sounds better in a man’s voice.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston looked down at the straggling stone letters
-at his foot. ‘I love you,’ he read. Then he looked up
-at Isabel.</p>
-
-<p>She was facing him. The motto lay between them.
-Her face, against the luminous pallor of the mist, was
-burning, aglow, filled with a strange triumphant
-challenge. Suddenly, with an appalling crash of
-thunder, the fantastic world in which he had lived so
-long shattered and broke about his head. He saw the
-call in her eyes, understood it, answered to it, helplessly
-as a bound slave. This was the one woman in the world.
-He had known her since the beginning of time, been
-with her since the creation; now at last she threw
-aside her veils, and stood before him, no longer a
-stranger, but the lost part of his own soul&mdash;that lost
-part for which he had so long been vainly seeking.
-Now, in an instant, he recognised the cause of all his
-enmity, his unrest, his gnawing hunger, the incessant<span class="pagenum">[170]</span>
-angry cravings which had tormented him. Hitherto he
-had not seen the truth; he had guessed it. And those
-guesses, painful, secret, stifled&mdash;they had engendered
-all the throbbing hostility, all the restless enmity with
-which he had regarded this half-recognised intruder
-into his life. Now he knew her, now his heart heard the
-lost language for which it had pined, now his soul stood
-complete again in the acquisition of its lost part.</p>
-
-<p>Isabel saw that the answer to her call had come. At
-last she was known. ‘Old friend,’ she whispered,
-smiling into his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>‘You&mdash;you,’ he stammered. ‘And I did not
-understand. It is You. I have never seen you before,
-Isabel, and yet&mdash;and yet I have known you all my
-life.’</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly she was clothed in glorious beauty from
-head to foot. From head to foot she was altogether
-splendid and desirable. Every inch of her called aloud
-for his worship. As the sooty kitchen-maid of the tale
-strips off her rags and stands revealed a King’s golden
-daughter, so now the accidents of Isabel’s disguise, the
-untidy hair, the shapeless clothes, all passed out of
-Kingston’s consciousness. Henceforth she stood far
-above such peddling criticism. The rules of his
-ordinary taste could never apply again to this recovered
-spirit out of the dead ages. She was his&mdash;his right, his
-property, his existence. She was altogether without
-fault or blemish, the completion of himself.</p>
-
-<p>‘You are beautiful,’ he said in a low voice&mdash;‘you
-are beautiful, the real Isabel. I never guessed what
-beauty was. It is you, Isabel. It has always been
-you.’ Wonder at the miracle possessed him, tied his
-tongue, gave him the pathetic little blundering gestures
-of the blind&mdash;of one suddenly emerged from a lifetime’s
-black darkness into the blinding glare of daylight.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[171]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘You have come to me at last,’ smiled Isabel. ‘I
-wondered when you would. You have been trying not
-to wake.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I have been holding my eyelids down,’ he answered.
-‘I have been making myself blind. It has been hell;
-Isabel ... Isabel!’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ she replied&mdash;‘yes. You have been denying
-me ... you have been denying yourself. It is Peter’s
-crime. Of course it was hell. But now you have
-confessed the truth&mdash;the truth which was from the
-beginning.’</p>
-
-<p>He stared at her&mdash;the man made perfect in full self-realization&mdash;at
-her, the woman, whole and entire in
-her reunion with himself. Soul imperiously cried to
-soul, and body to body. She had the unimaginable
-beauty of the thing created by its lover, loved by its
-creator. Every line and curve of her was perfected
-handiwork of his own rapture. The loveliness that he
-saw in her, his own heart, his own flaming fancy had
-planted there, had fashioned and worshipped as the
-lover always fashions the idol that he worships.</p>
-
-<p>‘How is it,’ he said hoarsely&mdash;‘how is it you can
-be so beautiful, Isabel? You are not beautiful. My
-eyes know you are not beautiful. And yet my heart
-knows better. My heart knows there is nothing
-like your beauty&mdash;nothing like it, Isabel, anywhere
-in the world. My soul is twisted up in every part of
-you; there is something of me in every part of you.
-Your hair, your skin, your eyes&mdash;they are me, Isabel;
-I have given myself to make them. Can you understand
-it, Isabel? There isn’t an inch of you in which
-the sinews and the nerves of myself have not always
-been woven and twisted.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah,’ she cried, answering his low tones with a deep
-burst of feeling. ‘We have been together through
-the worlds. We are not strangers. That is what you<span class="pagenum">[172]</span>
-mean. You have buried yourself in me, and I have
-buried myself in you. We belong to each other. We
-have always belonged together. There are only you
-and I in this white pale world. That is what real
-lovers are. Alone&mdash;alone together for ever and ever
-and ever. Nothing can ever break our solitude&mdash;nothing
-can put itself between us&mdash;if only we are
-honest with ourselves.</p>
-
-<p>‘Isabel, what does it mean&mdash;this that we feel?
-What is it that we are?’ he asked, whispering as if
-in the presence of a sacred mystery.</p>
-
-<p>‘Ourself,’ she answered triumphantly&mdash;‘ourself,
-awake, brought to life, welded together again. We
-have come out of a hundred ages. Do you suppose
-that we come together now for the first time? How
-do we know each other, then? This that we feel is
-the song of many dead souls calling in each of us to the
-many dead souls that have loved us in the other. We
-have been bound together since first we met in the far-away
-distance of things. Love is that. Love is never
-a new thing. Love is the oldest thing in the world.
-It has lived through a hundred thousand deaths of the
-body, and gathered strength and knowledge at every
-stage of its journey. It’s a jewel of a hundred thousand
-memories crushed together and crystallized into a pure
-sparkle of lights. It’s a chain of a hundred thousand
-links, each heavier than the last, and more golden.
-Kingston, the chain is round us and round us. Tie it
-tighter, tighter, for ever and ever. We will live everlastingly
-in this land of splendid bondage.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Isabel, what is it the wise people of the East say?’
-answered Kingston, in the stupefaction of ecstasy.
-‘They pledge themselves to one another for half a
-dozen lives or more. Isabel, that is what you mean.
-You and I are both bound together. We’ll plight our
-troth again now, far ahead into the future. For a score<span class="pagenum">[173]</span>
-of existences, Isabel. Our love was not born a minute
-ago; it will not die to-morrow. It goes on and on,
-whatever bodies it takes to clothe itself. Our love is
-the only thing of us that goes on. And nothing can
-destroy it. It is ourselves. You are mine, Isabel, and
-I am yours&mdash;you are me, and I, you, not only now, in
-these shapes of ours, but through half a hundred more
-that are not yet born, Isabel. Isabel, what do words
-and talking matter? We cannot get away from each
-other; we are the same person. Now and always,
-Isabel. But we will never lose ourselves again; we
-must always recognise each other.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ she said, ‘again and again and again. For
-ever and always. You have been trying to cut me,
-Kingston&mdash;<em>me</em>! trying to cut yourself.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You are chained to me, Isabel, and I to you! I
-will never break the chain at my end; you must never
-try to break it at yours.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No; we are always the same person henceforth.
-Why, there is no bond. We are too close together now
-even to be bound.’</p>
-
-<p>She stood gazing at him, her eyes, her pose, her
-manner inspired with conquest. The blank, sickening
-ferocity of passion seized him as he answered her look.
-It caught him by the throat, swept him away in a
-rapture of agony. To crush that beauty of hers, to
-mangle it, strangle it, absorb it utterly in himself, became
-at once the one blinding, obliterating need that filled
-his whole consciousness. An insatiable thirst of her
-loveliness possessed him. The keen, flame-like delirium
-of his desire was a devastating pain. His
-whole being moaned with the aching torment of it.
-The sight of her, the thought of her, went through him,
-pierced him, rent his innermost heart in twain. The
-drunken glory of suffering that held him on the wheel
-of knives was a frenzy very different from that placid<span class="pagenum">[174]</span>
-repletion which had been his ideal&mdash;how long ago?&mdash;of
-the great ideal passion. Now at last he knew what
-passion was&mdash;the parching, gorgeous misery of it, the
-straining, leaping martyrdom. The ancient secret
-madness that once had dwelt in the orderly rooms of his
-father’s heart now stirred again in the son’s, and bled
-once more, under the wounds of ecstasy, as once, for a
-wild hour, it had bled long since at the hands of that
-ill-fated, forgotten woman whose place was now
-usurped by Isabel. Kingston, his calmer self destroyed
-by the red intoxication, moved towards his fate,
-vaguely, blindly.</p>
-
-<p>‘Isabel&mdash;Isabel!’ he murmured with dry, cracking
-lips, groping hands outstretched to take her.</p>
-
-<p>And Isabel welcomed his coming as the crown of
-life. She threw his arms wide and waited, glowing
-and transfigured.</p>
-
-<p>The ghostly twilight of the mist was round her, behind
-her. The face it revealed was fierce with joy,
-exquisite in its vividness. The dark hair drifted round
-it, and the throat rose vivid and white from the low-cut
-collar of her dress, thrown back splendidly, an
-ivory column. The neck of her dress was fastened
-awry by a little brooch, whose diamonds gleamed
-dully in the pale glooming.</p>
-
-<p>And in an instant the man’s flaming drunkenness had
-passed&mdash;passed utterly, in a spasm of torment almost
-beyond his bearing. As sometimes we are torn painfully,
-violently from the gay madness of a happy dream
-by the sound of a bell or some other noise that penetrates
-to our consciousness from the outer world beyond
-our vision, so now, in the crisis of his passion, the sight
-of his wife’s brooch at Isabel’s throat recalled Kingston
-Darnley, with a jarring crash, to the horrible realities
-of life. Isabel, characteristically buttonless and pinless,
-had borrowed it from Gundred to make good the<span class="pagenum">[175]</span>
-deficiencies of her blouse. His arms fell, the light of
-his eyes grew dull, and died. His body stood motionless,
-and his spirit went down into the abyss of hell.</p>
-
-<p>Isabel saw the change, and at the sight her own
-glory sympathetically faded. They had done with the
-heights. Now their feet were set on earth again.</p>
-
-<p>‘Isabel&mdash;Isabel!’ he repeated. But the flame of his
-utterance had died down into a grey dreariness.</p>
-
-<p>Isabel saw that her moment was passing. A horrible
-anxiety possessed her. ‘What is it?’ she cried.
-‘Kingston, what is it? What has come between us?’</p>
-
-<p>He pointed to the brooch. ‘Gundred,’ he answered&mdash;‘Gundred.
-We had forgotten.’ He was suffering
-so acutely in the death of passion that he could hardly
-make his words intelligible. The wrench was agonizing.
-Passion was not dead, but his heart knew that it must
-die&mdash;that he himself must be its executioner&mdash;must
-cast out the guest that was the dearest part of himself&mdash;cast
-it out and cut the throat of it. He desired still
-with all his soul, but knew that his desire must rest for
-ever unfulfilled. He belonged to Gundred. He must
-face his own responsibilities.</p>
-
-<p>Isabel could not hear what he said. But she
-shivered in the cold that had fallen upon them. Without
-words she understood what it was that had cut
-down the flower of his rapture in a moment, what
-drawn sword it was that had suddenly thrust itself
-between them. She stood withered and stricken with
-the shock, grown suddenly pale and old.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston was fighting down his pain, struggling with
-it, and gradually bringing it into bounds. He was too
-clear-sighted to give himself any hope. Had he been
-sprung of a more lawless stock, of men accustomed to
-love where they chose, without consideration of morality,
-he might have taken his pleasure as it came, and
-never given a thought to self-reproach or duty. But as<span class="pagenum">[176]</span>
-it was, bygone generations stirred again in him, of men
-who had lived cleanly, decently, according to their
-lights, avoiding the wild urgencies of passion. Law,
-custom, convention had ingrained into them a respect
-for rule and restraint, and now their latest descendant
-reaped in his own person the cruel reward of all their
-virtues. To go further in the ghastly labyrinth was
-impossible. Joy was unattainable. Only duty could
-be pursued. And for shirking that there could be no
-excuse.</p>
-
-<p>Without a word he turned and walked away from
-that ill-omened motto on the hill-top. Vaguely, with
-hands thrust down into his pockets, he wandered on,
-crushing down the misery, the angry clamours of his
-nature, and steeling himself violently to the preservation
-of what remained possible to him of decency. For
-the sake of Gundred, of himself, of Isabel&mdash;for the sake
-of his love and hers, he must at least live as clean as
-might be. The struggle was a martyrdom, though,
-the shock of self-mutilation a grinding, lancinating
-anguish.</p>
-
-<p>Isabel stood for a moment, then followed him across
-the flat ground. She soon caught him up, and they
-advanced together in silence through the driving mists.
-Suddenly, vague and ghostly, the old cairn rose before
-them again, looming mountainous. When he had
-reached the stones at its foot, Kingston threw himself
-down upon its steps with a heavy gesture of lassitude.
-And still the silence ruled.</p>
-
-<p>‘Isabel,’ he said at last, in a dull, tired voice&mdash;‘Isabel,
-you must forgive me if you can. I have been a
-beast. I must have been off my head. I feel as if I
-had been drunk, and was only just beginning to come
-to. Whatever rot I talked you must try and forget it,
-Isabel. I can’t make out what the devil can have
-come over me!’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[177]</span></p>
-
-<p>The woman gave him an angry, challenging glance.
-‘No,’ she said, ‘I won’t forget it. You spoke the
-truth. Why are you beginning to tell the old weary
-lies again? Surely we have got beyond that.’</p>
-
-<p>Her words, her defiant tone, caught his attention.</p>
-
-<p>‘You didn’t understand,’ he said. ‘I was a brute;
-there’s no more to be said. Don’t try to say any more.
-Of course you can’t understand. My God, what a
-damned muddle I have made of things!’</p>
-
-<p>‘But of course I do understand, Kingston. Nothing
-can undo what you have said. It didn’t need saying,
-and no amount of denials can ever make it untrue.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston looked at her anxiously.</p>
-
-<p>‘Isabel,’ he said in a broken voice. ‘Do you realize
-what you are saying? I was fool enough to tell
-you&mdash;&mdash;’</p>
-
-<p>‘What we both knew before in our heart of hearts,’
-she interrupted passionately. ‘And now we know
-each other. Oh yes, I understand you. All of a
-sudden you have been overcome by some absurd
-qualm&mdash;some whim or other. You think we are to be
-separated by some ridiculous fad.’</p>
-
-<p>Amazement held him. This time he fixed his eyes
-on her and spoke slowly, laboriously, as one speaks
-English to someone who can only understand a foreign
-language.</p>
-
-<p>‘A fad!’ he repeated. ‘Hang it all, Isabel, is honour
-a fad, and decency, and all the rest of it? One does
-what one can. Is it only a whim?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ she answered violently. ‘It is only a whim.
-These artificial scrupulosities of yours, they are just
-middle-class superstitions. You belong to me, and I
-belong to you. We know that is true. Very well,
-then; why should we deny in deed what we know to
-be true in fact. Oh, I have no patience with such
-whims. Nothing can separate us; why should we<span class="pagenum">[178]</span>
-pretend to be separated by the fact that you have got
-what you call a wife? I am your wife. You have no
-other. You can’t have another. Your only duty is
-to me&mdash;to me and to yourself. All the rest is mere
-romantic sentimental nonsense.’</p>
-
-<p>His fastidiousness swung him back into a reaction
-of almost physical repulsion as he contemplated her.
-The impossibility of making her understand any
-honourable point of view was dreadful. He loathed
-her with all his heart as she sat there trying to enforce
-her claim. And yet he could not deny her claim,
-and, despite his shuddering disgust, he loved her as
-much as ever, reluctantly, angrily, but with all the
-secret unreasoned impulses of the bondage that held
-him.</p>
-
-<p>‘Isabel,’ he said, with forced gentleness, ‘can’t you
-even try to understand? I am sorry. Yes; it is
-true what you say. We belong to each other. Nothing
-can alter that. But I have given my word to someone
-else, and I must&mdash;don’t you see?&mdash;having struck
-the bargain, I must keep it. Make it a little easy for
-me, Isabel, though God knows I don’t deserve it. But
-one wants to keep one’s self as clean as one can.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I won’t make it easy for you,’ cried the other, beginning
-to realize that he had entrenched himself
-behind a wall of determination. ‘Clean? You won’t
-keep yourself clean by playing the hypocrite with
-Gundred.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah, God! Poor Gundred! It is a dirty game I
-have played with her all along. And yet I never
-knew. Before God, I never understood. I meant to
-deal fairly, and I will deal fairly, too, as fairly as I
-can. The mistake was mine, and I’ll pay for it&mdash;pay
-for it all alone. Don’t you see, whatever happens, she
-must not suffer, Isabel. She&mdash;she has given me all
-she had to give. So much for so little, Isabel. I<span class="pagenum">[179]</span>
-must never let her guess that I haven’t an equal love
-to give in return.’</p>
-
-<p>‘As if she will not guess it every day and hour of her
-life! Do you suppose you can deceive her?’</p>
-
-<p>‘At least, I can give her a decent show in the eyes
-of the world,’ replied Kingston, showing a really subtle
-knowledge of Gundred’s temperament. ‘That will be
-better than nothing, any way. Oh, Isabel, the whole
-affair is a damned horror. It’s all my fault. But we
-shan’t make it any easier by letting ourselves go to
-pieces over it. The only thing I can do now is to save
-myself from being any more of a brute than I can help.
-Yes, I know we love each other; we shall always love
-each other, worse luck. But we must spend the rest
-of our lives trying to forget it. We must kill our knowledge,
-Isabel. It’s the best thing we can do, damn
-it, for the best that is in us. I’ve made my mistake
-and had my fling, and come my cropper; now I must
-stand the shot.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It is not as if you could,’ cried Isabel&mdash;‘not as if
-you could pay your debt by yourself. It falls on me,
-because I am a part of you. I have to pay the heaviest
-price of all. I have done nothing; I have made no
-mistake; and now I am to pay!’</p>
-
-<p>He stared curiously at her excited face.</p>
-
-<p>‘We pay together, then,’ he said slowly, ‘and we
-pay a heavy price to keep our love for each other untarnished.
-That is what it comes to. I’ll pay anything
-not to tarnish my love for you, Isabel, my
-opinion of you. It is all I have left. I must save
-that at any costs. And save a&mdash;well, a little rag of
-my own decency, too. You are asking me&mdash;I hate
-saying it, but it is true&mdash;you are asking me to dishonour
-both of us by dishonouring my wife. I rate
-our love and ourselves a little higher than that, Isabel.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, you are bloodless!’ she answered passionately&mdash;‘a<span class="pagenum">[180]</span>
-bloodless prig! There is nothing of the
-man in you. Have you <em>nothing</em> in your veins&mdash;no
-warmth, no life at all&mdash;that you can go on talking
-these frigid fancies of yours? Where do you come
-from&mdash;what are you? What are you made of? Can
-you feed your passions with these romantic metaphysics?
-What’ll they give you? Will they warm
-you when you are cold&mdash;with Gundred? Will they
-feed you, when you are starved&mdash;by Gundred? Will
-they give you company, when you are alone&mdash;with
-Gundred? Talk of your honour and mine! Our love
-is our honour. There is nothing else in the world.
-Gundred is nothing; there is no such thing as Gundred.
-I have blotted her out of existence!’</p>
-
-<p>Never had the pagan egoism of Isabel been more
-terrifying, more repulsive. Through his love he hated
-her as he watched the cruel swift sneer of her nostrils
-as she talked of his wife.</p>
-
-<p>‘Have you no shred of pity?’ he asked quietly.
-‘Think of Gundred. The most damnable thing in the
-world has happened to her. She has given herself&mdash;her
-whole self&mdash;and got nothing in exchange. Can’t
-you at least let her have pity and respect? Poor
-little Gundred! I thought it was a square bargain
-when I struck it. I thought I gave her all I had to
-give. I swear I thought so. And yet all the time I
-belonged to you, Isabel, and you to me. Don’t you
-see that the only thing we can do now in common
-honesty is to spare Gundred all we can, and spare ourselves
-the dishonour of cheating Gundred even more
-than we have already?’</p>
-
-<p>But Isabel was beyond appeals, frankly barbarous
-and merciless. ‘Gundred took her risks. All women
-do when they marry,’ she said. ‘And now she does
-not count any longer. What sort of man are you, to
-be pining about Gundred when I am here by your side?<span class="pagenum">[181]</span>
-Look at me&mdash;yes, look, look&mdash;and see how long you
-can remember Gundred.’</p>
-
-<p>She fixed his gaze with burning eyes. But he
-turned away his head and refused to take up the
-challenge.</p>
-
-<p>‘I suppose it is your right,’ he answered, ‘to make
-everything as hard for me as you can. I deserve it, I
-know. Oh yes, you blot out all thought of everything
-but you, as soon as I look at you. You are the
-only thing I can see in the world. And I won’t look
-at you, Isabel. It is no use. Must I tell you again?
-I won’t stain the love we have for each other by any
-further treacheries towards the duty we owe to each
-other and my wife. Oh, Isabel, if you would only
-believe me, it is because I love you so awfully, so
-damnably, that I cannot look at you, or touch you. I
-love you too much. I ache in all my bones with the
-love of you, and I love you too much and too well to
-satisfy my love. Oh, don’t you understand? We
-could never forgive ourselves, never feel clean again.
-Our love would have been spoiled, made filthy and
-horrible with deception and mean lies and beastliness.
-It’s a sort of responsibility we have, to keep it clean.
-We can’t kill it; it is there, it always will be there.
-But, at least, we can prevent it from turning us black
-and rotten. I’d sell my life, Isabel, to have our love
-free and honourable&mdash;I would, Isabel.’</p>
-
-<p>Isabel laughed. ‘Oh, this dry and tedious discussion!’
-she cried. ‘How many men would hair-split
-and quibble like this? Thank God, I have blood
-in my veins! My people never cared where or whom
-or why they loved. They took their pleasure where
-they found it. They were above all laws but their
-own desires. No silly conventions and superstitions
-ruled them. They were big, passionate men and
-women, with life in their veins, not sawdust.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[182]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Do you care nothing, absolutely nothing,’ he asked,
-‘for&mdash;well, for feeling that you have behaved as
-cleanly as you can? Nothing for consequences?
-Nothing for anything but the pleasure of the moment?’</p>
-
-<p>‘It is in my blood,’ repeated Isabel arrogantly, investing
-the crude horror of her selfishness with a certain
-barbaric grandeur. ‘You know how I hate these
-huckstering considerations of yours. My self-respect
-is involved in getting what I want. Defeat is my
-only shame. And consequences&mdash;who cares for them?
-I know,’ she went on, giving the quotation with proud
-defiance&mdash;‘“I know that about this time there is a
-prophecy that a Queen of England is to be burned, but
-I care nothing if I be she, so that I have and hold the
-love of the King.” The love of my King I have and
-I hold; what does the rest signify? I told you Queen
-Anne and I were cousins.’</p>
-
-<p>‘How I wish,’ he said&mdash;‘oh, how I wish to God I
-could make you understand what I feel. I feel the
-most contemptible beast on the earth; you alone can
-help me to win back a little of what I have lost. If
-only you would make it easier for me, Isabel&mdash;if only
-you would make it easier for me, by believing how
-ghastly hard it is.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes; hard, hard, hard,’ said Isabel&mdash;‘hard I believe
-it is,’ she repeated, meeting the anguish and the
-struggle of his gaze. ‘And I want to make it harder.
-I want to make it impossible. Find yourself, Kingston&mdash;know
-yourself. Don’t go on tormenting us both
-with scruples and neurotic nonsense.’</p>
-
-<p>He rose and stared down at her with furious eyes.
-‘You are pitiless,’ he said&mdash;‘altogether horrible and
-evil. There’s no decency or civilization in you. You
-are as fierce as a savage. As I listen to you I hate you;
-every fibre in me hates and dreads you.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[183]</span></p>
-
-<p>Isabel rose also and faced him. ‘And when you
-look at me?’ she asked.</p>
-
-<p>‘When I look at you,’ he groaned&mdash;‘when I look at
-you, every fibre of me longs for you and cries out for
-you. And yet I swear I hate you, Isabel.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Go on hating me, then, like that,’ answered Isabel
-triumphantly. ‘You have conquered me now. I
-feel that I cannot get near you again. For I know
-what that hatred means. And some day I shall win.
-I am bound to. You belong to me. You <em>are</em> me.
-You recognised that a few minutes ago. But now you
-are a fool. You refuse your happiness. Well, one
-day I shall bring you to it again.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Let me go, Isabel,’ he pleaded. ‘Let us try to do
-the little best we can, you and I. Don’t make our
-lives more difficult or shameful than they need be.
-Oh yes, I know that you have everything in your
-power&mdash;too well I know it.’</p>
-
-<p>He spoke wearily in a low, broken voice that seemed
-to foreshadow the end of his resistance. As his weakness
-grew manifest Isabel’s strength grew greater.</p>
-
-<p>‘There is no escape from me,’ she said. ‘Remember
-I am yourself. And I shall always be there at your
-side, in your house, waiting, waiting till you wake
-up again from this foolish dream.’</p>
-
-<p>His struggle had suddenly collapsed into the helplessness
-of fatigue. Even at this defiance of hers he
-made no sign of revolt. ‘Oh, God,’ he said, ‘how can
-I get rid of you? What chance am I to have? But
-it is no use talking. One can’t talk the same language
-as you&mdash;one can’t talk in the same century. It is hopeless,
-I know. Your ideas are as savage as Queen Isabel’s&mdash;you
-have got all that fearful barbarous selfishness of
-hers, and one’s only chance of making you understand
-would be to talk to you in the old French that she
-must have spoken.’ His voice trailed off into silence.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[184]</span></p>
-
-<p>Isabel drew closer to him, and laid her hands softly
-on his arm. ‘Kingston&mdash;&mdash;’ she began.</p>
-
-<p>He shook off her light touch, and looked her full in
-the face. His eyes were blazing, and his manner
-had the restrained roughness of passion held hard in
-leash.</p>
-
-<p>‘Isabel,’ he said, ‘if you touch me, I swear to God I
-love you so much that I shall kill you&mdash;here and now,
-with my naked hands.’</p>
-
-<p>She believed him, and was exalted by triumph.
-‘Ah,’ she cried, ‘you do love me. You are becoming
-a man at last. That would be a good death to die.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Body and soul of you,’ he went on fiercely, ‘hateful
-and glorious&mdash;I might destroy them, mightn’t I, but
-never could I be rid of them. I know there is no
-escape, Isabel. And now surely you can let me be.
-I am bound to you now and for always. Isn’t that
-enough?’</p>
-
-<p>Isabel smiled. ‘Enough,’ she cried. ‘It is everything;
-now or later, what does it matter? I win.
-I win. Kingston,’ she added, dropping indifferently
-from the heights of emotion to the plain lands of prose,
-with something of that unconscious ease which one might
-have imagined in the nature of a woman like Isabel the
-Queen, the very prose of whose life was emotion, and
-whose emotion was so practical as to be daily prose of
-her existence&mdash;‘ah, Kingston, I am tired. I am simply
-dropping with weariness. Are we going to get down
-off this mountain to-night? Because, if not, I must
-try to sleep in that hut we saw. And I know you will
-not be able to run away from me.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Sleep, by all means, if you can,’ he answered.
-‘There is no going down through this mist. Luckily
-the night will be fairly warm, and by morning the
-clouds will have broken. But you will be hideously
-uncomfortable, I am afraid.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[185]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘No,’ she replied; ‘I am naturally primitive. I
-have never minded roughing it.’</p>
-
-<p>Exhausted by their discord of wills, they now, by
-mutual consent, talked coolly and indifferently, casting
-memory behind them.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston helped Isabel to find the hut, and did what
-he could to make it habitable. Then, leaving her to
-get what rest she might, he returned to his thorny vigil
-under the old beacon. The air was motionless, and
-not ungenial in its temperature. Enveloped above
-and below in blank darkness, he had the sensation of
-being balanced softly in space. The calm, after the
-ardent misery of their dialogue, was inexpressibly refreshing.
-He abandoned himself to its placid influences,
-and instead of devoting the night to a thrashing
-out of all the many difficulties that threatened his relations
-with Gundred and with Isabel, he let it drift him
-away into the domain of peace. He hardly knew how
-completely exhausted he had been, and it was with the
-surprise which always attends us when we find ourselves
-doing prosaic things that seem at variance with the
-high dramatic moments of life they follow, that at last
-he found himself floating quietly off in sleep.</p>
-
-<p>Anguish was still there, deep down in his heart&mdash;a
-bruised feeling of hunger and dissatisfaction, a great
-shame for himself, and a great pity for his wife, as well
-as a firm resolve that she should not suffer. But
-passion had dulled the edge of its own intensity; only
-dull aching pains were left, rather than acute stabbing
-ones. Disappointment and hopelessness possessed
-him in an inexorable but not agonizing grip. In fact,
-he was too weary to feel the full weight of the yoke
-that was laid upon him. Cradled in the great silence,
-his tired consciousness sank at last to rest.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[186]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XI</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>When Kingston Darnley woke, the clouds had broken.
-Overhead was the clear vault of stars; beneath, a vast
-flocculent sea of milky whiteness. Already the eastern
-air was lightening with the first green tremors of dawn,
-and the warm calm of the night was giving place to
-the keen freshness of a new day.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston could rest no longer. He rose, and wandered
-to and fro across the summit, thinking out the
-situation in which he had become involved. A force
-too great for his resistance had swept him into its
-dominion; so much was certain. The force was hateful,
-paradoxical, inexplicable. But its grip was at his
-throat, and no struggles could extricate him. The
-whole face of the world had suddenly changed; hidden
-things had been made clear, and things which had
-once been thought precious and sufficient were now
-shown in the light of this strange sunrise to be altogether
-false and valueless. No reluctance, no blinking
-of facts, no well-meant pretences, could alter the fact
-that life had suddenly opened out before him, enormous,
-passionate, in all its scope, and that, in the revelation
-the mountains of bygone days were dwarfed to molehills.</p>
-
-<p>But these changes ruled only in the secret places of
-the heart. There remained the practical aspect of
-things. In the depths of his soul he now carried with
-him a knowledge of what was highest and most glorious
-in life, but that knowledge must for ever be buried
-in the depths. His own rash action, in the days before
-he had understood, before he had been awaked, had
-put it eternally beyond his power to stretch out his
-hands openly, and seize the happiness that his soul
-had found. Chains of diamond might bind him now<span class="pagenum">[187]</span>
-and for ever to this second self that he had discovered;
-but chains of his own making, of his own riveting,
-made him prisoner to another life, in the lower world
-of daily existence. In the clear cold of the dawn the
-heats and tempests of his brain seemed to grow calm;
-he saw more and more clearly into the future and its possibilities;
-passion and its stress had given way to a cooler
-appraisement of circumstances. His nature, emotional
-rather than sensual, helped him to regain his balance.
-It was on the spiritual, transcendental side of his
-feelings that he dwelt.</p>
-
-<p>This love of his for Isabel, this love which came from
-outside, which had nothing to do with moral or æsthetic
-approval&mdash;it should be a thing altogether high and holy.
-To keep it clear of contamination, to sanctify it by
-restricting it to the loftiest regions of life&mdash;this was the
-task that lay before him. The task might be difficult.
-Isabel might try to increase the difficulty of it. But
-he would gather strength from the very difficulty of his
-position, the very intensity of his passion, which, by
-the sheer weight of it, must lay so great a responsibility
-upon him as his soul must needs rise to bear. For the
-heavier the weight, the easier it is to endure; the soul
-braces itself sternly, deliberately, to the labour, and
-carries off the burden of a crushing load more triumphantly
-than the straws which daily life and little
-desires impose&mdash;the straws which seem of no account,
-and for which, therefore, the soul makes no preparation,
-stiffens no muscles to sustain. Against a lapse
-Kingston felt himself defended as much by the solemn
-ecstasy with which he had come to accept the fact of
-his passion as by his sense of the redoubled duty which
-it made him owe to the other life that he had innocently
-involved.</p>
-
-<p>Tragic affection possessed him as he thought of
-Gundred;&mdash;Gundred, giving her all&mdash;that all which now<span class="pagenum">[188]</span>
-appeared so little; Gundred, whose greatest gift had
-now become inadequate, yet must never be slighted or
-discarded. In a moment he saw the vast distance that
-now separated him from his wife. Had they ever, in
-reality, been close together? Now, without conscious
-treachery on either hand, time had removed them very
-far away from each other. He understood what impulse
-it was that had lately been making him try to
-pull her back into his life, and realized how completely
-she had passed out of it. There was no fault in her&mdash;at
-least, no other fault than a limitation of nature.
-How he himself could have escaped the penalty of his
-own character he could not see. The crisis of remorse
-was passing. He had committed no deliberate sin
-against his wife. What had come about had come
-about through no volition of his. If he loved Isabel
-that love was something outside himself&mdash;something
-that he could not kill, though he might duly cage it
-and control it. To cage it and control it accordingly
-was all that remained for him to do. Infidelity,
-treachery, adultery of the flesh would be an unpardonable
-treason to his love and his loyalty; the adultery
-of the heart is a thing instinctive, inevitable, committed
-sooner or later by many blameless men and
-women. This, the most important of human treasons,
-stands for ever beyond the reach of human restraint.
-No judge can analyze it, no jury weigh it; it can be
-valued by no damages, absolved by no divorce. The
-marriage of heart with heart is a matter outside the
-reach of law; the world and its laws are only concerned
-with external and visible manifestations. Let the
-outward life be clean and seemly; but nothing can
-govern the impulses of the inner secret life. Its
-movements can only be prevented from reacting
-shamefully on daily demeanour; they can never be
-measured, foretold, forbidden. Kingston knew that<span class="pagenum">[189]</span>
-his heart was faithless to his wife&mdash;knew that, in reality,
-it had never been pledged to her at all. Her heart to
-his, perhaps; but he had pledged her nothing, he found,
-but his approval, his affection, his respect. All the
-more reason, then, that, having bought so much of her,
-and for coin so innocently false, he should pay his debt
-to the uttermost farthing in the only money he had to
-pay. Respect, affection, approval, all that he had
-pledged and promised&mdash;these should be paid without
-grudge or chicane, and the very completeness and
-honesty of these tributes must atone as far as possible
-for the cruel fact that he had no more to give her.
-In the fullness of his tribute to Gundred he must find
-at once the redemption of his own self-respect, the safeguarding
-of her happiness, and the glorification of this
-love of his, that might sink so low, and might be made
-to rise so high.</p>
-
-<p>The whole air, vibrating with cold intensity, was now
-of a poignant emerald. In the East it grew keener and
-keener from moment to moment. Beneath, at his feet,
-through the milky sea of cloud, the heavy presence of
-the lowlands began to pierce, and grew from mere
-darkness into dim husky purples. Against the fierce
-green of the dawn a few clouds stood out fiercely black
-against the pure sky. The deep abysmal blue of the
-night was flying westward, retreating, fading, passing.
-Now it looked wan and worn; the faint stars staled
-and grew sickly as morning lamps. Slowly, very
-slowly, the world began to stir, to reveal itself far
-down in the valleys and distances. Detail had not
-yet been delivered of chaos, but gradually the separate
-existence of hill and hollow showed itself in flat masses
-of obscurity. And then the tones began to change,
-to grow sharper, more real. In the first dawn outlines
-had been clear and hard, the blackness dense and without
-modification. Against the pale horizon moorland<span class="pagenum">[190]</span>
-and mountain had stood out hard and stark, as if cut
-from cardboard. Now the haze of atmosphere began
-to clothe the new-born world in glamour, faint, mysterious,
-phantasmal. Along the eastern rim of the darkness
-stretched the swooping profile of Ravensber,
-like a lion couchant, flushing now, from a thing grey,
-cold, and dead, to a living mass of opal. Diaphanous,
-vague, uniform in colour against the pulsing vividness
-behind, the far-off mountain came nearer, its azure and
-amethyst grew every moment keener. At its feet the
-lower hills still lay dim and indistinguishable, but to
-them also life was returning; and as the great leonine
-shape above took warmer and warmer shades, from
-the first vaporous dimness of opaque blue to the splendours
-of a transparent jewel, so the intervening fells
-grew deeper in their tones of violet, more solid, more
-easily discernible among the faint mists in which the
-dawn had vested them, and from which they now
-began to separate themselves, while out of the vaporous
-films of the sky long trails and volumes of cloud were
-beginning to condense.</p>
-
-<p>Emerald was now passing into topaz, and the rolling
-masses of distance seemed every moment a shallower,
-greener blue. For the oldest and most primeval of all
-colours is blue&mdash;that vast, profound sapphire of midnight.
-But as darkness dies before the advance of
-dawn, each colour recedes westward as its successor
-presses hard upon it out of the East. Blue gives place
-insensibly to green&mdash;to green, faint at first and tremulous,
-then growing swiftly more sharp to its note of
-greatest pungency. And so, when the lucence of
-emerald is at its height, it rises abruptly into yellow&mdash;a
-yellow very pure and thin, and coldly pale. Blue
-has faded out altogether. The air has the vivid
-transparency of a topaz. Quickly the clear light intensifies
-itself, and passes on into richer, angrier tones of<span class="pagenum">[191]</span>
-saffron and flame. Then, last of all, crimson and
-scarlet appear, final heralds of the approaching day.</p>
-
-<p>Already, very far up in the shrill green of the zenith,
-a few feathered clouds were growing pink. The
-Ravensber, now, was of a rosy blue, and the sky behind
-it thrilled with gold. The air rippled cool with increasing
-keenness, and the awakening earth seemed to
-await an imminent summons. Gradually the details of
-the earth below could be discerned in blocks of uncertain
-light and shadow. It seemed as if the day were pausing
-on its road. The golden east grew increasingly golden,
-and the green overhead grew pale and melted; but
-to eyes that had watched the swift advance of the
-earlier stages this tantalizing moment of suspense
-seemed interminable. The world now was purple and
-azure; the Ravensber stood out no longer the phantom
-of a dream. Life was growing plain and plainer.
-But still the poignant moment hovered indecisively
-on its way. The path of the sun was barred with
-streaks of cloud. Ashen grey and violet in the beginning,
-they had kindled at last through wine colour to
-an ardent amethyst, and their lower surfaces were edged
-with rose. As their fluffy masses mounted the sky,
-their surfaces grew brighter, their purple warmer, till,
-high overhead, their last faint drifts were now of a uniform
-glowing pink. Everything was ready for the sun:
-the earth was clean and fresh from its sleep, the air
-was vivid and clean and sparkling.</p>
-
-<p>When the last change came, it came with a blinding
-abruptness after its delay. The fire of the clouds grew
-swiftly fiercer, their purple turned to molten bronze,
-their edges broadened, became red, scarlet, flaming.
-Kingston saw now the exact spot where the sun was to
-rise. Down in a cleft of the hills, where far-off Ravensber
-tailed away into the first slopes of Fell End, there
-lay the heart of the cloud-drift, and there through its<span class="pagenum">[192]</span>
-sombre curtains, the sun would have to break his way.
-Crimson and scarlet dominated the world now, throbbing
-from horizon to horizon. Splashes of infernal
-sanguine began to streak themselves across the East,
-growing every moment in number and in violence.
-The day was hurrying up in a leaping fury of splendour,
-and the path of the sun was a ladder of flame, leading
-upwards from the ravelled veil of darkness between the
-hills. And then, in a moment, the curtain of the clouded
-East was gashed suddenly and rent asunder: the earth
-seemed swept by a blast of blood and fire. The sun
-was up. Another instant, and his awful globe had
-leapt free of the broken masses of bronze beneath, and
-was mounting on its tyrannous way through heaven.</p>
-
-<p>Instantly before his glory all rival splendours faded.
-Scarlet, crimson, gold, and orange paled and died in
-the glare of his presence. The magical moment was
-passed. Clouds, mountains, and valleys were mere
-clouds and mountains and valleys again; the transfiguring
-radiance was dead. Only the air was still
-pervaded by the red glow. The world was torn from
-dreams to reality again. Calm, clear, definite, it lay
-below, stripped of mystery, a world of men and women,
-fears and desires, eating and drinking.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston walked round to where the western edge
-of the mountain dropped away to the fells far below.
-Beneath those, again, lay the narrow glen where Ivescar
-stood. Between the Simonstone and Carnmor it cut
-its way southward and then sloped down into the great
-valley beyond. The Vale of Strathclyde stretched
-softly through the distance, very broad and fertile,
-to the remote low hills that bounded it on the farther
-side. From where he stood Kingston could see its
-whole course mapped out before him, far away, clear
-and rosy in the fresh daylight. In a swooping curve
-it flowed westward under the wall of the mountain<span class="pagenum">[193]</span>
-country, westward from its source away in the east, in
-the heart of Yorkshire, out to where its last placid
-ripples passed into the indistinguishable golden glory
-of the western sea. And there, beyond the low cleft
-in the woodlands, where a faint smoky haze betrayed
-the town of Lunemouth, the vast, flat glitter of the bay
-ran farther and farther out, till it was merged in the
-bright opalescence of the sky, against whose gleaming
-softness rolled northward, in dim sapphire, the jutting
-ranges that passed up into the tangled mountain chaos
-of Cumberland and Westmoreland.</p>
-
-<p>Trees, steeples, villages, stood up clear and vivid
-everywhere in the valley beneath, remote and tiny in
-the depths; but where each river coiled and writhed
-through woodland, there coiled and writhed across the
-face of the earth a monstrous sleepy dragon of white
-vapour. Higher up, again, in the narrower mountain
-valleys, wherever water flowed, the runnels of its course
-were filled with a dense bellying mass like pale smoke.
-From the hills behind, too, from the stern, deep-channelled
-country of fell and moor, rolled down
-towards the lowlands of Strathclyde great sluggish
-remoras of mist, blotting out each hollow in a snowy
-void, and leaving only here and there a little islet of
-dark rock or heather in the white swirling sea of their
-tide, as they lapped and curled round the lesser hills
-below. As the sun grew stronger, their volume
-momentarily ebbed and melted, but in the first
-moments of day the glen of Ivescar brimmed over with
-their confused currents, beneath the brow of the
-Simonstone, and as Kingston gazed down over the
-edge, he looked into a blank and woolly vacancy.</p>
-
-<p>While he stood there Isabel approached. There was
-no more battle, no more challenge in her air. Knowledge
-of the truth was enough for the hour. In the
-cold clear purity of dawn the ardours and agonies of<span class="pagenum">[194]</span>
-passion could have no place. Kingston and she had
-found the great secret of their common life; no more
-words were needed.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston turned to her.</p>
-
-<p>‘We may as well be starting down,’ he said. ‘It will
-be easy enough now. I only hope Gundred has not been
-in a great state of anxiety. Did you get any sleep?’</p>
-
-<p>‘It was a bony bed,’ replied Isabel, ‘but I managed
-to rest quite fairly. But I feel utterly tired and
-squashed. Do let us go home, and get fed and cleaned
-and decent again.’</p>
-
-<p>‘In a few minutes,’ said he, ‘we shall hardly be able
-to believe we have ever been up here. This night will
-seem like fancy.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Or else we shall feel that we have been up here all
-our lives, since the very beginning of things. Kingston,
-I was angry with you, but you have taken me
-up on to a mountain, and showed me more beautiful
-things than I ever thought there were in the world.
-I have been thinking. Perhaps I understand a little
-better now.’</p>
-
-<p>He studied the calm radiance of her face. The sun
-fell full upon it, gilded and glorifying.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes, Isabel,’ he said, ‘we must do what we can.
-We must try to&mdash;to honour ourselves. I am glad you
-begin to understand. After all, nothing can take
-away the thought of what we have found together up
-here, you and I. And we must not let that thought
-get spoiled, Isabel. How pompous I sound, though!’</p>
-
-<p>She sighed. ‘I am always running my head up
-against the walls of life,’ she answered. ‘I think I do
-see now what a mistake I made. I hurt myself and
-you. Oh, I shall never pretend to have conventional
-morals like you, but I am beginning to understand that
-self-denial is sometimes a splendid form of self-indulgence.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[195]</span></p>
-
-<p>The thrill of the new day, the glowing serenity
-of everything around him had their influence on
-Kingston. His emotions reached calmer, greater
-heights than before, above the reach of storms. His
-tongue was loosened for a moment.</p>
-
-<p>‘We are above the world, Isabel,’ he said; ‘let us
-try to stay there.’</p>
-
-<p>She looked at him, her smile touched with irony.</p>
-
-<p>‘And yet,’ she answered, ‘you are going to lead me
-down into the valleys. Do you think one could always
-stay on the heights?’</p>
-
-<p>‘At least we have been there once in our lives,’ he
-replied. ‘How many people can honestly say that?’</p>
-
-<p>‘The valley is full of clouds and mists,’ said Isabel,
-peering down. ‘Death and horrors may lie below us.’</p>
-
-<p>‘We are going there together, Isabel. We shall
-always be together now. We cannot help it, even if we
-wanted to. Nothing can release us from each other.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Not even the deaths and horrors?’ asked Isabel
-slowly.</p>
-
-<p>‘Why suppose that there will ever be any?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, I am cold and cramped, perhaps; I am frightened
-of things all of a sudden. Even you and I will
-have each to go alone into the Valley of the Shadow,
-Kingston. You will not be able to go with me there,
-not even if we are to meet again on the other side. I
-am dreadfully afraid of death and dying. Life has
-suddenly become more lovely than ever. I love it
-and worship it. Come with me into life. But, even
-with you, I don’t like passing out of this warmth down
-into the mists and cold damps below there.’</p>
-
-<p>‘They will have disappeared by the time we get on
-to the lower flats,’ he answered. ‘Let us set off.
-They are thinning every minute.’</p>
-
-<p>With a last look round the radiant plain of the hill-top,
-Isabel followed him over the edge, and down the<span class="pagenum">[196]</span>
-first steep slope. Instantly they were out of the sunlight
-and the glow, in chill shadow as yet untouched
-by the influences of day. Down and down they
-plunged towards the mists beneath, while, far overhead
-now, the rosy beams of the day shot out across
-the world, cut off from them as they went by the
-intervening bulk of the mountain, sombre and stark.
-So they came at last to the pavement of white limestone
-below, and stood on its last, lowest ridge.
-Beneath them, grey, barren, inhospitable, lay suddenly
-revealed the topmost end of the little valley, hemmed
-in by its amphitheatre of cliffs. The mists were
-scattering now in desolate wisps of vapour, and the air
-was cold and dank in the shadow of the mountain
-behind. Through the torn veils of the white fog they
-could see clearly down upon every detail of the glen&mdash;the
-shape of each poor profitless field of brownish grass,
-enclosed by intersecting lines of stone wall, with here
-and there an ash-tree or a hawthorn, weird, tormented,
-witch-like, crouching eternally beneath the lash of the
-wind, and shivering in its sparse, blighted garment of
-leaves. Just below them rose the struggling stream, out
-of a stone slope thick with nettles that dropped away
-steeply from the foot of the cliff; it wandered homelessly
-through two or three grim meadows, where wiry
-herbage battled with the white outcrop of stone,
-then passed through a grated barrier into the domain
-of Ivescar. From the height of the cliff Ivescar itself,
-house and plantation, seemed more impudently vulgar
-than ever. The plantation filled the valley, glaringly
-artificial, glaringly unsuccessful, a serried army of
-wretched dwarfish little pines. And in the middle shone,
-steely and cold, the square expanse of the lake, and by
-its side, isolated on the desert of lawn, the house itself,
-dome, tower, pinnacles and all, raw, yellow, brutal
-in its contented ugliness.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[197]</span></p>
-
-<p>Kingston and Isabel gazed down at it with distaste;
-then they turned from the mournful glen, filled with
-chill shadow and sterile discomfort, to look back at the
-mountain from which they had descended. Very high
-overhead towered the imperious western face of the
-Simonstone, and the whole mass was glowing now like
-a thing alive, flushed with pulsing blood and vitality.
-From crown to base it was kindled to an ardent and
-luminous crimson, at once sombre and gorgeous, at
-once brilliant and terrible. Kingston and Isabel
-looked up at it in silence for a moment, then plunged,
-without a word, down into the bleakness of the stony
-valley. Another moment, and the mountain had
-vanished from their sight. They were in the cold
-shade of the cliffs, and the upper glories were hidden.
-So, still silent, they made their way through the fields,
-through the elaborate iron gates of the park, and into
-the pretentious deserts of Ivescar.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred had a quiet, practical spirit. When her
-husband and her cousin had failed to reappear in time
-for dinner, she wasted no energy in grief or anxiety,
-but came to the conclusion that they must have lost
-their way, and either found some other haven, or, at
-all events, taken the most prudent steps possible in the
-circumstances. It was never in her calm nature to be
-harassed without good cause; she always expected the
-best till she heard the worst, and gave everybody
-round her credit for coolness and imperturbable
-sagacity equal to her own. Accordingly on this occasion
-she made her husband’s apologies to Mrs. Mimburn,
-dined without agitation, and slept the night
-through in placid confidence that the wanderers would
-return with the morning. Her perfect trust in Kingston’s
-sense precluded all anxiety as to his welfare,
-and her perfect trust in his affection all anxiety as
-to his absence. When at last Kingston and Isabel<span class="pagenum">[198]</span>
-returned, Gundred received them with a complete lack
-of fuss or excitement, but with proper attention
-suited to their state. Warmed, washed, fed, they soon
-fell again into the orderly course of the life that she
-had arranged. She condoled with them on the misadventure
-that had kept them prisoners on the hill-top,
-and troubled no more about the matter, as soon
-as she had made certain that neither of them had contracted
-chills or colds. Very tiresome she felt the
-misfortune to have been, but a thing that might have
-happened to anyone, of no real lasting importance.</p>
-
-<p>Not so, however, moved the keen mind of Minne-Adélaïde.
-That astute woman, ruffled by the inexplicable
-absence of her host, depressed by the barbarism
-of the view from her window, and at all times prone
-to the more passionate interpretation of life’s problems,
-set herself to the careful watching of Kingston
-in his relations with this strange new cousin of his
-wife’s. Mrs. Mimburn from the beginning was no friend
-to Gundred. She could not but suspect that Gundred
-disapproved of her. No persuasions could induce
-Gundred to call her ‘Minne.’ To Mrs. Mimburn’s
-complete disgust, the new niece persisted in calling
-her ‘Aunt Minna.’ Thus predisposed against her
-hostess, Minne-Adélaïde unfavourably noted all Gundred’s
-limitations, her apparent coldness, her lack of
-appetizing brilliancy, of appeal, of all the many attractions
-with which a wise wife arms herself against the
-inevitable satiety of marriage. In an evening’s space,
-Mrs. Mimburn became convinced that Kingston must
-be dreadfully bored by this unsalted wife of his, with
-her frigid little excellencies. She kept a sparkling eye
-wide open for complications. When she heard that
-Kingston was on the hills with a female cousin, she
-smiled in one corner of her mouth; when time went
-by, and he was discovered to be spending the night<span class="pagenum">[199]</span>
-with her on a mountain, she smiled in both, and licked
-her lips with a delightful foreboding of catastrophe.
-She welcomed her nephew with perfunctory joy when
-he at last appeared, and devoted her keenest attention
-to the examination of Isabel. And at once her experienced
-glance discerned what it had taken Kingston
-weeks to discover, what Gundred was still a long way
-from discovering. She saw that Isabel was attractive&mdash;illogically,
-unreasonably so, but attractive all the
-same&mdash;even unusually so. And Minne-Adélaïde knew
-that it is just these illogically fascinating people who
-do the most harm, and establish the most devastating
-tyranny over men’s roving tastes. ‘Aha!’ thought
-Minne-Adélaïde. Time began to hang heavy on her
-hands, and she fell to scanning the future with a hopeful
-anticipation.</p>
-
-<p>The days passed by in their usual lethargic orderliness.
-Nothing happened, nothing seemed likely to
-happen. Kingston and Isabel were rather better
-friends than before, perhaps, but Gundred was so clearly
-satisfied with the situation that no perils appeared to
-threaten. Minne-Adélaïde began to grow a little disappointed.
-Neither Kingston, Isabel, nor Gundred
-gave her anything to be interested in. Their behaviour
-continued merely amiable and ordinary. Perhaps
-Kingston had grown more ardent in his treatment of
-Gundred, but Mrs. Mimburn was not in a position to
-realize the fact. Certainly he grew daily more and
-more affectionate; he pulled her perforce into every
-conversation, he devoted himself to her comfort, he
-never allowed himself to be happy out of her sight.</p>
-
-<p>As for Isabel, he and she had very little to say to
-each other in these few ensuing days. What had
-happened had happened; it had given them a blessed
-consciousness; there was no need to be putting it into
-words. Exhausted by emotions, they were content to<span class="pagenum">[200]</span>
-let themselves drift. That the situation was terribly
-unsafe and precarious Kingston knew in his heart.
-He realized that it could not long be continued. But
-for the moment he acquiesced, and trusted that, before
-the strain broke in catastrophe, Fate might provide
-some solution; and, meanwhile, there was nothing for
-Minne-Adélaïde to get hold of.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Mimburn had made herself into one of those
-women who belong to the town, and are quite out of
-place in the country. Her dress, her voice, her every
-movement suggested the perpetual neighbourhood of
-shops, and an habitual dependence on their resources.
-Paris and London spoke in her, and she looked garish
-and inappropriate whenever she carried her elaborate
-boots or her silk petticoats into the country. Her
-rustic clothes and hats were never genuine. They
-overdid their effects, and only succeeded in looking
-like those of an actress at a garden-party on the stage.
-Mrs. Mimburn’s soul was as urbane as her body and
-its appointments. She could not live or breathe for
-long in the country. A nice suburban corner like
-Surrey might be all very well for a week-end or so. It
-had a saving artificiality&mdash;motors and bridge-parties
-and all kinds of gaieties seemed quite in place. One
-could wear decent clothes, and yet be in the picture.
-A civilized landscape like that was nothing more than
-a good <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">mise-en-scène</i> for an added last act to the
-“Drama of the Season.” Mrs. Mimburn could tolerate
-such an atmosphere without beginning to sigh for Bond
-Street. But Ivescar, dumped in its desolation, was
-nothing short of appalling. Minne-Adélaïde withered
-and shrank. She bitterly regretted that curiosity had
-brought her there. Nothing to do, nothing to see,
-nothing to say: only clouds and rocks to look at, and
-the rain for ever spotting one’s hat, and midges biting
-one awfully through the openwork of one’s stockings,<span class="pagenum">[201]</span>
-if ever one went out on the lawn in a presentable shoe!
-Minne-Adélaïde looked restlessly round for any possibilities
-of amusement. She felt completely <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">dépaysée</i>,
-out of her world, an exile in a desert that made her
-most brilliant gowns seem blatant and tawdry. She
-grew homesick, feverish, overexcited by sheer weight
-of dullness. She would not go away till she had well
-spied out the land. But in the meantime she must
-have something to do&mdash;or die.</p>
-
-<p>‘So fascinating, your cousin,’ said Minne-Adélaïde
-one afternoon, suddenly wearied of counting the raindrops
-on the window-pane.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred looked up from her needlework.</p>
-
-<p>‘Isabel is quite attractive,’ she replied, her tone
-implying, ever so faintly, that it was a presumption of
-Mrs. Mimburn even to praise a Mortimer.</p>
-
-<p>The two women sat alone in the picture-gallery,
-Kingston being gone on some errand to his mother,
-and Isabel writing letters upstairs. Of late days Gundred
-had begun to notice the increasing warmth of her
-husband’s nature, and in some strange way his affection
-seemed to set her at a distance from him instead
-of bringing him nearer. Though she had never thought
-twice of his night on the mountain, yet the faint chill
-that she had felt that evening had never since quite
-left her. She could find no fault in their relations,
-could guess no limitation in himself or her; yet now
-his love seemed to leave her outside his life. She felt
-cold and lonely&mdash;quite without reason, she knew, but
-yet cold and lonely she felt. Therefore she was more
-than usually on the defensive against the impertinences
-of Minne-Adélaïde.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Mimburn noticed the implied snub.</p>
-
-<p>‘Dear Kingston has a lot to say to her,’ she went on
-viciously. ‘He always has such a lively mind. He
-likes people with plenty of <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">élan</i>.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[202]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Doesn’t he&mdash;yes?’ replied Gundred quietly, yet
-feeling the stab as she would certainly not have felt it
-a fortnight ago. The skin of her self-contentment was
-wearing thin. But she saw the other woman’s intention
-to hurt, and brought all the resources of her pride
-to repel the attack. ‘Isabel and my husband are the
-greatest friends,’ she went on. ‘I am so glad of it.
-She can talk to him about so many things. Sometimes
-she can amuse him better than I.’</p>
-
-<p>Her whole splendid pride shone in the calm with
-which she made these admissions. It was her crowning
-confession of faith in her husband. And yet, as she
-made it, the confession hurt her. Deep down in some
-secret place of her heart it touched a little hidden
-wound.</p>
-
-<p>Minne-Adélaïde saw only the rebuffing self-complacency
-of the speech, and was spurred to angry indiscretion
-by her niece’s arrogant tranquillity. ‘So
-wise you are, dear Gundred,’ she said, ‘to let them
-go about so much together. Now so many young
-women ride their husbands on the curb, and end by
-boring them to death. Not that your system has not
-got its dangers, dear. I wonder you are never anxious.
-Men are men, when all is said and done, and at your age
-you cannot be expected to know the horrors they are
-capable of.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred gazed across at her husband’s aunt with
-cold grey eyes.</p>
-
-<p>‘You have probably been unfortunate in your experiences,
-Aunt Minna,’ she replied. ‘Everything
-depends on the set in which one lives&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Mimburn laughed&mdash;a high, giggling laugh, with
-a clever upward run at the end.</p>
-
-<p>‘Nothing, my child&mdash;nothing,’ she replied. ‘All men
-are alike under the skin.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred had a flash of cleverness.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[203]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘But the skin may be clean or dirty,’ she answered,
-‘and that is what makes the difference&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Life, my dear,’ said Minne-Adélaïde sententiously,
-‘is a garden of roses growing in manure. You cannot
-play about in that garden without getting dirty.
-And men like the gardening work, and they don’t
-trouble to put on gloves for it either. Life is a dirty
-affair, <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">ma petite</i>.’ Minne-Adélaïde honestly thought
-so, though her own life had been plain and clean in the
-most uninteresting degree, so far as its facts went.
-Gundred looked at her with chilly distaste. She misunderstood
-Mrs. Mimburn, thought her attitude genuine,
-instead of mere pose, and disliked her accordingly.</p>
-
-<p>‘We shall never agree,’ she answered. ‘We see
-things very differently, Aunt Minna. We have always
-known different sorts of people.’</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Mimburn bit her enamelled lip. ‘Well,’ she
-answered, ‘I am sure I hope you will make a success
-of your life, dear Gundred. I do think the experiment
-is a little risky, though. Isabel is really a little
-dangerous, you know.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Are you talking about my cousin?’ asked Gundred
-loftily. ‘Oh, please don’t trouble. I think we understand
-each other.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No woman understands any other woman when
-there is a man in the case,’ replied Minne-Adélaïde.
-‘Only misunderstandings happen <em>then</em>. We are all
-cats together. One always has to be careful of other
-women.’</p>
-
-<p>‘How kind of you&mdash;yes?’ said Gundred; ‘but there
-is really nothing to warn us against.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">ma chère</i>, of course not. Dear Kingston is
-the best husband in the world. It is a pity, perhaps,
-he was not&mdash;well, a little more <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">noceur</i> before he
-married. That would make one feel so much more
-secure of him as a husband. One has to remember, you<span class="pagenum">[204]</span>
-see, that marriage is not only a matter of&mdash;obvious
-things. It’s not a case of having a man, but of holding
-him. A woman should always have reserves and spices
-in her nature to keep her husband on the alert&mdash;ordinary
-women, I mean. But you are so brave.
-You are trying to run a <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">ménage à trois</i> on quite original
-lines&mdash;&mdash;’</p>
-
-<p>‘My dear Aunt Minna, there isn’t any need to give
-me so much good advice. I have no wish to interfere
-with my husband’s amusements.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Not even to have any share in them? Now, that
-is so courageous. Of course you don’t seem able to
-amuse Kingston as much as Isabel can. I suppose you
-see that. He makes it plainer and plainer every day.
-Or perhaps you simply don’t care for the trouble, and
-so you give him a lively pretty creature to fill up the
-time with? So sweet of you. I only trust he won’t
-fill up the time so well that he won’t have any left for
-you. Men are so uncertain.’</p>
-
-<p>This time Mrs. Mimburn had pierced Gundred’s
-armour. Her colour deepened. ‘I should think it a
-silly insult to have any doubts of my husband,’ she
-answered. ‘And&mdash;and&mdash;well, it’s not as if Isabel
-were very extraordinarily beautiful.’ She regretted
-the lapse as soon as she had committed it. But Minne-Adélaïde
-pounced mercilessly.</p>
-
-<p>‘Let me tell you,’ she said, ‘if Isabel is not exactly
-beautiful, she is something much worse: <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">elle est pire</i>.
-She is fascinating. Now, mere prettiness is apt to get
-very <em>fade</em> and insipid after a time&mdash;the monotony of
-marriage, you know. And if there is anyone so attractive
-as Isabel anywhere near, a man is terribly ready to
-forget mere prettiness.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Perhaps, but a gentleman does not forget his duty,’
-answered Gundred, losing command of the situation
-for a moment.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[205]</span></p>
-
-<p>Minne-Adélaïde pursued her advantages accordingly.
-‘Oh, well,’ she laughed, ‘if one only wants to
-hold one’s husband by his duty! And even a gentleman&mdash;what
-else is he but a man, as soon as his clothes
-are off? And they do show the strangest forgetfulness
-at times. <em>I</em> could tell you stories.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred hated herself for permitting such a dialogue.
-Mrs. Mimburn seemed to have entrapped her.</p>
-
-<p>‘Please don’t,’ she answered. ‘These things are not
-interesting.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You see,’ went on Minne-Adélaïde, ‘if one lets one’s self
-slide out of a man’s life, one is encouraging him to
-forget one&mdash;and to remember other people, which is
-worse. Now you&mdash;of course one can’t always fill
-one’s husband’s life, one can’t always talk to him, can
-one? Between ourselves, now, one can’t always
-understand him. And she does, this cousin of yours.
-And that may be all right, or, again, it may be all
-wrong.’</p>
-
-<p>Thus baited, Gundred grew furious. Her colour
-came and went, her manner became neater, cooler,
-blander than ever. And yet she could say so little.
-Mrs. Mimburn’s darts had found the weak spot that she
-was hiding even from herself. Through all her anger
-at Minne-Adélaïde’s insolence, the dialogue had for her
-a fearful, poignant interest that forbade her to follow
-her own first angry instincts, and cut it off with a
-snub.</p>
-
-<p>‘I think you are quite mistaken,’ she replied. ‘And,
-anyhow, I should always be glad to see my husband
-being amused&mdash;no matter who it was by.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah, you have the reckless unselfishness of the very
-young,’ answered Minne-Adélaïde intolerably. ‘That
-has wrecked so many marriages. “Trust nothing and
-nobody” ought to be one’s motto, and do all the amusing
-that may be necessary one’s self. It is safest in the<span class="pagenum">[206]</span>
-long run&mdash;if one can do it, that is. However, you seem
-content to let someone else do it, and all I say is that
-I hope no harm will come of it. But when you want
-to take up your own position in your husband’s life
-again, you may find that someone else has filled it
-while you were ordering dinner and talking about the
-weather. It is even better, my dear, to bore your
-husband than to let him find that he can be kept amused
-all day and every day by someone else. I should get
-rid of the cousin, if I were you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes?’ answered Gundred, gelid with wrath,
-yet, despite herself, enthralled in Mrs. Mimburn’s
-dreadful foreshadowings. She began to have some
-notion what it was that she had been finding unsatisfactory
-in her relations with Kingston. He petted her
-more and more, but more and more did he talk to Isabel,
-and his recent efforts to include Gundred only revealed
-his inability to do so. This it was, this situation of
-her own making, that had been giving her secret, unacknowledged
-qualms, and feelings of vague hunger.
-The more proudly, then, did she revolt against Mrs.
-Mimburn’s insinuations, and the vigour of her anger
-was the measure of her inward conviction that the
-insinuations held some truth.</p>
-
-<p>Minne-Adélaïde thought that she held Gundred helpless.
-She presumed on her power, made reckless at
-once by boredom and by gratified spite.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, well,’ she pursued, ‘it may pay to leave your
-husband for ever alone with Isabel. I can’t say. It
-wouldn’t pay with any other man or any other woman.
-But, of course, your husband <em>may</em> be an exception.
-Most husbands are&mdash;to their wives&mdash;until the catastrophe.
-Now, if I were you, I should want to know a
-great deal more about that night they got lost on the hill
-together&mdash;or said they did. That sort of thing isn’t
-done, you know. It wants a good deal of explaining.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[207]</span></p>
-
-<p>Confronted with the final insult, all Gundred’s pride,
-the best side of her courage rallied to her aid. Her
-manner betrayed no agitation, paid Mrs. Mimburn no
-compliment of excitement. Perfectly cool and level
-was her voice as she looked up and answered:</p>
-
-<p>‘You seem to forget that we are not living in one of
-that dreadful man’s plays,’ she said. ‘I should despise
-myself if ever I were capable of having such thoughts of
-my husband or my cousin. As you said just now,
-such things are not done&mdash;in the class I know, at all
-events.’ She fixed a cool, contemptuous, grey stare
-on the astounded Minne-Adélaïde, who suddenly had
-an unaccustomed feeling of getting the worst of it.</p>
-
-<p>Fluttered by this sudden revolt, Mrs. Mimburn
-made an effort to recover lost ground.</p>
-
-<p>‘I am sorry you take it like that,’ she began. ‘Of
-course one does not mean to accuse&mdash;&mdash;’</p>
-
-<p>‘We will talk of something else&mdash;yes?’ said Gundred
-very coolly, but with complete decision.</p>
-
-<p>Minne-Adélaïde gasped. She considered her attitude
-towards life all that was <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">chic</i>, up-to-date, and
-sound. She imagined that no man or woman could
-ever spend the dark hours in each other’s neighbourhood
-without the ultimate disaster, and piqued herself
-on the smart knowledge of the world that discerned
-adultery in the most casual compliments. Gundred’s
-sudden revolt was preposterous in its ignorance of
-human nature, as well as supremely insolent in its offhand
-condemnation of her own views. She completely
-lost her temper.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, well,’ she said, ‘one has to remember how little
-you know of things, poor dear! Your innocence is
-really beautiful&mdash;if it weren’t so pathetic. You will
-have a rude awakening one of these days. I am afraid
-there can be no doubt that your husband has
-already&mdash;&mdash;’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[208]</span></p>
-
-<p>She broke off, daunted by the look in Gundred’s
-eyes. The immemorial pride of the Mortimers gleamed
-and flashed in them. Gundred might have been
-brought up to be calm, unemotional, well mannered,
-but she came of a race that had never allowed itself to
-be baited by inferiors. And almost everyone else in
-the world was an inferior. Gundred fixed a chilling
-stare on Mrs. Mimburn’s excited face. ‘Be quiet,
-please,’ she said; ‘I am afraid you are a very vulgar
-woman.’</p>
-
-<p>All was over; Mrs. Mimburn was summed up and
-condemned in that one placid sentence, so judicially
-delivered. She could make no appeal; for the life of
-her, she could not even finish her remark. For the
-moment she was dominated by the force that came from
-her rigidly decorous enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Then in the silence, the door opened, and Kingston
-entered. Gundred turned towards him with a happy
-smile.</p>
-
-<p>‘Isn’t it a pity,’ she said in pleasant, gentle tones.
-‘Aunt Minna says she must go back to London to-morrow.
-Nothing can persuade her to stay, I find.’</p>
-
-<p>Minne-Adélaïde stuttered and choked with wrath
-at this defeat. ‘Yes,’ she said, purple through her
-powder&mdash;‘yes&mdash;yes, I must positively go back to town&mdash;positively
-go back to town to-morrow.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred quietly resumed her work.</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XII</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Minne-Adélaïde was gone, but her work remained.
-A week had passed, but Gundred could never forget
-that dialogue. Still as far from her mind as ever was
-any crude distrust of her husband. It was not in her<span class="pagenum">[209]</span>
-nature to have vulgar suspicions&mdash;to attribute to others
-that ugly baseness of which she herself could never have
-been capable. But, none the less, she grew vaguely
-fretted by Isabel’s presence, vaguely unhappy over the
-interest that Kingston took in her cousin. The two
-were always saying things that Gundred could not
-understand. Bit by bit she grew to feel that even to
-be an efficient housekeeper and a nice, well-dressed
-person is not always quite sufficient for a wife’s endowment.
-She made spasmodic attempts to follow Isabel’s
-flights into the abstract, and sometimes gave a book
-the preference over needlework. Her conversation
-became ambitious, aiming at brilliancy, but only achieving
-flatulence. She talked in capital letters, of high
-big words without definitions. Her contributions to
-ethical debate were windy, wearisome, perpetually
-circular and pointless. She saw that she could not
-attain to Isabel’s fantastic lightness of touch; she
-tramped a heavy ring of argument, and, being for ever
-unable to analyze her own meaning, was quite incapable
-of conveying it to others. Never before had she
-found herself inadequate. Now the conviction grew
-upon her that inadequate&mdash;at least, in some directions&mdash;she
-certainly was. She took refuge in the consciousness
-of her wedding-ring, and in the thought that
-impiety would be involved in the sharing of much
-that her husband and Isabel talked of. And for no
-possible consideration of earthly happiness would
-Gundred have wished to share impiety.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston and Isabel noticed Gundred’s efforts to
-keep pace with their conversations. On Isabel they
-had no effect. Isabel admitted no consideration of
-Gundred to any place in her life. She lived alone with
-Kingston, in a world of their own creation, and Gundred
-had for her little, if any, real existence. On
-Kingston Gundred’s manœuvres impressed the full<span class="pagenum">[210]</span>
-ill-luck of the situation. He saw how she was trying
-to come near him, and her struggles to do so only emphasized
-the fact that she was far away. Her attempt
-had come too late. Understanding now, as he did,
-the relation in which his whole soul stood to Isabel’s,
-it became piteous to watch Gundred’s efforts, and
-understand their futility. He redoubled the warmth
-of his demonstrations, and, after the habit of men,
-tried to make up for denying her what she wanted by
-lavishing upon her everything she did not. Outward
-signs no longer satisfied her; she had awaked to the fact
-that true marriage involves the exchange of something
-more, and that something more it was not now in Kingston’s
-power to give her. He was delightfully attentive,
-delightfully demonstrative; he picked up cushions,
-placed footstools and pillows, fetched and carried with
-eager docility; he complimented, praised, gave lip-worship
-and kisses and embraces; but these vigorous
-manifestations were all so many simulacra of the love
-that was lacking. Gundred insensibly came to realize
-the lack, and Kingston’s well-meant attempts to dissemble
-it only had the effect of forcing it on her attention.
-He gave her no cause to feel lonely, was always
-at her side, always included her in the talk, never
-allowed himself to be alone with Isabel. Yet lonely
-Gundred still felt herself&mdash;shut out from something.
-By whose fault? The fault was undiscoverable.</p>
-
-<p>Her husband’s attitude was negative and balanced.
-He threw all his efforts into making good to Gundred
-the fraud that he had innocently perpetrated. He
-had no need to look at Isabel, to talk to her, to aggravate
-the trouble of Gundred’s position. To Kingston
-and Isabel their secret glory was glory enough. He
-even shrank from the idea of open friendship with the
-woman whom his heart loved. It was enough&mdash;completely,
-triumphantly enough&mdash;that she should be<span class="pagenum">[211]</span>
-there in the same house with him, and that he should be
-for ever conscious of her presence and her relationship
-to himself. That relationship might have been profaned,
-spoiled, made common, had they allowed themselves
-to indulge in talk, in rapture, in the perilous
-delights of intimacy. As things were, it remained a
-lovely secret possession, a thing between them both,
-silent and holy, not to be brought down to earth.
-The earthly agonies had passed, or only recurred for
-fleeting moments. The privilege of keeping sacred a
-feeling so absorbing was enough for the glorification
-of the present. Morbid and perilous, the situation
-stood. A month would probably have destroyed its
-frail balance. In the nature of things it could not
-last. No sane lover could have contemplated its
-lasting. But Kingston and Isabel had no plan. They
-lived from hour to hour; they did not dare to look
-forward. Destiny would somehow loose the knot of
-their relations. Silent love was enough for the
-moment. Their emotions hung breathless on a delicate
-poise that would not let them contemplate any
-to-morrow. Besides, such a transcendental attitude,
-so dangerous, so unpractical, so deadly, left Kingston’s
-nature free to pay consolatory court to Gundred.
-With all his external nature he did homage to his wife,
-and concentrated his skill on paying in full to Gundred
-the debt he owed. Exalted and fantastic, rather than
-sensual and practical, his temperament made the task
-easier than it might have been found by many better,
-more full-blooded men. To him it became rather a
-fine martyrdom, in the successful achievement of which
-lay not only purification, but even pleasure. In the
-mutilation of the lower self for the sake of the higher
-he found a comfort so keen as to be almost joy.</p>
-
-<p>Thus, in eager self-mortification, he humbled himself
-before Gundred, and believed that she had no<span class="pagenum">[212]</span>
-suspicion of any defaultings on his side. He felt that
-he was giving her good measure, pressed down and
-running over&mdash;though only of the second-best. That
-she guessed it to be the second-best her husband had
-no notion; so subtle an instinct would always have
-been beyond the prosaic Gundred whom he had
-known and married. Now he knew her no longer;
-life had developed them along different roads. So
-he continued in the confident hope that he was giving
-her the perfect satisfaction to which she had the right,
-while she, for her part, secretly chafed at his obvious
-efforts, grieved that effort should be necessary, and
-exerted herself more and more to enter his life again.
-And as for the future, that might look after itself.
-Sufficient to the day was the marital duty of it.
-Marriage, however, is a dead thing by the time it becomes
-a duty. Kingston had no suspicion of this,
-but Gundred, suddenly outstripping him in the race
-of intuitions, understood in her heart of hearts, and
-felt a mortal chill.</p>
-
-<p>The habits of a lifetime, though, are not easily
-broken by emotional gales; Gundred, for all her leaping
-excursions into the regions frequented by Kingston
-and Isabel, retained her old, well-drilled enthusiasm
-for domesticity. Hearts might break and sunder, but
-the trained courage of Gundred saw no reason why
-soup, for that, should grow tepid, or beds ill-aired.
-Whatever she might fear or suffer, however much she
-might strain and agonize for real intimacy with her
-husband, she could not have excused herself to herself
-for allowing her attention to wander from his comfort
-or neglect his health. She pursued the useful tenour
-of her way with a Spartan cheerfulness that might
-have been even more splendid than it was had not
-long habit so engrained in her the zeal of domestic
-services. She continued overhauling the house, its<span class="pagenum">[213]</span>
-resources, its supplies, its deficiencies. Lady Adela
-having handed over to her the reins of government,
-she assumed them with unfaltering grip. Soon she
-became the housekeeper’s terror, and put to rout
-all the slack ease that had prevailed under the ineffectual
-amiability of her mother-in-law’s rule. While
-one side of her nature was battering for admittance
-into Kingston’s life, the other, the older, larger side,
-was occupied in examining store-cupboards, choosing
-wall-papers, pulling the house and its appointments
-into shape once more. Many improvements must be
-made, lighting remodelled, some of the worst horrors
-tactfully but decisively obliterated.</p>
-
-<p>And at this point, some ten days after Kingston’s
-understanding with Isabel, her inquiries brought
-Gundred face to face with the revelation that the
-drains of Ivescar were of an Early Victorian Tudor
-design no less pronounced than the style of its architecture.
-The discovery filled her with consternation.
-Her husband had confessed the day before to a sore
-throat. Diphtheria at once painted itself grimly on
-her imagination. Their stay at Ivescar must immediately
-end. With a strenuous exertion of character she
-swept Kingston and Isabel into harmony with her own
-determination, and the next morning they fled from
-Yorkshire. There was only one place for them to go
-to while the sanitary inspectors got to work. The
-London house was impossible&mdash;a desolation of painters
-and builders. They must return to Brakelond. Accordingly
-to Brakelond Gundred carried her acquiescent
-flock, and they took up their residence once again in
-the little wooden wing that jutted out over the sea.
-And so three more days passed, drifting Kingston and
-Isabel insensibly nearer to the inevitable catastrophe.
-In their fantastic ecstasy they were heedless of peril.
-But without some intervention of fate their path led<span class="pagenum">[214]</span>
-downwards towards disaster, though they might
-ignore or angrily deny the fact even to themselves or
-each other.</p>
-
-<p>At Brakelond some of the old reflected strength
-came back to Gundred. She became, once more,
-rather the châtelaine than the glorified housekeeper.
-Her mind, less distracted by congenial cares, was able
-to devote itself with all its might to what she called,
-to herself, the recapture of her husband. She talked,
-claimed his attention, attempted metaphysical flights.
-Her efforts aroused in him sad laughter, irritation, and
-pity. They were tragically futile as ever&mdash;futile in
-the very nature of the case, no less than in the limitations
-of Gundred’s character. The situation drifted
-on and on. As for Isabel, Gundred not only tried to
-copy her methods, but to monopolize her company.
-She sat with her, took her for drives, kept her at her
-side as much as possible, flattering herself all the time
-that her manœuvres were imperceptible. Isabel,
-secure in her secret supremacy, allowed herself to be
-captured, and, in the superficial victory of Gundred,
-found an added joy in her own hidden amusement.</p>
-
-<p>‘A little drive this afternoon&mdash;yes?’ said Gundred,
-after lunch. ‘Wouldn’t it be nice? You will come
-with me, Isabel?’</p>
-
-<p>Isabel assented. ‘At what time?’ she asked.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, four o’clock. I don’t want to go far. There
-is a woman I rather wished to go and see. Dear
-Mary Restormel, Kingston, you have often heard me
-speak of her. They have been friends of the family’s
-for I couldn’t say how long.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Shall I come with you?’ asked Kingston, not
-fancying the back seat of the victoria, and hoping to
-be excused.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh no, dear. You had better sit in the garden
-and make yourself comfortable. We shall not be<span class="pagenum">[215]</span>
-away long. Restormel is only about two miles off
-across the valley. And we’ll take the new horse too.
-So I expect we shall be home again in next to no
-time.’</p>
-
-<p>‘What does one talk to Mrs. Restormel about?’
-asked Isabel.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, I’ll do that,’ replied Gundred, not admitting,
-even to herself, that her motive in taking Isabel was
-to prevent her from having Kingston to herself that
-afternoon. ‘I really want to see her. She is expecting
-a child in about a month, dear Mary Restormel.
-Such a mercy if it is a son&mdash;not that it will make any
-difference, I am afraid, for the place will certainly have
-to be sold as soon as poor Hugh Restormel dies. Such
-a cruel pity&mdash;the sweetest little old place, Isabel.
-But the Restormels are poorer than Church mice
-nowadays, and positively cannot keep it going for
-another generation. You will simply love it, Isabel;
-you will be able to wander in the garden and get lost.’</p>
-
-<p>Expressing her joy at the prospect, Isabel made her
-escape to get ready.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston and Gundred were left together.</p>
-
-<p>‘You are quite sure you will not be lonely, Kingston,’
-said Gundred, after a pause. She spoke with a tinge
-of remorse in her voice, reproaching herself with painful
-conscientiousness for her wish to deprive him of
-amusing company.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh no,’ he answered, not discerning her veiled
-apology, nor caring to. ‘I shall get along quite
-happily.’ He no longer answered her as he might have
-done in his first innocent friendliness, before Isabel had
-been revealed to him.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred noticed the difference, with a subtlety for
-which he would not have given her credit.</p>
-
-<p>‘It is so nice having Isabel with us&mdash;yes?’ she said,
-apologizing both to himself and her.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[216]</span></p>
-
-<p>Her husband had long since ceased to criticize
-Isabel; now he warmed honestly to her praise.</p>
-
-<p>‘She is splendid company,’ he replied. ‘Always
-full of interesting things to say. Don’t you think she
-is very amusing, Gundred?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh yes,’ answered Gundred with pathetic insincerity.
-‘So bright and witty and facetious. I often
-wish I could say all the clever things she does. I am
-afraid I am much slower than she is, though. My
-brain does not run along so readily. I am fonder of
-serious things.’</p>
-
-<p>Her voice was touched with a faint wistfulness.
-Kingston hardly noticed it. He saw an opportunity
-for a show of that ardour which she found so unsatisfactory,
-and which he believed that she found so
-satisfying.</p>
-
-<p>‘She is one person, and you are another,’ he replied.
-‘I would not have you different, little lady, for anything
-in the world.’</p>
-
-<p>This was pleasant and pretty. Gundred’s instincts
-found it blankly empty and chilling. He meant to be
-so warm, but a month ago such an advance as hers
-would have been very differently met. Then he had
-thought her cold, had been for ever calling upon her
-to thaw. Now he hardly appeared to notice whether
-she was warm or cold, despite his manifestations of
-enthusiasm. Now it was he that was frozen, and she
-might thaw, it seemed, in vain. Had her melting come
-too late?</p>
-
-<p>‘Wouldn’t you?’ she answered slowly. ‘Are you
-really sure you wouldn’t? Kingston,’ she went on in
-a low voice, ‘I do so want to do and say what you
-like.’ She hesitated and broke off, seeking piteously
-for words that should salve her pride in its downfall.</p>
-
-<p>He could not understand that her seriousness demanded
-the tribute of a serious answer in return. He<span class="pagenum">[217]</span>
-gave her another of those easy protestations which
-sounded so well, and yet, as she felt, meant so little.</p>
-
-<p>‘You always do,’ he replied, ‘always and always.
-You can’t tell how much pleasure you give us, Gundred.’</p>
-
-<p>Against this geniality, so smooth, so superficial, she
-felt horribly powerless. There seemed no way, any
-longer, of piercing to her husband’s notice, of spurring
-him up to sincerity. And that casual ‘us’ shut the
-door against her so finally.</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah,’ she answered in a tired tone, her smile tinged
-with tragedy. ‘You say such delightful things. But
-I do feel I am not clever enough for you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘It is not cleverness one wants,’ he said. ‘It is
-just you. You, and only you. You are exactly
-perfect. One doesn’t criticize and say you are not
-this and that. You are just You.’</p>
-
-<p>She knew that he no longer criticized. But what
-he thought loyalty she felt to be lack of interest. The
-ardour of his words awoke now no answering ardour of
-conviction in her mind. As for Kingston, an emotion
-of pure pity stirred him. This charming, dear little
-woman, how awfully much, after all, he owed her.
-He believed that he could only pay his debt to her by
-redoubling the formal warmth of his words. The
-more pitiable he found her, the more he intensified the
-eagerness of compliment that was his atonement at
-once to her and to himself, that eagerness which she
-found so void and cold. ‘Dear pretty lady,’ he said,
-‘you should never have foolish little doubts. Don’t
-you realize that nobody’s husband was ever so happy
-in the world before?’</p>
-
-<p>She knew it. And she feared that she counted for
-nothing in that happiness of his. Her hands dropped,
-her voice grew chilly in its hopelessness. ‘Such a
-comfort&mdash;yes?’ she answered. ‘I am glad you are
-so happy, Kingston. I hoped you would be.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[218]</span></p>
-
-<p>Isabel came back into the room, and in a moment
-an animated conversation was going forward. Gundred
-took her part bravely, speaking wherever speech was
-possible, always falling short or wide of the point,
-always on the edge of giving up the attempt, and
-always being picked up by her husband, and pushed
-back again into the dialogue. Then the carriage was
-announced, and she set off with Isabel to visit the
-Restormels.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston sat in the garden, pondering the strange
-situation, hoping that he was behaving fairly to all
-concerned, and believing that he was. What could
-come of it all he had no idea. Poor Gundred, he admired
-her, respected her, marvelled at her&mdash;did everything,
-in fact, but love her. And that was now beyond
-his power. Love he could show, love no one can force
-himself to feel. She no longer stirred any pulses of
-emotion in him. She was a mere acquaintance&mdash;a
-pretty, charming, well-mannered acquaintance, but
-nothing more. What could he do, except what he was
-doing? To send Isabel away would be to find himself
-soon ceasing even to tolerate his wife. Without Isabel
-his life would become vacant and boring beyond conception.
-And it was not possible but that his boredom
-would react unfavourably on his attitude towards
-Gundred. It was fairer to all that Isabel should
-remain with them, easing off the tension of the difficult
-situation. And in time everything would settle down
-somehow, and the problem of existence would solve
-itself. He would not look ahead. Ten days had
-passed in a dream of holy happiness. Why not ten
-months, ten years, ten lustres?</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the return of the two women was
-strangely delayed. Tea-time came and went without a
-sign of them. And then the agitating news arrived
-that the new horse had emphasized his novelty by<span class="pagenum">[219]</span>
-bolting on the homeward way, and upsetting the
-carriage at the foot of the hill leading up to the Castle.
-Gundred was unhurt, and soon appeared, pale and
-shaken, but intrepid. As for Isabel, her leg had been
-badly broken.</p>
-
-<p>The next few hours passed in ceaseless bustle.
-Isabel, unconscious, was carried up to the Castle.
-Doctors, nurses, medicaments were wired for. Gundred’s
-courage came nobly to the fore. Despite the
-shock she herself had sustained, she went calmly, self-denyingly,
-self-importantly about her business. Kingston,
-who had seen nothing and suffered nothing of the
-accident, was far less placid and level-headed than
-Gundred. The sight of Isabel appalled him; Gundred
-firmly faced the responsibility, had her brought to the
-oaken parlour at the end of the old wooden wing, did
-all that could be done for her till the doctor arrived.
-When Isabel returned to consciousness it was Gundred
-who watched over her, comforted her, tried to mitigate
-her pain; Kingston could not bear to contemplate the
-horror. Had the sufferer been a man, Kingston, perhaps,
-might have confronted his groans more stolidly,
-though even so his sympathetic, emotional temperament
-must always have been less fitted than Gundred’s
-cool, unimaginative bravery, to cope with the manifold
-uglinesses of physical suffering.</p>
-
-<p>At last, however, the telegrams began to bear fruit.
-The doctor arrived, and matters showed signs of
-settling down into a more regular train. The bone
-was duly set, Isabel made comfortable, and hope
-held out of a speedy and prosperous recovery. A
-nurse came, and proved a very capable and decisive
-young person, whose only weakness was for looking-glasses.
-She was established in the empty upper
-rooms of the old wooden wing, and gave nightly scandal
-to the Castle servants by lighting all the candles she<span class="pagenum">[220]</span>
-could get together, the better to contemplate her
-charms and curl her hair. Except for this trick of
-collecting so lavish an illumination and leaving it to
-take care of itself while she went about her other
-businesses, she turned out both pleasant and useful.
-Her charge soon grew to like her, and, within a day or
-two of the accident, life at Brakelond was subsiding
-once more into calm and comfort. Helpless Isabel
-lay in state in the little oaken parlour, where Kingston
-and Gundred kept her company, hardly leaving her
-alone from morning to night. There was even, as her
-recovery satisfactorily advanced, a certain quiet charm
-about this invalid life. Isabel incapable of movement
-was rather a softer, more human person than
-Isabel insolent in perfect vitality and health. Kingston
-and Gundred enjoyed sitting with her and talking
-to her. They took it in turns to read aloud, and did
-everything they could to make the victim’s imprisonment
-as bearable as possible.</p>
-
-<p>So the days went placidly by till, though she was as
-yet, of course, unable to set foot to ground, the doctor
-promised that before long she might expect to be
-getting about once more, without any ill-effects from
-her accident. The nurse’s position, relieved by
-Gundred’s assiduities, grew more and more formal,
-more and more of a sinecure. She spent most of her
-time among the servants in the Castle, and her own
-looking-glass saw less and less of her. There were
-her morning duties and a few routine services to be
-discharged later, but in the evening, when Isabel had
-dined, she could safely be left to the care of Kingston
-and Gundred, while Nurse Molly, her fringe in perfection,
-could go and delight the housekeeper’s room
-away in the Drum Tower.</p>
-
-<p>The conversations between the three over Isabel’s
-bedside took many a strange turn. Gundred was never<span class="pagenum">[221]</span>
-encouraged by either Kingston or Isabel to feel any of
-her inability to take an adequate part. They chatted
-of everything that interested them, and Gundred was
-compelled to believe herself interested also.</p>
-
-<p>‘Now that the pain is over,’ said Isabel one night,
-‘one wonders, looking back, what it was all about&mdash;what
-it meant, what it really was.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, they always say a broken bone is dreadfully
-painful,’ replied Gundred. ‘I have always heard so&mdash;yes?
-Dear Isabel, you bore it so bravely.’</p>
-
-<p>‘One has to worry through,’ rejoined Isabel. ‘But
-what I meant was, why is the pain there? What
-makes a cracked bone produce all the unpleasant
-effects it does on one’s consciousness. It sends all
-kinds of horrible little burning, grinding, stabbing
-messages of spite to the brain. That is what pain is.
-But what are all those little messages for? Why
-does the beastly bone go on repeating itself so? If
-it only told the brain once and for all that it was
-broken, that ought to be quite enough. I hate a
-tautologous bone.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ said Kingston, ‘but it only goes on sending
-those messages when your brain tries to disregard
-them. Your leg only hurt when you tried to move it.
-Pain is simply the repeated warning of Nature.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And the test of endurance&mdash;yes?’ put in Gundred.
-‘Pain has the most marvellously elevating effect.’</p>
-
-<p>For a moment the conversation lapsed. They were
-sitting in the oaken parlour after dinner. The hour
-was growing late, and soon Nurse Molly might be
-expected to come and shut up Isabel for the night.
-However, at present she was at the other end of the
-Castle, taking her pleasure with the rest of the household,
-and the old wooden wing, with its inhabitants,
-was left quite deserted.</p>
-
-<p>‘I don’t believe it,’ said Isabel. ‘Pain is absolutely<span class="pagenum">[222]</span>
-horrible. I am a coward about it. I loathe and dread
-it altogether. Pain and death&mdash;dying, rather&mdash;are
-awful to me. I love being alive and warm in the blessed
-world. Dissolution is ghastly. For nothing would I
-give up the joy of living. Oh, agony is too horrible.
-It’s not a lesson so much as a punishment. Oh yes,
-a punishment, even if it’s for something one has done
-hundreds of years ago, before one was in this body
-at all.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, what a dreadful idea!’ cried Gundred, shocked&mdash;‘a
-terrible unchristian idea!’</p>
-
-<p>‘Not at all,’ contributed Kingston; ‘what about the
-blind man in the Temple? They asked Christ, “Did
-this man sin, or his parents, that he was born blind?”
-How could he have sinned, then, before he was born,
-except in some other existence? And Christ passed
-the question. If He had disbelieved the theory of
-reincarnation, He was quite capable of saying so very
-definitely. But He did not. By His silence He implicitly
-admitted its truth, instead of challenging it,
-and devoted Himself to the healing of the blind man.’</p>
-
-<p>‘So wonderfully hot it is in here to-night,’ said
-Gundred.</p>
-
-<p>‘I always feel,’ went on Isabel, ‘whenever I have a
-bad time, I am paying for having enjoyed a too good one
-once in a wrong way. I expect this broken leg of mine
-is the result of some selfish enjoyment of mine in bygone
-days that I have forgotten. I had prepared this
-penalty for myself in some mysterious way. For
-these things come automatically. Touch a button&mdash;commit
-the tiniest, wee-est action, good or bad&mdash;and
-years and years later, long after one has thought the
-action dead and forgotten, something happens that
-shows it has been alive and steadily working from
-the first hour to the last. Every littlest thing that
-happens, pleasant or painful, can always be traced back,<span class="pagenum">[223]</span>
-I expect, to some cause, infinitely small and infinitely
-remote in the past, far, far away beyond one’s recollection.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Don’t you wonder,’ said Kingston, ‘what your
-actions of yesterday and to-day will produce, and how
-long it will be before their effects come down upon us?
-We shall probably have forgotten all about to-day by
-then, but everything that we have done must bear
-some sort of fruit some day or other, as you say. Your
-accident, for instance, will have some effect upon us,
-and Nurse Molly must make some change in our lives,
-sooner or later. If one cannot introduce a fresh action
-without effect into our lives, still less can one introduce
-a fresh person. Nurse Molly, with her marvellous
-fringe, will certainly bring some new element with her
-into our lives. Now, what will it be, Isabel?’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred saw a chance of being apposite.</p>
-
-<p>‘Talking of Nurse Molly,’ she said, ‘really, she must
-be terribly vain. Morgan tells me she lights all the
-candles she can get together, and then sits and looks at
-herself in the glass. The servants are perfectly scandalized.
-And when she goes away from the room, she
-never dreams of putting the candles out. She leaves
-them all burning quite happily, and never thinks about
-them again. Such a sinful waste&mdash;yes? And she
-might set these old wooden rooms on fire any day, by
-her carelessness.’</p>
-
-<p>Isabel ignored her cousin’s intervention, and went
-back to the original topic. ‘I hope,’ she said, ‘I have
-atoned for my wickedness of the past with this broken
-leg of mine. What I want to do is to lay up for myself
-a great fat store of merit, so as to go on getting happier
-and happier in all the later stages of my existence.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes, but before one can attain the perfect happiness,’
-replied Kingston, ‘remember that one has to
-lose the desire for it. After ages and ages of purification,<span class="pagenum">[224]</span>
-one leaves the last trace of desire behind&mdash;even
-the desire for good. Then one becomes the perfect
-knowledge which is the perfect peace.’</p>
-
-<p>‘So dreadfully chilly it sounds&mdash;yes?’ said Gundred.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, but the warmth of life is also the torment of
-life,’ replied Kingston. ‘Desire may be as warm and
-pleasant as possible, but all desire is sorrow. Without
-desire there is no disappointment, no suffering, none
-of the horrible things in life that we all want to get
-away from.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Would one rather sacrifice desire for the sake of
-getting rid of sorrow, or is desire so pleasant that one
-would put up with sorrow to retain desire? I suppose
-desire is very painful and all the rest of it, but it does
-make life wonderfully interesting, and one’s days would
-be deadly lonely without it.... I don’t know that
-I want the perfect peace, as yet, Kingston. Perhaps
-when my soul has grown a few centuries older. At
-present all I want is to lay up for myself a supply of
-happiness to go on with.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You can only do that,’ he answered, ‘through
-suffering&mdash;self-abnegations, martyrdoms, and all sorts
-of uncomfortable strenuous virtues. By despising
-pain and bearing it for others, you may attain to
-happiness. Not simply by sitting quiet and saying
-you want to acquire merit. You must go through
-dreadful things cheerfully if you hope to lay up merit.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Nothing for nothing is the rule, evidently,’ said
-Isabel, ‘in morality as well as in commerce. So tiresome,
-when everyone longs to get bargains, and buy
-a pound’s worth for half a crown. But when happiness
-comes to the hammer, it always fetches its full
-price, I suppose, in whatever market you buy it.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, Gundred, what do you think?’ asked
-Kingston.</p>
-
-<p>‘Talking of hammers,’ replied Gundred, ‘there are<span class="pagenum">[225]</span>
-the strangest thumpings going on upstairs. Don’t
-you hear? Hammerings and bumpings and knockings.
-Do you think Nurse Molly can be nailing up pictures?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Running pins into the fringe, I should think,’
-replied Kingston, with a touch of petulance. Certainly
-Nurse Molly was making the oddest noise in her room
-overhead. In the silence that followed Kingston’s
-suggestions her unmethodical clatterings could be
-distinctly heard.</p>
-
-<p>‘We must certainly ask her to be quiet&mdash;yes?’ said
-Gundred. Then she rose and went to the window.
-‘Why should it be so stifling in here?’ she went on.
-‘There is quite a gale outside. Only listen.’ She
-paused, and the roar of a great rushing wind was
-clearly evident.</p>
-
-<p>‘The wind seems to get up very suddenly on these
-coasts,’ said Kingston.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh yes,’ answered Gundred; ‘all in a minute.
-Especially so late in the year. That is what makes
-the heat so extraordinary.’ She peered curiously out
-into the darkness. ‘Why, Kingston,’ she exclaimed,
-‘it is actually snowing. How perfectly astonishing!
-Quite a number of snowflakes are falling. And Nurse
-Molly’s illumination is really too scandalous; I can see
-it glowing quite far out into the night, throbbing and
-flickering.’ She pulled back the catch, and threw the
-little window wide.</p>
-
-<p>Instantly, from above, a long, keen shaft of pure
-flame curled swiftly down into the room, licked round
-the casement like a dragon’s tongue, and was gone
-again. Gundred had self-possession enough to close
-the window, then she staggered back. The roaring
-sound overhead was louder now than ever.</p>
-
-<p>‘The Castle is on fire,’ she remarked at last, after a
-heavy pause. Suddenly she felt elated by her sagacity.
-‘The Castle is on fire,’ she repeated slowly.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[226]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘I think we had better get out of this,’ said Kingston.
-‘It’s that woman’s confounded candles upstairs.
-Ring the bell, Gundred, will you?’</p>
-
-<p>He went to the door, and opened it. The passage,
-their one hope of reaching the body of the Castle, was
-an impassable mass of flame at its further end. Kingston
-came back into the room. Even now the full
-horror of the situation had not struck him.</p>
-
-<p>‘I’m afraid we can’t escape that way,’ he said quietly.
-‘The corridor is ablaze.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred, meanwhile, was vigorously pulling at the
-bell; in the silence that followed Kingston’s announcement
-she continued methodically at her task, and the
-knob could be heard slapping again and again into its
-socket as she released it.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston glanced from Gundred to Isabel.</p>
-
-<p>Isabel had said nothing hitherto. He waited poignantly
-to hear what she would suggest.</p>
-
-<p>At last she spoke. Her voice was strained with
-agony and terror.</p>
-
-<p>‘And I&mdash;I cannot move,’ she said. ‘I am tied by
-the leg.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston turned furiously upon Gundred, who, in
-an access of vain frenzy, was rending and tearing
-the bell.</p>
-
-<p>‘Leave off making that hideous row!’ he exclaimed.
-‘What do you suppose is the use of it? Do you
-imagine the servants will come through three yards of
-fire to get us out?’</p>
-
-<p>‘What are we to do?’ asked Gundred feebly.</p>
-
-<p>‘I’m hanged if I know,’ replied her husband. ‘We
-must do something, that’s certain, and pretty quickly.
-These old rooms will burn like tinder. There must be
-some way along outside.’ He looked out of the farther
-window. Now the clamour of the fire was growing
-every moment more insistent. The night air was<span class="pagenum">[227]</span>
-aglow, and burning fragments were dropping like
-meteors towards the sea beneath.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ said Kingston. ‘There is a little ledge of
-rock. One couldn’t walk along it in the daytime,
-but we have no choice. Gundred, you will have to
-do what you can. You will be able to get along quite
-safely, if you go quickly and don’t think about it.
-And I must take charge of Isabel. Isabel, I’m afraid
-it won’t be very good for your bad leg, but I must
-carry you somehow. And there is no time to be lost.’</p>
-
-<p>Then Gundred understood everything. In the
-midst of an orderly comfortable life, it is not easy to
-understand that one is suddenly hemmed in by inexorable
-death. But at last the facts of the situation
-all burst in a shrieking pandemonium upon Gundred’s
-brain. She faced round upon her husband, read his
-face, and knew suddenly what terrible thing it was
-that he was thinking. In that awful moment of
-unveiled sincerity she saw that she, his wife, came
-second in his consideration. She was to get away as
-best she could. It was Isabel that mattered. The
-slow secret fears of her life roared out into the open,
-swept down upon her in a storm, and culminated.
-She clasped her hands for self-control, as the world
-shook and tottered round her. Desperately she
-clutched at her escaping senses; then, in a swirl,
-everything rushed together, grew dark, vanished.
-She dropped her hands, gave a sharp, moaning cry,
-and fainted. In the blank silence that followed her
-fall the voracious bellowing of the fire drew closer and
-fiercer.</p>
-
-<p>‘My God!’ said Kingston, in the low tone of absolute
-terror, ‘what are we to do now?’ He looked at
-Isabel. Between the two helpless women he must
-make his choice. He must make it instantly, too.
-He could not by any possibility save both. He<span class="pagenum">[228]</span>
-looked again from Isabel to Gundred. Isabel’s face,
-in that supreme hour, was white and wet with anguish,
-but she said nothing. She saw too well what Gundred’s
-collapse involved. Kingston still stood glancing
-from one to the other. He knew which of the two his
-whole soul cried aloud to save; he knew also which of
-the two his duty called on him to save. Love and
-duty were at last impossible to reconcile. On the
-razor’s edge of agony his mind poised and quivered
-through a pause that seemed to fill whole delirious
-hours, yet was come and gone in a flash. Insensibly
-he was waiting to hear Isabel pronounce his sentence
-and her own. All her passionate love of life shone in
-her straining eyes. They implored him, called upon
-him, cried violently to him for safety. And then, in
-an instant, Isabel’s eyes were opened, and her soul
-rose triumphant on its wings.</p>
-
-<p>‘Your wife,’ she said, with dry lips, almost inaudibly.
-‘Your wife. You must save her. Go&mdash;go
-quickly&mdash;and then come back for me&mdash;if there is
-time&mdash;oh God, come back for me quickly.’</p>
-
-<p>All was over. He knew he must obey. Without
-a word, he turned and gathered up the inanimate
-bundle that was Gundred. In feverish haste he
-clambered with his burden through the window.
-Insatiably, terrifically, the fire raged and ravened
-overhead. As he went he had a last glimpse of Isabel,
-her face gleaming with fear, set in the strain of mortal
-anxiety, her white hands clenched and writhing
-together on the quilt. Then he was out in the darkness,
-with brands and lumps of burning matter falling
-thick about his ears, drifting down into the night, to
-sink at last, hissing, into the invisible sea below.
-Stumbling, tottering, staggering, he dragged his load.
-How he ever reached safety he could never have told.
-A hundred times it seemed as if he must fall. But he<span class="pagenum">[229]</span>
-struggled on vaguely, half-consciously, through a
-nightmare, and found himself at last on sure ground,
-under the shelter of the old Castle walls. Savagely he
-dropped his unconscious burden on a level spot, then
-turned to rush back for Isabel. And, at that moment,
-before his bloodshot eyes, the old wooden wing collapsed
-into a blazing hell of fire&mdash;a vomiting pyramid
-of sparks and flame.</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XIII</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The soul passes in a moment from youth to manhood,
-through the iron door of a great sorrow. Between past
-and present stands the bolted portal, and the event of
-half an hour has set an eternal barrier between the
-thing one is and the thing one was. Kingston Darnley,
-as soon as his dazed brain began to understand what
-had happened, found that he looked back at his past
-across the haze of fire as on a drama played by strangers.
-Everything had changed; on that drama a curtain of
-anguish had descended, and now, when it lifted, the
-scene had altered, and the old actors had disappeared
-for ever. Kingston, no less than Isabel, had passed
-through the furnace. Seared and burned and blackened
-he emerged from it, changed beyond his own recognition,
-with passions killed and passions kindled. Somehow,
-by some mysterious help, he had struggled through
-the agony, and come out alive; but his consciousness
-was dazed and bruised, his vitality crushed, his fiery
-interest in life turned suddenly to the grey ashes of
-mere endurance.</p>
-
-<p>The days went by in a dreary dream. Kingston
-went mechanically about his duties, and saw the
-figure of Gundred moving at his side like something
-unreal and strange. There were inevitable activities<span class="pagenum">[230]</span>
-for him to carry through, and he discharged them
-steadfastly, with his numbed mind fixed on other
-matters. As for Gundred, not having so suffered,
-she found herself more alive to the matters in hand.
-There were condolences, inquiries to answer, arrangements
-to be made, restorations to be seen about.
-Gundred’s interest in the details of life could never
-lie long dormant, and when the first shock had passed
-with two or three days of intermittent tears, Gundred
-dried her eyes carefully, with a due regard to their
-appearance, and began to pluck up her sense of importance
-once more, thanking Heaven for her powers
-of self-control.</p>
-
-<p>The fire had confined itself to the old wooden wing
-and the chapel, and had made no attempt to devour
-the stark stone walls of the Castle itself. Gundred
-was deeply grateful for the forbearance thus manifested
-by Heaven, and was soon immersed in plans for the
-rebuilding of the ruins. Her husband, stupefied and
-calm, was not yet able to give her any effectual help,
-and so on her unaided shoulders she triumphantly
-supported all the responsibilities of the case. As time
-passed, and her first outbreak of genuine sorrow was
-quelled by the flood of her new activities, Gundred even
-began to enjoy the importance which events had so
-abruptly conferred upon her. Suddenly she became
-more conspicuous in the public eye than ever in her
-life before. The tragedy of Brakelond challenged
-attention and pity up and down the length and breadth
-of England. In horror, in picturesqueness, in romance,
-it possessed all the titillating qualities best fitted to
-make it the talk of the country. And Gundred became
-the central figure of the picture; sympathy and admiration
-were concentrated on her; her courage, her coolness,
-her grief, her rapid resumption of self-control, were
-made the daily subject of laudation. Of her husband<span class="pagenum">[231]</span>
-nobody knew much, or cared. Her own name, her
-own position, made her the pivot of the drama, to say
-nothing of all the other causes that had tended to
-obscure Kingston since the catastrophe&mdash;his dazed
-acquiescence in events, his reluctance to enter the
-world of new plans in which Gundred was moving so
-happily. He sank into the background, and was
-alone with his sorrow.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred was busy with designs for the new stone
-wing that should arise in place of the treacherous old
-wooden fire-trap, as soon as the ruins should have been
-cleared away. Kingston could be moved by nothing
-except the hope of finding Isabel’s relics. It was not
-till the third day that his wish was fulfilled. Then,
-buried in the densest chaos of débris, they found what
-remained of the dead. Gundred cried bitterly over
-the tragic discovery, and then, dabbing her eyes,
-began to meditate an epitaph that should compensate
-everyone for all that had been suffered. Kingston
-faced the piteous remains in a stupor. He could not
-have told what it was that he had expected the excavations
-to reveal, but surely nothing so crude as this
-mere wreckage of mortality that came to light. The
-fire had been merciless: a few fragments of flaky bone,
-the blackened crust of a skull, from which the white
-teeth gleamed horribly&mdash;this was all that it had left
-of Isabel. Kingston could never have anticipated the
-raw ugliness of the revelation. It stunned him anew.
-This black, bare globe was dreadful, filled with dreadful
-thoughts and associations, a monstrous burlesque of
-love and things lovely; its eyeless glare, its obtrusive
-grin, were ghastly in their mockery of life’s beauties;
-the glitter of two gold-crowned teeth in the lower jaw
-set the last fine edge on the horror, in their ironical
-reminder of the daily life now destroyed for ever.
-And yet this was Isabel&mdash;the real Isabel&mdash;or, rather,<span class="pagenum">[232]</span>
-it was the earthly emblem of her. That rounded shape
-had actually contained her, had contained the hopes,
-the fears, the love that had gone to make up Isabel.
-And now, where and what was Isabel? Only the outward
-form had suffered; how could the mysterious
-secret passions that had been the framework of her
-personality, how could they have any share in the
-ruin that had fallen on the outward manifestation of
-Isabel? And yet, without that outward manifestation,
-how could she still be Isabel? Dimly, fantastically,
-he tried to figure her in another shape&mdash;as another
-woman, as a man. The task was impossible. To his
-bounded human outlook, the outward form was an
-integral part of the real Isabel. Yet, now he was
-brought face to face with the obvious fact that, while
-the outward form had been reduced to a thing of
-loathing and horror, the real Isabel must still be in
-existence somewhere, incorrupt and incorruptible. It
-was unthinkable that she should have suffered the fate
-of her body. So he must perforce bring himself to
-realize that the thing he loved had had no true connection
-with the hair, the skin, the features that it
-had worn for a while. Hair and skin and features
-were gone; but the beloved remained&mdash;out of sight,
-unrecognisable, remote; yet, for all that, perfect and
-unalienated. Fire could not touch the heart that was
-Isabel, the courage, the loyalty, the devotion that were
-Isabel. They were still alive as ever. But where, in
-what far world, how to be found again, and how to be
-known again when found?</p>
-
-<p>Kingston passed insensibly beyond the cheap
-materialism of orthodoxy. He could not postulate
-an infinite gilded space where Isabel might be eternally
-walking in her habit as she had lived on earth. This
-invincible anthropomorphism, this obstinate survival
-of the savage in us, by which we are all prone to imagine<span class="pagenum">[233]</span>
-the dead as we saw them in life, and familiar for
-ever by their earthly features, had now no hold on
-Kingston. He knew that, whenever we may meet
-our dead again, and wherever that may be, heart will
-call to heart, and soul be known again to soul; but the
-features that we have known and loved, the bones, the
-flesh, the softness, will all have passed long since into
-other forms of life, merged in the huge kaleidoscope of
-the universe. Perhaps, in circumstances less cogent,
-he might have conceived himself as meeting the physical
-Isabel years hence in some glorified state, yet recognisable
-to eyes that had known her on earth. The
-sight of her relics, however, jarred him once and for
-all out of the puny, materialistic dream. The blackened
-hideousness of them forced on his attention the
-irrelevance of all physical forms. For a time they may
-be everything, these forms and features; ultimately
-they go for nothing, pass utterly, are dropped, discarded,
-alike by the love that wore them and by the
-love that worshipped the spirit they clothed. No, he
-had done for ever with the corporeal Isabel. Weaknesses
-and beauties of shape were all destroyed, reduced
-to their native insignificance. Yet Isabel remained.
-But he had lost her; she had passed beyond his knowledge
-into dim places where, if ever she heard the cry
-of his soul far off, she could not make him any answer.
-Now and then, perhaps, she might call to him in return;
-in the whisper of the evening wind, in the song of a bird;
-but never again in the accents he had known, from the
-lips that he had watched; and, even so, she might
-call unceasingly to the hungering ears of his soul, yet
-never be able to make them understand whose voice it
-was that they heard. His deep certainty that she still
-lived made the separation more paradoxical, more
-horrible than ever to Kingston. To know that she
-was there, yet to call in vain; never to see her, never<span class="pagenum">[234]</span>
-to meet her, to be unable, through all his days, to open
-up any means of communication with the thing he
-knew to be still existing,&mdash;this was the ghastliest instance
-of Fate’s irony, giving so much, yet making the
-gift so nugatory.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston began to feel that, after all, the bill sent in
-by the gods had fallen more heavily on him than even
-on Isabel. Isabel had passed through agony to glory.
-But he, he had another agony, longer and more incurable
-than hers, though less poignant; and no glory to compensate,
-at the end, for the gnawing persistence of his
-pain. The grey, sad merit of doing his drudging duty
-by the world for two or three more score of years&mdash;that,
-perhaps, lay before him; but a chilling, colourless
-glory was this, at once harder and less rewarding
-than the sudden flare of martyrdom through which
-Isabel had passed upwards on her way. For upwards
-she had gone, leaving him henceforth alone on the lower
-levels where they had first met. Isabel&mdash;selfish, passionate,
-barbarous Isabel&mdash;in one whirling moment had
-leapt above all the trammels of false desire and fear&mdash;had
-soared into the great heights of selflessness, and
-left far beneath her the outworn husk of her old
-struggling egoism. In that other state where she now
-went radiant, it must be another Isabel that lived and
-moved&mdash;a purified Isabel, stripped of many mean and
-selfish thoughts; an Isabel far nearer than before to
-the ultimate radiance towards which the whole world
-is inevitably tending through ages of slow purification.
-How should he even be able to catch up lost ground
-and come level with this glorified Isabel once more?
-And yet, again, without features&mdash;without the well-remembered
-features of body (without so many of the
-mind’s well-remembered features too)&mdash;how, even if
-chance should be given, was he to recognise the soul
-that had once been one with his own?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[235]</span></p>
-
-<p>She had utterly outstripped him in the race. No
-test of his endurance could equal that test of hers&mdash;no,
-not if he lived decently and honestly all his days,
-doing the best he could with his duty through the
-lagging years that probably lay ahead; why, that
-would be nothing to compare with her ordeal, no such
-swift burning furnace as that through which Isabel
-had passed, and from which she had emerged all gold
-in the sunlight of her future.</p>
-
-<p>Because duty and honour had seemed to call, he had
-sacrificed the thing he loved for the thing he had
-promised to love. Even in cold blood he would still
-have done the thing&mdash;must have done it; any other
-course would have been impossible, a treason, a
-horror. But the sacrifice had been a rending of the
-heart; his whole soul was strained and bleeding from
-the wrench&mdash;bleeding to death, he thought. And,
-while Isabel had won freedom for herself, he had gained
-nothing but a lifetime’s loneliness. Without any
-peddling notions of striking a bargain with the gods,
-he could not but feel the sarcasm of their smile. He
-had sold his life’s happiness&mdash;to buy a lifetime’s unhappiness
-and desolation. He had done what was
-an agony to do, in order to obtain that which would be
-a long agony to endure. So he looked angrily, contemptuously,
-on the chilly duty and self-respect which
-was all that his martyrdom had gained him. He
-hated them for what they had cost, and hated them the
-more for his inmost knowledge that the purchase
-had been inevitable. Life without Isabel! It seemed
-that his soul had never in all the ages imagined the
-possibility of such a thing, yet now he was to envisage
-it through every remaining day and hour of his existence.
-She was gone, rising on strong wings towards
-heaven; he remained on earth, alone for ever, he who
-had so helped her take her flight.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[236]</span></p>
-
-<p>So time dragged by, and insensibly the first agony
-of his loneliness wore down into a calmer sorrow.
-Isabel’s bones were duly buried, and honoured with a
-neat inscription devised by Gundred, and matters
-gradually began to fall into a settled course once more.
-Kingston began to return to ordinary life, and his
-private grief no longer claimed his whole attention.
-Between himself and Gundred a barrier still rose, but
-he grew able to give her his help, and, bit by bit, to
-share once more in the superficial interest of her days.
-She, for her part, went bravely on her way; with more
-courage and on a more difficult way than she or anyone
-else suspected. The new wing was built; the
-new wing lost its raw look of novelty; gradually Isabel
-and her end became to Gundred little more than a
-vague if awful memory. She was not the kind of
-woman whose nerves can be thrown permanently out
-of gear. Self-restraint had been drilled into her blood
-through many generations, and she made imperturbability
-the test-virtue of good breeding. Only once in
-all her life had perfect coolness failed her, and that
-one momentary lapse had been the immediate cause of
-Isabel’s death. For a long time the knowledge of this
-was her secret cross. In her heart of hearts, that last
-awful instant had showed her that Kingston loved
-Isabel, that his care for his wife was mere loyalty.
-The sudden perception, the combination of new terrors
-and responsibilities had been suddenly too much for
-her endurance, already sapped and damaged by hidden
-anxieties and by the shock of the accident. Not
-meaning to be selfish, transported rather with the
-longing to be unselfish and give up her own life that
-her husband might save Isabel’s, she had yet, in the
-crisis, helplessly committed the final selfishness. She
-had killed Isabel. Nothing at first could quite excuse
-her to herself. And she knew that her husband must<span class="pagenum">[237]</span>
-inevitably feel as she did. This was the barrier
-between them&mdash;Gundred’s innocent guilt, and Kingston’s
-answering knowledge that she, and she alone,
-had been the real cause of Isabel’s death. Her weakness
-had cost him the happiness of his life. How
-could he bring himself all at once to look on the poor
-woman with a cordial eye? He could not but bear
-her a grudge&mdash;all the more bitter that he realized how
-unintentional had been the cowardice that had had
-such terrible results. He guessed, in his inmost consciousness,
-that Gundred&mdash;cool, practical Gundred&mdash;would
-have wished to be no less heroic than Isabel,
-would have wished to sacrifice her own life to his happiness;
-and this instinct only aggravated his grudge,
-only intensified in its first vigour his aching, bitter
-grief that the sacrifice had not been achieved or made
-unnecessary by a brief exercise of Gundred’s usual calm.
-Yes, the death of Isabel stood between them for a while
-like a sword of fire.</p>
-
-<p>But Gundred was not a woman to suffer exaggerated
-scruples. Soon she surmounted the shock, and
-Bellowes’ Hypophosphates enabled her to triumph
-over morbid qualms. She reflected on the goodness
-and honesty of her intentions, set remorse in the background,
-and ere long was facing Kingston without any
-more such distressing reserves. He, meanwhile, was
-also growing quieter and more sane in his views. After
-all, no one was guilty. Everyone had acted for the
-best. Nature was not to be blamed. He was too fond
-of his wife to go on condemning her for an instant’s
-lapse. He saw the hysterical injustice of his grudge
-against her, and in time succeeded in overcoming it.</p>
-
-<p>Though neither knew it, Isabel’s stormy intervention
-and terrible exit had tided them over the difficult
-preparatory stage of wedlock. Now that she was
-gone, they gradually settled down together in that<span class="pagenum">[238]</span>
-elastic bond of mutual tolerance which promises so
-well for permanent peace. Neither any longer expected
-too much from the other. Kingston grew to
-acquiesce in Gundred’s limitations, and rejoice in her
-perfections, without feeling fretted by the one or
-satiated by the other. He did not ask her to be an
-intellectual companion, to talk, allure, amuse. She
-was always cool and pretty to look at, always cool and
-pleasant in temper, an admirable hostess, housekeeper,
-and friend, altogether level and satisfying as a companion.
-He had had enough of vain searchings for
-the ideal. Nothing could divorce him from the memory
-of Isabel. He carried it with him from day to day,
-shrined in the depths of his heart, and through the
-placid duties and happinesses of his life never ceased
-to worship that lost part of himself, and yearn for its
-recovery. But on the surface he wore a face of
-perfect contentment, and his marriage with Gundred
-soon subsided into a whole-hearted alliance that was
-put to no strains, that stood the wear and tear of
-intercourse, and was felt to be quite ideal by all that
-had the privilege of watching it. And Gundred, now
-that the storm was over, gave equal allowances to her
-husband. The time was gone by now for high
-emotions and anguish. Her dim jealousy had vanished
-with its cause, and she no longer pined for the perfect
-intimacy that her nature made it impossible for her
-to attain. Instead of being in love with Kingston,
-she was now devoted to him, served him loyally and
-piously, made it her pride to keep him comfortable and
-contented. She divined in what quarter her strength
-lay, and took pains to cultivate all the qualities that
-gave her a hold on her husband. She learned life’s
-lesson, grew accommodating instead of exacting,
-prayed for him instead of preaching at him, and
-pressed upon his acceptance nothing that he did not<span class="pagenum">[239]</span>
-want. The years had worn down the sharp corners
-of their characters in the mill of marriage, until at
-last their harmony was exact and without any
-apparent possibility of discord.</p>
-
-<p>The years glided placidly by, bringing no more
-great or violent developments into the lives of
-Kingston and Gundred. Five years after the fire at
-Brakelond Gundred bore a son, but otherwise little
-occurred to break the monotonous tenor of their days.
-Isabel, by now, was almost forgotten. Only Kingston
-retained his faithful worship of her, cherishing it
-secretly, far down under the loyal surface of his life,
-feeling that justice allowed him at least so much of
-compensation. From day to day he longed for her
-and listened unceasingly for some far-off echo of her
-voice. It seemed almost as if she had never been,
-as if she had left no relic of her existence in the world&mdash;except,
-perhaps, by a quaint freak of fortune, in the
-life of that Mrs. Restormel to whom Gundred had
-taken her on that fateful visit. For Mrs. Restormel,
-overcome with the horror of the news from Brakelond,
-had been so excited that her hour had come upon her
-unawares. Out of due time she had been delivered
-of her child, and a boy had made his appearance in
-the world only twelve hours after Isabel had quitted
-it. However, the Restormel baby prospered and
-grew strong, was christened by the family name of
-Ivor, and passed successfully through the vicissitudes
-of childhood. Otherwise, as Kingston Darnley felt,
-Isabel had come and gone, leaving no other trace in
-the world than that persistent image which her life
-had established in his own soul.</p>
-
-<p>The restless heat of youth had died down in
-Kingston as in Gundred. His son was growing from
-boyhood towards manhood. Unnoticed the years had
-flowed away till almost a quarter of a century had<span class="pagenum">[240]</span>
-rippled by since the passing of Isabel. He himself
-was growing fixed and solid; grey was developing
-itself in his heart as in his hair. Life was very level
-and very comfortable and very pleasant. It was no
-longer stimulating. As for Gundred, the years had
-less effect either on her nature or on her appearance.
-She was one of the women who neither shrink nor swell
-with age. She had not grown fat; she had not grown
-thin. Possibly she had dried up a little. The freshness
-was gone from her features, though not their neat
-prettiness. They had grown perhaps a trifle wooden
-in their clear and rather hard perfection. Tiny lines
-had drawn themselves here and there, especially round
-the mouth. Otherwise her face had changed wonderfully
-little. The alteration was in its spirit rather
-than in its form. It was still strangely young for its
-years, but now it was far more decisive than before,
-older in experience, more matronly, more righteous.
-All her points had intensified, and now she had turned
-from a very pretty bride to a very pretty wife, full
-of responsibilities well borne, of interests, charities,
-benevolence. Her child, her schools, her households,
-her Primrose League gave abundance of occupation to
-her life, and more and more for her growing sense of
-excellence to feed on. From duty she never flinched
-or flagged; the consciousness of such undeviating
-rectitude of practice gave her manner a commanding
-air of self-confidence. Religion, too, tightened its
-hold on her. The better she felt herself becoming, the
-more useful and valuable, not only in herself, but as an
-example of conduct, the more her intimacy with
-Celestial Persons grew. Priggishness, self-conceit, as
-well as all the other grosser mental errors, were very
-far from the well-balanced security of her nature. The
-worst that an enemy could have said would be that
-she was a little slow to admit the possibility of any<span class="pagenum">[241]</span>
-limitations in herself. In earlier years she had
-already been calmly self-confident. Time had only
-justified and reinforced the calm as well as the self-confidence,
-so she went her methodical way, a model
-for all matrons, and had, in the neat garden of her
-life, no disorderly plots, no tangles, no weeds. It was
-a precise arrangement of well-kept beds&mdash;everything
-in its place, and no profitable herb omitted. Her
-husband wandered outside its borders, and roamed
-the shrubberies of freedom. But Gundred found all
-that her nature ever needed to ask in that daily round,
-that common task for which her character had been so
-perfectly fitted by time and fate.</p>
-
-<p>Their life oscillated between London, Ivescar, and
-Brakelond. In London Gundred had her factory girls,
-her hospitals, her educational societies; at Brakelond
-there were the tenants to be looked after, the Castle
-and all its immense organism to be managed, the Tory
-Candidate to be upheld by threats of Gundred’s withdrawal
-of her custom from all who should so far presume
-upon the Ballot as to oppose him. At Ivescar there
-were farms, gardens, parishes to be controlled by
-Gundred’s masterful eye. For a masterful eye it was.
-Kingston slid back into himself, never regained his
-full vital energies, renounced interest in his career,
-and yielded the reins of government into his wife’s
-hands. As her sphere widened, and her power increased,
-Gundred’s unquestionable majesty increased
-proportionately, until the habit of ruling had grown
-so strong in her that no one would have presumed to
-doubt the wisdom or cavil at the commands of that
-tranquil little despot, whose voice was never raised in
-anger, whose orders never admitted the possibility of
-dispute. She arranged the lives of all around her
-with the serenest certainty, and indomitably shepherded
-her army of dependents, factory girls, tenants, and<span class="pagenum">[242]</span>
-servants along the path of righteous happiness. As
-mistress she was a success; as a hostess the same
-strenuous qualities, the same self-sufficiency brought
-her the same success. She could never hold a room
-by her talk, but she could now listen graciously, and
-disguise her complete inattention by smiles. Clever
-people went willingly to her houses in London and
-the country. Her well-dressed, pleasant presence
-made a becoming quiet background for their conversation,
-and, as a housekeeper, she was unsurpassed.
-She never rivalled their efforts, she never failed to make
-them feel both clever and comfortable. A brilliant,
-ambitious woman could never have won the popularity
-that Gundred’s calm indifference achieved. If
-not gay, her set was clever and solid, nor did anyone
-ever discern that it was only her well-bred stupidity
-that had had the gift of gathering it round her by
-sheer force of apparent colourlessness and calm.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred loved the power that her position had
-attained, and, as time went by, Fate also was kind,
-and gave her that full measure of glory which had been
-denied to her earlier years. London had ignored the
-inconspicuous Miss Mortimer, unmarried, and slenderly
-portioned. But London showed itself very amenable
-to the charms of Lady Gundred Darnley, conspicuously
-wealthy, and with Brakelond as well as Ivescar at her
-back. For the old Duke faded away at last, and
-Gundred’s father reigned in his stead&mdash;a mild and
-inoffensive reign, which left all real dominion to be
-exercised by his daughter. For the new Duke, like
-his predecessor, had slid into a gentle imbecility, and
-now lived at Brakelond in contented seclusion;
-Gundred occupied the house as mistress, vigorously
-took up her father’s responsibilities, and was, to all
-intents and purposes, the tenth reigning Duchess of
-March and Brakelond. She never went in to dinner<span class="pagenum">[243]</span>
-after a Marchioness without feeling that such an order
-of precedence was altogether paradoxical and out of
-joint. For was she not herself a Duchess in everything
-but name?</p>
-
-<p>Her constant energies overshadowed her husband
-in the public eye. By the side of his energetic practical
-wife he spent a peaceful existence very much alone,
-very little hampered by the more brilliant cares in
-which Gundred took such pleasure. She could not
-push him into any prominent position; he had lost, in
-an hour, all stir of ambition, and preferred to live on
-in the company of his dreams and memories and
-visions. Their son was his great delight, his most
-constant occupation. Gundred was a trifle too multifariously
-busy, a trifle too excellent to be a perfectly
-sympathetic mother. It was to his father that Jim
-Darnley carried all his more interesting private matters
-for sympathy and discussion. Kingston, as the years
-brought him increasing calm, found his world growing
-narrower, till at last it held only his son and his
-memory of that strange intoxicating passion which had
-ended on so terrific a final note at Brakelond more
-than twenty years ago. His heart still clung to the
-far-off thought of Isabel, and his life was always in
-some mystical sense alert to catch news of her in the
-shadowy lands where she might now be dwelling.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston could never bring himself to feel that Isabel&mdash;the
-real Isabel, as distinct from the body she had
-worn&mdash;was dead; he knew that she still lived, somewhere,
-somehow; he felt it in every fibre of his life;
-every nerve vibrated with the knowledge that somewhere,
-in some remote corner of the world, that lost
-half of himself was still alive. As the years passed his
-ideas, instead of growing fainter, grew keener, more
-fixed, more certain. He lived in mysterious expectation
-of a call, the sound of a voice he should recognise,<span class="pagenum">[244]</span>
-some hint that Isabel had come back, that their paths
-through the world had crossed again. Sooner or later
-the call would come; it was impossible that it should
-not. He and Isabel were so close together; accidents
-like physical death could not be any permanent
-barrier. As the time went by he grew more and more
-sure that the call must come soon. Each day he
-hoped that the sign might be shown to-morrow, and,
-deep in his heart, listened in every conversation for
-the sound of Isabel’s voice, and looked in every face
-for a memory of Isabel’s. Meanwhile he lived out his
-placid life, friends with all, popular, suspected no
-longer of any eccentricities. The gentle, managing
-woman at his side had never any notion that her
-husband was cherishing such fantastic hopes. To
-her he had long been, in reality, a stranger, a stranger
-very dearly loved, and very faithfully looked after,
-but a stranger none the less, as are so many of us to
-those who love us best.</p>
-
-<p>As for Isabel, if Gundred ever recalled her name now,
-it was with a feeling of wrath that grew steadily
-towards hatred. Isabel stood for the one moment in
-which Gundred had faltered, in which she had not
-been sure of herself. Isabel was a painful memory,
-not only as recalling that far-off period of unrest, but
-also as raking back into recollection that one awful
-instant in which Gundred’s courage had failed her&mdash;with
-results so disastrous for poor Isabel. Had the
-results not been quite so disastrous for Isabel, Gundred
-could better perhaps have borne the recollection. As
-it was, they convicted her of inadequacy, and touched
-her secret pride in its tender point. She pushed such
-horrid reflections far back in the most private cupboards
-of her consciousness, and hated Isabel anew whenever
-accident compelled her to open the locked doors and
-turn over those dreadful bones of her one failure.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[245]</span></p>
-
-<p>But Gundred had great skill in ignoring all unwelcome
-topics; it was very rarely that she remembered
-her cousin, and all the dim, remote unpleasantnesses
-that Isabel represented. Her first year of married life
-now loomed down upon her out of the distant past as
-a confused nightmare-mirage of desert wanderings, from
-which her nice tact and the favour of Heaven had
-brought her feet at last out into the Canaan of prosperity,
-conjugal and social. The few brief sorrows
-of the past assumed gigantic proportions in the haze
-of memory, and Isabel was their incarnation. Gundred
-began to realise how directly Heaven had
-intervened to relieve her of her cousin’s threatening
-presence, and, though grateful for the service, it was to
-her credit that she retained humanity enough to think
-the means adopted unnecessarily drastic. This tenderness
-greatly elevated Gundred in her own eyes. She
-remonstrated with Heaven&mdash;not acrimoniously, indeed,
-but with feeling, and devoted many prayers to Isabel’s
-happiness in another world. But she rejoiced over
-Isabel’s removal from this, and nothing could have
-given her serenity a greater shock than any suspicion
-that her husband ever remembered the dead woman
-with tenderness or longing. However, she was protected
-from such perceptions as much by her own
-impermeability to unwelcome truths as by her husband’s
-perpetual skill.</p>
-
-<p>He had not come so far through life, safeguarding
-his wife’s happiness and trying to behave decently,
-only to undo all the good by allowing her now to see
-that he regretted Isabel. The course of years had
-taught him to keep a shut mouth on all his aspirations.
-His mind was apparently thrown wide for
-Gundred, but Isabel’s shrine was hidden in the very
-holiest of holies. As Gundred roamed through his
-mind’s reception-rooms, comfortable and clean and<span class="pagenum">[246]</span>
-neatly decorated, she never had any suspicion of that
-locked room in the very heart of his soul’s dwelling,
-where the memory of Isabel was for ever worshipped.
-Many of us, indeed, there are that keep a secret shrine,
-but few of us suspect its existence in anyone else’s life.
-Gundred was perfectly happy in her monopoly of her
-husband, perfectly confident that she knew every
-corner of his mind. He, for his part, gave thanks for
-the salutary blindness which so often makes life tolerable,
-and continued to make his wife a visitor in the
-heart whose tenant was still the dead woman&mdash;the
-dead woman whom he daily expected to meet again,
-whom every hour brought nearer to the renewal of
-contact with himself. He had done his duty, played
-his part, abundantly paid Gundred all he owed and
-could; affection, respect, loyalty&mdash;of all these he had
-never failed for one moment to give her in good
-measure; the secret impulses of his love could not be
-controlled like their formal manifestations; no one
-could exact it; not one could expect it. His own
-inmost heart still yearned and cried for the return of
-Isabel, that return in which every day made him more
-firmly believe, more immediately look for.</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XIV</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>For twenty years had Kingston Darnley awaited the
-call that was to come to him from Isabel. He had
-made no effort to anticipate, or even to summon, the
-voice that he desired. It seemed to him better, finer,
-more loyal, to do nothing, to sit patient until the
-course of life should bring him again into touch with
-what he had lost. At the appointed moment the voice<span class="pagenum">[247]</span>
-would reach him, and he would know it. But till
-that time should come, his soul revolted against the
-notion of going out into the devious byways of foolishness
-to call up the departed with necromancy or any
-other prevailing fad. For all such illegitimate dealings
-with the third-rate dead he had the strongest contempt;
-it would be a profanity to attempt such proceedings
-in relation to Isabel; wherever she was, she
-must be above those hireling spirits who go out in
-attendance on séances and circles. So for many years
-he maintained his resolution to be patient, and stiffened
-himself in disdain of cheap and common spiritualistic
-methods. He had no idea that people of any sense or
-breeding could find solace in futilities so apparent.
-Gundred was his standard by whom he judged all
-other women’s pretensions; and Gundred had, not so
-much a contempt as a rooted religious horror, immitigable,
-medieval, of magic, palmistry, psychometry&mdash;all
-the many names beneath which we disguise our curious
-longing to pry behind the veil. The very notion of such
-things made Gundred so piously angry that a certain
-reluctant, stifled belief could be guessed to underlie
-and inspire her denunciations. Meanwhile, however,
-her attitude confirmed Kingston in his, and he remained
-quiescent, until at last he came across Mrs.
-Mercer-Laporte.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Mercer-Laporte was dining with Mrs. Mimburn
-when Kingston and Gundred met her, having accepted
-their aunt’s invitation as a solemn but displeasing bi-annual
-duty. Gundred made a point of never evading
-it; Gundred made a point of never enjoying it. Minne-Adélaïde,
-however, with the years, had grown less
-flagrant; but the change made her no less odious than
-before to Gundred, for her love of the illicit had now
-turned from matters of the flesh to the darker mysteries
-of occultism, clairvoyance, ghost-raising. She had<span class="pagenum">[248]</span>
-taken to frequenting circles, to entertaining phantoms,
-to wearing weird, shapeless clothes, and collecting
-round herself a crowd of people famous in the ‘psychic’
-world. And of these Mrs. Mercer-Laporte was the
-fine flower, the most exalted, the most spiritual, the
-choicest in ways and manners.</p>
-
-<p>She was almost obtrusively lady-like, tall and pale,
-and mild and bland, in long trailing draperies of blue.
-She had sweet anæmic features, and a watery eye that
-suffused with tears on the slightest occasion. Her
-hair was thin and sandy, coiled into a knob on the
-top of her narrow head; her mouth was large, lax,
-emotional; her glances soulful and celestial. She
-wore a quantity of mystical-looking chains and necklaces
-that gleamed and jingled as she languished from
-place to place with a certain priestly elegance. She
-fell to Kingston’s lot at dinner, and during the first part
-of the meal he felt himself truly unfortunate. At
-last, however, a chance word caught his attention and
-held it.</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah, my dear Mr. Merrington,’ he heard her saying
-to her other neighbour in high dulcet tones&mdash;‘dear,
-dear Mr. Merrington, believe me, I have often had the
-sweetest converse with my dear dead.’ She sighed, as
-if in rapture, while Mr. Merrington helped himself to
-a cutlet in aspic. ‘They return to those that love
-them, Mr. Merrington,’ she went on, as soon as the
-cutlet had been safely landed. ‘I never feel that my
-dear ones have been lost. They are always near one&mdash;it
-only needs a suitable medium to produce them.
-Oh, of course, I am not talking of silly common
-séances. <em>Those</em> spirits are people one would not wish
-to have anything to do with; but, ah! the sweet and
-holy talks I have had with my own beloved ones in
-suitable surroundings.’</p>
-
-<p>At this point, seeing Mr. Merrington more favourably<span class="pagenum">[249]</span>
-inclined towards the cutlet than the conversation,
-Kingston thought he might be allowed to take part in
-the talk.</p>
-
-<p>‘One always feels,’ he said, ‘that from all accounts
-the spirits that return must be those of exceedingly
-weak-minded people. The messages they make so
-much ado about conveying are invariably such
-rubbish.’</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Mercer-Laporte turned the watery gleam of her
-smile upon him. ‘What is matter?’ she asked hierophantically.
-‘Ah, Mr. Darnley, what does matter
-matter? Believe me, you have been unfortunate in
-the spirits you have met. In the innumerable vibrations
-of the Universe there are rays innumerable that
-permeate the Whole with their blessed dew, and consume
-in their pure radiance all the coarser manifestations
-of matter. You speak without that inward higher
-knowledge which makes us one with the Infinite, in
-those far Universes where the Veil of matter exists no
-longer, and the blessed dead are free and untrammelled
-by any more cares of this vulgar flesh!’ Mrs. Mercer-Laporte
-stopped to take breath, and in an abstraction
-allowed herself to be given an artichoke. Then, while
-she was unconsciously devouring it, Kingston took
-advantage of the pause in her oration to recall her to
-the question that interested him.</p>
-
-<p>‘Then,’ he said, ‘soberly and without mistake, are
-you really sure that we can ever converse with our own
-friends in other states of existence?’</p>
-
-<p>But Mrs. Mercer-Laporte made a profession of irrelevance.
-In her world it was the hall-mark of wisdom,
-the guarantee of occult knowledge to which the profane
-crowd can never attain. She would not have lowered
-her pretensions by sticking to the point.</p>
-
-<p>‘Go,’ she said majestically, waving an inspired fork,
-‘go to dearest Mr. Minch in Albany Road&mdash;49, Albany<span class="pagenum">[250]</span>
-Road, Mr. Darnley; Albany Road in Notting Hill,
-remember. Go to him, Mr. Darnley, and be made
-happy. How all of us, bound down in this sphere of
-matter, how we leap and burn to attain the higher
-levels through which for ever the blessed ones are
-wandering on their angel wings! Ah, rapture, rapture,
-Mr. Darnley! Go, go to Mr. Minch.’</p>
-
-<p>Twaddling and silly as her utterances were, yet the
-woman was obviously sincere. Kingston had never
-met the type before, and now he saw that it was not
-quite so cheap and contemptible as he had always
-imagined. Predisposed by his secret longings, he
-prepared to lend a favourable ear, and the dulled
-sobriety of his middle-aged calm began to break up
-unexpectedly into a St. Martin’s summer of youthful
-enthusiasm.</p>
-
-<p>‘What does Mr. Minch do?’ he asked.</p>
-
-<p>‘Do?’ replied Mrs. Mercer-Laporte. ‘He draws
-the pearl from the Secret Lotus! He will tell you
-your heart’s desire. He will tell you of the sweet
-spirits hovering round you. He can see them all
-easily, and the colour of your own soul’s halo he will
-tell you too. Sometimes it is pink and sometimes it
-is blue. Mine,’ she added with pride, ‘is purple.
-No one but me has a purple halo, Mr. Darnley. But
-every one of us has a colour of our own, and dear
-Mr. Minch sees them distinctly and clearly, and tells
-you all about them, and about the dear spirits as well.
-And then, if there is anyone among them, anyone in
-the precious company of the invisible with whom you
-particularly wish to enter into sweet converse, Mr.
-Darnley, you might go on to Mr. Muddock at Hindhead.
-Mention my name, though, just to show that you
-have a reverend and faithful spirit. Mr. Muddock has
-<em>the</em> most marvellous powers. He is more than a mere
-psychometrist. He can actually make the dead<span class="pagenum">[251]</span>
-resume the garb of flesh, Mr. Darnley!’ perorated Mrs.
-Mercer-Laporte with awful solemnity.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly Kingston’s resolve of twenty years weakened
-and broke. The long odds were that this talk of
-spirits was the mere nonsense he had always believed
-it. But still there could be no possible harm in trying
-to find out. And if, in sober truth, Isabel were really
-hovering on the edge of the other world, perpetually
-longing to enter into communication with him again,
-how tragically foolish to neglect the blessed opportunity
-because of any stupid materialistic qualm of
-incredulity. After all, there might be something in it.
-In the avowed belief that there was nothing, and the
-secret trust that there might be a great deal, he
-resolved that he would go and see the wonderful
-Mr. Minch. He intimated his decision to Mrs. Mercer-Laporte.
-The sibyl showed much mystic rapture.</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah,’ she said, ‘sweet and holy, sweet and holy.
-The blessed ones are waiting for you, Mr. Darnley, I
-feel convinced of it. I almost think I see one near you
-now, but alas, I have not quite reached the percipient
-plane as yet. But do go to dear Mr. Minch, and he
-will tell you her name and all about her, and what she
-wants to say to you. I have had the strangest, most
-marvellous experiences myself. My own sweet sister
-Margaret is always hovering round me, Mr. Darnley.
-She died when she was only six days old, and grew
-up in the spirit world. I recognised her distinctly, as
-soon as dear Mr. Minch described her.... Golden
-hair, he said, tall, blue eyes, high forehead, graceful
-figure. Then, to make <em>quite</em> sure, I said, “Does your
-name begin with M?” and Mr. Minch asked the sweet
-spirit, and told me it said “Yes.” Then, of course, I
-knew. “Margaret,” I cried&mdash;just like that&mdash;“is it
-Margaret?” And it <em>was</em> Margaret; she had come to
-tell me that I must go on bravely, and everything<span class="pagenum">[252]</span>
-would come right. Now, wasn’t that a holy, happy
-experience, Mr. Darnley? Oh yes, you must go to
-Mr. Minch. Go to-morrow night at eight. He has a
-public circle then, and crowds of dear poor creatures
-go to him for help and comfort, and he heals them all&mdash;not
-only people like you and me, Mr. Darnley, but all
-the poor sweet cooks and housemaids.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston was not quite so strongly impressed as
-Mrs. Mercer-Laporte had hoped by the reappearance
-of the somewhat immature sister Margaret. Yet,
-though he derided himself for such weakness, he could
-no longer resist the absurd temptation to put things to
-the test. He was quite fixed in his determination to
-see Mr. Minch, if it were only to laugh at him; and
-filled up the rest of the evening by cross-examining
-Mrs. Mercer-Laporte on all the other pink and purple
-spirits by whom she was apparently accompanied
-wherever she went. Gundred, who looked on the entertainment
-as a tiresome duty, calling only for one’s
-second-best gown, was surprised to see her husband
-so much amused and interested. When he deliberately
-went across the room after dinner to sit once more by
-Mrs. Mercer-Laporte, Gundred was quite startled by
-such a display of enthusiasm. However, she quickly
-noticed that Mrs. Mercer-Laporte had pink eyelids
-and a long bony neck; her astonishment subsided into
-contemptuous tolerance, and then passed into a pious
-pity. She thought how nice it was of Kingston to be
-so unnecessarily kind to the poor thing, perhaps the
-weirdest of Aunt Minna’s weird collection of guests.
-Gundred called back her attention to her own
-behaviour, and set herself once more to giving an
-example of nice deportment to this mob of people
-who clearly had no notion what decent clothes or
-manners might mean.</p>
-
-<p>The least touch destroys a delicate balance, and<span class="pagenum">[253]</span>
-Mrs. Mercer-Laporte’s rather watery personality it
-was that had the power, after so many years of hesitation,
-to decide Kingston upon taking his long-delayed
-plunge into spiritualistic circles. Little as he might
-think of Mrs. Mercer-Laporte’s own rhapsodies, they
-forced upon his mind the reflection that many good
-and presumably prudent people derive much comfort
-and sustenance from occult manifestations. With all
-allowances made for credulity, hysteria, and affectation
-there yet, it seemed to him suddenly, must
-remain an irreducible minimum of fact about the
-ghostly communications which make the consolation
-of so many sad, lonely lives. The laws that govern
-life and death are, when all is said and done, so dimly,
-so doubtfully known and guessed, that bold must be
-he who dares, on the supposition of impossibility, to
-deny continued existence and continued volition to
-the blessed dead. Who was to take it upon himself to
-say confidently that they cannot return, for reasons
-that we know not, under natural laws of which we have
-no more suspicion than had the eighteenth century of
-those that give us electricity? Seeing the incalculable
-nature of the soul, the impalpable, mysterious substance
-of its being, the probabilities that physical death only
-give it freedom were, on the whole, very great and
-worthy of respect. Why obstinately mock, for the
-sake of a few frauds and charlatans, at a deep belief,
-as old as humanity, which has been held, and is held
-to this day, by many of the wisest and holiest among
-men? What claim to wisdom has the stiff-necked
-attitude of mere negation, based on nothing but
-ignorant prejudice and the sceptic’s baseless notion of
-what may or may not be possible to a thing of whose
-being, and the laws that control it, he knows no more
-than any enthusiastic believer in apparitions? Why
-not, then, take the braver, more honest course of inquiring<span class="pagenum">[254]</span>
-for one’s self into the circumstances of the spirit-world?
-In any case the inquiry could do no harm;
-either way, one would gain certainty, instead of the
-present dreary and unprofitable doubt. And if
-Isabel’s purified soul were, after all, by some merciful
-freak of creation, still roaming the world in her lover’s
-neighbourhood, how utterly, childishly silly not to
-ascertain the fact and profit by it, in place of continuing
-deaf to that dear desired voice, out of puerile prejudice
-and a preconceived notion that such things could not
-be. Mrs. Mercer-Laporte’s enthusiasm had the effect
-of forcing all these arguments on Kingston with new
-and irresistible force. He could hold out no longer;
-his loneliness could afford to neglect no chances of
-relief; he would try what consolation the Other World
-had to offer.</p>
-
-<p>At the very notion fresh interest in life began to
-animate him. Without any weak cowardice or giving
-way he had yet, since the tragedy of twenty years
-before, lost any personal interest in every-day life,
-its bustle and ambitions. That career into which his
-mother had hoped so vaguely to push him and support
-him by the influence of March and Brakelond, had long
-since faded from the foreground of his mind. When
-at last Lady Adela gently and imperceptibly passed
-away, she left her son fairly settled into the position of
-his wife’s husband. Concentrated on thoughts of that
-beautiful past, he never again plucked up any enthusiasm
-for the present or the future. It was not
-that he was afraid of them, that he had shrinkings
-or morbid tenderness; they simply failed to interest
-him any more. He retired into that small secret life
-of his own, and the world gradually came to look on
-Mr. Darnley as the pleasant but unnoticeable appendage
-to Lady Gundred. Comfortably vast as was his
-income, Brakelond, that insatiable old monster,<span class="pagenum">[255]</span>
-swallowed it all and gave no thanks. Despite his
-money, therefore, Kingston soon unconsciously held
-that subtly meek and subordinate place of a man
-whose wife it is that owns the estate and the money.
-He had no wish to assert himself, and even at Ivescar
-it was Gundred who now held the reins, and concentrated
-the general gaze upon herself. Now and then
-she deplored to their friends her husband’s apathy
-towards the Primrose League, but, on the whole, she
-had everybody’s agreement when she talked of him as
-‘perfectly happy in his library among his books.’
-“To be perfectly happy in one’s library among one’s
-books” is the blessed euphemistic privilege of the obscure
-rich, and Kingston acquiesced gratefully in his friends’
-attitude towards his remoteness from their life and
-the empty clamours that seemed to fill it. Accustomed
-long since to his own quiet, inconspicuous path, it was
-with a kindling of vitality, then, that he contemplated
-sallying forth into the spirit world. It was a stirring
-of his old self, an emancipation from the obsession of
-Gundred’s majesty. Half ashamed, half excited, half
-contemptuous did Kingston set out to enter into
-relations with the dead.</p>
-
-<p>Following Mrs. Mercer-Laporte’s recommendation
-he began with Mr. Muddock. But Mr. Muddock
-turned out to be an illiterate and frowzy prophet, too
-clearly calculated for the need of ‘poor sweet cooks
-and housemaids’ to be of much assistance in the
-quests of better-educated people. However, after a
-brief spasm of disgust, Kingston decided to continue
-his enterprise, and gradually found himself involved
-in the higher spiritualistic circles. At first he had to
-be content with the ordinary hireling mediums, but as
-time went by, and his appetite became whetted by the
-glimpses of apparent truth that he gathered here and
-there amid thick and more or less palpable frauds, he<span class="pagenum">[256]</span>
-began to be aware that there existed, behind the common
-world of second-rate believers, a sort of upper world
-in touch with the Beyond. To anyone with money
-the lower sphere of materialization was open, and the
-meetings of Mr. Muddock and his confrères were
-nightly crowded with the lonely and the bereaved,
-eager for a moment’s conversation with the lost
-beloved. But these interviews never satisfied Kingston,
-and, as he began to discern the higher possibilities
-behind, he secretly strained every nerve to enter that
-set of his own people which held, or proclaimed that
-it held, genuine and constant communication with
-those ‘that have passed over.’ The task was not
-altogether easy, and had to be cautiously ensued, for
-fear of waking the suspicions and the disapproval of
-Gundred. Kingston found himself despising himself
-for the cowardice of such a course, until he realized
-that what he was aiming at involved no sort of real
-disloyalty to Gundred, and that any concealment he
-might practise was in the interest of her peace and
-happiness. Satisfying himself obstinately with this
-rather jejune and sophistical excuse, he pursued his
-way, and at last found himself admitted to the upper
-section of the spiritualistic world.</p>
-
-<p>Here at last he met men and women of his own sort,
-men and women of birth and breeding and intelligence,
-whom no cheap claptrap could convince, no vulgar
-jugglery deceive. And yet these people, keen and
-apparently sensible, believed passionately and whole-heartedly
-in the manifestations they evoked. Their
-lives were ruled by ghostly advice elicited at their
-meetings, their desolation consoled by almost daily
-conversation with their beloved dead, their doubts
-turned into certainty on all points by revelations from
-beyond the grave. They claimed impartiality, and
-cultivated pure enthusiasm. And if the tragedy of<span class="pagenum">[257]</span>
-the pitiful, unholy quest had been bitterly heart-rending
-among the illiterate and credulous crowds that
-haunted Mr. Muddock’s circles, and sustained themselves
-with ‘demonstrations’ and aitchless conversation
-with the inferior dead, far more so was it among
-these people of Kingston’s own world, where devotion
-served as conviction, and the anguish of longing was
-forced to masquerade as its own fulfilment. It was
-indeed a poignant, tragic life in which Kingston now
-found himself. Men and women, one and all, were
-gaunt and haggard of soul with their insatiable hunger.
-Some of them seemed philosophers, convinced that they
-were following on the track of a clear truth; others
-were manifest saints, gentle sacred souls, hopefully
-worshipping a Holy Grail of their own desire’s
-invention. Exalted, inspired, rarefied, filled with an
-apparent serenity of devotion, their company gave
-an impression of strange unearthly happiness, until the
-keen edge of their underlying agony was seen piercing
-through the superficial calm of their lives. The whole
-air round them was poisoned by loss and the inability
-to bear it. Their souls lived in a fierce, unacknowledged
-groping after the lost things they had loved.
-Men for vanished friends, women for lovers and
-children long dead&mdash;each had some dreadful secret
-craving, some inner infidelity towards the Eternal Mercy
-of life. There were old polished men of their world,
-strong intellects sapped, and keen eyes dulled in one
-direction only, by some hoarded passion never to be
-parted with, not even for the sake of happiness and
-peace and wisdom. There were beautiful white-haired
-women, sweet and gracious with much sorrow
-in bygone years, tired with recollections, and divorced
-from the heats of life, yet still held in a bitter bondage,
-drugging their pain with this piteous, passionate cult
-for the burden they had lost. Life and death had<span class="pagenum">[258]</span>
-combined to offer them calm and release from torment;
-but they would have none of any such release&mdash;clung
-to the ghost of their dead torment, and redoubled it by
-the zest with which they told themselves that they
-soothed it.</p>
-
-<p>Into this world of insatiable emotion Kingston
-threw himself heartily&mdash;hopefully, too, seeing that the
-sincerity of his fellow-worshippers left no room for
-doubt, and that their enthusiastic belief seemed to give
-fair hope that it was justified. But soon he saw the
-fearful tragedy that lay beneath their enthusiasm,
-and realized how determined an illusion it was that
-they cultivated. He, too, no less than they, yearned
-and groped, but his nature, cooler, perhaps, than
-theirs, could not accept for pure gold of revelation the
-base ore of hysteria and fanaticism that they unwittingly
-but obstinately imposed upon themselves for
-truth. Their spirit-voices were nothing but the frustrate
-echoes of their own cries, cast back to them across the
-great gulf that separates the ignorant, unfaithful living
-from the free, glorified dead. Sounds and sights
-floated thick in their midst&mdash;honest sounds and sights,
-born of no trickery, indeed, but&mdash;though none dared to
-own it&mdash;engendered by the frantic zeal of the searchers
-themselves. They and none other supplied the words
-to which they listened in such ecstatic awe; they and
-none other evoked those vanished tones, those pale
-reflections of the well-beloved in which they took such
-comfort. Their very sincerity, their very rapture,
-only made more terrible the delusion on which they
-sustained themselves, the emptiness of the phantoms
-with which they tried to fill the lives that their own
-distrust had left to them desolate. Only want of faith
-can make death a reality. These sad, starving people,
-having made reality out of the shadow, now found
-themselves forced to create new shadows to exorcise<span class="pagenum">[259]</span>
-the old. They had allowed themselves to think that
-death had power to sunder their loves, and now, after
-that first self-deception, the need was fierce upon them
-to invent another to nullify the first, and wipe out that
-death to which only their weak terrors had given an
-objective existence. From the beginning to the end
-they were altogether tragic&mdash;in their sorrow, in its
-cause, and in the means they took to heal it. Kingston,
-as the meetings passed, found himself more and more
-aloof from their consolations, more and more cold
-towards the manifestations that made the comfort of
-their poor struggling days.</p>
-
-<p>It was not here, not amid these faint voices crying
-what the listeners wanted to hear, not amid these dim
-ghosts of bygone passion that his own still living,
-throbbing passion could hope to come once more into
-contact with Isabel. He pitied his fellow-seekers,
-but he stood aloof from them. Sorrowing for the intensity
-of their false joy, he could gain from their cult
-no sustenance for his own hunger. His hunger was
-not as theirs, and the beloved fallacies that supported
-them could give no nourishment to him. He saw
-that their quest was false, their methods a mere sop
-flung to their own desire. Gradually Kingston withdrew
-himself from their company. The spiritualistic
-world, after all, held no solid help or conviction for him.
-He passed away into everyday life again, and went
-back to his quiet expectancy at Gundred’s side. Sooner
-or later the wonderful thing would happen, sooner or
-later the holy mystery of separation stand revealed,
-but no unlawful human methods could avail to hurry
-the processes of God. They of little faith might make
-for themselves a world of phantoms in which to worship
-a phantom; he must persevere alone, waiting patiently
-for what was to come. Gladly, if he could, would he
-have found satisfaction in the hollow solace invented<span class="pagenum">[260]</span>
-by his fellow-seekers, but as his nature, as his more
-exalted perceptions, could not allow him any such
-makeshift consolation, the sooner he quitted so unwholesome
-and unsatisfactory a life the better. At
-least, he had the comfort of feeling that he had left no
-method untried, had not neglected any possible chance.
-But the alley into which he had strayed had been found
-blind, a short cut towards the Great Nowhere. He
-must return into the broad, beaten track of life, and
-go steadfastly forward, in confidence that somewhere,
-some day, he should inevitably meet again his lost
-companion.</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XV</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>‘Dear Jim,’ said Gundred, ‘how happy he sounds!’
-She folded up her son’s letter again, and put it deftly
-back into its envelope. He wrote to her once a week
-without fail from school, a neat, colourless letter,
-breathing duty and regard. To his father the boy
-wrote as the mood took him&mdash;careless, untidy epistles
-about the topic of the moment. ‘Another cup of tea,
-dear?’ she asked her husband, smiling at him across
-the table.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston looked at her with the approval that her
-appearance never failed to challenge. A crystalline
-perfection always hung about her, a clear, precise
-faultlessness that was always cool and fresh and
-pleasant. Age could do nothing against her. This
-morning, as for a thousand mornings past, as she would
-be for a thousand mornings to come, she was tranquil,
-exquisite, satisfactory. If she did not actually sparkle,
-she was always in a serene glow of elegance, her clear
-golden hair unalterably waved and curled, her garments
-refreshing in their unobtrusive charm of cut and make,<span class="pagenum">[261]</span>
-her hands well-kept, white, delightful, flickering here
-and there from tea-caddy to cream-jug with a charming,
-housewifely preoccupation.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston, with a vivid recollection of the sibylline
-untidiness that haunted spiritualistic circles, brought a
-new appreciation to bear on Gundred’s unchangeably
-well-bred calm of look and dress and manner. She
-was very restful to be with. Pure milk, after all,
-certainly was better, in the long run, than intoxicants.</p>
-
-<p>‘Thanks, dear,’ he replied, accepting a cup of tea
-into which Gundred had dutifully poured the cream
-that he still hated as much as ever, but which twenty
-years’ experience of her immitigable firmness had
-taught him to accept without vain murmurings. ‘I
-think I will run down and see Jim one of these days.
-You come with me?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Well,’ replied his wife, ‘I have such a terrible
-lot to crowd into these last few days before we leave
-town. The end of the Season is such a rush, and one
-does dislike to leave anything undone. Besides, you
-know, I think it is a pity to unsettle Jim, and I really
-do rather dread the motor at this time of year. The
-dust is too truly horrible. Nothing can keep it out of
-one’s hair, try as one will; and then poor Morgan
-has such trouble getting it out again; and one
-ought always to consider the servants when one can&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Very well, then; I will go down alone, to-day or
-to-morrow. Haven’t you got some sort of show on here
-this afternoon?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes, dear, a Mothers’ Educational Union Meeting.
-They wanted to hold it here, and one feels that one
-should do what one can for others while one is alive.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, I don’t suppose I shall be missed or mourned,’
-said her husband; ‘so I shall just slip quietly off, and
-take the motor down to Eton. You can receive the<span class="pagenum">[262]</span>
-mothers, and so on, without me to help you. And I
-can have a good time with Jim.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Dear little Jim!’ said Gundred, smiling affectionately.
-Her son was fifteen, and rather unusually
-large for his age. But no size, no age could ever have
-cured his mother of talking and thinking of him as a
-little child. She had all the good woman’s utter,
-tragic inability to understand that her child becomes
-a boy and a man. Her Jim was still a baby. Of the
-real Jim she knew nothing whatever. Their relations
-were sometimes strained already, and in the future the
-strain would become fiercer and more unceasing,
-through Gundred’s idea of ruling the adolescent Jim
-by ideas that applied to the only Jim she had ever
-known&mdash;the kilted, white-frocked creature of the
-nursery, who had passed out of existence at least ten
-years ago.</p>
-
-<p>‘Then that is settled,’ replied Kingston happily.
-‘I’ll take Jim your love, Gundred. Anything else to
-send him?’</p>
-
-<p>The father was always giving the boy presents.
-Anything that took his fancy he had a habit of buying
-for Jim. Gundred, no less affectionate, considered
-such indulgence spoiling and undesirable. She did
-not think it quite suitable to be so lavish, and her
-generosity was restricted to the orthodox seasons of
-Christmas and the birthday.</p>
-
-<p>‘My love, of course, dear,’ she replied, with a
-momentary primming of her lips; ‘and tell him how
-much I hope that he reads the little book I gave him
-on his birthday. Say that he will find it the greatest
-help. I myself have got the most wonderful comfort
-from it; the prayers seem to suit one so perfectly,
-and the hymns for each day are so uplifting and
-helpful.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston, secretly unsympathetic towards Gundred’s<span class="pagenum">[263]</span>
-habit of collecting small devotional works and showering
-them round upon her near relations, glided hastily
-away from the topic. Sincerely pious and devout
-herself, she made the common mistake of wishing to
-impose her own precise form of devotion on everyone
-else, and could not conceive it possible that any right-minded
-person should not derive as great a benefit
-as she did from her little pietistic volumes. To her
-son, in particular, she talked religion with that terrible
-intimate candour which the good woman feels to be
-so natural, and the normal man feels to be so horribly
-irreverent. From his mother, then, the boy shrank
-and hid himself, outraged in all his most intimate
-feelings of decency by the freedom with which she
-discoursed to him of God and Heaven and Good, and
-half a hundred secret, private matters that nothing
-would have induced him to discuss even with his
-dearest friend.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston ordered the motor, glad of an opportunity
-for escaping Gundred’s evangelistic activities. She
-herself made a faint pretence at deploring her inability
-to accompany him.</p>
-
-<p>‘I should so like to,’ she said; ‘but the mothers
-will expect me to be here, of course, to receive them.
-It would be so shocking to play them false. And the
-movement is such a good one. I never feel that one is
-in the world solely for one’s own pleasure. One
-belongs to others, and one’s highest joy should always
-be to do one’s duty by one’s neighbours&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>‘It is rather a nuisance at times, don’t you find?’
-asked Kingston, on whom his wife’s habit of uttering
-edifying little speeches on all occasions never failed
-to have a slightly irritating effect, even after twenty
-years’ experience of them.</p>
-
-<p>‘But one should not consider one’s self,’ answered
-Gundred correctly. ‘It is a terrible thing to be selfish.<span class="pagenum">[264]</span>
-Besides, if God has given one special advantages, one
-should be glad to make use of them to make others
-happy. Houses and position and things like that are
-only precious because one can turn them to the use of
-others&mdash;yes? I should never like to think that I
-found my factory-girls and my mothers and my curates
-a nuisance. I look upon them as part of my duty in
-life. And duty is the truest pleasure.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston felt as if he were in a dream. How
-different was this atmosphere of tranquil platitude from
-the feverish, restless world of longing in which he had
-lately been so busy. His mind staggered at the thought
-that this cool, deliberate Gundred could be of one
-blood with the harried, lonely creatures who frequented
-the spirit-raiser’s in desperate craving for lost loves
-and silenced voices. What kin was he himself&mdash;he
-with his secret cult, his deep secret ambition, to this
-placid woman, so secure in the intimacy of her God, so
-sedate in the conscious enjoyment of all her duties?
-It was a grinning irony that held them linked; in actual
-fact, they were mere acquaintances, knowing nothing
-of each other, sympathizing in nothing, bound only
-by the soft amicable bonds of custom and convenience.</p>
-
-<p>Breakfast was over. Gundred gathered up her
-letters in a tiny sheaf and rose. ‘I must go and see
-Motherley,’ she said, ‘about the arrangements for this
-afternoon. I think one ought to have iced coffee for
-the poor things in this hot weather, don’t you?’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred could never, in any possible circumstances
-of rank or condition, have been induced to leave the
-reins of household management in the hands of those
-who were paid to hold them. She was one of the many
-women who are housekeepers from their birth. The
-exercise of diligent economy was very dear to her heart,
-and she made a merit of indulging herself in it, by<span class="pagenum">[265]</span>
-insisting that she attended to such matters only from
-a strong sense of duty. Kingston gave due weight to
-her question as he pondered it.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ he said very gravely, ‘on the whole I really
-think you might allow the mothers iced coffee.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I am so glad you think so, dear,’ responded Gundred
-with an air of relief. ‘One is so glad if ever one can
-give the poor things some little extra pleasure. It is
-quite one of the compensations of one’s life&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>‘But, then&mdash;these mothers&mdash;are they paupers, or
-what?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, dear me, no! They are the most excellent
-creatures&mdash;quite rich and comfortable, most of them.
-They generally live in Kensington or Campden Hill,
-and they are all so much interested in children and
-education. But, of course, they don’t often get inside
-a house like this, so that one is anxious to do whatever
-one can to make it a delightful memory for them. I
-have got myself such a charming frock, dear, to give
-them another little enjoyment to remember afterwards.
-Really, you know, it soon comes quite easy to think
-of others and forget one’s self. One makes a habit of
-unselfishness&mdash;at least, one must try to, in one’s own
-small way&mdash;and God is very good about helping them
-who try to help themselves.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston did not take the trouble to endorse this
-sentiment, and Gundred did not wait for him to do so.
-She knew it was too sound to need any such endorsement&mdash;so
-obvious, indeed, that she had only thrown
-it out in obedience to her unvarying custom of trying
-to improve her husband whenever she could.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well,’ she went on, after a pause, ‘I must really
-go about my duties now. One has so much to do. I
-don’t suppose I shall see you again, dear, shall I, before
-you start? I hope you will have a delightful day.
-Do take care of your poor eyes. And give my love to<span class="pagenum">[266]</span>
-Jim, and tell him always to change his boots when he
-comes in, and be sure to read his Chapter morning and
-evening; he will find it such a help. And say how we
-are looking forward to the holidays&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston promised vaguely to give his wife’s messages.
-Then Gundred passed on her way to interview
-the cook, and complete arrangements for the effectual
-dazzling of the mothers from Kensington and Campden
-Hill. Left alone, her husband took refuge for a
-moment or two in dreamland. This life of his, orderly,
-decorous, colourless, with Gundred superintending its
-details, and seeing that its food was good and hot&mdash;this
-life of his was not a real life at all. It was a vapour,
-a phantom, having no part in the true life of his soul.
-His body moved on its appointed course from breakfast
-through the day to bed, bandying banalities with
-its tongue, looking out on Gundred’s world with amiable
-eyes; but he himself, the real man, belonged to a remoter
-world. In strange, far-off lands he roamed,
-seeking that which for a time was lost; the gorgeous,
-sombre mysteries of life and death were about his head,
-shedding a glamour of ecstasy on the secret byway
-that he was treading. How Gundred would stare,
-what pious sillinesses would she not utter, if for a
-moment&mdash;if only for the smallest fragment of a moment&mdash;her
-eyes could be unsealed to see the magic tangle
-of visions in which her husband was wandering, all
-the while that his earthly gaze was fixed on her, his
-earthly ears politely attentive to her talk, his earthly
-stomach contentedly absorbing the food that she made
-it her daily duty to provide. Dressed, brushed,
-washed, and fed, the simulacrum of her husband
-passed through the world at her side, but the thing
-she walked with was a changeling; the man she loved
-and looked after was the mere shell of a stranger&mdash;of
-a stranger whose eyes were fixed on the immensities,<span class="pagenum">[267]</span>
-whose ears received her words as jargon in a
-tongue unknown, whose whole life was passed in that
-world of reality whose shadows now and then are cast
-across this life of ours that we call real, in the glimpses
-of what we call a dream. Little, visible, tangible,
-clear was the life that Gundred thought the true;
-vast, illimitable, without end or beginning was that
-enormous infinite where the soul of Kingston ceaselessly
-went seeking for the lost.</p>
-
-<p>‘By kind permission of the Lady Gundred Darnley,
-the Mothers’ Educational Union&mdash;called for short the
-M.E.U.&mdash;held a most enjoyable meeting at 53, Grosvenor
-Street. The hostess’s demeanour gave great
-satisfaction, and her gown was held to shed real lustre
-on the occasion. It was a wonderful arrangement in
-blue and mauve, and no other woman of her age could
-have worn it; but the delicacy of her colouring, the
-serene charm of her features, were only enhanced by it,
-and the mothers from Kensington and Campden Hill
-spent a happy hour in devising means of copying its
-most successful features. Meanwhile, an American
-spinster, of world-wide renown but unappetizing appearance,
-gave an interesting and exhaustive address
-on the proper upbringing of children; and a Bishop’s
-wife in voluminous black brocade, with a bonnet built
-of bluebells, brought up the rear with an account of
-how her own darlings had been triumphantly reared on
-a system of perfect freedom tempered by whippings
-administered officially by each other. A discussion
-followed, in which old maids and childless widows
-vied with the mothers in expounding the secrets of
-education. The Lady Gundred Darnley herself contributed
-a brief but very pleasant little allocution, in
-which she insisted on the efficacy of prayer, and attributed
-her own success in dealing with her dear little
-son entirely to her inculcation of sound religious principles.’<span class="pagenum">[268]</span>
-Gundred was at the height of her glory; her
-graciousness was delightful, her condescension so profound
-that neither she herself nor anyone else could
-guess that it was condescension at all. When the
-meeting had concluded in a volley of mutual compliments,
-and a unanimous vote of thanks had been
-offered to their charming hostess, she shepherded
-the mothers down to food with the sublimest cordiality.
-The iced coffee flowed like milk and honey; tea was
-nothing accounted of, any more than was silver in
-King Solomon’s time. Eclairs, sandwiches, and buns
-disappeared like snow in summer; of every dish
-Gundred felt a calm confidence that each mother
-present was eyeing it carefully with a view to imitation.
-Of all life’s duties, Gundred perhaps best loved that of
-setting an example to others. She felt that the Creator
-had specially ordained her for that end, and was never
-so completely and conscientiously happy as when
-possessed with the certainty that she was duly fulfilling
-His design.</p>
-
-<p>But at last the meeting began to melt away, and
-Gundred was left alone in the large deserted room.
-Up and down among the little gilded chairs she roamed,
-pondering with complacency the success of the entertainment.
-In the course of her wanderings, she came
-into view of the great mirror that filled the space
-between two of the windows. She stood for a while
-in front of it, contemplating the perfections that it
-reflected. From the crown of her head to the glistering
-point of her shoe, she, ‘the Lady Gundred Darnley,’
-the fastidious critic, had not the smallest fault to find.
-Her gown was an inspiration, and its fit an earthly
-manifestation of the ideal.</p>
-
-<p>‘Really,’ said Gundred to herself, ‘God has been
-very good to me indeed. I declare I do not look a
-day over twenty-five. No one would ever believe<span class="pagenum">[269]</span>
-that I am forty. That is what comes of having a
-good conscience, and being a little careful what one
-eats. And it is not many women of five-and-twenty
-that could dare to wear a colour like this. My figure
-is positively girlish, and my complexion&mdash;well, one
-does not often see a better one, even among quite young
-girls.’ But at this point her meditations were interrupted
-by the sound of a ringing at the bell. She
-concluded that it must be some belated mother, who
-would be politely turned away by the butler. So she
-gave no further attention to the sound, but still stood
-admiring what the mirror revealed, with both hands
-caressing the beautiful lines of her waist. In this
-pleasant employment, however, she was startled by a
-discreet cough behind her. She wheeled hastily
-round.</p>
-
-<p>A small elderly gentleman was approaching, ushered
-by the butler. Gundred summoned her presence of
-mind to confront this unexpected apparition. The
-butler, meanwhile, was murmuring an unintelligible
-name. The visitor peered inquiringly up at her. For
-he was a very minute personage, smaller even than his
-hostess; he had an air of patient antiquity, and his
-thin neck poked forward till he had the look of a very
-shrunken, very wise, very benevolent little old tortoise.
-He was dressed, too, in the quaintest clothes,
-that somehow suggested that they had been bought
-ready-made, and were mysteriously, strangely inappropriate,
-seeming as if their present wearer were
-accustomed to quite different garb, and only wore
-these clumsy reach-me-downs in deference to European
-convention. He conveyed an impression of feeling
-fettered and uncomfortable in them, of longing for
-freer and more flowing vestments.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred assumed a smile of gracious interrogation.</p>
-
-<p>‘Mr. &mdash;&mdash;?’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[270]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘You are Mr. Darnley’s wife?’ inquired the new-comer.</p>
-
-<p>‘I am Lady Gundred Darnley, yes. What can
-I&mdash;&mdash;?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I am your husband’s uncle,’ replied the stranger.
-‘I have been in Japan for many years.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred instantly flashed into recognition, and
-warmed into a less defensive smile. She tried vehemently
-to remember all she had heard of this semi-mythical
-uncle thus abruptly brought back into the
-land of the living.</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah yes,’ she answered genially, ‘you have been
-there for a very long time, I know. I quite envy
-you. Such a wonderful little people, the Japanese&mdash;yes?
-And have you come to settle down at home
-again?’</p>
-
-<p>‘My home,’ answered the little old man, in accents
-that betrayed a certain loss of familiarity with the
-English language&mdash;‘my home is still out there.’ He
-waved his hand vaguely, indicating the East. ‘But
-I was brought over for some business. I had not
-meant to come here. My kinship with your husband
-has been broken by fifty years of time, and twelve
-thousand miles of space. Why should I think he could
-be anything but a stranger? But lately I have heard
-him calling. There is something that he wants, something
-that he wishes to know. I have heard him
-incessantly calling. And so I came. Perhaps I can
-give him an answer. Is he here, your husband?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Something that my husband wants, something
-that he has been asking for?’ repeated Gundred in a
-stupor. Kingston had no wishes that were not also
-hers. His whole life, she knew, was an open book
-to her. And, even if it had not been, how could this
-strange apparition have heard her husband’s voice?
-For one wild moment Gundred imagined her husband<span class="pagenum">[271]</span>
-baying his ambitions to the moon, or ululating to
-the universe from the middle of Grosvenor Square.
-Otherwise how could his voice have penetrated to the
-ears of this mysterious old man?</p>
-
-<p>The visitor answered her unspoken thought.</p>
-
-<p>‘A wish,’ he said, speaking slowly in his faint, sad
-tones&mdash;‘a wish has a life of its own. It has wings,
-and flies to all the four quarters of the air. It only
-needs the opened eye to see it in its flight, the opened
-ear to receive it. I have seen many strange things in
-the air. I am a very old man now. And I heard your
-husband’s longing, and I came to see if I could give him
-any help. I am on my way. I can only be here an
-hour or two. Your husband will soon be here again.
-I may wait for him?’</p>
-
-<p>All Gundred’s inquiries could elicit no more definite
-information. The old man merely repeated his statement,
-and asked to be allowed to await Kingston’s
-return. Baffled, interested, acutely puzzled, Gundred
-must needs leave the riddle of his mission unsolved,
-and take refuge in the customary platitudes about the
-charm of Oriental life. And thus it happened that
-when Kingston returned at last, dusty and hot, from
-his expedition, he found his wife sitting amid the gilded
-disorder of the drawing-room, engaged in a difficult
-dialogue with a stranger.</p>
-
-<p>That this was the long-lost uncle Kingston was soon
-brought to realize, and heard with unmitigated amazement
-that the Abbot, or Bishop, or whatever his rank
-might be, had come in answer to some imagined call.
-The old man had a fantastic charm. His air of frail
-antiquity, the wistfulness of his voice, the very incongruousness
-of his clothes gave him a fascination not
-easy to describe. He was someone out of an alien life,
-a visitor from the world beyond Kingston’s ken.
-A flavour of mysterious knowledge hung about his<span class="pagenum">[272]</span>
-wandering glances, his soft, quiet, hesitating speech,
-his gentle, deprecatory manner; those misty eyes of
-his had the wonder and the wisdom of eyes that have
-pierced far into the hidden depths. His present surroundings,
-his present garments had a sharp and
-crying inappropriateness, yet, though in his air and
-build there was no obvious majesty, the comparison
-was all to the disadvantage of the surroundings and
-the garments. Even Gundred’s luxurious and splendid
-room seemed to grow tawdry and vulgar by contrast
-with this unimposing little figure in its midst. The
-manner of his irruption, too, into modern London life,
-as well as the announcement of his equally abrupt
-departure, increased the air of fantasy that hung round
-him. Flashing by out of another life, flashing on into
-another life, this grotesque little old tortoise was to
-spare them an hour on his road through the immensities.
-Kingston had no sense of kinship as he talked with this
-new-found uncle&mdash;hardly, indeed, any sense of talking
-with a fellow human being. The visitor was too
-clearly a dweller in strange worlds, belonged, in all
-his words and ways, too obviously to another sphere
-of existence. As for Gundred, her faint horror at
-entertaining a confessed Buddhist was tempered by
-the discovery that the Buddhist was an Abbot or a
-Bishop&mdash;at all events, held some conspicuous position
-in the heathen hierarchy. And even a heathen Bishop
-was clearly better than a heathen who was not a
-Bishop of any kind. She soon, however, thought it
-necessary to vindicate her superiority by attempting
-to convert the pagan prelate. After one effort, brief
-though bold, she was forced to desist. Mild, shrinkingly
-meek, the new uncle yet showed a certain confident
-command of spiritual weapons too mighty for
-his niece’s resisting powers.</p>
-
-<p>‘Why, oh, why,’ said Gundred with seraphic sweetness,<span class="pagenum">[273]</span>
-when the Bishop had let drop some pleasant little
-sentiment&mdash;‘why are you not a Christian, dear uncle?
-Surely you must love the truth&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston felt hot with horror, but the visitor showed
-no discomposure at this sudden outburst of proselytising
-energy.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ he replied, in a gentle, hesitating voice&mdash;‘yes,
-I love the truth. We all love the truth when we see
-it, I think. But I love a whole truth better than a half
-truth. When a man is reading the Book of Life by
-the light of the sun, you would not expect him to go
-back and read it in a cave by even the brightest of
-lamps? You have very bright lamps; I have the sun.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred collected all her forces for a theological
-argument such as her soul loved.</p>
-
-<p>‘But what is the point exactly of being a Buddhist,
-uncle?’ she inquired, determined to fire the first shot.</p>
-
-<p>However, the Bishop had not broken his journey
-through space in order to indulge in feminine polemics.
-He smiled demurely.</p>
-
-<p>‘For one thing, niece,’ he answered slowly, ‘we are
-not required or permitted by our Faith to believe that
-two-thirds of the world are doomed inevitably to burn
-in fire for all eternity&mdash;as you, I understand, are bound
-to believe, by all your many different varieties of
-Christianity. Now that, dear niece, would be, I am
-sure, a very great comfort to your tender nature.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred was on the point of making a dignified
-rejoinder, to the effect that one does not talk of such
-things, or think of them, but hopes for the best. However,
-she felt a hostile influence compressing her words.
-A strange force was over her, compelling silence. In
-another minute she found that she could hold the
-field no longer. Wishing with all her heart to stay,
-she yet found herself mysteriously forced to rise and
-make her excuses. The uncle received her explanations<span class="pagenum">[274]</span>
-gently, and gave her thanks for the hospitable
-reception that she had extended to a stranger. He
-would not see her again, for in a few moments he must
-be on his way again. But though it might be long
-before they met again, he would tender her his blessing.
-Accepting the tribute with graceful reserve, Gundred
-passed reluctantly out of the room.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston faced round eagerly towards the visitor.
-What strange message was it that had come to him
-through such unexpected lips? Was the whole story a
-fairy-tale? How could his secret wishes and longings
-have reached the notice of this stranger twelve
-thousand miles across the sea? Surely the soul has
-no system of wireless telegraphy? Kingston had a
-sudden uneasy recollection of telepathy, and the vast
-range of possibilities that it opened up. He fell silent,
-awaiting his uncle’s next word.</p>
-
-<p>The little old man sat huddled in his chair, gazing
-straight before him. The withered claw-like hands
-were fastened one over the other; the pale mysterious
-eyes were fixed on things very far away.</p>
-
-<p>‘Bound on the wheel,’ he said at last, ‘bound again
-and again on the wheel of false desire.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston asked him what he meant.</p>
-
-<p>‘The fire of passion,’ replied the pale tired voice,
-‘is a thing old as all life. Because of some strong
-passion, born many ages since, you now suffer the
-pangs of loss and separation. It is no new thing, this
-pain of yours. It rests with you now, my son, whether
-you will carry it on with you along the road, as you
-brought it with you into this stage of your journey.’</p>
-
-<p>Astonishment, intense and paralytic, possessed the
-younger man as these evidences of insight into his own
-most secret feelings dropped so prosaically, so unemotionally
-from the lips of this worn old wanderer.
-But even astonishment yielded to the keen wonder<span class="pagenum">[275]</span>
-aroused by the possibility that the words revealed.
-He demanded further revelations from his uncle.</p>
-
-<p>‘Over all the fields of existence the opened eye can
-wander,’ replied the other. ‘I can see whence you have
-come, and in what dark places you are now wandering.
-Because of the help that I hoped I could give you, I
-have come here to-night. You are suffering the
-penalty of bygone folly, you are chained in the bond
-of a bad Karma. You have loved something, and you
-think now you have lost it. Worst of all, you long to
-recover it, you long to rivet round you again the fetters
-of desire and sorrow. Many and many are they that
-come to me, crying for the sound or the touch of some
-beloved dead. Women calling across the abysses to
-their dead children, their lovers, their husbands; men
-clamouring for reunion with the women they have
-loved. This life of yours, too, here in the West, is
-filled with the cry of those who seek what they have
-lost. ‘Give us back our dead,’ they say; ‘let us
-touch them, hear them, speak to them again.’ In
-hopes of this evil miracle your churches are crowded,
-your charlatans grow rich, your Heaven finds believers.
-A place to meet the dead again! Weak and foolish,
-weak and foolish, not to know that love is sorrow, and
-that the dead we loved stand for the heaviest grief of
-our lives.’</p>
-
-<p>‘But then,’ answered Kingston, ‘what is love?
-Why do we feel it, if it is such a weak and foolish
-passion?’</p>
-
-<p>‘What is love? It is the ghost of your own dead
-lives recalled to life again. What are we but the agglomeration
-of innumerable previous personalities?
-All our feelings are dim echoes of a hundred million
-fragmentary feelings that have lived before in the
-innumerable dead, who are dust of the ages. What is it
-that gives us the keen joy that we take in some piece of<span class="pagenum">[276]</span>
-music, in some corner of landscape? It is the harmony
-of countless memories that are awakened in us out of
-all our dead existences by the sound we hear, or the
-sight we see. Otherwise, it could mean nothing to us,
-if this life were our first, if we had no previous existence
-to build on. All life is memory made incarnate. All
-love is a recognition.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Then you are talking of reincarnation,’ answered
-Kingston; ‘what has love to do with that?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Reincarnation?’ said the other. ‘There is no
-such thing. Reincarnation would mean that the same
-You goes on into body after body, like one wine poured
-on from bottle into bottle. Think for a moment what
-it is that is You. What is your true personality? Is
-it the thing that has fears and foolish desires and
-dislikes? Or is it the secret higher thing that stands
-behind the common everyday self of you? It is not
-that everyday You which is indestructible. The You
-of your bodily loves and hates dies with your body,
-should be wiped out utterly and vanish; it is the real
-You that continues through all the ages, until at last
-it is made one with the Radiance from which it sprang.
-Your wishes and fears must not live after you; none of
-the many details that have gone to the making of you
-survive, but only the total that they make up. On
-the slate of life your qualities are set down and added
-together. Then bodily death wipes out the items, and
-only the result of the addition remains. That is
-Karma&mdash;the character you build up for yourself through
-the ages. And yet, if you will, you can perpetuate in
-some degree the evanescent passions of your earthly
-life. That is what so many long to do. Immortality,
-to them, means an infinite prolongation of bodily and
-emotional enjoyment. They cannot sunder their notion
-of heaven from their idea of their own earthly personality.
-In heaven they think they must carry their<span class="pagenum">[277]</span>
-earthly tastes, their earthly limbs unaltered. They
-imagine that without the limbs and the earthly tastes
-they will somehow cease to be themselves. They
-believe that these limbs and those tastes are themselves,
-and they want to enjoy them unchanged through
-eternity. They do not understand that desire is sorrow,
-and that to carry on the passions and the pleasures of
-earthly life is also to carry on the agonies and disappointments
-of earthly life. But in perfect happiness
-there can be no pain. Perfect happiness has no part in
-the earthly passing personality of man, for in the corporeal
-pleasures of that personality pain is always
-close at the side of pleasure. The Real Self suffers no
-pain; only the phantom self it is that suffers; you,
-and all like you, are forsaking the true for the false.
-You are seeking to prolong the sorrow instead of taking
-the opportunity of release.’</p>
-
-<p>‘But what release?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Your chance is now with you; through many ages
-you had been firmly bound on the wheel of desire,
-loving from life to life with a fire of anguish that grew
-with feeding. For of all the phantom joys love is the
-greatest and the most delusive. Love is an accumulation
-of memories from bygone loves, increasing by
-indulgence, from life to life, until at last the burden
-of pain is too great to be borne. You, Kingston, in
-this present person of yours, have suffered the incarnation
-of a very ancient deadly love. How else can
-you account for the mystic rapture, the violent, inexplicable
-sense of recognition which makes the essence
-of a tyrannous love? It is soul crying suddenly out
-to a soul loved long since and lost. It is the meeting
-of two selves that have grown together through a myriad
-years, separated by the gulfs of bodily deaths, but
-always certain to meet again, drawn irresistibly together
-by the clamour of mutual desire.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[278]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Ah,’ replied Kingston, ‘if only one could be so
-certain of that meeting again! But when, and where,
-and how?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Unhappy question! You that have been freed
-are eager to enter again into bondage. If that bondage
-is the keenest of all earthly pleasure, yet recognise
-that it is the pleasure of the phantasmal bodily self.
-It has no part with the perfect knowledge, except in
-so far as it is divorced from the earthly self. And
-even in this world, though of all pleasures the keenest,
-it is also of all agonies the keenest. You would suffer
-the pains of hell, I know, to gain the joys of that fancied
-heaven. Wisdom and clear sight have not come to
-you yet. You must make yourself yet another hell
-of sorrow before you can hope to attain the great
-emancipation. As it is, you do not even desire emancipation.
-Emancipation sounds cheerless to you&mdash;lonely,
-sterile, monotonous. Yet some day, at some
-point on your pilgrimage, desire will so fade in you
-that you will be able to understand how it is that perfect
-peace knows nothing of monotony, and that the agonies
-of passion do not prove that its joys are real or holy
-or satisfactory.’</p>
-
-<p>‘How do you mean&mdash;make my own hell?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Hell is nothing more than the dominion of passion
-that we establish over our lives&mdash;of passion and all
-the hellish torments that passion engenders. We make
-our own hells by dwelling obstinately in the world
-of false desire. If we felt the only true desire, the
-desire of those things that are real, then there would at
-once be no more pain, and our state would be heaven.
-Desire is hell. And that hell we build and stoke and
-kindle for ourselves&mdash;go on kindling from life to life,
-in our fancy that the fire we endure contains the
-ultimate pleasure our souls can taste. It is no
-capricious Personality above that sends us anguish<span class="pagenum">[279]</span>
-and misery. Everything we suffer follows automatically
-from some action of our own in this or some bygone
-phase that our marred memories can no longer recall.
-Here in the West you do not understand how this can
-be, though in your heart of hearts you know that it
-is. But in the older, wiser East men have learned to
-train their recollection until it is as easy to recall the
-sorrows of a bygone life as those of yesterday or the
-day before; for time is a thing that has no real existence
-in the infinite life of the soul. You, because of that
-old tie, knew the woman, and loved her and lost her.
-Because of that fire of false desire that you had fed in
-yourself for so many existences, you suffered anew
-the hell of your own making&mdash;the hell of loss and loneliness.
-But kill such false desires, and you kill the
-false miseries of this life that men think real. You
-stand at a point where you might strike upwards
-towards the heaven of peace; the curse of your love
-had nearly wrought out its completion, and passed
-away. But by nourishing as you do the fever of longing
-for the dead, you are binding yourself anew with the
-chains that were beginning to weaken and drop.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I don’t want to hear all this,’ replied Kingston
-impatiently. ‘If you know so much, tell me when
-and where I shall be able to find what I have lost.
-Shall I find it in this life? Shall I know it when I
-have found it? Remember how it passed away from
-me. You seem to understand all that happened, so
-tell me whether the change will affect our knowledge
-of each other.’</p>
-
-<p>‘In one tremendous moment the woman rose far
-above all the false desires in which she had bred herself.
-She gave her life for the truth. She sacrificed utterly
-that false self of hers which was the thing that your
-false self had so loved through the ages. And for her
-great merit it must be that she must reap great rewards,&mdash;not<span class="pagenum">[280]</span>
-rewards apportioned by a personal providence,
-but rewards that spring naturally out of her action.
-She has shaken herself free of the links that bound her
-to you. The Buddha enwombed in every mortal
-Karma has torn away many of the veils that shrouded
-him in that woman’s heart. Because, in her last
-moment she loved the true better than the false, and
-followed rather the higher love that led upwards
-than the lower love which would have kept her
-at your side&mdash;therefore she is released. The streams
-are sundered at last on the rock of parting. That
-bondage of hers has passed away&mdash;weak and erring
-and desirous, perhaps, she still may be&mdash;faulty and
-human, but at least that one chain of desire which
-held her is snapped and broken utterly. You go
-hunting for her through all the fields of your earthly
-life, and she, in an instant, she was cured of all vain
-longings. Therefore between you there is a gulf fixed
-for ever. You, in the days of your meeting, will know
-her and desire her, but she will not know you; she
-will be free of you for ever, and your recognition will
-wake in her no answering recognition, and thus of her
-merit will be doubled your damnation.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I’ll take the risk of that,’ cried Kingston, wanting
-to smile at these august fantasies; but the low,
-husky voice, the faint tremulous manner filled with
-age and mystery and wisdom compelled his reverent
-attention. ‘I don’t care whether she knows <em>me</em> or
-not when we meet again, so long as I know <em>her</em>. The
-sundered streams must meet again somehow. As
-long as I feel that I have met her again, I can be perfectly
-happy. That is all I ask.’</p>
-
-<p>‘The soul lies to itself,’ answered the old man sadly.
-‘Festering sorrow you will have in this, and you know
-it. For all lust, whether of the body or the soul, is
-sorrow. It cannot be otherwise, for sorrow and lust<span class="pagenum">[281]</span>
-are two words for the one great falsehood that pervades
-this visible world of phantoms.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Tell me,’ interrupted Kingston, jesting uneasily to
-hide his earnestness, ‘as you have told me so much&mdash;can
-you tell me in what shape I shall find her, if find
-her I ever shall? Surely what she did will have
-brought her greater beauty than ever, if what you say
-is true, that our rewards are automatically developed
-out of our actions? As for knowing her, on your theory
-that all love is memory, of course I shall know her,
-whether she has gone beyond knowing me herself or not.
-I shall feel it in my blood when we meet again, overwhelmingly,
-fiercely, as I suppose I must have known
-her from the first, when she reappeared for a month
-or two in my life, twenty years ago. But can you say
-what form the result of her beautiful actions will take
-this time? Will she be a queen or a beggar?’ Kingston
-laughed, trying to lighten the impression of his
-eagerness. But the old man sighed.</p>
-
-<p>‘Sorrow, thick and thick, are you calling down upon
-yourself,’ he said, ‘the bitterness of vain longing,
-doubled and redoubled. How can I tell you when and
-where you may meet again? Wander from magic
-incantation to incantation, strengthening your disappointment
-as you strengthen your longing. And&mdash;at
-the end, that meeting which shall be only on one
-side. Dread that reunion, dread that rediscovery of
-the lost. You will not find the lost again; you will
-find only the new, more beautiful thing into which her
-own beautiful action has transformed that which
-seemed lost. For merit plays its part in change,
-inward and outward. Through what endless trials
-had the holy lady Yasodhara to come before her high
-spotless Karma brought her at last to the side of the
-Blessed One Himself. Through all the ages she had
-lived on, ever higher and holier, before she could<span class="pagenum">[282]</span>
-attain the end. And why should that which wore a
-woman’s shape continue still a woman, in its glorification?
-It was the man’s courage that showed. Can
-you be certain that what she was is not now a man&mdash;a
-man, perhaps, weak and earthly, but, after all, a
-man, by virtue of that one instant in which all woman’s
-weaknesses died in her, and only the bravery held firm.
-Life is freer, bolder, wider for a man; should not the
-free, bold soul pass on into a more fitting frame, where
-its opportunities will be greater and its trammels
-fewer? But why look forward into the great darkness
-of desire? Her Karma may even yet have dreadful
-sorrows to work out, yet from one sorrow, at least, it
-is now free. But I had come to you to-night because,
-after all my many years of life and much questioning,
-it has come to me to see farther than many across the
-fields of life, and sometimes to hear voices that other
-ears are not opened to hear. So I heard the crying
-voice of your hunger growing fierce in its loneliness,
-and I saw its sorrow deepening down the road of the
-future, and it seemed to me that perhaps I might give
-you help in loosening the bonds that bind you to the
-wheel of false desire. But now I know once more, as
-all life has taught me, that it is given to none to help
-his neighbour. Heaven and Hell we make for ourselves,
-sometimes thinking Hell is Heaven, and Heaven
-Hell, and no man can unseal our eyes or divert our
-course. So you must go on your way, Kingston, and
-I on mine, neither seeing what the other sees, strangers
-speaking unintelligible tongues. And it will be long
-before you see what I have grown to see. And yet,
-in the distance of time, that day will come, and you
-will be healed of all your sorrows. But now, in this
-life of yours, for a test and a hell and a torment will be
-the gratification of your longing when it comes. As a
-trial and a condemnation of you and yours will it<span class="pagenum">[283]</span>
-come, suddenly, with disaster and despair, and the
-possessing of it will bring an anguish bitterer than any
-that has gone before, for that is the unchanging law
-of Desire. So I have brought you my message and
-my vain warning. The force of your craving will bring
-about its own accomplishment, as, sooner or later, all
-longing must bring about its accomplishment, and,
-at the same time, its penalty. For a terrible moment
-you will see your wish made flesh again, then all will
-pass away into darkness, and your last state, through
-your own action, will be worse than the first.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston might, in saner circumstances, have smiled
-at denunciations so fantastic. But the little old man,
-so quiet yet so earnest, had a strange inexplicable
-dominance. He might not be believed, but he must at
-any rate be respected. In all he said there was a
-deep passion of earnestness, wistful and solemn, that
-gave the wizened little figure in the outrageous
-European clothes something of the prophet’s tragic
-grandeur. Now, his mission being discharged, the
-visitor arose to start once more on his way. Kingston,
-in the feeling that he had no real part in this earthly
-world, could make no effort to detain him. Nor would
-any effort have succeeded. As he had come, abruptly,
-unannounced, so he would go, abruptly, without
-mitigating gradation of farewells.</p>
-
-<p>Gently he gave his hand to Kingston.</p>
-
-<p>‘Very far apart are we two,’ he said, with a whimsical
-smile of his dried lips. ‘We speak in different
-languages, across a barrier of worlds. Yet one day
-we shall draw together, and our hearts be made kin
-again. And now I must go. Say good-bye for me to
-your wife. Out of our passions we make whips for
-our own backs, and there are other passions besides
-that of love for others. She too, your wife, must pay
-the penalty that she has appointed for herself, and out<span class="pagenum">[284]</span>
-of her fancied strength shall come the great weakness
-that shall impose on her, and you, and all, that punishment
-which wisdom would have helped you to avoid.
-None is good but he who does not know it.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston was not paying close attention. His
-mind was fixed on the hope thus made so definite,
-if perilous, of reunion with Isabel. He foresaw a
-second meeting, a second recognition, even though it
-might be one-sided. In the rapture of his hope he
-laughed at risks, and would face all the vague punishments
-foretold by the old man without a moment’s
-fear or hesitation, for the chance of setting eyes again,
-for however short a time, on the love that he had lost.
-In that hour the fires of youth flamed high in his
-heart, and he cared nothing what bitter waters might
-quench them once more in the end. In a dream he
-escorted the old man to the door, and watched him
-pass gently away into the void from which he had so
-suddenly emerged. Into the crowd of moving figures
-in the street the old man passed, and melted like a
-phantom. It was with almost the feeling of having
-been asleep and strangely dreamed that Kingston
-went back to the drawing-room, and found himself
-once more in the prosaic calm world where Gundred
-sat in a perpetual atmosphere of duty and terrestrial
-activities. When she returned to her husband with
-many questions as to the Bishop’s message, plans, and
-present whereabouts, Kingston could almost have
-believed that the last hour had been wiped out of his
-life, or, rather, had never formed a part of it. Her
-arrival made the whole episode so remote and so
-fantastic to look back upon that he could scarcely
-feel that it had really occurred at all. She was so
-practical, so busy, so matter-of-fact; visions and
-abstractions could not breathe in her neighbourhood,
-grew faint, vague, unreal, until the earthly life in<span class="pagenum">[285]</span>
-which she moved appeared to be the only one with
-which sensible people could ever have to reckon. She
-had the not uncommon gift of making the invisible
-seem non-existent.</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XVI</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Kingston made haste to forget, as far as possible,
-the ominous prophecies that had descended on him,
-and in a rush of final activities the Season drew to an
-end. Gundred was beginning to turn her thoughts
-towards Brakelond, and as soon as the Eton and
-Harrow match was over, she decreed that they must
-take their flight thither. She had many duties to
-discharge there in a very short time, for, after little
-more than a fortnight, other duties would call them
-all northward to Ivescar for the hecatombs of the
-Twelfth. Meanwhile at Brakelond there was a new
-school to be opened, a Church Bazaar to be patronized,
-a Primrose League Fête presided over, and a horrid
-Radical fishmonger to be deprived of custom, with a
-stately autograph exposition of his crimes by the
-Lady Gundred Darnley. There were also a few lighter
-tasks, and especially a long-standing engagement to
-dine with the Hoope-Arkwrights. The Hoope-Arkwrights
-were new people of great wealth, who had
-bought the old house of the Restormels, beautified it
-regardless of expense, and ever since had been angling
-for the friendship of ‘the Castle.’ By Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright’s
-untiring benevolence towards bazaars,
-Gundred had at last been brought to accept an invitation
-to dine at Restormel. ‘Poor things,’ she said,
-‘one should always give pleasure when one can, and
-really it will be quite enough to ask them to tea one
-day.’ Accordingly she had promised the Hoope-Arkwrights<span class="pagenum">[286]</span>
-the favour of her presence, and graciously
-arranged her plans to fit in with the date of their
-festival. At the Eton and Harrow she shone resplendent
-in her favourite shades of mauve, to the devouring
-wrath of other mothers, who, in spite of artificial aids,
-only succeeded in looking their full forty or fifty.
-She scanned the gowns and yawned over the play,
-and paraded proudly about on the arm of Jim, imagining
-him to be delighted with the occasion, rather than
-in a cold sweat of horror at every moment, lest anyone
-else should hear the comments that his mother sent
-forth in her cool penetrating tones. Then, having
-discharged her duty by her son and the match, she
-drove back to Grosvenor Street and turned her thoughts
-to departure. Kingston would run down to Brakelond
-in the motor. Gundred enlarged on her longing to
-accompany him, but declared that duty imperiously
-called upon her to accompany the household by
-train, to see that the journey was made satisfactorily,
-without any loss of luggage, or extravagance, or
-indecorum of conduct. Accordingly, on the appointed
-day, the Lady Gundred Darnley might have been seen
-amid pyramids of parcels and stacks of trunks, taking
-her Hegira at the head of an army of retainers. As
-for Kingston, he had yet another day or so in town,
-and then must follow his wife down to the West so as not
-to disappoint those ‘poor Hoope-Arkwright people’
-of the glory that had been promised them.</p>
-
-<p>The weather was settled, and he anticipated a successful
-run. He was tired of London. There was
-heavy over him a sense of things about to happen.
-Matters seemed coming to a head. What his foreboding
-meant he could not tell; he had put the old
-uncle’s vague prophecies far away at the back of his
-consciousness, and attributed the oppression that
-crushed his spirits with a weight of impending catastrophe<span class="pagenum">[287]</span>
-entirely to the influences of the thunderous
-weather and the air of London, stale and exhausted by
-the season. It was with relief that he got into the car
-on a radiant morning, and set out on his flight from
-the sultry city.</p>
-
-<p>But the day’s journey was not prosperously made.
-The roads were dusty, the wind was baffling, the car
-went peevishly and ill. Panting heavily along, the
-machine traversed the beautiful heaths and uplands
-that lie to the west of London. Kingston had meant to
-break his journey far on the way. It was necessary
-that he should arrive at Brakelond in good time on
-the morrow, seeing that this festivity over which
-Gundred so fussed was due to take place that evening.
-And so, the distance down to the West being great,
-Kingston had planned to spend the necessarily intervening
-night at Salisbury, so as to give himself ample
-time to make the rest of the journey. However,
-after the long, unsatisfactory day of delays, a downright
-catastrophe at last brought him to a standstill,
-no farther advanced upon his pilgrimage than Basingstoke.
-In that once placid but now assertive little
-metropolis, hallowed at once by the memories of Mad
-Margaret and of Elizabeth Bennet, Kingston found
-himself forced to make his rest that night. He gave
-orders for an early start on the morrow, then wandered
-out from the grim desolation peculiar to English
-country hotels into the streets and market-place.
-Roaming from alley to alley, he contrasted old with
-new, and beneath the walls of the old Assembly
-Rooms, bent his mind to see the famous Ball where
-Darcy first sighted his destiny. Soon, within the
-old room above, barnlike now and desolate, ghostly
-lights were shining, and the tinkle of long-dead
-music was blending with the rhythmical tumult of
-many feet. Brilliant and entrancing, Elizabeth came<span class="pagenum">[288]</span>
-and went, up and down the dance; Mary posed and
-minced, Kitty and Lydia were agog for partners. As
-the stranger outside stood and recalled that immortal
-scene, the visible world around him faded quickly away,
-and again he understood how much more real may be
-that which has no earthly existence than that which
-earthly hands may touch and earthly eyes examine.
-Streets and walls of Basingstoke, hideous clock-tower
-and town-hall&mdash;it was not that they were real; they
-were phantoms of an ugly hour; reality, for evermore,
-was that little town which never was and never will be,
-where dwelt those men and women that never lived on
-earth, and yet must live eternally&mdash;those men and
-women so far more vivid and lasting than the ghosts
-amid whom we live; those real men and women whose
-voices must ring on perennially down the ages, giving
-joy and satisfaction to generation after generation,
-until the English language has passed with Nineveh
-and Babylon into the limbo of things forgotten.</p>
-
-<p>Sombre hucksters, clerks, shopkeepers moved up
-and down the dingy roadway. To Kingston, by now,
-they were but vapours; the street had changed, and
-its population was of old friends, bright and clearly
-recognised. Here strutted Wickham and Denny
-through the dusk, red-coated and raffish, in attendance
-on the giggling Lydia; and ‘stuffy Uncle Phillips,
-breathing port wine,’ came lumbering paunchily
-towards his doorway. Here, where a modern Emporium
-had faded away, giving place to the neat-fronted
-little shop of bygone days, shone the shoe-roses
-that were to dance at Netherfield, and the
-bonnet that Lydia bought because it was ‘not so very
-ugly.’ Farther on, again, the pretentious hotel where
-Kingston was to spend his night had melted into
-vacancy. In its place stood the long, rambling inn,
-whitened, clean and simple, with its pillared portico<span class="pagenum">[289]</span>
-and its hospitable entrance. And whose lumbering
-chariot was it that stood there at the door, whose high
-turban and commanding beak loomed out of its deep,
-cavernous recesses? Surely, surely there was Lady
-Catherine angrily demanding the road to Longbourne,
-and insisting that the morrow’s weather must certainly
-be fine? And now Mr. Bingley rode along on his black
-horse, blue coat and all; Charlotte Lucas stepped
-briskly by on an errand; Darcy came escorting the
-effusive Caroline to the shop; last of all appeared the
-centre of the vision&mdash;the world, rather, where all those
-visions had been born and made real&mdash;the deceptively
-meek and mild little maiden with the twinkling eyes;
-the demure and inconspicuous spinster in whom dwelt
-the keenest spirit that ever spoke in English, or looked
-out for English ‘follies and nonsense, whims and inconsistencies.’
-Round-cheeked, prematurely capped,
-sedate, Miss Austen pattered on her road. It was with
-a sudden cold shock that her passing called back
-Kingston into the world of to-day. Gone again was
-the real Basingstoke in a flash, and all the real people
-that had dwelt there&mdash;gone like the sudden wreckage
-of a dream. Now there stretched before his eyes only
-the crude and banal sordor of the prosaic modern town.
-Jude the Obscure, and Sue, and beastly Arabella had
-violently usurped the place of Bingley and Darcy and
-adorable Elizabeth. Everything was changed to ugliness
-and squalor. Kingston, chilled and saddened,
-returned to the hotel which once more stood on the site
-of that old inn where the Misses Bennet had eaten
-their nuncheon.</p>
-
-<p>In the morning, when the time came for Kingston to
-set off once more on his journey, even the bustling
-streets of to-day had a cheerfulness of their own. The
-sun was shining brilliantly, the motor had recovered its
-good humour, everything looked solid and practical<span class="pagenum">[290]</span>
-and businesslike and wholesome. The vision of the
-twilight had passed. Jane Austen was once more
-dust of Winchester Cathedral, and the butchers and
-bakers and grocers who stood by their shop-doors and
-counters were now the sole occupants of the little
-town; the mystic walls had melted into modern brick
-and stucco, the ghosts had faded back into the world
-they came from. And yet, as Kingston went on his
-way, he knew that in a hundred years or less the case
-would be reversed again, as he had seen it reversed
-in the dusk of the previous evening. For ultimate
-reality conquers ephemeral, apparent reality, and the
-butchers and the bakers and the grocers would long
-since have passed away, and become indistinguishable
-drift again of the earth, with no memory to say that
-they had ever worn flesh at all; but Bingley and Darcy
-and Elizabeth would still be there, eternally young,
-unforgotten and unforgettable. For what death can
-touch the life invisible? Reality lives on for ever;
-it is only the composite, the visible, the tangible, that
-can break up in change, and pass, and disappear. The
-solid is the only phantom.</p>
-
-<p>On and on through the tranquil glory of the day and
-the country the motor sped willingly upon its course, put
-to its highest pressure of flight, that the whole distance
-might be accomplished in as little time as might be.
-To-day it ungrudgingly gave its best energies to travelling
-cheerfully, indefatigably, briskly. Through sleepy
-little towns it hummed and whirred; along deep lanes,
-and under the shadow of great ancient forests. Then
-by degrees the way became more open. The road
-wound on, over stretch after stretch of purple moorland,
-dotted here and there with sparse pines or hollies
-that had watched the hunting of William the Norman;
-over vast tracts of heather and sedge, over hill and
-valley of the wide country. By now the clear freshness<span class="pagenum">[291]</span>
-of morning had given way to the leaden glare of
-midday. The air was thick and dull with heat, and
-banked clouds indistinguishably crowded the dome of
-heaven, only occasionally permitting a pale sun to
-pierce the haze. The sky had no longer any colour;
-an indeterminate brassy heat pervaded it, and its
-farthest distance melted sullenly into the livid profundities
-of the landscape, till there was no horizon,
-only one vague vapour filling the uttermost parts of
-the world.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston drove on unregarding. The road was
-clear and uneventful; his mind, released from the
-motorist’s incessant agony as to hens, inexperienced
-dogs, defiant children, and deaf old women who
-abruptly cross at corners, was left free to occupy itself
-with the wonder suggested by his visit of the night
-before to shadowland. What, after all, was this reality
-that all men think of? He himself, at once solid and
-evanescent, of what was he built? Of what were all
-his neighbours built? Where was the permanent element
-in them? Flesh and body and bones must go;
-following the logical sequence, he saw that resemblances
-must go, recognitions, and the consequent reintegration
-of bygone personal passions. So far that mysterious
-old man from the East had been right. These
-superficial passions belong to the superficial Self, and
-must pass away when the superficial Self resolves itself
-once more into the elements of which it had originally
-been composed; but behind all this, above all this,
-there must needs be some immortal part, some real
-Self that could recognise the eternal reality in the creations
-of an old maid’s vanished brain, and understand
-that the invisible has a very solid and a very vital
-existence. As he thought the matter through, the
-sense of physical personality began to melt away.
-Gradually he grew into comprehension of the fact that<span class="pagenum">[292]</span>
-the He of everyday life, the He that has wants, angers,
-hungers, thirst&mdash;the He, in fact, that everyone imagines
-to be the enduring, everlasting entity, that all men
-crave and agonize to believe immortal, has really, in the
-everlasting truth of things, no genuine existence whatever.
-The only He that could pass on into immortality
-was the mysterious something behind, the indestructible
-Thought that could call the body and all
-its manifestations into being, and then, when tired,
-dismiss the body again into corruption and go forward
-on its road. Unable, of course, fully to dissever
-his consciousness from the consciousness of physical
-existence, his mind, in the absorbed immobility
-of his limbs, found itself more and more nearly
-able to face the fact that its personality had nothing
-to do with the earthly Kingston Darnley. The earthly
-Kingston Darnley, the thing that wore clothes, and
-ate, and drank, and was cold if naked, and cross if
-hungry, and angry if denied its wishes&mdash;that was a
-mere accident, built of earthly accidents like itself,
-no more capable of immortality than the food it wanted
-or the clothes that made so large a part of what it
-called its existence. As they, in an hour or a year,
-must dissolve and pass back into their constituent
-elements so must that phantasmal Self of his resolve
-itself, in the course of a few seasons more, into its constituent
-elements again, and die for ever with the death
-of its own desires. Only the inner, secret Self must
-go for ever forward upon the upward way, untouched
-by all the shifting changes which that earthly, ghostly
-Self might suffer. And Isabel, the lost thing for which
-he was searching, what was she, and to which Self did
-she belong&mdash;the real or the phantom Self? Was she
-the creation of his higher or his lower desires? And
-if he was to find her, as now he felt a growing certainty
-that he must, what would she be? Into what form<span class="pagenum">[293]</span>
-would the splendour of her last moment have transferred
-her? And now he began to remember more
-vividly the old man’s warning. With what peril of
-agony and disappointment was fraught his quest, its
-realization and attainment? By the attainment of
-one’s keenest desire comes that anguish of disappointment
-which is fierce in proportion to the fierceness of
-the desires that called it into being. Desire, by satisfying
-itself, begets desire, and so, with each fresh craving
-and its gratification, the chain of suffering grows heavier
-and stronger, binding the soul more and more fast
-prisoner in the bondage of pain. For a moment he
-saw this clearly, understood that only in freedom from
-the hungers of the lower self can spring that freedom
-from sorrow which is the ultimate end of all human
-ambition, the goal of all humanity’s highest hopes, here
-and in the hereafter. Then his vision clouded, and
-the lower self intruded its presence once more. His
-mind dwelt on the achievement of his quest, the long-delayed
-reunion with the thing that had been lost.
-Even had he willed to escape, he remembered now
-that in a moment of what had then been mere fantasy
-he had plighted his troth to Isabel far down the future.
-Now, though she might perhaps be free, he was tightly
-bound&mdash;at once by his pledge as by his desires. Perhaps,
-in so far as his desires had forcibly purged themselves
-from grossness, the grossness of his bondage might
-be softened. But a slave he needs must be to the
-craving which he had so fomented by indulgence
-through so many desirous years. A dim fear began to
-fall like a veil across the radiance of his anticipation.
-Now he understood that reunion with Isabel could not
-be quite what he had thought and longed for. There
-must be some change, and with that change must
-come suffering. He had said, in the ardour of his desideration,
-that he would take all risks of sorrow. Now<span class="pagenum">[294]</span>
-he first felt that the risks might well be heavy, and
-the sorrow sooner or later inevitable. A sense of foreboding
-filled him. What he wanted that he should
-have, and with his satisfaction must come that grief
-of dust and ashes which always makes the gratification
-of one desire the prelude of its yet bitterer successor,
-even as the drunkard’s satisfaction of his craving
-only means the renewal of a redoubled, more insatiable
-craving on the morrow. His desire should achieve its
-end, and with that achievement find only the beginning
-of another desire and a keener pain. A vague, mysterious
-fear of the path which he had set himself to
-tread now dominated all his thoughts. It had seemed
-to lead into such bright places. But now shadows lay
-thick across it, and its way stretched down towards
-the abysses. He began to dread the road on which he
-had so deliberately set his course ever since that violent
-sorrow of twenty years before. He was suddenly afraid
-of that future for which he had so long been craving,
-and shrank from the fulfilment of his longer, eager
-quest.</p>
-
-<p>Without delay or misadventure, the motor covered
-the distances with untiring appetite as fast as they
-unfolded themselves, further and further into blue
-horizon after blue horizon. Brakelond was nearing;
-Kingston might soon expect to see its mysterious mass
-dominating the lesser hills and woods. There was
-now but one steep barrier of hills to surmount&mdash;a slow,
-straight climb of three miles or more to the summit
-of a ridge&mdash;and thence the road would drop straight
-over easy declivities to the last brief levels that would
-still separate the traveller from his destination.
-Already the hill stretched ahead of Kingston. Before
-him, with the appalling directness of those eternal
-Roman roads, the white ribbon stretched taut and
-stern, away and away to the crown of the pass.<span class="pagenum">[295]</span>
-Kingston set the motor to breast the long rise with all
-its might, for there was no time to waste. His calculations
-had run things very fine. He had only another
-hour or so to get home, wash, dress, and be ready to
-accompany Gundred on her mission of condescension.
-If he failed, he knew well the neat reproaches that
-would meet him, the mild sighings, the pathetic resignation
-so much harder to bear than any objurgations.
-He pushed the motor to its utmost exertions.</p>
-
-<p>The acclivity was now climbing over open moorland.
-Away to right and left fell the slopes of the hill towards
-the rich levels far beneath. Evening was shedding its
-glamour over the country, and all the details of the way
-were transfigured by the magic of twilight. Straight
-ahead, over the edge of the pass, the sun was setting in
-a splendour of scarlet that spread a solid beam of fire
-from pole to pole, beneath the solid purple of the cloud-banks
-that rolled and towered up towards the zenith.
-The air beneath was a-quiver with fire, and the earth
-was kindled to a fierce and lucent tone of violet,
-hot, yet solemn, mysterious, almost tragic in the
-breathless stillness of the evening. Against the glare
-beyond, the climbing road shone cold and ghastly
-under the unbroken cloud-masses overhead, grey as
-a rain-washed bone by contrast with the amethyst of
-the earth and the sudden furious glory of the sky.
-Leading up over darkness to that scarlet furnace in
-the west, it might have been the very way to Hell.
-Terrible ghosts might be mounting its straight, still
-stretch. As the motor gradually rolled up its slopes,
-Kingston saw that there was indeed a wayfarer upon
-the road. Far away as yet, hardly discernible, a
-black speck was nearing the summit of the pass. A
-quick, fantastic terror suddenly seized on Kingston;
-he shrank from overtaking the wanderer, from passing
-him, from seeing his face. Even from afar that solitary<span class="pagenum">[296]</span>
-figure had a malign influence. It was some ominous
-and evil thing, that remote point of darkness on the
-ghostly pallor of the road. The moments, as they
-throbbed by, seemed big with terrible events about to
-be born. A dreadful hush of expectation filled the
-world. And still the motor climbed pitilessly, gaining
-on the pedestrian so far ahead. Kingston encouraged
-his foolish instincts so as the better to laugh at them.
-It was this strange evening that had given him such a
-start&mdash;this strange evening, filled with an immemorial,
-awful loneliness. This light was mysterious and haunting&mdash;the
-deep sombre purples of the moorland, the
-grim, cold whiteness of the road&mdash;and then, at the end
-of the gloom, that abrupt, ferocious glare beyond,
-that terrifying blaze of the sunset between the two
-rims of darkness above and beneath. The whole
-effect was unearthly, almost crushing. And the
-world seemed holding its breath; nothing stirred, no
-leaf, no zephyr; the cry of no bird could be discerned,
-and even the dry susurrence of the heather-bells was
-stilled in the blank immobility of the atmosphere.
-And through the uncanny hush the throbs and pantings
-of the motor broke obtrusively, like the agonies of some
-great monster in travail, intensifying by contrast
-the vast loneliness of the silence. And there, arriving
-at the crown of the pass, moved on the one sign of
-life that occurred anywhere in the desolate prospect.
-That sign of life added a strangely jarring, menacing note.</p>
-
-<p>And then to Kingston’s cherished feelings of mystic
-awe was abruptly added another. That figure far up
-on the grey road was no stranger. He knew it well,
-had known it from time immemorial&mdash;known it and
-yet feared it. The instinct came upon him with a
-crash, like the sudden recognition of something dreadful
-that leaps into a nightmare. It was no qualm;
-it was a certainty. He knew that when he should have<span class="pagenum">[297]</span>
-reached the summit of the ridge he would look back at
-the wayfarer’s face and see&mdash;<em>what</em>, he could not tell,
-but something, at all events, that he had known for
-years. The feeling grew on him, and grew and grew,
-until at last a devouring curiosity annihilated his
-previous dread. He abandoned himself to the influences
-of the wizard twilight, and allowed himself to
-nurse these fantasies which daylight could not have
-conceived, nor his daylight self been brought to tolerate.
-Now, however, by the poised, watchful dusk, their
-power was strengthened and made momentarily
-heavier. Overwhelming impulses of acquaintanceship
-seized Kingston. Who could it be that had so enthralled
-his attention even from afar? And now they
-were close upon the mystery. It wore a man’s figure,
-lithe and tall, in a dark knickerbocker suit. Suddenly
-it turned at the noise of their coming, and looked round.
-Kingston had one instant of suspense, then fell headlong
-into an abyss of self-contempt. He had so
-cosseted his absurdities that he had come at last to
-believe in them. Why, this wanderer was simply a
-respectable young gentleman of one-and-twenty or so,
-whom he had never set eyes on in his life before. He
-was good-looking, too&mdash;brilliantly good-looking, with
-fine features, a beautifully springy form, and splendid
-grey eyes, but a total stranger none the less. Kingston
-felt a pang of disappointment; but though on the surface
-he knew that he had never seen the boy before, yet
-a dim instinct within him still obstinately insisted
-that this was no first meeting. The instinct would not
-be cried down by perverse facts; it clamoured for
-recognition, and gradually the former acute feeling
-of curiosity and acquaintance began to rise again in
-Kingston. He felt sure he must already have seen the
-boy somewhere, though he could not recall a single
-feature. Probably he had caught a glimpse of him in<span class="pagenum">[298]</span>
-London, and his subconscious mind had photographed
-the glimpse upon his memory. On a sudden irresistible
-impulse, he slowed the motor on its course, and as he
-passed the wayfarer, leaned out towards him.</p>
-
-<p>‘We seem to be going the same way,’ he shouted
-above the outraged bellowings of the machine. ‘Can’t
-I give you a lift?’</p>
-
-<p>The other looked up in surprise. Seen at such close
-quarters, he was more handsome than ever.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, thank you,’ he answered after a pause.
-‘Thanks very much. But I am very nearly at my
-destination.’</p>
-
-<p>Refusal spoke clearly in his tones, and as he replied
-Kingston felt again the same overpowering certainty
-that this was an acquaintance of long standing.
-Everything seemed violently, vividly familiar, yet
-nothing, no inflection, no feature, could he track down
-to its place in his memory. Besides, if his instinct
-had been true, surely the stranger must have shared
-it, and the offer of a lift would have led, as it was
-intended to do, towards a mutual recognition. But the
-boy evidently had no such feeling of acquaintance,
-and had declined the suggestion without the faintest
-hint that he had ever seen the motorist before. The
-whole coil must be a web of mere fancy. Kingston
-released the machine, which bounded gladly on,
-leaving the wayfarer behind in the shadow of the hill.
-Another instant, and they were on the summit. A
-blinding glory dazzled Kingston’s eyes. The whole
-atmosphere was one shimmering ripple of light. Beneath
-his feet, dim in the vibrating gold, lay the last
-two miles of level and plain. Indistinguishable, though
-close at hand among its woods, lay the redecorated
-house of the Restormels, where he was to dine that
-evening. And there, beyond, infinitely remote amid
-the vaporous radiance, rose Brakelond, far above the<span class="pagenum">[299]</span>
-world, silhouetted in shades of purple against the
-devastating glare of the sunset. Wonderfully magical,
-wonderfully mystical in the last fires of the evening,
-seemed that fantastic vision of the Castle, fit haunt of
-old dead passions and splendours, the glowing casket
-of half a thousand memories, gorgeous, palpitating,
-terrible. For an instant he paused on the summit of
-the hill, gazing at that crown of wonder against the
-flaming west; then he gave the straining motor its
-head, and plunged downwards on the final stage of his
-journey. Soon, as he approached it, the Castle lost
-its mystery, grew solid, looming, earthly. Kingston
-suddenly realized that there, high up in her great
-vaulted room, its Lady Gundred was sitting in front
-of her mirror, having her hair done, and wondering
-whether her husband would arrive in time for dinner.
-The motor rushed fiercely up the last steep stages of
-the Castle hill, passed under the machicolated gateway,
-and came noisily to rest in the shadow of the Erechtheion.
-Kingston, thoroughly restored by now to prose
-and sanity, leaped hastily out, and went to his room
-to get ready.</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XVII</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright was a large, short woman,
-genial and comfortable, always anxious to give pleasure
-and make herself popular. Her husband had made a
-great deal of money some years since in ways that
-were characterized by his friends as energetic, and by
-his enemies as shady. However, nothing very definite
-had ever been said against him, so that the charitable
-could avail themselves, uncontaminated, of his wealth,
-and make a merit of their willingness to tolerate its
-owner. In himself, he was a quiet and obscure little<span class="pagenum">[300]</span>
-man, who left the ordering of daily existence entirely
-in the hands of his wife; and she, without vulgarity
-or snobbishness, had a passion for being liked, for
-being surrounded by pleased, approving people. In
-the neighbourhood of Brakelond she had already
-achieved general favour; she was everywhere hailed
-as a ‘dear good woman’; the lavish appointments of
-the house, the excellence of the cook and cellar,
-accomplished only less than her own real kindliness,
-and the surrounding families all ended by accepting
-the new-comer with a good grace, until at last only
-Brakelond held itself aloof. And now even Brakelond
-was about to surrender. Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright,
-however devoid of sycophantic feelings, could not but
-feel that the occasion was a great one. Lady Gundred
-Darnley, virtual Duchess of March and Brakelond,
-was very much the sovereign of the county, no less
-by position than by choice, and her first ceremonial
-appearance at the Hoope-Arkwright’s board was
-beyond question an event of the highest importance.
-Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright had ordered her best dinner,
-donned her best gown and her heartiest smile; she was
-genuinely happy, and meant that the festival should
-be a complete success. Gundred, at this moment
-driving towards the house in a blessed glow of conscious
-benevolence, could not feel the favour of her visit
-more than did Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright.</p>
-
-<p>‘Joe dear,’ said the gratified hostess to her husband,
-as they stood together in the empty drawing-room
-before the arrival of their guests&mdash;‘Joe dear, you will
-take Lady Gundred, of course. Remember what an
-interest she has in the schools and Church bazaars.
-And don’t talk about the Duke, whatever you do.
-She does not like it. There is nothing&mdash;well, positively
-wrong with the poor Duke, but still, one says as little
-about him as one can.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[301]</span></p>
-
-<p>Mr. Hoope-Arkwright promised obedience. His
-wife looked around her with complacency, surveying
-all the rich perfections of the room. ‘I do think she
-will find the place improved,’ she remarked.</p>
-
-<p>The Hoope-Arkwrights’ treatment of the old house
-that they had bought from the ruined Restormels
-had been drastic, though reverent. They had altered
-everything, and sternly pretended to have altered
-nothing, after the habit of new-comers who have passed
-from the first crude stage, of destruction, unto the second
-crude stage, of imitation. All the old quaintnesses
-and beauties had been left, but they had all been elaborated,
-done up, polished, painted, exaggerated, until
-they hardly knew themselves, and wore the uneasy
-look of things that had been put up yesterday for effect.
-The old house was now like the stage-setting of an old
-house; everything wore the painful flamboyancy, the
-assertive archaism of the theatre, neat, shining,
-obtrusive as a new pin. The armoured figures on the
-stairs and in the long oaken hall now carried electric
-lamps in their mailed fists, and this combination of
-practical modern contrivance with respect for antiquity
-was not only typical of all the other improvements
-but also a ceaseless matter of pride to the new owners
-of Restormel. Their complacence and their contrivance
-were equally characteristic. The same spirit
-pervaded the house and made it spick and span,
-bristling with expensive conveniences from attic to
-cellar. The long parlour in which Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright
-now stood in expectation of her guests was
-a great low room panelled in oak, with leaded casements
-of dim glass. At least, this is what it had been.
-Now it had Art-Nouveau windows with cushioned
-seats, and a broad white cornice, behind whose rim
-lurked electric lights in plutocratic abundance, shedding
-a pale, diffused glare, as of a ghostly day. The<span class="pagenum">[302]</span>
-scene they shone on was no longer ancient, but
-‘antique.’</p>
-
-<p>Everything was overdone; everything was in that
-strenuous good taste which is the worst taste of all.
-The oaken settles, so carved, so polished, were blatantly
-unconvincing in their very eagerness to convince;
-oaken tables here and there carried silver photograph-frames
-and silver bowls of roses. In their
-devout attempt to preserve inviolate the antiquity of
-the house, the Hoope-Arkwrights had scorned the
-introduction of a carpet, and the expanse of the floor
-was now an artificial skating-rink of parquet, so new
-and glossy that it might have served as a mirror, over
-whose surface were scattered a few desolate islets of
-rug that slid treacherously away beneath unwary feet,
-carrying their victim in a helpless slide across the room.
-Under the tables sat monstrous great green china cats,
-painted all over with little roses in patterns and
-ribbons. Their emerald eyes of glass glared grimly
-forth from each lair, and their presence added a neat
-note of modern art to the pristine simplicity of the
-other decorations.</p>
-
-<p>As Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright gazed approvingly
-around, the door opened, and two young men came in.
-One was short and pleasant and plump&mdash;clearly the
-son of the house; the other was slender, tall, and dark,
-of remarkable beauty, both of feature and build. His
-hostess welcomed him warmly.</p>
-
-<p>‘I do hope you are not tired after that long walk,
-Mr. Restormel,’ she said; ‘I am sure you will be glad
-of your dinner. The air does give one an appetite,
-doesn’t it? I have only walked as far as the garden
-to-day, but I declare I feel as famished as a wolf.’</p>
-
-<p>The kind lady screwed up her comfortable features
-into fanciful imitation of a famished wolf. The young
-man smiled.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[303]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘No,’ he said, ‘I don’t often get tired with walking.
-And then think what I had to look forward to at the
-end of it.’</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright looked conscious for a
-moment.</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah yes,’ she replied with some feeling. ‘I am
-afraid we are dreadfully thoughtless, Mr. Restormel.
-It must be dreadful for you to come back here and
-find a lot of new people kicking about in your own
-house, as it were; I do hope you’ll try not to think
-about it. When Jack told me how he had met you
-at Oxford, and who you were, and all about you, I
-declare I felt quite shy and uncomfortable at the
-thought of asking you to pay us a visit. And to arrive
-just to-night, too, when we have got a sort of little
-dinner-party too. I am sure you must find it very
-trying.’</p>
-
-<p>The handsome boy smiled down at her again. She
-was evidently in anxiety that he should be happy
-and set at his ease, though her methods lacked subtlety.
-He accepted her sympathy, but diverted her conversation.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh,’ he replied, ‘we come and go, all of us, and it
-never does to bother about what one cannot help.
-Anyhow, I am sure Restormel never had jollier, kinder
-people in it than it has now. Tell me, Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright,
-who is coming to dinner to-night?’</p>
-
-<p>‘What, has not Jack told you?’ cried the hostess,
-with a little inflection of pride, turning to her son.
-‘Well, there are Sir Nigel Pope and his new second wife,
-and the Martin Massingers with two sisters, and the
-Archdeacon and Mrs. Widge, who are staying with
-them, and the Lemmingtons, and the Goddards, and
-the Pooles&mdash;yes, and the Darnleys&mdash;from Brakelond,
-you know, Lady Gundred and her husband.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, Lady Gundred. Of course I have heard all<span class="pagenum">[304]</span>
-about them. My mother used to see a good deal of
-her at one time, before the place was sold.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh yes, how stupid I am! I am always forgetting
-that you know all the people about far better than we
-do, though only by hearsay, most of them. Yes, of
-course you know about dear Lady Gundred. You
-will be next her at dinner, on the other side from my
-husband. What a comfort! You will be able to talk
-to her about old times. I am afraid you will be in
-starvation corner, by the way, Mr. Restormel, but I
-thought&mdash;even before I remembered that you knew
-her&mdash;that you would not mind that if you were next
-to dear Lady Gundred.’</p>
-
-<p>‘You must remember,’ answered young Restormel,
-‘that the place was sold when I was only six months old,
-so I cannot feel that I have any very intimate acquaintance
-with Lady Gundred. Tell me some more
-about her; what is she like?’</p>
-
-<p>‘The sweetest and best of women, Mr. Restormel.
-And so pretty. Quite extraordinary, for she must
-be&mdash;what?&mdash;well over thirty, certainly, and yet she
-looks quite like a young girl still. Fair, you know,
-with a delightful complexion and lovely golden hair,
-and that kind of beautiful little figure which never
-alters. Yes, she must certainly be over thirty. She
-has got a son who can’t be less than fifteen. Jack,
-surely Jim Darnley is quite fifteen?’</p>
-
-<p>Young Hoope-Arkwright glanced up from the photograph-book
-with which he was beguiling the time.</p>
-
-<p>‘What, Jim Darnley? Oh yes, fifteen, at least.’</p>
-
-<p>‘There you are. And his mother looks like his
-sister still. He is the dearest boy, Jim Darnley&mdash;the
-simplest, most unaffected creature. And, of course,
-he will be Duke of March and Brakelond one of these
-days, when his grandfather dies. They are sure to
-revive the title for him. But he might be just anybody,<span class="pagenum">[305]</span>
-and his mother the same. I have always wondered
-why she does not make her husband take her
-own name. But no; she is such a really good woman
-that she thinks a wife ought always to stick to her
-husband’s name. That shows you what she is. And
-such a worker of all good kind works, indefatigable
-among the poor and the sick&mdash;for ever sending out
-soup and boots and blankets, you know. Her life is
-quite made up of kindnesses. They very, very seldom
-dine out, the Darnleys, in the country, so that you are
-lucky to meet them here like this to-night. Her
-husband is a very nice man too. I am sure you will
-like them both immensely. But of course she is the
-most interesting of the two.’</p>
-
-<p>At this point the other guests began to arrive, and
-Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright was forced to abandon her
-dialogue with young Restormel. She introduced him
-rather perfunctorily to one or two of the new arrivals,
-taking pains to slur over his name until she should have
-the opportunity of explaining his identity quietly to
-them at dinner or afterwards; then she turned to her
-hospitable duties, and Jack Hoope-Arkwright carried
-off his friend into one of the windows, where they stood
-laughing and talking together while the guests gradually
-gathered. Then, after a few moments, Ivor
-Restormel and his host came back towards the hearth
-to look at some photograph or ornament that stood on
-the primitive oak table that stood close by, and thus
-it was that they were once more close at the hostess’s
-side when at last, in a significant pause, the butler
-re-entered. His appearance suggested an archbishop
-of sporting tendencies, and he evidently cultivated a
-nice sense of drama. His voice boomed sonorous as
-he announced:</p>
-
-<p>‘Mr. and Lady Gundred Darnley.’</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright moved forward a step or two.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[306]</span></p>
-
-<p>Minute but majestic, the Lady Gundred Darnley
-proceeded up the room, panoplied in perfections,
-and giving exactly the proper amount of smiles, of
-exactly the proper kind, in exactly the proper way,
-to all the proper people. At her heels came Kingston,
-but nobody cared to look twice at him. Lady Gundred
-was the star of the evening; as she entered, she had
-the double consciousness of not only conferring great
-pleasure, but of conferring it in the handsomest and
-most ungrudging manner. For in the plenitude of
-her generosity she had decided that it was her duty
-not to fob off poor, kind Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright’s
-dinner with one of her second-best frocks; and now
-she reaped the reward of her efforts in the general gaze
-of delight that greeted her appearance in one of her
-smartest gowns, looking incredibly crisp and young
-in a beautifully-built harmony of pale blue and pale
-gold. The frock set the crown upon the favour of her
-coming. It was, indeed, very rarely that the Darnleys
-dined out in the neighbourhood of Brakelond, and
-therefore Gundred was the more ready to emphasize
-the approval that her coming was to bestow on Mrs.
-Hoope-Arkwright in the eyes of all the county. Dear
-woman, how good she had been about that bazaar!
-how loyally she had turned away her Liberal gardeners!
-She well deserved not only to be dined with, but to
-be dined with in one of one’s decent gowns. And
-then one might ask her to tea at Brakelond, and show
-her the pictures. Gundred showed herself sweet and
-kind in the highest degree, as Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright
-made her welcome. Her manner always had a tranquil
-friendliness and a grace so instinct with placidity
-that only the most discerning could have discerned
-her underlying pride, in her demeanour’s very negation
-of pride. Here and there, perhaps, an acute onlooker
-might guess that her gentleness was founded on an<span class="pagenum">[307]</span>
-intense arrogance unsuspected even by its possessor,
-on a self-esteem so tremendous as to have passed
-beyond all hint of self-assertion into a Nirvana
-of apparent unself-consciousness. An ingenious friend
-in London, indeed, had once said that, though Gundred’s
-manner and signature unfailingly wore the
-proper style of ‘Gundred Darnley,’ yet that, reading
-between the lines, both of manner and signature, one
-could always see that it really ran, ‘Gundred March
-and Brakelond.’ However, her pride was far too cardinal
-a point of doctrine to be made the theme of declamation;
-Gundred never obtruded it, never lowered its
-dignity by insisting on it, never allowed it to make
-her offensive, except in minute and subtle ways.
-Now, as she pressed Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright’s hand
-and commended her kindness, the hostess felt that
-never had she met anyone so pleasant and cordial and
-delightfully unaffected.</p>
-
-<p>Then Gundred raised her eyes and looked round
-her to see who else might be in the room. She
-saw Sir Nigel, saw the Lemmingtons, saw the
-Archdeacon and his wife; she was glad that Mrs.
-Hoope-Arkwright had chosen such unexceptionable
-people to be witnesses of Brakelond’s condescension.
-Then her gaze moved on. The next moment she saw
-somebody whom instantly, inexplicably, she disliked
-as she had never before disliked anyone at first sight.
-Cool and gracious, Gundred was the last person in the
-world to feel unusual emotions; but now, as she looked
-at a tall dark young man&mdash;a boy of about twenty,
-he seemed, remarkably beautiful and attractive&mdash;her
-soul started proudly away in a flurry of instinctive
-repulsion. He was unpleasant, that good-looking
-youth, altogether unpleasant and odious. She had no
-notion why this feeling swept so completely across her
-mood; it took entire possession of her. Quickly she<span class="pagenum">[308]</span>
-averted her eyes, and glanced round the uneventful
-circle of the other guests. They, for their part, quite
-unsuspicious of Lady Gundred’s sudden outburst of
-dislike, were concentrating their admiration on the
-calm grace of her manner, so exquisitely civilized and
-concise. Passions must always be very far from that
-serene pleasantness of demeanour. And meanwhile
-Gundred was busy thinking how displeasing that
-young man was, while with soft smiles she responded
-to Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright’s compliments. But suddenly
-the hostess became conscious of someone at her
-side. She turned towards the handsome dark boy, and
-before Gundred could see what was to happen, had
-brought him forward. ‘Let me introduce you to Lady
-Gundred Darnley,’ she said. The young man made a
-motion as if to put out his hand. Gundred instantly
-responded by taking that cruel revenge which is always
-in a woman’s power on such occasions. She ignored
-the hand, gave a glacial little smile and a glacial little
-bow. The young man seemed slightly astonished at
-this chill, and his eyes met hers for a moment. They
-were splendid eyes, those of his&mdash;cool, deep, grey,
-kindly. They glanced with wonder into the ice of
-Gundred’s stare, and in that moment she felt his gaze
-intolerable, saw things that she mysteriously hated
-and dreaded in those grey depths. For once in her
-life Gundred’s composure was faintly ruffled. She
-dropped her glance, and faintly blushed with annoyance.
-This is what one got by being generous and
-dining with presumptuous people like the Hoope-Arkwrights.
-Under her calm, imperturbably smiling
-exterior Gundred was gravely annoyed. She moved
-backwards, away from this unwelcome introduction.
-Her movement produced a change in the arrangement
-of the crowd. Kingston stepped forward, and came
-into sight of the tall, slender figure with which his wife<span class="pagenum">[309]</span>
-had seemed to be talking. Already he had had a strong
-conviction that he knew the back; now that he saw
-the face, he recognised the wayfarer whom he had
-passed on his road that afternoon. And once again,
-tyrannous, overwhelming, came the certainty of old
-acquaintance. Before, however, he could start a conversation,
-dinner was announced, and Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright
-began to marshal her guests in procession.
-Gundred hailed the release with joy, and passed out
-with gentle majesty at the head of the cortège.</p>
-
-<p>What, then, was her indignation when, having
-settled herself at her host’s right, delicately removed
-her gloves, unfolded her napkin, untied the little bundle
-of pastry faggots that lay before her knotted up with
-blue ribbon, she turned towards her other neighbour,
-and discovered that he was no other than the strange,
-beautiful young man for whom she had conceived so
-unusually sudden a dislike. She hated strong emotions,
-and very rarely indulged them, but this one was
-beyond her control&mdash;a matter of instinct. In the
-first flash of revelation, she felt convinced that this
-beautiful boy was a corrupter of youth, a contemner
-of religion, everything that was bad and horrible; she
-plumed herself immediately on the nice discernment
-that enabled a Christian woman to divine such things,
-and made a virtue of the hostility she harboured. Talk
-to such a creature she would not. She turned quickly
-upon her host, and initiated the usual introductory
-conversation on the beauty of the table decorations.</p>
-
-<p>The dinner-table was of a piece with the rest of the
-restored house. It was so aggressively old as to be
-obviously new. It was of that ancient oak which is
-for ever modern; and, in deference to primitive
-simplicity, it wore no cloth. Glass and silver gleamed
-down its long narrow stretch, and in the middle
-ranged a hedge of roses and orchids embowered in<span class="pagenum">[310]</span>
-ferns. Electric light was not permitted to mar its
-harmony with any suggestion of modernity. Candles
-in plain old silver candlesticks illuminated the table and
-its guests, shedding a soft and discreet glamour of pink
-from beneath their shades of crimson paper. Gundred
-commented amiably on the beautiful effect attained.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Hoope-Arkwright, who left such details to his
-wife and the decorators, made what reply he could,
-and the conversation flowed placidly along the lines
-that Gundred loved, developing in the way that
-showed her social aptitudes at their best.</p>
-
-<p>‘My wife says that electric light does not do for a
-dinner-table,’ explained Mr. Hoope-Arkwright. ‘Too
-harsh a light it sheds, she tells me. I don’t understand
-such things myself, but everyone says the candles and
-their pink shades are very becoming.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes, indeed,’ replied Gundred; ‘one always likes
-a soft gentle light. And so clever of dear Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright
-not to have a tablecloth. All the glass and
-silver shows up so well. Such wonderful taste she has.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, I always like a tablecloth myself, you know&mdash;seems
-cleaner, somehow; but Maggie says it is not the
-thing in a house like this.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Such a delightful house&mdash;yes? And I do think
-you and dear Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright have been so
-tactful about it&mdash;altering nothing, as it were, and yet
-improving everything, and making it so comfortable.
-It was very different in the poor Restormels’ time. I
-can remember what it was like then.’</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Hoope-Arkwright saw that she had not grasped
-her other neighbour’s identity, and as personal explanations
-are not easy unless one has the tact to shout
-them, so that their object may have no suspicion who
-is meant, he preferred to turn the conversation into
-other channels. ‘Are you fond of flowers, Lady
-Gundred?’ he asked.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[311]</span></p>
-
-<p>In such temperate dialogues Gundred particularly
-shone. She was especially valuable in London for her
-power of flowing endlessly and amiably on about
-matters which could never possibly interest or stimulate
-anybody, or arouse difficulties of any sort. She
-was felt to be a thoroughly safe guest. So Mr. Hoope-Arkwright’s
-question gave her a most favourable
-opportunity for the display of her favourite qualities,
-and she seized upon the topic with joy.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh yes,’ she answered; ‘I have always been devoted
-to flowers. Such a comfort they are&mdash;yes?
-Quiet friends, I always say. One could not live
-without them.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Roses, now&mdash;do you care particularly for roses?’
-pursued Mr. Hoope-Arkwright.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, the queen of flowers,’ she made haste to reply.
-‘But, do you know, I can never quite care for a rose
-that has no scent. There is something unnatural
-about it&mdash;no? But these of yours are perfectly
-lovely, and how sweet! Do you find the soil good for
-them here?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, as to that I can hardly tell you. I leave such
-matters to my wife and the gardener. But they are
-fine fellows, as you say.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Quite like little pink cabbages&mdash;yes? Only so very,
-very beautiful, of course. How one loves a rose!
-And they go so well with the orchids too. So nice
-to be able to grow orchids.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes, they do run into money, orchids do. You
-would be astonished at the prices some of them fetch.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred thought this a vulgar ostentation, and
-assumed her mildly pious air. ‘And I dare say, after
-all, not half so beautiful as many a dear little flower of
-the hedgerows?’ she replied. ‘Money means so little&mdash;yes?
-I often feel that one’s greatest pleasures are
-those which cost us least. The lovely lights on the<span class="pagenum">[312]</span>
-hills, the roseate hues of early dawn&mdash;these are the
-joys which no money can buy. How thankful one
-ought to be to Heaven for giving us all these healthy
-pleasures&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>Neither Mr. Hoope-Arkwright nor Gundred herself
-had any exhaustive experience of early dawn and its
-roseate hues. But the sentiment was improving and
-laudable. The host, however, was inclined to be
-prosaic.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well,’ he answered, ‘one need not sniff at money,
-either, Lady Gundred. Where would one be without
-it?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah, where indeed?’ sighed Gundred; ‘and yet
-one never has enough. But one always likes to feel
-that there is something higher than money, Mr. Hoope-Arkwright&mdash;yes?
-Money can give you all these
-beautiful flowers, and this delightful house, but can
-money give happiness, Mr. Hoope-Arkwright?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Anyway, money can give us most of the things that
-make up happiness.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Not a tender, loving heart, Mr. Hoope-Arkwright.
-Not a childlike faith and simplicity,’ replied Gundred
-pathetically. ‘And without these what is life? Our
-only real happiness lies in doing what one can for
-others. And that, I always feel, is the most real and
-precious use of money&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Hoope-Arkwright’s most characteristic activities
-had hitherto lain rather in doing others than in doing
-things for them. Also, he had very different views on
-the use of money from those so correctly enunciated by
-Gundred. So he preserved a discreet silence on the
-point, and listened unprotesting while she proceeded
-to enlarge on the more idyllically beautiful possibilities
-of life. He inserted ‘Ah yes,’ and ‘Ah no,’ at intervals
-into the interstices of her remarks, and cast
-about for an early opportunity of taking refuge with<span class="pagenum">[313]</span>
-his other neighbour. Mr. Hoope-Arkwright did not
-really share his wife’s hospitable instincts, and he did
-not care two straws about Lady Gundred Darnley&mdash;or,
-for that matter, about Lady Anybody Anything.
-‘To do the civil’ he saw to be his duty, but the
-moment that dinner was half over and his duty duly
-discharged, he meant to indemnify himself for his
-endurance of this dull, pretty woman and her boring
-platitudes by having a good time with his other partner,
-Sir Nigel Pope’s second wife, a young woman of a
-gay and kindred spirit. Accordingly, when the roast
-peacock had arrived, he seized his moment with great
-promptitude.</p>
-
-<p>‘Now, that is what I call quite poetic,’ he exclaimed,
-when Gundred had finished by saying that she thought
-a good, useful life was like some fragrant flower.
-‘What do you think, Lady Pope?’</p>
-
-<p>Lady Pope made a prompt, flashing reply, and in
-another moment was engaged in a warm duologue
-with her host; Gundred was left out in the cold. She
-felt a certain annoyance at being dropped like this.
-Her self-complacence would not, of course, let her
-know that she had been dropped. She knew that she
-had been giving poor dear Mr. Hoope-Arkwright one
-of the pleasantest half-hours of his life&mdash;a little uplifting
-talk with a really refined woman&mdash;but still it
-was just a trifle tiresome that he should have so very
-keen a sense of duty. Evidently it was only the
-strictest sense of duty that had made him change
-partners so precisely at the halfway house of the meal;
-but Gundred would have been better pleased if he had
-not allowed his sense of duty to be quite so minute
-and intrusive. Very proper and right, of course, yet
-almost too scrupulously right and proper to be altogether
-tactful. Then it suddenly occurred to her that
-she in turn ought to talk to her horror on the other<span class="pagenum">[314]</span>
-side. No, that she would not. Duty and right themselves
-should not compel her. She stared stonily
-before her, eating the peacock with wrathful and
-mincing precision. She would hear no preliminaries
-on her right. She gazed straight out across the table.
-Far off she saw her husband looking at her. Watchful
-interest and curiosity filled his expression as he glanced
-from her neighbour to herself. Perhaps he was wondering
-why she was not talking to him. Duty clearly
-commanded her to. But for once in her life correct,
-decorous Gundred would be deaf to the call which she
-usually heard and obeyed so sedulously. She nibbled
-at a pastry faggot, and kept a stern silence. Her
-neighbour made two attempts at conversation, but
-she answered so coldly as to nip them both in the bud.
-Then, abruptly, her attention was caught and riveted.
-The pink candle-shade in front of her was tilting to one
-side, threatening every moment to take fire. She
-looked anxiously round to her host for help, but he
-was by now far too deeply engaged with Lady Pope.
-Gundred gazed in annoyance at the paper shade.
-Surely it was beginning to smoulder? Ever since
-the catastrophe at Brakelond Gundred had disliked
-fire hardly less than the burned child, and now her untutored
-desires would have prompted her to get up
-and move away. But she had the martyr-like courage
-of her breeding and conventions. She sat there in
-suspense, smiling, calm, and altogether smooth to
-look at. However, there was no need, after all, to
-feel so helpless. She must inevitably appeal to the
-young man on her right. Speech had become a
-necessity, though always a distasteful one. Besides,
-after all, how absurd to let even so strong an instinct
-make one uncivil! Gundred fought down her reluctance
-bravely, and turned to her neighbour.</p>
-
-<p>‘Do you think,’ she asked firmly, though in a low,<span class="pagenum">[315]</span>
-rather strained voice, ‘that you could lower that
-shade a little? Do you see, I believe it will catch fire
-in a moment&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>No answer followed her appeal. In astonishment
-she repeated it, and raised her eyes to her enemy’s
-face. She was astounded by what she saw there.
-She herself had been put out, even alarmed for a
-minute by the imminent fate of the candle-shade;
-but her neighbour’s gaze was fixed on the point of peril
-in a set white pallor of pure terror. Never in her life
-had she seen such an agony of dread on any human
-countenance. The young man, so beautiful, so lithe,
-so strong, was a monstrous coward. His face was
-rigid with fear, his eyes staring horribly. The sight
-was indecent in its nude revelation of weakness. In
-an instant all Gundred’s courage came back to her,
-and at the same moment her hatred for her neighbour
-was mitigated by a cold ferocity of contempt. He
-was still evil and hateful, but now he was contemptible
-also. He, a man, to be so terrified of a little burning
-candle-shade! At that same moment the shade tilted
-further, caught, and flamed. Gundred was conscious
-that her neighbour’s hands clenched upon his chair in
-a convulsive jerk of fright. Calmly, firmly she
-reached forth her arm, and crushed the blazing paper
-into a blackened flake. Servants came running to
-sweep up the ashes, and Mr. Hoope-Arkwright confounded
-himself in apologies for his neglect. Gundred
-showed herself perfectly amiable to her host, but on
-her other neighbour she would have no mercy.</p>
-
-<p>‘I saw it was going to catch,’ she said gently, ‘and
-I asked Mr.&mdash;this gentleman, to put it out. But he
-cannot have heard me, I think.’ She included both
-men in her remarks, and spoke in soft, far-reaching
-tones that could not escape their attention. Mr.
-Hoope-Arkwright made some polite rejoinder, gave<span class="pagenum">[316]</span>
-her a few compliments, then went back to his dialogue
-with Lady Pope. Gundred, reinstated in her own
-self-esteem, turned to see what effect her cut had had
-upon the coward. Had he winced beneath the lash?
-Yes, evidently he had. Gundred was justly pleased.
-Heaven had made her the instrument of his well-merited
-punishment. And now he was trying to make excuses.
-She would listen, so as the better to slight them. She
-offered a coldly acquiescent air as he began to speak.</p>
-
-<p>‘I am sorry,’ he said in a slow, hesitating voice,
-hardly yet restored to equanimity. ‘I am afraid I
-heard you perfectly.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred would see no courage in the confession.
-It was mere effrontery. ‘Yes?’ she replied. There
-was a pause. ‘Yes?’ repeated Gundred cruelly, demanding
-an answer.</p>
-
-<p>The young man went on, speaking with difficulty.
-Gundred felt a keen joy in thus dragging the coward
-through a confession of his cowardice. To be a man
-and a coward&mdash;that was not punishment enough. He
-should also know what a woman thought of him.</p>
-
-<p>‘I ... well, the long and the short of it is, I can’t
-face fire,’ continued the hesitating, painful voice.</p>
-
-<p>‘You would not make a good soldier&mdash;no?’ rejoined
-Gundred, with a pinched little smile.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, in that way I hope I should be all right. It is
-flame and smoke and burning that I cannot face. All
-my life I have had the fear. I suppose everyone has a
-secret horror in their lives. Fire is mine. I have
-suffered from it always. You don’t know what it is.
-It is something far worse than fear. I am not really
-afraid of the fire. I knew how ridiculously harmless
-that little burning shade would be, but it was the fire,
-the flame that made me&mdash;well, made me almost sick
-with a shrinking&mdash;a sort of supernatural repulsion that
-I cannot explain.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[317]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘How very unfortunate!’ answered Gundred, deliberately
-cool and incredulous in tone. ‘It must be
-so very inconvenient&mdash;yes? People are sadly apt to
-misunderstand, don’t you find?’</p>
-
-<p>The young man, however, was a worm only in his
-tendency to turn. He flushed, seeing clearly the hard
-malice of her mood. ‘Very few, thank Heaven,’ he
-answered, ‘have ever had the opportunity of misunderstanding.
-You have been especially unlucky,
-and so have I.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, don’t mention it,’ replied Gundred, politely
-demurring.</p>
-
-<p>‘I must, obviously,’ he went on. ‘You see, one bears
-one’s secret horror, whatever it may be, quite alone,
-telling nobody about it. But sometimes, once or
-twice in one’s life, some cursed accident drags it to the
-surface, and the horror becomes too bad to bear, and
-an outsider gets a glimpse of it. I have been unfortunate
-in the moment of my accident, and in the person
-who saw it, and there is no more to be said: that is
-all.’</p>
-
-<p>The young man, the coward, the unmentionable,
-seemed actually to be snubbing the brave, the serene,
-the faultless Lady Gundred Darnley. This must instantly
-be put a stop to.</p>
-
-<p>‘One does not like to believe that any man can have
-a fear too bad to bear&mdash;no?’ inquired Gundred, very
-gently and softly, as if asking for the sake of information.</p>
-
-<p>The victim had clearly had enough of this persecution.
-‘After all,’ he said, ‘when one comes to think
-of it, I suppose you are yourself more or less responsible
-for my fears, if anyone is.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred gave him a blank blue stare.</p>
-
-<p>‘I?’ she questioned in amazement, as if the very
-suggestion were an insolent piece of irreverence.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[318]</span></p>
-
-<p>The young man was not abashed, however, and proceeded
-to make his position good.</p>
-
-<p>‘You had a ghastly fire at Brakelond many years
-ago,’ he answered. ‘Somebody was burnt&mdash;a cousin
-of yours, I think. Well, that fire was a great shock to
-my mother, and upset her dreadfully. I was the result,
-and I am the incarnation of her terrors.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred hesitated in her enmity, and her manner
-changed.</p>
-
-<p>‘I beg your pardon,’ she said; ‘but I did not quite
-catch your name before dinner. But from what you
-have just said, are you&mdash;surely you must be&mdash;&mdash;’</p>
-
-<p>‘I am Ivor Restormel,’ said the enemy. ‘I was born
-about twelve hours after your fire at Brakelond. So
-you cannot wonder that I carry the traces of it in my
-life, as it were. And so, you see, I was right: you
-are in some way responsible for my dread of fire.
-Wasn’t it a careless servant who set light to the old
-wooden wing of Brakelond? Well, if it had not been
-for that careless servant, I should not have had any
-dread or shrinking from fire.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Really,’ said Gundred, hardly heeding him, ‘this
-is wonderfully interesting. Then you are poor dear
-Mary Restormel’s son? I used to know your mother
-so well in the days before you were born. And then
-the place was sold, of course, to these Hoope-Arkwrights,
-and I never saw much of poor dear Mary again.
-But how very strange to meet you here&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred was always faithful to her traditions and
-her memories. The stranger came immediately into
-the hallowed circle of Gundred’s own class, and no
-longer suffered the condemnation of the outsider. In
-her heart of hearts, Gundred, perhaps, would never
-surmount her first mysterious sense of repulsion; but
-anger, disdain, reproof must at once be very much
-modified in the case of a person who now stood revealed<span class="pagenum">[319]</span>
-as no longer an unhallowed, nameless member of the
-Hoope-Arkwright world, but as poor dear Mary Restormel’s
-son, with the right divine to Gundred’s sympathetic
-loyalty. Her strong and dutiful <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">esprit de
-corps</i> even prompted her to something resembling an
-apology.</p>
-
-<p>‘Of course I had no notion who you were,’ she said.
-‘What you tell me is a perfect explanation. How
-very dreadful for you, though! But I quite understand
-your feeling&mdash;a simple instinct. Yet, of course,
-until one knew who you were, it did seem a little strange&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>Ivor Restormel had ceased to take much interest in
-the question.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, well,’ he said, ‘one is always meeting odd things
-in life. I only wish I had escaped that particular
-oddity. However, I do all I can to get the better of
-it, and in a way I have succeeded. I can face flame
-more than I could, though it still gives me the same
-supernatural creepy feeling. What I have suffered,
-too, in seeing women smoke is more than I can express.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Not at all a nice habit, I think,’ replied Gundred.
-‘Somehow, it never seems appropriate or ladylike&mdash;no?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, it is not <em>that</em> I mind, but the possibilities are
-so horrible. A man wears rough tweeds and things.
-No spark could settle on them. But think of the innumerable
-frills and fluffs and films that a woman has
-floating all round her nowadays. A chance spark,
-and the dropping of a red cigarette-end, and&mdash;ah!
-it doesn’t bear thinking of.’</p>
-
-<p>He broke off, shuddering, and Gundred could see
-that at the bare notion of such a catastrophe the old
-white, shivering terror had laid hold of him. She
-had heard before of these strange, inherited passions,
-prenatal, ineradicable, but this was the first instance<span class="pagenum">[320]</span>
-she had ever met with, and it filled her with interest
-now that she realized that its victim was a man of her
-own order, and as such, of course, not to be classed
-in the common rank of cowards. Her subconscious
-fear and dislike of Ivor Restormel still held their place
-in her mind, but they had retired to the background of
-her thought for the moment, leaving room for the curiosity
-that his identity and his idiosyncrasy aroused.</p>
-
-<p>‘So very dreadful,’ she murmured, ‘for your poor
-mother. I had not realized that dear Mary had been
-so much upset by that awful fire. You know, Mr.
-Restormel, I feel as if we were quite old friends, you
-and I. As you say, I cannot help feeling, after all,
-that we have got some of the responsibility to bear for
-the odd feelings that you have inherited. You have
-had quite a distressing legacy from those old wooden
-rooms at Brakelond&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>Laudably, deliberately friendly, Gundred raised her
-neat smile to meet Ivor Restormel’s gaze. He was
-looking at her full, with his deep grey eyes, true and
-honest, and altogether pleasant. Yet, as she met their
-glance, suddenly the instinctive hostility surged up
-into Gundred’s mind with redoubled strength. Fear
-and dislike seized her. She could not bear that glance,
-could not tolerate her neighbour’s presence. She
-turned away her head with a sensation of almost
-terrified hostility. What was this imperious repulsion
-that now held her&mdash;the first emotion that had ever
-threatened to pass the limits of her self-control?
-She could not understand it; never before had she felt
-anything even remotely resembling this blind, paradoxical
-dislike. Perhaps, years since, her bitter
-memories of Isabel had been tinged with the same
-unreasoning horror, but those far-off qualms had been
-faint and colourless compared with the vehement
-feeling now aroused in her by this beautiful and harmless<span class="pagenum">[321]</span>
-stranger. She stiffened herself to show a firm front;
-self-contempt began to stir in her. Why, had it come
-to this, that she, Lady Gundred Darnley, the model
-of deportment and nice tact, now wished publicly to
-violate her own code, to be rude and inconsiderate to a
-person who on all counts, as being unobjectionable,
-a fellow-guest, and an equal, claimed her consideration
-and her courtesy? Such a lapse could never be permitted.
-She must fight down this folly, and be kind
-to Ivor Restormel through the rest of this nightmare
-meal. Then she would leave the house as soon as she
-could, and pray Heaven that she might never set eyes
-on him again.</p>
-
-<p>Ivor Restormel saw something strange in her manner,
-but took no heed. He did not in the least care what
-Lady Gundred Darnley might choose to think of him.
-He felt confident that he could in no way have offended
-her; further than that his interest in her attitude did
-not go. The secret dislikes of one’s acquaintances are
-incalculable. It is both hopeless and useless to take
-such things into one’s consideration. One can but
-watch one’s own behaviour to keep it clear of offence,
-and then leave the rest to Providence.</p>
-
-<p>‘Brakelond must be wonderfully beautiful,’ continued
-Ivor Restormel, amiably manufacturing conversation
-in the pause made by Gundred’s sudden lapse
-into silence, ‘judging by the view of it from here. I
-have never seen anything so fairy-like and splendid.
-I suppose you have rebuilt the burnt part long ago?
-All wood, you say it was? Yes, I have heard so much
-of that old wing that I feel as if I knew it well, every
-step and winding of it. Ugh! what a ghastly death-trap!’
-Again he shuddered at his vivid recollections
-of a place he had never seen.</p>
-
-<p>Any criticism on her family or its possessions always
-roused Gundred to polite animosity. Now the feeling<span class="pagenum">[322]</span>
-came to her rescue, and armed her against this dreadful
-young man who seemed so pleasant and innocuous.</p>
-
-<p>‘It was very interesting and wonderful,’ she answered
-reprovingly. ‘We all loved it. But, of course, wood
-is always rather a peril&mdash;yes? Oak panelling is most
-delightful, but one cannot help feeling it a responsibility.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I hate the very idea of it,’ replied the other with
-fervour. ‘Why, whenever I think of those wooden
-rooms at Brakelond, I can smell that horrible cold,
-old, acrid smell of a burnt-out ruin&mdash;the horrible smell
-of charred wood, which gets into one’s nostrils and
-one’s throat. Sometimes in my life I have had to
-meet that smell, and whenever I get a whiff of it, I
-always have a vision of the wing at Brakelond, all
-wrecked and blackened and fallen in, haunted by the
-dreadful acid fumes of stale fire and smoke.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred might have protested further against the
-quite uncalled-for vigour of Ivor Restormel’s memory,
-but at that moment Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright was making
-efforts to capture her attention from behind a bower
-of odontoglossums. She smiled her acquiescence,
-made some indifferent remark to her neighbour, and
-rose to head the departing procession. Thank Heaven,
-the ordeal was over, and she had come out of it safely,
-without any more loss of self-respect than was involved
-in the conception of so incalculable an instinct of
-hostility. Gundred felt her self-complacency returning.
-She knew that it does not matter what sentiments one
-may entertain, so long as one gives no sign of entertaining
-them. One’s private blemishes are one’s own
-private concern alone, provided that one does not let
-one’s clothes slip down and reveal them to the world.</p>
-
-<p>Her husband, meanwhile, at the other end of the
-table had proved but a tame and uninteresting companion
-to Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright. His attention<span class="pagenum">[323]</span>
-throughout the meal had been fixed at every possible
-moment on Gundred’s right-hand partner. For whole
-long minutes he scanned that keen, handsome face.
-Where had he seen it before? Why did he find it so
-very much more attractive than even its own intrinsic
-beauty warranted? He stared at it, analyzed it,
-dissected its features. No, collectively and separately
-they were quite new to him. He grew more and more
-confident that he had never met the young fellow
-before; otherwise he must have remembered him.
-It was not a face to be forgotten. No, he had never
-seen it before. And yet the imperious conviction grew
-and deepened in him that that face was worn by no
-stranger&mdash;that he and the boy at the end of the table
-were in some mysterious way the oldest of intimate
-friends. Many years before he had felt the same
-passion of recognition when he at last understood what
-it was he felt for Isabel; now the same haunting sense
-of old acquaintance returned to him, and held him in a
-firm and inexorable grip. As soon as the women had
-all left the room, he carried round his glass, and settled
-himself decisively at Ivor Restormel’s side, thereby
-upsetting all the post-prandial arrangements, which
-had been meant to make him the prey of more interesting
-and conspicuous men among the guests.</p>
-
-<p>‘We met on the road this afternoon, I think,’ said
-Kingston; ‘or, rather, I passed you. You refused to
-accept a lift.’</p>
-
-<p>Ivor Restormel smiled back at him.</p>
-
-<p>‘It was awfully good of you,’ he replied. ‘I have
-never been offered a lift by a motor before. But, you
-see, I was so close to Restormel, it would hardly have
-been worth while.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Are you staying here?’ inquired Kingston, more
-and more strongly drawn to this new acquaintance.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes; Jack Hoope-Arkwright is a great friend of<span class="pagenum">[324]</span>
-mine. We are at Oxford together. And, besides, I
-belong here in a sort of way. The place used to be my
-people’s. I am Ivor Restormel.’</p>
-
-<p>The name instantly brought back to Kingston’s
-mind that deadly accident which had eventually been
-the secondary cause of Isabel’s death. He shuddered.
-But the link of recollection thus forged seemed to
-bind him more closely to young Restormel. The boy
-had an inexplicably strong fascination. He was
-pleasant, he was good-looking, he was well built; but
-there was something else. He was more attractive
-than all these good qualities could have made him.
-Kingston took an increasing pleasure in hearing him
-speak.</p>
-
-<p>‘I remember all about you,’ answered the older man.
-‘My wife used to know your mother well. It was my
-wife you have been sitting next to. Perhaps she told
-you how she used to know your people.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston knew Gundred’s devoted loyalty to all old
-friends and neighbours, and was anxious to impress
-Ivor Restormel’s identity upon her, foreseeing that it
-would incline her favourably to his sudden plan of
-seeing as much as possible of the young fellow.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes, Lady Gundred soon recognised who I was.
-But I am afraid she was a little disappointed in me. I
-think I could see it.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston was slightly alarmed. He knew Gundred’s
-prejudices of old&mdash;soft and mild as milk; hard, ineluctable
-as iron.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, nonsense!’ he replied, with more anxiety than
-the occasion appeared to warrant. ‘My wife is always
-a little cool and non-committal when she meets people
-for the first time. You will soon get accustomed to
-her.’</p>
-
-<p>It never occurred to him that he was apparently
-explaining his wife, more or less apologetically, to a<span class="pagenum">[325]</span>
-total stranger. Ivor Restormel was puzzled. His
-beauty had already made him many sudden friends,
-had immensely helped him on his way through life,
-predisposing everyone in his favour; but it had never
-yet kindled such a fire of zeal as seemed to be developing
-in Mr. Darnley. He was inclined to be cautious in
-acceptance, and during the rest of the meal gave
-careful, quiet answers to Kingston’s advances. But
-Kingston had not the faintest interest in the boy’s
-beauty, nor, precisely, in the boy himself. It was
-the acquaintance, the old friend in him, that Kingston
-divined so keenly, and was eager to investigate more
-fully. The vehement attraction that he felt towards
-Ivor Restormel was something, so to speak, impersonal,
-something quite unconnected with the boy’s pleasant
-manners or agreeable face. It was an attraction
-towards something deep and hidden in the young
-fellow’s personality, and the attraction grew stronger
-and clearer with every minute of their dialogue.</p>
-
-<p>At last the time came to go into the drawing-room.
-The men rose, and drifted in knots towards the door.
-Kingston, as he went, retained possession of young
-Restormel, despite the evident anxiety of Mr. Hoope-Arkwright
-and Sir Nigel to have a word with Lady
-Gundred’s husband.</p>
-
-<p>‘Look here,’ he said. ‘How long are you staying
-with the Hoope-Arkwrights? Come over to Brakelond,
-will you? Come over to-morrow. I should like
-you to see the place.’</p>
-
-<p>Ivor Restormel accepted the unexpected invitation
-with thanks. Jack Hoope-Arkwright, following in
-their wake, wondered at the precipitate friendliness
-of Mr. Darnley. Such sudden hospitality was by no
-means in the traditions of Brakelond. A long preliminary
-purification was generally necessary before
-Lady Gundred considered her friends well tested<span class="pagenum">[326]</span>
-enough to be invited to the Castle. And here was Ivor
-Restormel, after half an hour’s acquaintance, not only
-asked, but pressed to come, and to come as soon as
-possible. Times were changing indeed. It had taken
-the Hoope-Arkwrights three years to know the Darnleys,
-and eight to be dined with by them.</p>
-
-<p>The rest of the evening passed without event. Gundred,
-however, gradually grew displeased with her
-surroundings. At first she had duly been throned on
-the best sofa, and listened to in silent admiration while
-she pronounced on the weather, the decadence of decorum
-in the servants’ hall, and the proper management
-of cooks. But ere long Lady Pope, whom, in
-her mind, Gundred characterized as a pushing young
-person, had begun to cut in frivolously, irreverently,
-with jokes and stories. Gundred, who had a faint
-instinct that all wit was more or less vulgar, did her
-best to repress these interruptions; but her efforts
-were vain, and soon even her devout hostess was
-listening and laughing at Lady Pope’s sallies. Lady
-Gundred was left rather out of the picture, and her
-authoritative comments on cooks began to lose their
-hold on the general attention. Then when the men
-appeared it was even worse. Lady Pope became the
-centre of a court; even those who came to make their
-dutiful obeisance to Lady Gundred passed hastily on,
-after a few pallid words about the weather, to join the
-cheerful crowd round the younger woman. Then
-games were played, largely at Lady Pope’s instigation;
-and Gundred, who would have disliked any proposal
-that sprung from one whom she now felt herself compelled
-to regard, however disdainfully, as a rival,
-had, further, personal reasons for disapproving this
-development. For she sang; and she expected, accordingly,
-to be asked to sing. Her music was waiting
-outside to be fetched; it would have been obviously<span class="pagenum">[327]</span>
-proper of Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright to press her most
-important guest to perform. But apparently everyone
-preferred the thoughtless gaiety of this unprofitable
-evening to hearing Lady Gundred discoursing
-Chaminade in her neat and well-drilled little flute of a
-voice, which, as her friends said in extenuation, was so
-truly wonderful for a woman of forty.</p>
-
-<p>Finally, to add to all these annoyances, she saw her
-husband neglecting everyone else in the room to talk
-to that young man for whom she had conceived such
-a repulsion. She would rather, even, have seen him
-spending the time in attendance on that forward Lady
-Pope. But Kingston was so distressingly friendly.
-Actuated by many collaborating motives, Gundred
-made haste to ask for her carriage, and showed every
-sign of imminent departure, much to the distress of
-hospitable Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright. Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright
-felt that the evening had not been altogether
-satisfactory since dinner. Lady Pope had evidently
-shone excessively; and the light of Lady Gundred
-Darnley had been thereby most unjustly dimmed. It
-grew plain that Lady Gundred was a little put out.
-Gaiety and dignity were hard to combine. Lady
-Pope offered the gaiety; Lady Gundred the dignity.
-And the two ambitions were irreconcilable; for it was
-already clear that Lady Gundred could not amuse&mdash;certainly
-not while Lady Pope was of the party.
-Grievously did Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright regret that she
-had infused the gay and sparkling element of the
-young woman into what she had meant to be the
-serene if soporific delights of a dinner made illustrious
-by the presence of March and Brakelond. But it was
-now too late for regret, and no entreaties could soften
-Lady Gundred’s determination to go.</p>
-
-<p>‘Thanks so much,’ said Gundred sweetly. ‘Such
-a delightful evening. We have enjoyed ourselves so<span class="pagenum">[328]</span>
-much. But we must really think of the horses.
-Good-night, Mrs. Hoope-Arkwright. Good-night&mdash;good-night&mdash;good-night.’</p>
-
-<p>Scattering bows and farewell condescension like a
-queen, the Lady Gundred Darnley moved towards the
-hall. Kingston obediently followed her, and soon the
-door of the brougham was shut upon them, and they
-were off. Gundred smoothed out her flounce with a
-certain pettishness unusual to her calm temperament.</p>
-
-<p>‘A dreadful house,’ she said decisively, ‘so horribly
-rich and new&mdash;and the most vulgar and trying people.
-One wonders how even the Hoope-Arkwrights contrive
-to collect such a crew. Surely, Kingston, I could not
-have heard you asking one of them to come to Brakelond?
-Just as we were leaving. It must have been
-my fancy, of course.’ She was sitting very upright,
-rigid with rectitude, her pale lips compressed, her pale
-eyes gleaming scornfully. Kingston felt like a guilty
-child.</p>
-
-<p>‘Only young Restormel,’ he said. ‘You will like
-him, Gundred. I am sure you will like him immensely.
-He is one of the most attractive people I have ever
-met. After all, he is an old neighbour of yours, not
-like the Hoope-Arkwrights and the rest of their
-friends. I made him promise to come over to-morrow.
-And then, later on, he might come to stay with us for
-a bit. I should like you to see more of him, Gundred.
-He will be someone for you to help and befriend.’</p>
-
-<p>A very long silence, leaden and ominous, filled the
-brougham. Then Gundred spoke, in a bland, deliberate
-low voice.</p>
-
-<p>‘Really, Kingston,’ she said, ‘you are almost
-trying at times.’</p>
-
-<p>Her husband felt himself annihilated. This, from
-Gundred, was very heavy rebuke. He made no answer,
-and they drove on to Brakelond without another word.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[329]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XVIII</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Gundred, however, was too good a wife to make
-useless difficulties. As her husband had invited this
-young man, this young man must clearly be endured.
-After all, the visit would soon be over, and she herself
-need not put in more than a bare appearance. To
-tell the truth, she was not quite easy as to her own
-attitude in the matter. It could not be altogether
-right to conceive such violent antipathies, and she
-was painfully surprised to find herself entertaining
-such a feeling. She told herself that there could be
-no smoke without fire, and that sooner or later her
-infallible female instinct would be found justified.
-But until it should be so found justified, she was far
-too conscientiously good a woman to be happy in the
-indulgence of an unreasonable hatred. Accordingly,
-she deliberately suppressed her annoyance, and made it
-her penance to receive Ivor Restormel on the morrow
-with her usual quiet grace. The effort brought its own
-reward; dislike him mysteriously, instinctively, she still
-did and always would, but there was no longer the uncomfortable
-vehemence about the feeling. She could
-tolerate him, though she could not make him welcome.</p>
-
-<p>Ivor Restormel walked over in the afternoon.
-Gundred gave him tea and then left him to her husband’s
-care, on the plea of a post to catch. Kingston
-took his guest into the new wing that had been built
-on the promontory after the fire, and proceeded to
-question him and talk to him more exhaustively than
-had been possible the night before amid the exigencies
-of a party, no matter how scandalously disregarded.
-There was no beginning about their friendship, it
-seemed to Kingston, no breaking of new ground. It
-was simply the picking up of a dropped thread where<span class="pagenum">[330]</span>
-it had fallen. The feeling was strange and almost
-uncanny, the more so that it was evidently not shared
-by Ivor Restormel. He received his host’s overtures
-with diffidence, seemed ill at ease, at a loss to understand
-the warmth of his treatment. Mr. Darnley was
-nothing more to him than a chance acquaintance of
-the night before. As the dialogue went forward, too,
-the visitor’s uneasiness became more and more marked.
-His face took on a strange look of strain and anxiety;
-in his speech could be heard from time to time that note
-of abstraction which can be heard in a voice whose
-owner is trying hard to keep up a conversation, while
-his mind is fixed far away on the contemplation of
-unpleasant private matters. Kingston watched the
-expression of his guest’s eyes, the curious hunted fear
-that his whole manner began to suggest, and again
-experienced more strongly than ever the mysterious
-feeling of having seen that manner, that strained expression,
-somewhere before. His memory must be
-playing him the maddest tricks; for he could have
-sworn that this boy was well known to him in every
-detail of face and disposition; yet by now it was
-clearly proved&mdash;as clearly proved, at least, as anything
-in this world could ever be&mdash;that the two had never
-met, and never even set eyes on each other before.
-But Kingston still hoped against hope that a chance
-discovery in the dialogue might reveal some hint or
-glimpse of a former meeting, however brief, partial,
-trifling. Thus, and thus alone, could his instinct be
-justified.</p>
-
-<p>But, as the conversation went forward, the visitor’s
-uneasiness grew keener and more unsettling. At last
-it could no longer be controlled.</p>
-
-<p>‘I should awfully like to see some more of the Castle,’
-he said. ‘You said something last night about showing
-me the pictures.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[331]</span></p>
-
-<p>But the boy’s evident wish to move was too interesting
-to be gratified. Kingston saw it, could not
-understand it, meant to understand it.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, there will be heaps of time,’ he replied. ‘You
-must come over again some afternoon. But it takes
-at least a day to see the Castle thoroughly. We may
-just as well stay here peacefully. Really, these are
-the most comfortable rooms in the whole building,
-although they are quite modern.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Modern, are they?’ answered young Restormel.
-It was a silly answer, and betrayed the inattention of
-his mind. For the rooms were too obviously modern
-for any comment on the fact to be other than fatuous.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes, they were only built about&mdash;yes, twenty
-years ago.’</p>
-
-<p>Ivor Restormel leapt to his feet. His anxiety
-culminated, seemed mysteriously confirmed. His eyes
-were filled with a horror he was trying to conceal.
-‘Surely,’ he stammered, ‘these are not the rooms that
-were restored after the&mdash;&mdash;’</p>
-
-<p>‘After the fire? Yes. This was where the old
-wing stood.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I thought so; I knew they must be,’ replied Ivor
-Restormel with forced calm. ‘And they have not
-got rid of the smell yet. I noticed it as soon as I got
-inside.’</p>
-
-<p>‘The smell! What smell?’ asked his host, amused
-by this odd notion of his visitor’s, and sniffing about
-for the aroma of dead rats.</p>
-
-<p>‘The smell of fire,’ said Ivor Restormel, speaking in
-a low voice, as of a thing too dreadful to be talked
-of in normal tones. ‘The whole place is full of the
-smell of fire. Don’t you notice it, Mr. Darnley? I
-suppose nothing can be on fire now? No; it is the
-stale old smell of a fire that has been out for a long
-time&mdash;the sharp, beastly smell of charred wood and<span class="pagenum">[332]</span>
-burnt stone. I know it so well.’ He shivered against
-his will.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston was startled at this strange new development.
-He had heard nothing of Ivor Restormel’s
-hidden horror. Gundred had disliked the whole subject
-too much to tattle about it. Kingston was
-astounded at the sudden fantastic anxiety of his
-guest, the perturbation of his manners, his evident
-discomposure. So vivid was Ivor Restormel’s apprehension
-that it even impressed itself on Kingston.
-The host inhaled the air sharply. There was not the
-faintest suggestion of fire or smoke. The room was
-sleepily fragrant with potpourri from the old perforated
-jade censer on the corner table. Otherwise
-there was nothing in the air. And yet it was evident
-that Ivor Restormel was dodging some secret terror
-that was almost on the point of breaking covert and
-declaring itself.</p>
-
-<p>‘You have got a most wonderful imagination,’ said
-Kingston at last. ‘There is no smell of fire here. On
-my word, there isn’t. There couldn’t be. The fire
-was put out twenty years ago, hang it all! The
-smell of it could not very well be hanging about here
-still.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No; I suppose not,’ answered the other, obviously
-quite unconvinced.</p>
-
-<p>Then, lamely, hesitatingly, he explained the reasons
-why the memories of the catastrophe at Brakelond
-had become so closely involved with his own life, and
-what a troublesome legacy it had left him through the
-shock that his mother had suffered. Kingston was
-more and more stirred.</p>
-
-<p>‘I never heard anything more extraordinary,’ he
-replied. ‘Suggestion, I suppose it must be. And
-this room makes you feel uncomfortable even now, I
-can see, and you manage to smell fire where there<span class="pagenum">[333]</span>
-has been no fire for twenty years. And yet you have
-no more recollections?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Recollections? I don’t quite know what there
-could be for me to recollect.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, to tell you the truth, when I first saw you on
-the road, I had a vague and yet a very strong feeling
-that you and I have met before, and known each other
-quite well. I imagine that was all a mistake? See
-if you can’t remember any previous meeting between
-us, though. It would be interesting if you could, for
-my instinct was quite extraordinarily clear on the
-point, though my memory seems to say accurately and
-definitely that I had never seen your face till I passed
-you in the car yesterday afternoon.’</p>
-
-<p>Ivor Restormel shook his head positively, and made
-haste to answer in the negative. The question did not
-interest him in the least. The one feeling of which he
-was conscious was his tyrannous need of getting away
-from those serene and pleasant modern rooms, which,
-to his excited fancy, seemed full of horrid ghosts.</p>
-
-<p>‘No,’ he said. ‘I am pretty well certain we can
-never have met before. I was brought up abroad, you
-see, by my mother, after they sold Restormel. And
-the last two or three years I have been living at Oxford.
-I have not been to London or anywhere where we could
-have met. No&mdash;no.... I say, I am a most awful
-idiot to-day. I can’t imagine what has come over
-me,’ he cried abruptly. ‘But this jolly room of yours&mdash;well,
-it feels to me horribly uncanny. You say there
-is no fire, and of course there isn’t; yet the smell is
-in my nostrils and my throat all the time, choking and
-stifling me. Did you ever hear such rot? Do you
-mind if we go out in the garden or somewhere? I’m
-not often taken like this, please believe me. I have
-never felt anything like this in my life. I told you how
-I hate and dread fire, though I have never suffered<span class="pagenum">[334]</span>
-from it; but nothing has ever given me such an awful
-impression of fire as I feel here to-day.’</p>
-
-<p>He had been standing ever since he rose from his
-chair, or walking uneasily from end to end of the room.
-Now he stood in front of his host, gazing at him with
-eyes which, for all his tongue’s pretence at ease, were
-filled with a haunting dread. Kingston was deeply
-moved by the spectacle of this fighting terror before
-him. The terror moved his pity, the courage of its
-victim moved his admiration. And, behind everything
-else lay the curiosity that this manifestation
-woke in him. But he could no longer disregard his
-visitor’s eagerness to be gone elsewhere. He rose
-from the window-seat.</p>
-
-<p>‘I am sorry,’ he said. ‘I cannot understand it.
-Yes, let us go, if you wish. We might take a turn in
-the garden. I would not have brought you in here if
-I had had the slightest idea that you feel like this. But
-I never could have believed that such a stretch of
-imagination was possible.’ Kingston broke off, studying
-the controlled fear in the young man’s face. Then
-he abruptly began again. ‘Look here,’ he said, ‘do
-tell me exactly what it is you see and feel that gets
-on your nerves so. I cannot understand it.’</p>
-
-<p>Ivor Restormel glanced round the room. Under
-Gundred’s supervision it had been rebuilt in a cool and
-placid modern style. Everything in it was pretty,
-graceful, harmonious. The walls were panelled in
-white; flowers were standing about in tall blue glasses.
-The big windows admitted shafts of soft afternoon
-light through their drawn white blinds, and the whole
-impression was one of fragrant, comfortable peace.</p>
-
-<p>But Ivor Restormel’s eyes saw something very
-different.</p>
-
-<p>After a pause he answered, huskily, in broken,
-difficult tones:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[335]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘You will think me more of an ass than you do
-already,’ he replied. ‘I suppose it must be my
-mother’s stories that account for it. But, besides the
-awful smell of burning here, I seem to see a horrible
-wreckage of charred ruins. Oh, I can see these walls
-and all the jolly decorations. And yet, somehow,
-when I look again they are not there any longer. There
-is only the shell of some other building, something all
-fallen in and blistered and blackened with fire. Great
-heaps of ashes and bleached rubbish are piled high
-between what is left of the walls. The whole place is
-choking with the stale fumes of smoke. And the
-rooms are open to the grey sky far overhead; and grey
-drifts of rain come dashing in from time to time on
-the smouldering masses.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston watched his visitor’s face with an amazement
-that bereft him of words.</p>
-
-<p>‘By God!’ he said slowly, wondering where his
-thoughts would lead him in the next few minutes.
-‘By God! you describe it exactly as if you had been
-here twenty years ago.’</p>
-
-<p>Ivor Restormel shook his head fiercely, as if trying
-to shake off some horrid, persistent memory.</p>
-
-<p>‘I feel as if I had,’ he replied suddenly. ‘I feel just
-as if I had been here twenty years ago, worse luck.
-The moment I came into the room I saw it all. I felt&mdash;oh,
-well, I felt that I must have been here in the ruins
-ever so long ago, and had the worst time here that
-anyone ever had&mdash;as if I had been tied by the leg here,
-somehow, and pinned down in damnable terror and
-pain.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Come along out of it,’ said Kingston quietly, after
-a pause. He dared not trust himself to say more. An
-idea had been born in his brain&mdash;born, or called once
-more to life?&mdash;an idea so wild, so fantastic, that he
-hardly dared to entertain it. And yet, in the depths<span class="pagenum">[336]</span>
-of his heart, he knew that it was the truth. In silence
-he led the way towards the Castle, while his visitor
-tried to impress upon his unheeding ears a dozen
-apologies for the gross and idiotic folly of which his
-nerves had made him guilty.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as he was out of the fateful room all his self-possession
-seemed to have returned, and he could not
-account for the sudden vertigo of terror that had
-haunted him there. What had come over him he could
-not imagine. Mr. Darnley must certainly think him
-the most confounded idiot. What must Mr. Darnley
-think of anyone who could let himself be made such a
-rude, mannerless idiot of by a sort of hysterical schoolgirl
-qualm? The whole thing was too asinine for
-words. He had no excuse to make.</p>
-
-<p>And all the time Mr. Darnley said nothing, heard
-nothing of his guest’s protestations. This beautiful
-nervous boy had no interest for Kingston Darnley;
-he did not care what he said or felt or looked like.
-But the terror that haunted Ivor Restormel was not
-his; the mysterious attraction that filled him was not
-his own. Somewhere, deep down in his being, lived
-Something that had felt that terror, Something that
-exercised that attraction over Kingston, Something
-that called to Kingston as an old friend. And that
-Something, Kingston knew it, heard it calling to him
-imperiously out of the eternal past. It was the Something
-that had once carried the name and shape of
-Isabel. There was no mistaking it. Now at last
-Kingston understood what it was that had gripped him
-yesterday on the road, what inexplicable summons of
-old friendship. The dead had come back to him after
-many years. But clothed in alien flesh, forming part
-of a new personality, shut off from recognition by the
-barriers of the body. For in this boy lived only the
-one fragmentary recollection of the final catastrophe.<span class="pagenum">[337]</span>
-Nothing in Kingston’s soul, no call of ancient kinship,
-no appeal to bygone pledges, could penetrate to the
-ears of that secret self. The dead had come back,
-known to him, but incapable of knowing him again.
-How could he wake memory in that changed thing
-which had returned, at once the same, and yet so
-different, in its freedom from that bond which once had
-made them one, and now, still as strong as ever in the
-hold it had over himself, had broken and fallen away
-for ever from the other soul it had gripped? Kingston
-looked at his visitor with a feeling that drew near to
-hatred. This stranger held the thing he still loved.
-The body and the shape of it was an irrelevant, a
-maddening accident; it was the secret thing that Kingston
-called to, the secret thing that was prevented
-from hearing by this new personality in which it had
-clothed itself. Kingston felt a sharp grudge against
-Ivor Restormel, his body, his brain, his beauty. That
-body, that brain, that beauty made the locked casket
-that imprisoned the living dead. And yet, inasmuch
-as Ivor Restormel was the shrine of that lost passion,
-he was, on the other hand, ineffably precious and
-sacred. He could not be let go. The boy himself
-was less than nothing; but what he held was more
-than everything.</p>
-
-<p>Ivor Restormel thought his host justifiably offended,
-and tried to mitigate the effect of his own silly rudeness.
-But his pleasant chatter fell on unheeding
-ears, and he began to think that he had alienated
-Mr. Darnley beyond reconciliation. And no wonder.
-Who could be expected to put up with a puling idiot
-like that? Ivor Restormel mentally kicked himself,
-and felt that he would gladly have vindicated his
-character by returning into those haunted rooms.
-Without having any special wish to please either of
-the Darnleys, he was one of those people who always<span class="pagenum">[338]</span>
-like to be popular, and grow faintly unhappy when they
-fail to make a favourable impression. He did all he
-could to mollify his host, and was distressed, though
-not surprised, to find all his efforts fall flat. In
-ordinary circumstances he would not have minded
-so much; but now he felt that he really owed Mr.
-Darnley some extra pleasantness, if only to make up
-for having just made so egregious an ass of himself.
-He tried his level best to set matters right; but for
-a long time he got no answer&mdash;or at most an absent-minded
-monosyllable. Kingston was not yet equal to
-conversing with this tiresome young interloper who
-had come between himself and the dead, while, at the
-same time, revealing at last to him the return of the
-lost. They walked in silence up and down the garden
-together, while Gundred watched them from an upper
-window, disliking the visitor as much as ever, and
-wondering when in the world he would begin to think
-about going.</p>
-
-<p>‘Wanted to see the pictures, didn’t you?’ said
-Kingston abruptly at last, cutting, regardless, into
-something that the other was saying.</p>
-
-<p>Ivor Restormel felt more and more out of place.
-Evidently he would do well to say good-bye. However,
-he could not escape from this civility of his host,
-however perfunctory. So he followed Kingston as he
-strode into the Castle, paying no attention to the boy
-at his heels. Gradually Kingston was beginning to
-recover his composure and face the inevitable. This
-wonderful secret certainty of his must be cherished
-and acted on, though already he began to taste something
-of the pain that had been foretold him, from incessant
-yearning knowledge of a thing that could not
-recognise him in turn, and could never recognise him
-again. The door between them was of locked iron&mdash;a
-vain agony to beat against. And yet it was not an<span class="pagenum">[339]</span>
-agony that he could spare himself, for, though the
-door was of locked iron for ever, yet behind it dwelt
-the thing he had sought for so long. He saw now the
-irony of his fate. But nothing could divert its course.
-Ivor Restormel found his host growing calmer and
-more courteous again. Soon he was even cordial, and
-the tension of the situation seemed at an end. The
-two men passed through the picture-gallery, giving a
-share of attention to every picture, though each, in
-reality, was busy with his own thoughts, Ivor feeling
-the satisfaction of successful effort, and Kingston foreboding
-the anguish of an effort that could never be
-successful. At last they had gone the length of the
-gallery, and stood before the old panel of Queen Isabel.</p>
-
-<p>‘Here is the She-wolf,’ said Kingston pleasantly.
-‘Don’t you think she looks her name? Isabel of
-France and England.’</p>
-
-<p>The younger man laughed uneasily.</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ he answered. ‘An evil lady, I suppose? It
-is curious what a horror I have of the very name.
-Isabel&mdash;it seems to stand to me for everything I hate
-most in the world, fire included. I must have some
-beastly memory somewhere connected with the name
-of Isabel, but I cannot lay my hands upon it.’</p>
-
-<p>The little artless admission roused Kingston to the
-highest point of excitement. He must penetrate to
-the secret haunt of that soul which had such clear
-flashes of recognition. The task <em>must</em> not be hopeless.
-He turned almost savagely upon his guest.</p>
-
-<p>‘Restormel,’ he said, ‘what do you mean by that?
-For God’s sake, think&mdash;think hard, and tell me what
-you mean by that. Think, man, think.’</p>
-
-<p>The vehemence of his attack, however, had no effect
-upon the younger man. Kingston had hoped that by
-its sheer sudden intensity it must inevitably strike a
-chord of memory, must inevitably rouse up the sleeping<span class="pagenum">[340]</span>
-soul with its cry of eagerness. But it failed&mdash;failed
-utterly, and his mood fell back baffled.</p>
-
-<p>‘I’d tell you if I could,’ protested Ivor. ‘But, upon
-my soul, I can’t. It is just another of my idiotic
-crazes. I wish I had not told you now. It only
-makes one seem more of an ass than one did before.
-Anyhow, I think I must be getting back to Restormel,
-Mr. Darnley. Thanks so much for letting me come
-over. I have awfully enjoyed seeing the Castle.
-Will you say good-bye for me to Lady Gundred?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Look here,’ said Kingston, suddenly kindled to
-anxiety by this threat of departure&mdash;‘look here.
-What are you going to do, Restormel, when you leave
-the Hoope-Arkwrights? I mean, what are your
-plans in life?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Mine? Oh, well, I hardly know. I have got to
-make some money somehow. There isn’t a penny-piece
-for us to live on. I shall have to be a clerk, or
-something of the kind, I imagine. My mother sent me
-to Oxford because she wanted me to make my living
-by teaching. But it does not seem that there is much
-chance of that nowadays. The world swarms with
-tutors and masters.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston saw his chance. It was unthinkable that
-this recovered joy of his life should be allowed to pass
-away again immediately, leaving him in the darkness
-that he had endured for twenty years. He could not
-bear the thought of parting with Ivor Restormel.
-The very notion was a pain.</p>
-
-<p>‘But look here,’ he said abruptly, ‘why not come to
-us and be my secretary, and do tutor to my son Jim,
-perhaps, in the holidays? I am sure we should all get
-on capitally together, and, honestly, I don’t think that
-you could easily pick up anything much better. And
-we’d do our best for you. What do you say?’</p>
-
-<p>Ivor, confounded at this sudden proposition, the<span class="pagenum">[341]</span>
-last thing that he had expected after his behaviour of
-that afternoon, lost himself in thanks and self-depreciation.
-Kingston would hear of no such hesitations.</p>
-
-<p>‘We might just as well settle it now,’ he said.
-‘There’s nothing to consider much, or think over&mdash;that
-is, if you really care to try this kind of work.
-You know about us, and we know about you; and, so
-far as we are concerned, I don’t see that anything could
-possibly have fallen out more conveniently.’</p>
-
-<p>‘But I&mdash;do you think I should be able to do what
-you want?’ asked Ivor Restormel. ‘Remember,
-please, I have never attempted anything of the sort
-before. You may not find me what you like, after all.’</p>
-
-<p>‘One knows that sort of thing as well at the end of
-five minutes, very often, as at the end of five years.
-I am quite certain that you are exactly the sort of
-fellow we want. I knew it the first moment we met.
-So don’t make any more difficulties or apologies, but
-just say that you will come to us.’</p>
-
-<p>‘But of course, if you really think&mdash;well, I shall be
-delighted, of course.’</p>
-
-<p>‘That’s right. And there’s no particular reason for
-putting things off, is there? So come to us as soon
-as you can. To-morrow, or the day after. You won’t
-want to stay much longer with those Hoope-Arkwright
-people. And I should like you to get accustomed to
-us and the place before we go off to my place in Yorkshire
-and our son Jim comes home.’</p>
-
-<p>And so, after a few more faint demurrings, Ivor
-Restormel, bewildered and dazed by the rapid development
-of events, found himself pledged to take up his
-residence at Brakelond with the least possible delay.
-Matters being thus settled to Kingston’s satisfaction,
-he allowed his visitor to depart, and then began to
-brace himself to the task of breaking his latest plan to
-Gundred.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[342]</span></p>
-
-<p>The good wife neither raves nor flouts. But, if she
-be good enough, she has the power of being quite
-wonderfully disagreeable in a mild and dutiful manner.
-Gundred had never countered Kingston with any ill-bred
-vehemence, but by now he knew that on occasions
-she could don a pious resignation inexpressibly
-hard to bear. Some such display, he was afraid, might
-greet his announcement, for, to his experienced eye, it
-was already plain that she did not approve of Ivor
-Restormel. Her sweetness to him had had a certain
-glacial tone which Kingston well knew. He anticipated
-that she might make difficulties.</p>
-
-<p>But events were moving too rapidly for Gundred’s
-orderly habit of mind. She was too much taken aback
-when she heard the arrangement that her husband
-had made to offer any coherent or valid opposition.
-A vague passion of wrath possessed her, and her anger
-lost half its efficacy with all its usual crushing calm.
-For Gundred, the imperturbably gentle and correct,
-so far forgot herself as to combat Kingston’s plan with
-violent obloquy. Never before had he seen her unreasonable,
-or hysterically bellicose; and the unusual
-spectacle, so far from compelling his sympathy, only
-hardened his decision by its contrast with her usual
-well-regulated temper. Had a glimpse of the past
-been vouchsafed to him, after all these years, that he
-should now forego the agonizing joy of it, simply
-because his wife chose to abandon herself to a groundless
-antipathy against a young man, a perfect stranger,
-in whom she, of all people, could certainly not discern
-that inmost inhabitant whose presence gave him so
-strong a claim on Kingston? No, her foolishness
-justified him in disregarding her opposition.</p>
-
-<p>As for Gundred, she lost her head, lost it completely,
-in the complete surprise that overwhelmed her. Imagining
-that a meal or so at Brakelond would mark<span class="pagenum">[343]</span>
-the extent of her husband’s ridiculous fancy for the
-boy against whom her instinct so urgently warned her,
-she had been content to allow matters their course,
-considering resistance unnecessary. And now, while
-she acquiesced, matters had suddenly grown to such
-a pitch that resistance was no longer possible. The
-situation had passed beyond her control. At first she
-could hardly believe that Kingston really meant to
-disregard her hostility. Hitherto, through all their
-married life, husband and wife had never seriously
-clashed. A quiet tolerance towards each other’s plans
-had marked their relations. In fact, neither had really
-been sufficiently excited over the other’s actions ever
-to make a fuss. They trusted each other, and lived
-in the amity of confident indifference. Ideal as their
-union had been, though, it had been the union of two
-parts, not fused, but cemented; now at last, after
-twenty years, surged up the hot water of opposition,
-and in the moment of trial the cement revealed itself
-by melting. At a touch the two lives fell apart, and
-were separate once more. The revelation was a shock
-to Gundred.</p>
-
-<p>‘Kingston,’ she cried, ‘I tell you, I distrust that
-young man. I cannot think what you mean by proposing
-to have him in the house. The very moment
-I set eyes on him I felt that there was something wrong
-about him. A woman’s instinct is never mistaken,
-Kingston.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, don’t be so ridiculous, Gundred,’ answered her
-husband. ‘Have you anything definite to say? If
-so, say it, by all means, and we’ll think no more of the
-matter. But if you have not, don’t dishonour yourself
-by making scenes and abusing a young fellow of
-whom you know nothing but what is perfectly good.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And Jim?’ replied Gundred, taken at a disadvantage,
-and stripped in an instant of the lovely calm that<span class="pagenum">[344]</span>
-usually clothed her like a Paquin frock&mdash;‘my Jim?
-Am I to see my only child, Kingston, handed over to
-the company of a man against whom I have the very
-strongest feelings of fear and horror? Kingston, I
-tell you I look on that young man with positive fear
-and horror. Have I ever said anything like this
-before about anyone else? Do you think I am mad
-enough and unchristian enough to take prejudices
-like this without a reason? But it is stronger than
-I am, this feeling. It is so strong that I feel it would
-be wicked to disregard it. It is Heaven’s warning to
-us all. I know that it speaks the truth, Kingston;
-don’t be so obstinate.’</p>
-
-<p>Knowing in his secret heart what secret tie it was
-that bound him to the occupant of Ivor Restormel’s
-personality, Kingston could not but feel it strange
-and impressive that Gundred should have conceived
-so violent and instinctive animosity against the young
-fellow. Could it be a blind feeling of jealousy, recrudescent
-from the past? Anyhow, it was the very
-devil and all of an inconvenience. And, as no sort
-of wrong was meditated to Gundred, as no sort of
-wrong was possible, Kingston saw clearly that her unreasonableness
-not only allowed him, but enjoined
-him, in her own interests, to take a firm way of dealing
-with these hysterical passions. Had she been cool
-and staid as usual, he would have found the situation
-much more difficult to cope with; as it was, her dishevelled
-zeal gave him the advantage, and enabled
-him to assume the high position of one who has right
-and reason on his side.</p>
-
-<p>‘Hang it all, Gundred,’ he protested. ‘What a
-piece of work to make about nothing! One would
-have thought you would have been only too glad to
-help an old neighbour’s son. You are generally so
-keen to do what you can for people. Do try and get<span class="pagenum">[345]</span>
-over these absurd fancies. Do you suppose I am not
-just as anxious as you are that Jim shall be kept out
-of undesirable hands? Come, you don’t think me a
-fool, I hope? You don’t imagine that I should pick
-out a scoundrel for a whim? I tell you, I like this
-young fellow; I like him more than I can say. He
-attracts me strongly; I am sure we shall find him a
-great addition.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred looked up at him with righteous wrath in
-her eyes. ‘He must have bewitched you,’ she said,
-devoutly and sincerely. ‘The Forces of Evil sometimes
-have the most awful power. Oh, Kingston, listen to
-me. Be wise, and repent in time. Oh, I never
-thought it would come to this. Why, <em>why</em> did we
-ever dine with those dreadful people?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Gundred, you are either hysterical or medieval.
-And in either case, really one cannot argue with you.
-I have never seen you like this before. Poor boy!
-can you soberly think him an emissary of the devil?’
-Kingston laughed.</p>
-
-<p>But Gundred, among many other antiquated notions
-in which she took pride, retained a most steadfast belief
-in the bodily existence of Satan. To be old-fashioned
-in manners, mind, morals&mdash;in everything but clothes&mdash;was
-her especial glory. In London she claimed to
-be conspicuous by her old-world excellencies. When
-she met, or heard&mdash;for they did not frequent her set&mdash;of
-other Dukes’ wives and daughters who were frivolous
-and freethinking and modern, Gundred took
-pride in asserting the obvious fact that she was not
-as they, that she continued to give a rare and beautiful
-example of pristine decorum to her order. Her friends
-might find the spectacle dull, but they could never
-deny that it was edifying. And among the old-fashioned
-adornments with which she persisted in
-decking her habit of mind, her belief in the Powers<span class="pagenum">[346]</span>
-of evil, of witchcraft and possession, were given not
-the least important place. She described herself complacently
-as an old-fashioned Christian, and never
-passed a palmist’s placard in Bond Street without
-feeling that the law ought to have more scruples about
-allowing a witch to live. Now, accordingly, she
-primmed her lips fiercely at Kingston’s scepticism.</p>
-
-<p>‘All I know is,’ she answered, ‘that these warnings
-are sent us for our good, and that the Powers of Evil
-are for ever round us, seeking whom they may devour.
-Kingston, will you, or will you not, pay attention to
-what I say?’</p>
-
-<p>By this time her truculent attitude had dissipated
-her husband’s last lingering scruples. Looked at very
-minutely, very casuistically, perhaps it was not perfectly
-fair to force upon Gundred someone she disliked,
-simply because he himself desired to keep watch and
-communion with the precious personality that dwelt
-within the object of her hostility, and probably was
-the unknown cause of it. But nothing of all this could
-Gundred possibly know, for one thing; and, for another,
-her attitude had become so grotesquely exaggerated
-and defiant that no husband of any sense or spirit
-could be justified in giving way to it. Why, the
-situation was preposterous and transpontine to an
-intolerable degree. His own sudden fantastic instinct
-had been strange and grotesque enough, in all conscience;
-but Gundred’s fury of opposition lent yet a
-further touch of grotesqueness which removed the
-whole episode into the domain of mystical melodrama.
-Why, they might be living in a novel of Lytton or
-Mortimer Collins, instead of in a very comfortable and
-orderly present into which had suddenly flashed a
-gleam of romance out of an equally comfortable and
-orderly past. Kingston would not recognise his own
-instinct as anything abnormal, and was bent on keeping<span class="pagenum">[347]</span>
-all suggestion of the abnormal out of his human
-relations. The prenatal memory, he knew, was not
-only a fact, but a fact&mdash;at any rate, in the East,
-where memory and its training are better understood
-than over here&mdash;of no uncommon occurrence. There
-was nothing strange in the fact that in this boy of
-twenty, there should still be lurking some fragmentary
-elements of the woman whose martyrdom and courage
-he reincarnated. Kingston would not decorate the
-situation with any romantic glamour; it was a plain,
-indisputable occurrence, and his whole life should
-insist on treating it as a matter of course. In his
-violent resolve to keep the young fellow close at hand
-there was no sentiment, no idiotic feeling of attachment
-for the young man himself, or any objectionable
-nonsense of that kind. The young fellow was of no
-account at all. Kingston’s wish to secure his continued
-presence must be put down simply prosaically, solely,
-to his recognition of the fact that in the boy’s personality
-the lost Isabel sometimes spoke again, and
-therefore his company was doubly and trebly desirable;
-but only for what it conveyed, not in the least
-for what it was. And, all this being so, Kingston was
-the more irritated by the instinctive knowledge of the
-truth that Gundred’s absurd behaviour seemed to
-hint at, the more bent on resenting it, ignoring it,
-and, by determination in his own way, crushing out
-the signs of resistance that she was so vehemently
-showing.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, let’s have no more of this, Gundred,’ he exclaimed.
-‘You do not know what you are saying. I
-am exceedingly sorry to annoy you, but you know you
-would despise yourself and me if I gave way to such
-ridiculous nightmares. You will see things quite
-differently to-morrow. Do try and look at the matter
-more sensibly.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[348]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Man sends sense,’ cried Gundred, ‘and God sends
-instincts. Listen to God, Kingston, or you will be
-sorry for it.’</p>
-
-<p>He shrugged his shoulders cruelly.</p>
-
-<p>‘There is no coping with religious exaltation,’ he
-answered coldly, with a weary feeling that this woman
-at his side was quite alien to him in all her thoughts
-and ways.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred rose. ‘If that is what you call it,’ she
-replied, with more of her habitual dignity, ‘I think
-there is no more to be said.’</p>
-
-<p>‘I agree with you. There is nothing more to be
-said.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And this young man, Ivor Restormel, he is to come
-here in a day or two?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes,’ answered Kingston. ‘I settled it all up with
-him this afternoon.’</p>
-
-<p>‘And you absolutely refuse to give me what I ask
-for?’ went on Gundred, returning now, after the
-heat of the conflict, to the impressive calm of her usual
-manner. She was preparing a new attack.</p>
-
-<p>‘My dear Gundred,’ answered her husband, more
-gently now that he saw her more amenable, and therefore
-more worthy of consideration, ‘I will gladly spend
-the rest of my life doing what you wish, as long as you
-ask me for things I can in decency do.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Ah,’ replied Gundred, ‘that is what people always
-say. They will do everything in the world to please
-one, except the only thing one asks them for. <em>That</em> is
-never reasonable or right.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Well, it certainly was not in this case, now, was it,
-Gundred&mdash;honestly, now, was it? You asked me to
-throw this wretched young man over, to break my
-promise to him, to upset all his plans, to cast him
-adrift again after I had offered him our help. And
-why? All simply because you had been bored at the<span class="pagenum">[349]</span>
-Hoope-Arkwrights’ tedious dinner, and eaten something
-which disagreed with you, and made you look
-on all the world with a bilious, peevish eye, and on
-your luckless dinner-neighbour in particular. For
-that is what it all comes to, you know; that is what
-your wonderful edifice of instincts and suspicions and
-righteous qualms is founded on.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes; you may sneer,’ answered Gundred coolly,
-regaining her supremacy with her self-control. ‘It is
-always very easy to sneer. Well, I see that you must
-have your way; you will not listen to me. Somehow,
-I feel that there is something in the boy that stands
-between us&mdash;something that has been between us,
-somehow, for a long time, though we did not know it,
-and has now come to life again, or wakened up and set
-to work moving us apart. That may be my fancy,
-perhaps. I know I am upset. I am surprised and
-shocked. I expected better, happier things of you,
-Kingston. But this I will say, that if you won’t listen
-to what you call my foolish instincts, you will be very
-sorry for it some day. God will certainly punish you
-for disregarding the clear message that He sent you
-through me. And this obstinacy of yours will bring
-its own penalty in time. I know it. I know what
-you are doing is altogether wrong. And, as your wife,
-I shall put up with it. But day and night I shall pray
-God to remove this dreadful thing from our home. I
-shall pray that something may open your eyes.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston smiled uneasily, to disguise the impression
-that her appeal was making on his mood. ‘My dear
-Gundred,’ he said. ‘Pray by all means. The prayers
-of a good woman can never bring harm or pain.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Not even if you love the harm? Not even if you
-are wedded to the harm?’ asked Gundred. ‘Perhaps
-they might divorce you from the harm, and then that
-separation might be painful.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[350]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, don’t talk as if you meant to put poison in
-poor Ivor Restormel’s soup,’ cried Kingston, to relieve
-the tension of the situation. He did not, however,
-in his own conscience feel altogether easy. The
-more bent was he, therefore, on laughing down his
-wife’s denunciations.</p>
-
-<p>‘God chooses His own instruments for His own purposes,’
-answered Gundred earnestly. Then she rose,
-her demeanour filled with tranquil decision, with a
-stern majesty of protest that stirred again a twinge of
-remorse in her husband’s heart. Was it she that was
-foolish, or was it he that was selfish? After all, no
-sort of harm was planned against her, no disloyalty of
-any kind, no cooling of affection. If here and there a
-boy’s chance words contained the spirit of a long-dead
-woman, well, what was that to Gundred&mdash;especially as
-she could never know it? And his indulgence in the
-secret pleasure of those words could give no reasonable
-pain to her. And yet, so long as they did give her
-pain, did it very much matter whether the pain were
-reasonable or not, as far as the inflictor’s innocence or
-guilt was concerned? For what pain in the world
-is reasonable, if one looks far into the causes and the
-future of things? Kingston made haste to conclude
-that his actions could not possibly be expected to have
-reference to any silly feelings of Gundred’s that might
-engender pain in her, as the result of their own incalculable
-developments. Perhaps he made himself
-too many excuses, defended himself too vehemently,
-was in too great haste to declare himself convinced by
-his own arguments. He accepted Gundred’s last words
-without any symptom of yielding.</p>
-
-<p>And she who, up to the last moment, had never
-thought that her big guns could be fired without effect,
-was left helpless, defeated, plunged in the bathos of the
-situation.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[351]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘Good-night,’ she said, quietly disguising the black
-bruise that her heart had sustained.</p>
-
-<p>Had Kingston suspected it, he might, perhaps, have
-softened. But Gundred by now was once more the
-cool, self-righteous little faultless person he had always
-known. Her serene rectitude of voice and manner
-annoyed him.</p>
-
-<p>‘Good-night,’ he answered with equal coolness.
-Husband and wife went to their several rooms, after
-the first real quarrel of their married life. Innocently,
-ignorantly, Ivor Restormel had come between them&mdash;or,
-rather, the Thing that lived again in him had stirred
-again, as Gundred had divined, to intervene, as once
-before, between the two stranger-souls who, in the
-flesh, were contented husband and wife.</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XIX</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The interloper was established between Kingston and
-Gundred, and the purely formal nature of their marriage
-might have been clear even to themselves. They fell
-apart without wrench or difficulty, and on Gundred a
-heavy sense of loneliness settled like a cloud. She it
-was that suffered most from the separation, for she
-had not her husband’s compensations. All these years
-she had lived in the happiness of what she believed to
-be perfect intimacy with Kingston, sharing his hopes,
-his wishes, his thoughts; now, in a flash, she was made
-to guess that she had merely shared the outer aspects
-of his life, that the fancied beautiful completeness
-of their union was merely the band of tolerance
-strengthened through the long years by custom. Now
-that the elasticity of the tie that bound them was put
-to too great a stretch, it flew asunder, and, in the rebound,<span class="pagenum">[352]</span>
-struck Gundred a stinging blow. It was not,
-of course, to be expected of her that she should realize
-the situation clearly, or face the true state of the case
-with any perspicacious candour. All she felt was felt
-dimly, instinctively, half-consciously; not even to herself
-would she admit what she felt, or analyze the
-solitude that seemed gathering round her. But very
-vaguely, in the introduction of Ivor Restormel, she
-understood that she herself must somehow have failed&mdash;could
-not be quite all to her husband that she had
-imagined herself, must at some point have fallen short
-of the perfect wife’s proper performance. This uncomfortable
-perception, which caught her in her
-tenderest spot, she made haste to burke and bury in
-the depths of her consciousness. But its ghost occasionally
-walked; and, though she did the best for herself
-by insisting daily on her husband’s unjustifiable
-cruelty and the blackness of the influences that had
-seduced him, yet she could never wholly escape that
-faint instinct of failure which was the one thing that
-her efficiency-worshipping nature most passionately
-dreaded.</p>
-
-<p>The days went by in a strain that was wholly absurd,
-but also wholly unpleasant. Examining things in
-the light of healthy, normal experience, Gundred
-could not even tell herself that she had a grievance.
-She still feared and disliked the presence of Ivor
-Restormel, with a fear which no reason could account
-for, but which no reason could dispel. But in every
-way the boy was perfectly harmless and even pleasant.
-Gundred, in her heart of hearts had expected that her
-instinct would immediately be justified on closer
-acquaintance by discovering that Ivor Restormel took
-drugs, or read French novels, or had a tendency to
-gambling and kleptomania. She watched him carefully,
-in public and in private, secretly and openly,<span class="pagenum">[353]</span>
-hoping that some such development might force her
-husband to recognise the soundness of her intuitions,
-and get rid of the undesirable immigrant. However,
-none of these idiosyncrasies could be brought to light,
-observe she never so minutely. The boy was just an
-ordinary, nice, healthy boy; there was nothing vague
-or mysterious or neurotic about him; his personality
-had no strong colours anywhere, was altogether mild,
-unformed, healthy in its growth. And yet Gundred,
-recognising all this, could not help shrinking from him,
-shrinking from him more eagerly day by day, with
-a vigour of feeling not by any means wholly attributable
-to her anger against Kingston for disobeying her wishes
-in this matter. Among the weak points of her character
-a lack of honesty could not always be counted;
-she frankly acknowledged to herself that no fault
-could be found with Ivor Restormel. Good, kind,
-companionable, nice-minded, he appeared to be everything
-that she herself, by all the rules of her code,
-should most warmly have liked and approved. This
-only made it the odder, therefore, that she should
-feel against him so unconquerable a secret dislike.
-Gundred almost felt as if it were not the boy himself
-that she disliked, but some deep corner of his character
-which she seemed to have known and dreaded
-for many years. She divined in him a lurking enmity
-of which his own innocent and sunny nature was altogether
-unconscious. But Gundred pulled herself up
-short at this point, and refused to indulge in any such
-vain fantasies. People, it is well known, do not contain
-these dual personalities; if Gundred dreaded this
-boy, who, to all seeming, was everything sane and
-wholesome, her feeling could have nothing to do with
-any nonsensical superstition, but would certainly&mdash;if
-not sooner, then later&mdash;be disastrously shown to have
-been founded on fact, by the discovery of its object’s<span class="pagenum">[354]</span>
-carefully hidden iniquity. Gundred, as the days went
-by, withdrew herself more and more wholly from her
-husband’s life. Now she no longer took even a formal
-share in it. She stood outside and watched for her
-opportunity to strike at the intruder. That neither
-Kingston nor Gundred any longer felt how completely
-they were removed from each other in itself revealed
-the secret weakness which all these years had underlain
-the smooth, firm surface of their relations. Each, it
-appeared, could do perfectly well without the other,
-and only feel the separation as a matter for indignant
-pride.</p>
-
-<p>The interloper, meanwhile, was quite unconscious of
-the hidden passions that were seething round him.
-Ivor Restormel had a happy temperament that only
-looked for the best in everything. Reasons and explanations
-did not interest him, nor had he much
-subtlety to discern any animosity that did not take the
-form of a blow in the eye. So long as he was not made
-to enter the smoke-haunted rooms of Brakelond he was
-inclined simply and wholly to enjoy himself. What
-it all meant he had no idea, nor what he had done to
-attract so smooth and pleasant a life as seemed to be
-opening out before him. Occasionally he had a very
-faint suspicion that Lady Gundred, for some reason,
-did not entirely approve of him. But, then, she was
-always so mild and remote in manner, so it must only
-be his fancy; after all, he had done absolutely nothing
-to annoy her; and, anyway, what was the good of
-bothering? So he took the pleasures that the gods
-provided, without question or cavil, and began to enjoy
-the surroundings to which he had been so suddenly, so
-unexpectedly, transplanted. He had inherited a love
-of beauty, comfort, calm; the change from a penurious
-life spent between a third-rate Oxford college and a
-dingy little house in the Banbury Road, among people<span class="pagenum">[355]</span>
-no less distasteful than the lives they led&mdash;the change
-from all this to the large serenity of Brakelond was
-restful and delicious in the extreme. Here voices were
-never raised in queribund tones; here all the little
-difficulties of life were kept in oblivion, and existence
-went on oiled wheels along a gentle, placid course.
-Lady Gundred might be a little chilly and undemonstrative,
-but, at any rate, she was always smooth; she
-never fussed or grew peevish, was never worried about
-the details of housekeeping. Ivor Restormel loved the
-unquestioning quiet of his new life. As for his host,
-well, there he was altogether baffled.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Darnley seemed at once indifferent and enthusiastic
-about his new secretary. At one moment he
-would talk eagerly, almost affectionately; and then,
-again, he would be perfectly indefinite and tame in
-tone. Ivor could not make it out at all; did Mr.
-Darnley like him or not? Surely he must&mdash;surely
-he must even have taken a strange, violent fancy to
-him. Otherwise, why should Mr. Darnley have made
-such rapid advances; why should he have been so
-anxious to get him over to Brakelond; why should he
-have been in such haste to offer him the secretaryship,
-and so keen that he should take it? All these
-things were proof of liking, if anything in the world
-could ever be. Yet Ivor Restormel could never feel
-wholly satisfied, after all, that his host had any personal
-feeling for him. In himself he even seemed to
-bore Mr. Darnley. Ivor was quite acute enough to
-see before long that Mr. Darnley took very little interest
-in him personally. And this made the whole relation
-incalculably strange. Why saddle yourself, why go out
-of your way to saddle yourself with a person for whom
-you do not intrinsically care two straws? Ivor began
-to think that he even noticed a certain animosity sometimes
-in his host’s attitude towards him. It almost<span class="pagenum">[356]</span>
-seemed as if by talking in his own person, of his own
-concerns, that he was annoying and disappointing
-Mr. Darnley. What could this mean? Mr. Darnley
-appeared to be always watching him, always listening
-for some chance word from him. And then, all of a
-sudden, Mr. Darnley’s interest would kindle and
-flame. Warmth would come into his manner, and
-Ivor would get the sensation of being acutely liked.
-And then, in a moment, perhaps, his talk would
-wander outside the range of its listener’s interest.
-Mr. Darnley would shake his head with a sort of
-desperate irritation, the light would die out of his eyes,
-and his demeanour become cold, and sometimes even
-savage. Evidently the talker must have somehow
-cheated him, must have ceased to say the things he
-wished to hear. But what were those things? Ivor
-Restormel spurred himself to unaccustomed subtlety;
-he disliked this sensation of being, as it were, only spasmodically
-and vicariously cultivated. His face and
-manners generally made him friends without difficulty;
-he was piqued by their apparent failure to give him any
-victory over a man whom they had seemed to lead so
-unresistingly captive at first sight.</p>
-
-<p>Ivor exerted himself to ensure Mr. Darnley’s approval,
-and carefully marked the moments which held
-his employer’s enthusiasm and the subjects that provoked
-it. Apparently, though, any talk of his own
-life and ideas was of no interest, or very little, to Mr.
-Darnley. And how can one capture people’s friendship
-if they are obviously bored by everything that
-concerns one’s self? No; not quite everything. Ivor
-soon found that any talk about his particular private
-weaknesses was always sure to rouse Mr. Darnley to a
-subdued, secret fury of eagerness. As soon as Ivor
-dropped any chance apologetic word about the terrors
-that he had so strangely inherited, and as long as he<span class="pagenum">[357]</span>
-continued telling of them, so long, and so long only,
-did Mr. Darnley seem to have an interest and a liking
-for him&mdash;an interest wonderfully keen, a liking deep
-and strong. And then, if he took advantage of this
-evident friendship to go on to other matters, then the
-evident friendship would immediately chill off and
-vanish into an annoyed indifference. Mr. Darnley
-could not be touched by conversation on any other
-topic. But that one topic was always sure of the most
-instant success; it had only to hint its presence in the
-dialogue for Mr. Darnley’s whole zeal to leap to the
-alert. Mr. Darnley even seemed to be always watching
-for its appearance, and, what was strange and even
-exasperating, would put up with hours of Ivor’s conversation
-in the obvious hope that sooner or later
-the one matter of interest would crop up into the talk.
-It is annoying to find one’s company cherished only
-for the sake of conversation on one particular subject,
-and Ivor began deliberately to avoid the topic, as much
-from hurt vanity as from personal pride.</p>
-
-<p>Then the situation developed even more oddly, for
-Mr. Darnley would hardly let the boy out of his sight.
-He must be always at his side, always putting up with
-what clearly failed to interest him, in the persistent
-hope that as the delay grew longer and more wearisome,
-so the reappearance of the one interesting topic must
-be coming nearer and growing surer. He clung to
-Ivor’s company, although it plainly had no intrinsic
-value for him, anxious not to lose a moment of it, for
-fear the moment of true speech should come and pass
-without his knowledge. Ivor, sweet-natured as he
-was, showed his resentment at the topsy-turvy situation
-by talking persistently of things that concerned
-himself, his daily life, or his employer’s. And it was
-even amusing, had it not been rather humiliating, to
-notice how Mr. Darnley chafed beneath the interminable<span class="pagenum">[358]</span>
-ordeal, yet would not lose an instant of it, lest in
-that instant the thing he was looking for so passionately
-should poke its head up and vanish again unnoticed.
-But Ivor, for sheer pride, would indulge him
-but seldom. Besides, it happened that the one thing
-which Kingston wished to hear was also, naturally
-enough, the one thing that Ivor least wished to tell.
-For the boy was acutely ashamed of those idiotic instincts
-of terror with which his premature birth had
-left him. The one thing worse than those terrors themselves
-was the humiliation of acknowledging them.
-So he was doubly reluctant to gratify the morbid
-curiosity of the older man.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston, in fact, was paying very heavily for the
-indulgence of his long desire. The situation, to him,
-was one persistent agony of expectation, always
-straining, always being disappointed. Now at last he
-understood the punishment that he had earned. For,
-by his own wish, he was doomed to call, and call for
-ever, to something that could never hear. The dead
-was free, but the living was still bound, was more
-tightly bound than ever in that bond of desire which
-is at once the pet pleasure and the dreadful agony of
-all who enter it. And a dreary agony it was; Isabel
-was there, within his reach almost, but for ever beyond
-his reach. No cry could rouse her, no appeal restore
-her personality to life. And yet, mysteriously but
-certainly, she was there once more; once more clothed
-in flesh, once more gazing out of human eyes and
-speaking with a human voice. Nevertheless, for all
-the good he could have of his prayer’s gratification, she
-might still have been dead bones and dust of the earth.
-For she could not hear him, could not recognise him,
-and the irony of her deaf, blind presence at his side
-was a torment far more keen than all the long years of
-her absence. He ravened and battered against the<span class="pagenum">[359]</span>
-iron wall of her unconsciousness, and for ever was
-beaten back, sickened, bruised and bleeding from the
-violence&mdash;the eternally fruitless violence&mdash;of his effort
-to stir her recollection. Her memory slept for ever in
-the dead past; only the immortal part of her still
-lived, and was incurably deaf to any human call. She
-did not hear him, she could not hear him; never, never,
-all down the ages could she hear him again. The
-irremediable separation was only made more ghastly,
-more appalling, by the tantalizing proximity of her.
-He could see her, hear her, know her well. And all the
-knowledge was not only profitless, but an aggravation
-of his misery. He saw now what a fool he had been to
-tie himself anew in the bondage of desire; an eternal
-parting would have been far less painful, far less
-maddeningly cruel, than this grim and nugatory
-reunion.</p>
-
-<p>Again and again he battled fiercely to win the recognition
-that he knew in his heart of hearts to be for ever
-beyond his reach. He was incessantly trying to lead Ivor
-Restormel into some discussion of his secret terrors,
-hoping that so Isabel’s voice might speak once more,
-and possibly, in time, Isabel’s self be aroused again.
-But the task was hard, and Ivor reluctant to be made
-the mouthpiece of that inmost self of his whose identity&mdash;whose
-very existence, even&mdash;he never suspected.
-And then it was that Kingston found himself hating
-the boy. The boy stood between himself and Isabel;
-for ever must stand between himself and Isabel. And
-yet the boy contained the secret treasure&mdash;<em>was</em>, in a
-worldly sense, the secret treasure; he could not have
-the one for a neighbour without putting up with the
-presence of the other, without keeping the boy for
-ever at his side, and tolerating endlessly the revelations
-of the boy’s uninteresting personality. Kingston
-approved of the young fellow well enough in himself;<span class="pagenum">[360]</span>
-he was amiable, kind, pleasant to look at and talk to.
-In ordinary circumstances Kingston would have liked
-him and never thought twice about him. Now, however,
-his liking was complicated by a resentment that
-at times deepened into something like hate. The
-boy was keeping so much from him. It was not the
-boy’s fault, of course, yet that did not make the
-situation any easier to bear. He alternately liked
-and disliked him with a vigour for which the boy’s own
-personality was entirely innocent.</p>
-
-<p>He was always laying traps for him, watching him,
-trying to stir up the spirit that possessed him. Gladly
-would Kingston have pierced between Ivor and the
-secret thing that inhabited him. The one he valued
-not at all, or only as containing the other which he
-now valued above everything in the world, for ever
-beyond his reach though it was. He resented the boy’s
-body, his beauty, his young developing nature which,
-sooner or later, might be expected to conquer those old
-dim memories and achieve the ultimate death of the
-Isabel he had known those twenty years before. If
-he could have set free the sleeping soul he would
-gladly have seen its new body break up and die. He
-hated that new body, which made so impermeable a
-wall between himself and the vanished thing he had so
-vainly found again. He looked on Ivor Restormel as
-an unarmed burglar might look on an impregnable safe
-in which lies the diamond of his ambition. The safe
-is precious and desirable because of the diamond inside,
-but, in so far as it makes the diamond impregnable,
-is doubly detestable for the very fact that the
-diamond <em>is</em> inside. And in Kingston’s case the
-problem was even crueller; for the burglar may, with
-long labour, break the safe and attain the diamond.
-Kingston, in breaking the safe, would by the same
-action cause the diamond to vanish once more. As<span class="pagenum">[361]</span>
-things stood, the safety&mdash;at all events, the continued
-proximity&mdash;of the diamond depended entirely on
-the continued security and inviolate condition of
-the safe.</p>
-
-<p>He began soon, in his difficulty, to read up the
-countless Oriental cases of prenatal memory. There,
-in the East, souls that have been parted by bodily
-death are reunited in another shape, and know each
-other and are happy. There the great facts of life,
-of that shadowy fallacy that we call death, are clearly
-known and understood. But here we are still driven
-by phantom fears, and troubled by that which has no
-real existence except in our own weakened imaginations.
-Our memories are too closely trammelled by
-false teaching, too little practised and experienced, to
-pass intact across the blank interval of physical death.
-At the best it is only an occasional glimpse we carry
-on into another life, and even so those glimpses come
-but rarely, and fade as our earthly life advances to
-maturity again. More people have these glimpses, it
-is true, than ever dare to acknowledge them; but they
-are little understood and never fairly made use of.
-It is to the East we must go to see how little account
-the trained soul makes of physical death. There,
-through innumerable ages, the light has been seen,
-and memory has been educated from hour to hour
-and from day to day until at last the soul finds it as
-easy to recall the events of a hundred years ago as
-those of last night or this morning. Kingston studied
-the many cases that the Eastern Gospel gives us, and
-which Western science is just beginning to discern
-anew. Always he hoped against hope that they
-would give him some key to unlock the house of
-memory. Yes, the mortal body is just that&mdash;a house
-of memory, a jerry-built house at best. But the lock
-is stern and stark. What key is there, what jemmy,<span class="pagenum">[362]</span>
-what crowbar, that can prevail on the lock that guards
-the house of memories, can prevail, at least, without
-wrecking the house and letting the memories go free
-once more?</p>
-
-<p>Kingston had no hope that he could find such a key.
-The old Eastern stories showed the glorified free
-memory as the possession only of the free glorified
-soul that has escaped the bondage of desire. When
-desire has passed away, then the uncontaminated soul
-knows no barrier of time or space. But in the kingdom
-of desire are all the burning pains and limitations
-which desire provides to scourge its devotees in the
-very moment of their seeming satisfaction. To eyes
-desirous, life is narrowed to a thing of the moment; it
-is only from the high places of enlightenment that the
-opened eye of the Real Self can wander over all the
-fields of existence, and see the nullity of death, the
-eternity of truth and holiness, from bodily life to
-bodily life, until at last the great goal is gained. Kingston
-saw himself helpless now in the grip of the passion
-he had invoked. Nothing could satisfy it, nothing
-could release him from it. Nothing but the death of
-his body, and even that release seemed now to his
-awakening intelligence to be but problematical. He
-began to wonder what could be the end of this fantastic
-tangle. Days went by, and he found himself
-more tightly chained to the agony of his perpetual
-disappointment in Ivor Restormel, more cruelly
-hungry for the satisfaction which lay for ever in his
-sight and beyond his reach, more and more fiercely
-stung by the misery that he himself had brought upon
-himself.</p>
-
-<p>He grew into a sense of drifting towards a catastrophe;
-the strain, the torment could not be prolonged
-indefinitely without the sudden snap of his endurance.
-Some thunderclap of fate must break up the dreadful<span class="pagenum">[363]</span>
-stagnation of this nightmare. As the time passed, and
-his efforts brought him no nearer to fulfilment, made
-it increasingly plain that he could never come any
-nearer to fulfilment, he felt the growing imminence of
-doom. This companion who was no companion, his
-desire had evoked It from the shadows, soon It must
-go back into the shadows from which he had called It,
-having first accomplished fully the punishment of his
-selfishness. He watched the human Ivor Restormel
-with a curious consciousness of watching a thing unearthly,
-a thing moving amid darkness towards a great
-darkness not so very far away. This boy, so much
-alive, so content with life, was not in reality alive at
-all. He was just a shadow, a faint film of personality,
-by comparison with the old living thing that lurked
-in him. Vague and indeterminate as his own character
-was, he was the penalty, made incarnate, of
-Kingston’s own selfishness; he was the eidolon of the
-past projected into the present in order to tantalize
-and damn the soul that had desired it. Built of
-clouds, he must pass back ere long, swiftly, tragically
-into cloudland, and that reality behind the clouds, that
-living fragment far down in the shadowy personality
-of the boy, must pass onwards again on its upward
-way&mdash;that strange immortal essence which once had
-been Isabel. And this foreknowledge of the end, this
-sensation of drifting daily more and more hurriedly
-towards something terrible, impelled him to cherish
-with a more and more eager passion this presence that
-had been vouchsafed to him, however incomplete,
-however unsatisfying he might find it.</p>
-
-<p>Each hour brought him nearer now to the last that
-should ever be. He bent himself sternly, in the lessening
-time that was his, to the desperate task of
-awakening recollection in a soul where recollection
-slept for ever. Less and less did he see or think of<span class="pagenum">[364]</span>
-Ivor Restormel, more and more ardently, more and
-more despairingly, of the thing that dwelt in Ivor
-Restormel, the thing that soon must leave its habitation
-to pass elsewhere again. He sought the boy’s
-presence more and more persistently, would never
-spare him out of his sight, exacted more and more
-of his conversation. And all the while he was caring
-less and less for the boy, his words, or his utterance.
-Now that he had found out what it was that had
-attracted him to the boy, he was ceasing to see the
-boy himself at all, to hear his earthly voice. All
-Kingston’s attention was fixed on the glimpses that
-he could hope to get of the secret presence he divined,
-his ears were open only to those occasional flashes of
-memory that spoke in Ivor Restormel out of that
-remote past beyond the grave. He must make the
-dreadful most of the short time that was left him.
-It was but little he could hope to make, but the time,
-he felt, was running rapidly out towards its end.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred saw everything. Gundred understood
-nothing. That her husband grew keener and keener
-to monopolize Ivor Restormel she saw, and righteous
-anger became fiercer within her. That Kingston
-should so slight her company as obviously and
-vehemently to prefer that of a person against whom
-she had most solemnly warned him, was matter enough
-and to spare for just wrath. Gundred grew colder
-and colder in manner, lived more and more aloof,
-felt stronger and stronger in her consciousness of
-justified dread. That Kingston clung every moment
-to the side of his secretary she noticed; that, in
-reality, he did not care two straws about his secretary
-she could hardly be expected to discern. The
-plain and sufficing fact was that he never seemed
-happy, never at his ease, unless Ivor Restormel were
-with him, and even then he very rarely seemed perfectly<span class="pagenum">[365]</span>
-satisfied either. Gundred saw that there was
-something unusual and mysterious about this friendship
-that in some ways scarcely seemed a friendship
-at all, yet made such tremendous claims on time and
-company.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred, scanning the situation from her retirement,
-came deliberately to the conclusion that Kingston’s
-evident infatuation was the result of some malign influence.
-Nothing else could account for his restless
-attraction towards Ivor Restormel, combined so frequently
-with obvious boredom and annoyance when
-in his company; nothing could so completely explain
-the apparent innocuousness of Ivor himself, as compared
-with the instinct of repulsion that Gundred
-always felt towards him, and felt more fanatically from
-day to day. Gundred knew that she was not capable
-of unjust or disorderly feelings. And, if she disliked
-people, it meant that they deserved to be disliked.
-And if no reason for such a dislike could be discovered
-anywhere in Ivor Restormel’s personality, well, that
-only made it more clear that Gundred’s infallible
-instinct was founded on her perception in him of some
-evil supernatural influence, possessing him and working
-through him. The idea grew and fermented in her
-brain, and heroic remedies began to suggest themselves.
-No one, in these dreadful latter days, could
-seriously doubt that the Evil One was abroad. What
-more credible than that he should have picked out for
-attack a soul like her husband’s, which Gundred knew
-to be weak in doctrine, and saw to be not impeccable
-in practice? Gundred grew in the certainty that,
-whether Ivor Restormel knew it or no, he was filled
-with unhallowed powers that were exerting a wicked
-force on the man whom he had so uncannily attracted
-from the first.</p>
-
-<p>All her life’s course had led Gundred along placid,<span class="pagenum">[366]</span>
-sunny ways, and her nature, through those years, had
-revealed only the peace and serenity of true refinement.
-And now, at last, at the touch of this righteous
-jealousy, there began to stir in her the fierce old blood
-of Queen Isabel, the stern harsh passions of the Mortimers.
-The fanatic stirred in its long sleep, and
-Gundred felt herself inspired to lead a domestic crusade
-against the Powers of Darkness. At any cost her husband
-must be saved. In old days an Earl of March
-had, by his laudable zeal in persecution, elicited commendatory
-letters from Queen Mary. His spirit now
-awoke in Gundred, and she realized in herself the
-strength to act mightily in a noble cause.</p>
-
-<p>In every way this undesirable intruder, who seemed
-so amiable and pleasant and desirable, was having the
-most untoward effect on Kingston’s mind and morals.
-Had he not caused a hitherto blameless and obedient
-husband to revolt against his wife’s righteous dominion
-after twenty years of harmony, and to cast her wishes
-defiantly beneath his feet? And now it became
-obvious that Kingston was suffering in other ways.
-She saw him to be a dabbler in things best left
-alone, in things unhallowed, Satanic, dreadful. Of his
-attendance on spirit-circles Gundred luckily knew
-nothing, otherwise, in her determination to be old-fashioned
-by contrast with the hysterical occultism
-that now obtains, she would probably have wished to
-call in an exorcist. But even in his reading he had
-strayed into improper paths. The strangest things he
-was now for ever studying&mdash;Eastern books and mystical
-fantasies of the most unsettling description. The
-weirdest of these he made a point of reading to Ivor
-Restormel, and Gundred, who generally insisted on
-being by, noticed that he seemed to read eagerly,
-challengingly, as if in momentary expectation that
-the matter would elicit some answering flash of some<span class="pagenum">[367]</span>
-kind or another from the boy. It never did, and the
-readings, therefore, always broke off short with a
-shrug of disappointment and even of disgust; but
-Gundred divined a soul in peril from the very attempt
-he made. It was surely an incantation he was practising,
-an invocation to the mysterious evil thing that
-haunted Ivor Restormel. She presented a bold front
-to such dangers, and would not be kept away from the
-readings.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston one Sunday evening seemed absorbed in
-his dubious books, while Gundred sat at her knitting,
-an employment by which she piously signalized the
-Sabbath. All through the week she did fine needlework,
-but on Sunday she put away her embroideries
-and conscientiously knitted comforters for the Deep-sea
-Fishermen. But suddenly Kingston looked up from
-his page, and began to read in a curious tone of watchful
-defiance, addressing his secretary, who was inoffensively
-engaged with a newspaper. ‘Listen to
-this, Ivor,’ he began, ‘listen to this, and tell me what
-you think of it.’ Gundred, in her observant silence,
-noted that her opinion was not asked, and her wrath
-grew greater and more righteous, chalking up yet
-another item to the Evil One’s account. ‘“Once upon
-a time,”’ read Kingston, ‘“many thousands of years
-ago, there came a great Buddha to a city in India. He
-was a great and glorious Buddha, but the time is so
-very far away now that even his name has passed into
-Nirvana, and cannot be recalled. But all the people
-in the city wrought their hardest to do him honour.
-From the King and his nobles downward everyone
-gave his richest silks and rugs to line the road of the
-Holy One’s arrival, and in all their land there was not
-a widow or a little child so poor that they had not some
-bright pebble or piece of cloth to do their small homage
-to the Incarnate Perfection. Only one shepherd lad,<span class="pagenum">[368]</span>
-from the jungle beyond, had nothing to give. He was
-young and strong and very beautiful, and his whole
-soul cried out in worship of the Buddha. The most
-splendid jewel in the world, the most priceless tapestry
-and cloth of gold, he would not have thought good
-enough for the honouring of the Holy One; and yet
-he had nothing, no treasure, however humble, that he
-could throw beneath the blessed feet. He, that would
-have given half the world, had not so much as a
-handful of painted shells. So his heart was very heavy
-within him, and sadly did he draw near to the city on
-the appointed day. And on his road there met him a
-maiden, lovely and gracious, that wore in her hair a
-flower. But this was such a flower as the boy had
-never seen before. It was altogether radiant and
-heavenly, splendid beyond the imagination of man to
-conceive. It grew in a cluster of seven blooms, and
-the fragrance of it filled the jungle. If he could only
-have this wonderful thing to offer to the Heavenly
-Visitor, then, indeed, thought the boy, he would at
-least have done no dishonour to the Light that his
-heart honoured above all else on earth. ‘Maiden,’
-he said, ‘for what price will you sell me the flower that
-you wear in your hair?’ And she answered that for a
-very great price she would sell him two blossoms
-from the cluster. And once again his heart was
-daunted, for the price she asked was more than anything
-that he could hope to get together in a long
-laborious life. He shook his head. ‘I had desired,’
-he replied, ‘to do fitting honour to the Holy One,
-but I see now that that hope is beyond me.’ Then
-the maiden took the blossom from her hair and held
-it out towards him, for her eyes were opened. ‘My
-Lord,’ she answered to the peasant lad, ‘my sight is
-unsealed, and I can see. Very many years hence&mdash;a
-thousand years hence&mdash;I see that you, in the fullness of<span class="pagenum">[369]</span>
-time, even you yourself shall become a revealed
-Buddha here on earth. Take this flower of mine,
-then, without money and without price, but promise
-me only that in that far day I may stand at your
-right hand and be near you in your glory.’ And the
-boy smiled and gave her his word. So after all he
-had his offering to lay before the Blessed One, and his
-heart was satisfied. And the maiden went her way
-through life, and on through the many deaths that lay
-beyond. And he also, the peasant lad, died in the
-ripeness of his age, and lived and died through many
-generations, advancing always on the upward road.
-And at length the time was accomplished, and the
-maiden’s prophecy fulfilled. For the peasant lad
-became the Spotless One, the Buddha Sakhya-Muni,
-High and Holy, altogether Blessed and Perfect, the
-Best Friend of All the World. And in that day,
-the maiden found herself again, and came at last to
-her reward. For she was the Lady Yasodhara, his
-wife, the first of all the sacred women that trod the
-happy way and entered into light....”’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston ceased, his voice filled with interrogation,
-pausing eagerly for Ivor’s opinion, hoping against hope
-that that opinion might be more illuminating than he
-felt it would be. Again and again had he tried to
-kindle that dormant consciousness with scenes like
-this, always keenly hoping that they would touch
-some chord of understanding far down in the hidden
-depths of the boy’s dual personality. But the hope
-was never to be fulfilled; he knew it was never to be
-fulfilled, yet each fresh disappointment was sharper
-and more wounding than the last. Kingston paused
-for a comment on the story. None came. After a
-pause he demanded one.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well,’ he said, ‘what did you think of that, Ivor?’</p>
-
-<p>The boy looked up; his attention, though formally<span class="pagenum">[370]</span>
-yielded to Kingston’s reading, had, in reality, been
-surreptitiously concentrated on the sporting column
-of the paper he held in his hand.</p>
-
-<p>‘What did I think of it?’ he repeated a trifle
-vaguely. ‘Oh, not half bad. Quite a decent bit of
-writing. But awful rot, sir, of course.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston vibrated with acute annoyance. Thus,
-for the thousandth time, the gate of possibilities had
-been slammed brutally in his face by the uninteresting
-shadowy, rudimentary soul that shared Ivor Restormel’s
-body with that wonderful immortal dead. He
-gazed at the boy with positive hatred in his eyes.
-In a spasm of irritation Kingston turned towards his
-wife.</p>
-
-<p>‘And you, Gundred,’ he inquired, ‘what do you
-think of it? Evidently Ivor hasn’t the faintest notion
-what it is all about. It says nothing to him. Does
-it say anything to you?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Very dreadful and unchristian,’ said Gundred
-firmly, but mildly. ‘I wonder you can bear to read
-such things. I am sure it cannot be good for Mr.
-Restormel to hear them.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston might talk if he pleased of ‘Ivor,’ Gundred
-pointed her disapproval by adhering rigidly to the
-formal mode of address, and would never accord her
-enemy the favour of any more friendly appellation.</p>
-
-<p>‘Mr. Restormel,’ she repeated decisively, ‘could
-not be expected to see anything in such irreverent
-nonsense.’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston could not trust himself to answer her, nor
-to make any further remark on the abysmal stupidity
-of the boy who stood so perpetually between him and
-the memory of Isabel. Hurriedly turning over the
-pages, he began to read that most wonderful scene in
-history, the second meeting of the triumphant Buddha
-with Yasodhara his wife, after those many years of<span class="pagenum">[371]</span>
-parting and glorification. Both the world’s great
-Buddha stories contain the tragedy of a woman;
-but the tale of the Indian Princess, widowed through
-long earthly years of the man she loved, and then, in
-the end, reunited with the Perfected Incarnation of
-Holiness, is even more tremendous, if less physically
-poignant, than that of the Mother who stood on
-Calvary. Mystical, majestic, splendid, is the crowning
-moment in the life of Yasodhara, and Kingston read
-the words that relate it with a passionate sense of the
-truth that they convey. Then he fell silent.</p>
-
-<p>‘Very pretty, dear,’ said Gundred. ‘Would you
-pick up my wool for me? Thanks. But I do think
-one might find something more profitable to read on
-Sundays. I think one ought to make Sunday different
-somehow, from other days, and not read novels and
-things like that. One should only read <em>real</em> things
-on Sundays&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>She slipped into sight the volume with which she
-occasionally beguiled the devout labours of her knitting.
-With a gentle little air of excellence she laid it down
-again unostentatiously, but so that the gilt lettering
-showed along its cover. It was the ‘Life of Bishop
-Boffatt,’ by Three Nieces, with a ‘Foreword’ from
-Archdeacon Widge.</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER XX</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>All this clearly indicated that Gundred’s interference
-was urgently needed in the cause of holiness.
-Day by day she watched the situation, feeling more
-and more certain that her mission was the rescue of
-her husband. He, meanwhile, bore hourly, with
-increasing pain, the tantalizing torments of his paradoxical
-proximity to the thing he had so long looked for<span class="pagenum">[372]</span>
-and now had found in vain. Ivor Restormel wondered
-at his good fortune, and only occasionally noticed the
-crochets of Kingston and Gundred. Of the two,
-Gundred had by far the more tactful temperament.
-Her dislike, now fast verging towards religious horror,
-was not to be discerned except by an eye far more keen
-than Ivor Restormel’s. A serene gravity, a cool
-calm were so much the dominant characteristics of
-her nature that the exaggeration of her gravity, the
-additional chill in her calm passed unnoticed by one
-so little practised in observation. The restless eagerness
-of Kingston was more plain and more distressing.
-Ivor Restormel sometimes wondered what it was
-that he did or failed to do that so roused disappointment
-and annoyance in this friend who never really
-seemed a friend, and yet had gratuitously done so much
-for him. However, he was not of a temper to let such
-matters oppress him. He put them behind him, and
-disregarded any tension that he might ever be inclined
-to discern in his relations with his employer or his
-employer’s wife.</p>
-
-<p>So the days passed unsatisfactorily by, until the time
-came for the family’s removal to Ivescar. Deep in his
-heart Kingston had a dim hope that the sight of
-Ivescar might once more rekindle a flash of memory in
-the boy. It was with trembling anxiety that he
-watched the first impressions that Ivor received from
-his first sight of the Yorkshire moors. Would the veil
-lift again, for even the briefest glance from the soul
-that dwelt behind? Brakelond had roused the sleeping
-personality in the boy; surely it was only to be
-expected that Ivescar, where so much had happened,
-could do no less? And Ivor gratified Kingston’s hope
-up to a certain point&mdash;only, as before, in doing so to
-rouse a keener desire. For from the first sight he
-instinctively loved the mountain-country, entered into<span class="pagenum">[373]</span>
-its charm, appreciated the solemn majesty of it. He
-felt, he said, as if he had known it all his life, as if he
-and the hills were friends of long standing. And
-Kingston, hearing this, listened with quiet face but
-with a heart agonized in suspense. The door seemed
-to be drawing ajar for a greater revelation. The very
-next moment might bring some recognition. Kingston
-would not admit to himself the hopelessness of his
-hope. Eagerly he waited for what the boy might say
-next. And the door opened no further, but closed
-again as fast as ever. Never again could that hidden
-consciousness of Ivor’s wake to know itself. The
-expectation that it ever would was groundless, tormenting,
-delusive as all the pleasures held out by false
-desire. Kingston suffered more than ever, as each fresh
-disappointment grew more painful than the last, though
-more and more surely anticipated. The boy knew
-nothing; no veil could be lifted from his eyes; he
-enjoyed his surroundings simply, boyishly, without
-any sense of deep memories out of which they were
-built.</p>
-
-<p>And then, into the midst of these unhappy combinations
-was precipitated the new element of Jim Darnley’s
-presence. Jim Darnley at fifteen was unfeignedly glad
-to find a companion not so very much ahead of him in
-years. Ivor Restormel was young for his age; Jim
-Darnley, as an only son, was inclined to be older than
-his; and the instant fellowship that was established
-between the two set the last seal on Gundred’s righteous
-indignation. Kingston did not care whom or what the
-earthly Ivor Restormel might care for, so long as his
-company might still hold out hopes of glimpses from
-the past. Moreover, he was glad that Jim should
-have a companion, and should, by taking so comfortable
-a fancy to him, justify his father in the choice of
-a secretary. As a man, and as a man already preoccupied<span class="pagenum">[374]</span>
-with other matters, he had no sort of inclination
-to be jealous of his son’s friendships. With Gundred,
-however, the case was altogether different. She
-loved her only child with the fierce and almost savage
-affection often felt by a woman who cannot understand
-the object of that affection. Naturally the fact was
-the last thing that she would allow her soul to face,
-but in the jealousy with which she regarded all new
-factors in his life might be read her unacknowledged
-fear that her intimacy with him might not be as strong
-as she made a point of believing it to be. She was one
-of those women who are by nature more mother than
-wife, and in the fullness of uneventful years had insensibly
-come to transfer a good deal of her old urgent
-passion for Kingston to the child that she had borne
-him. In connection with Gundred, mild and cool,
-ferocity and passion are words that sound oddly, and
-yet, under the suave mildness, the dispassionate
-decorum of her manner, her feelings for her son had a
-certain definite passion, and even ferocity. That the
-boy never knew it was the misfortune of his mother’s
-training; she would not betray the fact of her love, and
-had no thought that by so betraying it she might be
-able to supplement, in his eyes, the deficiencies of her
-understanding.</p>
-
-<p>For Gundred was incapable of any true companionship
-with her son. He admired her, he loved her distantly
-and diffidently, but he shrank from her, and had
-nothing intimate or warm to say. That she was not
-conscious of this flaw in their relation may be called
-the compensating mercy of that weakness in herself
-which had developed that flaw. She was by now
-almost entirely devoid of intuitive intelligence. Or,
-rather, perhaps, she had so diligently trained herself
-that, in the long course of time, she had drilled her mind
-out of any faint tendency to perceive and analyze that<span class="pagenum">[375]</span>
-it may ever have possessed. Her sense of decency
-commanded her to live entirely on the surface of
-things; prying into secret motives and feelings she
-considered vulgar and indecent. Accordingly, if lip-kisses
-were properly exchanged, and superficial affection
-reigned, she made a point of considering that the
-soul-relations thus symbolized must be eminently
-satisfactory. She looked no further than the symbol,
-and disliked the idea that kisses and terms of endearment
-may, after all, not stand for the love whose
-emblems they are&mdash;may even, at a pinch, be used to
-disguise the lack of that love. And yet her hidden,
-shamefaced jealousy may be taken to have been the
-last flickering phantom of the natural woman’s insight
-into domestic relations. All his life she had
-grudged her son his friendships, gently nipped them
-with the frost of her criticism, sedulously taught him
-to find fault and be captious.</p>
-
-<p>The education had borne no fruit in Jim, except a
-bitter one for Gundred. His nature was too warm and
-sunny to have any real communion with his mother’s
-frosts, and as soon as he found that she always had
-something coldly unpleasant to say of everyone he
-liked, he had responded, not by discarding his friends,
-but by drawing farther and farther away from his
-mother. With the merciless clear-sightedness of the
-young, so vivid, if so limited, he had judged his mother
-by her own precepts long since, and found her wanting.
-She endlessly preached the loveliest morality, the
-tenderest forbearance towards all the world, the most
-sedulous avoidance of harsh or censorious comment.
-And yet she was always sure to pick some fatal flaw in
-all his friends, to discover and expose some blemish,
-to insist on some fault or weakness. And the very
-fact that her criticisms were always more or less just
-militated, in the end, against her influence. For Jim<span class="pagenum">[376]</span>
-found that he liked his friends more than he disliked
-their failings, and, taking their side accordingly, he
-gradually came to look upon his mother’s unerring eye
-for other people’s shortcomings as the worst enemy of
-his own happiness. Thus pitiably, by the exaggeration
-of her own virtues, through the keenness of her
-own maternal love, Gundred laid up for herself inevitable
-disappointment in regard to the one thing that her
-heart desired, and innocently prepared for herself a
-dark version of the mother’s tragedy. By now Jim
-had his friends and his life to himself; outside that
-precinct, walled and guarded, stood his mother,
-alone, too proud to admit that she stood outside,
-too wilfully blind to see the unbroken wall that
-fronted her, and, in any case, too proud to clamour
-for admittance.</p>
-
-<p>But the friendship that immediately arose between
-Jim and Ivor Restormel was to Gundred as a sudden
-light of revelation, laying bare the fact of her exclusion
-from her son’s life. Characteristically, even to herself,
-she would not admit what she saw, but attributed the
-novel pain to her anxiety for Jim’s welfare. That
-Jim should have friends of his own age had been
-grudgingly conceded as an odious necessity, to be
-cavilled at and snubbed, but impossible to deny. Now,
-however, that the pernicious influence that had so
-mysteriously gripped her husband threatened to
-enthral her son as well, Gundred told herself that all
-her maternal duties, no less than her conjugal, commanded
-her to take the field against the powers of
-darkness. Her jealousy masqueraded as pure motherly
-zeal, and its very bitterness was masked from her own
-sight by the disguise of duty. Her feeling, too, was
-intensified by the failure of all her usual weapons to
-discredit Ivor Restormel in the eyes of his new friend.
-Jim generally sat and answered her in submissive<span class="pagenum">[377]</span>
-affirmatives, while she gently dissected his friends and
-pointed out how entirely unworthy they all were of
-approval, though not, of course, of pity; now, however,
-he could not even give her criticism the courtesy of
-apparent acquiescence.</p>
-
-<p>He rose up in defence of Ivor, instead of, as usual,
-listening pleasantly and then going his own way undeterred&mdash;a
-course which long experience had taught
-him was the wisest, especially as his mother was quite
-unable to notice that her advice was disregarded, if
-only her advice had been politely received. In vain
-she pointed out to him that Ivor Restormel’s mind
-was cheap and crude; that his orthodoxy was tepid,
-his manners unnecessarily enthusiastic, his whole deportment
-lacking in finish and refinement. Jim could
-not listen in respectful silence; he protested, he pleaded.
-He had become all of a sudden disloyal and treacherous
-to his mother. Gundred regarded all opposition from
-her son as unfilial, and could not conceive the possibility
-of his having any right to hold an opinion at
-variance with hers. She claimed to provide him with
-all his thoughts, henceforth and for ever, on the ground
-of having in the distant past provided him with a body
-to hold them. That her son was an individual she
-could never recognise, and on the rare occasions of his
-overt revolt, felt the indignant astonishment of Balaam
-when he discovered that his ass had a voice of its own.
-Accordingly, if Jim now opposed her criticisms, it was
-only a treason and a sin engendered in him by this evil
-spirit that had captured him, and every word that he
-said in Ivor’s favour only served to deepen his mother’s
-feeling that she was certainly called upon to rid her
-son and her husband of this threatening danger that
-had already produced such dire results in the disaffection
-of her nearest and dearest.</p>
-
-<p>‘I cannot have you running about the hills all day<span class="pagenum">[378]</span>
-with Mr. Restormel, dear,’ said Gundred blandly, but
-with decision.</p>
-
-<p>‘But why not, mother?’ protested Jim, who, in
-normal circumstances would probably have said, ‘No,
-mother,’ and gone all the same, Gundred never
-knowing.</p>
-
-<p>‘Because I say not, dear,’ replied Gundred inadequately.
-‘You must let mother be the best judge of
-your companions, dear. Mother knows best&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I say, you know, I think it is awfully hard lines.
-Ivor is the best fellow going. You don’t know him,
-mother.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Don’t call him Ivor, Jim,’ reproved Gundred. ‘It
-is not respectful. He is older than you. And that is
-another reason why I do not like to see you wasting
-your time with him. He is not good company for
-you.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Yes; but you always say that. What is there
-wrong with poor old Ivor?’</p>
-
-<p>Having nothing definite to allege, Gundred, of
-course, found it necessary to become sibylline and
-pompous.</p>
-
-<p>‘You must trust mother, dear,’ she answered.
-‘There are many things you are too young to know.
-It is enough for you to remember that mother does not
-wish you to see too much of Mr. Restormel. You
-must avoid him as much as possible&mdash;though, of
-course, without being rude and unkind.’</p>
-
-<p>But Gundred’s solemn implication of mysterious
-knowledge had been played off so frequently that it
-had long since lost its effect. Jim knew well that it
-only concealed her invariable jealousy.</p>
-
-<p>‘No,’ he said; ‘I am awfully fond of old Ivor. I
-don’t see why I should make myself nasty to him.
-Father likes him no end.’</p>
-
-<p>This did not serve to mollify Gundred.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[379]</span></p>
-
-<p>‘You should always do what mother wishes, without
-asking questions,’ she rejoined. ‘And what father
-may do is no concern of yours. Your father may be
-taken in like everybody else. But you ought to
-think it a privilege to obey your mother. Think of
-what you owe her&mdash;yes?’</p>
-
-<p>Like many women, Gundred believed that, having
-engendered a child, entirely without regard for that
-problematical child’s wishes, must necessarily give her
-a lifelong claim on his gratitude. Like many women,
-she insisted on the debt, everywhere and always, until,
-by ceaseless demands, she had come near to exhausting
-the supply. Accordingly the conference continued for
-a while, unsatisfactorily. Jim for once had lost his
-grip on that lamentable diplomacy which an unwise
-mother’s exactions so early engrain into her children.
-He could no longer even acquiesce. He became warm
-in Ivor’s defence, and, with every word, Gundred felt
-more certainly that his disloyalty was the crime of
-the evil force that possessed him. That force must unquestionably
-be combated and dispossessed. And soon
-she found that she was incapable of coping with Jim.
-Worse, she could not even have recourse to the secular
-arm in the person of her husband, for her husband was
-equally under this incalculable diabolical sway. She
-grew more angry in her demands as the demands were
-refused. And Jim, flushed with opposition, verged on
-rudeness, would not be brought to promise the abandonment
-of his new friend, and treated his mother’s
-ultimatum with ominous cheerfulness.</p>
-
-<p>‘You would not like to have to choose between Mr.
-Restormel and mother, would you&mdash;no?’ suggested
-Gundred with the supreme imprudence of excitement.
-And this weapon, too, had lost its efficacy with too frequent
-use. Jim had heard it too often now to retain
-any illusion as to its dramatic value.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[380]</span></p>
-
-<p>He was very uncomfortable, though, as he answered:
-‘Oh, rot, mother; you know that is impossible. I wish
-you would not say such things. You don’t want to make
-me out a beast to you, do you, just because I don’t
-want to be a beast to Ivor? It’s all rot finding fault
-with him, you know. He is a jolly good fellow, and
-father would not have got him here if he had not liked
-him too. So he must be all right, anyway.’</p>
-
-<p>With a fatal lack of tact, Gundred went off on a
-side issue, and began protesting against the unnecessary
-crudeness of her son’s language&mdash;a crudeness which
-she made haste to attribute to Ivor’s degrading
-influence.</p>
-
-<p>‘Well,’ replied Jim, ‘if there is nothing else to say
-against poor old Ivor than that! He isn’t the first
-person in the world who has said “rot,” and I don’t
-imagine he will be the last.’ And on that hit he rose
-and made his escape, despite his mother’s attempts to
-restrain him with loving arms, and exact, by kisses, a
-more satisfactory termination to the dialogue.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred was left alone, feeling solitude as she had
-very rarely felt it in her life before. This intruder
-had destroyed the harmony of her home, had blighted
-her relations with her submissive subjects, had sapped
-loyalty, filial piety and honour in the hearts of all who
-owed her duty. This influence was altogether evil,
-and must be defeated without loss of another day. It
-was a blessed work this that Heaven had appointed her
-to do, and it must be done briskly, whole-heartedly,
-without any lookings-back from the plough, or weaknesses
-of any kind. Gundred began to revolve
-measures, and plans at last grew definite in her mind.
-She faced her course of action boldly. Ivor must be
-got rid of&mdash;somehow, anyhow. <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Qui veut la fin, veut
-les moyens.</i></p>
-
-<p>And at this point she suddenly grew frightened.<span class="pagenum">[381]</span>
-This road that she was treading, into what grim and
-stony places would it lead her? Gundred, for the first
-time in her life, began to feel afraid of herself. The
-intense fire of the righteous passion that consumed her,
-well, it was alarming, although it was so righteous.
-So righteous? A very faint flicker of hesitation
-dawned in Gundred’s mind. <em>Was</em> this passion of hers
-so righteous? It was carrying her, she felt, toward
-actions that sooner or later might be dark and dreadful;
-all the more important, then, to make sure beforehand
-that it was an inspiration of Heaven, not, by any
-chance, a temptation from Hell. Hitherto Gundred
-had never doubted that the Almighty had created her
-for a shining instance of the soul which is temptation-proof;
-now, however, she began to waver in her belief
-that she, alone of mortal beings, was set above the wiles
-of evil. After all, she was human; it was just barely
-imaginable that this uplifting ardour that she felt
-might proceed from the Powers of darkness rather than
-from those of light. That anger and hatred are often
-laudable she knew well, but this anger and hatred of
-hers were so devastating, so tyrannous that she could
-not, in all candour, feel herself absolutely certain of
-their celestial origin. She felt, as she pondered the
-matter, that she was indeed showing proper conscientiousness,
-an almost unworthy tenderness towards
-that Amalekite of an enemy; but the question was so
-important, so much hung on it, that no labour could be
-wasted in making sure as to the rights and wrongs of
-the case.</p>
-
-<p>After all, though, would the Almighty have allowed
-her to entertain such passions if He had not meant her
-to indulge them? Yet even the greatest saints had
-been tempted by the devil. Indeed, the greater the
-saint the greater the temptation. The problem was
-nice, and required careful weighing. In any other case<span class="pagenum">[382]</span>
-she would readily have conceded that such a passion
-might have been inspired without the connivance of
-the Almighty; in her own she was so perfectly, though
-so humbly, convinced that she lived and spoke as the
-mouthpiece of Heaven itself that she could hardly
-conceive it possible but that any feeling she nourished
-must, of necessity, be just and holy, through the very
-fact that it was she, the Lady Gundred Darnley, who
-had engendered and developed it. However, a pious
-doubt now besieged her, and she dutifully cast about
-in her mind for means to solve this riddle that her
-scrupulous sense of right had set before her. Until
-this was decided, she felt that it would be unfair to
-proceed to extremities even against Ivor Restormel.
-But how to decide it?</p>
-
-<p>Prayer, Gundred felt, was the only obvious method.
-The Almighty must be asked to declare as to the
-sanctity of the crusade that she was meditating.
-Gundred, filled with the consciousness of holiness,
-would, nevertheless, go to Heaven to have that consciousness
-confirmed. In all ways she was clean and
-blameless, worthy of the celestial attention. She
-looked doubtfully for a moment at the little fair curls
-that lay on her dressing-table. But after all, they
-could not really be called a fraud on the Almighty, for
-were they not built up out of her own hoarded combings?
-And, for the rest, there was no other spot of
-deceit or frailty anywhere in her. So she knelt in
-confidence, and prayed. If her hatred for Ivor
-Restormel were wicked, would God give a sign by
-causing it to die immediately? On the other hand,
-if it continued to thrive in her heart, she would take
-its persistence as a sign that it was very pleasing in
-the sight of Heaven, and might be pursued to its
-ultimate extremities. She laboured the point once
-more, so that Heaven could not possibly fail to grasp<span class="pagenum">[383]</span>
-it. If to-morrow she still hated Ivor Restormel, she
-would understand that her hatred was pious and
-profitable; if she should awake feeling filled with love
-and pity for him, then she must believe that her previous
-inspiration had been a temptation of the Evil
-One. Filled with a sense of imminent revelation,
-Gundred went to bed, and could hardly sleep for
-anxiety as to the morrow, and the sentiments that
-the morrow would show forth.</p>
-
-<p>It was late when she woke from tardy and troubled
-dreams. Over her soul for a minute or two there
-brooded a heavy weight of mystery. Something wonderful
-was immediately to happen. But for a moment
-she could not discern what it was. Then she remembered
-her prayer, and fell to scanning her morning’s
-feelings for its answer. The revelation was at hand.
-But it would only burst upon her fully when she had
-come face to face with her imagined enemy. In a
-ferment of anxiety she had herself dressed, then hurried
-downstairs, her colour perceptibly heightened and her
-demeanour almost ruffled by the tense anxiety of her
-expectation. Into the morning-room she hastened,
-eager to find Ivor Restormel. There he was; she
-paused upon the threshold watching him, and waiting
-for the miraculous guidance that Heaven would certainly
-vouchsafe. Had her feelings for him changed
-during the night? In a flash of satisfaction the answer
-came, admitting no further question or cavil.</p>
-
-<p>For she hated him as much as ever. Yes, certainly
-as much as ever&mdash;even more, perhaps. And nothing
-could so clearly prove, after her prayers, that her
-hatred was pleasing to the Almighty. If it had been
-evil, He would, of course, have annulled it, according
-to request. God evidently meant her to hate Ivor
-Restormel, and to doubt any more would be nothing
-short of wicked infidelity. Triumphant in perfect<span class="pagenum">[384]</span>
-satisfaction, in self-complacency restored and enhanced
-by this prodigious proof of God’s approval,
-Gundred addressed herself quietly to everyday life
-once more. Strengthened in her Heaven-sent attitude
-of mind, she advanced towards the breakfast-table
-with an added majesty of calm, and scattered greetings
-with a fair assumption of benevolence. With the
-answer to her prayer a sense of rest had come upon her
-and made it easier for her to be kind even to Ivor
-Restormel. She found the others of her party busy
-discussing some new and interesting point. Jim made
-haste to enlighten her.</p>
-
-<p>‘The Rovers are going down Long Kern this morning,
-mother,’ he exclaimed. ‘And Ivor says he is going
-with them. I am awfully keen to go, too. Don’t you
-think I might?’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred instantly avenged herself for the suffering
-that her son’s perverse disloyalty had been so long
-inflicting upon her.</p>
-
-<p>‘Most certainly not,’ she replied. ‘I have a perfect
-horror of such places. You would not wish him to go,
-Kingston&mdash;no?’</p>
-
-<p>‘There can’t be any danger,’ replied Kingston;
-‘they will have efficient ropes and things. And
-Weston says there are the most wonderful caves at the
-bottom.’</p>
-
-<p>‘Are you really going, Mr. Restormel?’ asked Gundred,
-without paying further heed to Jim’s protests
-or Jim’s disappointment. She saw in a second
-how brilliantly God had answered her prayers for help.
-Long Kern was a small but deadly rift in the limestone
-of the hill above, which dropped three hundred feet of
-narrow shaft sheer down to unfathomable caverns
-below. Gundred saw clearly that the whole problem
-of her life was to be solved by a miracle. For Heaven
-may make a miracle out of any particularly happy<span class="pagenum">[385]</span>
-coincidence. And what coincidence could possibly be
-more happy, more miraculous than this? For God
-clearly meant to destroy Ivor Restormel underground.</p>
-
-<p>Ivor, meanwhile, declared that he was eagerly looking
-forward to the exploration. The Rovers, about a
-dozen of them, were to make the descent at midday,
-and meant to stay in the caves down below until they
-had unravelled, as far as possible, the labyrinth of their
-passages. As for precautions and methods, they were
-to use rope-ladders and guiding wires, so that no real
-risk of any sort could be anticipated.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred listened with a wise smile. She knew
-better. Ivor Restormel might take as many precautions
-as he pleased; nothing could avail him against
-the combined weight of Gundred’s prayers and
-Heaven’s attention to them. This scheme of his was
-quite obviously the direct inspiration of the Powers
-above, working in Ivor to his destruction, as they had
-worked so many years ago for the fatal hardening of
-Pharaoh’s heart in Egypt. Gundred blandly acquiesced,
-and lent an unusually pleasant countenance
-to the young man’s exposition of his plans. As he was
-so evidently doomed, she might fairly relax the
-righteousness of her wrath against him. Even for
-one merciful moment she thought of interposing, of
-saving Ivor’s life by deprecating his scheme. But the
-moment passed&mdash;she saw how irreverent it would be
-to counter Heaven’s design. And to oppose Ivor’s
-plan would necessarily be to oppose Heaven’s also.
-So Gundred piously resigned everything into God’s
-hands, and stood aside to let matters take their
-course.</p>
-
-<p>Jim, meanwhile, was pressing her with pleas that he
-also might be allowed to join the party. His father, too,
-did not seem disinclined to grant his request. Gundred
-returned briskly to the immediate present.<span class="pagenum">[386]</span>
-No, no; this complicating element must on no account
-be introduced. She could trust Heaven to look after
-Ivor Restormel when once he was inside Long Kern,
-but she was not at all inclined to trust It to discriminate
-between the innocent and the guilty, when it came to
-arranging the rock-fall or the sudden rush of water
-which she anticipated with a certain holy complacency.
-All Ivor’s companions would almost certainly perish
-with him. On no account, then, must her own precious
-child run any risk of being included in the Evil One’s
-condemnation. She looked at Jim, so eager, so young,
-so brilliant.</p>
-
-<p>There was nothing in the world her hidden nature
-loved so hungrily. By comparison even her great love
-for Kingston was very much a matter of pride and habit.
-But Jim was her own, of her own body, of her own
-blood, the crowning achievement of her life, the visible
-evidence of Heaven’s approval. In himself he was
-altogether lovely and delightful. And beyond all that
-again, beyond his own personal qualities, he stood to
-Gundred for the other thing she most venerated and
-cherished in the world&mdash;the glory of March and Brakelond.
-When he grew up he was to resume his mother’s
-name, and unite the resplendency of the Mortimers
-with the money of the Darnleys; and then, when her
-father died, it was an open secret that the dignities
-of the House would be revived in the person of her
-son. Gundred felt that through her own wifely and
-motherly virtues she had been privileged to support
-the banner of March and Brakelond. It was because
-she had always been so humble, so devout, that such
-an honour had been vouchsafed her, and her son was
-doubly precious in her eyes, not only in himself, but
-as the Duke of her own providing, who should continue,
-from his high place, to set an example of Evangelical
-piety to the people of England. She shuddered<span class="pagenum">[387]</span>
-at the thought of allowing her jewel to run into danger,
-and made haste to make it very certain to Jim that in
-no circumstances would he be allowed to share Ivor’s
-descent of Long Kern.</p>
-
-<p>‘You don’t want to get wet and cold right down
-there in the horrid dark&mdash;no?’ concluded Gundred
-ingratiatingly.</p>
-
-<p>‘But it won’t be wet,’ protested the boy. ‘Father
-has had the stream dammed about two hundred yards
-above the hole. Otherwise they would not have been
-able to go down at all. They would all have been
-drowned. The water is very high just now, after the
-rain. But, as it is, it will be quite dry down in the
-caves.’</p>
-
-<p>But Gundred, strong in her private foresight of
-Heaven’s intentions, could not be swayed from her
-decision. Kingston was forced into the contest, and
-found himself compelled, for the sake of peace and
-dignity, to endorse his wife’s prohibition. Jim subsided
-at last, flushed with resentful disappointment.
-Gundred, meantime, was eating her egg dispassionately,
-with her usual seraphic tranquillity, while her
-heart was filled with strange, conflicting feelings. She
-looked across at Ivor Restormel with secret curiosity.
-She knew that he was doomed, and in the last moments
-could not stifle a certain pity which struck her as being
-faintly irreligious and painfully human. But he was
-so young and so beautiful, however evil and pernicious.
-To die down there in the eternal darkness,
-caught like a rat in a trap by the vengeance of Heaven,
-that was a pitiable fate. That it would assuredly
-descend Gundred could no longer entertain a doubt,
-and, when she remembered that it was her own prayers
-that had jogged Heaven into this intervention, she felt
-a dim pricking of remorse. During the few hours that
-remained she would be kind to the predestined victim.<span class="pagenum">[388]</span>
-Ivor was pleasantly surprised by the suavity with
-which Lady Gundred offered him a second cup of tea.</p>
-
-<p>‘Do have some more,’ pleaded Gundred; ‘you will
-want to be properly prepared for this wonderful
-expedition of yours. Shall I tell them to make you up
-a little lunch?’</p>
-
-<p>In her heart of hearts she knew that he would never
-need lunch on earth again, and her economical temper
-grieved to think of the hard-boiled eggs and the cress
-sandwiches that would be wasted if her offer were
-accepted. But, as he could not be expected to know
-how profitless Heaven intended to make any packets
-of lunch that she might provide, she felt that the kindness
-must in common decency be offered.</p>
-
-<p>Ivor, however, replied that he hoped to be back at
-Ivescar in plenty of time for tea, and that he would not
-trouble about food till then. Gundred smiled and
-sighed to think how tragically he was mistaken. Her
-feelings were firm and rigid. Long thought and long
-anxiety had crystallized now into a mystic ecstasy of
-certainty. In the previous weeks she had known
-sore vacillations and distresses. But now the friendly
-Powers had made everything plain once more. Until
-this morning she had felt a certain weakness and need
-of earthly counsel; as a sound Evangelical Protestant,
-she had, of course, a proper pious horror of the priesthood
-and the confessional; and yet there had been
-times when she would have liked to pour forth her
-troubles to a fellow-creature. Had she consulted a
-doctor rather than a priest, he might have told her that
-an <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">idée fixe</i> is not the healthiest companion for a
-woman of self-contained and secret nature, and that
-the previous generations of March and Brakelond,
-feeble-minded or eccentric, held out a special prospect
-of disaster when such an <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">idée fixe</i> was cherished by
-herself. However, by now, the time for warnings and<span class="pagenum">[389]</span>
-advice was past. Gundred was fully possessed by the
-mania that had arisen so naturally from her devout
-habits and her weak mind, wrought on by jealousy
-and by a tyrannous consciousness of being herself the
-chosen of Heaven. Now she faced what she foresaw
-to be the punishment of her enemy, with the cold calm
-of Jael. She was glad that Heaven had taken the
-affair so promptly into its own hands.</p>
-
-<p>Once before, her Celestial Ally, she remembered, had
-intervened by a miracle to relieve her from the perilous
-presence of Isabel Darrell. Now the same prodigy of
-favour was to be repeated in a different form, and who
-was she to carp at the tender mercies of the Almighty?
-With folded hands and placid heart she sat by to let
-matters take their appointed way. Nothing in all
-the world would so utterly have horrified her as the
-statement that she desired the death of Ivor Restormel.
-She repeated to herself again and again that she wanted
-nothing of the sort, but had perfect trust in the wisdom
-of the All-wise. She had no desires of any kind;
-nothing but pure faith. And to wish for anyone’s
-death, how very abominable and unchristian and unwomanly!
-Far, far from her gentle mind was any
-such truculent passion; the utmost that she would
-own to herself was that she would find it impossible to
-grieve when Heaven had taken her enemy to its mercy.
-And, as for altering the course of events, that was
-clearly out of the question. She could only await
-what Heaven should send. She now forgot that she
-herself, as it were, had given Heaven a nudge in the
-matter. She deliberately disclaimed all responsibility,
-and plumed herself on the mildness and resignation
-that her conduct showed. Stiff and calm in what
-by now was nothing short of monomania, the unfortunate
-woman sat and smiled, as her own damnation
-passed onwards to its accomplishment.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[390]</span></p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, however, her husband was making a
-suggestion. She came back out of her dream to hear it.</p>
-
-<p>‘Why shouldn’t you and I and Jim go up to Long
-Kern and watch them go down?’ he said, anxious to
-indemnify Jim as far as possible for the disappointment
-which his mother had inflicted. As soon as
-Gundred understood the proposition she gasped. This
-seemed almost too heavy a trial for her to bear. Then
-she suddenly understood that this was the sanctifying
-sacrifice that Heaven demanded of her. She must
-stand by and watch the fulfilment of her prayers so as
-to make the intervention of Heaven complete and
-holy. She signified her assent.</p>
-
-<p>‘But we must be back in time for lunch, dear,’ she
-conditioned, living her dual life as ever, one-half of her
-personality dwelling perpetually in dining-rooms and
-drawing-rooms, while the other soared into the high
-domains of religious frenzy. Then, breakfast being
-over, she rose and went her way mechanically upon her
-household duties, pending the awful consummation of
-her destiny, at which she was so soon to assist.</p>
-
-<p>At the appointed time she was ready for the start.
-The others were waiting for her in the hall, and they
-proceeded silently up towards the hills. Jim was too
-excited to talk much; a scheme that demanded all his
-attention was budding in his brain; Gundred, by now,
-was moving in a remote world far above earthly speech,
-in communion with the invisible. Ivor himself vaguely
-discerned some strange exaltation beneath the restraint
-of Gundred’s mood, and was reluctant to intrude his
-conversation. And Kingston himself was so sick and
-tired of his long struggle to achieve the impossible
-recognition that he had not the heart nor the temper
-to say much to the perverse human individuality that
-intervened so bitterly between him and the eternal
-memory it contained. So they surmounted the long<span class="pagenum">[391]</span>
-ridges of limestone, and came out at last upon the
-stretches of moor above that undulated gently upward
-towards the steep skirt of the Simonstone. The air
-that morning was clean and pure, filled with a white
-light and a bracing virility of tone; much rain
-had fallen in the last two days, and the atmosphere
-was moist and brilliant in colouring; great snowy
-ranges of cloud went sailing gloriously across the wet
-azure of Heaven, and the great mountain above
-towered high overhead in soft masses of brown and
-purplish green, while before them the moorland rolled
-away in waves of rust-coloured velvet, to where it
-suddenly ceased, in a sharp line that seemed the rim
-of the world, beneath which, far below, lay the broad
-valley and the plain-lands. The surface of the fell
-had folds and dimples and crests, but in the huge
-monotony of the expanse it appeared a waved sea of
-colour. Down the little gullies ran here and there a
-stream, riotous after the rains of over-night; here and
-there in the levels lay a small peat-pool that glittered
-like a forgotten silver shield among the sedges. And
-then they came at last to a deeper, steeper cañon, which
-soon broke off in a blind hollow, ringed in by precipitous
-banks of heather. And here it was that the stream
-which filled the channel disappeared. Long Kern was
-impressive in its very unimpressiveness. It was but a
-short and narrow slit between two masses of flat
-white limestone, and across the orifice a fallen boulder
-made a bridge. Hardly two yards intervened between
-the one lip and the other. And in that space yawned
-a solid shaft of black night. Sheer down and down
-fell the water that filled the chasm, three hundred feet
-and more, to the rayless labyrinth of caverns that made
-the heart of the mountain. Coming suddenly across
-this rift in the moorland one would at first have thought
-it nothing, a drop, perhaps of a fathom or so. It<span class="pagenum">[392]</span>
-was terribly inconspicuous and prosaic. Then, stepping
-along the rocky bridge that crossed it, one might be
-struck with a suggestion of its possibilities, and,
-throwing a rock into the darkness, might hear, after a
-long pause, the crashing rumble of its impact far below,
-as it bounded and dashed from ledge to ledge and side
-to side of the gulf, till it sent faintly up to the listener’s
-ear its last remote thunderous echoes from the black
-lake three hundred feet below, where the dim roar
-reverberated along the walls and ramifications of the
-cavern.</p>
-
-<p>On the brink the party paused. Ordinarily the
-place was lonely and desolate, but to-day there were
-signs of occupation and activities. Beams were
-stretched across the narrow gulf, and coils of rope were
-lying ready. The Rovers were scattered about,
-making their preparations for the descent. They were
-a club of professional men from the neighbouring large
-manufacturing towns, who amused themselves by
-exploring the recesses of the caves that honeycombed
-the Simonstone. On many previous occasions Kingston
-had made their efforts easier. And to-day, for the
-exploration of Long Kern, he had given them indispensable
-help by having the rain-swollen stream
-dammed off. The bed of the river was now nearly
-dry, and the water diverted into another channel.
-Otherwise, as Jim had said, the descent would have
-been impossible. The Rovers were very grateful,
-accordingly, for this spirited collaboration, and gave
-the Darnleys a warm welcome. To all four they extended
-an offer to make the descent, and when it
-appeared that Ivor Restormel was the only one who
-would accept their invitation, they showed a little
-disappointment. With Jim especially they pled to
-accompany them, tantalizing him cruelly, and were
-only made to desist at last by the unequivocal firmness<span class="pagenum">[393]</span>
-of Lady Gundred’s hostility towards the proposal.
-And so they set about the last preparations. Gaily
-talking and laughing among themselves, they proceeded
-to the fastening of ropes and the final arrangements
-for the descent.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly Gundred could bear the ordeal no longer.
-The matter-of-fact, innocent cheerfulness of it all was
-too much for her, with her terrible secret foreknowledge.
-She knew that Heaven had doomed every one
-of those happy people, so as to make sure of Ivor
-Restormel. Of course, he alone might fall, or strangle,
-or have a stone dropped on his head. But, on the
-whole, it was far more likely, far more in accordance
-with Scriptural precedent, that guilty and innocent
-should all perish together. So much the worse for the
-innocent! Her mystic exaltation did not go the length
-of protesting against their fatal plan at the eleventh
-hour, but it was not quite firm and faithful enough to
-bear the grim spectacle unmoved. She turned hastily
-and moved away up the empty bed of the stream,
-leaving Jim and her husband to watch the descent.
-From the bend in the river-bed she turned to take a
-last look at her enemy. He was still chattering and
-smiling with his friends, adapting the rope, adjusting
-satchels and packages. Kingston was saying something
-at which they both laughed. Then Gundred,
-very sick and heavy at heart, in spite of her sense of
-sacred ecstasy, turned the corner and was out of sight
-of the pothole.</p>
-
-<p>Kingston eyed the narrow gulf of darkness with unspoken
-dread. Now, at the last moment, he disliked
-Ivor’s determination to share the descent. He hated
-the idea of watching the boy disappear into that night
-below. It seemed too symbolic of that eternal night
-into which the restored memory must one day pass
-again. And yet, the granting of his own importunate<span class="pagenum">[394]</span>
-desire, what had it brought him except the bitterness
-of a yet fiercer, more insatiable desire? For a while
-he would even be glad to have rest from his tormenting,
-baffling intimacy with the secret thing that could
-never hear the cry of his voice. Let the boy go down,
-then, into the darkness, carrying with him that wonderful
-mystical thing that he enshrined. Kingston’s
-fingers were raw and bleeding, his whole soul broken
-and agonized with long fruitless plucking and battering
-at the locked doors of that shrine. Let it go, then, for
-half an hour, and leave him at peace. As it had returned
-to him once before, out of the greater darkness
-of the grave, so, in the course of a few moments, it
-would come back to light again from the darkness of
-the pit, and all his torments would be renewed, growing
-ever keener and fiercer towards the dim end that he
-dared not try to foresee. The knowledge of doom
-was black and heavy upon him as he watched the boy
-preparing for his disappearance, and, in the concentration
-of his bitter mood, he hardly heard the voice of
-Jim, now once more raised in eager pleading to be
-allowed the joy of the descent.</p>
-
-<p>Gundred meanwhile was wandering on in a stupor,
-not thinking, not daring to think. The whole of life
-seemed to her to be hanging in suspense. The next
-half-hour was to vindicate her righteousness and make
-dreadfully manifest the majesty of Heaven. Her
-brain oscillated in coma, and she was no longer conscious
-of any pain or any feeling at all. Everything
-passed from her mind except the actual physical
-pleasure of the moment, the keen freshness of the air,
-the lovely colours of life, the myriad little voices that
-haunted the world. Then suddenly they were all
-merged in one vehement, rushing murmur. She
-looked down. She had arrived at the dam that
-diverted the stream.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[395]</span></p>
-
-<p>A bank of turf and stones had been built, and against
-its barrier the brown water surged and ravened
-angrily, in a froth of white bubbles and spume, eager
-to take its old way down into the pothole and the
-caverns below. Disappointed, however, of its hope,
-it must needs go foaming and scolding along an unaccustomed
-course, over green grasses, drenched and
-streaming in its current, and down a slope of rush and
-sedge. Soothed unconsciously by its hum, Gundred
-sat down and idly watched the raging swirl of the
-water. It was well that the stream had been thus
-firmly held back and diverted, for a huge mass of water
-it was that made it so turbulent. After two days’
-rain on the Simonstone, all the waters of the mountain
-were in flood, and the Long Kern should naturally
-have been filled with a roaring spate. Suddenly
-Gundred’s human consciousness was vaguely aware of
-an alteration. Something seemed to be shifting, the
-noise of the fretted torrent changing its note. Then
-she saw a filament of water percolating. As she
-watched, it widened. The dam was not strong enough
-to bear the surging wrath behind it. The dam was
-breaking; Gundred awoke with a violent start. She
-rose and turned impulsively towards the pothole&mdash;on
-the point of running, of shrieking a warning, of doing
-something helpful or human. Then, in an instant, she
-understood that she could do nothing&mdash;understood
-what it was that Heaven had achieved for her. Her
-prayer had been answered. She must give thanks,
-and stand aside.</p>
-
-<p>Firmly, decidedly, with head carried high, and the
-fanatic’s mad light in her eyes, Gundred turned away
-from the stream and walked swiftly home across the
-moor. What came after was the work of Heaven.
-Heaven must take full responsibility. Heaven had
-broken the dam; Heaven might easily have ordained<span class="pagenum">[396]</span>
-that the descent should not yet have commenced.
-Gundred had done nothing. Heaven had done it all.
-She could only go quietly home and trust in the wise
-mercies of Providence. In an hour or so she would
-hear what had happened.</p>
-
-<p>But, though she did not know it, the strain on her
-endurance was fearfully heavy. She found her mind
-perpetually wandering back to the Long Kern, wondering
-in an agony whether the explorers had already
-embarked on their adventure when that roaring volume
-of brown water had swept thunderously down upon
-them&mdash;wondering whereabouts in that perilous chasm
-it had caught them, what it must feel like to be so
-suddenly, so fearfully battered out of life, and swept
-away into the abysses of the Underworld. Her brain
-was a sickening chaos. Fire and water, fire and water;
-the two great moments of her life had come to her
-through fire and water. Through the roaring waters
-of that broken dam she vaguely remembered the
-roaring fires of Brakelond. Isabel&mdash;Isabel&mdash;in a way,
-had given her life for Gundred; and Gundred?&mdash;Gundred,
-after many years, had, in a way, stood by
-and watched the taking of other lives. Dimly, instinctively,
-she could not refrain from comparing the
-two catastrophes, from feeling a blind, illogical sense
-that they stood in some mystic relation to each other.
-And so, alone, she came at last to Ivescar.</p>
-
-<p>Her training stood her in good stead, and enabled her
-to go subconsciously through the routine duties of her
-day. She did not put off lunch when her husband
-failed to return, but ate it in solitary state, and heartily&mdash;recognising
-that it was always her duty to sustain her
-body. Her soul, however, was very far away. In her
-inmost heart she knew that Ivor Restormel was dead.
-She did not dare to face the knowledge and understand
-it, but it was there, gnawing, persistent. She<span class="pagenum">[397]</span>
-steeled herself to bear the terrible news that Jim and
-Kingston must soon be bringing back. And lunch
-must be kept hot for them. As the hours went by and
-brought no certainty to end her growing suspense, the
-pandemonium of clamouring voices in Gundred’s
-brain grew louder, more confused, more frightening.
-She seemed on the very edge of something very horrible&mdash;she,
-the favourite, the chosen, the glorified of
-Heaven. Something very horrible was surging into
-sight. In another moment she would see it. Terror&mdash;mysterious,
-ghastly&mdash;seized and gripped her. Then
-in the silence she heard approaching footsteps. The
-Horror was at hand. Gundred rose, pale and trembling,
-exerting all her forces, even in this last moment, to
-preserve the outward decorum of her demeanour. The
-door opened, and her husband came into the room.
-She stared at him in dumb dread. For a moment he
-could command no words. In silence his eyes met hers.
-His voice was low and husky and shattered, when at
-last he had gathered strength to speak.</p>
-
-<p>‘Gundred,’ he whispered&mdash;‘Gundred....’</p>
-
-<p>She interrupted him. Now, in the fulfilment of her
-destiny, a dreadful courage flowed back to her.</p>
-
-<p>‘Something terrible has happened,’ she said; ‘tell
-me quickly.’</p>
-
-<p>He was too busy with his own grief to notice that she
-seemed prepared for what she was about to hear.</p>
-
-<p>‘The dam,’ he answered&mdash;‘the dam. It broke. It
-burst as soon as they had gone down.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred clasped her hands tightly to prevent their
-trembling from being observed. She spoke as if in a
-dream.</p>
-
-<p>‘And Ivor,’ she asked, unconsciously using the
-Christian name&mdash;‘Ivor, is he safe?’</p>
-
-<p>Kingston laughed bitterly.</p>
-
-<p>‘Safe?’ he cried&mdash;‘safe? Ivor is dead. They are<span class="pagenum">[398]</span>
-all dead. I waited till they had got the bodies up.
-The flood soon subsided, and the men were able to get
-down and find the bodies. That is why I waited.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred moaned. The reality was more crushing
-than she had ever feared. God had granted her
-desire, but in a terrific way, and its granting brought
-her small joy. She almost ceased to feel holy.</p>
-
-<p>‘Oh, Kingston,’ she murmured.... ‘Kingston,
-how awful! Too shocking to think of&mdash;too shocking
-to think of.’ She shook her head, covering her eyes
-as if to shut out the vision of those wretched adventurers
-caught and swept away by the flood which her
-prayers had loosed upon them. In that moment she
-felt a murderess. And the sanctity of the murder
-faded from her mind. Then she turned to the one spot
-of comfort in the whole disaster. What a merciful
-interposition of Heaven it was that had prevented her
-from allowing Jim to make the descent. That preservation
-in itself showed the special favour of the Almighty.
-He had set her son apart from the catastrophe
-that He had ordained. Her voice was calmer
-as she uncovered her face and spoke again.</p>
-
-<p>‘And Jim?’ she asked. ‘What have you done with
-him? I do pray he did not see this dreadful sight.
-Poor little Jim! What an awful shock it would have
-been!’ Then she caught her husband’s eye, and
-paused in sudden terror of what she saw there....
-‘Kingston?’ she cried. He could give no answer.
-‘Kingston?’ she repeated sharply, her voice rising to
-a shrill note of anxiety. ‘Kingston, what is it?’</p>
-
-<p>‘Jim went down with the others,’ said her husband
-in a low, colourless tone. ‘He wanted so much to go.
-I said he might. Jim went down with the others.’</p>
-
-<p>Gundred gave a short cry.</p>
-
-<p>‘Then how did you succeed in saving him?’ she
-gasped. ‘How was it he was not drowned with the<span class="pagenum">[399]</span>
-others? Kingston, how did you succeed in saving
-him?’</p>
-
-<p>‘I did not,’ answered Kingston very quietly. ‘Jim
-is drowned. They are bringing back his body now with
-the others.’</p>
-
-<p>‘No,’ said Gundred, in a fearful stupefaction of
-calm&mdash;‘no, it is not possible. Jim is not dead. God
-must have saved him. It is not possible.’ Then her
-quiet cracked like glass. ‘Kingston,’ she screamed,
-‘say it is not possible. Jim is safe.’</p>
-
-<p>The father shook his head. ‘Jim is drowned,’ he
-repeated. ‘Drowned with the others.’</p>
-
-<p>A deadly silence fell between them. Gundred
-pressed both hands to her head. The brain inside was
-a fiery wheel of agony, blinding her with the coruscations
-of its anguish. Then at last her hands sank to
-her sides and she looked up. Her face was fixed and
-ghastly, her voice unnaturally stolid as she spoke.</p>
-
-<p>‘There!’ said Gundred very slowly and deliberately.
-‘That is what comes of disobeying one’s mother!’
-Then she broke abruptly into peal on peal of high
-laughter. Shrieking with horrible merriment, she fell
-back upon the sofa, rocking to and fro in the convulsion
-of her madness. Kingston dropped into a
-chair, and hid his head in his hands. It seemed as
-if that fearful noise would never cease. And yet he
-could see nothing, hear nothing. He was alone for
-ever in the black darkness. Everything was gone.
-And still Gundred sat and laughed.</p>
-
-<p class="center p2">THE END</p>
-
-<p class="center p2 smallfont">BILLING AND SONS, LTD., PRINTERS, GUILDFORD.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[1]</span></p>
-
-<div class="center">
-<p class="displayinline" style="text-align:left; padding-right:2em; vertical-align:text-top"><span style="padding-left:2em">Telegrams:</span><br />
-‘Scholarly, London.’</p>
-
-<p class="displayinline" style="padding-left:2em; vertical-align:text-top; text-align:right"><span style="padding-right:2em">41 and 43 Maddox Street,</span><br />
-<span style="padding-right:1em">Bond Street, London, W.,</span><br />
-<em>January, 1907</em>.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="center xxlargefont">Mr. Edward Arnold’s<br />
-List of New Books.</p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">MEMORIES.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Major-General</span> SIR OWEN TUDOR BURNE,
-G.C.I.E., K.C.S.I.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Demy 8vo. With Illustrations.</em> <b>15s. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>Sir Owen Burne joined the 20th Regiment (now the Lancashire
-Fusiliers) in 1855. He came in for the end of the Crimean War and
-served throughout the Indian Mutiny, receiving two steps in rank
-for gallantry in the field. Not long afterwards he became Military
-Secretary to the Commander-in-Chief, Sir Hugh Rose. He was
-Private Secretary to Lord Mayo until his assassination, and made
-a personal report on that tragic event to the Queen. Later he
-became Secretary in the Political and Secret Department of the
-India Office. He was also Private Secretary to Lord Lytton,
-when Viceroy, and served ten years as a member of the Council
-of India.</p>
-
-<p>An interesting chapter of Sir Owen’s reminiscences deals with the
-year 1873, when, as Political A.D.C. to the Secretary of State for
-India, he assisted Sir Henry Rawlinson in taking charge of the
-Shah of Persia during his visit to England. Copious extracts are
-given from His Majesty’s diary, which has come into Sir Owen’s
-hands.</p>
-
-<p>The book is a lively record of a distinguished career, freely interspersed
-with amusing stories, and illustrated with photographs of
-some noteworthy groups.</p>
-
-<p class="center">LONDON: EDWARD ARNOLD, 41 &amp; 43 MADDOX STREET, W.</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[2]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">SOME PROBLEMS OF EXISTENCE.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By NORMAN PEARSON.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Demy 8vo.</em> <b>7s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>Dealing with such Problems of Existence as the origin of life,
-spirit and matter, free will, determinism and morality, and the sense
-of sin, Mr. Pearson lays down as postulates for a theory which
-philosophy and religion may be able to accept, and which science
-need not reject&mdash;(1) the existence of a Deity; (2) the immortality of
-man; and (3) a Divine scheme of evolution of which we form part,
-and which, as expressing the purpose of the Deity, proceeds under
-the sway of an inflexible order. The author’s method is well calculated
-to appeal to the general reader, though some of his conclusions
-as to the past and future of humanity differ considerably from
-popularly received opinions on the subject.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">SIX RADICAL THINKERS.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">JOHN MacCUNN</span>, LL.D.,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Professor of Philosophy in the University of Liverpool</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Crown 8vo.</em> <b>6s. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>These brilliant essays possess an exceptional interest at the
-present moment when Liberal and Radical principles bulk so largely
-in the political arena. The six main subjects of Professor MacCunn’s
-volume are Bentham and his Philosophy of Reform, the Utilitarian
-Optimism of John Stuart Mill, the Commercial Radicalism of
-Cobden, the Anti-Democratic Radicalism of Thomas Carlyle, the
-Religious Radicalism of Joseph Mazzini, and the Political Idealism
-of T. H. Green.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">LETTERS FROM THE FAR EAST.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By Sir CHARLES ELIOT, K.C.M.G.,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Author of</span> ‘<span class="smcap">Turkey in Europe</span>,’ ‘<span class="smcap">The East African Protectorate</span>,’ <span class="smcap">etc.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Demy 8vo. With Illustrations.</em> <b>8s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>This is an exceedingly interesting series of letters on the political
-and social situation in India, China, Japan, and the Far East
-generally.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[3]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">A PICNIC PARTY IN WILDEST
-AFRICA.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By C. W. L. BULPETT.</p>
-
-<p class="center boldfont">Being a Sketch of a Winter’s Trip to some of the Unknown Waters
-of the Upper Nile.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Demy 8vo. With Illustrations and Map.</em> <b>12s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>The object of the expedition described in this book was to survey
-the Musha and Boma plateaux, which lie between the River Akobo
-and Lake Rudolf. It was organized by Mr. W. N. McMillan, an
-experienced American traveller, and was remarkably successful,
-though the fact that one of the caravans marched thirty-eight days
-on half-rations, largely through a country flooded by incessant rain,
-shows that the excursion was very far from being altogether a picnic.
-Mounts Ungwala and Naita were ascended, and hundreds of square
-miles of previously unexplored country were surveyed and mapped.
-The accounts of the abundance of game will make the sportsman’s
-mouth water.</p>
-
-<p>A considerable amount of the description of scenery and life on the
-Nile and Sobat is extracted from the journal of Mrs. McMillan, who
-accompanied her husband. Many of the illustrations are from
-drawings made on the spot by Mr. Jessen, cartographer of the
-expedition.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">TIPPOO TIB.</p>
-
-<p class="center boldfont">The Story of a Central African Despot.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Narrated from his own accounts by Dr. HEINRICH BRODE.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Demy 8vo. With Portrait.</em> <b>10s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>In the course of a prolonged residence at Zanzibar as consular
-representative of Germany, Dr. Brode became intimately acquainted
-with the celebrated adventurer Tippoo Tib, and succeeded in
-inducing him to write the story of his life. This he did, in Swaheli,
-using Arabic characters, which Dr. Brode transcribed for translation
-into German. The material thus supplied by Tippoo Tib has been
-expanded by Dr. Brode into a remarkable picture of Africa before
-and during its transition into the hands of the white man.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[4]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">THE PRINCES OF ACHAIA AND THE
-CHRONICLES OF MOREA.</p>
-
-<p class="center boldfont">A Study of Greece in the Middle Ages.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By Sir RENNELL RODD, G.C.V.O., K.C.M.G., C.B.,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Author of</span> ‘<span class="smcap">Customs and Lore of Modern Greece</span>,’ ‘<span class="smcap">Feda, and other Poems</span>,’
-‘<span class="smcap">The Unknown Madonna</span>,’ ‘<span class="smcap">Ballads of the Fleet</span>,’ <span class="smcap">etc.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>2 Volumes. Demy 8vo. With Illustrations and Map.</em> <b>25s. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>In this masterly work Sir Rennell Rodd deals with a curiously
-interesting and fascinating subject which has never been treated of
-in English, though a few scanty notices of the period may be found.
-It is gratifying to know that the British School in Athens has of
-late turned its attention to the Byzantine and Frankish remains in
-the Morea. Meanwhile this book will fill a great blank in the
-historical knowledge of most people.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">THUCYDIDES MYTHISTORICUS.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By F. M. CORNFORD, M.A.,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Fellow and Lecturer at Trinity College, Cambridge</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Demy 8vo.</em> <b>10s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>This is an important contribution to the study of Thucydides.
-Having attributed the causes of the Peloponnesian War almost entirely
-to commercial factors, Mr. Cornford shows how Thucydides,
-free from modern ideas of causation, unfolds the tragedy of Athens,
-led by Fortune at Pylos, by the Hybris and Infatuation of Cleon and
-Alcibiades, to the Nemesis of Syracuse. The book will be found
-interesting by all students of history. All passages from Greek
-authors are quoted in English in the text, which can be understood
-without reference to the Greek in the footnotes.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">GREEK LIVES FROM PLUTARCH.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Newly Translated by C. E. BYLES, B.A.,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Formerly Exhibitioner of St. John’s College, Cambridge</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Crown 8vo. With Illustrations and Maps.</em> <b>1s. 6d.</b></p>
-
-<p>This is an entirely new translation abridged from the Greek.
-Although primarily intended for the use of schools, it should be
-found acceptable by the general reader.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[5]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">THE NEXT STREET BUT ONE.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By M. LOANE,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Author of</span> ‘<span class="smcap">The Queen’s Poor</span>.’</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Crown 8vo.</em> <b>6s.</b></p>
-
-<p>Like its predecessor, this book is not only a mine of interesting
-and amusing sketches of life among the poor, but, in its more serious
-aspect, a remarkable and most valuable corrective of many widely
-prevalent and erroneous views about the habits of thought and ethics
-of the poorer classes.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">A HUNTING CATECHISM.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By COLONEL R. F. MEYSEY-THOMPSON,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Author of</span> ‘<span class="smcap">Reminiscences of the Course, the Camp, and the Chase</span>,’ ‘<span class="smcap">A Fishing
-Catechism</span>,’ <span class="smcap">and</span> ‘<span class="smcap">A Shooting Catechism</span>.’</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Foolscap 8vo.</em> <b>3s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>This, the third of Colonel Meysey-Thompson’s invaluable handbooks,
-will appeal to hunting men as strongly as the previous
-volumes did to lovers of rod and gun. The information given is
-absolutely practical, the result of forty years’ experience, and is
-largely conveyed in the form of Question and Answer. The arrangement
-is especially calculated to facilitate easy reference.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">AT THE WORKS.</p>
-
-<p class="center boldfont">A Study of a North Country Town.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By LADY BELL,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Author of</span> ‘<span class="smcap">The Dean of St. Patrick’s</span>,’ ‘<span class="smcap">The Arbiter</span>,’ <span class="smcap">etc., etc.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Crown 8vo.</em> <b>6s.</b></p>
-
-<p>In this little book Lady Bell has entered upon a new branch of
-literature. It is not a novel, but a description of the industrial and
-social condition of the ironworkers of the North Country.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[6]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">INDIVIDUAL OWNERSHIP
-AND THE GROWTH OF MODERN
-CIVILIZATION.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Being HENRI DE TOURVILLE’S ‘Histoire de la Formation
-Particulariste,’ translated by <span class="smcap">M. G. Loch</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Demy 8vo.</em></p>
-
-<p>The articles which are here presented in the form of a volume
-were contributed by the author to the French periodical <cite>La Science
-Sociale</cite> over a period of six years ending in February, 1903. His
-death occurred within a few days of his completing the work.
-M. de Tourville, after showing that the transformation of the
-communal into the particularist family took place in Scandinavia,
-and was largely due to the peculiar geographical character of the
-Western slope, traces the development of modern Europe from the
-action of the particularist type of society upon the fabric of Roman
-civilization.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">MEMORIES OF THE MONTHS.</p>
-
-<p class="center sansseriffont">FOURTH SERIES.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By the Right Hon. Sir HERBERT MAXWELL, <span class="smcap">Bart.</span>, F.R.S.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Large crown 8vo. With Photogravure Illustrations.</em> <b>7s. 6d.</b></p>
-
-<p>This fresh instalment of Sir Herbert Maxwell’s delightful
-‘Memories of the Months’ will be welcomed by lovers of his
-descriptions of country life.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center sansseriffont">NEW EDITION.</p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">LETTERS OF
-MARY SIBYLLA HOLLAND.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Selected and Edited by her son, BERNARD HOLLAND.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Crown 8vo.</em> <b>7s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>To this, the third, edition of these attractive letters, Mr. Bernard
-Holland has added a large number of new letters, which were not
-included in the second edition, having been found or contributed
-since the date of its publication. The book is now in its final and
-complete form.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[7]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">THE REMINISCENCES OF
-LADY DOROTHY NEVILL.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Edited by her Son, RALPH NEVILL.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Demy 8vo. With Portrait.</em> <b>15s. net.</b></p>
-
-<p class="center sansseriffont">SIXTH IMPRESSION.</p>
-
-<p>There are very few persons living whose knowledge of English
-Society is, literally, so extensive and peculiar as Lady Dorothy
-Nevill’s, and fewer still whose recollections of a period extending
-from the day of the postchaise to that of the motor-car are as graphic
-and entertaining as hers. In the course of her life she has met
-almost every distinguished representative of literature, politics and
-art, and about many of them she has anecdotes to tell which have
-never before been made public. She has much to say of her intimate
-friends of an earlier day&mdash;Disraeli, the second Duke of Wellington,
-Bernal Osborne, Lord Ellenborough, and a dozen others&mdash;while a
-multitude of more modern personages pass in procession across her
-light-hearted pages. A reproduction of a recent crayon portrait by
-M. Cayron is given as frontispiece.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">PERSONAL ADVENTURES AND
-ANECDOTES OF AN OLD OFFICER.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By Colonel JAMES P. ROBERTSON, C.B.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Demy 8vo. With Portraits.</em> <b>12s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>The phrase ‘a charmed life’ is hackneyed, but it may be used
-with peculiar appropriateness to describe Colonel Robertson’s
-military career. ‘The history of my nose alone,’ says the cheery
-old soldier in his Preface, ‘would fill a chapter,’ and, indeed, not
-only his nose, but his whole body, seem to have spent their time in,
-at all events, running a risk of being seriously damaged in every
-possible way. The book, in fact, is simply full of fine confused
-fighting and hair-breadth escapes.</p>
-
-<p>Joining the 31st Regiment in 1842, Colonel Robertson took part
-in the Sutlej Campaign from Moodkee to Sobraon. He was in the
-Crimea, and throughout the Mutiny he commanded a regiment of
-Light Cavalry, doing repeatedly the most gallant service. The
-incidents of life in Ireland and the Ionian Islands during the intervals
-of peace are worthy of ‘Charles O’Malley,’ and are described
-with something of Lever’s raciness of touch.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[8]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">THE AFTERMATH OF WAR.</p>
-
-<p class="center boldfont">An Account of the Repatriation of Boers and Natives in the Orange
-River Colony.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By G. B. BEAK.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Demy 8vo. With Illustrations and Map.</em> <b>12s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>The author, after serving nearly two and a half years in the South
-African War, was appointed Assistant Secretary of the Orange
-River Colony Repatriation Department, and subsequently Assistant
-Director of Relief under the Government. His information is thus
-not only first-hand but unique. The book is illustrated with some
-extremely interesting photographs.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>‘The book is sure to become a standard work, for it throws a flood of light
-upon and solves many of the knotty questions of that period which have agitated
-men’s minds at home and abroad.’&mdash;<cite>Daily Telegraph.</cite></p></div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">PATROLLERS OF PALESTINE.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By the <span class="smcap">Rev.</span> HASKETT SMITH, M.A., F.R.G.S.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Editor of</span> ‘<span class="smcap">Murray’s Handbook to Syria and Palestine</span>,’ 1902;</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Large crown 8vo. With Illustrations.</em> <b>10s. 6d.</b></p>
-
-<p>The late Mr. Haskett Smith was a well-known authority on the
-Holy Land, and in this book he personally conducts a typical party
-of English tourists to some of the more important sites hallowed by
-tradition.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>‘The reader is not only charmed by the pleasant experiences and the interesting
-discussions of the pilgrims, but at the same time he acquires a great deal of
-information which would otherwise have to be sought in a combination of
-cyclopædia, “Speaker’s Commentary,” and guide-book.’&mdash;<cite>Tribune.</cite></p></div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">POLITICAL CARICATURES, 1906.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By Sir F. CARRUTHERS GOULD.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Super royal 4to.</em> <b>6s. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>The change of Government, with the consequent variety of political
-topics, very greatly enhances the attraction of this new volume of
-cartoons by ‘Sir F. C. G.’ If the increased acerbity of political
-relations is found to be slightly reflected in these later cartoons, the
-many fresh and interesting studies are no less happily handled than
-those produced under the Conservative régime.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[9]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont sansseriffont">NEW FICTION.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Crown 8vo.</em> <b>6s.</b> <em>each.</em></p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="xlargefont">THE SUNDERED STREAMS.</span><br />
-By REGINALD FARRER,<br />
-<span class="smcap">Author of ‘The Garden of Asia’ and ‘The House of Shadows</span>.’</p>
-
-<p class="center p1"><span class="xlargefont">BENEDICT KAVANAGH.</span><br />
-By GEORGE A. BIRMINGHAM,<br />
-<span class="smcap">Author of ‘The Seething Pot’ and ‘Hyacinth</span>.’</p>
-
-<p class="center p1"><span class="xlargefont">THE GOLDEN HAWK.</span><br />
-By EDITH RICKERT,<br />
-<span class="smcap">Author of ‘The Reaper’ and ‘Folly</span>.’</p>
-
-<p class="center p1"><span class="sansseriffont">FOURTH IMPRESSION.</span><br />
-<span class="xlargefont">THE LADY ON
-THE DRAWINGROOM FLOOR.</span><br />
-By M. E. COLERIDGE.</p>
-
-<p class="center p1"><span class="sansseriffont">SECOND IMPRESSION.</span><br />
-<span class="xlargefont">THE MILLMASTER.</span><br />
-By C. HOLMES CAUTLEY.</p>
-
-<p class="center p1"><span class="sansseriffont">SECOND IMPRESSION.</span><br />
-<span class="xlargefont">QUICKSILVER AND FLAME.</span><br />
-By ST. JOHN LUCAS.</p>
-
-<p class="center p1"><span class="sansseriffont">SECOND IMPRESSION.</span><br />
-<span class="xlargefont">THE BASKET OF FATE.</span><br />
-By SIDNEY PICKERING.</p>
-
-<p class="center p1"><span class="xlargefont">OCCASION’S FORELOCK.</span><br />
-By VIOLET A. SIMPSON.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[10]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">ABYSSINIA OF TO-DAY.</p>
-
-<p class="center boldfont">An Account of the First Mission sent by the American Government
-to the King of Kings.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By ROBERT P. SKINNER,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Commissioner To Abyssinia, 1903-1904; American Consul-General; Fellow of the
-American Geographical Society; Soci dou Felibrige</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Demy 8vo. With numerous Illustrations and Map.</em> <b>12s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>The object of this American Mission to the Emperor Menelik
-was to negotiate a commercial treaty. The Mission was extremely
-well received, and the expedition appears to have been a complete
-success. The picture drawn by Mr. Skinner of the Abyssinians and
-their ruler is an exceedingly agreeable one; and his notes on this
-land of grave faces, elaborate courtesy, classic tone, and Biblical
-civilization, its history, politics, language, literature, religion, and
-trade, are full of interest; there are also some valuable hints on the
-organization and equipment of a caravan.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">WESTERN TIBET AND THE
-BRITISH BORDERLAND.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By CHARLES A. SHERRING, M.A., F.R.G.S.,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Indian Civil Service; Deputy Commissioner of Almora</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Royal 8vo. With Illustrations, Maps and Sketches.</em> <b>21s. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>During the last few years Tibet, wrapped through the centuries
-in mystery, has been effectively ‘opened up’ to the gaze of the
-Western world, and already the reader has at his disposal an
-enormous mass of information on the country and its inhabitants.
-But there is in Western Tibet a region which is still comparatively
-little known, which is especially sacred to the Hindu and Buddhist,
-and in which curious myths and still more curious manners abound;
-and it is of this portion of the British Borderland, its government, and
-the religion and customs of its peoples, that Mr. Sherring writes.</p>
-
-<p>The book contains a thrilling account by Dr. T. G. Longstaff,
-M.B., F.R.G.S., of an attempt to climb Gurla Mandhata, the highest
-mountain in Western Tibet, with two Swiss guides.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[11]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">LETTERS OF
-GEORGE BIRKBECK HILL,
-D.C.L., LL.D., Hon. Fellow of Pembroke College, Oxford.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Arranged by his Daughter, LUCY CRUMP.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Demy 8vo. With Portraits.</em> <b>12s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>Dr. Birkbeck Hill’s ‘Letters’ form, with a few connecting links
-written by his daughter, an autobiography whose charm lies in its
-intimate portrayal of a character which was, in its curious intensity,
-at once learned, tender, and humorous. He wrote as he talked, and
-his talk was famous for its fund of anecdote, of humour, of deep
-poetic feeling, of vigorous literary criticism, and no less vigorous
-political sentiment. As an Oxford undergraduate, he was one of the
-founders, together with Mr. Swinburne, Prof. A. V. Dicey, and
-Mr. James Bryce, of the Old Mortality Club. He was intimately
-connected also with the Pre-Raphaelites. At college, at home, on
-the Continent, or in America, everywhere he writes with the pen of
-one who observes everything, and who could fit all he saw that was
-new into his vast knowledge of the past. His editions of ‘Boswell’s
-Johnson,’ of ‘Johnson’s Letters,’ and ‘The Lives of the Poets’
-have passed into classical works. But that his writings were not
-exclusively Johnsonian is abundantly shown by such books as the
-Letters of Hume, Swift, General Gordon, and Rossetti, as well as
-by his ‘Life of Sir Rowland Hill,’ his ‘History of Harvard
-University,’ and various collections of essays.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">LETTERS TO A GODCHILD
-ON THE CATECHISM AND CONFIRMATION.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By ALICE GARDNER,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Associate and Lecturer of Newnham College, Cambridge; Author of ‘Friends of the
-Olden Time,’ ‘Theodore of Studium,’ etc.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Foolscap 8vo.</em> <b>2s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>This series of actual Letters written to an actual Godchild on the
-subject of Confirmation is intended for parents and teachers who
-either feel that some of the instruction to be derived from the
-Catechism is obscured by archaism of style and thought, or who
-desire something in the way of a supplement to the Catechism. It
-is not intended to take the place of works of formal religious instruction.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[12]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">TRANSLATIONS INTO LATIN AND
-GREEK VERSE.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By H. A. J. MUNRO,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Sometime Fellow of Trinity College, and Professor of Latin in the University
-Of Cambridge</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="center">With a Prefatory Note by J. D. DUFF,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Fellow of Trinity College, Cambridge</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Medium 8vo. With a Portrait.</em> <b>6s. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>These translations were originally printed for private circulation in
-the autumn of 1884, a few months before the author’s death. They
-were never published, and for years past the price asked for the
-book second-hand has been high. It has therefore been decided,
-with the consent of Munro’s representatives, to reprint the work, so
-that those who are interested in Latin Verse and in Munro may
-acquire a copy at a reasonable price.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center sansseriffont">NEW AND CHEAPER EDITION.</p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">THE QUEEN’S POOR.</p>
-
-<p class="center boldfont">Life as they find it in Town and Country.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By M. LOANE.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Crown 8vo.</em> <b>3s. 6d.</b></p>
-
-<p>Sir Arthur Clay, Bart., says of this book: ‘I have had a good deal of experience
-of “relief” work, and I have never yet come across a book upon the
-subject of the “poor” which shows such true insight and such a grasp of reality
-in describing the life, habits, and mental attitude of our poorer fellow-citizens....
-The whole book is not only admirable from a common-sense point of view, but it is
-extremely pleasant and interesting to read, and has the great charm of humour.’</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center sansseriffont">NEW EDITION, ENTIRELY REWRITTEN.</p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">PSYCHOLOGY FOR TEACHERS.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By C. LLOYD MORGAN, LL.D., F.R.S.,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Principal of University College, Bristol</span>;
-<span class="smcap">Author of ‘The Springs of Conduct,’ ‘Habit and Instinct,’ etc.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Crown 8vo.</em> <b>4s. 6d.</b></p>
-
-<p>For this edition, Professor Lloyd Morgan has entirely rewritten,
-and very considerably enlarged, his well-known work on this important
-subject. He has, in fact, practically made a new book of it.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[13]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">MISREPRESENTATIVE WOMEN,
-AND OTHER VERSES.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By HARRY GRAHAM,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Author of ‘Ruthless Rhymes for Heartless Homes,’ ‘Ballads of the Boer War,’
-‘Misrepresentative Men,’ ‘Fiscal Ballads,’ ‘Verse and Worse,’ Etc.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Foolscap 4to. With Illustrations by</em> <span class="smcap">Dan Sayre Groesbeck</span>. <b>5s.</b></p>
-
-<p>Admirers of Captain Graham’s ingenious and sarcastic verse will
-welcome this fresh instalment, which contains, among the ‘other
-verses,’ a number of ‘Poetic Paraphrases’ and ‘Open Letters’ to
-popular authors.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">THE LAND OF PLAY.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By MRS. GRAHAM WALLAS.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Crown 8vo. With Illustrations by Gilbert James.</em> <b>3s. 6d.</b></p>
-
-<p>The four stories which make up this delightful children’s book are
-entitled ‘Luck-Child,’ ‘The Princess and the Ordinary Little Girl,’
-‘Professor Green,’ and ‘A Position of Trust.’</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">A SONG-GARDEN FOR CHILDREN.</p>
-
-<p class="center boldfont">A Collection of Children’s Songs</p>
-
-<p class="center">Adapted from the French and German by</p>
-
-<p class="center">HARRY GRAHAM <span class="smcap">AND</span> ROSA NEWMARCH.</p>
-
-<p class="center">The Music Edited and Arranged by
-NORMAN O’NEILL.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Imperial 8vo. Paper.</em> <b>2s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Cloth, gilt top.</em> <b>4s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>This is a charming collection of forty-three French and German
-songs for children translated and adapted by Capt. Graham and
-Mrs. Newmarch. It includes nine songs arranged by J. Brahms for
-the children of Robert and Clara Schumann.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[14]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">A HANDBOOK OF SKIN DISEASES
-AND THEIR TREATMENT.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By ARTHUR WHITFIELD, M.D. (<span class="smcap">Lond.</span>), F.R.C.P.,</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Professor of Dermatology at King’s College; Physician to the Skin Departments,
-King’s College and the Great Northern Central Hospitals</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Crown 8vo. With Illustrations.</em> <b>8s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>This book is designed especially to meet the needs of those who
-have to treat the commoner skin diseases. While giving short
-descriptions of the rarer forms, the chief attention is bestowed on
-those more frequently met with. The diagnostic features of the
-various eruptions are dealt with in detail, in order that they may
-give help in determining the lines of treatment. The more recent
-work in clinical pathology, both microscopical and chemical, is for
-the first time brought into use in an English text-book. The book
-is freely illustrated with original photographs.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">THE CHEMICAL INVESTIGATION
-OF GASTRIC AND INTESTINAL
-DISEASES BY THE AID OF
-TEST MEALS.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By VAUGHAN HARLEY, M.D. <span class="smcap">Edin</span>., M.R.C.P., F.C.S.,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Professor of Pathological Chemistry, University College, London</span>;</p>
-
-<p class="center">And FRANCIS GOODBODY, M.D. <span class="smcap">Dub.</span>, M.R.C.P.,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Assistant Professor of Pathological Chemistry, University College, London</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Demy 8vo.</em> <b>8s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>This book opens with a description of the method of obtaining
-gastric contents, and the estimation of the capacity of the stomach.
-The various Test Meals employed in diagnosis are next described.
-The macroscopical examination of the gastric contents and conclusions
-to be drawn on inspection are discussed, and a short description
-of the microscopical appearances follows. The chemical
-analysis of the gastric contents is then given. The Organic Diseases
-of the Stomach are all separately described, with specimen cases of
-analysis to illustrate them. The Functional Diseases of the Stomach,
-which are more frequently met with in ordinary practice than the
-Organic Diseases, are also very fully given. The chemical methods
-employed in the investigation of Intestinal Diseases are then described
-with great fulness, four types of Test Meals being given.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[15]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">A GUIDE TO DISEASES OF THE
-NOSE AND THROAT AND THEIR
-TREATMENT.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By CHARLES ARTHUR PARKER, F.R.C.S. <span class="smcap">Edin.</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Demy 8vo. With 254 Illustrations.</em> <b>18s. net.</b></p>
-
-<p class="center sansseriffont">EXTRACT FROM THE PREFACE.</p>
-
-<p>‘To acquire the necessary dexterity to examine a patient systematically
-so as to overlook nothing, to recognise and put in its proper
-place the particular pathological condition found, and finally, but
-chiefly, to treat both the patient and the local abnormality successfully,
-seem to me the three most important objects of a course of
-study at a special hospital. This book, which is founded on lectures
-given at the Throat Hospital with these objects in view, is now
-published in the hope of helping those who are either attending or
-have attended a short course of study at special departments or
-special Hospitals for Diseases of the Throat and Nose....’</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">THE DIAGNOSIS OF NERVOUS
-DISEASES.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By PURVES STEWART, M.A., M.D., F.R.C.P.,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Physician To Out-Patients at the Westminster Hospital, and Joint Lecturer on
-Medicine in the Medical School; Physician To the Royal National Orthopædic
-Hospital; Assistant Physician to the Italian Hospital</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Demy 8vo. With Illustrations and Coloured Plates.</em> <b>15s. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>This book, which is intended for the use of senior students and
-practitioners, to supplement the ordinary text-books, discusses the
-most modern methods of diagnosis of Diseases of the Nervous
-System. The substance of the work, which is illustrated by original
-diagrams and clinical photographs, nearly 200 in number, was
-originally delivered in lecture form to students at the Westminster
-Hospital and to certain post-graduate audiences in London and elsewhere.
-The subject of Nervous Diseases is approached from the
-point of view of the practical physician, and the diagnostic facts are
-illustrated, as far as possible, by clinical cases.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[16]</span></p>
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">MIDWIFERY FOR NURSES.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By HENRY RUSSELL ANDREWS, M.D., B<span class="smcap">.Sc.</span> <span class="smcap">Lond.</span>,
-M.R.C.P. <span class="smcap">Lond.</span>,</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Assistant Obstetric Physician and Lecturer to Pupil Midwives at the London
-Hospital; Examiner to the Central Midwives Board</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Crown 8vo. With Illustrations.</em> <b>4s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>This book is intended to supply the pupil midwife with all that is
-necessary to meet the requirements of the Central Midwives Board,
-and to be a practical handbook for the certificated midwife.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">ALTERNATING CURRENTS.</p>
-
-<p class="center boldfont">A Text-book for Students of Engineering.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By C. G. LAMB, M.A., B.<span class="smcap">Sc.</span>,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Clare College, Cambridge</span>,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Associate Member of the Institution of Electrical Engineers; Associate of the City
-and Guilds of London Institute</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Demy 8vo. With Illustrations.</em> <b>10s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>The scope of this book is intended to be such as to cover approximately
-the range of reading in alternating current machinery and
-apparatus considered by the author as desirable for a student of
-general engineering in his last year&mdash;as, for example, a candidate for
-the Mechanical Sciences Tripos at Cambridge.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center xlargefont">A MANUAL OF HYDRAULICS.</p>
-
-<p class="center">By R. BUSQUET,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Professor à l’École Industrielle de Lyon</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Translated by A. H. PEAKE, M.A.,</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Demonstrator in Mechanism and Applied Mechanics in the University of Cambridge</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Crown 8vo. With Illustrations.</em> <b>7s. 6d. net.</b></p>
-
-<p>This work is a practical text-book of Applied Hydraulics, in which
-complete technical theories and all useful calculations for the erection
-of hydraulic plant are presented. It is not a purely descriptive work
-designed merely for popular use, nor is it an abstruse treatise suitable
-only for engineers versed in higher mathematics. The book is well
-illustrated, and is full of Arithmetical Examples fully worked out. In
-these examples, no knowledge is assumed beyond that of simple
-arithmetic and the elements of geometry.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="transnote">
-<h2 style="margin-top: 0em">Transcriber’s Notes:</h2>
-
-<p>Punctuation has been made consistent.</p>
-
-<p>Variations in spelling and hyphenation were retained as they appear in
-the original publication, except that obvious typographical errors
-have been corrected.</p>
-</div></div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Sundered Streams, by Reginald Farrer
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE SUNDERED STREAMS ***
-
-***** This file should be named 62469-h.htm or 62469-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/2/4/6/62469/
-
-Produced by Demian Katz, Craig Kirkwood, and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net
-(Images courtesy of the Digital Library@Villanova University
-(http://digital.library.villanova.edu/))
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/62469-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/62469-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 275f6ef..0000000
--- a/old/62469-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ